A COMMENTARY ON

 

PROVERBS

 

 

Charles Bridges

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

                                 New York/Pittsburgh: R. Carter, 1847.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

PREFACE.

 

 

 

 

PROVERBIAL teaching is one of the most ancient forms of instruction.

It was well adapted to the rudeness and simplicity of the first ages,

when books were few, and philosophy little understood. The mind,

unpractised to the slow process of reasoning, would be much more

easily arrested by terse sentences, expressing a striking sentiment in

the fewest words. The wise man himself has given the best definition

of these sententious maxims. Their elegance he describes under the

figure of "apples of gold in pictures (network) of silver."* Their force

and permanent impression are ''as goads and nails fastened by the

Master of assemblies"†--- driven closely home to the heart and con-

science, and fastened in the memories by the appointed instructor of the

people.

     The antiquity of this teaching was recognised in the Church even

before the age of Solomon. (1 Sam. xxiv. 13.) Classic Annals have

recorded Aphorisms similarly constructed from men of wisdom. All

of these however were of a later date. Some possibly might be dim

scintillations from this fountain light; so that the King of Israel was

---as an old expositor has remarked ---'the disciple of none, but the

instructor of them all.'‡  Indeed his mind largely dealt in this intel-

 

  * Chap. xxxv. 11. This image reminds us of Mr. Addison's apt description conceived in

his best style of taste and beauty--'By similitudes, drawn from the visible parts of nature,

a truth in the understanding is, as it were, reflected by the imagination. We are enabled

to see something like colour and shape in a notion, and to discover a scheme of thoughts

traced out upon matter. And here the mind receives a great deal of satisfaction, and has

two of its faculties gratified at the same time, while the fancy is busy in copying after the

understanding, and transcribing ideas out of the intellectual world into the material.'

Concluding paper on 'the Pleasures of the Imagination.' Spectator, No. 421.

   † Eccles. xli. 11. LXX. write paroimiai (para  oimoj—via—sayings spoken in the way.

Comp. Dr. Johnson's definition) a word often used in the New Testament for parables.

(John, x. 6; xvi. 25, 29.) Marg. Both were of the same popular character. A proverb is

often given in the form of a parable.

   ‡ Lavater. Comment. in Prov. Pref. Tigur. 1596.


iv                                                         PREFACE.

 

lectual exercise. "He spake three thousand proverbs." (1 Kings, iv.

32.) And from this valuable mass of thought he was directed, under

Divine inspiration, to "set in order" a collection for the instruction of

the Church to the end of time.*

     Possibly some would rather have desired the preservation of his

discourses on Natural History (lb. iv. 33), than on Practical Wisdom.

But this Sovereign discrimination shews the real intent of the Scrip-

tures--not to teach philosophy, but religion; not to make men of

science, but men of sound godliness.

     All competent judges will admit this Book to be eminently fitted

for this great end. What the Roman Orator pronounced of Thucydides,

applies far more truly to this King of Jerusalem ---'so full of matter,

that he comprised as many sentences as words.'†  This wonderful Book

is indeed a mine of Divine wisdom. The views of God are holy and

reverential. The observation of human nature is minute and accurate.

The rule of life and conduct is closely applied, to make "the man of

God perfect, thoroughly furnished unto all good works" (2 Tim. iii.

16, 17); so that, as Mr. Scott well remarks--'we shall perceive the

meaning and utility of the Proverbs, in proportion to our experience

in true religion, our acquaintance with our own hearts, and with

human nature, and the extent and accuracy of our observation on the

character and affairs of men.‡  Eusebius mentions the whole consent of

the ancients, considering the Book of Proverbs to be ‘Wisdom fraught

with every kind of virtue.'§  Bishop Hall drew out mainly from it a

complete system of 'Divine Arts.'||  And though the Apostate Julian

 

   * Eccles. xii.9.  Grotius supposes the Book to be a compilation from preceding writers.

This degradation of Solomon is a gratuitous conjecture, unsupported by a title of evidence. 

But such are the irreverent liberties that proud learning dares to take with the Word of

God!

   †  Cicero de Oratore, lib. ii. 14. Elsewhere he gives nearly the same judgment of Euripides. 

Epist. Lib. xvi. 8.

   ‡ Pref. to Comment. On Prov.

   § Hist. lib. iv. c. 25. pana<reton sofi<an. Jerome's direction to one of his friends for

the education of his daughter is--'Let her have first of all the Book of Psalms for holiness

of heart, and be instructed in the Proverbs of Solomon for her godly life. '--Epist. vii. ad

Laetam. Matthew Henry, in his beautiful portrait of his mother, describes her as one,

that was ‘very well versed in Solomon’s Proverbs, and the rules of wisdom, which may be

fetched from thence for the conduct of human life, and knew how to apply them, and to use

knowledge aright.'--Sermon on the Death of Mrs. Katherine Henry.

   || 'Solomon's Divine Arts of Ethics, Politics, Economics --that is --the Government of

Behaviour, Commonwealth, Family --drawn into method out of his Proverbs, and Eccle-

siastes.' Works, viii. 427. Edited by Rev. P. Hall. Oxford, 1837.


                                      PREFACE                                                  v

 

scornfully preferred to it the sayings of Heathen Philosophy;*  yet the

apostrophe of the son of Sirach was justly applied to its author--

'How wise wast thou in thy youth, and as a flood filled with under-

standing! Thy soul covered the whole earth, and thou fillest it with

dark parables.'†

     As to its canonical authority' ---Michaelis well observes, 'that no

Book of the Old Testament is so well ratified by the evidence of quota-

tions.'‡  A few of the Jewish Talmudists appear to have expressed

some doubt of its Divine stamp, but upon grounds so futile, that they

were abandoned upon a more mature consideration.§  Ecclesiastical

History has recorded only one dissentient from the judgment of the

universal Church; and that one condemned by her authoritative

council.||  Witsius has admirably refuted the neological cavils of his

day.¶  Nothing has been said from any quarter to weaken the unhesi-

tating decision of our judgment, that the pen is that of the King of

Israel; but the words are the wisdom of God.

     Some difference exists among expositors as to the exact divisions of

the Book. We have been led to divide it into three parts. In giving a

more succinct account of these several parts, we shall avail ourselves

largely, though necessarily in an abridged form, of the observations of

a Biblical scholar, not more remarkable for his profound learning, than

for his elegant taste.**

     The first Part--all agree--extends from the opening of the Work

to the close of the ninth chapter. It is--as Dr. Good observes--

‘chiefly confined to the conduct of early life. All the most formidable

 

   * Apud Cyrill. Contra Julian. lib. vii.

 † Ecclus. xlvii. 14, 15. The whole passage (verses 12-22) is very beautiful. Eusebius

remarks of Solomon, that while, inspired by Divine wisdom, "he consecrated all his writings

to the profit and salvation of souls; yet he used these dark 'parables' for the exercise of

the mind. Contr. Marcell. lib. i. c. iii p. 17.

   ‡  Introd. to New Test. i. 207. Comp. especially in LXX. Chap. iii. 7. with .Rom. xii. 16;

11, 12, with Heb. xii. 5, 6; 34, with James, iv. 6. 1 Pet. v. 5; x. 12, with 1 Pet. iv.  8;  xi.

31, with 1 Pet. iv.18;  xxv. 6, 7, with Luke, xiv. 8-10; 21, 22, with Rom. xii 20; xxvi. 11,

with 2 Pet. ii. 22;  xxvii. 1, with James, iv. 13, 14. It is a marked distinction drawn

between this Book and the Apocryphal Book of Wisdom, so similar in character; that from

the latter no quotation can be adduced in the New Testament.

   § Hottinger, Thesaur. Philol. lib. ii. c. 1. sect. 14. Comp. Carpzov. Introd. ad Lib.

Canon. Part. ii. C. iv. § 7.

   || Theodore Mopsuest. condemned by 5th Council of Constaninople, A.D. 551.

    ¶ Miscell. Sacra, lib. i c. xviii. 30-34.

   ** Extracts from an unpublished Translation of the Book of Proverbs, by the late Dr.

Good, in his Life by Dr. Gregory, pp. 286-306.


vi                                    PREFACE.

 

dangers to which this season is exposed, and "the sins which most

easily beset it," are painted with the hand of a master. And while

the progress and issues of vice are exhibited under a variety of the

most striking delineations and metaphors, in their utmost deformity

and horror; all the beauties of language, and all the force of eloquence

are poured forth in the diversified form of earnest expostulation,

insinuating tenderness, captivating argument, and sublime allegory,

to win the ingenuous youth to virtue and piety, and to fix him in a

steady pursuit of his duties towards God and man. Virtue is pro-

nounced in the very outset to be essential wisdom, and vice or wicked-

ness essential folly. The only wise man therefore is declared to be the

truly good and virtuous, or he that fears God, and reverences his law;

while the man of vice and wickedness is a fool, a stubborn or perverse

wretch, and an abomination to Jehovah.

     Wisdom is hence allegorized as a tree of life, yielding delicious

shade, fruit, and protection to those that approach her branches ;

throwing a garland of honour around their shoulders, and decorating

their heads with a graceful chaplet, more precious than rubies. She is

a sage and eloquent monitor, lifting up her warning voice at the gates

and in the squares of the city; denouncing to the young the snares

and dangers, to which they are exposed; and exhorting them to

abandon "the way of the wicked, which is as darkness," for the path

of the just, which is

                      --------'As the brightening dawn,

               Advancing and brightening to perfect day.'*

 

     The Second Part commences at the opening of the tenth chapter,

as is obvious from the introductory clause. The style and manner

of the second part are as different as possible from those of the first.

 

   * We add two interesting testimonies, of a widely different character. 'The first part,

including the first nine chapters, is a kind of exordium, and is varied, elegant, sublime,

and truly poetical. The natural order is generally observed, and the parts are aptly con-

nected together. It is embellished with very beautiful descriptions and prosopopoeias, and

adorned with the most finished style, together with every kind of poetical ornament; so

that it scarcely yields, in beauty, to any specimen of Sacred Poetry'--Bp. LOWTH'S

Lectures on Heb. Poetry, xxiv. (Mr. Holden ventures to doubt whether this picture is not

somewhat over-wrought.--Pref. to Translation of Proverbs, xxxix.) 'The first nine chap-

ters of the Book of Proverbs present us with a most interesting specimen of "acceptable

words." There is in them an inimitable union of admonitory fidelity, and enticing and

subduing kindness. Like Paul, he "exhorts, comforts, and charges, as a father doth his

children." The whole soul of the writer is breathed out in the earnestness of benevolent

desire.'-- WARDLAW on Eccles. xii. 10.


PREFACE.                                                     vii

 

It is evidently designed for the use of persons advanced from the state

of youth to that of manhood. While in the preceding, addressed to

the young, the richest ornaments of the fancy are made choice of to

captivate their attention, and allure them to a right practice; in the

present all is business and activity, brevity, continuity, and terseness.

Every thought, though as highly polished, is at the same time as

compressed as possible; and the Writer, thoroughly aware of the

value of every moment of time at this important period, lays down

a complete series of short rules of life, and concentrates the most

momentous precepts into the narrowest compass. The former appeals

to the imagination; the latter to the judgment. The one exhibits

all the genius of poetry; the latter all the art of composition; and

hence the general matter is rendered as attractive in the one instance

as in the other.

     'The great object in each of the Proverbs of the present part,

is to enforce a moral principle in words so few, that they may be

easily learnt, and so curiously selected and arranged, that they may

strike and fix the attention instantaneously; while, to prevent the

mind from becoming fatigued by a long series of detached sentences,

they are perpetually diversified by the changes of style and figure.

Sometimes the style is rendered striking by its peculiar simplicity,

or the familiarity of its illustration;1 sometimes by the grandeur

or loftiness of the simile employed on the occasion;2 sometimes by

an enigmatical obscurity,3 which rouses the curiosity; very frequently

by a strong and catching antithesis;4 occasionally by a playful

iteration of the same word;5  and in numerous instances by the

elegant pleonasms or the expansion of a single or common idea by

a luxuriance of agreeable words.'6

     The Third Part we conceive to comprise the last seven chapters.

The first five were written by Solomon, and edited some centuries

after by the royal scribes in the reign of Hezekiah. The two last

were written by separate hands, but preserved by Divine care and

altogether worthy of the place they hold in the inspired Canon.

     The time when this book was written is a matter of some un-

 

   [1] Chap. I. 19; xvi. 3; xxii. 2.

   2 Chap. xii. 58; xv. 11; xxi. 16, 22.

   3 Chap. xvi. 24; xvii. 8; xviii. 20.

   4 Chap. xiv. 10; xvi. 16; xvii. 10; xviii. 4; xix. 12; xx. 14.

   5 Chap. xi. 15; xiii. 20;  xvii. 13, 15.

   6 Chap. xvi. 32;  xvii. 17, 27, 28;  xix. 6.


 

viii                                           PREFACE.

 

certainty. We cannot doubt but its contents were a part of "the

three thousand Proverbs," which "he spake" before his most lament-

able fall. (1 Kings, iv. 32.) They were therefore the exercise of his

vast and comprehensive mind, under the full influence of his Divine

wisdom. (Ib. verse 29.) They might, however, as many judicious

critics have thought, have been "set in order" (Eccles. xii. 9) in their

present form at a period subsequent to that afflictive event. Both

parts of this hypothesis read a most solemn practical lesson. Do

we see "outlandish women causing him to sin" (Neh. xiii. 26)--

this "beloved of his God" falling himself into the snare, which he

so minutely described, and against which he so earnestly and re-

peatedly warned?1 Christian Ministers! does not Solomon, no less

than St. Paul,2 awfully teach us, that preaching to others will not

save our own souls? The supposition of the posterior arrangement

gives additional weight to his faithful admonitions. They come to

us, like the exhortations of the restored Apostle,3 with all the force

of painful experience, in the true spirit of his Master's command--

"When thou art converted, strengthen thy brethren."4

     The interpretation of this Book requires much care and sobriety.

Believing the principles of the Old and New Testament to be essen-

tially the same, it seems reasonable to expound the more obscure by

the more clear. The primary duty is indeed to affix to each Proverb

its own literal and precise meaning. This is undoubtedly its spiritual

meaning--that is--the mind of the Spirit. In an extended appli-

cation of this discovered meaning, or in deducing inferences from it,

judgment, not imagination, must be the interpreter. When no other

than a literal meaning is plainly intended, the object must be, not

to search out a new and miscalled spiritual meaning, but to draw

practical instruction from its obvious sense.    

     There is, however--we may remark--a line to be drawn between

exposition and illustration. The figures used in this Book, after their

literal meaning has been wrought out, may fairly be used as illustrative

of other collateral truths, not specifically intended. The Sacred

Writers appear to warrant this principle of accommodation,* though

 

   1 Chap. ii. v. vii. ix. xxii. 14; xxiii; 27, 28.

    2 1 Cor. ix. 27.

    3 1 Pet. i. 13, 17; iv. 7; v. 8, with Matt. xxvi. 35.

    4 Luke, xxii. 32.

 * See the Apostle's application of Ps. xix. 4, at Rom. x. 18, and DODDRIDGE'S and

GUYSE’S Paraphrase. Compo SCOTT on Chap. xxv. 6, 7.


                                    PREFACE.                                        ix

 

its use requires great delicacy and consideration; lest it should

divest Scripture of its determinate meaning, and identify us with

those artists, whom Dr. South memorializes, 'who can draw any-

thing out of anything.'*

     But with all care to preserve a soundly-disciplined interpretation,

we must not forget, that the Book of Proverbs is a part of the volume

entitled--"The word of Christ." (Col. iii. 16.) And so accurately does

the title describe the Book, that the study of it brings the whole sub-

stance of the volume before us. It furnishes indeed the stimulating

motive to search the Old Testament Scripture (John, v. 39)--the true

key that opens the Divine Treasure-house; so that, as Mr. Cecil ob-

serves--'If we do not see the golden thread through all the Bible,

marking out Christ, we read the Scripture without the Key.'†  This

remark however does not undervalue its large mass of historical and

practical instruction. But unquestionably Christ is the Sun of the

whole Scripture system; "and in his light we see the light" (Ps.

xxxvi. 9), that reflects upon every point of practical obligation, and

quickens life and energy throughout the whole Christian path. There

is therefore, as Professor Franke reminds us--'much JOY, comfort, and

delight to be found in the writings of the Old Testament (especially in

reading those places, which before were wearisome and almost irksome)

when we perceive Christ is so sweetly pictured there.'‡

     It has, been recorded, of Mary Jane Graham, 'that she was delighted

in the course of her study of the Book of Proverbs to have Christ so

much and so frequently before her mind'1--a recollection--her bio-

grapher ventured to observe--of great moment for the spiritual dis-

cernment of the divine wisdom treasured up in this storehouse of prac-

tical instruction.'§  Indeed, considering that these "Proverbs set in

order--these words of the wise"--were originally "given from one

Shepherd" (Eccles. xii. 9-11), whom we cannot surely fail to identify,

we might naturally expect them to record distinct testimony of himself.

     We cannot but fear, however, that this portion of the sacred volume

 

                                                     [1] Chap. 1. viii. ix. &c.

    * Sermon on Matt. v. 44.

  † Mrs. HAWKES'S Life, p.171. So Augustine--'The Old Testament has no true relish

if Christ be not understood in it.' Ninth Tractat. on John.

     ‡ Christ the Sum and Substance of Holy Scripture. Sect. xxi.

     § Life, chap. v.


x                                             PREFACE.

 

is not generally estimated at its just value. Doubtless its pervading

character is not, either explicit statement of doctrinal truth, or lively ex-

ercises of Christian experience. Hence the superficial reader passes over

to some (in his view) richer portion of the Scriptural field. Now we

readily admit, that all parts of the Bible are not of equal importance.

But to value one part to the disparagement of another, is a slight to the

divine testimony, that will be visited with a severe rebuke. Such a

reader will only be possessed of mutilated fragments of truth, severed

from their vital influence. He will never rise beyond a sickly senti-

mentalism. Seeking for novelty and excitement, rather than for the

food of solid instruction; like Pharaoh's kine,* he devours much, but

digests nothing. Never will he have light enough for the firm settle-

ment of his faith; neither can he receive the true moulding of the mind

of the Spirit, or the impress of the divine image.

     But the question has been often asked--and that--not in cavilling,

but in an anxiously enquiring, spirit--'How can I read this Book pro-

fitably ?' Not unfrequently the confession has been added--'My mind

and soul do not get food from it. I think I am less interested in this,

than in any other, part of Scripture. I acknowledge the wisdom of its

sayings. I am fully persuaded, that, being the Word of God, it was

not written in vain. The fault therefore must be in myself. Still the

question returns-- How am I to read it with profit?'

     Now it might almost appear, as if the rules given at the opening of

the Book were intended to answer this question. (Chap. ii. 1-4.) Cer-

tain it is, that they do furnish the most satisfactory reply. The first

and chief direction--that which gives life to every other--that which

applies to every page and every verse of the Bible is--Begin with

prayer--"Cry--lift up thy voice." Then combine a pondering mind

with a praying heart. Actively apply thyself to "seek and search for

the hid treasures." The riches lie not on the surface. Only those

therefore, that dig into the bowels of the earth--not the readers, but

"the searchers of the Scriptures"--are enriched. (John, v. 39.) If the sur-

face be barren, the mine beneath is inexhaustible. Indeed it is a wise

discipline, that has made an active spirit of meditation necessary to

give solid and fruitful interest to this study, and to possess ourselves of

 

   * Gen. xli 20, 21. Comp. the picture drawn, 2 Tim. iii. 7.


PREFACE.                                                     xi

 

a blessing, which carelessness or indolence will never realize. The pro-

mise here held out to diligent investigation fixed that intelligent

Christian just mentioned 'on one occasion in intense meditation for two

hours. She appeared to be lost in astonishment and gratitude at the

condescension and kindness of God in giving a promise, so free, so

encouraging. She grasped it, as if determined not to let it go.'*

     The habit of interested attention being fixed, how shall we best

"apply the heart to the understanding" of the Book? Here the

valuable exercise of Scripture reference will greatly expand our own

thoughtful meditation. Gather contributions from all parts of the field.

Many a doubtful or apparently uninteresting Proverb will thus be

brightened in instructive application. We are persuaded, that an

enlarged Scriptural study, with whatever collateral helps may be within

our reach, will bring no regret in having rested awhile in this part of

the field, instead of passing onwards to a more inviting surface. To

advert once more to our Scriptural student--'She frequently employed

herself in the profitable exercise of "comparing spiritual things with

spiritual;" Scripture with itself; thus making God His own interpreter.

Much light and heavenly unction she conceived herself to have gained

by this means.'† The fruitfulness of this exercise will be, when we

"find God's words" as our treasure; "eat them" as our invigorating

food; and "they" thus become "the joy and rejoicing of our hearts."

(Jer. xv: 16.)  'Set your affection'--saith the apocryphal writer--

‘upon my words. Desire them, and ye shall be instructed. Wisdom is

glorious, and never fadeth away; yea, she is easily seen of those that

love her, and found of such as seek her. She preventeth those that

.desire her, in making herself first known unto them. Whoso seeketh

her early shall have no great travail; for he shall find her sitting at his

doors. Whoso watcheth for her‡ shall quickly be without care. For

she goeth about seeking such as are worthy of her, sheweth herself

favourably unto them in the ways, and meeteth them, however,

in every thought.'§

 

   * Life of Mary Jane Graham, ut sup.

 † Ib. Nicholls's Exposition of this Book, and Scott's Marginal References, will give

much valuable assistance to this study. No foreign help, however, should damp the

profitable interest of original research.

    ‡   [O a]grupnh<saj --whom wisdom scarcely affords time to sleep.

    § Wisd. vi. 11-16. The reader will find throughout this Exposition frequent reference


xii                                           PREFACE.

 

     An accurate apprehension of the main end and scope of this Book

will greatly facilitate the understanding of it. Different portions of

Scripture may be seen to have different ends, all however subordinate

to one end--primary and supreme. Without entering into detail

foreign to our purpose, suffice it to remark, that the end of this Book

appears to be, to set out a system of practical instruction, generally

applicable. Nor let this be thought a low gradation in the Christian

scheme. Unpalatable as it may be to the mere professor of godliness,*

the true man of God will honour practical inculcation in its place, no

less than doctrinal statement. "The truth as it is in Jesus"--that

which flows from him, leads to him, and centres in him--that in which

"we are to be learned, and to be taught by him"--is practical truth.

(Eph. iv. 20-24.) While other parts of Scripture shew us the glory of

our high calling; this may instruct in all minuteness of detail how to

" walk worthy of it." Elsewhere we learn our completeness in Christ

(Col. ii. 10): and most justly we glory in our high exaltation as "joint-

heirs with Christ, made to sit together in heavenly places in Christ

Jesus." (Rom. viii. 17. Eph. ii. 6.) We look into this Book, and, as by

the aid of the microscope, we see the minuteness of our Christian

obligations; that there is not a temper, a look, a word, a movement,

the most important action of the day, the smallest relative duty, in

which we do not either deface or adorn the image of our Lord, and the

profession of his name. Surely if the book conduced to no other end,

it tends to humble even the most consistent servant of God, in the

consciousness of countless failures. Not only therefore is the last

chapter--as Matthew Henry would have it--'a looking-glass for

ladies,' but the whole Book is a mirror for us all.

     Nor is it only a mirror to shew our defects. It is also a guide-

 

to the Apocryphal Books of Wisdom--but only as human authorities. Mr. Horne has most

demonstrably overthrown their claim to a place in the sacred canon. (Introd. to Scrip.

vol. i. Append. No.1. last edit.) Yet while we would most distinctly mark the wide gulf

between inspired and uninspircd writings, there seems no necessity to lose much valuable

and beautiful instruction, only because the writers were not inspired, or their writings were

tainted with pernicious errors.

   * We fear that Mr. Scott's hearers at the Lock as a sect have not died away. Their real

objection--as his son admirably observed--'was not to Arminianism (of which they

very probably scarcely knew the meaning) but to half, or more than half the word of God.

They had been accustomed to overlook it themselves, and could not bear to have it pressed

upon their notice by another.'--Scott's Life, pp. 232-235. Yet the preceptive part of an

Epistle may be set out, so dissociated from the doctrine, that the main-spring of practical

godliness is weakened, if not destroyed.


                                           PREFACE.                                             xiii

 

book and directory for godly conduct. The details of the external

life, in all the diversified spheres, are given or implied with perfect

accuracy, and with a profound knowledge of the workings of the human

heart. 'Beside a code of laws directly religious, a variety of admirable

rules stream forth from the deep recesses of wisdom, and spread over

the whole field.'* All ranks and classes have their word in season.

The sovereign on the throne is instructed as from God.1 The princi-

ples of national prosperity or decay are laid open.2 The rich are

warned of their besetting temptations.3 The poor are cheered in their

worldly humiliation.4 Wise rules are given for self-government.5 'It

bridles the injurious tongue,6  corrects the wanton eye,7 and ties the

unjust hand in chains.8  It prevents sloth,9 chastises all absurd desires;10

teaches prudence11 raises man's courage;12 and represents temper-

ance and chastity after such a fashion, that we cannot but have them

in veneration.'†  To come to important matters so often mismanaged

--the blessing or curse of the marriage ordinance is vividly pour-

trayed.13 Sound principles of family order and discipline are incul-

cated.14  Domestic economy is displayed in its adorning consistency.15

Nay--even the minute courtesies of daily life are regulated.16  Self-

denying consideration of others,17 and liberal distribution18  are enforced.

All this diversified instruction is based upon the principles of true

godliness.19 Thus if the Psalms bring the glow upon the heart, the

Proverbs "make the face to shine." Indeed the Writer may mention

as one motive that led him to this work; that, having in a former

Exposition‡ shewn at large Christian experience to be built upon the

doctrines of the gospel, he wished to exhibit Christian practice as rest-

ing upon the same foundation. That is not sound faith, that does not

issue in practical godliness. Nor is there any true morality, apart from

 

1 Chap. viii. 15, 16; xvi. 10-13; xx. 8, 26; xxi. 1; xxv. 2-5; xxviii. 16; xxix. 14; xxxi. 1-9.

2 Chap. xi. 14; xiv. 34; xxiv. 6; xxviii. 2.                3 Chap. xviii. 11; xxiii. 4, 5; xxviii. 20, 22.

4 Chap. xv.16,17; xvii. 1; xix.1, 22; xxviii. 6.         5 Chap. iv. 23-27; xvi. 32; xxiii. 1.-3.

6 Chap. iv. 24; x. 31; xvii. 20; xxv. 23; xxvi. 20-26.

7 Chap. v. 20, 21; vi. 25-29; xxiii. 26, 27.   8 Chap. xviii. 5; xxviii. 8.

9 Chap. vi. 6-11; xii. 27; 4; xix. 24; xx. 4; xxiv. 30-34.                    10 Chap. xxi. 25, 26.

11 Chap. iv. 14, 15; vi. 1-5; xiv. 8, 15, 18; xxii. 3; xxv. 6-10.          12 Chap. xxviii. 1.

13 Chap. xviii. 22; xix. 14; xxxi. 10, with xii. 4; xix. 13; xxi. 9, 19.

14 Chap. xiii. 24; xiv. 1; xix. 18; xxii. 6; xxiii. 13, 14; xxix. 15, 17, 19, 21.

15 Chap. xxvii. 28-27; xxxi. 10-27.           16 Chap. xxiii. 6-8; xxv. 17.         17 Chap. iii. 27, 28.

18 Chap. xi. 24; xxii. 9.                             19 Chap. xxxi. 10, 30.

                  * Lord BACON’S Advancement of Learning, Book viii. chap. ii.

          † Chap. v. 15-19, with xxiii. 29-35. Basil, quoted by Bp. Patrick.

                                 ‡ On Ps. cxix.


 

xiv                                                       PREFACE.

 

"the principles of Christ." This Book, if it be not, as the New Testa-

ment,--the Rule of Faith, may surely be considered as a valuable Rule

of conduct. And--as Mr. Scott observes--'it would be very useful

for those, who can command their time, at some stated season every

day, to read and deliberately consider a few of these maxims with

reference to their own conduct, in the various affairs in which they are

concerned.'*  Doubtless if the world were governed by the whole

wisdom of this single Book, it would be "a new earth, wherein

dwelleth righteousness."

     One other weighty consideration the Writer would advert to, as

having directed his attention to this Book--its distinctive character, as

a Book for the Young. The wise man's father propounded a most

anxious question--"Wherewithal shall a young man cleanse his way?"

His son in this Book has fully opened the answer--"By taking heed

thereto according to thy word." (Ps. cxix. 9.) Nay he expressly states

the Book to be written for the heeding of youth.1 It takes them as it

were by the hand, sets up way-marks to warn against coming danger

and imminent temptations,2 and allures them into the bright ways of

God by the most engaging motives.3 And never surely was the

object so momentous, as at the present day. Our young are growing

up at a period, when "the foundations of the earth are out of course;"

and when subtle and restless efforts are making to poison their hearts,

and pervert their ways. Nothing therefore can be more important, than

to fortify them with sound principles; that, when withdrawn from the

parental wing into a world or a Church (alas!  that we should be con-

strained to use, the term!) of temptation, they may be manifestly under

a Divine cover, as the children of a special Providence. What this

invaluable Book impresses upon their minds is, the importance of deep-

seated principles in the heart; the responsibility of conduct in every

step of life; the danger of trifling deviations for expediency's sake;

the value of self-discipline; the habit of bringing everything to the

Word of God; the duty of weighing in just balances a worldly and a

heavenly portion, and thus deciding the momentous choice of an ever-

lasting good before the toys of earth. These lessons, thoroughly

inwrought, will prove the best security against all attempts to loosen

 

    * Pref. to Comment. on Prov.

    1 Chap. i. 4; iv. 1, &c.

    2 Chap. i. 10-15; ii. 10-19; v. 1-13; vii.

    3 Chap. iii. 1-18; viii. I7, &c.


                                PREFACE.                                                    xv

 

the hold of principle, and to entice upon enchanted ground. This

practical godliness--so far from wearing a forbidding, look, or being

associated with gloom or sadness--casts a smile over a world of

sorrow, is a sunbeam of comfort in suffering, and ever a principle of

peace and steadfastness. "Great peace have they which love thy law;

and nothing shall offend them." (Ps. cxix. 165.)

     As to the matter of the exposition, the Writer cannot indeed say,

with a Romish commentator,* 'that he has gone through all the circle

of Biblical exposition, versions of the Scripture, Patristic reading, and

classic literature bearing upon the Scripture.' He trusts, however, that

it will be seen by the mass of references throughout the work, that he

has taken due care to mature his own judgment, and to enlarge his

scanty resources, by availing himself of the assistance of those exposi-

tors, who appear to have been most conversant with the original

language, and to have given the most careful and sober interpretation.

By a wider range, he would have probably rather perplexed than

informed his readers.

     He would not only add, in conclusion, in the words of one of the

most valuable expositors†--that 'if there should be anything here to

please the reader, ascribe not the writing to the pen, but to the writer;

not the light to the lamp, but to the fountain; not the picture to the

pencil, but to the painter; not the gift to the unfaithful dispenser, but to

God the bountiful Giver.'

 

 

          * Cornelius á Lapide.                      † Geier.

 

 

 

Old Newton Vicarage,

     Oct. 7, 1846.

 


 

 

 

                             ADVERTISEMENT

 

                      TO THE FOURTH EDITION.

 

 

The Writer desires gratefully to acknowledge the many testimonies

of interest and edification connected with his Work. Deeply sensible

as he is of its great imperfections, may his God have the glory!

     In reference to the mass of Scriptural references, he would state,

that his primary object in this, as in a former Exposition, was to draw

out into view the unsearchable riches of the Sacred field. And if he

may have sometimes inadvertently carried out this desire to an undue

extent, he trusts, that upon the whole it may encourage some of his

Readers to a meditative study of Holy Writ, so that "the Word of

Christ may dwell in them richly in all wisdom," to their own enlarged

profit, and to the edification of the Church.

     He has been enabled to compress the work (without abridgement),

in order to reduce the price for wider circulation. He has now only to

commend it afresh to the blessing of his God, and to the kind accept-

ance of His Church.

 

      Hinton Martell Rectory,

             July 16, 1859.

 

 

In accordance with suggestions repeatedly made to the Author the Exposition

     of the first nine chapters has been reprinted, apart, for more extensive

     distribution, under the title of "A MANUAL FOR THE YOUNG;" at the

     price of 2s. 6d.

.


          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF

                      PROVERBS

 

                                        CHAPTER I.

 

 

1. The proverbs of Solomon, the Son of David, King of Israel; 2. To

      know wisdom and instruction; to perceive the words of understand-

      ing; 3. To receive the instruction of wisdom, justice, and judgment, and

      equity; 4. To give subtilty to the simple, to the young man knowledge and  

      discretion.

 

THE Book naturally opens with a short account of its author. Solomon

is recorded as the wisest of men; a man of wisdom, because a man of

prayer. (1 Kings iii. 12. Comp. chap. ii. 1-9.) His extraordinary

wisdom was the admiration of the world. (1 Kings iii. 28; iv. 34.)

Had he been the Son of Jeroboam, he would have commanded respect;

much more as the son of David, formed by his godly prayers (Ps. lxxii.1.)

and counsels. (Chap. i-v. 1-4. 1 Kings ii. 1-4. 1 Chron. xxviii. 9.)

And if a King's sayings, even though without intrinsic merit, are pre-

served; the wise teaching of this King of Israel (Eccres. i. 1; xii. 9, 10)

may well demand our especial interest.

     Valuable, however, as were Solomon's maxims for their own wis-

dom (exceeding the sages of his own or any other time) (1 Kings, iv.

29-31); they claim our reverence upon infinitely higher ground. "Be-

hold! a greater than Solomon is here." (Matt. xii. 42.) Often does he

speak in the person (Verse 20; viii. ix. xxiii. 26) always under the

inspiration (2 Tim. iii. 16) of "the wisdom of God;" so that his

sayings are truly "Divine sentences in the lips of the King." (Chap.

xvi. 10.)

     The great end of this inestimable book is to teach, not secular or

political wisdom (though many excellent rules of each are interspersed)


2              EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

(Chap. vi. 1-11; xxvii. 23-27; with xi. 14; xiv. 28, 34; xx. 18); but

that knowledge of God (Verse 7), which, while it "maketh wise unto

salvation, perfects and furnishes the man of God unto all good works."

(2 Tim. iii. 15-17. Tit. ii. 11, 12.) Its glowing privileges are set forth.

(Chap. iii. 13-18.) It is pressed upon us with intense earnestness, as

"the principal thing," our very "life." (Chap. iv. 5-9, 13.) Instruction

is the means of gaining it. We are directed to perceive the words of

understanding; to receive the instruction as a complete rule of wisdom,

justice, judgment, and equity (Comp. chap. ii. 9); sound principles, and

their practical application. Here also the simple, so readily deluded

(Chap. xiv. 15; xxi. 11. Ezek. xlv. 20), learn that subtilty, so needful

to discriminate between truth and error (Philip. i. 10. 1 Thess.

v. 21); to guard them from false teachers (Ps. xvii. 4. 1 John, iv. 1.

Comp. Acts, xvii. 11); and to "convince gainsayers." (Tit. i. 9; ii. 8.

Comp. Matt. xxii. 15-46.) Specially is the young man directed to this

book.*  His undisciplined ardour runs to waste. His mind fluctuates

at the mercy of the winds of opinion in the world around him; and

greatly does he need some settled master-principles to fix his purpose,

choice, and conduct. Here then he finds knowledge and discretion; a

religion, not of imagination, impulse, or sentiment; but the sound

practical energy of Scriptural truth.

 

   5. A wise man will hear, and will increase learning; and a man of under-

       standing shall attain unto wise counsels; 6. To understand a proverb,

       and the interpretation; the words of the wise, and their dark sayings.

     Not only the simple and the young, but even the wise, may here gather

instruction. For a truly wise man is one, not who has attained, but who

knows that he "has not attained," and is pressing onward to perfection.

(Philip. iii. 12.  Comp. 1 Cor. iii. 18; viii. 2.) David, while conscious

of comparative attainments, was ever seeking for higher light. (Ps.

cxix. 98-100; with 18, 33, 34.) Indeed the richest stores would soon

waste, without constant additions. Hearing is a great medium of know-

ledge.  Jethro instructed Moses (Exod. xviii. 17-26); our Lord his

disciples.  (Matt. xiii. 11-16. John, xvi. 12.) Peter enlightened his

fellow-apostles. (Acts, xi. 2-18.) Priscilla and Aquila "instructed

Apollos in the way of God more perfectly." (Ibid. xviii. 24-26.) In-

deed we must be hearers, ere we would be teachers.  'He gathers that

hears; he spends that teacheth.  If we spend before we gather, we shall

soon prove bankrupts.'† The longer we learn, the more we feel our-

selves to be learners; and the more ready we shall be to hear, that we

 

   * Ps, cxix.  9.  Over the gates of Plato's school, it was written:   Mhdeij agewmetrhtoj

eisitw.   (Literally--Let no one who is not a geometrician enter.) But very different is

the inscription over these doors of Solomon--Let the ignorant, simple, foolish, young enter.

CARTWRIGHT in loc.--LAVATER in c. iv. 20-22.

   † Bishop Hall.


                                              CHAP. I. 7.                                                 3

 

may increase in learning. (Chap. ix. 9; xviii. 15.) And at such a crisis

as this, both of the Church and of the world, how eagerly should we

improve every medium of instruction, by which we might become

"men of understanding, and attain wise counsels, to know what Israel

ought to do!" (1 Chron. xii. 32.) The wise man himself expounded

his words and dark sayings to the delight and instruction of his royal

scholar (1 Kings, x. 1-5); so to a teachable hearer "the deep things

of God" will be interpreted. (1 Cor. ii. 9, 10.) Hence the value of the

Minister of God; "an interpreter, one of a thousand" (Job, xxxiii. 23.

Comp. Acts, viii. 27-35); the divinely-appointed mean of bringing to

the perfection of knowledge. (Eph. iv. 11-15. 1 Thess. iii. 10.) Many

disorders and heresies might have been spared to the Church, if, instead

of indulging the perversity of an unsettled judgment, men had honoured

"the Priest, as the messenger of the Lord of Hosts," and in humble

simplicity had "sought the law at his mouth." (Mal. ii. 7. Comp. Heb.

xiii. 17, with 1 Cor. iv. 8; iii. 2-4.) Self-will may resist this sugges-

tion as Romish domination. But a humble subjection to the faithful

steward of the mysteries of God," coming to learn, not to teach; to have,

not the curiosity fed, but the conscience satisfied. This reverence of

God's ordinance will issue in the "good things of the heart established

with grace." (Heb: xiii. 9.)

 

7. The fear of the Lord is the beginning (principal part, marg.) of know-

                    ledge: but fools  despise wisdom and instruction.

 

     The preface has stated the object of this Book of Wisdom. The

book itself now opens with a noble sentence. 'There is not'--as Bishop

Patrick observes--'such a wise instruction to be found in all their

books (speaking of Heathen ethics), as the very first of all in Solomon's,

which he lays as the ground of all wisdom.'* The fear of the Lord is

the beginning of knowledge. So Job had pronounced before. (Job, xxviii.

28.) So had the wise man's father. (Ps. cxi. 10.) Such is the weight

of this saying, that Solomon again repeats it.†  Nay--after having

gone round the whole circuit; after having weighed exactly all the

sources of knowledge; his conclusion of the whole matter is this, that

the fear of God in its practical exercise "is the whole of man" (Eccles.

xii. 13. Comp. Job, xxviii. 12-14, with 28)--all his duty; all his

happiness; his first lesson and his last. Thus, when about to instruct

us from the mouth of God, he begins at the beginning, the principal part.

All heathen wisdom is but folly. Of all knowledge, the knowledge of

God is the principal. There is no true knowledge without godliness.

(Comp. Deut. iv. 6, 7.)

     But what is this fear of the Lord? It is that affectionate reverence,

 

    * Preface to his Paraphrase.

    † Chap. ix. 10 Comp. the fine description by the son of Sirach. Ecclus. i. 14-20, 27.


4                EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

by which the child of God bends himself humbly and carefully to his

Father's law. His wrath is so bitter, and his love so sweet; that hence

springs an earnest desire to please him, and--because of the danger of

coming short from his own weakness and temptations--a holy watch-

fulness and fear, "that he might not sin against him." (Heb. xii. 28, 29.)

This enters into every exercise of the mind, every object of life. (Chap.

xxiii. 17.) The oldest proficient in the Divine school seeks a more

complete moulding into its spirit. The godly parent trains up his

family under its influence. (Gen. xviii. 19. Eph. vi. 4.) The Christian

scholar honours it as the beginning, the head, of all his knowledge; at

once sanctifying its end, and preserving him from its most subtle

temptations.

     Why then do multitudes around us despise wisdom and instruction?

Because the beginning of wisdom--"the fear of God--is not before their

eyes." (Ps. xxxvi. 1.) They know not its value. They scorn its obliga-

tion. Wise they may be in their own sight. But surely God here

gives them their right name. For fools they must be, to despise such

a blessing (Jer. viii. 9);  to rush into wilful ruin (Verses 22, 24-32.

Comp. 1 Sam. ii. 25. 1 Kings, xii. 13. Jer. xxxvi. 22-32); to treasure

up work for despairing repentance. (Chap. v. 12, 13 j xxix. 1.) Good

Lord! May thy childlike fear be my wisdom, my security, my happiness!

 

8. My son, hear the instruction of thy father, and forsake not the law of thy

     mother; 9. For they shall be an ornament of grace unto thy head, and

     chains about thy neck.

     Let the young mark the fear of the Lord connected with reverence to

parents. Thus the opening of this book puts honour upon “the first com-

mandment with promise." (Eph. vi. 2. Comp. 1 Tim. v. 4.) God here,

speaking by the mouth of a parent or teacher,* blends paternal tender-

ness with his Divine authority—My son. The command supposes the

godly character of parents, and recognises the responsibility of both

parents.†  Children are rational creatures. Instruction, not blind sub-

mission, must be inculcated. Yet they are wayward. Instruction must

therefore be enforced with the authority of law. God puts his own

stamp upon parental discipline. Hear it--Forsake it not. Reverence

for his mother's law was the honourable mark of Timothy's profession.

(2 Tim. i. 5; iii. 14, 15.) Nor must this reverence be confined to the

years of restraint. The disciple of the Bible will own himself to be a

 

  ® Thus the prophets were called Fathers--2 Kings, ii. 12; xiii. 14. Our blessed Lord

used the same endearing address--John, xxi. 5. Comp. Matt. ix. 2, 22. Thus the Apo-

stles also acknowledged both their individual converts and collective Churches--l Tim. i. 2.

2 Tim. i. 2. Tit. i 4. 1 Cor. iv. 15; with 1 John. ii. 1; v. 21.

  † See Judg. xiii. 12. No ancient system, so fully as the Bible, recognises the Mother's

just and equal claims. Comp. vi. 20; xv. 20; xx. 20; xxiii. 22; xxx. 17. Lev. xix: 3.

Deut. xxi, 18-21. Cartwright observes, that the names of Mothers of good and bad kings

are mentioned in Kings and Chronicles, as partakers in their credit or reproach. See also

Ecclus. iii. 1-16.


                                  CHAP. I. 10-16.                                                  5

 

child in relative obligations, long after he has ceased to be a child in

years. (Jer. xxxv. 8-10, 18.) Neither age nor rank gives any claim for

exemption. Joseph--when ripe in years, the head of a family, and

the first Lord in Egypt--bowed before his father's feet. (Gen. xlvi. 29;

xlviii. 12.) Solomon, in the glory of his crown, forgot not the respect

justly due to his mother.*  Nor were the crown upon his head, and the

chain of gold about Joseph's neck (Comp. chap. iv. 9, with Gen. xli.

39, 42), so graceful as this ornament of filial humility. (1 Pet. v. 5.)

This indeed commands the praise of the world, and may sometimes be

a delusive, self-righteous dependence. But wherever it is grounded

upon right principle, it is the "putting on of the Lord Jesus Christ"

in his lovely example. (Rom. xiii. 14.) Though angels were subject

to him, yet was he "subject to his parents." (Luke, ii. 51, with Heb.

i. 6.) Yea, how did he honour his mother in his last dying command

to his disciple--"Behold thy mother!" (John, xix. 27.)

     The same reciprocal obligation binds the spiritual father and his

children. Authority softened by tenderness--instruction moulded in

parental endearment--will always command its measure of reverential

and affectionate attention. Such was the Apostolical Ministry to the

Churches of Philippi and Thessalonica. Humility, tenderness, mutual

communion and cneerful subjection, formed the harmony of Christian

love and happiness. (Philip. iv. 9-19. 1 Thess. ii. 7-13.)

 

10. My son, if sinners entice thee, consent thou not. 11. If they say, ‘Come

     with us, let us lay wait for blood; let us lurk privily for the innocent

     without cause; 12. Let us swallow them up alive as the grave; and

     whole as those who go down into the pit; 13. We shall find all pre-

     cious substance; we shall fill our houses with spoil:  14. Cast in thy

      lot among us; let us all have one purse:’  15. My son, walk not thou

     in the way with them; refrain thy foot from their path:  16.  For their

     feet run to evil and make haste to shed blood.

     Let the young hearken to the instruction, and law of the godly parent

and minister. Who that has the charge of youth does not mourn

over the baneful influence of evil companions? Would that the

Lord's Servants were as energetic in his work, as sinners are in further-

ing the ends of their master! Almost as soon as Satan became an

apostate, he became a tempter. And most successfully does he train

his servants in this work. (Chap. xvi. 29. Gen. xi. 4. Num. xxxi. 16.

Isa. lvi. 12.) If sinners entice thee--This is no uncertain contingency.

'My son'--said the wise son of Sirach--'if thou come to serve the Lord

prepare thy heart for temptation.' (Ecclus. ii. 1.) Yet we have one

rule against all manifold enticements (Chap. vii. 5-23. Comp. Deut.

 

® 1 Kings, ii. 19, 20. See also Queen Esther's respect for Mordecai, her reputed father--

ii. 20.


6                EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK: OF PROVERBS.

 

xiii.. 6-8.1 Chron. xxi. 1. 1 Kings, xiii. 15-19)--Consent thou not. Consent

constitutes the sin. Eve consented, before she plucked the fruit (Gen.

iii. 6); David, before he committed the act of sin. (2 Sam. xi. 2-4.

Comp. Josh. vii. 21.) Joseph resisted, and was saved. (Gen. xxxix. 8,

9.) Job was sorely tried; "yet in all this Job sinned not." (Job, i. 22;

ii. 10.) If the temptation prevail, charge it not on God; no--nor

on the devil. As the worst he can do, he can only tempt, he cannot

force us, to sin. When he has plied us with his utmost power, and

most subtle artifice, it is at the choice of our own will, whether we

yield or no. (See Jam. i. 13-15.) The habitual resistance of the will

clears us of responsibility. (Comp. Rom. vii. 14-17, 19, 20, 23.) The

consent, even if it be not carried out into the act, lays the responsi-

bility at our own door.

            The enticement here was to robbery and blood; covetousness leading

to murder. Most fiendish was the plot. The innocent was to be mur-

dered without cause (Gen. iv. 8. Ps. x. 8),  swallowed up alive and whole;

like Korah and his company, going down into the pit in their full strength.

(Num. xvi. 33.) The invitation at first was seemingly harmless--Only

come with us. Soon the demand rises--Cast in thy lot with us.  'But

we shall be discovered.' No--they reply--'we will do all so cleverly,

that there will be no more blood to be seen, than if the earth swallowed

them up; or they died a natural death, and were decently buried.’*

The spoil of precious, substance will be found, when our victim is destroyed.

(Comp. Matt. xxi. 38.)  Precious substance!  Why! This is as large a

promise, as that from the mouth of the Son of God. (Chap. viii. 21.)

But how can substance be found belonging to a world of shadows? (Ps.

xxxix. 6.) Much more, how can the fruit of robbery be precious, with

the curse of God? (Chap. xxi. 6. Ps. lxii. 9,10.)

            Not that this horrible plot is usually propounded at first. But step

by step, unless the Lord graciously restrains, it may come to this at last.

The cover and varnish are; here taken off, to show what sin is in its

nature, character, and certain end. What young man, but would shud-

der, and start away from the wickedness, if presented to his imagination

alone?  But many a deluded sinner is thus hurried on by the influence

of company to lengths of sin, that he had never contemplated.†  Other

enticements are prepared for the amiable and the uninitiated, just enter-

ing into life; less fearful and obvious, and therefore more really danger-

ous. Such "advantage does Satan get of us by our ignorance of his

devices!”  (2 Cor. ii. 11.)

            Is it safe then to trust in our good resolutions or principles? No

--Walk not in the way with them.  The invitation is --come with us.

The warning is--Refrain thy foot from their path. (Chap. iv. 14, 15.

 

   * Cartwright. But see Gen iv.10. 2 Kings, ix. 26.

    † Chartist Associations afford ample evidence of this awful delusion.


                       CHAP. I. 17-19.                                  7

Comp. Ps. i. 1.) Avoid parleying with them. No one becomes a pro-

fligate at once.*  But "evil communications corrupt good manners."

(1 Cor. xv. 33.) The tender conscience becomes less sensitive by every

compliance. Who can stop himself in the down-hill road?  One sin

prepares for another, pleads for it, nay, even makes it necessary for con-

cealment. David committed murder to hide his adultery, and for his

covering charged it upon the providence of God. (2 Sam. xi. 4, 17, 25.)

            Again then—we repeat with all earnestness--Refrain. The path

may be strewed with flowers; but it is a path of evil, perhaps of blood.†

Every step on Satan's ground deprives us of the security of the promises

of God. Often has ruin followed by not refraining from the first step.

(Comp. Mark, xiv. 54, 71.) The only safety is in flight. (Gen. xxxix.

10, 12.) Run then into "thy hiding-place, and behind thy shield," and

boldly bid thy tempter "depart from thee." (Ps. cxix. 114, 115. Comp.

Matt. iv. 10.) Awful is the thought! There is not a sin, that the

highest saint of God may not commit, if trusting in himself. "Thou

standest by faith. Be not high-minded, but fear." (Rom. xi. 20.)

 

17. (Surely in vain the net is spread in the sight of any bird.) 18. And

     they lay wait for their own blood; they lurk privily for their own lives.

     19. So are the ways of every one that is greedy of gain; which taketh

     away the life of the owners thereof.

            The sight of danger leads, when possible, to the avoiding of it.

Instinct directs the bird; reason the man. Yet such is the infatuation

of sin, that man in his boasted wisdom will not do, what the bird will

do by her native instinct. She shuns the net spread in her sight; man

rushes into it. These men thirsted for their neighbour's blood. But in

the end they laid wait for their own. They lurked privily for the innocent

without cause. But it proved to be lurking privily for their own lives.

(Verse 11 with 18. Comp. Job, xviii. 8. Hab. ii. 10.) Ahab and his

guilty partner, in plotting the destruction of their innocent victim, worked

out their own ruin. (1 Kings, xxi. 4-24.) Little did Haman, when

bent upon the murder of Mordecai (Esth. vii. 9); or Judas, when "seek-

ing opportunity to betray his Master" (Matt. xxvi. 14-16; xxvii. 3-5),

see, that they were "digging a pit for themselves." (Ps. vii. 15, 16; ix.

15, 16.) Yet the sinner, would he but use his own eyes, might see hell

at the end of his path. (Matt. vii. 13.) But sin is self-delusive, self-

destructive. So are the ways—such the end—of greedy, often mur-

derous, gain.‡  My son—once more hear thy Father's instruction, "Flee

these things." (Verse 8, with 1 Tim, vi. 9-11.)

 

   * ‘Nemo fit repente turpissimus.'—Classical adage.

   †  Verse 16. Isa. lix. 7. An apt illustration of the total depravity of man in the perverted

use of the members of his body.—Rom. iii.15.

   ‡ Comp. Job, xxxi. 39, 40. Jer. xxii. 17-19. Mic. iii. 10—12. ‘How great a cheat is

wickedness! It ensnareth the ensnarers, and murders the murderers; holds a dark lantern

in one hand, while with the other it discharges silently a pistol into our bosom.’—JERMIN

(Dr. M.), Comment on Proverbs, folio, 1638.

 


8             EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

20.      Wisdom (Wisdoms, Marg.) crieth without; she uttereth her voice in the

            streets: 21. She crieth in the chief place of concourse, in the openings of

            the gates; in the city she uttereth her words, saying, 22. How long, ye

            simple ones, will ye love simplicity? and the scorners delight in their

            scorning, and fools hate knowledge?  23. Turn you at my reproof: behold,  I

            will pour out my Spirit unto you; I will make known my words unto you.

            A Father's instruction has warned us against the enticement of Satan.

Wisdom--the Son of God himself, now invites us,--in all the plenitude

of his Divine authority and grace.*  Full of yearning love to sinners,

he crieth, not only in the temple, but without in the streets, in the chief

place of concourse, in the openings of the gates (Comp. chap. viii. 1-5. Matt.

xiii. 2. John, vii. 37-39; xviii. 20, 21. Ps. xl. 9, 10)—How long?

Simplicity is another term for folly. It is the temper of mind of those

that fear not God. They weigh not what they say or do. They live

as if there were neither God nor eternity. Their understandings are

blinded by the love of sin. In other cases man delights, not in his

ignorance, but in its removal. But these simple ones, ignorant of the value

and danger of their souls, love-simplicity. They consider all endeavours to

enlighten them, as breaking in upon an indulgent repose, and exciting

a groundless alarm. For while they live riotously, slothfully, or licen-

tiously, "they consider not in their hearts, that God remembereth all

their wickedness," and “that for all these things he will bring them into

judgment." (Hos. vii. 2. Eccles. xi. 9.) They are encouraged by a few

more furious than themselves--scorners--who have neither fear nor

shame, remorse of heart, nor decency of manner; who take an active

delight in their scorning: shooting their poisoned arrows against godli-

ness. (See Ps. lxiv. 3, 4.) All earnestness in religion is with them a

weakness unworthy of sensible men. The very Scripture terms are

revolting. A saint in Scripture means one sanctified by the Spirit of

God. With them it means a foolish person or a hypocrite. Their souls

are too high to stoop to the vulgar thoughts and habits of the gospel of

Christ. Thus do they prove themselves (both the indolent mass of the

simple ones, and their scornful leaders) to be fools, that hate knowledge.

 

* The cry, the chief place of concourse, the outpouring fountain of the Spirit, are identified

John, vii. 37-39. This very remonstrance, accompanied, as here, with a stirring invitation,

is also given in prophecy from the Saviour's own mouth. Isa. lv. 1-3. The terms of the pro-

mise forbid any other than a personal application. We can easily conceive a spirit to have

wisdom. But that an attribute of wisdom may dispense his Spirit or influence to others, is

beyond conception. Moreover, the Messiah assumed this personal title (Matt. xxiii. 34, with

Luke, xi. 49); and his Apostle expressly gives it to him (1 Cor. i. 24). The plural noun

joined with the singular verb (marg. comp. chap. ix. 1) seems to point him out as the

author and whole substance of all wisdom; ‘the very wisdom of the most wise God, "in

whom are hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge," and by whom rivers of wisdom

are poured into man by the word.' (Glass. Lib. iii. Tract. i. Can. 24.) The future tense in the

original may possibly give a prophetic character to the proclamation. Altogether, ‘this

interpretation gives to the exhortation of Wisdom a peculiar majesty and emphasis; setting

forth the eternal untreated Wisdom of the Father, using all means to draw men to God;

both by his works and by his word, inviting all men to know the truth.'--SCOTT. Bishop

Ball. Compare notes on v. 24, viii. 1.


                                                  CHAP. I. 20-23.                                       9

 

(Verses 7, 29, 30. Job, xxi. 14; xxiv. 13.) Aiming to keep out alarm,

with it they shut out all that would make them wise and happy. If

they hate the knowledge of their lost condition, they exclude all that

follows upon it, to make them "wise unto salvation." Of other know-

ledge they have often too much: mischievous, as keeping out better

things; giving them an evil eye, filling the soul with darkness; making

them "hate the light, so that they will not come to the light, lest their

deeds should be reproved." (John, iii. 19, 20.)

            Our Lord deals with this case on the perfect freeness of the gospel.

He would melt down the hardness by pleading remonstrance—How

long?  (Comp. Matt. xxiii. 37. Luke, xix. 41, 42.) He sweeps away all

the suggestions of unbelief, all the heartless excuses of indolence, by

inviting promises— Turn at my reproof. ‘I cannot turn myself.’ But

I will pour out my Spirit as a living fountain unto you. And—as the

consequence of this blessing---I will make known my words unto you.

The Bible, before a dark and sealed book, shall be made clear to you. ‘I

offer to you both my word outwardly to your ears, and a plentiful, measure

of my Spirit inwardly to your heart, to make that word effectual to

you.'*

            But we are often told, that all the illumination to be expected in our

day is the written word, interpreted, like every other book, by our

own reason; and that the Spirit's teaching is an enthusiastic delusion.

Now this may pass with the simple and the scorner— who know no-

thing of the blindness of their hearts, and of the power of natural

prejudice, which Divine grace alone can conquer. But the man that

knows his own darkness, and that nothing less than the power of God

can teach him--he will—he must--"cry for knowledge, and lift up

his voice for understanding" (Chap. ii. 3); not because the word is dark

(for it is light itself), but because he is dark, and therefore utterly

unable to receive its instructions. (1 Cor. ii. 9-14.) We do not want

a new revelation, we only want a Divine Teacher, we want the pouring

out of the Spirit to make known the word. The word is the same Divine

word as before. But it was not understood, discerned, not therefore

practically effectual. Now there is joy, a power and sweetness, of

which before we had no conception. It humbled us in the sense of our

ignorance, and makes us pant for more of its heavenly light and

influence.

            But the proud caviller complains of God, as if he reckoned with

"him for a blindness and inability, which he cannot help,--innate with-

out his consent. "Nay, but, 0 man, who art thou that repliest

against God?" (Rom. ix. 20.) He at once answers this Satanic plea,

by offering to you present, suitable, and sufficient relief. He meets

you on your way to condemnation with the promise of free and full

 

                                                      * Bishop Hall.


10         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

forgiveness. (Isa. i. 18; xliii. 23, 26.) Your plea will be of force, when

you have gone to him, and found him wanting. The power indeed is

of him. But he hath said —"Ask, and it shall be given you." (Matt.

vii. 7.) If your helplessness is a real grievance, bring it to him with

an honest desire to be rid of it. If you have never prayed, now is the

time for prayer. If you cannot pray, at least make the effort. Stretch

out the withered hand in the obedience of faith. (Mark, iii. 5.) If your

heart be hard, your convictions faint, your resolutions unsteady; all is

provided in the promise —I will pour out my Spirit upon you. Move

then, and act in dependence upon the Almighty Mover and Agent.

(Comp. Philip. ii. 12, 13.) Christian experience explains a mystery un-

fathomable to human reason. It harmonises man's energy and God's

grace. There is no straitening, no exclusion, with God. His promises

with one mouth assure a welcome to the willing heart. If it cannot

move, his Spirit can compel, point, draw it to the Saviour. Yea, in the

desire to turn, has not the Saviour already touched it, and drawn it to

himself?

            But remember — the call—How long? is to an instant conversion;

not to the consideration or resolution of the morrow, but to the de-

cision of to-day. Delay is mockery of God. "Quench not the

Spirit " now striving, but which "will not always strive with man."

(1 Thess. v. 19. Gen. vi. 3.) Add not thus to the mass of guilt ready

to sink you into perdition.

 

24.      Because I have called, and ye refused; I have stretched out my hand,

            and no man regarded:  25. But ye have set at nought all my counsel,

            and would none of my reproof:  26. I also will laugh at your calamity;

            I will mock, when your fear cometh;  27. When your fear cometh, as a

            desolation, and your destruction cometh as a whirlwind; when distress

            and anguish cometh upon you.  28. Then shall they call upon me, but

            I will not answer; they shall seek me early, but they shall not find me;

            29. For that they hated knowledge, and did not choose the fear of the

            Lord:  30. They would none of my counsel: they despised all my reproof.

            31. Therefore shall they eat of the fruit of their own way, and be filled

            with their own devices.

 

            The Saviour calls by his word, his providence, his ministers, con-

science. But ye refused. Not till his calls have been refused, does he

thunder forth his warnings. But such grace, so rich and free, yet

rejected--who can take the guage of this guilt? All creatures beside

are his servants. (Ps. cxix. 91.) Man alone resists his yoke. He

stretched out his hand (Isa. lxv. 2) to afford help; to confer a blessing;

to beseech its acceptance; yea, even to command attention to his call.

(See Acts, xxi. 40.) But no man regarded. The wisest counsel, the most

solemn reproof, all is set at nought. Thus does he "endure with much


                                            CHAP. I. 24-31.                                        11

 

long-suffering the vessels of wrath fitted to destruction." (Rom. ix. 22.)

But, O sinner! the day cometh, when he, who once yearned, and

wept, and prayed, and died, will have no pity (Ezek. v. 11, viii. 18,

with xxxiii. 11); when he shall be, as if he laughed and mocked at your

calamity (Comp. Judg. x. 14. Isa. i. 24); when he shall delight in the

exercise of his sovereign justice over you. (Comp. Deut. xxviii. 63.

Ezek. v. 13.) All will then be the desolation of realized fear (Chap. x.

24); sudden as a whirlwind;*  the distress and anguish of utter despair.

(Job, xv. 24. Dan. v. 5, 6, 30.)

            This is his solemn denunciation. And then, as if he could bear

these despisers no longer in his sight, he changes his address, and

pictures the scene itself in its strongest colours. They would not hear

when I called. Then shall they call upon me, and I will not answer. They

would not listen to my warnings; I will not listen to their cries. They

shall call upon me — yea, they shall seek me early; but they shall not find

me.†  Prayer, once omnipotent, will then be powerless. ‘The last

judgment before the very last of all is come; the very outward court

or portal of hell;‡  the misery of deserted souls. To be forsaken of

God at any time is awful woe (Hos. ix. 12); how much more in the

time of trouble! (1 Sam. xxviii. 15.) But to have his countenance not

only turned: from us, but turned against us, his eternal frown instead of

his smile — this will be hell instead of heaven.

            Does this unmeasured wrath seem inconsistent with a God of love?

"The Lord our God is a consuming fire." (Deut. iv. 24.) And think of

his knowledge, instead of being a delight, being hated; his fear not

chosen; none of his gracious counsel regarded; all his reproof despised.

Is it not just, that the sinner, thus obstinately bent upon the choice of

his own way, should not only gather, but eat the fruit of it? (Chap. xiii.

2); that it should enter into him, and become his substance; that he

should be filled with it, even to satiety;§ and that--not only daring

his road. (Num. xi. 4, 20. Ps. cvi. 13-15), but at the end, throughout

eternity? (Isa. iii. 11. Gal. vi. 7.) The moral elements of sin constitute

a hell of themselves, apart from the material fire. ‘The fruit of sin in

time, when arrived at full and finished maturity, is just the fruit of sin

 

   * Chap. x. 25. Ps. lviii. 9. Isa. xvii. 13; xl. 24. Eastern travellers furnish abun-

dant illustration of this striking figure. Paxton's Illustrations of Scripture Geography,

pp. 412-416. — (Oliphant.)

   † Matt. xxv. 6-12. Luke, xiii. 24-26.  Dr. Owen admirably remarks upon this remon-

strance as a proof of the Personality of Wisdom — ‘If these things express not a person,

and that a Divine person, the Scripture gives us no due apprehension of anything what-

ever. Who is it that pours out the Holy Spirit? Who is it that men sin against, in

refusing to be obedient? Who is it, that in their distress they call upon, and seek early in

their trouble? The whole Scriptures declare to whom, and to whom alone, these things

belong, and may be ascribed.' — Expos. of Hebrews. Prelim. Exercit. xxvii. 8-12. We

might add — Who besides could threaten rebels with ruin, and promise peace and security

to the obedient?

‡ Bishop Reynolds' Works, p. 97]..

   § Chap. xiv. 14. Comp. xxv. 16. — ‘Ad nauseam implebuntur, et comedent, ita ut consi-

liorum vehementer tandem, sed nimis sero, ipsos prnniteant.'--MICHAELIS.


12          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

through eternity. It is merely the sinner reaping what he has sown.

It makes no violent or desultory step from sin in time to hell in eter-

nity. The one emerges from the other, as does the fruit from the

flower. It is simply, that the sinner be filled with his own ways, and that

he eat the fruit of his own devices.'*

            This picture might seem to be the foreboding of despair. Yet, such

miracles of Divine grace have we seen; nay—such are we ourselves

--that we despair of none. We must not, however, soften down God's

own words by a misplaced presumptuous tenderness. Have we never

seen them verified in the dying sinner, who has neglected and scoffed

at the Gospel, and never sent up one cry for mercy on his soul? Is this

no warning of the danger of a protracted repentance; of the worthless-

ness of confessions extorted by terror; "howling on the bed; hot weep-

ing at the cross?" (Hos. vii. 14, with Luke, xviii. 13.) And does it not

solemnly tell us, that the day of grace has its limits (Gen. vi. 3. Heb.

iv. 7); that there is a knock, which will be the last knock; that a

sinner may be lost on this side of hell; intreated, pleaded with, wept

over—yet lost! lost even in the day of salvation? To "do despite to

the Spirit of grace" (mark the endearing name) —the Spirit of all kind-

ness, of alluring love; who pleads so tenderly with us—to wound him, as

it were, to the soul (Heb. x. 29, Gr.) — this is a provocation beyond words,

beyond thought. "There remaineth" only that, which might strike

into the very centre of the man, "the fearful looking for of judgment

and fiery indignation, which shall devour the adversaries. It is a fearful

thing to fall into the hands of the living God." (Ib. verses 26, 27, 31.)

 

32. For the turning away of the simple shall slay them, and the prosperity

            of fools shall destroy them, 33. But whoso hearkeneth unto me shall

            dwell safely, and shall be quiet from fear of evil.

            Again is the sinner's ruin laid at his own door. He turns away

from Wisdom's beseeching voice. He despises the only remedy. He

dies a suicide. It matters nothing to what we turn. If we turn away

from God, we turn from our true, our eternal interests. And, oh ! be it

remembered, that every inattention, every wilful neglect, is a step

towards this fearful apostasy. The word gradually becomes a burden,

then a scorn. The fool may seem to be spared from judgment. But

his prosperity is his destruction.†  To desire ease, therefore, is to embrace

a deadly enemy. Who that knows his own heart will not feel it a

matter, not of congratulation, but of deep and anxious prayer—'In all

time of our wealth--Good Lord, deliver us?’‡

 

   * Chalmers on Rom. vi. 21.

   † Job, xxi. 11-13. Ps. 1v. 19; lxxiii. 3-20. Jer xii. 1-3. Luke, vi. 24, 25; xii. 16-20;

xvi. 19-24. Jam. v. 1-5. Examples of Israel. —Deut. xxxii. 15-25. Jer. xxii. 20-22.

Hc's. xi ii. 6-9. Amos, vi. 1.-6. Babylon.— Isa. xivii. 7-9. Moab. —Jer. xlviii. 1-15. Sodom.

--Ezek. xvi. 49. Tyre.—Ezek. xxvii. 2, 25-27.                                        ‡ Litany.

 


                                        CHAP. II. 1-6.                                      13

 

            But to close with the sunshine of promise--Art thou, Reader,

like God's own child, hearkening unto him? Then art thou under his

cover, where no evil can reach thee; dwelling not only safely, but

assured of safety; quiet even from fear of evil (Chap. iii. 21—26. Job, v.

21. Ps. xci. 5; cxii. 6, 7. Isa. xxxii. 17—19); as Noah in the ark, in con-

scious security, while the world were perishing around him (Gen. vii.

11-16); as David, fearless in imminent danger, because realizing a

refuge in God. (Ps. iii. Comp. 1 Sam. xxx. 6.) Yes — even the coming

day of distress and anguish brings with it no fear of evil. (Contrasting

verses 26, 27. Luke, xxi. 26. Rev. vi. 16-18.) "The day will burn like

an oven." Thou shalt behold the world on fire, and feel thou hast lost,

thou canst lose, nothing. The "day of darkness and gloominess" will

be to thee a day of unclouded sunshine, the entrance into everlasting

joy. (Mal. iv. 1, 2. Luke, xxi. 28. 2 Pet. iii. 10-13.)

 

                                             CHAPTER II.

1. My son, if thou wilt receive my words, and hide my commandments with

            thee; 2. So that thou incline thine ear unto wisdom, and apply thine,

            heart to understanding: 3. Yea, if thou criest after knowledge, and

            liftest up thy voice for understanding; 4. If thou seekest her as silver,

            and searchest for her as for hid treasures; 5. Then shalt thou under-

            stand the fear of the Lord, and find the knowledge of God. 6. For the

            Lord giveth wisdom a out of his mouth cometh knowledge and under-

            standing.

Wisdom, having solemnly warned rebellious scorners, now instructs her

dutiful children. The dark question long before asked—"Where shall

wisdom be found?" (Job, xxviii. 12, 20, 21) —is now answered. It is

here set before us, as the fear and knowledge of God (Verse 6); a prin-

ciple of practical godliness (Verses 7-9); a preservation from besetting

temptations (Verses 10-19); and a guide into the right and safe path.

(Verse 20.) Hence follow the security of its scholars (Verse 21), and

the certain ruin of its ungodly despisers. (Verse 22.)

            The rules for its attainment are such as the simplest comprehen-

sion can apply. Carefully pondered, and diligently improved, they will

furnish a key for the understanding of the whole word of God. Let

us examine them more distinctly.

            Receive my words —Let them be "the seed cast into the ground of

an honest and good heart" (Luke, viii. 15)—a heart prepared of God.

(Chap. xvi. 1.) Read the book of God as one who "sat at the feet of

Jesus, and heard his word." (Luke, x. 39.) Like the Bereans, "receive

it with all readiness" (Acts, xvii. 11); like the Thessalonians, with

reverential faith, acknowledging its supreme authority (1 Thess. ii. 13).

 


14           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Hide my commandments with thee. Carry them about with thee as thy

choicest treasure for greater security (Col. iii. 16, with Matt. xiii. 44);

as thy furniture always at hand for present use. (Chap. iv. 20, 21; vii. 3.

Job, xxii. 22.) Let the heart be the hiding-place for the treasure.

(Luke, ii. 19, 51. Ps. cxix. 11.) Satan can never snatch it thence.

            But there must be an active, practical habit of attention.* Yet to

incline the ear, and apply the heart —"who is sufficient for these things?"

Oh! my God! let it be thine own work on me—in me. Thou alone

canst do it.†  Let it be with me, as with thy Beloved Son—"Waken

my ear morning by morning to hear as the learned." (Isa. L. 4.) So let

me under thy grace "incline mine ear, and hear, that my soul may

live." (Ibid. lv. 3.)

            Without this spirit of prayer--there may be attention and earnest-

ness ; yet not one spiritual impression upon the conscience; not one

ray of Divine light in the soul. Earthly wisdom is gained by study;

heavenly wisdom by prayer. Study may form a Biblical scholar;

prayer puts the heart under a heavenly tutorage, and therefore forms

the wise and spiritual Christian. The word first comes into the ears;

then it enters into the heart; there it is safely hid; thence rises the cry

the lifting up of the voice. Thus, "the entrance of thy word giveth

light; it giveth understanding to the simple." (Ps. cxix. 130.) God

keeps the key of the treasure-house in his own hand. "For this he

will be enquired of" (Ezek. xxxvi. 37) to open it unto thee. We look

for no other inspiration than Divine grace to make his word clear and

impressive. Every verse read and meditated on furnishes material for

prayer. Every text prayed over opens a mine of "unsearchable riches,"

with a light from above, more clear and full than the most intelligent

exposition. David (Ps. cxix. 18, &c.) and his wise son (1 Kings, iii.

9-12) sought this learning upon their knees; and the most matured

Christian will continue to the end to lift up his voice for a more enlarged

knowledge of God. (Eph. i. 17, 18.)

            But prayer must not stand in the stead of diligence. Let it rather

give energy to it.‡  The miner's indefatigable pains ; his invincible

 

    * Chap. xxii. 17; xxiii. 12. The Emperor Constantine stood hours to hear the word;

replying, when asked to sit, ‘that he thought it wicked to give negligent ears, when the

truth handled was spoken of God.'--(Euseb. de Vita Constant. lib. iv.) Foxe records of

Edward VI. ‘That never was he present at any sermon commonly, but would excerp

them, or note them with his own hand.'—Vol. v. 700. Yet Bishop Hooper thought, that

his royal master's love for the preached word needed to be quickened. — Sermon 7th on Jonas.

    † Chap. xx. 12. "Thou giving me the ear, I have heard, as thou wouldest thy word to

be heard."—JEROME on Hab. iii. 2.

    ‡ On one side is Luther's inestimable axiom — ‘Bene orasse est bene studuisse.' On

the other side is the balance of the old proverb—'Ora et labora.' Comp. Matt. xi. 12. ‘We

are all,' says the heavenly Leighton, ‘too little in the humble seeking and begging this

Divine knowledge; and that is the cause why we are so shallow and small proficients. "If

thou cry, and lift up thy voice for understanding, search for it as for hid treasures;" sit

down upon thy knees, and dig for it. That is the best posture, to fall right upon the

golden vein, and go deepest to know the mind of God, in searching the Scriptures, to be


                                                     CHAP. II. 1-6.                                15

 

resolution; his untiring perseverance; seeking, yea, searching for hid

treasures,—such must be our searching into the sacred storehouse.*

To read, instead of "searching the Scriptures," is only to skim the

surface, and gather up a few superficial notions.† The rule of success

is--Dig up and down the field; and if the search be discouraging, dig

again. The patient industry of perusal and re-perusal will open the

embosomed treasure. "Surely there is a vein for the silver." (Job,

xxviii. 1.) Yet what miner would be content with the first ore? Would

he not search deeper and deeper, until he has possessed himself of the

whole; not satisfied with taking away much, but determined to leave

nothing? Thus let us daily explore "the length, and the breadth, and

the depth" of our boundless stores, until we be "filled with all the

fulness of God." (Eph. iii. 18, 19.)

            This habit of living in the element of Scripture is invaluable. To

be filled from this Divine treasury; to have large portions of the word

daily passing through the mind; gives us a firmer grasp, and a more

suitable and diversified application of it. Yet this profit can only be

fully reaped in retirement. We may read the Scriptures in company.

But to search them, we must be alone with God. Here we learn to

apply ourselves wholly to the word, and the word wholly to us. This

enriching study gives a purer vein of sound judgment. The mere

reader often scarcely knows where to begin, and he performs the routine

without any definite object. His knowledge therefore must be scanty

and ineffective.  Nor is the neglect of this habit less hurtful to the

Church. All fundamental errors and heresies in the Church may be

traced to this source —"Ye do err, not knowing the Scriptures." (Matt.

xxii. 29.) They are mostly based on partial or disjointed statements of

truth. Truth separated from truth becomes error. But the mind

prayerfully occupied in the search of Divine truth—crying and lifting up

the voice--will never fail to discern the two great principles of godli-

 

directed and regulated in his ways; to be made skilful in ways of honouring him, and doing him

service. This neither man nor angels can teach him, but God alone.'—Sermon on Ps. cvii. 43.

   * ‘Viscera terae extrahimus, ut digito gestiatur gemma, quam petimus. Quot manus

afferuntur, ut unus niteat articulus! Simili studio, industria, constantia, Sapientiae in-

quisitioni incumbendum erat.'—Pram. lib. ii. c. 65.

   † Comp. John, v. 39. Gr.— a similar allusion to the miner's toil. ‘I can speak it by

experience'—said a wise man—' that there is little good to be gotten by reading the Bible

cursorily and carelessly. But do it daily and diligently, with attention and affection; and

you shall find such efficacy, as is to be found in no other book that can be named.'

ERASMUS'S Preface to Luke. Peter Martyr gives the same testimony, Epist. Dedic. to Com-

ment. on .Rom. The following relic of our renowned Elizabeth will be read both with

interest and profit. It was written on a blank leaf of a black-letter edition of St. Paul's

Epistles, which she used during her lonely imprisonment at Woodstock. The volume itself,

curiously embroidered by her own hand, is preserved in the Bodleian:—‘August. I walk

many times into the pleasant fields of the Holy Scriptures, where I pluck up the goodli-

some herbs of sentences by pruning, eat them by reading, chew them by musing, and lay

them up at length in the high seat of memorie, by gathering them together, that so, having

tasted their sweetness, I may the less perceive the bitterness of this miserable life.'—MISS

STRICKLAND'S Queens of England, vi. 113.


16            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

ness— The fear and knowledge of God. There is no peradventure nor

disappointment in this search— Then shalt thou understand. The Lord

giveth wisdom; it cometh out of his mouth. None shall search in vain.

(Job, xxxii. 8. Isa. xlviii. 17; liv. 13. Jam. i. 5, 17. Comp. Gen. xli.

38, 39. Exod. iv. 12. Dan. i. 17.) Never has apostasy from the faith

been connected with a prayerful and diligent study of the word of God.

 

7. He layeth up sound wisdom for the righteous: he is a buckler to them

            that walk uprightly. 8. He keepeth the paths of judgment, and pre-

            serveth the way of his saints. 9. Then shalt thou understand righteous-

            ness, and judgment, and equity; yea every good path.

            Vanity (Eccles. i. 18) and foolishness (1 Cor. iii. 19) are the stamp

on the wisdom of this world. Here is sound wisdom. It looks at things

not in their notions, but in their proper substance. It is sound, because

it is practical. It is indeed a hid treasure (Verse 4); so safe, that no

spoiler can reach it; yet so free, that every sinner may have access to

it. Yes; in the Son of God himself "are hid all the treasures of wisdom

and knowledge." All these treasures in him are laid up for the righteous

--made over to them. (Col. ii. 3. 1 Cor. i. 30.) Oh let us draw upon

this infinite treasure daily, hourly, for light to direct an upright walk.

‘To those that are true and upright in heart, he will in his own good

time reveal true: and saving knowledge, and that sound spiritual wisdom,

which shall make them eternally happy.'*  Our faithful God is a buckler

to them that walk uprightly. (Chap. xxx. 5. Ps. lxxxiv. 11.) His wisdom

covers is from that subtle sophistry, which would spoil us of our

treasure. (Chap. xxii. 12.) The way of the saints is indeed fraught

with danger; beset with temptation: yet is it safe (Chap. iv. 11; viii.

20. Deut. xxxiii. 26-29. 1 Sam. ii. 9. Ps. xxxvii. 23, 24 lvi. 9)--

kept and preserved by Almighty power. even on the very edge of the

enemy's ground. (1 Sam. xxv. 39; xxvii. 1, with xxix. 2 Cor. xii. 7-9.)

            Such also is the completeness of this godly privilege, that not only

does it enlarge our knowledge of God (Verse 5), but it brings us to a

full understanding of every practical obligation. Indeed that only is

sound wisdom, that guides our feet into every, good path; that "makes

the man of God perfect, throughly furnished unto all good works."

(2 Tim. iii. 15-17.) The gracious wisdom that saves the soul, sanctifies

the heart and life. (Tit. ii. 11, 12.)

 

10. When wisdom entereth into thine heart, and knowledge is pleasant unto

            thy soul; 11. Discretion shall preserve thee, understanding shall keep

            thee.

            We have seen the good that wisdom brings to us. (Verse 5.) Now

see the evil, from which it preserves us. But observe its place —in the

 

                                             * Bishop Hall.

 


                                           CHAP. II. 12-45.                                  17

 

heart. Here only has it any light, life, or power. (Chap. iv. 23.) Clear

knowledge floating in the head is deep ignorance. While it only

glitters in the understanding, it is dry, speculative, and barren. When

it entereth into the heart, light beams out, all the affections are engaged;

and how pleasant is it to the soul! (Chap. xxiv. 13, 14. Job, xxiii. 12.

Ps. cxix. 103. Jer. xv. 16.) Religion now is no lifeless notion. It is

handled, tasted, enjoyed. It gives a discreet and understanding direction

to the whole conduct. It becomes not only an external rule, but a

preserving, keeping principle (Chap. iv. 6; vi. 22-24. Ps. xvii. 4; cxix.

9-11, 104); like the military guard for the safety of the royal person.

(1 Sam. xxvi. 16. 2 Kings, xi. 11.) Before, it was the object of our

search. Now, having found it, it is our pleasure. Until it is so, it can

have no practical influence. It is "the man, whose delight is in the law

of the Lord," who is preserved from "walking in the counsel of the

ungodly." (Ps. i. 1, 2; comp. ch. vii. 4, 5.) Education, conviction, high

moral principle, are at best only partially operative. The reclaimed

drunkard may be true to his Temperance-pledge; but, if the "root of

bitterness" be untouched, he may be a Socialist or a Chartist, or revel

in some other equally ruinous course. External wickedness may be

exchanged for decent formality. Vagrant affections may be turned

from some object of vanity; yet not fixed upon the Divine centre of

attraction. The mind may be disciplined from utter unprofitableness,

only to indulge in the idolatry of talent, or the fascinations of poisoned

literature. The folly of the pride of life may be resisted; yet pride in

other of its multiform fruits tenderly cherished. In all, these cases, the

principle is unsubdued. The forsaken sin only makes way for some

more plausible, but not less deadly passion. The heart, cast into the

mould of the Gospel, is the only cover from those snares within and

without (Rom. vi. 17, 18. 2 Cor. iii. 18), which so imperceptibly, yet

so fatally, estrange us from God. Never, till the vital principle is

implanted, is their mischief discerned. Never, till then, does the heart

find its proper object, its true resting-place.

 

12. To deliver thee from the way of the evil man, from the man that speaketh

            froward things; 13. Who leave the paths of uprightness, to walk in the

            ways of darkness; 14. Who rejoice to do evil, and delight in the fro-

            wardness of the wicked; 15. Whose ways are crooked, and they froward

            in their paths.

            The various snares for the young, about to be detailed, furnish a

fearful picture of the temptations to which our children are exposed.

Will it not awaken our earnest cries for their deep and solid conversion

to God; that wisdom may indeed enter into their hearts, and its pleasures

be really enjoyed; that they may have a religious taste, as well as a

religious education; that they may know the Gospel, not only in the

 


18           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

conviction of their conscience, or the excitement of their feelings, but

in the entire renewal of their hearts before God? This, and nothing

less, will preserve them from the snare of their cruel foe. Every town

and village swarms with his emissaries; first, initiated themselves into

the mysteries of his art; then, going forth, laborious and practised

teachers, well instructed for his murderous work. Against one of these

enticements we have been before warned. (Chap. i. 10-13.) Another

is here given: The tempter bears his character upon his lips; the evil

man that speaketh proud things against God and his law; like a poisonous

fountain sending up poisoned waters. Oh! how quickly does the con-

tamination spread! He does not sin in ignorance. He and his com-

panions* have probably been trained in the paths of uprightness. Having

come in contact with the pestilential breath, of the ungodly, they have

caught the contagion, and eagerly spread it. Readily do they leave the

paths, which they never heartily loved, to walk in the ways of darkness,

which their hearts do love. (Chap. iv. 16, 17. Job, xiv. 13-16. John,

iii. 19, 20.) Having left the hated paths, they become therefore fore-

most in iniquity. Poisoned themselves, they would poison all around

them. They rejoice, like Satan himself, to do evil †  to draw their

fellow-sinners into the net; and they delight in those, who are most

froward in their wickedness.‡  Thus they plunge deeper and deeper

into sin, till they lose all traces of the straight way, and all their ways

become crooked, leading with sure steps to eternal ruin. Is not this the

picture, drawn to the very life, of many a Sunday-scholar, or a child of

godly parents, the subject of deep and tender care; "hardened through

the deceitfulness of sin" (Heb. iii. 13), the neglect of faithful warning,

the stifling of solemn conviction? How do they deserve to be left of

God, who have first left him with such fearful aggravation! Young

man! especially shun companions, who are sinning against better

knowledge and instruction. They are hardened in devotedness to

their master's work. Oh! if misguided sinners could but see sin in its

horrid deformity and certain end, would not "their hearts meditate

terror?"  But the crookedness of their ways hides the end from view.

Satan presents the bait, palliates the sin, covers the enormity, closes

the eyes, and conceals the certain end of all—Hell. (Ps. cxxv. 5.

Rom. vi. 21; with 2 Cor. iv. 3, 4.) The froward in their paths cannot

—will not—turn back.

 

16. To deliver thee from the strange woman, from the stranger, which flat-

            tereth with her lips: 17. Which forsaketh the guide of her youth, and

            forgetteth the covenant of her God. 18. For her house inclineth unto

 

   * The change to the plural number (the man—who leave) implies confederacy.

   † Comp. Isa. iii. 9 ; Jer xi. 15. God's heavy judgment. 2 Thess. ii. 12.

   ‡ The sin of the heathen, Rom. i. 32.


                                    CHAP. II. 16-22.                                               19

 

            death, and her paths unto the dead. 19. None that go unto her return

            again: neither take they hold of the paths of life.

            Another snare of the fowler is here graphically pourtrayed.*  Wisdom

hidden in the heart is, as before, the most effectual deliverance; restraining

even the eye from the hurtful object.†  Ought not the strange woman,

even if she be born and baptized in a Christian land, to be counted as

a stranger and foreigner among us? One who had forsaken the guide

of her youth,§ and forgotten the solemn bond of the covenant of her God||

—what else could she be to the unwary but a vile flatterer with her

lips? (Chap. v. 3; vii. 5, 21.) The slave of unlawful desire; having

no guide but her own will; no pleasure but sensual gratification;

quickly she becomes her own and her victim's murderer. Her house

is the land of death. (Chap. v. 5.) Eternal death is her doom. (Gal. v.

19-21. Eph. v. 5. Rev. xxi. 8 ; xxii. 15.) Her paths incline to the dead,

with the awful monuments of Divine vengeance in olden time.¶  Some

instances indeed of deliverance are given; not so much examples, as

special miracles, of grace, to show how far the "arm of the Lord" can

reach.**  But so rare are they, that it is as if scarcely none†† that go unto

her return again. And what madness is it to rush into the snare upon

so faint and glimmering hope of escape! (Eccles. vii. 26.) The spell of

lust palsies the grasp, by which its victim might have taken hold of the

paths of life for deliverance. He that is "saved, is so as by fire" (1 Cor.

iii. 15), the wonder of heaven and earth. "Is not this a brand plucked

out of the fire?" (Zech. iii. 2.)

20. That thou mayest walk in the way of good men, and keep the path of

            the righteous: 21. For the upright shall dwell in the land, and the per-

            fect shall remain in it; 22. But the wicked shall be cut of from the

            earth, and the transgressors shall be rooted out of it.

            Here is the consummating blessing of engrafted wisdom. Not only

 

* Chap. v. 3-20; vi. 24; vii. 5-23; xxii. 14; xxiii. 27. Some commentators give an

allegorical interpretation to these pictures, as descriptive of idolatry or false doctrine.

'But surely,' as Holden well observes, 'if there be any dependence to be placed upon the

language of the sacred writer, any propriety in his expressions, it is to be understood in its

literal sense, as a warning against the seduction of harlots. The spirit of allegorical inter-

pretation may make the Scriptures speak whatever is prompted by the wildest fancy, or

the deepest fanaticism.'—HOLDEN in loco. Comp. SCOTT in loco.

   † Comp. Job, xxxi. 1, and our Lord's rule :—Matt. v. 28.

   ‡ The strange woman—a stranger. Two different words in the Hebrew, the latter ap-

pearing to mark a foreigner. Comp. Deut. xxiii. 17; Lev. xix. 29. It is, however, but too

evident that this abandoned class was not confined to foreigners. Comp. Gen. xxxviii.

15, 16; Judg. xi. 1; 1 Kings, iii. 18.

   § Though an harlot, she might be (Chap. vii. 5, 10, 19) or might have been (John, iv.

17, 18) a married woman.

   || Mal. ii. 14-16. Comp. Ezra, xvi. 59, 60. Does not this sacred view of the marriage

ordinance rebuke the legislative sanction which has now degraded it to a mere civil contract?

   ¶ 'The dead.'— SCOTT and Bishop PATRICK in loco. Comp. chap. ix. 18. Heb. MEDE'S

Learned Discourse, vii.

   ** Solomon's own case. Comp. Luke, vii. 37-50; 1 Cor. vi. 9-11.

   †† None in comparison, very few. Comp. Isa. lix. 4; lxiv. 7.

 

20            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

does it deliver from evil men; but it guides us into the way of good men.

Clad with this Divine armour, thou shalt have courage, like Joseph, to

turn thy face from the enchantment of Sin (Gen.. xxxix. 9, 10), and keep

the paths of the righteous, rugged indeed, yet the only paths of rest and

security. (Cant. i. 7, 8. Jer. vi. 16.) Thus shalt thou dwell and remain

in the land, as its original inheritor (Ps. xxxvii. 9, 11, 22, 29, 34. Matt.

v. 5), having the best portion in earth, and ap infinitely better portion

in heaven ; while the wicked and transgressors, though they may "enjoy

the pleasures of sin for a season," shall be ultimately cut of rooted out,

and "driven away " into everlasting ruin. (Chap. x. 30; xiv. 32; xv. 25.

Ps. lii. 5–7 ; xcii. 7. Matt, iii. 10.)

 

            And now, what serious reader of this chapter can fail to estimate

above all price the privilege of being early enlisted under the banner

of the cross; early taught in the ways, and disciplined in the school, of

the Bible; and early led to hide that blessed book in the heart, as the

rule of life, the principle of holiness, the guide to heaven!

            Parents, sponsors, teachers of youth; ponder your deep respon-

sibility with unceasing prayer for special grace and wisdom. Beware

of glossing over sins with amiable or palliating terms. Let young

people be always led to look upon vicious; habits with horror, as the

most appalling evil. Discipline their vehemence of feeling, and all ill-

regulated excitement. Keep out of sight, as far as may be, books cal-

culated to inflame the imagination. To give an impulse to the glowing

passion may stimulate the rising corruption to the most malignant

fruitfulness. Oh! what wisdom is needed to guide, to repress, to bring

forth, develope safely, and to improve fully, the mind, energies, and sen-

sibilities of youth!

            Young man! beware! Do not flatter thyself for a moment, that

God will ever wink at your sinful passions; that he will allow for them,

as slips and foibles of youth. They are the "cords of your own sins,"

which, if the power of God's grace break them not in time, will "hold"

you for eternity. (Chap. v. 22.) Shun then the society of sin, as the

infection of the plague. Keep thy distance from it, as from the pit of

destruction. Store thy mind with the preservative of heavenly wisdom.

Cultivate the taste for purer pleasures. Listen to the fatherly, pleading

remonstrance, inviting thee to thy rest---"'Wilt thou not from this

time cry unto me, ‘My Father! thou art the guide of my youth?’"

(Jer. iii. 4.)


                                        CHAP. III. 1, 2.                                               21

 

                                         CHAPTER III.

 

1. My son, forget not my law; but let thine heart keep my commandments;

            2. For length of days, long life, and peace shall they add to thee.

THIS is not the stern language of command. It is our Father's voice

in all the endearing persuasiveness of promise—My son—He had

before instructed us to seek and search after wisdom, and set out before

us its invaluable blessings. Now he calls us to bring it into practical

exercise--Forget not my law, The wilful forgetfulness of the heart

(Chap. ii. 17. Ps. ix. 17; x. 4; comp. chap. iv. 5; Deut. iv. 23; Ps.

cxix. 93, 176), not the infirmity of the memory (for which a special,

though we fear too much neglected, help, is provided) (John, xiv. 26)

is here implied. Let thine heart, like the ark of the testimony, be the

keeping place of my commandments. (Chap. iv. 4. Deut. xi. 18. Isa. li. 7;

with Ezek. xi. 20. Heb. ix. 4.) And is not this the child's desire---"0

that my ways were directed to keep thy statutes.?"  (Ps. cxix. 6; comp.

verses 69, 129), while his conscious helplessness takes hold of the cove-

nant promise—"I will put my law in their inward parts, and write it

in their hearts." (Jer. xxxi. 33.)

            Indeed no laws, but God's, bind the heart. All acceptable obedience

begins here. The heart is the first thing that wanders from God: the

first also that returns. Here is the vital principle, (Chap. iv. 23. Rom.

vi. 17.) All religion without it is a mere name; and, however the

professor may practise a thousand arts to put life into it, all must fail,

" The root being as rottenness, the blossom goes up as the dust."

(Isa. v. 24.) If every moment were filled up with deeds of benevolence,

or external piety; yet, except the heart was quickened to keep the com-

mandments, the voice of rebuke would be heard—"Who hath required

this at your hand?" (Isa. i. 11, 12.)  "The inner man's delight"

(Rom. vii. 22) stamps the excellency upon the service. And this plea-

sure and perseverance in duty flow from a gracious change upon the

heart. (See Ezek. xi. 19; xxxvi. 26, 27.)

            Herein also lies our interest, not less than our obligation. The

reward of this hearty obedience (need we add--a reward of grace?) is

a long and happy life--the highest earthly good. (Ps. xxxiv. 12;

comp. verse 16; iv. 10; ix. 11; x. 27; Job, x. 12.) The wicked indeed

live long, and the godly often "live out only half their days." The

wicked die in outward comfort; the righteous in outward trouble.

(Eccles. ix. 2.) But length of days is the promise to the righteous;

whether for earth or for heaven, as their Father deems fittest for them.

In itself the promise, as regards this life, has no charm. To the un-


22        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

godly it is a curse (Gen. iv. 11–15. Isa. lxv. 20); to the people of God

a trial of faith and patience (Gen. xxvii. 46; xlvii. 9. 1 Kings, xix. 4.

Job, vii. 16. Philip. i. 23, 24. Rev. xxii. 20); to all a weariness. (Chap.

xv. 15. Ps. xc. 10. Eccles. xii. 1.) But peace added forms the sunshine

of the toilsome way (Ps. cxix. 165. Isa. xxxii. 17; xlviii. 17, 18):

peace with God through the blood of sprinkling" (Rom. v. 1. Eph. ii.

13, 14. Col. i. 20); eternal peace in his home and in his bosom (Ps.

xxxvii. 37. Isa. lvii. 2); where all the fightings of a rebellious flesh,

all the counter-strivings of a perverse and ungovernable will, shall have

ceased for ever. "Blessed are they that do his commandments, that they

might have right to the tree of life, and may enter in through the gate

into the city." (Rev. xxii. 14.)

 

3. Let not mercy and truth forsake thee; bind them about thy neck; write

            them upon the table of thine heart; 4. So shalt thou find favour and

            good understanding (marg., success,) in the sight of God and man.

            Mercy and truth are the glorious perfections of God; always in com-

bined exercise (Gen. xxxii. 10. Ps. xxv. 10; lxxxv.10; lxxxix.14; c. 5;

cxvii. 2. Mic. vii. 18–20) for his people's good. While we rest upon

them for salvation, let us copy them in our profession. Are not his

children new-created-in his image? Let then our .Father's image be

manifested in us, "as his dear children." (Eph. iv. 24; v. 1, 2, 8.) Let

these graces be, as with God, in combination. ‘The want of one

buries the commendation of the other. Such a one is a merciful man to

the poor; but there is no truth in him. Such a one is very just in his

dealings, but as hard as flint.’*  "Put on, as the elect of God, bowels

of mercy. But lie not one to another. Speak every man truth with

his neighbour." (Col. iii. 12, with 9. Eph. iv. 25.) Indeed, ‘as a rich

sparkling diamond added both value and lustre to a golden ring ; so do

these virtues of justice and mercy, well attempered, bring a rich addi-

tion of glory to the crowns of the greatest monarchs.'†

            But these virtues must not be in temporary or occasional exercise.

Let them not forsake thee. Bind them as jewels about thy neck. (Chap.

vi. 21 ; vii. 3. Deut. vi. 8.) Let them be “written, not in tables of

stone, but in fleshly tables of the heart.” (Chap. vii. 3. 2 Cor. iii. 3.)

God indeed is not thy debtor; yet none shall serve him for nought.

The man who shows mercy to his neighbour shall find it with him.

(Ps. xviii. 25. Matt. v. 7.)  "They that deal truly are his delight."

(Chap. xii. 22.) So shalt thou find favour and good understanding (Ps.

cxi. 10)--(success) (Josh. i. 7, 8. M. R.) —both in his sight, and in

the sight of man. Witness Joseph in Egypt (Gen. xxxix. 2–4, 21–23;

 

   * F. TAYLOR’S Comment on Chap. i.-ix.; 4to. 1655-1657.

   † Bishop SANDERSON's Sermon on Chap. xxiv. 10-12.


                                             CHAP. III. 5, 6.                                        23

 

xli. 37–43; xlv.16); David in the family of Saul (1 Sam. xviii. 5,14–16);

the servants of God in the eastern courts;* the early Christians with

the people around them. (Acts, ii. 44-47.) What is more lovely than

thus to live down reproach by consistent godliness? What more

acceptable to God, or more edifying to the Church? (Rom. xiv. 16–19.)

The Scripture connects the favour of God with the favour of men, as if

the one was often the fruit of the other. (Comp. chap. xvi. 7.) Such

was the record of the holy child. (Luke, ii. 52.) The highest crown of

a youthful profession is conformity to this Divine pattern. (Comp.

1 Sam. ii. 26.)

 

5. Trust in the Lord with all thine heart, and lean not to thine own under-

            standing. 6. In all thy ways acknowledge him, and he shall direct thy

            paths.

            This is the polar-star of a child of God —faith in his Father's pro-

vidence, promises, and grace. The unmeaning expression of trust on

the lips of the ignorant and ungodly is a fearful delusion. What

ground of confidence can there be when there is, everything to fear?

Can the sinner's God--a just, avenging God—be an object of trust,

What owe we to that precious atonement, which has opened. up our

way to a reconciled God (Rom. v. 11), and assured our-confidence in

him as our Friend and Counsellor!  Nor is this the cold assent of the

enlightened judgment. It is the trust of the heart, of all the heart. It

is a child-like, unwavering (Ps. Ixxviii. 2 Chron. xiv. 11. Contrast

Jer. i. 6–8) confidence in our Father's well-proved wisdom, faithfulness,

and love. Any limit to this confidence is a heinous provocation. (Ps.

lxxviii. 18-21.) He is truth itself. Therefore he would have us take

him at his word, and prove his word to the utmost extent of his power,

            But our trust must not only be entire: it must be exclusive. No

other confidence, no confidence in the flesh, can consist with it. (Comp.

Philip. iii. 3.) Man with all his pride feels that he wants something to

lean to. As a fallen being, he naturally leans to himself, to his own

foolish notions and false fancies. Human power is his idol. His

understanding is his God. Many would rather be convicted of want of

principle than want of talent. Many bring God's truth to their own

bar, and cavil at it, as an excuse for rejecting it. In these and other

ways, man "trusteth to himself, and his heart departeth from the Lord."

(Jer. xvii. 5.) This is the history of the fall; they history of man from

the fall; the dominant sin of every unhumbled heart; the lamented

and resisted sin of every child of God. Need we advert to it as the sin

of youth? How rare is the sight of the "younger submitting unto the

elder!" (1 Pet. v. 5.) If advice is asked, is it not with the hope of

 

   * Dan. i. 8, 9; iv. 8, 9; v. 11; vi. 1-3, 27, 28. —His three Companions, iii. 30; Ezra,

vii. 9-12. Neh. ii. 1-6. Mordecai, Esth. x. 3,


24         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

confirming a previously-formed purpose? In case of a contrary judg-

ment, the young man's own understanding usually decides the course.

            Great reason then is there for the warning—Lean not to thine own

understanding. Once, indeed, it gave clear unclouded light, as man's

high prerogative, "created in the image of God." (Gen. i 26. Col.

iii. 10.)  But now, degraded as it is by the fall (Ps. xlix. 20), and

darkened by the corruption of the heart (Eph. iv. 18), it must be a false

guide. Even in a prophet of God it proved a mistaken counsellor.

(2 Sam. vii. 2–5.) Yet though we refuse to lean to it, to follow it may

be implicit trust in the Lord; because it is a trust in his Divine power,

enlightening it, as his lamp for our direction.  The Christian on his

knees, as if he cast his understanding away, confesses himself utterly

unable to guide his path. But see him in his active life. He carefully

improves his mind. He conscientiously follows its dictates. Thus

practical faith strengthens, not destroys, its power; invigorates, not

supersedes, exertion. (Comp. Gen. xxxii. 9-20; Neh. 4–20; iv. 9.).

            It is therefore our plain duty not to neglect our understanding, but

to cultivate it diligently in all its faculties in a world of such ex-

tended 'knowledge, ignorance is the fruit of sloth dissipation, or mis-

guided delusion. But lean not to thine understanding. Lean—trust in

the Lord. Self-dependence is folly (Chap. xxviii..26), rebellion (Jer.

ii. 13 ; ix. 23), ruin. (Gen. iii. 5, 6. Isa. dlvii. 10, 11.) 'The great

folly of man in trials'---as Dr. Owen justly remarks—'is leaning to or

upon his own understanding and counsels. What is the issue of it?

Whenever in our trials we consult our own understandings, hearken to

self-reasonings, though they seem to be good, and tending to our pre-

servation; yet the principle of living by faith is stifled, and we shall in

the issue be cast down by our own counsels.'*

            Next—let our confidence be uniform— all thy ways acknowledge

him. Take one step at a time, every step under Divine warrant and

direction. (Comp. Ezek. viii. 21–23; Neh. i.11.) Ever plane for your-

self in simple, dependence on God.†  It is nothing less than self-idolatry

to conceive that we can carry on even the ordinary matters of the day

without his counsel. He loves to be consulted. Therefore take all thy

difficulties to be resolved by him. Be in the habit of going to him in

the first place—before self-will, self-pleasing,‡ self-wisdom, human

friends, convenience, expediency. Before any of these have been con-

sulted go to God at once. Consider no circumstances too clear to need

his direction.§  In all thy ways, small as well as great; in all thy con-

 

    * Treatise on Temptation, chap. viii. Comp. Job, xviii 7; Hos. x. 8.

    † Jam. iv. 15. If the Lord will— as Fuller remarks with his pithy quaintness —'a

parenthesis, and yet the most important part of the sentence.'

    ‡ See the awful hypocrisy, and judgment of asking counsel of God under this deadly

influence. Jer. xlii. 1-3, 19-22. Ezek. xiv. 1-6.

    § See the evil consequence of this inconsiderate neglect. Jos. ix. 14.


                                         CHAP. III. 7, 8.                                   25

 

cerns, personal or relative, temporal or eternal, let him be supreme.

Who of us has not found the unspeakable "peace" of bringing to God

matters too minute or individual to be entrusted to the most confidential

ear?*  Abraham thus acknowledged God.  Wheresoever he pitched a

tent for himself there was always an altar for God. (Gen. xii. 7; xiii. 18.)

In choosing a wife for his son there was a singular absence of world-

liness. No mention was made of riches, honour, beauty; only of what

concerned the name and honour of his God. (Gen. xxiv. 1–8. Comp.

also his servant, verse 12-27.) Thus did the wise man's father in all

his ways acknowledge God, asking counsel of him in all his difficulties,

and never disappointed.†

            Now if we be weaned from the idolatry of making our bosom our

oracle, and our heart our counsellor if in true poverty of spirit we go

every morning to our Lord, as knowing not how to guide ourselves for

this day; our eye constantly looking upward for direction (Ps. v. 3;

cxliii. 8–10; xxv. 4, 5), the light will come down.‡   He shall direct thy

paths. We want no new revelations or visible tokens. (Such as Exod.

xiii. 21, 22.) Study the word with prayer. Mark the Divine Spirit

shedding light upon it. Compare it with the observation of the pro-

vidences of the day (Ps. cvii. 43); not judging by constitutional bias

(a most doubtful interpreter), but pondering with sober, practical,

reverential faith. Let the will be kept in a quiet, subdued, cheerful

readiness, to move, stay, retreat, turn to the right hand onto the left, at

the Lord's bidding; always remembering that is best which is least our

own doing, and that a pliable spirit ever secures the needful guidance.

(Comp. Ps. xxxii. 8, 9; Isa. xlviii. 17, 18, with xxi. 21.) We may "be

led," for the exercise of our faith, "in a way that we know not" (Isa.

xlii. 16; l. 10) —perhaps a way of disappointment, or even of mistake.

Yet no step well prayed over will bring ultimate regret. Though the

promise will not render us infallible; our very error will be overruled

for deeper humiliation and self-knowledge; and thus even this myste-

rious direction will in the end be gratefully acknowledged, "He led me

forth in the right way." (Ps. cvii. 7.)

 

7. Be not wise in thine own eyes: fear the Lord, and, depart from evil;

            8. It shall be health to thy navel, and marrow to thy bones.

            This warning against self-confidence is closely connected with the

preceding verse. The wise in his own eyes is he, that leans to his own

 

   * Phil. iv. 6, 7. "In every thing."

    † 1 Sam. xxiii. 9-11; xxx. 6-8. 2 Sam. ii. 1; v. 19. Comp. the smarting rod from the

neglect of this godly habit. 1 Sam. xxvii. 1, with xxix.

    ‡ Matt. vi. 22. Comp. Ps. xxxii. 8; xxxiv. 5. Neh. i. 4-11; ii. 4-8. Sir M. Hale left

it on record, when nearly eighty years old, as his experience, that whenever he had com-

mitted his way simply and unreservedly to the Lord, he had always directed his path.


26        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

understanding.*  Such wisdom is folly and self-delusion.†  Put it away, and

let it be thy wisdom to fear the Lord, and depart from evil. How striking

is this connexion between the fear of God and the fear of sin. (Chap.

xiv. 27; xvi. 6. Gen. xxxix. 9, 10. Neh. v. 15. Job, xxviii. 28.)

Where God is honoured, sin is hated, loathed, and resisted. (Rom. vii.

18-24.) It lives indeed; but it is conderined to die. (Ibid. vi.-6.) It

cleaves to the child of God; but his heart departs from it. Often is it

the cause of the sickness of the body:‡  always of the soul. (Hos. vii. 9.)

The departure from it in the exercise of self-denial and godly discipline,

is health to the body. (Verses 1, 2.) The soul, drooping under the bane-

ful influence of spiritual disease, revives in fruitfulness. (Hos. xiv. 5-7.)

The man that feareth the Lord, under "the healing beams of the Sun of

Righteousness, goeth forth" (Mal. iv. 2), as from his sick chamber, full

of life and Christian energy. "The joy of the Lord is his strength."

(Neh. viii. 10.)

 

9. Honour the Lord with thy substance, and with the first fruits of all thine

            increase; 10. So shall thy barns be filled with plenty, and thy presses

            shall burst out with new wine.

            This rule of sacrifice is a costly precept to the worldling and the

formalist. But to the servant of God, is it not a privilege to lay aside

a portion of substance with this sacred stamp,—"This is for God?"

(1 Cor. xvi. 2.) The first-fruits of the increase were the acknowledg-

ment of redemption from Egypt. (Exod. xiii. 12, 13. Deut. xxvi. 1-40.)

And shall we, redeemed from sin, Satan, death, and hell, deny the claim?

(1 Cor. vi. 19, 20.)  'Well, may we think our substance due, where we

owe ourselves.'§  Nay, could we be happy in spending that substance

on ourselves, which he has given us wherewith to honour him? (Luke,

xix. 13. Contrast xii. 16-22.) What a value, what a dignity, does it

give to the talent, that he should condescend to employ it for his own

grand, eternal purposes! This sacred devotedness is, moreover, the

true road to riches. (Chap. xi. 24.) God challenges us to "prove him

now herewith," if the abundant harvest, and the overflowing vintage,

shall not put unbelief and covetousness to shame. (Mal. iii. 10. 2 Chron.

xxxi. 5-10.)  A niggardly spirit is, therefore, narrow policy; contract-

ing the harvest, by sparing the seed-corn. (2 Cor. ix. 6. Hag. i. 4-6.)

 

    * Verse 5. Comp. xxiii. 4. Rom. xii. 3-18. See the mind of God expressed in that

solemn woe. (Isa. v. 21.)

   † Even a heathen could remark—‘I suppose that many might have attained to wisdom,

had they not thought they had already attained it.' SENECA, de Ira, Lib. iii. c. 36. Comp.

1 Cor. viii. 2; Gal. vi. 3. ‘Our knowledge should hold the light before us, and help us for

the better discovery of our ignorance, and so dispose us to humility, not pride.’—Bp. SAN-

DERSON's Sermon on Rom. xiv. 3.

   ‡ In sensual indulgence--Chap. v. 8-11. Intemperance—xxiii. 29, 30. As a judicial

infliction — Ps. xxxii. 3, 4; xxxviii. 1-8. 1 Cor. xi. 30.

    § Bishop Hall.


                                             CHAP. III. 11, 12.                                       27

 

There is no presumption, or enthusiasm in looking for the literal fulfil-

ment of the promise. If we doubt the temporal, should we not suspect

our assumed confidence in the spiritual, engagements? For if the

Lord's word be insufficient security for our substance: much more must

it be for the infinitely weightier deposit of our soul!

            The rule and obligation are therefore clear. The law dealt with

us as children, and prescribed the exact amount. The gospel treats us

as men, and leaves it to circumstance, principle, and conscience. This

consecration of substance, as the seed-corn for the harvest, is as strange

to the world, as would be the casting of the seed in the earth to an

untutored savage. Yet is the result secure in both cases; only with

this difference, that the temper of the earthly sower has no influence on

the harvest; whereas the fruitfulness of the spiritual harvest mainly

depends upon the principles of the work. Most important is it to be-

ware of bye-ends and selfish principles; that we honour the Lord, not

ourselves. Let there be a self-renouncing spirit (1 Chron. xxix. 14-16.

Matt, vi. 1-4; xxv. 37-39), implicit faith (1 Kings, xvii. 12-16), con-

straining love (Rom. xii. 1. 2 Cor. v. 14, 15. Matt x. 42), special

regard to his own people. And doubt not, but he will affix his own

seal—"Those that honour me, I will honour." (I Sam. ii. 30. Comp.

chap. xi. 25; xxii. 9; Heb. vi. 10.)

 

11. My son, despise not the chastening of the Lord; neither be weary of his

            correction; 12.  For whom the Lord loveth he correcteth; even as a

            father the son in whom he delighteth.

            Prosperity and adversity in their wise mixture and proportion, form

our present condition. Each is equally fruitful in opportunity of honour-

ing the Lord; in prosperity—by the full consecration of our substance

(Verses 9, 10); in adversity —by a humble and cheerful submission to

his dispensation. 'In prosperity it is well to expect the rod; and sup-

pose it be his pleasure, let it not make thee either doubt of his gracious

Providence, or out of impatience take any unlawful course to remove

it from thee.’*  His "exhortation"---the Apostle reminds us—"speak-

eth to us, as unto children."†  And indeed, under no character does

he approach so near to us, and endear himself so closely to us, as that

of a Father, Most precious at all times, especially under correction, is

the privilege of adoption—My son.

            Nowhere, indeed, are our corruptions so manifest, or our graces so

shining, as under the rod. We need it as much as our daily bread.

Children of God are still children of Adam; with Adam's will, pride,

 

    * Bishop Patrick.

     † Heb. xii. 5. We must not overlook the Apostle's testimony to the Divine inspiration

of the Book; showing the instruction throughout to be the teaching of our Heavenly

Father to his beloved children.


28         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

independence, and waywardness. And nothing more distinctly requires

Divine teaching and grace, than how to preserve in our behaviour the

just mean between hardness and despondency; neither despising the

chastening of the Lord, nor being weary of his correction.*

            Too often, while we guard against an error on the right hand, we

forget one not less hurtful on the left; like the man, who, in guarding

against the precipice on the one side, rushes into some fearful hazard on

the other. The middle path is the right path. Doubtless the Lord means

his chastening to be felt. (2 Sam. xv. 26. Ps. xxxix. 10, 11.) A leviathan

iron-heartedness (Job, xli. 24-29. Jer. v. 3) is the stubbornness of the

flesh, not the triumph of the spirit; a frame most offensive to him, and

most unseemly for the reception of his gracious discipline. To be as

though no pain was felt or cared for; sullenly to "kick against the

pricks " (Acts, ix. 5. Comp. chap. xix. 3), and to dare God to do his

worst--this is, indeed, to despise his chastening.†  But pride will lift

up the head, stiff and unbending: many a stroke does it require to

bring it down.

            Yet, alas! this is not the sin only of the ungodly.  Often do we see

the child of God in an undutiful spirit (Job, v. 17. Heb. xii. 6), caring

little whether his Father smiles or frowns. The chastening is lightly

passed over. He considers only second causes, or immediate instru-

ments. (Amos, iii. 6.) He is irritated by looking at the rod, rather than

at the hand that inflicts it. (2 Chron. xvi. 10-12.) He shrinks from

searching into the cause. He disregards his Father's loving voice and

purpose. Hence there is no softening humilation (Ps. xxxii. 3, 4);

no "acceptance of the punishment of iniquity" (Lev. xxvi. 41, 43);

no child-like submission; no exercise of faiths in looking for support.

Is not this to despise the chastening of the Lord?

            But while some despise the hand of God as light, others "faint "

under it as heavy. (Heb. xii. 5. Ps. xxxviii. 2, 3; xxxix. 10.) They

are weary of his correction. Beware of yielding to heartless despondency,

or fretful impatience. (Ps. lxxiii. 14; lxxvii. 7.40.) Resist hard and

dishonourable thoughts of God. (Gen. xlii. 3;  Judg. vi. 13. Jonah,

iv. 9.) Their very admission spreads destruction. Very apt are we to

judge amiss of our Father's dealings;‡ to neglect present duty; to

cherish a morbid brooding over our sorrows (Job, vi. 1-16):  to forget

our title and privilege of adoption (Heb. xii. 5); or in obstinate grief

to "refuse to be comforted" with the "hope of the end" (Ps, lxxvii. 2.

 

   * The philosopher's definition is striking and accurate, but infinitely above his own

Tactical standard-‘Non sentire mala tua, non est hominis; et non ferre, non est viri.’—

(It is inhuman not to feel thine afflictions, and unmanly not to bear them.)—SENECA, Consol.

ad Polyb. c. 36.

     † Comp. Pharaoh—Exod. vii. 23. Jehoram—2 Kings vi. 31. Ahaz—2 Chron.

xxviii. 22. Israel--Isa. i. 6. Zeph. iii. 2. Comp. Job, xv. 25, 26.

     ‡ Chap xxiv. 10. Isa. xl. 27-31; Comp. 1 Sam. xxvii.1; 1 Kings, xix. 4; Job

iii. 1-3; Jer. xx. 14-18.

                                      CHAP. III. 11, 12.                                  29

 

Comp. Jer. xxix. 11; xxxi. 15-17.) And is not this to be weary of his

correction?

            But these rules imply much more than their negative meaning.

Instead of despising, reverence the chastening of the Lord. Let it be a

solemn remembrance to thee, that thou art under thy Father's correction.

(Lam. iii. 28, 29. Mic. vii. 9.) Receive it then in good part. Instead

of being weary of it, hang upon his chastening hand, and pour thy

very soul into his bosom. (1 Sam. i. 10–15.) Kiss the rod. (Job,

xxxiv. 31, 32. 1 Pet. v. 6.) Acknowledge its humbling, but enriching,

benefit. (Ps. cxix. 67–71.)  Expect a richer blessing from sustaining grace,

than from the removal of the deprecated affliction. (2 Cor. xii. 7–10.)

            After all we must add, that chastening is a trial to the flesh (Heb.

xii. 11); yet overruled by wonder-working wisdom and faithfulness to

an end above and contrary to its nature. This, very rod was sent in

love to the soul. Perhaps we were living at ease, or in heartless back-

sliding. The awakening voice called us to our Bible and to prayer.

Thus eyeing God in it, we see it to be love, not wrath; receiving, not

casting out. We might perhaps have wished it a little altered; that

the weight had been shifted, and the cross a little smoothed, where it

pressed upon the shoulder. But now that our views are cleared, we

discern blessing enough to swallow up the most poignant smart. We

see the "needs-be," for our preservation from imminent danger (Comp.

Chap. i. 32; Ps. lv. 19), and for "the trial of our faith." We come to

an unhesitating verdict in favour of the absolute perfection of the dis-

pensation. (Ps. li. 4 ; cxix. 75.) Faith understands the reasons of the

discipline (I Pet. i. 6, 7); acknowledges it as a part of his gracious

providence (Deut. viii. 2, 15, 16), and the provision of his everlasting

covenant (Ps. lxxxix. 30–32); waits to see the end of the Lord (Jam.

v. 11); and meanwhile draws its main support fro the seal of adoption.

            For indeed it is the declared test of our legitimacy. (Heb. xii. 7, 8.

Rev. iii. 19.) He corrects whom he loves, the son it whom he delighteth.

His discipline is that of the family; not of the school; much less of the

prison. He corrects his children, not as criminal, but as those whom

he beholds without spot, "made accepted in the eloved." (Eph. i. 6.)

Nor is there caprice, as too often with an earthly father, in his chastise-

ment. (Heb. xii. 10.) It is wisdom in the spirit of love. " He

rejoiceth over his child to do him good" (der. xxxi. 41); yet as a wise

and affectionate father, he would not suffer him to be ruined for want

of correction. (Chap. xiii. 24. Deut. viii. 5.) It is correction—this is

for your humbling. It is only correction—this is your consolation.

The intolerable sting of penal infliction is removed. Here then the

child has rest indeed?*  The rod is now meekly, yea—thankfully

borne, because it is in the hand of One supreme in wisdom, as in love,

 

   * 1 Sam. iii. 18 2 Sam. xv. 25; xvi. 10, 11. Ps. xxxix. 9. Job, i. 21. Isa. xxxix. 8.


30        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

who knows what is our need, and how to apply the discipline. He

chooses the fittest time (Isa, xxx. 18. I Pet. v. 6), the surest yet

gentlest means, the most considerate measure (Isa. xxvii. 7, 8. Jer.

xxx. 11. Lam. iii. 31-33), the most effective instruments. And, com-

paring our affliction with our sin, is not the marvel that it is so light?

(Ezra, ix. 13. Ps. ciii. 10. Lam. iii. 39.)  Have we not more than

deserved it all? 'I love the rod of my heavenly Father'-- exclaimed

the saintly Fletcher---'How gentle are the stripes I feel!  How heavy

those I deserve!'*  '0 God, I have made an ill use of thy mercies, if

I have not learnt to be content with thy correction.'†

            Should he then at any dark season ask —"If it be so, why am I

thus?" (Gen. xxv. 22)—you are thus, because this is your Father's

training discipline for heaven.‡  He loves, thee so well, that he will

bestow all pains upon thee. He will melt thee in his furnace, that he

may stamp thee with his image. (Isa. xxvii. 9; xlviii. 10. Zech. xiii.

9. Mal. iii. 3.) He would make thee "partake of his holiness" (Heb.

xii. 10), that thou mightest partake of his happiness. But unless thou

enter into his mind, thou wilt, so far as thou canst, defeat his purpose,

and lose the benefit— a loss never to be told? (Comp. Jer. vi. 8.)

Look then well into the dispensation. (Job, x. 2. Ps. cxxxix. 23, 24.

Eccles. vii. 14. Lam. iii. 40.) Every rod is thy Father's messenger;

and he will not bear to have his messenger despised. Be anxious to

"hear the rod; and who hath appointed it " (Mic. vi. 9); well knowing

that "the Lord hath not done without cause all that he hath done."

(Ezek. xiv. 23.) Be more concerned to have it sanctified than removed;

yea, above all things deprecate its removal, until it has fully wrought

its appointed work. (Isa. iv. 4.) We can but admire that considerate

dispensation, which uses these "light" afflictions as the means of

deliverance from the most deadly evil. Should flesh and blood rebel;

should the earthly tabernacle shake with "the blow of his hand" (Ps.

xxxix. 10, ut supra):  yet shalt thou bless him throughout eternity, that

even by this crushing discipline he should accomplish his most merciful

purpose. Meanwhile, give him unlimited confidence; and if some steps

of the way are hid, wait and "see the end." (Job, xxiii. 8-10; Jam.

v. 11.) Watch for the first whispers of his will, the first intimation of

his Providence, the guidance of his eye. (Ps. xxxii. 8, 9.) Many a

stroke will thus be saved to thy peace and quietness. This indeed is a

golden opportunity, requiring for its due improvement much study,

prayer, and retirement. No communion is so close, so endearing,

so fruitful, as with a chastening God. Never is Christ more precious to

 

Comp. John, xviii. 11. The heathen philosopher has accurately drawn the line—‘Chastise-

meat is on the sufferer's account. Vengeance is for the satisfaction of him that inflicts it.'

—ARIST. de Rhetor b. i. e. 10.

   * Life of Rev. H. Venn, pp. 238, 584.                             † Bishop Hall.

   ‡ Job, xxxiii. 14-28; xxxvi. 8-10. Heb. xii. 7, 8, ut supra.---The term refers to the

education of children.

 

                                         CHAP. III. 13-15.                                 31

 

us; his love never more sweet, than in the midst,--yea, in the very

form, of chastening. Never have we so full a manifestation of the

Divine character (Ps. cxix. 75), and perfections.  What we have before

learnt in theory, we here learn experimentally; and what we have

before imperfectly understood, is here more filly revealed.*  With

regard to the full weight and duration of the trial, and all its minute

circumstances, successively so bitter and piercing—we may ask—

‘Which of them could be spared?' It is quite clear as to the whole

time, the whole weight, the whole number and variety of circumstances

that all and each were as necessary as any part. Where could we have

stopped, without making that stop fatal to the great end? What does

it all mean, but the Lord holding to his determination to save us;

all the thoughts of his heart, every exercise of his, power, centering

in this purpose of his sovereign mercy?

13. Happy is the man that findeth wisdom, and the man that getteth (marg.

            draweth out), understanding; 14. For the merchandize of it is better

            than the merchandize of silver, and the gain thereof than fine gold; 15.

            She is more precious than rubies, and all the things thou canst desire

            are not to be compared to her.

            Who does not admire this glowing picture of happiness?†  The

wisdom of this world affords no such happiness, (Eccles. i. 18.) Yet

cold and barren is admiration, without an interest in the blessing. The

happy man has found a treasure, where possibly the least expected it,

under the chastening of the Lord. David‡ and Manasseh (2 Chron.

xxxiii. 12, 13) found (as who hath not found?)  ‘God's house of correc-

tion to be a school of instruction.’§  Under all circumstances, however,

prayerful diligence in the search of wisdom ensues success. (Chap. ii.

1-6.)  The naturally wise man is a fool in heavenly wisdom. The man

of prayer getteth understanding, draweth it out to light, as out of the hid

treasure.||  We wonder not at the merchant-man's concentrated interest,

at his untiring toil.¶  Here the wise man, himself enriched with the

 

    * Job, xlii. 5. Comp. the Apostle's most instructive and encouraging exposition, Heb.

xii. There is some slight variation between Heb. xii. 6, and verse. 12. The one describes

the mode and subject of the chastening. The other shows the Father's delight in his chas-

tened child.  Some by inverting the first clause, ver. 12, grossly pervert the meaning, and

conclude themselves to be the Lord's children, because they are afflicted. But though every

child is corrected, not every one that is corrected is a child. The same hand—but not the

same character—gives the stroke,' to the godly and the ungodly. The scourge of the

Judge is widely different from the rod of the Father. Comp. I Sam. xxviii. 15-20, with

2 Sam. xii. 13, 14 ; Chap. i. 26. Isa. i. 24, with Jer. xxxi. 18-2.  Hos. xi. 7. 8; also Isa.

xxvii. 7-9. Nor is it chastening, but the endurance of chastening, according to the rules pre-

scribed, that seals our adoption. Heb. xii. 7.

    † Happy man —Heb. plural. Comp. Ps. i. 1; xxxii. 1. Blessedness—to mark supreme

and perfect happiness. See the beautiful description of Wisdom, Ecclus xxiv. 1-19.

    ‡ Ps. cxix. 67, 71. Hence he commends it, Ps. xciv. 12.               § TRAPP, in LOCO.

     || M. R. Comp. Chap. viii. 35. M. R. Chap. ii. 4. Matt. xiii. 44

     ¶ Impiger extremos currit mercator ad Indos,

         Per mare pauperiem fugiens, per saxa, per ignes.         HOR. Epis. i. 1.45.


32        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

merchandize of fine gold (1 Kings, ix. 26-28) points out to us a better

merchandize. It is the search for " the pearl of great price," more precious

than rubies, yea, than all things that could, be desired.*  So the Apostle

judged. So upon a trial he found it. All the world's show, all his

former valuable "gain, he counted as dung and dross" for "the true

wisdom"—"the excellency of the knowledge of Christ Jesus his Lord."

(Philip. iii. 4-8.) Never will solid happiness be known without this

singleness of judgment and purpose. This inestimable blessing must

have the throne. The waverer and the half-seeker fall short. Deter-

mined perseverance wins the prize. (Philip. iii. 12-14.)

 

16. Length of days is in her right hand, and in her left hand riches and

            honour; 17. Her ways are ways of pleasantness; and all her paths are

            peace; 18. She is a tree of life to them that lay hold upon her: and

            happy is every one that retaineth her.

            Behold this heavenly Queen dispensing her blessings!  Her right

hand presents the promise of both worlds (Verse 2. Ps. xci. 16. 1 Tim.

vi. 8)—the rich enjoyment of the world's lawful comforts (1 Tim. vi. 17),

and the yet higher joy of serving the Lord and his church--a privilege

for which the Apostle was content for a while to be detained from

heaven. (Philip. i. 23, 24.) Add length of days for eternity to the

balance; and the amount sets at nought all computation. Her left

hand offers riches and honour,† so far as may be for her children's good;

yet in their highest splendour, only a faint shadow of her more "durable

riches," and of the honour of a heavenly crown.

            But what say we of her ways? Is she a sullen matron, who enter-

tains her followers only on sighs and tears; so that to obtain the joys

of the next life, we must bid eternal adieu to the contents of this life;

‘we must never more expect a cheerful hour, a clear day, a bright

thought to shine upon us?'‡  This is the world's creed--a slander of

the great forger of lies, to deter us from wisdom's ways. They must be

ways of pleasantness, because "Thus saith the Lord." And if we feel

them not to be so, we know them not.

            The man of pleasure utterly mistakes both his object and his pursuit.

The only happiness worth seeking is found here; that which will live

in all circumstances, and abide the ceaseless changes of this mortal life.

The ways may be dark and lonely; yet howl does the sunshine of recon-

ciliation beam upon their entrance! Every step is lighted from above,

and strewed with promises; a step in happiness, a step to heaven.

 

    * Matt. xiii. 45, 46, with Chap. xxiii. 28. Comp. Chap. viii. 11, 19; Job, xxviii. 15-18.

Most truly does the great Moralist define Wisdom to be ‘The knowledge of the most

honourable things'—e]pisthmh twn timiwtatwn.—ARIST. Ethic. b. vi. chap. vii.

    † See the treasures of right and hand promised to the wise man himself, 1 Kings,

iii. 12-14.

     ‡ BISHOP HOPKINS' Works, iv 354, 855.


                                 CHAP. III. 16-18                                                 33

 

Wisdom's work is its own reward (Ps. xix. 11. isa. xxxii. 17)— strict-

ness without bondage. (Matt. xi. 29, 30.) God rules children, not slaves.

They work neither from compulsion, nor for hire; but from an ingenuous

principle of gratitude to their Benefactor; filial delight in their Father.

Pleasant therefore must be the labour—yea—the sacrifices--of love;

short the path; cheerful the way, when the heart goes freely in it.

            It is saying far too little, that the trials of these ways are not incon-

sistent with their pleasantness. They are the very principles of the most

elevated pleasure.  ‘The verdict of Christ,’— says Dr. South—‘makes

the discipline of self-denial and the cross—those terrible blows to flesh

and blood—the indispensable requisite to the being his disciples.'*

And yet, paradoxical as it may appear, in this deep gloom is the

sunshine of joy. For if our natural will be "enmity to God" (Rom.

viii. 7), it must be the enemy to our own happiness. Our pleasure,

therefore, must be to deny, not to indulge it; to mortify sinful appetites,

that only "bring forth fruit unto death." (Ib. vii. 5.) Even what

may be called the austerities of godliness are mere joyous than "the

pleasures of sin." Far better to cross the will; than to wound the

conscience. The very chains of Christ are glorious. (Acts, v. 41, 42;

xvi. 24, 25.) Moses endured not "his reproach" as a trial. He "es-

teemed it as a treasure--greater riches than the treasures of Egypt."

(Heb. xi. 26.) Our principles are never more consoling than when we

are making a sacrifice for them. Hannah yielded up her dearest earthly

joy. But did she sink under the trial? Did she grudge the sacrifice?

"Hannah prayed and said—My heart rejoiceth in the Lord" (1 Sam. i.

26; ii. 1); while—to show that none serve him for nought—for one

child that was resigned, five were added. (Ib. ii. 20, 21.)

            In fact, the world have no just conception of the real character of

wisdom's ways. Religion to them is associated with cold, heartless

forms and irksome restraints—much to do, but nothing to enjoy. But

they only see half the prospect. They see what religion takes away.

But they see not what it gives. They cannot discern, that, while it

denies sinful, it abounds in spiritual, pleasures. We drudge in the ways

of sin. But we "shall sing in the ways of the Lord (Isa. lvii.10; with

Ps. cxxxviii. 5.) Here is the only thing below worth the name of joy

—solid—abiding—overflowing—satisfying (Hab. iii. 18)--God's

own joy. (John, xv. 11; xvii. 13.) It is not a mere impulse of vapid

sentimentalism, but a principle of Christian energy, invigorating for

duty, supporting for trial. (Neh. viii. 10.) Here, then, "we have less

toil, and reap more fruit." For will not any reasonable man, upon the

hearing of the names of the things only, presently yield, that "love, joy,

peace, and gentleness," which are "fruits of the Spirit," are far more

lovely, more easy, fuller of sweetness and calmness, less vexatious, than

 

                         * Sermons, vol. i. Matt. xvi. 24.


34          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

are "hatreds, emulations, murders," and those other "works of the

flesh?"*

            But ways of pleasantness are not always safe. Yet all wisdom's paths

are peace. The deadly breach is healed. The cloud vanishes. Heaven

smiles. And peace, the Saviour's last bequest, is realised even in the

heat of "this world's tribulation." (John, xvi. 33.) "The feet are shod"

for the rugged path "with the preparation of the Gospel of peace."

(Eph. vi. 15; with Deut. xxxiii. 25.) The subjugation of the will, the

sorrow of contrition, the weariness of the (cross--all end in peace.

(Ps. xxxvii. 37. Isa. lvii. 2, with 20, 21.)

            Yet nothing can make wisdom's ways palatable to a carnal mind.

"They that are after the flesh do mind the things of the flesh;" so that,

as "they cannot please God," God's ways cannot please them. (Rom.

viii. 5, 8.) Nor again—though wisdom's ways are ways of pleasantness,

are wisdom's children always happy. Sometimes a naturally morose

temper gives a gloomy tinge to religion. Professors forget, that it is

no matter of option, whether they should be happy or not; that it is

their obligation no less than their privilege to be so; that the commands

of God on this duty† carry weight, and demand obedience. The pro-

phets in the burst of their rapture search heaven and earth, bring forth

the most beautiful objects of nature; nay— call the inanimate creation

into glowing sympathy with the joys of the Gospel. (Ps. xcvi. 11-13;

xcviii. Isa. xliv. 23; lv. 12, 13.) A rejoicing spirit is the character of

the servants of God (Phil. iii. 3. Acts, ii. 46, 47), specially in affliction.

(2 Con vi. 10; viii. 2. 1 Pet. i. 6-8.) Is them thy happiness clouded?

Has there not been some deviation from wisdom's paths? Thy God calls

thee to search, to humble thyself, to return. (Jer. ii. 17-19. Hos. v.

15; vi. 1.)

            Lastly—to the glory, beauty, and fruitfulness of wisdom, the Para-

dise of God alone can furnish the full counterpart. (Rev. ii. 7.) ‘The

tree of life was the means ordained of God for the preservation of last-

ing life, and continual vigour and health, before man sinned. So true

wisdom maintains man in the spiritual life of God's grace, and the

communion of his Spirit.'‡  Once our way was barred up, and none

could touch her. (Gen. iii. 22-24.) Now our way is opened to her in

a better paradise. (Heb. x. 19-22.) We "sit down under her shadow

with great delight." Her branches bend down upon this world of sin

and misery. Her clusters hang within the reach of the youngest child,

and "the fruit is sweet to the taste" (Cant. ii. 3); sweeter than ever

man tasted, since he became an exile from Eden. For what is so

refreshing, as near communion with God; access to him; boldness in

 

   * Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on Gal. v. 22, 23.

    †  Such as Ps. xxxii. 11; xxxvii. 4. Phil. iv. 4. 1 These. v. 16. Comp. the warning,

Deut. xxviii. 47, 48.                                            ‡ Diodati.


                                          CHAP. III. 19, 20.                                        35

 

his presence; admission to his most holy delights?  And if the earthly

shadow and fruit be so rich, what will be "on the other side of the

river,"--her monthly fruits, her healing leaves! (Rev. xxii. 2.) And

yet only the weeping, wrestling soul can lay hold upon the beloved

object (Gen. xxxii. 26–28. Hos. xii. 3, 4), and embrace it, in despite of

all the enemy's struggle to loosen the grasp. (Matt. xi. 12.)  And

even, when Almighty power has enabled us to lay hold, the same con-

tinual miracle of grace, the same continually-renewed effort of faith, is

needed to retain it. (1 Tim. vi. 12.) There must be "continuance in

the ways" (Isa. lxiv. 5. John, viii. 31); "settled, rooted, and grounded"

(Col. i. 23 ; ii. 7); "keeping the works;" holding the beginning of our

confidence steadfast "unto the end." (Rev. ii. 26. Heb. iii. 6, 14.)

Happy is every one that retaineth her. The promises are "to him that over-

cometh." (Rev. ii. iii.) God honours perseverance in the weakest saint.

            This lovely description of wisdom's blessing is no fancy picture, but

Divine reality. Rest not, till thine heart is filled with its substance.

Take it to the Lord in prayer; and ere long, thou shalt rejoice in thy

portion.

 

19. The Lord by wisdom hath founded the earth: by understanding hath he

            established (marg. prepared) the heavens. 20. By his knowledge the

            depths are broken up, and the clouds drop down the dew.

            We have seen wisdom, as it is in man, with all its enriching bless-

ings. Here we behold its majesty, as it is in the bosom of God, and

gloriously displayed in his works. 'Hereby he showeth, that this

wisdom, whereof he speaketh, was everlasting, because it was before all

creatures; and that all things, even the whole world, were made by

it.’*  Behold it founding the earth "upon nothing;" and yet "so sure,

that it cannot be moved." (Job, xxvi. 7. Ps. xciii. 1.) See how this

great Architect hath established the heavens, fixing all their bright lumi-

naries in their respective orbits (Gen. i. 14–16. Ps., cxxxvi. 5. Jer. x. 12;

li. 15)—‘such a glorious canopy set with such sparkling diamonds!'†  

Each of these departments declares his knowledge—In the earth, by

breaking up the depths, and gathering them up into rivers and streams

for the refreshment of man. (Chap. viii. 24–29 Gen. i. 9, 10. Job,

xxxviii. 8–12. Ps. civ. 8–13)—In the heavens, by collecting the mois-

ture into dew, and dropping down fatness upon the parched ground;‡  

each of these countless drops falling from this Fountain of life. (Job,

xxxviii. 28.) Thus does every particle of the universe glitter with

infinite skill. (Ps. civ. 24.) The earth is its pavement, and the

 

    * Reformers' Notes.  † Leighton's beautiful fragment On Ps. viii. Works, vol. ii.

     ‡ Gen. xxvii. 28, 29. There is a philosophical difficulty in supposing "the clouds to drop

down the dew," which is the moisture rising from the lower re ion, sometimes a very few

feet from the earth. In the East, however, the dew is said to fall from a considerable

height. Gesenius states, that the Hebrew word represents a ‘gentle rain.'


36       EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

heavens--its ceiling; both miracles of wisdom, to "declare the glory of

God." (Ps. xix. 1.) How beautiful is the uniformity of the two great

systems of God! Both are the work of the same Architect. Both dis-

play the wisdom and knowledge of God. (John, i. 1-14. Eph. i. 8; iii.

10. Col. i. 13-17.) The universe is a parable, a mirror of the gospel.

The manifestation of these Divine Perfections in the field of Creation opens

a rich provision for our happiness. Much more let their more glorious

exhibition in the great work of redemption fill us with adoring praise

—"O the depth of the riches, both of the wisdom and knowledge of God!”*

21. My son, let them not depart from thine eyes: keep sound wisdom and

            discretion: 22. So shall they be life unto thy soul, and grace unto thy

            neck.

            Again we listen to Wisdom's voice. Her repetitions are not "vain

repetitions;" but well fitted to impress upon youth (Isa. xxviii. 9, 10)

the weight of her instructions. (Philip. iii. 1; 2 Pet. i. 12.) As thy

much-loved treasure, as thy daily guide--let them not depart from, thine

eyes. (Chap. vii. 1-3.)  Worse than valueless are they, if received as

notions; of inestimable price, if kept as principles. God's teaching is

sound wisdom (Deut. iv. 9; vi. 8. Josh. i. 7, 8); full of light, and sub-

stance; transfiguring Divine truth with heavenly glory. Therefore

keep it close to thine heart. Exercise it in that practical discretion,

which disciplines all our tempers and duties. Man's wisdom is utterly

devoid of all energy. The soul, "alienated from the life of God" (Eph.

iv. 18), is in a state of death, until "the entrance of God's word giveth

light and understanding" (Ps. cxix. 130)--"the light of life." (John,

viii. 12.) "The excellency of this knowledge is, that," "with this

light and understanding," it giveth life to them that have it. (Eccles.

vii. 12. Comp. Chap iv. 22; vi. 23.) Every truth under its influence

springs up into the new creature with heavenly glow, and with all the

grace of "the beauty of the Lord;"† outshining, even in the most

despised garb, the richest glory of an earthly drown.

 

23. Then shalt thou walk in thy way safer, and thy foot shall not stumble.

            24. When thou liest down, thou shalt not be afraid: yea, thou shalt lie

 

   * Rom. xi. 33. Full of profound thought are the words of our admirable Hooker—

'That which moveth God to work is Goodness; that which ordereth his work is Wisdom;

that which perfecteth his work is Power. All things, which God in these times and sea-

sons hath brought forth, were eternally and before all time in God; as a work unbegun is

in the artificer, which afterwards bringeth it into effect. Therefore whatsoever we do

behold now in this present world, it was enwrapped within the bowels of Divine Mercy,

written in the book of Eternal Wisdom, and held in the hands of Omnipotent Power, the

first foundations of the earth being as yet unlaid. So that all things which God hath

made are in that respect the Offspring of God. They are in him, as effects in their highest

cause. He likewise is actually in them; the assistance and influence of his Deity is their

life.'—Book v. lvi. 5.

    † Ps. xc. 17; cxlix. 4. Comp. Chap. i. 9. 'Grace to thy jaws'— is the Douay Version,

with the Marg. Explanation — 'Merit for the words of thy Month.'

 

                                       CHAP. III. 23-26.                                     37

 

            down, and thy sleep shall be sweet. 25. Be not afraid of sudden fear,

            neither of the desolation of the wicked, when it cometh.  26. For the

            Lord shall be thy confidence, and shall keep thy foot from being taken.

            The habitual eyeing of the word keeps the feet in a slippery path.

(Chap. iv. 11, 12. Ps. xvii. 4; xxxvii. 23; cxix. 9, 11, 133.) David,

from inattention to wisdom's words, "well-nigh slipped." (Ps. lxxiii.

2-17.) Peter from the same neglect fearfully stumbled. (Matt. xxvi.

33-35, 69-75.) But our sleeping hours, no less than our waking steps,

are divinely guarded. "So he giveth his beloved sleep." (Ps. cxxvii. 2.

Comp. cxxi. 3, 4.) "Underneath them are the everlasting arms." (Deut.

xxxiii. 27. Comp. Lev. xxvi. 6.) They enjoy a child-like repose, sleep-

ing in his bosom without fear. Thus did David 'sleep in God, and in

a state of salvation,' amid the tumultuous warfare with his undutiful

son!*  Peter in prison, in chains, between two soldiers, on the eve of

his probable execution, when "there seemed but step between him

and death"--Yet in such a place, in such company, at such a moment,

did he lie down so fearless, and sleep so sweetly; that even the shining

light failed to disturb him, and an angel's stroke was needed to awaken

him.†  What would not many in troublous times, waking at every

stir, give for one night of this sweet sleep! And yet bow many such

nights have we enjoyed; waking, as Jacob on his stony—we might

add—downy, pillar, in the consciousness of our Father's 'keeping!

But where has been our renewed dedication to God? (Gen. xxxvii.

11, 18-22.)

            But sudden fear may come. Yet be not afraid. (Job, v. 21--24.

Comp. 2 Kings, vi. 16, 17 ; Jer. xxxix. 15-18.) It is the desolation of

the wicked. They must fear. (Isa. lvii. 20, 21.) Child of God ! run you

to your confidence, and "be safe." (Chap. xiv. 26; xviii. 10. Isa. xxvi.

1, 20.) Surely he shall keep thy foot from being taken. (Ps. xci. 1-3.)

Noah found this security in the flood of the ungodly; Lot in the

destruction of Sodom (2 Pet. ii. 5-9); the Christians in Pella, in the

desolation of the wicked city. Luther sung his song of confidence--"God

is our refuge and strength." (Ps. xlvi.) In the consummating desola-

tion, when it cometh--what will then be the sudden fear—the undis-

mayed confidence? "All the-tribes of the earth will mourn" at the

sight of their despised Saviour—then their Judge. (Chap. i. 27. Luke,

xxi. 26. Rev. i. 7; vi. 15-17.) But, "when ye see these thing's, then

look up, and lift up your heads, for your redemption draweth nigh."

(Luke, xxi. 28. Comp. 2 Thess. i. 7-10.)

 

    * ‘Obdormit in Deo, et in statu salutis.'—Lyra.--Ps. iii. iv. 8. Compare the beautiful

picture, Ezek. xxxiv. 25-28, in contrast with chap. iv. 16. Deut. xxviii. 66.

    † Acts, xii. 6, 7. Our Martyrologist records of John Rogers, the proto-martyr in the

Marian persecution, that ‘on the morning of his execution, being Found fast asleep, scarce

with much shogging could he be awaked.'—FOXE, vi. 699.


38        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

27. Withhold not good from them to whom it is due (the owners thereof,

            marg.), when it is in the power of thine hand to do it.  28. Say not

            unto thy neighbour, Go, and come again, and to-morrow I will give;

            when thou hast it by thee.

            The wise man now comes to practical points. He shows the fruit

of selfishness—withholding dues. Many are the forms of this dis-

honesty—borrowing without payment (Ps. xxxvii. 21), evading the

taxes;* "keeping back the labourer's hire.” (Jam. v. 4. Jer. xxii. 13-17.

Comp. Gen. xxxi. 7; Dent. xxiv. 14, 15.) But the, rule probes deeper

than this surface. If we have no legal debt to any, we have a Gospel

debt to all. (Rom. xiii. 8.) Even the poor is bound by this universal

law to his poorer neighbour. (Eph. iv. 28. Comp. 2 Cor. viii. 1-3.)

Every one has a claim upon our love. (Comp. Luke, x. 29-37.) Every

opportunity of doing good is our call to do so. Our neighbours are the

real owners of our good. (Marg.) The Lord of all has transferred his

right to them, with a special reference to "his own brethren." (Gal. vi.

10. Mark, ix. 41. Matt. xxv. 31-40.) Kindness is therefore a matter,

not of option, but of obligation; an act of justice no less than of

mercy. Not indeed that it may be demanded by our fellow-men. But

the obligation lies upon conscience; and to withhold the due will be our

eternal condemnation. (Matt. xxv. 41-45. Comp. Deut. xxiii. 3, 4.)

            Christian benevolence will also do good in the kindest manner.

Delay is an offence against the law of love. Too often the cold repulse

Go, and come again—is a cover for selfishness. There is a secret

hope that the matter will be forgotten, dropped, or taken up by some

other party. Often an application is put off from mere thoughtlessness.

We have it by us.† But it does not just now suit our convenience.

This is a serious injury to the applicant. A little given in time of need

is more than a larger sum when the time is gone by. We should cul-

tivate a quick sensibility of the wants and sufferings of others; putting

ourselves as much as possible in their place; not only "doing good,"

but "ready to every good work." (Tit. iii. 1. 1 Tim. vi. 18.) If we are

to "do justly"--which sometimes (as in the' punishment of criminals)

may be our sorrow; we are like our gracious God (Mic. vii. 18), to love

mercy (Ib. vi. 8. Comp. Rom. xii. 8; 2 Cor. ix. 7); seizing the pre-

sent, perhaps the only (Chap. xxvii. 1. Gal. vi. 10), opportunity; rather

anticipating the need than wantonly or thoughtlessly delaying to

relieve it. (2 Cor. viii. 10.) The Gospel presents every neighbour

before us as a brother or sister needing our help, and to be loved and

cared for "as ourselves." (Lev. xix. 18.) Whey do we not more readily

 

   * The example and admonition of Christ are evidently directed against this iniquity.

Matt. xvii. 24-27; xxii. 15-21,

    † See how Job rebutted his friend's accusation, xxii. 9, with xxxi. 16. Comp. Jam.

ii. 15-16.


                                       CHAP. III. 29, 30.                                      39

 

acknowledge this standard? The Lord raise us from our selfishness,

and mould us to his own image of mercy and love!*

 

29. Devise not evil against thy neighbour, seeing he dwelleth securely by thee.

            30. Strive not with a man without cause, if he have done thee no harm.

            The command—withhold not good—is naturally followed by the

forbidding to do evil. The treachery here rebuked was a scandal even

to a heathen.†  It is generally abhorred by the world, and should be

doubly hated by a godly man. With him all should be clear and open

as the day.  An evil device against a neighbour, from whatever cause, is

a cursed sin. (Chap. vi. 14-18. Deut. xxvii. 24. Ps. xxxv. 20; lv. 20.

Jer. xviii. 18-20.) But to take occasion from confidence reposed,

betrays "the wisdom that descendeth not from above—devilish."

(Jam. iii. 15.) Such was the craft of Jacob's sons against the unsus-

pecting Shechemites (Gen. xxxiv. 13-29; xlix. 5-7); Saul's malice

against David, when under his protection (1 Sam. xviii. 22-26); Joab's

murder of Abner and Amasa (2 Sam. iii. 27; xx. 9, 10); Israel's of

Gedaliah. (Jer. xli. 1, 2.) No trial cuts so keenly. (Ps. lv. 12-14.)

This was one of the bitters in the Saviour's cup of suffering. (John,

xiii. 21, with Ps. xli. 9; Matt. xxvi. 46-50). And many a wounded

spirit has been cheered by his sympathy with this poignant sorrow.

(Heb. iv. 15.)

            Yet we must guard not only against secret malice, but against

causeless strivings. A propensity to embroil ourselves in quarrels

(Chap. xvii. 14; xviii. 6 ; xxv. 8, 9) kindles strife, instead of following

the rule of peace. (Born. xii. 18.) This spirit is a great hindrance to

holiness (Heb. xii. 14. Col. iii. 12-15), and inconsistent with a true

servant of God. (2 Tim. ii. 24.) Irritable persons, strongly insist upon

their rights, or what they conceive to be due to them from others. "Is

there not"—say they—"a cause?" But impartial observers fre-

quently judge it to be striving without cause; that no harm has been

done; none at least to justify the breach of love; that more love on

one hand, and more forbearance on the other, would have prevented

the breach; that "there is utterly a fault--Why do ye not rather

take wrong?" (1 Cor. vi. 1-7.) How valuable is a close application

 

   * Dr. South's caustic application may be wholesome probing--"Was ever the hungry

fed, or the naked clothed, with good looks or fair speeches? These are but thin garments

to keep out the cold, and but a slender repast to conjure down the rage of a craving appe-

tite. My enemy, perhaps, is ready to starve; and I tell him I am heartily glad to see him,

and should be very ready to serve him. But still my hand is closed, and my purse shut.

I neither bring him to my table, nor lodge him under my roof. He asks for bread, and I

give him a compliment—a thing indeed not so hard as a stone, but altogether as dry. I

treat him with art and outside, and lastly, at parting, with all the ceremonial of dearness,

I shake him by the hand, but put nothing into it. I play with his distress, and daily

with that which was not to be dallied with—want, and misery, and a clamorous

necessity.'—Sermon on Matt. v. 44.

   † 'Fallere eum, qui laesus non esset, nisi credidisset.'—CICERO, pro Roscio.


40        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

of the self-denying law of Christ! (Such as Matt. v. 39-41.) How

earnestly should we seek from himself his own meek and loving spirit!

(1 Pet. ii. 21–23.)  '0 Lord, pour into our hearts that most excellent

gift of charity, the very bond of peace, and of all virtues without

which, whosoever liveth is counted dead before thee:*

 

31. Envy thou not the oppressor (a man of violence, marg.) and choose

            none of his ways. 32. For the froward is an abomination to the Lord;

            but his secret is with the righteous.

            What is there--we might ask--to envy in the oppressor? The love

of power is a ruling passion; and the slave of his own will enjoys a

brutish pleasure in tyranny. Yet little reason have we to envy him,

much less to choose his ways. (Chap. xxiv. 1. Eccles. iv. 1.) Can he

be happy, going froward in his way, in perverse contradiction to the

will of the Lord? with the frown of Heaven?  'For he who hateth

nothing that he hath made, abhors those who have thus marred them-

selves. They are not only abominable, but, ‘an abomination in his

sight.’†  Really to be envied, or rather ardently, to be desired, is the lot

of the righteous, enriched with the secret of the Lord--"his covenant and

fatherly affection, which is hid and secret from the world."‡  Sinners are

an abomination. Saints are his delight. ‘They are God's friends, to

whom he familiarly imparts, as men used to do to their friends, his

mind and counsels, or his secret favour and comforts, to which other

men are strangers.'§  Communion with himself (John, xiv. 21–23);

peace (Phil. iv. 6, 7); joy (Chap. xiv. 10); assurance (Rev. ii. 17);

teaching (Matt. xi. 25; xiii. 11–17; xvi. 17. John, vii. 17. 1 Cor. ii.

12, 15); confidence (John, xv. 15); an enlightened apprehension of

providence (Gen. xviii. 17, 18. Ps. cvii. 43); yea, all the blessings of

his covenant (Ps. xxv. 14)—this is the secret between God and the

soul, an enclosed portion, hidden from the world, sealed to his beloved

people. Here then--child of God--a dwell in the secret place of the

Most High." (Ib. xci. 1.) If he hath given to thee the knowledge of

himself, and of thine interest in him; and to the froward oppressor only

worldly advantage; is it not the seal of his love to thee, and rejection

of him? Is it not infinitely more to dwell on high with thy God, than

in the vain pomp of an ungodly world? (Ib. lxXxiv. 10.)

 

33. The curse of the Lord is in the house of the wicked; but he blesseth the

            habitation of the just.

            The contrast between the sinner and the saint, affects us not only

 

    * Collect for Quinquagesima Sunday. 1 Cor. xiii. 4-7.

    † HENRY in loco, chap. vi. 14-18; xi. 20; xv. 9. Mic. i. 1, 2. See the Lord's open

judgment, Exod. ix. 16; xiv. 28. Isa. xxxvii. 21-38. Acts, xii. 1, 2, 23.

    ‡Reformers' Notes.

    § POOL’S Annotations, 'He loves them dearly as his intimste friends, to whom he com-

municates the very secrets of his heart.'—DIODATI.


                                                  CHAP. III. 33.                                          41

 

personally, but relatively. The curse or blessing of the Lord follows us

to our homes. Shall we then envy the wicked, with his cup of earthly

joy filled to the brim? The curse of the Lord is in his house (Mal. ii. 2)

— a "curse that never cometh causeless." (Chap. xxvi. 2.) Let him

think —'It is my Maker's curse--how awful, that my being and my

curse should come from the same sacred source!'  It is not the impo-

tent wishing of ill. Could we trace its deadly work, we should see the

man wasting, withering, consuming under it. Observe "the roll in the

house of the thief, and of the swearer—twenty cubits long"— a long

catalogue of woes; "flying"—to mark its swiftness; "remaining in

the midst of the house; consuming it even with the timbers and stones

thereof." (Zech. v. 1-4.) Is this an idle dream?  Surely— but for the

blindness of the heart, the wicked would see the naked sword hanging

by a hair over his head, or the awful "hand-writing upon the wall,"

solemnly proclaiming —"There is no peace— saith my God— unto

the wicked." (Dan. v. 5, 6. Isa. lvii. 21.) Vainly will the proud worm

resist. Ahab multiplied his house beyond all human average, as if to

set at defiance the curse pronounced against it. Yet at one stroke all

were swept away. (1 Kings, xxi. 20-22. 2 Kings, x. 1-11.) Similar

instances* abundantly prove whose words shall stand — man's or

God's. (Jer. xliv. 28.) "Who hath hardened himself against him, and

prospered? Who hath resisted his will?" (Job ix. 4. Rom. ix. 19.)

            But bright is the sunshine of the just. Not only is the secret of the

Lord with their souls, but his blessing on their habitation. And when he

blesseth, who can reverse it? (Num. xxiii. 20. Job xxxiv. 29.)  Many

a homely cottage, tenanted by a child of Abraham, shines more splen-

didly than the princely palace of the ungodly.†  An heir of glory

dwells here. A family altar of prayer and praise consecrates it as the

temple of Jehovah. (Gen. xii. 8.) Promises, like clouds of blessings,

rest over it. God has been honoured, and God will honour. (2 Sam.

vi. 11. Jer. xxxv. 18, 19. 2 Tim. i. 18.)  "They that dwell under his

shadow shall return." (Hos. xiv. 7.) Is then my house under the curse

or blessing of the Lord?  Let my God be honoured in his own gifts: that

I and mine may be manifestly sealed with the full tokens of his love.

 

34. Surely he scorneth the scorners: but he giveth grace unto the lowly.

            Two Apostles have combined with the wise man, to set out this

rule of the Divine government.‡ On no point is the mind of God more

fully declared than against pride — the spirit of scorning. It displaces

 

   * JEROBOAM: 1 Kings, xiv. 9—11; Amos, vii. 9. BAASHA: 1 Kings, xvi. 1-4, 12, 113.

JEHU: 2 Kings, xv. 8-12. Hos. I. 4. HAZAEL: Amos, i. 4. JEHOIAKIM: Jer. xxii. 13-19.

CONIAH: Ib. 24-30. ESAU: Obad. 18. Comp. chap. xiv. 11; xv. 25.

   † Job, xxix. 4. Isa. iv 5. Enqa kai oi qeoi. ‘The gods are within’— said the Heathen

philosopher of his poor cottage.—F. TAYLOR in loco.

   ‡ James, iv. 6. 1 Peter, v. 5.—The exact quotation of the LXX. save the substitution of


42            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

man, and would, if possible, displace God himself. Jealous therefore of

his own glory, he sets himself in battle array, as against the usurper of

his prerogative, the rebel against his dominion.*  Witness the Babel-

builders (Gen. xi. 1–9); Pharaoh (Exod. xiv. 13); Sennacherib (Isa.

xxxvii. 33–38); the proud opposers of his Gospel (Ps. ii. 1–4)--all the

objects of his scorn. But most hateful to him is the sinner, that will not

submit to his righteousness, that scorns the corner-stone of salvation.

How fearfully does it then become "a rock of offence," of eternal ruin!

(Rorn. x. 3, with ix. 32, 33. Matt. xxi. 41–44.)  Surely without doubt,

without way of escape from his frown, he scorneth the scorners.

            A lowly spirit--a deep conviction of utter nothingness and guilt--

is a most adorning grace. Nor is it an occasional or temporary feeling,

the result of some unexpected hateful disclosure, but an habit, "cloth-

ing" the man (1 Pet. v. 5) "from the sole of the foot to the head." It

combines the highest elevation of joy with the deepest abasement of

spirit. And those who sink the lowest, stand nearest to the most

exalted advancement. For "he that scorneth the scorners, giveth grace to

the lowly"—"more grace" (Jam. iv. 6), till his work is perfected in

them. ‘He pours it out plentifully upon humble hearts. His sweet

dews and showers of grace slide off the mountains of pride, and fall on

the low valleys of humble hearts, and make them pleasant and fertile.' †

The centurion (Matt. viii. 5–10); the Canaanite (Ib. xv. 21–28); the

penitent (Luke, vii. 44–50); the publican (Ib xviii. 13, 14); such as

these are the objects of his favour. (Isa. lxvi. 2.)  Their hearts are his

dwelling-place. (Ib. lvii. 15.) Their inheritance is his kingdom.

(Matt. v. 3.) The soul, swelling with its proud fancies, has no room

for his humbling grace. Blessed exchange of the little idol of self-

esteem for Him; who alone has the right! when even his own graces

are only desired, as instruments to set out his glory.

 

35. The wise shall inherit glory: but shame shall be the promotion of fools,

                                    (exalteth the fools, marg.)

            This is the last contrast drawn to restrain our envy at the prosperity

of the wicked. (Verse 31.) It carries us forward to the coming day,

when all shall "discern" in the full light of eternity. (Mal. iii. 18.) The

wise--the heirs of glory--are identified with the lowly (Verse 34; xi. 2)

—the heirs of grace. Self-knowledge--the principle of lowliness--

is the very substance of wisdom. Their inheritance also is one--grace

and glory. (Ps. lxxxiv. 11.) For what higher glory can there be than

 

qeoj for Kurioj.  ‘The Apostle's quotation of this passage, though somewhat different in

the words, is the same in the sense with the original. For scorners in Scripture are proud,

insolent, wicked men. And to resist such persons, by rendering their schemes abortive, and

by humbling them, is emphatically called a scorning of them.'--MACKNIGHT on James, iv. 6.

   * antitassetai,  LXX.

    † Leighton on 1 Pet. v. 5. Compare also on Chap. iii. 8.


                                         CHAP. IV. 1, 2.                                            43

 

the grace, which “hath redeemed” a vile worm of, the earth, "and made

him a king and priest unto God?" (Rev. v. 9, 10.) Oh! let the re-

deemed cherish honourable thoughts of their present glory. Be careful

to clear it from the defilement and degradation of the world's dust, and

enjoy it in adoring praise to Him, who hath chosen thee to this so un-

deserved grace. (Ib. i. 5, 6.)

            But who can tell the glory, of the after inheritance—not like this

world's glory—the shadow of a name; but real, solid; ‘an infinite

gain, in the exchange of dross for down-weight of pure gold.’*  All

occasion of sin and temptation is shut out for ever; ‘The tree of know-

ledge shall be without enclosure. There shall be neither lust, nor

forbidden fruit; no withholding of desirable knowledge, nor affectation

of undesirable. The glorified spirits touch nothing that can defile, and

defile nothing they touch.'†  But after all, the glory of this glory will

be communion and likeness with our Lord---"to be with him—to

behold his glory." (John, xvii. 24. 1 John, iii. 2.) We need not pry too

minutely. Thus much is clear. The value of our inheritance is beyond

all price; its happiness unspeakable; its security unchangeable; its

duration eternity. The wise shall inherit glory. "They that be wise

shall shine as the brightness of the firmament forever and ever." (Dan.

xii. 3. Matt. xiii. 43.)

            Oh! will not the fools then discover the vanity of this world's

glory, too late to, make a wise choice? Shame is their present fruit.

(Chap. xiii. 18; x. 9.) Honour even now sits unseemly upon them.

(Chap. xxvi. 1.) But "what fruit will eternity bring" of those things,

whereof they will "then be ashamed?" (Rom. vi, 21.) Truly shame

will be their promotion. Their fame will be infamous, their disgrace

conspicuous; lifting them up, like Haman upon his elevated gallows

(Esther, vii. 9)—'a gazing-stock to the, world.' How solemn and

complete will be the great separation for eternity!  "Many that sleep

in the dust of the earth shall awake; some to everlasting life, and some to

shame and everlasting contempt." (Dan. xii. 2.)

 

                                             CHAPTER IV.

 

1. Hear, ye children, the instruction of a father, and attend to know under-

standing.  2. For I give you good doctrine, forsake ye not my law.

 

SURELY these frequent repetitions are as the angel's visit to the prophet

—"waking him, as a man that is wakened out of his sleep." (Zech. iv. 1.)

A mind like Solomon's, "large even as the sand that is on the sea-

shore" (1 Kings, iv. 29), might readily have made every sentence a

 

   * Leighton on 1 Pet. v. 10.

    † Howe's Blessedness of the Righteous. Chap. v. xi.


44         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

fresh discovery of his knowledge. But more suitable to our sluggish

and forgetful heart is "the word of the Lord, precept upon precept."

(Isa. xxviii. 13.) Children are often bereft of destitute of a parental

instructor. Here these orphans are taken up, and called to hear the

instruction of a father. For truly does the wise man, like the Apostle

in after days, "exhort and charge, as a father cloth his children."

(1 Thess. ii. 11.)

            Solomon evidently speaks from the mouth of God, declaring his

doctrine--his law. Therefore he claims attention to know understanding,

for I give you good doctrine. (Eccles. xii. 9-11.) To many, exciting

(Ezek. xxxiii. 31, 32), curious and speculative (2 Tim. iv. 3, 4),

compromising (Isa. xxx. 10. Jer. v. 31), self-righteous, self-exalting

doctrine (Gal. i. 6, 7), is more attractive. But--young people!—

remember—that which humbles the soul before God; that which

exhibits the free grace of the Gospel; which melt’s down the will,

consecrates the heart, imbues' with the spirit of the cross--however

unpalatable to the flesh—is alone good doctrine for the soul. Therefore

forsake it not. Do not be carried away with the senseless cry,--’Every-

body thinks contrary.' What is the judgment of the mass of mankind

worth on the great subject of religion? "This their way is their folly."

This is God's stamp upon man's "saying," however applauded and

"approved" by successive generations. (Ps. xlix. 13.) Shall this world's

judgment be preferred to the word of God?" The morning" of the

resurrection will reflect the glory of eternity upon the choice of the

narrow path. (Ib. v. 14.)

 

3. For I was my father's son, tender and only beloved in the sight of my

            mother. 4. He taught me also, and said unto me, Let thine heart

            retain my words: keep my commandments, and live. 5. Get wisdom,

            get understanding; forget it not; neither decline from the words of my

            mouth. 6. Forsake her not, and she shall preserve thee: love her, and

            she shall keep thee. 7. Wisdom is the principal thing; therefore get

            wisdom; and with all thy getting, get understanding. 8. Exalt her, and

            she shall promote thee: she shall bring thee to honour, when thou dost

            embrace her. 9. She shall give to thine head to ornament of grace; a

            crown of glory shall she deliver to thee.

            Solomon here claims our attention as a teacher of youth, on account

of his own godly education by such a father. He was a tender child

(1 Chron. xxii. 5: xxix. 1), well-beloved, as an only son.*  The more

dearly he was loved, the more carefully was he taught. Thus we are

brought into the family of "the man after God's heart," to hear him

 

    * Not really the only son. 2 Sam. v. 14. 1 Chron. iii. 5. Thus Isaac was called the only

son (i.e. most beloved), when Ishmael was another son: Gen, xxii. 2, 12, 19, with xvii. 19.

So the Church is called "the only one—the choice"—implying others, out of which the choice

was made. Cant. vi. 9.

                                    CHAP. IV. 3-9.                                           45

 

"commanding his child" in the fear and service Of the Lord. (Comp.

also 1 Kings, ii. 2-4; 1 Chron. xxii. 6-16; xxviii. 9, 10, 20. Comp. Gen.

xviii. 19. Deut. vi. 7.) A special mercy is it to us, if we can tell of an

Abraham or a David—of a Lois or an Eunice, having taught and bound

us to the ways of God! (2 Tim. i. 5; iii. 14, 15.) Parents remember,

a child untaught will be a living shame. (Chap. xxix. 15.) Training

discipline, not foolish indulgence, is the truest evidence of affection to

our tender and beloved ones. (Chap. xiii. 24; with 1, Kings, i. 6.)

            But let us examine this beautiful specimen of parental instruction.*

Observe the anxiety for his son's heart-religion. Let thine heart retain my

words. Often (and this is a comfort to a weak memory) words may be

lost to the memory, yet practically retained in the heart. This heart-

keeping is the path of life (Verse 13; vi. 23; viii. 34, 35. Isa. lv. 3.

Zech. iii. 7), without which all is dead. Observe again, the extreme

earnestness of the exhortation. Many a parent, like Augustine's father,†

insists—‘Get wealth, worldly honour, or wisdom.’  This godly parent

inculcates "line upon line"— Get heavenly wisdom; get it with all thy

getting--at any cost and pains (Chap. xxiii. 23. Comp. 1, Kings, x. 1;

Matt. xii. 42), as the principal thing; and when thou,hast got it--forget

it not—decline not from it—forsake it not‡—love§--embrace--exalt

—her. Such a keeping is she for thy soul! (Chap. 10-18.) Such a

treasure for thy happiness! Such a promoting honour even in this life!

Such an ornament of grace in the Church! Such, a crown of glory in

heaven! This is not the style of a cold pleader, enforcing with decent

seriousness some unimportant truth. It is the father, feeling that his

child's soul is perishing, unless it be taught and led in wisdom's ways.

Parents! do we know this stirring concern, anxiously looking out for

the first dawn of light upon our child's soul? Do we eagerly point

out to him wisdom as the principal thing, to be gotten first (Matt. vi. 33.)

Is it our own first choice, infinitely above this world's glitter (1 Kings,

iii. 5-12. Phil. iii. 7, 8); not only important, but all-important? It

can have no place, if it has not the first place. If it be anything, it will

be everything. Earthly wisdom may be "a goodly pearl." But this

"wisdom from above is the pearl of great price;" worth getting

 

   * Where David's instruction begins, is obvious. Where it ends, is not so clear—Whether

it be ver. 6, 10, 12, or 13 ; or as F. Taylor asserts, at the close of the ninth chapter. But as

Geier observes—'Let the reader form his own judgment; provided that we pay due obedi-

ence to the instruction, it matters little, whether we have it in the words of David or

Solomon.'

    † Of whom he records —'This father of mine never troubled himself with any thought

of— How I might improve myself towards thee, so that I proved eloquent, though I were

withal left undrest by thy tillage.'— Confess. ii. 3.

    ‡ See the great importance of this continuance, John, viii. 30, 31. Col. i. 22, 23. Heb.

iii. 6, 14, contrasted with Matt. xiii. 20, 21.

    § Thus Jerome wrote to a friend —'Beg now for me, who am grey-headed, of the Lord,

that I may have Wisdom for my companion, of which it is written—‘Love her, and she shall

keep thee.’"

 

46        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

indeed; but only to be got, by "selling all that we have, to buy it."

(Matt. xiii. 45, 46.)

 

10. Hear, 0 my son, and receive my sayings; and the years of thy life shall

            be many. 11. I have taught thee in the ways of wisdom;  I have led

            thee in right paths. 12. When thou goes, thy steps shall not be

            straitened; and when thou runnest, thou shalt not stumble. 13. Take

            fast hold of instruction: let her not go: keep her; for she is thy life.

            It is instructive to see a king (whether David or Solomon) not for-

getting in the midst of his royal cares his domestic responsibilities.

We are told—'Youth will have its swing.' ‘So’--adds an old Com-

mentator solemnly—'it may—to hell.'*  For where else can a way-

ward will lead? Let us see the need of guidance of every step, both

to take and to avoid. The ways of wisdom assure a happy life in the

favour of God. (1 Tim. iv. 8, with chap. iii. 1, 2.  Ps. xxxiv. 12–14.

1 Pet. iii. 10–12.) And what rest to the parent's conscience on the death-

bed will be the recollection of children, not brought up for the world,

but taught in these ways! Yet this cannot be, if the rod, when needed,

has been spared; if the will has been indulged; the love of the world

cherished. This will be--if godly discipline has been exercised; if

the Bible has been laid down as the rule of lifer if habits of prayer, love

to the service of God, fellowship with his people, have been encouraged.

The path, though rough and sometimes lonely, is a right path, and a path

of liberty. (Ps. cxix. 32, 45.) The single eye will preserve a steady

walk. (Chap. x. 9. Isa. xlviii. 17, 18. Matt. Vii. 22.) Thou shalt run,

and shalt not stumble. (Chap. iii. 21–26. Hos. xiv. 9.)

            And yet the animated exhortation to take fast hold, shows the

struggle necessary to retain our principles. Feeble, indeed, is our hold,

when connected merely with the excitement of novelty (Matt. xiii. 20, 21),

temporary convictions (Ps. lxxviii. 34–36; cvi. 12, 13), the restraint of

education (2 Chron. xii. 1; xxiv. 2, 15–18), unestablished knowledge

(Gal. iii. 1–4), or the indulgence of sin. (Mark, vi. 18–26.) Truths

received only in the understanding, not becoming the daily nourish-

ment of the soul, never fix on the heart. The fast hold of instruction is

by a personal living faith; including an intense interest, and persever-

ing pursuit; "continuing in the things which we have heard and been

assured of;" cleaving with purpose of heart unto the Lord. (2 Tim.

iii. 14. Acts, xi. 23; ii. 42.) As Jacob detained the angel (Gen.

xxxii. 26–29); as the spouse held fast hold of her Beloved (Cant. iii. 4);

as the disciples "constrained the Saviour to abide with them" (Luke,

xxiv. 28, 29)—So—young Christian—let her not go, Keep her, as the

man "for joy" guarded his precious treasure. (Matt. xiii. 44.) So let

thy heavenly treasure stand above every earthly blessing. Thus will

                 

                                             * Taylor.

 

 

                                        CHAP. IV. 14-17                                       47

 

it be thy life. (Chap. iii. 18. Eccles. vii. 12.) And while others "turn

back, and walk no more" in the way, thine heart will turn to its only

spring of happiness—"Lord, to whom shall I go? ''Thou hast the words

of eternal life." (John, vi. 67-69.)

 

14. Enter not into the path of the wicked, and go not in the way of evil men.

            15. Avoid it, pass not by it, turn from it, and pass away. 16. For

            they sleep not, except they have done mischief: and their sleep is taken

            away, unless they cause some to fall. 17. For they eat the bread of

            wickedness, and drink the wine of violence.

            How often does fellowship with the wicked loosen the fast hold of

instruction! Their path is so contrary to the way of instruction, that

the very entrance into it is forsaking the way of God. Their character

is here drawn in their Father's image—first sinners, then, tempters.

Mischief is their meat and drink. (Job, xv. 16. Ps. xiv. 4.)  'To do

evil is more proper and natural than to sleep, eat, or drink.'*   With

sleepless eagerness do they pursue their work (Job, xxiv. 15, 16. Ps.

xxxvi. 4. Mic. ii. 1), caring little for any lengths of violence, so that

they do mischief, or cause some to fall. (Chap. i. 10-14, 16; ii. 14; xxiv. 2.

Ps. x. 8. 2 Pet. ii. 14.) Judas with his midnight torches (John, xviiii. 3);

the early morning assemblage of the Jewish rulers (Luke, xxii. 66); the

frenzied vow of the enemies of Paul;† and many a plot in after ages

against the Church—all vividly pourtray this unwearied wickedness.

Yet if we be preserved from this undisguised malignity, what are

all the allurements for every rank and circumstance of life, but the more

subtle poison of the murderer? A light-minded young person pours

into his companion's ear—simple and inexperienced in the ways of

sin—perhaps filthy conversation; or presents before him images of

lasciviousness. What but a rooted principle of grace can save his

unsuspecting victim? Or again—the venomous infidel, intent upon

"spoiling" (Col. ii. 8) his fellow-creature of his most precious treasure,

drops into his bosom the repetition of the first lie (Gen. iii. 4.) No

principle appears to be given up, no fundamental doctrine denied; yet

the foundation of an unwavering confidence is shaken to pieces. And

is not this mischief and violence as the murderer's stab?

            Surely then it is mercy, that forbids needless intercourse with the

evil man. (Eph. v. 11.) With a constitution prone to evil, when the

alternative is, whether we shall shun or dare the danger, can we doubt

our path? The whole Scripture is on the side or caution, to hazard

nothing, except on a plain call of Providence. ' Because we are free,

 

    * Reformers' Notes.

    † Acts, xxiii. 12.    Such a spirit is graphically described by the Classics:—

            Et si non aliqua nocuisses, mortuus esses. —VIRGIL, Eclog. iii. 15.

                 Ergo non aliter poterit dormire; quibusdam

                 Somnum rixa facit. —JUVENAL, Sat. iii. 278-202.


48            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

we may not run wild.’*  Half our virtue we owe to being out of the

way of temptation. Observe how the wise man heaps up his words—

Enter not into the path—no—not so much as set thy foot into it. If

some accident throws thee into it, go not on in it; avoid it with detesta-

tion.†  Pass not by it, lest thou shouldest unwittingly turn in. (Chap. v. 8.)

Not only avoid it when near, but avoid nearness to it. It is like living

in the atmosphere of contagion, in the midst of virulent and fatal dis-

ease. The earnest repetition of the warning shows at once the imminency

of the danger, and the certainty of the injury. The world around us is

the action of mind upon mind. We are continually, through the

medium of intercourse, moulding ourselves by other minds, and other

minds by our own. Intercourse with the ungodly must, therefore, be

fraught with fatal contamination. (1 Cor. xv. 33. Ps. cvi. 35. Chap.

xxii. 24, 25.) The occasions, the company, the borders of temptation

-- all must be avoided. (Chap. ix. 10, 15. Gen. xxxi. 9, 10.)

            Young people are apt to plead with those who have the charge of

their best interests--'What harm is there in this or that path?'  Apart

from other evils--this is plain. It is a contagious atmosphere. You

are drinking in poison. It is far more easy to shun the occasion of

sin, than the sin when the occasion presents it; to resist the begin-

nings, than the progress, of sin. There must, therefore, be no tam-

pering with it; no trial of strength, to see how far our resolutions will

keep us. Let the examples of Lot (Gen. xiii; 10-13; xiv. 12), Dinah

(Gen. xxxiv. 1, 2), Solomon (1 Kings, xi. 1-5), Peter (Matt. xxvi. 58,

69-74), warn us, how far only the entrance into the path of the wicked

may carry us; lengths that we could never have contemplated in pro-

spect without horror. It may appear an harmless outset. But how far

on? The entrance is fatally connected with the next step onward. The

frightful extent of the probability of falling might make the boldest

tremble. Those at least, that know their own corruption and weak-

ness, will shrink back, where you tread lightly. Here and there, in-

deed, there may be some special miracle of preservation. But no one

comes out of the path without hurt (2 Chron. xviii. 1–3; xix. 2; xx.

35–37); and the general issue is an open door to ruin. To pretend to

dread sin without fearing temptation, is self-delusion. Satan has too

nearly allied them for us to separate them. The evil company is loved,

then the evil of the company.‡  To pray "not to be led into tempta-

 

    * Bishop HALL'S Contempl. B. xv. 3.                  † LEIGH'S Critica Sacra. See CARTWRIGHT.

Eusebius mentions a young man, whom St. John committed to the special charge of

the Bishop of Ephesus; but who by evil company was drawn away to be a captain of rob-

bers. until St. John went after him, and brought him back. B. iii. c. 20.--Augustine's

recollections of his youthful theft was—'By myself alone I would not have done it. It was

the company that I loved, with whom I did it.' He adds —'O nimis iniqua amicitia!'

When they said—'Come, let us go and do it, I was ashamed not to be as shameless as

they.'— Confess. Lib. ii. 8, 9.


                                             CHAP. IV. 18.                                        49

 

Lion;" yet not to "watch, that we enter not into it"-- is practically to

contradict our prayers; to mock our God, by asking for what we do

not heartily wish. "Walk then with God and with his people, separate

from an ungodly world." (Chap. ix. 6. 2 Cor. vi. 17.) Yet do not

presume upon safety, even in separation from the ungodly. The whole

tempting world may be presented to your imagination. The unsearch-

able deceitfulness of the heart may bear fearfully upon you. The

tempter may in solitude, as with our Lord, put forth his special power.

(Matt. iv. 1.) Walk closely with God in secret, and he will spread his

almighty covering over you for your security. Avoid fellowship with

them, who hinder your fellowship with God. (Ps. cxix. 63, 1.14, 115,

also xvii. 4; xxvi. 4, 5.)

 

18. The path of the just is as the shining light, that shineth more and more

                                           unto the perfect day.

            This is a fine contrast of the Christian's path of light with the dark

and dangerous path of the wicked. It is not the feeble wasting light of

a taper, nor the momentary blaze of the meteor; but the grand lumi-

nary of heaven, "coming out of his chamber, and rejoicing as a strong

man to run his race" (Ps. xix. 5), from earliest dawn to his noon-day

glory. And a beautiful sight it is, to see the Christian thus rising out

of darkness; not indeed with'uniform brightness, but deepening from

the first faint beginning of his course; rising higher and higher;

widening his circle; advancing onward with increasing brightness unto

the perfect day. Knowledge, faith, love, holiness; irradiate every step.

It is at first but a glimmering ray, the first dawn of day. He does not

come at once into the "marvellous light." There is much--often

long-continued—struggle with his own wisdom and self-righteousness.

And even when brought to a simple dependence on the great work of

Christ, it is long ere he sees the fitness and proportion of its several

parts, providing for the honour of every perfection of God, as well as

the supply of every want of Man. Long also is it, ere he marks the

just balance of promise and precept; the sure connection between

justification and sanctification; the accurate arrangement, by which,

while we are not saved by works, we cannot be saved without them;

and while we work of ourselves, our strength and trust is in another.

Nor is it at the outset that we discern the identity of happiness with

conformity to Christ, and find heaven in communion with God, and

consecration to his service. Thus also, in the indistinct beginning of

the course, sin lies within a narrow compass. It includes little besides

the grosser enormities. Many things are thought harmless, which the

spiritual law condemns. But as the line becomes more marked, old

habits and associations, hitherto unsuspected, become convicted by a

clearer light, and are ultimately relinquished. It is in this path that


50           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

as the Christian "follows on," the eye is more unveiled (Hos. vi. 3.

Comp. Mark, viii. 22-25), the heart more enlightened, the truth more

vividly impressed upon the conscience, the "understanding" more

quick in "the fear of the Lord," the taste more discerning between

good and evil. Faith now becomes more strong in the Saviour's love,

more simple in the promises of God.

            Obviously also love will increase as light expands. In proportion

to knowledge of our sinfulness and ruin must be the gratitude for the

remedy. The view of heaven — in proportion to the clearness of our

apprehension of it--must enlarge our love to him, who has obtained

our title to it. Thus our knowledge converts itself into a motive,

expanding our love more widely to all the legitimate objects of it. We

cannot, indeed, always compare its warmth at different periods. But

knowledge and love, like the light and heat, must go together under

the beams of knowledge; subjection to the Redeemer's sceptre becomes

more unreserved; love rises to a higher estimation, to a closer union

with him, to a more intimate complacency in him. Experience may

be confused. But light will clear away the mists. Practice in some

points may be inconsistent. But the advances, however weak, will be

sure. "Beholding as in a glass the glory of the Lord, we are changed

into his image from glory to glory, even as by the Spirit of the Lord."

(2 Cor. iii. 18. Job, xvii. 9. Ps. lxxxiv. 7.) Such is the path of the just.

The devout Nathanael was cheered with the promise of a brighter day.

(John, i. 46-51.) The clouds on the minds of the Apostles gradually

melted away before a brighter sun. (Mark, vi. 52; x. 35; xvi. 14, with

John, xvi. 13; Acts, ii.) The Eunuch and Cornelius, sincerely seek-

ing, rejoiced in the full sunshine of Gospel light. (Acts, viii. 27-39; x.)

The Thessalonian Church shone more and more with Christian graces.

(1 Thess. i. 3. 2 Thess. i. 3.)

            But is this shining light the picture of my path? There is no com-

mand given—"Sun, stand thou still." (Josh. x. 12.) Therefore it re-

bukes a stationary profession. It is a rising and advancing, not a

declining, sun. Therefore it rebukes a backsliding state. It, is not

necessary that every thing should be perfect at once. There may be an

occasional cloud, or even (as in the cases of David and Peter) a tempo-

rary eclipse. But when did the sun fail of carrying its early dawn unto

perfect day? Despise not, then, "the day of small things." (Zech. iv.

10.) But be not satisfied with it. Aim high, and you will reach nearer

the mark. A fitful, fluctuating course, instead of illustrating this beau-

tiful figure, throws around the profession a saddening uncertainty.

Religion must be a shining and progressive light. We must not mis-

take the beginning for the end of the course. We must not sit down

on the entry, and say to our soul—"Soul—take thine ease." There

is no point, where we may repose with complacency, as if there were no


                                          CHAP. IV. 19.                                          51

 

loftier heights, which it was our duty to climb. Christian perfection is

the. continual aiming at perfection. (Sep Phil. iii. 12-15.) Let us

hasten on to the perfect day, when the path of the just shall be eternally

consummated; when ‘they shall come to full perfection, which is --

when they shall be joined to their Head in the heavens.’*  "Then

shall they shine forth as the sun in the kingdom of their Father."

(Matt. xiii. 43.) And yet even here will not the path of eternity, no

less than of time, be shining more and more?  Shall we not be exploring

that unsearchable "height, and depth, and length, and breadth, that

passeth knowledge," until we be filled with all the fulness o God?"

(Eph. iii. 18, 19.)  Will not light therefore he more glorious, and love

more full of praise and adoration? Yes, surely, the world of eternity

will be one perfect day of ever-increasing light and joy.  "Their sun

shall no more go down--for the Lord shall be their everlasting light.

The city had no need of the sun, neither of the moon, to shine in it,

for the glory of the Lord did lighten it, and the Lamb is the light

thereof." †

           

19. The way of the wicked is as darkness; they know not at what they

                                               stumble.

            The contrast is more clearly repeated.‡  Each has his own way.

The path of the just is glowing light and joy.  The way of the wicked is

darkness; without direction, comfort, safety, or peace, till "his feet at

last stumble on the dark mountains;" till he falls into "the blackness

of darkness for ever." (Jer. xiii. 16. Jude, 13. Comp. Job, xviii. 5, 6,

18.) His way is not only dark, but as darkness, a compound of igno-

rance, error, sin, and misery. The love of sin "rebels against the

light." (Job, xxiv. 13. John, iii. 19. Comp. Isa. v. 20.) The darkness

is wilful, and therefore accountable. There is no stumbling in the path

of the just. So far as he is upright, the Lord keeps him. (Verse 12;

iii. 23. Ps. xci. 11, 12.) The wicked go on, "groping on as if they had

no eyes" (Isa. lix. 10); hurrying on blindly into misery, that they can

neither foresee nor avoid. (Job, v. 14; xii. 25. Jer. xxiii. 12. Zeph. i.

17.) They know not at what they stumble. Oh! if they did, would they

not startle, and shrink back? For they stumble on the very foundation

of the Gospel! making the rock of salvation a rock of offence. (Rom. ix.

32, 33. 1 Pet. ii. 8.)  Would they but listen to the merciful warning

 

   * Reformers' Notes. Comp. Diodati in loco.

   † Isa. Ix. 20. Rev. xxi. 23. The LXX. version is very beautiful—‘The ways of the

righteous shine like the light; they go on shining, until the day be perfected.' Dr. Watts'

Hymn on the Summer Evening—written for the infant mind, but glowing to the finest

taste— furnishes a most exquisite exposition of this verse,

                   'How fine has the day been; how bright was the sun,' &c.

    ‡ See the same contrast drawn by our Lord, Matt. vi . 22, 23. — Schultens considers the

original to express increasing darkness, answering to the increasing light of the opposite

path. Comment. in Prow. 4 to. 1748. Comp. Job, xv. 23.


52            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

of their Lord--"Yet a little time the light is with you: walk while ye

have the light, lest darkness come upon you; for he that walketh in

darkness knoweth not whither he goeth." (John, xii. 35, 36)

 

20. My son, attend to my words; incline thine ear unto my sayings.

            21. Let there not depart from thine eyes: keep them in the midst of

            thine heart. 22. For they are life unto those that find them, and health

            to all their flesh.

            These repeated injunctions (Chap. iii. 1; v. 1; vi. 20, 21; xxii. 17)

are an admirable pattern to the Christian Parent or Minister. The

desire of wisdom, the first step in the path, is encouraged. The means

of obtaining, and the privilege when obtained, are pointed out. Eye,

then, the treasure of wisdom habitually.   A neglected Bible is the

melancholy proof of a heart "alienated from God." For how can we

have a spark of love to him, if that Book, which is the full manifes-

tation of his glory, be despised? And yet a superficial acquaintance

with it is of no avail. If our ears were bored to the doors of the sanc-

tuary; if the words never departed from our eyes; yet, except they were

kept in the heart, our religion would be a notion, not a principle; specu-

lative, not practical; conviction, not love. Nor even here must they

possess the mere threshold. Let the word be kept in the midst of the

heart. Here only can it be operative (Chap. xxiii. 26. Ps. xl. 8;

cxix. 11); "for out of the heart, are the issues of life." (Verse 23.)

Here it becomes lively and substantial truth.  Here, then, let a home be

made for it,* a consecrated sanctuary in the most honoured chambers

of the heart. This inhabitation of the word is a covenant promise ---

the test of our interest in the Lord. (Jer. xxxi. 33.)

            This keeping of the word will be life to those that find it. (Verses 4,

10, 13 ; iii. 18.)  ‘Some medicines are good for one part of the body;

some for another. This is good for all the body, and all the soul.†

Vigorous and healthy (Chap. iii. 8) shall we be, in feeding upon this

heavenly manna. We shall net then bear our religion as our cross---

as a cumbrous appendage. We shall not drag on in Christian duties as

a chain. Godliness will be to us an element of joy. Its functions will

be free and lively. The spirit will be a vital glow. The mind will be

enriched with Divine wisdom. The heart will be established with

gospel grace.

 

23. Keep thy heart with all diligence (above all keeping, marg.); for out

            of it are the issues of life.  24. Put away from thee a froward mouth,

            and perverse lips put far from thee.  25. Let thine eyes look right on,

            and let thine eyelids look straight before thee.  26. Ponder the path

            of thy feet, and let all thy ways be established (all thy ways: shall be

 

      * Enoikei<tw en u[mi?n. Col. iii. 16.                  † Cartwright.


                                      CHAP. IV. 23-27.                                     53

 

            ordered aright, marg.) 27. Turn not to the right hand nor to the left:

            remove thy foot from evil.

            Invaluable are these rules as our safeguard. Assaulted as we are

at every point, every inlet of sin must be strongly guarded — the heart

the mouth — the eye — the feet.

            First—the heart— the citadel of man* — the seat of his dearest

treasure. It is fearful to think of its many watchful and subtle assail-

ants. Let it be closely garrisoned. Let the sentinel be never sleeping

on his post. "Take heed to thy way, and keep thy soul diligently."

(Dent. iv. 9.)

            But the heart must be known in order to be effectually kept. No-

thing is more difficult, while nothing is more necessary. If we know

not our hearts, we know nothing to any purpose. Whatever else we

know, to neglect this knowledge is to be a fool at the best. If we know

not our weak points, Satan knows them well--"the sins that most

easily beset us."

            Then when I know my heart, and feel it to be so dangerous, and in

such dangers, the question forces itself upon me —‘Can I keep my

heart?' Certainly not. But, though it be God's work, it is man's

agency. Our efforts are his instrumentality. He implants an active

principle, and sustains the unceasing exercise. (Phil. ii. 12, 13. Jude,

24 with 21.) Conscious faith "commits the keeping of the heart to our

faithful Creator." (1 Pet. iv. 19. Ps. xxv. 20.) This done—in his

strength and guidance diligently improve all the means of preserva-

tion.  Watch unto prayer. Cherish an humble dependent spirit. Live

in the atmosphere of the word of God. Resist the admittance of an

evil world, even in its most plausible forms. (Judges, viii. 22, 23.

2 Kings, v. 5, 16.) Here lies the conflict to the end. ‘The greatest

difficulty in conversion is to win the heart to God, and after conversion

to keep it with him.'†  'What is there'— asks Mede—‘that will not

entice and allure so fickle a thing as the heart from God?’‡  Above all

keeping — exhorts the wise man — keep thine heart. Here Satan keeps

—here therefore must we keep— special watch. If the citadel be

taken, the whole town must surrender. If the heart be seized, the

whole man— the affections, desires, motives, pursuits—all will be

yielded up. The heart is the vital part of the body. A wound here is

instant death. Thus — spiritually as well as naturally—out of the

heart are the issues of life. It is the great vital spring of the soul, the

fountain of actions, the centre and the seat of principle,§ both of sin

and of holiness. (Matt. xii. 34, 35.) The natural heart is a fountain of

poison. (Ib. xv. 19.) The purified heart is "a well of living water."

(John, iv. 14. Compare chap. xiv. 14.)  As is the fountain, so must be

 

   * Schultens.                     † FLAVEL'S Saint Indeed—a searching and valuable Treatise.

   ‡ See his valuable sermon on this text.                                           § Schultens.


54          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the streams. As is the heart, so must be the mouth, the eyes, the feet.

Therefore, above all keeping, keep thine heart. Guard the fountain, lest

the waters be poisoned. (Comp. Gen. xxvi. 18-21.) Many have been

the bitter moments, from the neglect of this guard. All keeping is

vain, if the heart be not kept.

            But with this keeping, let us not forget to guard the outlets of sin!

(Chap. xiii. 3.) What a world of evil does 'the heart, pour out from the

froward mouth! (Jam. iii. 5, 6.) Commit, therefore, both heart and

mouth to Divine discipline. (Ps. xix. 13 ; cxli. 3, 4.) Then let prayer

and faith be the practical principles of Christian watchfulness. Not

only shun, but put away—yea—far from thee—the perverse lips.

Their evil--be it remembered—extends beyond ourselves. Even

should the peace-speaking blood speak peace to ourselves, still will

remain the painful sense of injury to our fellow-creatures, perhaps

without remedy.

            Next to the heart and mouth—keep thine eyes—"the light of the

body" (Matt. vi. 22), the directive faculty of the soul. Yet too often

are they a most dangerous inlet to sin. (Gen. iii. 6; vi. 2; xxxix. 7.

Matt. v. 28. 2 Pet. ii. 14.) Therefore, like Job, "make a covenant with

them." (Job, xxxi. 1.) Place them under heavenly restraint. (Ps.

cxix. 37.) Let them look right on, 'like one ploughing, who must not

look back.'*  Look straight before us. Had Eve done so, she would

have looked on the command of her God; not on the forbidden tree.

(Gen. iii. 3-6.) Had Lot's wife looked straight before, instead of

behind her," she would, like her husband, have been a monument of

mercy. (Gen. xix. 17, 26.) Achan was ruined by neglecting this rule

of wisdom. (Josh. vii. 21.) David's example calls the holiest of us to

godly jealousy.†  In asking the way to Zion, be sure that your "faces

are thitherward." (Jer. i. 5.) The pleasure of sin, and the seductions of

a tempting world, do not lie in the road. They would not therefore

meet the eye looking right on—straight before us. They belong to the

bye-paths on the right hand and on the left, or to some backward track.

It is only, therefore, when the Christian lingers, turns aside, or turns

back, that they come in sight. Take the racer's motto--"This one

thing I do." Eye the mark, and press to it. (Philip. iii. 12-14.)

Onwards-- upwards—heavenwards.

            Lastly, keep your feet. Oh! has not experience, no less than Scrip-

ture, shown your need of a circumspect walk? (Eph. v. 15.) Snares

are laid out for every path, yea for every step in your path; for your

meat, your think, your calling--perhaps more than all—for the

service of God. What deep pondering should there be in a path so

beset with danger! Every step should be carefully weighed. (Gen.

xxiv. 5. Ps. xxxix. 1. Dan. i. 8; vi. 3, 4.) Joseph pondered, and thereby

 

   * Cartwright. Comp. Luke, ix. 62.                      † 2 Sam. xi. 2. Mede, ut supra.


                                          CHAP. IV. 23-27.                                          55

 

established his way. (Gen. xxxix. 9, 10. Comp. verses 14, 15.) Peter,

neglecting to ponder, was fearfully sifted. (Matt. xxvi. 58, 69-75.)

David also, looking at the trial of the path, instead of pondering its

direction, brought shame upon himself (1 Sam. xxvii.-xxix.); like the

trouble, which Christian made for himself in the smooth exchange of

Bye-path meadow for the rough and strait road. 'The habit of calm

and serious thinking makes the real difference between one man and

another.'"

            Here, then, is the voice of wisdom. Beware of mistaking presump-

tion for faith, temptations for Providential appointments. Never for-

sake a plain for a doubtful command. (1 Kings, xiii. 18-22.) Estimate

every step by its conformity to the known will of God. Dare not to

advance one step without God. (Josh. ix. 14.)   In his path you may

"tread upon the lion and adder" without hurt. (Ps. xci. 11-13.) But

who shall venture into a path of his own choosing, without a wound?

See that "your feet are straight," like those of the Cherubim.†  "The

pleasures of sin" lie on the right hand and on the left. The eyes there-

fore, looking right on, escape the sight. The pondering foot is established

in steady perseverance; and, by marking small deviations (See Ecclus.

xix. 1), and never turning out of the straight path to avoid a cross, is

removed from evil.

            May we all have grace and wisdom to ponder these sound practical

rules! The man of God must only have one standard. (Isa. viii. 20.)

He must "know no man after the flesh." (2 Cor. v. 16.) He must

often put aside the Church, no less than the world, that he may listen

more closely to the command— Walk before me. (Gen. xvii. 1.) He

must discern and crush the first motions of corruption; guarding every

avenue of sin—the senses--the memory—the imagination—the

touch—the taste. He must walk by the straight rule of the Gospel;

else will he not only bring discomfort upon himself, but stumbling to

the Church. (Gal. ii. 11-14.) A single eye, steadily fixed upon the One

Object, will make the path luminous. (Matt. vi. 22.) Straightforward

progress will insure prosperity. (Deut. xvii. 20. Josh. i. 7, 8.) Keeping

the middle path, and daily lifting up the voice for restraint and

guidance. (Ps. cxix. 37; cxliii. 8-10.)

            "Thine ears shall hear the word behind thee,, saying, This is the

way: walk ye in it, when ye turn to the right hand, and when ye turn

to the left."‡

 

     * Dr. Abercrombie.

     † Ezek. i. 7-9. Comp. Heb. xii. 13. Nearly the LXX. translation of the last clause of

verse 26.

      ‡ Isa. xxx. 21. Comp. Deut. ii. 27; v. 32. The LXX. and Vulgate add here— ‘For

God knows the ways on the right hand. But those on the left axe crooked. But he shall

make straight thy paths, and advance thy goings in peace.' Geier remarks — ‘we have no

ear for these words, as not belonging to the holy fountain. We leave them to the Papists.’

Cartwright's exposition of this middle path is valuable. ‘It is as if the royal way was


56              EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

                                          CHAPTER V.

1. My son, attend unto my wisdom, and bow thine ear to my understanding :

            2. That thou mayest regard discretion, and that thy lips may keep

            knowledge.  3. For the lips of a strange woman drop as an honey-

            comb, and her mouth is smoother than oil:  4. But her end is bitter as

            wormwood, sharp as a two-edged sword.  5. Her feet go down to

            death: her steps take hold on hell. 6. Lest thou shouldest ponder

            the path of life, her ways are moveable, that, thou canst not know them.

            7. Hear me now, therefore, 0 ye children, and depart not from the

            words of my mouth.  8. Remove thy way from her, and come not near

            the door of her house:  9. Lest thou give thine honour unto others, and

            thy years unto the cruel:  10. Lest strangers be filled with thy wealth,

            and thy labours be in the house of a stranger;  11. And thou mourn at

            the last, when thy flesh and thy body are consumed,  12. And say, How

            have I hated instruction, and my heart despised reproof;  13. And have

            not obeyed the voice of my teachers, nor inclined mine ear to them that

            instructed me!  14. I was almost in all evil in the midst of the con-

            gregation and assembly.

 

PONDER this chapter—ye that know not the poison and corruption of

fleshly lusts. Perhaps painful experience (1 Kings, xi. 1-8. Eccles. vii.

26) had given the wise man wisdom and understanding. Therefore at-

tend to it with fear and trembling. Man's own strength, the restraint

of education or self-discipline, is powerless, as the green withs to bind

the giant. (Judg. xvi. 9.) Engrafted wisdom is the only effectual safe-

guard. This heavenly influence teaches us, both to regard discretion

for the covering of our souls, and to keep knowledge for the warning of

our fellow-sinners. (Chap. ii. 10, 11, 16; vi. 20, 24; vii. 1-5. Ps. xvii.

4; cxix. 9, 11.)

            The extreme plausibility of the temptation calls our attention. The

deluded victim only tastes, or expects to taste, the honeycomb: only

hears the wily smoothness of the charmer's voice. (Chap. ii. 16; vi. 24;

vii. 21.) But never is the beginning so sweet as the end is bitter.

God shows the wormwoodthe two-edged sword (Comp. Ps. lv. 21)--

her path of death—every step taking hold of hell, as if invading it with

a high hand; grasping it as her home. One feature of the tempter's

wiliness is most remarkable.*  She winds herself in a thousand moveable

ways, to meet the varying humours and circumstances (Chap. vii. 21);

she works upon every weakness; seizes every unguarded moment--

 

hemmed, in by the sea, and a fall over either side were danger of drowning. Some are too

greedy; others too ascetic. Some are too bold; others too diffident. Some neglect the

Mediator; others seek new Mediators. Some flee the cross; others make one. Some

tamper with Popery; others, from the dread of it, hazard the loss of valuable truth.'

    * Schultens in loco. Chap. ii. 18; vii. 17; ix. 18. 1 Cor. vi. 9, 10. Rev. xx i. 8.


                                                 CHAP. V. 1–14.                                            57

 

all with one deeply-hidden object — lest thou shouldest ponder the path of

life. The checks of conscience must be diverted. No time must be

given for reflection. The intrusion of one serious though might break

the spell, and open the way of escape. (See Ps. cxiix. 59. Ezek. xviii. 28.

Luke, xv. 17.)

            Can we wonder then at parental earnestness, forcing back the child-

ren playing on the brink of a precipice? Hear now, 0 ye children!

We mean no austere restraint upon youthful pleasures. Only avoid

the tempter's touch, her word, even her look. Remove thy way far from

her. Not only go not in to her; but--such is the contagion—come not

near the door. (Comp. ch. iv. 14, 15; vi. 27, 28.) To thrust ourselves

into temptation, is to throw ourselves out of God's protection. The

snare as it approaches becomes more enticing. The voice of wisdom

therefore is —"Flee youthful lusts."

            The loss of honour (Chap. vi. 32. 33. Gen. xxxviii. 23–26), taking

the crown from the victim's head (2 Sam. xii. 11; xv. 30. Neh. xiii. 26);

years given to the cruel mockers of his misery (Chap. vi. 26; xxxi, 3.

Judg. xvi. 18–21); the waste of the family wealth (Chap. vi. 26, 35;

xxix. 3. Job, xxxi. 12. Hos. vii. 9. Luke, xv. 13, 30. Comp. Eccius. v.

6) ; servitude in a stranger's house (Luke, xv. 15, 16): consumption,

slowly bringing the body to the grave (1 Cor. vi. 18) — such is the

bitter fruit of the neglected warning. Add to this the voice of con-

science at the last; telling of slighted privileges, stifled convictions,

abused knowledge. And will not this be the sting of thousands

instructed in our schools, or the children of godly parents, now despising

the reproofs of God, and the voice of their teachers; proclaiming their

shame openly; perhaps making Christian assemblies the scenes of almost

all evil? (Num. xxv. 6, 7. Ezek. viii. 5–16.)

            Such is the picture of sin. Its "pleasure is but for a season;" "its

wages death eternal." (Heb. xi. 25. Rom. vi. 23.) Every sin unre-

pented here will bring its perpetual torment in eternity. Impenitence

does not put away its sorrow. It only delays it to mourn at the last,

when mercy shall have fled away for ever (Chap. i. 24–31), and nothing

will remain, but the piercing cry of the accusing conscience —"Son!

remember." (Luke, xvi. 25.) There are no infidels in eternity, and

but few on a death-bed. Sinner! the path of life is now open to thee.

Ponder it anxiously, prayerfully. The light of the word, and the teach-

ing of the Spirit, guide thee to it.

 

15. Drink waters out of thine own cistern, and running waters out of thine

            own well.  16. Let thy fountains be dispersed abroad, and rivers of

            waters in the streets.  17. Let them be only thine own, and not strangers'

            with thee.  18. Let thy fountain be blessed: and rejoice with the wife

            of thy youth.  19. Let her be as the loving hind and pleasant roe; let


58         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

            her breasts satisfy thee at all times; and be thou rvished always with

            her love.

            Desire after forbidden enjoyments naturally springs from dissatisfac-

tion with the blessings in possession. Where contentment is not found

at home — drinking out of our own cistern*-- it will be sought for, how-

ever vainly, abroad. Conjugal love is chief among the earthly goods

in mercy granted by God to his fallen and rebellious creature. Enjoy

then with thankfulness thine own, and desire not thy neighbour's well.

(Exod. xx. 17. 2 Sam. xi. 2, 3.) If a happy issue is given (Ps. cxxvii.

3-5; cxxviii.), let it be as fountains (Comp. Num. xxiv. 7; Deut. xxxiii.

28; Ps. lxviii. 26; Isa. xlviii. 1) dispersed abroad, to fertilize with

godly influence the way through which their course may be directed.

(Comp. Zech. viii. 5.) Rejoice with the wife of thy youth. (Deut. xxiv. 5.

Eccles. ix. 9.)  Regard her as the special gift of thy Father's hand.

(Chap. xix. 14.) Cherish her with gentleness and purity (Gen. xxiv. 67),

as the loving hind and pleasant roe.†  Whatsoever interrupts the strictest

harmony in this delicate relationship, opens the door to imminent

temptation. Tender, well-regulated, domestic affection is the best

defence against the vagrant desires of unlawful passion. Yea—it is

consecrated by the Word of God itself to the high purpose of shadowing

out "the great mystery—loving and cherishing our own flesh, even as

the Lord the Church." (Eph. v. 25, 29.)

 

20. And why wilt thou, my son, be ravished with a strange woman, and

            embrace the bosom of a stranger?  21. For the ways of man are

            before the eyes of the Lord, and he pondereth all his goings.  22. His

            own iniquities shall take the wicked himself, and he shall be holden with

            the cords of his sins. 23. He shall die without instruction; and in the

            greatness of his folly he shall go astray.

            With such a view as we have had of the deadly enticement of sin

on the one hand (Verses 9–11), and the calm happiness provided on the

other by the ordinance of God (Verses 15-19), surely none but the

infatuated would leave the wholesome fountain for the poisoned and

forbidden spring. If he were not stupified, would he slight the

"honourable" state of marriage (Heb. xiii. 4), to embrace the bosom of a

stranger, 'loveless, joyless, unendeared?' Would not the thought, that

 

    * The beauty of the figure is illustrated from the circumstance, that the houses of the

East appear each to have had their own cistern. 2 Kings, xviii. 31.

     † Comp. 2 Sam. xii. 3. The hind and the roe were objects of special delight (Cant. ii.

17; iii. 5) and endearment—a picture of the lively delight, which the wife naturally

engages; relaxing in her society from severer duties; and taking the liveliest pleasure in

her company. As Bishop Davenant beautifully observes—‘Abroad the man may consider

himself as tossing in the waves; but at home with his wife, in repose, as in a desired

haven.'—On Col. iii. 19.


                                         CHAP. V. 20-23.                                     59

 

the ways of man are before the Lord, arrest him in his course?* But no.

Practical atheism is the root of human depravity. (Ps. xiv. 1-3.) The

eye of man, even of a child, is a check upon him (Job, xxiv 1,15. Isa.

xxix. 15); but the thought of an all-seeing God, even if it enters his

mind (Ps. x. 4), inspires no alarm, conviction, or restraint.  Oh! if

men would but read—would but believe--their Bibles, how would this

solemn truth — he pondereth all his goings--flash upon their consciences!

Not only does he see and mark them as the Omniscient God (Job, xxxi.

4. Ps. cxxxix. 1--4); but he ponders them as the just Judge. (Chap.

xvi. 2. 1 Sam. ii. 3. Dan. v. 27.) Not one is hidden from his piercing

eye. (Heb. iv. 13.)  "He will bring every secret thing to judgment."

(Eccles. xii. 14.) He "will be a swift witness against the adulterers.

No unclean person shall enter into his kingdom." (Mal. iii. 2. Eph. v. 5.)

            But if no regard to reason, or to the all-seeing Eye, will restrain the

sinner, let him think of the trouble that he is bringing upon himself.

God needs no chains or prison to bring him under his hand. Wher-

ever he goes, his sins go with him, as cords to hold him for judgment.

(Chap. xi. 3, 5, 6; xxix. 6. 1 Sam. xxviii. 5-10.)  Does he think that he

can give them up when he pleases?  Repetition farms the habit. The

habit becomes a ruling principle.  'Every lust deals with him, as

Delilah with Samson—not only robs him of his strength, but leaves

him fast bound.'†  Shutting his eyes against the light, he dies without

instruction (Verse 12. Chap. i. 29; x. 21. Job, iv. 21; xxxvi. 12. Hos.

iv. 14, 17) -- The greatness of his folly leads him astray--to perdition.

(2 Pet. ii. 14, 15.)

            But is there no remedy for this deadly curse? Thanks be to God!

cleansing is provided for the impure (Lech. xiii. 1. 1 Cor. vi. 11);

"deliverance is proclaimed to the captive." (Isak lxi. 1.) Blessed

Saviour! cleanse the leper in thy precious fountain. Perform thy

mighty commission. Set the captive free.

 

                                           CHAPTER VI.

1. My son, if thou be surety for thy friend, if thou hast stricken thy hand

            with a stranger, 2. Thou art snared with the words of thy mouth,

            thou art taken with the words of thy mouth. 3.Do this now, my son,

            and deliver thyself, when thou art come into the hand of thy friend: go,

 

    * Job, xxxiv. 21, 22. Ps. xciv. Jer. xiii. 25-27; xvi. 17; xxix. 23. Hos. vii. 2 See

some striking thoughts in MEDE'S Sermon on iv. 23.

    † Archbishop Tillotson quoted in NICHOLL’S Commentary. Jude. xvi. 19-21. ‘Thus I,’

—said Augustine adverting to this hateful sin—‘delighted with the disease of the flesh,

and with the deadly sweetness of it, drew my shackles along with one, much afraid to have

them knocked off; and, as if my wound had been too hard rubbed by it, I put back my

friends' good persuasions, as it were the hand of one that would unchain me.'— Confess.

b. vi. c. 12. Comp. chap. xxiii. 29-35.


60            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVIERBS.

 

            humble thyself, and make sure (so shalt thou prevail with, marg.)

            thy friend. 4. Give not sleep to thine eyes, or slumber to thine eye-

            lids. 5. Deliver thyself as a roe from the hand of the hunter, and as a

            bird from the hand of the fowler.

            THE son has just been warned against the deadly wound of a stranger.

He is now cautioned against a hurt from an imprudent friend. So gra-

ciously has our God made his book, not only our guide to heaven, but

the directory of our common life. We must, however, often take its wise

rules with some restriction. We are here earnestly warned against

suretyship. Yet in some cases it is plainly allowed and approved.*

"A man that hath friends must show himself friendly." (Chap. xviii. 24.)

And the passing of our word, or giving a bond, may be an act of pru-

dent friendship, and of solid and permanent advantage. The caution

is evidently directed against rash engagements (Comp. also chap. xi. 15;

xvii. 18; xx. 16; xxii. 26, 27), to which the young and inexperienced

are especially exposed; striking with hands (the usual mode of plighting

faith) (Chap. xvii. 18; xxii. 26. Job, xvii. 3), in an unguarded moment.

Often may they be snared and taken by the words of their mouth, by

entering into virtual promises, without knowing how far they were

pledged, or what might be the issue. Christian prudence will keep us

clear from such engagements, which bring distress upon our families,

dishonour upon our name, and reproach upon our religion. (Comp.

Ecclus viii. 13.) While the "good man showeth favour, and lendeth,

he must guide his affairs with discretion;"† however grating it may

be to incur the suspicion of unkindness. If, however; by any incon-

siderate bond, thou hast come into the hand of thy friend; the instant

duty is, to humble thyself for thy imprudence, and make sure thy friend,

if thou cant prevail with him to answer for himself; and, give thyself

no rest, till, like as the roe and the bird, thou be disentangled from the

snare.

            Our God, while he warns us against suretyship, has taken it upon

himself. Praised be his name! He has give his word, his bond,

yea—his blood—for sinners—a security, that no powers of hell can

shake.

 

6. Go to the ant, thou sluggard; consider her ways, and be wise:  7. Which

            having no guide, overseer, or ruler,  8. Provideth her meat in the

            summer, and gathereth her food in the harvest.  9. Flow long wilt thou

            sleep, O sluggard? when wilt thou arise out of thy sleep?  10. Yet a little

 

    * Reuben and Judah for Benjamin. Gen. xlii. 37; xliii. 9 ; xliv. 32, 33. Paul for

Onesimus. Philem. 18, 19.

    † Ps. cxii. 5. P. Henry always cautioned sureties not to be bound for any more than

they knew themselves able to pay, nor for more than they would be willing to pay, if the

principal failed.— Life, chap. v.


                                                  CHAP. VI. 6-11.                                      61

 

            more sleep, a little more slumber, a little folding! of the hands to sleep:

            11. So shall thy poverty come as one that travelleth, and thy want as an

            armed man.

            'It is a shame'-- said the heathen philosopher--'not to learn morals

from the small animals.’ Yet what a proof is it of the degradation of

the fall, that "man, created in the image of God," and made wiser than

the creation (Gen. i. 26. Job, xxxv. 11), should be sent, as here, to this

insignificant school for instruction!  The ant, having no guide to direct

her work, no overseer to inspect her, or ruler to call her to account

(Comp. chap. xxx. 27, and contrast Exod. v. 13, 4; 1 Kings, v. 16);

yet gathereth with diligent foresight the summer and harvest store for her

winter need.†   Let the sluggard consider her ways, and be wise. He

sleeps over his work, and, if for a moment half-startled by some rousing

call, still pleads for a little more sleep, and folds his hands to sleep. Pre-

sent ease is all he calculates on, all he provides for. The future he

carefully keeps out of sight, to be provided for, like the present, when

it comes. Thus life runs to waste. Poverty comes step by step as one

that travelleth, and, like an armed man, with irresistible violence. (Chap.

x. 4; xiii. 4; xix. 15, 24; xx. 4; xxi. 25; xxiv. 33, 34.)

            Perhaps he perverts his Master's word to excuse his sloth. But, if

we are to "take no anxious thought for the morrow " (his true mean-

ing),‡ are we to take none at all? Care is a duty, parental obligation

(2 Cor. xii. 14. Comp. Gen. xxx. 30; xli. 33), and, therefore, a com-

ponent part of godliness.§ Carefulness is a sin (Luke, x. 41. 1 Cor. vii. 32),

a needless burden to ourselves, an unworthy distrust of God. (Matt. vi. 25-33.)

The diligent use of providential means honours God. (Chap. x. 5; xxiv. 27.)

            But much more loudly would we call to the spiritual sluggard.

Thou that art sleeping away the opportunities of grace; not "striving

to enter in at the strait gate" (Luke, xiii. 24); taking thy salvation for

granted; hoping that thou shalt "reap that which thou hast not sown,

and gather where thou hast not strawed" (Matt. xv. 26) -- Go to the

ant, thou sluggard; consider her ways, and be wise. Improve, after this

pattern, the summer and harvest season—the time of youth, the present,

 

   * Pudeat ab exiguis animalibus non trahere mores.—SENECA, De Clementia. Lib. i.

    † Chap. x. 5; xxx. 25. Horace's miser quotes this example as an excuse for hoarding.

But—as the poet replies—it was to use the hoard in the winter prudent care, not covet-

ousness. Sat i. 32. See also Virgil's exquisite picture,  AEn. iv. 402, &c. The hoarding

spirit of the ants, though attested by numerous writers and naturalists, does not charac-

terise those known to us ; though the habits of the species in a warmer climate would

probably widely differ from our own. Some, however, have thought, that Solomon only

refers to their wisdom and prudence in preparing suitable food in summer and harvest,

when it is most plentiful.—See KIRBY and SPENCE's Entomology, ii. 46.

    ‡ Merimnaw. Matt. vi. 34.—Solicite et anxie cogito; at plus est solicitum esse, quam

cogitare, as Erasmus notices, and that of Tully confirms,—Solicitudo est aegritudo cum

cogitatione. ‘The root of the word expresses the dividing of the mind into divers thoughts.’

-LEIGH'S Critica Sacra. Comp. Philip. iv. 6.

§ 1 Tim. v. 8. Our Lord had a bag for the provision of his family. John, xiii. 29.


62          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

perhaps the only, moment. The ant hath no guide. How many guides

have you—conscience—the Bible—ministers! (Job, 8. Ps.

cxix. 105. Mal. ii. 7.) She has no overseer. You are living before Him,

whose "eyes are as a flame of fire." (Chap. xv. 3. Rev. i. 14 ; ii. 18.)

She has no ruler calling her to account. “Every one of us must give

account of himself unto God.” (Rom. xiv. 1 .) How long then wilt thou

sleep, 0 sluggard?—is the solemn remonstrance of thy God. (Comp.

chap. i. 22; 1 Kings, xviii. 21.) Thy sleep is not like that of the body,

refreshing at the dawn of day; but it is that of the poisoned draught,

heavier and heavier; the slumber of death. "Awake, thou that sleepest,

and Christ shall give thee light." (Eph. v. 4.) Slight not the call of

the present moment. The spell grows stronger, as resistance is delayed.

Every day's slumber makes it more improbable, whether thou wilt

ever awaken at all. The intended struggle of to-morrow is a delusion.

A thousand such to-morrows there may be; and yet thou mayest be

found at last perishing in thy poverty, and he King of terror will come

as an armed man to summon thee to judgment.

            But how one is made to feel that from his deep slumber no voice

but Omnipotence can rouse!  Enter the sluggard's chamber; put aside

his curtain; hang over his bed; sound a solemn cry in his ears—How

long? endeavour even to open his eyelids to the light of day ; and yet

the spell is too strong for man. He shifts his posture, murmurs his cry

a little more sleep—and slumbers again. Christians! you feel the

helplessness of your work. Then call in the power of God in your

brother's behalf—"Lighten his eyes, lest lle sleep the sleep of death."

(Ps. xiii. 3.)

            And then, as for thyself—grow intense energy in thy high

calling. Remember, faith without diligence is slumbering delusion.

Faith is the practical energy of a living faith. Always, therefore, look

at sloth, not as an infirmity, but as a sin, affecting the whole man:

growing upon us with unperceived power. Allow it therefore no rest,

no time to root itself. Resist it in all its forms—bodily, mental,

spiritual: indulgence of sleep and appetite: self-pleasing in all its

subtle and plausible workings. Live by rule. Have your time strictly

arranged. Be employed in early work for God. Store the mind with

useful knowledge; ever reserving the first place for an industrious and

prayerful study' of the book of God. "Mortify" this baneful lust

"through the Divine Spirit" (Rom. viii. 13); drawing all your motives

from the death (Ibid. vi. 6), the life (Mark, i. 2-35), the rules of Christ.

(Luke, ix. 23. Rom. xiii. 11-14.) Victory will soon declare for you;

and how enriching will be the spoil!

 

12. A naughty person, a wicked man, walketh with a froward mouth. 13.

            He winketh with his eyes, he speaketh with his feet, he teacheth with his

            fingers. 13. Frowardness is in his heart; he deviseth mischief con-


                                   CHAP. VI. 12-19.                                    63

 

            tinually; he soweth discord. 15. Therefore shall his calamity come

            suddenly; suddenly shall he be broken without remedy.

            What a contrast between the inactivity of the sluggard and the

unwearied diligence of the naughty person! This man of Belial (Heb.)

—as if his froward mouth—itself "a world of iniquity" (Jam. iii. 6)—

could not give sufficient scope for his malice, makes every member--

eyes, feet, and fingers—vocal and significant (Isa. iii. 16), an active

"instrument of unrighteousness." (Chap. x. 10. Rom. vi. 13-19.) These,

however, are only the external manifestations. Seep within lies the

laboratory of evil—"the chambers of imagery," terming with "greater

and yet greater abominations." (Ezek. viii. 8-15. Matt. xv. 19.) Fro-

wardness* is in the heart. Here is the restless devising of mischief,†

sowing discord, instead of piety and love. (Chap. x. 12.) Such a pest to

society brings on himself his own ruin, suddenly and without remedy.

            The sight of this all-pervading power of sin is truly affecting. How

utterly powerless is any remedy save that involved in the solemn

declaration—"Ye must be born again!" (John, iii. 7. Tit. iii. 3-5.)

 

16. These six things doth the Lord hate; yea, seven are an abomination

            unto him: (of his soul, marg.)  17. A proud look, a lying tongue, and

            hands that shed innocent blood,  18. An heart that deviseth wicked

            imaginations, feet that be swift in running to mischief,  19. A false

            witness that speaketh lies, and he that soweth discord among brethren.

            Man conceives of God in his heart as "such a one as himself"

(Ps. 1. 21), looking with indifference at sin. Here therefore Solomon

names six--yea—seven (Comp. chap. xxx. 15-18) abominations (most

of them mentioned in the preceding list) which the Lord--hateth—a proud

look,‡ a lying tongue,§ a blood-stained hand.||  And, lest we should

think, that he "looketh only on the outward appearance;" the heart,

active in devising wickedness,¶  is brought out ; and is ready organ, the

feet swift in running to mischief. (Chap. i. 16. Isa. ix. 7. Rom. iii. 1.5:)

How hateful also is the false witness (Zech. viii. 17), surely reserved by

him for judgment! (Chap. xix. 5. Zech. v. 4. Mal. ii 5.) Let the self-

willed separatist remember the double stamp (Vers:s 14, 19) upon him

that soweth discord among brethren. if the heavenly "dew descends

 

    * ‘Frowardness,’ Heb. See POOLE's Synopsis—not one but many; the heart so filled

with them, that the vessel cannot hold more. Gen. vi. 5. Acts, x ii. 10.

    † Ps. x. 7-9; xxxvi. 2-4. Compare the striking figure, Hos. vii. 6. Chap. xvi. 28.

Ps. lii. 2.

   ‡ Chap. viii. 13 ; xxx. 13. Ps. xviii. 27. Isa. ii. 12. Jer. i. 31—the examples of Pharaoh

—Ex, ix. 16. Haman—Esth. vii. 10. Nebuchadnezzar—Dan. iv. 28-33. Herod—Acts,

xii. 21-23.

   § Chap. xii. 22. Ps. v. 6. Rev. xxi. 8. Gehazi--2 Kings, v. 25-27. Ananias and Sapphira

—Acts, v. 1-10.

    || Gen. ix. 6. Cain—iv. 8-12. Manasseh— 2 Kings, xxi. 15, 16. Specially the mur-

derers of his dear Son—Matt. xxiii. 31-38.

   ¶ Ahithophel—2 Sam. xvi. 20-23; xvii. 23. Mic. ii. 1. 2 Pet. ii. 14.


64          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

upon the brethren that dwell together in unity" (Ps. cxxxiii.), a

withering blast will fall on those, who, mistaking prejudice for principle,

"cause divisions" for their own selfish ends. (Rom. xvi. 17, 18.) Fearful

is the Lord's mark upon them—"sensual, having not the Spirit."*  If

we cannot attain unity of opinion—"perfectly joined together in the

same mind, and in the same judgment;"† at least let us cultivate unity

of spirit—"Whereto we have already attained, let us walk by the same

rule; let us mind the same thing." (Philip. iii. 16.)

20. My son, keep thy father's commandment, and forsake not the law of thy

            mother:  21. Bind them continually upon thine heart, and tie them about

            thy neck.  22. When thou goest, it shall lead thee; when thou sleepest,

            it shall keep thee: and when thou awakest, it shall talk with thee.

            23. For the commandment is a lamp; and the law is light; and

            reproofs of instruction are the way of life;  24. To keep thee from the

            evil woman,‡ from the flattery of the tongue of a strange woman.

            The authority of parental instruction is again enforced. (Chap. i.

8, 9; iv. 1.) God never intended young people to be independent of

their parents. Instruction from every quarter is valuable. But from

parents—always supposing them to be godly parents—it is the ordi-

nance of God. They will bring you God's word, not their on. There-

fore bind it continually about thine heart (Chap. iii. 3; iv. 21; vii. 3), as

thy rule; about thy neck (Chap. iii. 3. Comp. Job, xxxi. 36), as thine

adorning. Let the law be thy friend for all times and circumstances

—a guide by day (Chap. iii. 22, 23; iv. 12); a solace by night (Chap.

iii. 24. Ps. lxiii. 5), yea—a friend for thy waking moments. (Ps. exxxix.

17, 18.) Take care that nothing hinders thy early converse with this

faithful counsellor before the world comes in; as the best means of

keeping the world out.  ‘Happy is the mind to which the word is an undivided

companion.'§   A lamp, so full of light, in this dark world|| is an inestimable gift.

Its reproofs of instruction, the discipline of our wayward will, are to us as the way

of life. (Ps. xix. 11. 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17. Comp. Matt. vii. 13, 14.)

 

   * Jude, 19. 1 Cor. iii. 3, 4. Let the wisdom of experience given by an accurate observer

of himself and the Church, be seriously pondered—'I am much more sensible of the evil of

schism, and of the separating humour, and of gathering parties, and making several sects

in the Church, than I was heretofore. For the effects have shown us more of the mischiefs.

I am much more sensible, how prone many young professors are to spiritual pride and self-

conceitedness, and unruliness, and division, and so prove the grief of their teachers, and

firebrands in the Church. I am much more sensible than heretofore of the breadth, and

length, and depth of the radical, universal, odious sin of selfishness, and the excellency and

necessity of self-denial, and of a public mind, and of loving our neighbour as ourselves.'—

BAXTER'S Narrative of his Life and Times.

   † 1 Cor. i. 10—'A text'—says the godly Flavel—'to be commented upon rather by

tears than by words.'—Sermon on Text.

    ‡ Heb. Woman of wickedness—the woman full of wickedness—wholly given to it.

Comp. Zech. v. 7, 8.

    § Felix mens, cui verhum individuus comes.'—BERNARD, Serm. xxxii. in Cant.

    || Ps cxix 105.  See Bishop Patrick’s note quoted in Scott.


                                                 CHAP. VI. 25-29.                                     65

 

            Specially valuable are this lamp and light in sensual temptation.

(Chap. ii. 10, 11, 16-19; v. 1-8; vii. 1-5.)  Those who choose their

own light fall into a flattering snare. (Chap. ii. 16; vii, 21. The neglect

of parental warning will furnish in the end bitter matter for unavailing

repentance. (Chap. v. 11–13.)  Oh! let the Father's instruction be

heard betimes —"Wherewithal shall a young man cleanse his way?

by taking heed thereto according to thy word." (Ps. xix. 9. Comp. v.

11; xvii. 4.)

 

25. Lust not after her beauty in thine heart; neither let her take thee with

            her eyelids.  26. For by means of a whorish woman a man is brought

            to a piece of bread: and the adulteress will hunt for the precious life.

            27. Can a man take fire in his bosom, and his clothes not be burned?

            28. Can one go upon hot coals, and his feet not be burned?  29. So he

            that goeth in to his neighbour's wife; whosoever toucheth her shall not

            be innocent.

            Solomon here gives our Lord's own rule. (Matt. v. 28. Comp. Jam. i.

14, 15; Job, xxxi. 1; Ps. cxix. 37; also, Ecclus. ix. 3–5.) Resist lust

in its first rising in the heart. By vain beauty,* and wanton eyes,†

many a deluded victim has been brought to a piece of bread.‡  Like the

insatiable huntsman, who never loses sight of his prey, till he has

pursued it to death; never does the seducer cease to solicit, till she has

hunted for the precious life. (Gen. xxxix. 14. Judg. xvi. 18-21. Comp.

Ezek. xiii. 18, 20, 21.) Yet neither the present miseries, nor the certain

end, of this wretched course, can draw away the foot, that has dared to

tread the forbidden path. 'Self-confidence sees and fears no danger. ‘I

can look to myself; I need not go too far, and I shall get no harm.’

But the temptation acts upon a congenial nature like fuel, not water,

on the fire. As well might we expect to take fire into our bosom, and

our clothes not be burned, or to go upon hot coals, and not be burned; as to

go wilfully into sin, and to escape the punishment.§  Sin and punish-

ment are linked together by a chain of adamant. ‘The fire of lust

kindles the fire of hell.'||  He cannot afterwards plead the strength of

the temptation. Why did he not avoid it? Who that knows how

much tinder he carries about him, would wilfully light up the sparks ?

Heedlessly to rush into temptation, is to provoke the corruption, which

is too ready to stir of itself. The influence of temptations though not

 

   * Chap. xxxi. 30. Gen. vi. 2; xxxix. 6. 2 Sam. xi. 2. Comp. Ecclus. xxv. 21.

   † Gen. xxxix. 7. 2 Kings, ix. 30. Marg. Isa. iii. 16. 2 Pet. ii. 14. Comp. Paradise Lost,

book xi. 1, 620.

   ‡ Chap. v. 10; xxix. 3. 1 Sam. ii. 26, 36. Job, xxxi. 9, 12. Luke, xv. 13, 30. Comp. the

difference between Solomon's chaste and unholy age. I Kings, x. 21, 27, with xii. 4.

   § Exod. xx. 14, 17. Lev. xx 10. 2 Sam. xii. 9. Mal. iii. 5. Even as a sin of ignorance

it was liable to be visited. Gen. xii. 15-15; xx. 1-6; xxvi. 10. So strictly has the holy

Lord fenced his own ordinance!  See MEDE'S Sermon on Chap. iv. 23.

   || Henry in loco.   Comp. Job, xxxi. 12; Jam. i. 14, 15.


66          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

always sensible, is immediate. The man must be in haste, who would

effectually resist it. Beware of suspicious familiarities on the borders

of sin. (Gen. xxxix. 10. Rom. xiii. 13. 1 Thess. v. 22.) The temptation

to criminality in this atmosphere is fearful. (2 Sam. xi. 2-4. Comp.

Eccius. ix. 8, 9.) Whosoever toucheth shall not be innocent. (Gen. xx. 6;

xxxix. 9. 1 Cor. vii. 1.)

 

30. Men do not despise a thief, if lie steal to satisfy his soul, when he is

            hungry; 31. But if he be found, he shall restore sevenfold; he shall

            give all the substance of his house. 32. But whoso committeth adultery

            with a woman lacketh understanding: he that doeth it destroyeth his

            own soul. 33. A wound and dishonour shall he get; and his reproach

            shall not be wiped away. 34. For jealousy is the rage of a man;

            therefore he will not spare in the day of vengeance. 35. He will not

            regard (accept the face of, marg.) any ransom; neither will he rest

            content, though thou givest many gifts.

            Here is no excuse or impunity for the thief. The full restitution that

he is compelled to make*—perhaps sweeping away all his little sub-

stance—proves that no extremity can excuse "the transgression of the

law." (Comp. 1 Cor. vi. 10, with 1 John, iii. 4.) Let him earn his bread

by honest industry. If the fruits of industry fail, let him, trusting in

God, seek the help of his fellow-creatures. If he have faith to trust, he

will never be forced to steal. (See Matt. vi. 25-33.) Yet his extreme

temptation renders him an object rather of pity than of scorn—Men do

not despise him.

            But the sin of the adulterer claims no sympathy. His plea is not

the cry of hunger, but of lust; not want, but wantonness; not the lack

of bread, but of understanding.  (Comp. Eccles. vii. 25, 26; Jer. v. 8, 21.)

He is wilfully given up to his sin. He destroyeth his own soul. (Lev.

xx. 10. Chap. ii. 18, 19; v. 22, 23; vii. 22, 23. Eph. v. 5.)  He gets a

wound—not like the soldier or the martyr for Christ—full of honour;

but rankling on his conscience (Ps. xxxii. 3, 4), and bringing dishonour

and indelible reproach upon his name.†  The tremendous passions of

jealousy and rage shut out all forgiveness.‡  The face of no one who

offered a ransom would be accepted. No compensation (Gen. xxxix.

19, 20. Judg. xix. 29, 30), however costly, will content.

            Such are the many sins (2 Sam. xi. 6-24), the awfully destructive

 

   * Exod. xxii. 11-4. Seven-fold—not literally. Four or five-fold was the extent of the

Divine requirement. Comp. Luke, xix. 8. It means full (ver. 3) and satisfactory—an

indefinite number. Comp. Gen. iv. 15, 24; Ps. lxxix. 12, and cilia passim. Comp.

Job, xx. 18.

   †  Chap. v. 9. Gen. xxxviii. 23; xlix. 4. 2 Sam. iii. 13; xiii. 13. 1 Kings, xv. 5, with

Matt. i. 6. Neh. xiii. 26. Comp Deut. xxiii. 2.

   ‡ Gen. xxxiv. 7; xlix. 5-7. Num. v. 14. Esth. vii. 7-10. Ezek. xvi. 38. Schultens

remarks that no version fully expresses the strength of the original. Rage; ‘Ignitio.’

In loco


                                               CHAP. VII. 1-5.                                        67

 

miseries,* flowing from the breach of God's holy commandment. ‘Oh!

how great iniquity'—exclaimed the godly Augustine—'is this adul-

tery! How great a perverseness! The soul, redeemed by the precious

blood of Christ, is thus for the pleasures of an hour given to the devil;

a thing much to be lamented and bewailed; when that which delighteth

is soon gone, that which tormenteth remaineth without end.'†

            And shall not this fearful picture of sin and its consequences (which

Solomon, alas! was too well fitted to draw) teach us to avoid every-

thing that may be temptation; to be sensitive to the first intimations of

its becoming so; to close every avenue of sense to the entrance of this

seductive poison; to shun all communications that taint the purity of

taste, that familiarise the mind with impurity, that give a vivid interest

to associations from which a chaste imagination recoils with disgust?

Let us learn to seek Divine strength to "watch and pray" continually;

and, while we "think we stand, to take heed lest we fall." (1 Cor. x. 12 )

 

                                       CHAPTER VII.

1. My son, keep my words, and lay up my commandments with thee.  2.

            Keep my commandments, and live; and my law as the apple of thine

            eye.  3. Bind them upon thy fingers, write them upon the table of thine

            heart.  4. Say unto wisdom—'Thou art my sister,' and call under-

            standing thy kinswoman:  5. That they may keep thee from the strange

            woman, from the stranger that flattereth with her words.

THE study of wisdom in the word of God is here commended to us with

affectionate earnestness, and with a beautiful variety of imagery. Let

us ponder these valuable rules for practical application.

            Let the whole mind and heart be occupied with it. Keep it as the

daily means of life. (Chap. iii. 21, 22; iv. 4, 13. Isa.lv. 2, 3. Jer. xxii. 15.)

Sir Matthew Hale told his children—'If I omit reading a portion of

Scripture in the morning, it never goes well with me through the day.'

Lay it up (Chap. x. 14. Deut. xi. 18. Luke, ii. 19, 51) carefully, not on

our shelves, but on our hearts. Let the whole Word of God be our

precious treasure. Receive the promises from his grace with simple

affiance, and the commandments from his holiness with ready obedience.

Stand with your eye in the land of promise; but with your feet "in the

land of uprightness." (Ps. cxliii. 10.)

            Maintain a jealous regard for the law. What care is necessary to

keep the apple of the eye—that most tender part of the most tender

 

   * The quaint lines of an old Chronicler give an awful picture--

            'Corpus, opes, animum, famam, vim, lumina. scortum

            Debilitat, perdit, necat, aufert, eripit, orbat.'

                                                                        Quoted by Trapp on verse 26.

    † Lib. de Honest. Mulier. quoted by Lavater on verse 26.


68        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

member! (Deut. xxxii. 10. Ps. xvii. 8. Zech. ii. 8.) With the same

care preserve the integrity of the law. Let every part of it have its

full weight. To explain it away, or to lower its requirements, breaks

down the barrier, and gives an easy entrance to temptation. The sen-

sual sinner is often a covert infidel.

            Let it be at hand for constant use. Bind them upon thy fingers (Chap.

iii. 3. Deut. vi. 8; xi. 18); that, being always in sight, they may be

always ready for the present moment. And for their practical influ-

ence, write them upon the table of thine heart. Oh! my God! this is thy

Almighty work. (Isa. xxvi. 12. 2 Cor. iii. 3.) But thou hast engaged

to do it for thy people. (Jer. xxxi. 33.) I "take hold of thy covenant."

Lord! seal thy promised grace.

            Let it be the object of tender affection—as our sister--our kinswoman.

It is her embrace that throws the harlot's beauty into the shade.  Man

must have his object of delight. If wisdom is not loved, lust will be

indulged. The Bible therefore—not merely read, but the cherished

object of familiar intercourse—proves a sacred exorcist to expel the

power of evil. (Chap. ii. 10, 16; vi. 23, 24; xxiii. 26, 27.)

 

6. For at the window of my house I looked through my casement,  7. And

            beheld among the simple ones, I discerned among the youths a young

            man void of understanding,  8. Passing through the street near her

            corner; and he went the way to her house,  9. In the twilight, in the

            evening, in the black and dark night: 10. And, beholds there met him a

            woman with the attire of an harlot, and subtil of heart.  11. (She is

            loud and stubborn; her feet abide not in her house:  12. Now is she

            without, now in the streets, and lieth in wait at every corner.)  13. So

            she caught him, and kissed him, and with an impudent face said unto

            him,  14. ‘I have peaces-offerings with me; this day have I paid my

            vows.  15. Therefore came I forth to meet thee, diligently to seek thy

            face, and I have found thee.  16. I have decked my bed with coverings

            of tapestry, with carved works, with fine linen of Egypt. 17. I have

            perfumed my bed with myrrh, aloes, and cinnamon. 18. Come, let us

            take our fill of love until the morning: let us solace ourselves with loves.

            19. For the goodman is not at home, he is gone a long journey:  20.

            He bath taken a bag of money with him, and will come home at the day

            appointed.'  21. With her much fair speech she caused him to yield;

            with the flattering of her lips she forced him.  22. He goeth after her

            straightway, as an ox goeth to the slaughter, or as a fool to the correction

            of the stocks:  23. Till a dart strike through his liver; as a bird hasteth

            to the snare, and knoweth not that it is for his life.

 

            Solomon paints the deadly snare of the strange woman with a master's

hand, and with exquisite fidelity of colouring. A young man without

understanding (Chap. i. 4, 22 ; xiii. 16) in company with youths as simple


                                     CHAP. VII. 6-23.                                          69

 

as himself, takes in the dark of evening the way to the harlot's house. She

meets him. Her attire (Gen. xxxviii. 14, 15): her subtilty (Chap. xxiii.

27. Eccles. vii. 26., Judg. xvi. 4–20); her loud and stubborn voice (Chap.

ix. 13); her feet at this late hour not abiding in her house (Comp. 1 Tim.

v. 13 ; Tit. ii. 5); lying in wait at every corner of the street;* her impudent

face and conduct—all show the harlot's forehead. (See Gen. xxxix. 7,

12. Jer. iii. 3.) She allures her victim with the garb of sanctity. She

had just been engaged in special religious duties. Now she was come

forth to seek diligently her lover, that they might feast together upon her

peace-offerings,† and solace themselves with love, with every indulgence.

The goodman (perhaps the name of husband might have awakened con-

science) is gone a long journey till the time appointed. Meanwhile, there-

fore, we may take our fill of love without fear of interruption.' Unarmed

with principle, the weakness of resolution yields to the seduction of lust;

and her unsuspecting prey rushes on to ruin.

            Trace this sad end to its beginning. Was not idleness the parent of

this mischief? (2 Sam. xi. 2.) The loitering evening walk; the un-

seasonable hour (Job, xxiv. 15. Rom. xiii. 12, 13); the vacant mind—

all bringing the youth into contact with evil company (Chap. xiii. 20.

1 Con xv. 33)—was not this courting tempting the tempter?

"The house was empty," and therefore ready for his reception, and soon

altogether in his possession. (Matt. xii. 44, 45.) How valuable are

self-discipline, self-control, constant employment, active energy of pur-

suit, as preservatives under the Divine blessing from fearful danger !

            See also the base varnish of religion. It is often a cover for sin!

(1 Sam. ii. 22. 2 Sam. xv. 8–11. John, xviii. 28.)  ‘She durst not play

the harlot with man till she had played the hypocrite with God, and,

stopped the mouth of her conscience with her peace-offerings.'‡  Nay—

she seems to have emboldened herself in her wickedness, as if her

meeting was a happy providence, the reward of her religious services.

(Verses 14, 15. 1 Sam. xxiii. 7. Zech. xi. 5.) Beware of any voice,

though from the most revered quarter, that manifestly encourages for-

bidden indulgence.

            Observe also the infatuation of the snare. ‘Man cannot be ruined

till he has been made confident to the contrary. A man must get into

his victim's heart with fair speeches and promises, before he can come

 

   * Chap. ix. 14, 15; xs:iii. 28. Dr. Richardson mentions seeing "these wretched women

in a large commercial town in Egypt, in the harlot's attire, sitting at the doors of their

houses, and calling on the passengers as they went by, in the same manner as we read in

the Book of Proverbs."—Travels, vol. i. p. 270.

   † See Holden. Comp. Lev. vii. 16; xix. 6; Dent. xii. 6. Scott takes the same view—

adding— ‘that it is no wonder, that these sacred ordinances should have given occasion

to carnal indulgence, when our Christian festivals (Christmas especially) are abused for

similar profanations.’

   ‡  Gurnal. It is a well-known fact, that the favourite mistress of Louis XIV. was so

rigid in her religious duties, that her bread was weighed during Lent, lest she should

transgress the austerity of fasting.


70         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

at it with a dagger.'*  Thus the harlot's flattering speech chained the

youth blindfolded for destruction. As the ox goeth to the slaughter,

unconscious of his fate, perhaps dreaming of rich pasture: or as a fool

goeth to the stocks (Eccles. vii. 26. Judg. xvi. 16-19), careless and un-

feeling; so does this poor deluded victim rush on with pitiable mirth

or indifference, till the dart strikes through his liver. (Hos. iv. 11, 14.)

He hasteth as a bird to the snare (Eccles. ix. 12), thinking only of the

bait; and he knoweth not that it is for his life. (Chap. ix. 18.) What

will recollection bring, but the fragrance of exciting perfume (Verses

16, 17), changed into the bitterness of wormwood and gall; the short

night of pleasure succeeded by the eternal night of infernal torment!†   

for a cup of pleasure drinking an ocean of wrath! (Verse 27; ix. 18.)

            Lastly—mark the danger of venturing into temptation. Could we

expect any other results, when we saw the youth going the way to the

harlot's house? (Chap. iv. 15; v. 8. Judg. xvi. 1.) He intended merely

his own idle gratification; and when he yielded, it was probably not

without some struggle. But it is a just judgment, that those who fear

not temptation should fall. 'Who would avoid danger must avoid

temptation to sin. Who would avoid sin must avoid temptation to

sin.'‡  The force, to which the youth's own folly subjected him, he

could not plead as an excuse. When the first bounds of modesty are

broken through, the door of the fancy is opened to the tempter for the

kindling of lust. Thus to rush into the very jaws of ruin is to "enter

into temptation" by our own will; instead of being led or falling into

it, under the providential discipline and dispensation of God. (Matt.

xxvi. 41, with iv. 1. Jam. i. 2.) Self-confidence has ruined many a pro-

mising profession. Tenderness of conscience, sensibility of weakness,

dependence on Divine strength and promise --in this frame "he that

is begotten of God keepeth himself, and that wicked one toucheth him

not." (1 John, v. 18.)

 

24. Hearken unto me now therefore, 0 ye children, and attend to the words .

            of my mouth.  25. Let not thine heart decline to her ways, go not

            astray in her paths.  26. For she bath cast down many wounded: yea,

            many strong men have been slain by her.  27. Her house is the way to

            hell, going down to the chambers of death.

            In the hand of a licentious poet or painter, this picture might serve

to contaminate the unsanctified imagination. But as it stands on the

page of inspiration, it is God's solemn warning to children, whether in

years, understanding, or experience. Now, therefore, that you have seen

the end of sin (Verses 22, 23), hearken unto me. That you may not go

astray in her paths, let not thine heart decline. (Chap. iv. 23; v. 8.) An

impure thought, a polluted fancy, an idle book, filthy conversation,

 

    * SOUTH's Sermons, iii. 130.

    † ‘Delectat in momentum; cruciat in aeternum'—JEROME.     ‡ Geier on verse 9.


                                               CHAP. VII. 24—27.                                    71

 

foolish company, theatres or places of vain resort—these are her ways.

Dread the first step, and dream not that you can stop yourself at pleasure

in her course. Familiarity with sin weakens abhorrence. Soon will

you begin to love the object of detestation. And what! should you

find too late, that you have chosen as your home her house, which is the way to

hell, and to the chambers of death?*  Many, not of the meaner sort, but strong

men has she cast down wounded and slain. And a miracle it is of Almighty

power and grace, that plucks the child of God from the brink of destruction.

            Let not then the most established Christian dismiss this subject as

of no personal concern. Be it so—that "you are risen with Christ;"

that you have “set your affections on things above;” that "your life is

hid with Christ in God;" that you are looking for the glorious hope of

his "appearing." It is to you, in whom "fleshly lusts are yet warring

against the soul" (1 Pet. ii. 11), that the exhortation is given—Mor-

tify, therefore, your members that are upon the earth—even the worst

members of the old man--fornication, uncleanness, evil concupiscence.†  

And who, with the picture of the wounded and slain before him will

revolt?—"Is thy servant a dog, that he should do this thing?"

(2 Kings, viii. 13)--that he should need this warning? Look at the

footsteps of the strong men who have gone in.‡  Whom do we see come

out whole? "Behold! kings stood not before her; how then shall we

stand?" (2 Kings, x. 4.)

            Nor let present steadfastness, or seclusion from temptation, blind

our eyes to the liability of yielding to the vilest indulgence. The eye

of God discerns a far deeper corruption than appears in the outer man

—such a total depravation, that even the affections, designed to be the

sources of our holiest delight, become the principle and occasion of the

most awful departures from the ways of purity and peace.

            The gospel presents the only remedy. The love of Christ is the

counteracting principle to the love of lust. ‘If impure love solicits,

remember the holy love of thy Saviour to thee, proved by his most

shameful death. Think of him, as looking into thy heart boiling over

with corruption, showing thee his wounds, and exciting thee to a

reciprocal love of himself.’§ The crucifixion of the flesh by a living

union with Him will "keep us from our iniquity." (Gal. v. 24, with

 

    * Chap. ii. 18; ix. 18. The plural number (the ways, Heb.) seems to imply ‘many other

ways of guilt branching out, alaity other paths of ruin coinciding.'—HERVEY's Theron and

Aspasio. Letter v. Schultens insists, that the present most wretched state, full of all

horror and execration, is included; so that the man who hath entered the seducer's house,

may be said to have entered alive into hell, and gone down to the chamber of death.—

Chap. v. 5.

     † Col. iii. 1-5. Compare the exhortation to the flourishing Thessalonian Church, 1 Thess.

iv. 3-5; and to a Christian Bishop, 2 Tim. ii. 22.

     ‡  Samson—David—Solomon. Neh. xiii. 26.

                                                                  Vestigia terrent.

                                 Felix, quern faciunt aliena pericula cautum!

     § Geier on verse 18. Comp. 1 Cur. vi. 18, 20; 2 Cor. v. 14, 15.


72          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Ps. xviii. 23.) "How shall we, that are dead to sin, live any longer

therein?" (Rom. vi. 2, 3.) "The flesh will still lust against the Spirit."

(Gal. v. 17.) But the man, who walks with God in Gospel liberty, and

Christian discipline and watchfulness, is safe. (Rom. vi. 14, with 1 Cor.

ix. 27.)

            But if sin be not mortified by these principles, sooner or later it will

break out; if not, as here, to open disgrace; yet so as to defile the con-

science, to "quench the Spirit," and by a sure, though perhaps imper-

ceptible, course, to bring soul and body to hell—to the chambers of

eternal death. (Rom. vi. 21. Jam. i. 14, 15.)

 

                                            CHAPTER VIII.

1. Doth not wisdom cry? and understanding put forth her voice?  2. She

            standeth in the top of high places, by the way in the places of the paths.

            3. She crieth at the gates, at the entry of the city, at the coming in at the

            doors.  4. Unto you, 0 men, I call: and my voice is to the sons of man.

LISTEN we now to the calls of heavenly Wisdom—to the voice of the

Son of God.*  Careless soul!  shall thy Divine call be slighted, when

the allurements of sin and vanity have had power to arrest thine ear?†

Can ignorance be pleaded? Doth not wisdom cry?  and that—not in

the hour of darkness, and in the secret corners, but in the high places—

the paths of the city—the doors of thy house? Has she not followed

thee to thy places of business—of diversion—of sin? Has she not

put forth her voice in the Bible—in the family—in the preached ward?

The loudness--the perseverance of the cry betokens earnestness in thy

 

    * We assume the speaker to be personal—essential Wisdom. Apart from the general

reasons before given (Notes on chap. i. 20, 21, 24), this description could not without un-

natural force apply to an attribute It set out, I. Personal existence—brought forth—brought

up—in conjunction with Deity—by Him (verses 24, 30.) II. Personal properties (1.) set up

(anointed, Heb.) from, everlasting, for distinct office. (verse 23), (2.) The efficient cause in the

work of creation (verses 27-30), (3.) Having wisdom (verse 14) which, as an attribute itself,

could not be the property of an attribute ; and strength (verse 14) an independent quality,

not a property of wisdom, (4.) Personal authority (verses 15, 16), (5.) Leading into the

ways of truth (verses 19, 20), (6.) Causing to inherit. (Verse 21.) III. Personal affections—

hatred (verse 13), love (verse 17), joy. (Verses 30, 31.) IV. Giving personal promises.

(Verse 21.) V. Commanding obedience as a matter of life and death. (Verses 32-36.) Whe-

ther Solomon fully understood his own words, may be a question. 1 Pet. i. 10, 11. But

receiving the words as from God; weighing their natural force; comparing them with

Scripture parallels, we doubt not that they describe—not an attribute, but a Person—

Eternal—Omniscient—in the most endearing relation to man--his Creator—Mediator—

Saviour.

    † Chap. vii. ‘Imagination cannot form to itself a more exquisite and affecting piece of

scenery, than that exhibited by Solomon in the Book of Proverbs. In his seventh chapter

he introduces the world, by its meretricious blandishments alluring the unwary to the

chambers of destruction. In the succeeding chapter, by way of perfect contrast, appears

in the beauty and majesty of holiness, the Son of the Father, the true and eternal Wisdom

of God, with all the tender love and affectionate concern of a parent, inviting men to the

substantial joys and enduring pleasures of immortality, in the house of salvation.’—Bishop

HORNE's Sermon on the Tree of Knowledge.


                                           CHAP. VIII. 5—11.                                  73

 

friend, and danger in thy condition. For would she have cried so loud,

or continued so long, if she had not loved thy soul; if she had not

known the wrath that was hanging over thee—the hell that was before

thee?

            The call is unfettered; not to devils, but to men: not to the right-

eous, but to the sons of men. Every child, therefore, of guilty Adam has

his name in the warrant. It is the proclamation of the Gospel "to

every creature." (Mark, xvi. 15.) Wherever the word reaches, the offer

is made. Wherever a lost sinner be found on this side of the grave,

the free welcome of the Gospel meets him. If he be not saved, he is

more lost than ever. His ruin lies at his own door. (Matt. xxiii. 37.)

 

5. O ye simple, understand wisdom: and, ye fools, be ye of an understand-

            ing heart.  6. Hear; for I will speak of excellent things; and the

            opening of my lips shall be right things.  7. For my mouth shall speak

            truth; and wickedness is an abomination to my lips.  8. All the words

            of my mouth are in righteousness; there is nothing froward or perverse

            in them.  9. They are all plain to him that understandeth, and right to

            them that find knowledge.  10. Receive my instruction, and not* silver;

            and knowledge rather than choice gold.  11. For wisdom is better than

            rubies: and all the things that may be desired are not to be compared

            to it.

            The great Teacher calls the simple and fools to hear. (Chap. i. 23;

ix. 4, 5.) And where else can they hear such excellent things. Worthy

are they of the attention of princes† —his glorious person; his ever-

lasting covenant; his rich and sovereign love to sinners. (Verses 12–31.)

Often does the truth of God, by the tradition of men,‡ or the subtilty of

the father of lies (Comp. Matt. iv. 6, 7, with Ps. xci. 11), become virtually

a principle of error. (Gal. i..7–9.) But here all is unchangeable right-

eousness. There is no froward perversion. Every such wickedness is an

abomination. (Chap. xxx. 5. Ps. xix. 9; xxxiii. 4; cxix. 152, 160.)

            But are they within the reach of the multitude? They who "lean

to their own understanding" (Chap. iii. 5. 1 Cor. i. 20; iii. 18); who care

more to be learned than to be holy; who value the tree of knowledge

more than the tree of life; who desire "meat for their lust," rather

than manna for their souls. Such, indeed, make difficulties for them-

selves. The "voice out of the whirlwind" rebukes them, as "darken-

ing counsel by words without knowledge." (Job, xxxviii. 1, 2.) Scrip-

ture difficulties belong not to the Book itself, but to man's blind and

 

     * Rather than silver. See next clause, and Comp. Hos. vi, 6.

     † Heb. princely.

      ‡ It was a keen reply of one of the Martyrs, when asking of Bonner's chaplain—‘Is not

God's book sufficient for my salvation?’—the answer was—'Yes, it is sufficient for our

salvation; but not for our instruction.'  ‘God send me the salvation, and you the instruc-

tion.’—Exam. of Thomas Hawkes. FOXE, vii. 100.


74        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

corrupt heart. The carnal man cannot understand it, any more than

the blind can see the noon-day light of the sun. But ‘it is easy to all

that have a desire to it, and which are not blinded by the prince of this

world.’*  The "babes" are taught of God. (Matt. xi. 25; xviii. 4.)

He not only unfolds the truth, but opens their hearts to receive it.

There will be, indeed, great depths. But they will grasp important,

saving truths. Here ‘the wisest Solomon may fetch jewels for orna-

ment, and the poorest Lazarus bread for life.’†  Come then—sinner—

"sit," with one of old, "at the feet" of thy Divine Teacher. (Luke,

x. 39.) Receive his instruction more precious than silver or fine gold.

(Verse 19 ; xvi. 16. Job, xxviii. 15–19. Ps. xix. 10; cxix. 127.) Enrich

thyself with his satisfying and enduring treasures, compared with which

all the things that may be desired are lighter than vanity. (Chap. iii. 15.)

And will not the children of God daily draw more abundantly from

these treasures?  Oh! let them not be, like the pomp of this world,

the object of gaze, but of active desire and increasing enjoyment.

 

12. I wisdom dwell with prudence, and find out knowledge of witty in-

                                                ventions.

            How adorable is the Being here before us! His glorious perfec-

tions, each dwelling with the other in such harmonious combination!

All the witty inventions of science are ultimately traceable to this hea-

venly source. (Exod. xxxi. 3–6; xxxv. 30-35. 1 Chron. xxviii. 19. Isa.

xxviii. 24–29.) But his great mind was soaring far beyond. The vast

discovery of man's salvation was now before his eyes (Verses 22–31)

found out, not by laborious investigation, but by the intuition of the

Infinite Godhead. Here is his most splendid display of wisdom (Eph.

iii. 10) dwelling with prudencewisdom contriving for the highest end

prudence directing the most effective means. The same perfect com-

bination controls all his arrangements, both as "the Head of the

Church" (Col. i. 18), and "the Head over all things to his Church "

(Eph. i. 22), for her present good, and his eternal glory. ‘And what’

owe we individually, to "the riches of his grace, wherein," by the

removal of insuperable difficulties, and the communication of suitable

grace," he hath abounded towards us in all wisdom and prudence!"

(Ib. i. 7, 8.)

            Prudence is commonly thought to be only a moral quality. Here

we see it to be an attribute of Deity. The humanity of our beloved

Lord was filled with this perfection. (Isa. xi. 2.) With what Divine

acuteness of wisdom did he find out the knowledge of the inventions of his

 

     * Reformers' Notes. Comp. chap. xiv. 6; xvii. 24. ‘What wonder, if the unlettered

and despised Christian know more of the mysteries of Heaven than the naturalists, though

both wise and learned? Christ admits the believer into his bosom, and He is in the bosom

of the Father.'—LEIQHTON'S Sermon on Heavenly Wisdom.

     † Bishop REYNOLDs on Hos. xiv. 9.


                                             CHAP. VIII. 13, 14.                                       75

 

enemies, and put them to shame! (Matt. ix. 4-8; xxii. 15-46.) And

how did this combination of prudence restrain him from hasty confidence

(John, ii. 23, 24), remove him from premature danger (Matt. xii. 14-16.

John, vi. 15), and preserve him from giving needless offence! (Matt.

xvii. 27.) Praised be our God for such "treasures of wisdom," hid in

our glorious Head," ready for distribution for every emergency of his

people's need! (Col. i. 19; ii. 3.)

 

13. The fear of the Lord is to hate evil: pride, and arrogancy, and the evil

                             way, and the froward mouth, do I hate.

            Such is the holiness of Divine wisdom! She dwells with prudence.

But she cannot dwell with evil. Therefore, the fear of the Lord, which

is her very nature, is to hate evil. (Chap. iii. 7; xvi. 6.) Thus of pride

in all its branches —arrogancy of spirit, the evil way and the froward

mouth—the Wisdom of God declares without reserve—I hate them.

(Chap. vi. 16-19; xvi. 5. Ps. xlv. 7. Zech. viii. 17.) How clearly did

he mark his hatred in the days of his flesh by the full exhibition of the

opposite grace! "The Son of man came not to be ministered unto,

but to minister." (Matt. xx. 28. Luke, xxii. 27.) A proud disciple of a

lowly Saviour! how offensive is this contradiction to our Master! What

a cause of stumbling to the world!

 

14. Counsel is mine, and sound wisdom; I am understanding; I have

                                              strength.

            This counsel, as we have just hinted (See on verse 12), is not, as

with man, the fruit of deliberation, but Divine intuition. It is not that

it flows from him; but that he is himself the essence—the fountain-

head. (Isa. xl. 13, 14. Rom. xi. 34.) It is not that he hath understanding

to order and govern the world. But he is understanding. All is in

him. All is derivable from him. (John i. 9.) "His understanding is

infinite; his strength Almighty, everlasting." (Ps. cxlvii. 5. Isa. xl. 28

xxvi. 4.) Thus we adore him—we rest in him — as the great "Coun-

sellor" (Isa. ix. 6); One with his Father in the everlasting plan of

salvation (Zech. vi. 12, 13); One with his Church, undertaking her

cause (Ib. iii. 1), guiding her in all her difficulties and perplexities.

(Isa. lxiii. 9-14.) His self-existent power is ever ready to execute the

purpose of his counsel. (Ib. verses 1-6. Ps. lxxxix. 19. Job, ix. 4;

xii. 13, 16. Dan. ii. 20.) Behold him then, surrounded with the majesty

of his mighty perfections—"Christ, the power of God, and the wisdom

of God." (1 Cor. i. 24.) In all thy doubts and anxieties—counsel is

 mine, and sound wisdom. (Isa. xlviii. 17.) In all thy conflicts and

weariness—I have strength. (Ib. xl. 28, 29.) See him as man filled

with these Divine perfections. (Ib. xi. 2.) Remember—his fulness

is thy portion. (1 Cor. i. 30. Col. ii. 10.)


76                EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

15. By me kings reign, and princes decree justice.  16. By me princes rule,

                       and nobles, even all the judges of the earth.

            Another glorious contemplation of this Divine Person! He pro-

claims himself to be the source of power and authority, no less than of

counsel and wisdom. "KING OF KINGS was" the mysterious name

written upon his vesture. (Rev, xix. 16; i. 5; xvii. 14.) Yet his crown

does not displace the regal diadem from the brow of earthly princes; nor

is the sceptre to fall from their hands. These ensigns of power are to be

held, but in subordination to his own. By me kings reign; not only by

my permission, but by my appointment. They bear my name. They are

stamped with my authority. (Exod. xxii. 28. Ps. lxxxii. 6. John, x. 35.)

Proud anarchy disputes the prerogative, and traces the authority to the

people; only that they may cast off the yoke of God, and "do that

which is right in their own eyes." (Judg. xvii. 6; xix. 1. Hos. viii. 4.

2 Pet. ii. 10. Jude, 8.) Scripture polities lay down the offensive truth

—"There is no power but of God; the powers that be are ordained of

God. They are ministers of God," not servants of the people. (Rom.

xiii. 1-6.) Government in all its administrations—kings, princes,

nobles, judges—is a Divinely-consecrated ordinance.*  Every king-

dom is a province of the universal empire of the "King of kings."

Men may mix their own pride, folly, and self-will with this appoint-

ment. But God's providential counter-working preserves the sub-

stantial blessing. Yet, if "the power be exclusively of God," then is

Wisdom, by whom kings reign, the very essence and person of God. And

here is our rest, our anchor in this world's agitating storm. "The

government of the world is on the shoulders" of "the Head of the

Church." (Isa. ix. 6.) All things— all power in heaven and in earth

—is delivered unto him of his Father.†  The Lord reigneth; let the

earth rejoice." (Ps. xcvii. 1.)

 

17. I love them that love me; and those that seek me early shall find me.

            Now behold the grace of this Divine Person to his loving children.

None by nature are interested in it. (Rom. viii. 7.) But his free grace

first implants love in their hearts, and then cheers them with the assu-

rance of his own love. (1 John, iv. 19. John, xiv. 21.) The first kindling

of the flame is of him. We love, because we are drawn. (Jer. xxxi. 3.)

 

    * Ps. lxxv. 7. Jer. xxvii. 5-7. Dan. ii. 37, 38; iv. 25; v. 18. Comp. John, xix. 11. It is

interesting to trace this acknowledgment even in the darkness of Heathenism. Kings in-

herited their sceptre from Jove; Magistracy was consecrated by Augurs, the Assessors and

Counsellors of Jove.

    † Matt. xi. 27; xxviii. 18. Scott remarks the future tense in the original, as seeming

to agree with the prediction of righteous kings and rulers in the latter times of the Church.

Comp. Ps. lxxii. 1-3; Isa. xlix. 23; lx 16, 17. See the national blessing of godly rulers—

2 Chron. ix. 8. Isa. i. 26.


                                                 CHAP. VIII. 17.                                          77

 

We seek, not by the impulse from within, but by the grace from above

(Chap. xvi. 1. Ps. cxix. 32); and seeking, we find. (Isa. xlv. 19. Jer. xxix.

13. Matt. vii. 7, 8.) But it must be early seeking--the first desire and

choice of the heart. (Chap. xxiii. 26. Ps. lxiii. 1. Hos. v. 15. Matt. vi. 33.)

It must be early in the day (Ps. v. 3; cxix. 147 . Isa. xxvi. 9. Mark, i. 35),

the first-fruits of our time. Consecrate the whole to him. Take care that

God is the first person we speak to; that we see his face first before

any other; else will our lamp be untrimmed, our soul estranged from

his presence, our heart unready for his service. Let it be the early

breaking in of the day of grace (Job, viii. 5–7. Isa. Iv. 6. 2 Cor, vi. 2)—

the improvement of the first—who knows that they be not the only—

opportunities of salvation? (Chap. xxvii. 1. Heb. iv. 7.) Every present

opportunity for the soul is worth worlds. Mercy is in it—grace and

glory are in it—heaven and eternity are in it. But remember—the

door of grace, that is opened to-day, may he shut to-morrow—for ever.

            Again—this early seeking. Oh! let it be the early spring and

morning of life (1 Kings, xviii. 12. 2 Chron. xxxiv. 3.) —when the eye

is full of life, and the heart of gladness. Let it be "the kindness of

youth" (Jer. ii. 2) "the first love:" before it has been devoted to the

world; before the hardening habits of sin have been formed and fixed.

Is he not the greatest—the most desirable—the most satisfying good?

Therefore, let him be to us—as he deserves to be—the first of the first

—the best of the best.

            Children! Here is a special encouragement for you, added to the

general one. It can never be too early for you. Even now it is too

late. God has claimed you from the moment that you passed from

unconscious infancy to the dignity of a responsible being. The time

spent, so long estranged from God, has been all too long. Early de-

votedness saves from many follies and mistakes, retracing of steps, and

the after misery of being " made to possess the iniquities of our youth."

(Job, xiii. 26.).  Early satisfaction—the pure fruit of early seeking

(for they that thus seek shall find) will be the joy of your whole life

(Ps. xc. 14, with verses 34, 35)—the dawn of your blessed eternity.

Remember—the bud and bloom of life is specially acceptable to God

(Hos. xi. 1–4); specially honoured by him. (1 Sam. ii. 18; iii. 19. Ps.

xcii. 12–15.) But is it reasonable—nay—is it not a most abasing

thought—to offer the flower of youth to Satan; and, when you have

well worn yourself out in his service, to reserve only the dregs and

sweepings of life for your Saviour? (Mal. i. 8.) Every day you lose a

world of happiness; you bind a chain of sin; you take a step to hell.

Come, then, and answer the call that is drawing you to Him, who is

worthy of all. (1 Sam. iii. 9. Ps. xxxii. 8. Jer. iii. 4.) Never will you

regret that you have come too soon. But many have been the sor-

rowing cries—Lord, ‘I have loved thee too late!’ (Matt. xxv. 6–12.


78          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Luke, xiii. 24, 25.) Come, then, by his help, and in dependence on his

grace make him your first, your present choice. Lay claim by faith to

this promise to early seekers, and you shall find.

 

18. Riches and honour are with me: yea, durable riches and righteousness.

            19. My fruit is better than gold, yea, than fine gold; and my revenue

            than choice silver.  20. I lead in the way of righteousness, in the midst

            of the paths of judgment:  21. That I may cause those that love me to

            inherit substance; and I will fill their treasures.

            What a treasure do early seekers find! This fading world is too

poor a portion. (Ps. xvii. 14, 15.) Theirs are durable riches of eternity

(Matt. vi. 19, 20. Luke, x. 42. Rev. iii. 18); the honour of " reigning"

as kings "in life" (Rom. v. 17; viii. 17. Rev. i. 6); a righteousness, in

which they are accepted with God, and conformed to his image. (Rom.

iii. 22; xiii. 14. Eph. iv. 24.) Is not this fruit and revenue better than

choice silver? (Verses 10, 11; iii. 14, 15. Eccles. vii. 12.) And then,

when our way is shut up, how valuable is Wisdom's counsel! (Chap.

iii. 6; iv. 11, 12; vi. 22. Isa. xlviii. 17; xlix. 10) so carefully leading in

the midst of the paths; ‘at a distance from the extreme’* on either side

of the narrow way. The sober-minded Christian is equally remote from

formal service and enthusiastic delusion. His apprehensions of truth

are alike distinguished from the dryness of system, and from loose

unconnected principles. The intelligent and spiritually-minded Church-

man is alike separate from exclusiveness or idolatry on the one side,

and from indiscriminate Christianity on the other. He values highly

his Scriptural ordinances; yet he neither mistakes them for the sub-

stance of the gospel, nor does he substitute self-willed effervescence in

their room. This is the Via Media—Christian unity, consistency, and

fruitfulness. Here also is substance—things that have a being, in con-

trast with "things that have not" (Chap. xxiii. 5. Ps. xxxix. 6. 1 Cor.

vii. 31); solid realities (Isa. xxix. 8, contrasted with Isa. lv. 2); "faith

substantiating things hoped for." (Heb. xi. 1.) Sin pardoned: the

Father smiling acceptance; the Comforter witnessing our peace; a new

moulding of our mind and spirit. Here is no yawning vacuum, but a

grand object to give interest to life, to fill up every vacancy in the

heart—'perfect happiness.'†  All that we could add from the world

would only make us poorer, by diminishing that enjoyment of God, for

the loss of which there is no compensation. There is one point—only

one— in the universe, where we can look up, and cry with the saintly

Martyn—'With thee there is no disappointment.'‡

            Now contrast the portion in this life—of the men of this world.

Mark how the word of God pictures it—a fashion (1 Cor. vii. 31) — a

 

    * Scott. Chap. iv. 23-27. See Bunyan's fine description of the middle path.

    † Cartwright.                           ‡ Journals, vol. ii. 130.


                                        CHAP. VIII. 22-31.                                   79

 

dream (Ps. lxxiii. 20)—a nonentity (Chap. xxiii. 5. Amos, vi. 13)—a

lie. (Jonah, ii. 8.) Thus men are spread over the world, "feeding upon

ashes, a deceived heart turning them aside." (Isa. xliv. 20.) The inlet

of their misery is, that they walk in a vain shadow, and "therefore they

are disquieted in vain." The child of God finds substance in "returning

to his "true" rest. Now, Lord, what wait I for? my hope is in thee."

(Ps. xxxix. 6, 7.)

            But how does he come to his portion? Has he any part in de-

serving it? Far from it. Free grace, not free will, is the procuring

cause. It is an inheritance, now indeed "obtained," while "the earnest"

is in hand (Eph. i. 11); but to be fully enjoyed at the great consumma-

tion-day. Then, indeed, what here he promises will be fully make

good. His joyous welcome "to them on his right hand" will indeed

be causing them that love him to inherit substance (Heb. x. 34)—eternal,

unfading. (Matt. xxv. 34.) Even now from his royal bounty does he

fill their treasures. But what will be the burst of joy at that day—

what the unbounded delight throughout eternity, when, endowing them

with such a royal--yea—Divine bounty, the glorious Giver shall pro-

claim—I will fill their treasures! (1 Pet. i. 4, 5.) And the countless

throng of the redeemed shall unite in the testimony--One Christ hath

abundantly filled us all!

 

22. The Lord possessed me in the beginning of his way, before his works of

            old.  23. I was set up from everlasting, from the beginning, or ever the

            earth was.  24. When there were no depths, I was brought forth: when

            there were no fountains abounding with water.  25. Before the moun-

            tains were settled, before the hills was I brought forth:  26. While as

            yet he had not made the earth, nor the fields, nor the highest part of the

            dust of the world.  27. When he prepared the heavens, I was there;

            when he set a compass upon the face of the depth:  28. When he esta-

            blished the clouds above: when he strengthened the fountains of the

            deep:  29. When he gave to the sea his decree, that the waters should

            not pass his commandment: when he appointed the foundations of the

            earth  30. Then I was by him, as one brought up with him: and I

            was daily his delight, rejoicing always before him;  31. Rejoicing in the

            habitable part of his earth: and my delights were with the sons of men.

            It must be a perverted imagination that can suppose an attribute

here. So glorious are the rays of eternal supreme Deity, distinct per-

sonality, and essential unity, that the mysterious, ever-blessed Being—

"the Word, who was in the beginning with God, and was God" (John,

i. 1, 2) —now undoubtedly stands before us. Curiously to pry into the

mode of his subsistence, would be "intruding into those things which

we have not seen." (Col. ii. 18. 1 Tim. vi. 16.) To receive his own

revelation of himself is our reverential privilege.


80           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

            How clear is his essential unity with the Father! The Lord pos-

sessed* me—present with him in the bosom of Deity. Every movement

of the Divine mind was infinitely known—every purpose of Divine

counsel eternally present—fully developed, I was by Him†—in the

same essence and blessedness. (John, x. 30.) Such was "the glory

which he had with the Father before the world was!" (lb. xvii. 5.)

Neither man nor angel could declare it. No created intelligence could

tread one footstep in the course, that realises any conception of the

mystery. The mode of his existence in the Godhead (and this is all

that is revealed of this inscrutable subject) is generation—I was brought

forth—"the only-begotten Son"‡—a term which it is much safer to

adore than to expound; expressing, as it does, what is unsearchable.

‘Take care’—saith an old expositor—‘that in this generation we

invent nothing temporal, carnal, or human. But rather let us worship

this generation, beholding it by faith; and let us take heed from

searching further than Scripture doth teach us thereof. Otherwise we

should deserve to be blinded and punished for our great curiosity.’§

            Not less clear is his eternal existence—in the beginning|| of the way of

God—coeval with his eternal counsels—before his works of old ¶ set

up or anointed** from everlasting for his covenant offices (1 Pet. i. 20);

‘destined and advanced to be the Wisdom and Power of the Father, Light and

Life, and All in All, both in the creation and the redemption of the world.’††

            Connected with his eternity was his agency in the work of Creation.

Before the works was he brought forth. But when they were in operation

he was there—and that, not, like "the sons of God," an interested

 

   * LXX. and Syriac Translation—‘created’—most unwarrantable—one of the main

pillars of the Arian heresy.

   † John, i. 2. Geier remarks, that out of above sixty instances, where this preposition

occurs, not one can be produced, where vicinity is not supposed between two distinct per-

sons or substances.

    ‡ John, i. 18 ; iii. 16. Col. i. 15— ‘begotten before every creature.'—Bishop MIDDLETON.

    § CopE (MICHAEL), Exposition of Proverbs. 4to. 1580.

    || Holden strongly advocates the Translation—supported by many Ancient Versions,

and some of the best critics (see POOLE's Synopsis)—‘the beginning of the way’—and

expounds it—‘That Jehovah possessed by an eternal generation Wisdom or the Son, who

is the origin, or efficient cause, of all the works of God.’—Comp. Col. i. 18. Rev. iii. 14, also

i. 8; xxii. 13. Geier and other accredited authorities prefer the received version upon

critical grounds. Holden's remark, however, holds good on either hypothesis:—‘It is

scarcely possible in the whole compass of the Hebrew language to select terms more

expressive of the eternity of Wisdom than those which Solomon employs from this verse

to the thirtieth.’

    ¶ Contrast Job, xxxviii. 4, 5. Comp. verses 23-25, with Ps. xc. 2—the sublime adora-

tion of the eternity of God. Comp. also Exod. iii. 14, with John, viii. 58. Mic. v. 2.

Rev. i. 11.

    ** Heb. Anointing was the inaugurating ceremony in the consecration of prophets,

priests, and kings—a figure of the eternal consecration of Messiah to those high offices.

Comp. 1 Kings, xix. 16, with Isa. xli. 1; lxii. 1. Exod. xxix. 7, with Ps. cx. 4. 1 Sam. x. 1;

xvi. 13. 2 Kings, ix. 6, with Ps. ii. 6, marg. x1v. 6, 7.

    †† HENRY in loco. Comp. Eph. iii. 9.


                                                CHAP. VIII. 22-31.                                      81

 

spectator (Job, xxxviii. 6, 7), but an efficient cause.*  The whole detail

of the creative work is brought out—the highest part or summits of the

dust of the world, with its deep and unsearchable foundations. Thus is

uncreated Wisdom displayed in clear and undoubted glory—'the

Divinity and eternity of Wisdom, meaning thereby the eternal Son of

God, Jesus Christ our Saviour.'†

            Next he describes his unspeakable blessedness in communion with his

Father. I was by him, as one brought up with him— embosomed in him

as the object of daily delight;‡ rejoicing before him as the Fountain

and Centre of infinite joy. All this mutual intimate satisfaction and

delight had respect to the beginning of the way of God.—his eternal pur-

pose, and "the counsel of peace, which was between them both."

(Zech. vi. 13.) Here it was that the Father once and again proclaimed

him to be his delight; "His elect, in whom his soul delighted; his

beloved Son, in whom he was well pleased" (Isa. xlii. 1. Matt. iii. 17

xvii. 5. Comp. Col. i. 13, Gr.); ‘willing that by the Son we should ap-

proach to him; in the Son we should honour and adore him; and honour

the Son as himself.'§

            Yet how deeply interesting is it to see him rejoicing, not only before his

Father, but in the habitable part of the earth! And what was it that

here attracted his interest? Man had been created in the image of

God—free to stand or fall. This freedom was the perfection of his

nature. His fall was permitted as the mysterious means of his higher

elevation. His ruin was overruled for his greater security. This

habitable earth was to be the grand theatre of the work, that should fill

the whole creation with wonder and joy. (Ps. xcviii. Isa. xliq. 23.) Here

"the Serpent's head was to be visibly bruised" (Gen. iii. 15. Heb. ii.

14, 15. 1 John, iii. 8), the kingdom of Satan to be destroyed, precious

"spoil to be divided with the strong." (Isa. liii. 12. Luke, xi. 21, 22.)

Here was the Church to be framed, as the manifestation of his glory,

the mirror of all his Divine Perfections. (Eph. iii. 10, 21.)

            Considering the infinite cost at which he was to accomplish this

work—the wonder is — that he should have endured it —a greater

wonder that, ere one atom of the creation was formed— ere the first

blossom had been put forth in Paradise, he should have rejoiced in it.

            But the wonder of wonders yet remains—that he, who was his

 

     * John, i. 3. Col. i. 16. Even in the creation of man he was a co-worker, Geri. ii. 7,

with i. 26.

    † Reformers' Notes.

    ‡ Comp. John, i. 18—the only-begotten Son, who is in the bosom of the Father—‘exhibiting

at once,’ as Dr. Jamieson admirably observes—'the idea conveyed by both the terms—

brought forth, and brought up.'—Vindication of Doctrine of Deity of Christ, i. 224. Holden

with some others prefers the rendering ‘Fabricator’ for brought up, But the scope appears

to be—not the power of Messiah, but the mutual delight and communion between himself

and his Father, as it were, never absent from each other.

    § Quoted by Scott.


82          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Father's infinite delight, and infinitely delighting in him, should find

his delights from all eternity in the sons of men; that he should, as it

were, long to be with us; that he should solace his heart with the

prospect; that he should anticipate the moment with joyous readiness

(Ps. xl. 6—8. Heb. x. 7); that he should pass by the far nobler nature of

angels "to take hold of man" (Heb. ii. 16, marg.), to embrace man as

one with his All-perfect self! But though he foresaw how they would

despise, reject, and put him to shame; yet they were the objects of his

everlasting love (Jer. xxxi. 3.), the purchase and satisfaction of the

"travail of his soul" (Isa. liii. 10, 11), the eternal monuments to his

praise (Ib. lv. 13). Yet for their sakes did he make humanity a temple

of the Deity, for them did he exchange the throne of glory for the

accursed cross (Philip. ii. 6-8) — the worship of the Seraphim for the

scorn and buffeting of men (Isa. vi. 1, 2, with Matt. xxvii. 22-31).—

inexpressible joy for unknown sorrow. (John, xvii. 5, with Matt. xxvi.

38; xxvii. 46.) Yes — thou adorable Redeemer, nothing but the

strength of thine own love could have brought thee out from the

bosom of ineffable delight to suffer such things for such sinners! But

this was "the joy set before thee, for" which — unfathomable love! —

thou wast content "to endure the cross, despising the shame." (Heb. xii.

2.) For this love dost thou inherit thy Father's justly proportioned

reward. (Philip. ii. 8-11.) On this foundation is thy people's confidence

— rest — security.

 

32. Now therefore hearken unto me, 0 ye children: for blessed are they that

            keep my ways. 33. Hear instruction and be wise, and refuse it not.

            Now therefore hearken. It is no mean and undeserving person that

calls. It is none other than the Wisdom of God; the source of all light

and knowledge (Verses 12-14); the King of kings (Verses 15, 16);

the loving rewarder of his children, especially of his young children

(Verse 17. Comp. Heb. xi. 6); the rich portion and unfailing guide of

his people. (Verses 18, 19.)  Look at him once again in his Divine

glory, as "the only-begotten Son of God " (Verses 22, 24); the Medi-

ator in the everlasting Councils of Redemption (Verse 23); the Al-

mighty Creator of the world (Verses 27-30); the adorable Friend of

sinners (Verse 31). How should his Divine Majesty and condescending

love endear his instruction to us!*  Yet his promised blessing belongs

only to practical hearing—to those that keep his ways (Isa. lv. 2, 3.

Luke, xi. 28. John, xiv. 21-23. Jam. i. 25) with godly fear, con-

stancy, and perseverance; keeping their eye on them, their hearts

towards them, their feet in them. Such are truly blessed. They choose

rightly; they walk surely; they live happily; they progress honour-

 

    * See how the Father manifested the glory of his Divine Son to give constraining force

to his instruction. Matt. xvii. 1-5.


                                           CHAP. VIII. 34-36.                                    83

 

ably; they end gloriously. Is it not therefore our wisdom to hear in-

struction with "the obedience of faith"—not doing what he commands

— (in which we may sometimes do — not his will, but our own) but

doing because he commands — doing his will in it--obeying as well

when it crosses our nature, as when it is more congenial with it? But

for this cheerful, child-like obedience, sovereign grace must open the

heart, and give the ear. (Chap. xx. 12, with Acts, xvi. 14.) The guilt

of refusing is inexcusable — a resolved will against the most gracious

call. (Acts, iii. 22, 23. Heb. ii. 1-3.)

            Now therefore hearken, 0 ye children. Oh! happy moment, when

the soul is made "willing in the day of his power" (Ps. xc. 3); when

"the bands of love are drawing" (Hos. xi. 4) unto him! The cold,

dead indifference is gone. The enmity is slain. And who will not now

joyfully swear fealty; yea, count it his unspeakable delight to take

such a yoke; to be bound to such a service, where there is nothing but

for our good? (Dent. x. 12, 13.) Oh, my Prince—my Saviour! thou

hast based thy dominion on thy blood. Thou hast purchased thy right

by thy cross. (1 Cor. vi. 19, 20. Rom. xiv. 9.) Thou rulest, only that

thou mightest save. Take to thyself the glory of thy victory. I am

thine — not my own — for ever.

 

34. Blessed is the man that heareth me, watching daily at my gates, waiting

            at the posts of my doors. 35. For whoso findeth me, findeth life, and

            shall obtain favour of the Lord. 36. But he that sinneth against me

            wrongeth his own soul: all they that hate me love death.

            This is the hearing of faith—the voice of Christ to the inmost ear—

the impression of his word upon the heart. (John, v. 25. Rev. iii. 20.)

The effect is unwearied diligence and patient expectation; like the priest

waiting at the doors of the tabernacle for the assured blessing (Exod. xxix.

42); or the people watching at, the temple gates for his return from his

holy ministrations. (Luke, i. 10, 21.) This free and habitual attend-

ance upon Sacred Ordinances indicates an healthy appetite for Divine

nutriment. The superficial professor excuses himself from this "weari-

ness" (Mal. i. 13) by the fear of legality, or the danger of overvaluing

the means. But is there not at least equal danger of undervaluing the

means, to which our gracious Lord has engaged his blessing? (Exod.

xx. 24. Isa. lvi. 7. Matt. xviii. 20.) In gazing on the heavenly Jeru-

salem, the Apostle "saw no temple therein." (Rev. xxi. 22.) But what

right-hearted Christian will doubt that the life-blood of his soul while

on earth consists in watching, like the servants of the temple, daily at

her gates (Ps. lxxxiv. 1, 4, 10), when not involving the neglect of imperative

obligations. Wisdom's child will ever be familiar with Wisdom's gates.

The Weekly as well as the Sabbath assemblies will be his delight.

Most thankful will he be for the service, which invigorates him in the


84          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

midst of the toils of his worldly calling. "The way by the footsteps of

the flock, beside the Shepherds' tents," will be his constant resort. (Cant.

i. 7, 8.) And never would he wound the feelings of his Shepherd by

wilfully absenting himself from the well, when he comes to water his

flock. All the ordinances of prayer, meditation, Scripture reading, or

godly conference, will be his salutary provision. When it is not so;

when the common routine satisfies; when the intervals between the

Sabbath pass without any appetite for food, or any effort to seek the

bread of the sanctuary — Christian, is not thy pulse beating feebly ?

Hast thou not lost many a precious message from thy Lord (see John,

xx. 19, 24) —the fruit of thy Minister's special study, a word of distinct

application to thy state, and which might have guided and comforted

thee to the end of thy days? Oh, listen to thy Lord's rebuke —"Be

watchful and strengthen the things that remain that are ready to

die?*

            Observe the blessing breathed down upon the Lord's waiting ones.

They find life. (Isa. lv. 3. John, v. 24.) For he on whom they wait is

the Author (John, i. 4 ; xi. 25 ; xiv. 6), the Dispenser (lb. x. 10), the

Keeper of life. (Col. iii. 3. 1 John, v. 11. Jude, 1.) "He therefore that

hath him, hath life" (1 John, v. 12), with all its present privileges of

favour of the Lord. (Isa. lxiv. 5.)  ‘The smiles of God make heaven;

and they that obtain favour of the Lord, have a heaven upon earth.'†

Set then this expectation before thine eyes in waiting on thy God. ‘I

am seeking life for my soul; I will wait at the post of his doors, missing

no opportunity of a means of grace; I shall not wait in vain.'

            Would that the sinner—the thoughtless sinner—not the daring

and ungodly only—pondered how his heartless neglect of wisdom

wronged his own soul! (Chap i. 17-19, 31; ix..12. Jer. viii. 19. Acts,

xiii. 46. Num. xvi. 38.) How cruel he is to himself, while he is despis-

ing his Saviour. Every bait of sin is the temptation to suicide—soul-

murder. The snatching at it is as if men were in love with damnation.

‘They that hate me love death.  They love that which will be their death,

and put that from them which would be their life. Sinners die, because

they will die; which leaves them inexcusable, makes their condemna-

tion more intolerable, and will for ever justify God when he judges.

"0 Israel, thou hast destroyed thyself.'"‡

 

   * Rev. iii. 2. ‘The places where the Gospel is faithfully preached, are "the gates, and

the posts of the doors of wisdom," at which Christ would have his disciples to "wait

daily." And may not Christians, consistently with other duties, redeem time for this

waiting, as well as the children of this world find time for their vain amusements, who yet

do not neglect their one thing needful? Is not the time spared from attending on a week-

day, often spent in unprofitable visits or vain discourse? Ought Ministers to be "instant

in season, and out of season," in preaching the word; and ought not the people to be glad

of an opportunity of hearing it?' — SCOTT.

   † Lawson (George) Exposition of Proverbs. 2 vols. 12mo. 1821.

   ‡ Hos. xiii. 9 Henry in loco.

 

                                           CHAP. IX. 1-6.                                         85

 

                                           CHAPTER IX.

 

1. Wisdom* hath builded her house, she hath hewn out her seven pillars:

            2. She bath killed her beasts;† she hath mingled her wine; she hath

            also furnished her table.  3. She hath sent forth her maidens: she

            crieth upon the highest places of the city.  4. Whoso is simple, let him

            turn in hither: as for him that wanteth understanding, she saith to him,

            5. Come, eat of my bread, and drink of the wine which I have mingled.

            6. Forsake the foolish, and live; and go in the way of understanding.

WE have delighted to contemplate the Divine Saviour in his

glorious majesty, and specially in his wondrous love to the sons of men.

(Chap. viii. 22-31.) Here his love is poured out before us. The

parable of the marriage-feast clearly identifies the speaker. Then the

King made the feast, and sent his servants to invite the guests. (Matt.

xxii. 1-4, also Luke, xiv. 16, 17.) Here Wisdom is a Queen, according to

Eastern custom, attended by her maidens (Exod. ii. 5. Esth. iv. 4), and

she sends them forth to bid to the feast. She hath builded her house

"the church of the living God"— firm upon the pillars of eternal truth.

(1 Tim. iii. 15. Eph. ii. 20-22. Heb. iii. 3, 4. Matt. xvi. 18.) The great

sacrifice supplies her feast. (1 Cor. v. 7. Ps. xxxvi. 8. Isa. xxv. 6.) She

hath killed her beasts, mingled her wine with the choicest spices,‡ and

plentifully furnished her table. And now she cries to the simple—igno-

rant of his danger (Chap. xxii. 3), and easily deceived (Chap. xiv. 15)

to him that wanteth understanding (Hos. vii. 11)—who has no appre-

hension of his need, or desire for the blessing—Let him turn in hither.

Here is a feast, not to see, but to enjoy. Come, eat of the bread of life

drink of the wine of gospel grace and joy.§  Is there not besides a special

invitation for her children—a table richly furnished for their refresh-

ment; where they eat of the bread, and drink of the wine, such as "the

world know not of " (Matt. xxvi. 26-28.)

            But are not all corners welcome to the Gospel feast? The Master's

heart flows along with every offer of his grace. His servants are

ministers of reconciliation. (2 Cor. v. 18-20.) Their message is to tell

of the bounty of Messiah's house, and to bid sinners welcome to Him.

Here, sinner, is thy warrant—not thy worthiness, but thy need, and

the invitation of thy Lord. All the blessings of his Gospel are set

before thee—love without beginning, end, or change. Honour the

freeness of his mercy. Let him have the full glory of his own grace,

 

     * Wisdoms. Heb. Comp. note Chap i. 20.            † Comp. Gen. xliii. 16. Marg.

     ‡ Bishop Lowth remarks the difference between the Classics and the Hebrews The one by

mingled wine understand wine diluted with water; the other intend wine made stronger by

spices, or other exhilarating ingredients. Note on Isa. i. 22. Comp. chap. xxiii. 29-31. Cant.

viii. 2.

    § Matt. xxii. 44. Isa. lv. 1. Comp. Bishop Hall's note.

 


86         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

who invites thee to a feast, when he might have frowned thee to hell.*

Let his heavenly hope be enthroned in the soul, displacing every sub-

ordinate object from its hold on thine affections, eclipsing the glories of

this present world, absorbing thy whole mind, consecrating thy whole

heart.

            Here only are the ways of peace. The very severities of the Gospel

prepare the way for its consolations. But never can these blessings be

valued, till the path of the foolish be forsaken. Thou must forsake

either them or Christ. (Jam. iv. 4.) To abide with them, is to "remain

in the congregation of the dead." (Chap. xxi. 16.) To forsake them, is

the way of life and understanding. (Chap. xiii. 20. Ps. xxvi. 3-6; xxxiv.

12–14; cxix. 115. Amos, v. 15.) Are they more to you than salvation?

To "be the friend of the world is to be the enemy of God." "Come

out, and be separate, and touch not the unclean thing; and I will

receive thee, saith the Lord Almighty." (2 Cor. vi. 17, 18.)

 

7. He that reproveth a scorner getteth to himself shame: and he that rebuketh

            a wicked man getteth himself a blot. 8. Reprove not a scorner, lest he

            hate thee: rebuke a arise man, and he will love thee. 9. Give instruc-

            tion to a wise man, and he will yet be wiser: teach a just man, and he

            will increase in learning.

            Wisdom's messengers must discriminate in the proclamation of their

message. If the simple welcome it, the scorner and wicked will rebel.

Yet we must distinguish between the ignorant and the wilful scorner.

Paul "did it ignorantly, in unbelief." (1 Tim. i. 13.) His countrymen

deliberately refused the blessing, and shut themselves out from the free

offers of salvation. (Acts, xiii. 45, 46, 50; xviii. 6. Matt. x. 14, 15.)

            One cannot think of the scorner without compassion. He cannot

bear to commune with himself. Under an assumed gaiety, he would

envy—as did Colonel Gardiner—the dog his existence. ‘I hate life’

— said Voltaire—‘yet I am afraid to die.’ Such is the bitterness of

soul linked with rebellion against God! Wretched indeed must he be,

when the thought of God is an abomination, and when it is necessary

to his peace to expunge all idea of him from his creed. (Ps. xiv. 1.)

            Yet, in dealing with him, Solomon here gives us the rule of Christian

prudence. The gospel is a thing too holy to be exposed to scoffing

fools. (Matt. vii. 6.) Why should we reprove, where more harm than

good may be occasioned? Avoid irritations. Await the favourable

opportunity. Sometimes a sad, serious, intelligible silence is the most

effective reproof. (Amos, v. 13; vi. 10.) Whereas open rebuke might

stir up a torrent of hatred (Chap. xv. 12; xxiii. 9. 1 Kings, xxii. 8.

 

    * Calvin speaks of the pleading invitations of Christ, as ‘his sweet and more than

motherly allurements,' and beautifully adds—that ‘the word of God is never opened to us,

but that he with a motherly sweetness opens his own bosom to us.' On Matt. xxiii. 37.


                                          CHAP. IX. 10, 11.                                    87

 

2 Chron. xxv. 16) and abuse (Gen. xix. 9. Amos, vii. 10. Matt. vii. 6);

and under provocation of spirit, the reprover might get to himself a blot.

(Isa. xxix. 21.)

            Yet this prudence must not degenerate into cowardice, and compro-

mise the primary obligation boldly to rebuke sin (Eph. v. 11. 1 Thess.

v. 14. 1 Tim. v. 20. Matt. xiv. 3, 4), and confess our Master. (Matt. x.

32, 33. Acts, iv. 19, 20.) Every sinner is not a scorner. And a "word

spoken in due season, how good is it!" (Chap. xv. 23.) That false

delicacy, therefore, which recoils from an unflinching profession, is

treachery to our Lord, and deep—perhaps eternal—injury to our

fellow-sinners. Have not each of us a tongue to speak? To suffer any

therefore to rush into perdition without opening our mouths to save

them, is a sin of omission, which will cause a bitter pang to the

awakened conscience.

            The wise and just man gladly encourages well-timed reproof.

(Chap. xxviii. 23.) Conscious of his own failings, he loves his reprover as

a friend to his best interest (Lev. xix. 17. Ps. cxli. 5. 1 Sam. xxv. 33.

2 Sam. xii. 7-14); and he would receive instruction from the lowest, as

a means of becoming yet wiser, and increasing in learning. (Chap. i. 5.

Exod. xviii. 17-24. Acts, xviii. 26.)

            After all—wisely to give, and humbly to receive, reproof, requires

much prayer, self-denial, love, and sincerity. But where the mind of

Christ is mutually exhibited, it cements a bond of the warmest affection.

(1 Sam. xxv. 32-42.) "Faithful are the wounds of a friend." (Chap.

xxvii. 6.) Happy is that church which receives the loving admonitions

of the Christian pastor with humility and thankfulness.*

 

10. The fear of the Lord is the beginning of wisdom:  and the knowledge of

            the holy is understanding. 11. For by me thy days shall be multiplied,

            and the years of thy life shall be increased.

            The repetition of this weighty sentence (Chap. i. 7. Job, xxviii. 28.

Ps. cxi. 10) deepens our estimate of its importance. The fear of the

Lord was a lovely grace in the perfect humanity of Jesus. (Isa. xi. 2, 3.)

Let it be the test of our "predestination to be conformed to his image."

(Rom. viii. 29.) It is the genuine spirit of adoption. The child of God

has only one dread—to offend his Father; only one desire—to please

and delight in him. Thus is the fear of the Lord connected with his

love. ‘The heart that is touched with the loadstone of Divine love,

trembles still with godly fear.’†  If this temper is the beginning, it is

 

    * 2 Cor. ii. 1-9. Mr. Martyr — his Biographer observes— ‘felt reproof to be ‘a duty of

unlimited extent and almost insuperable difficulty.’ But, said he, ‘the way to know when

to address men, and when to abstain, is to love.’ And, as love is most genuine, where the

heart is most abased, he resolved not to reprove others, when he could conscientiously be

silent, except he experienced at the same time a peculiar contrition of spirit.’—Life, chap. ii.

     † Leighton on 1 Pet. ii. 17.


88              EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

also (as the word imports) the head—of wisdom—not only its first

rudiment, but its matured exercise. It is obviously combined with the

knowledge of the Holy One.*  For if men did but know his holiness--

who would not fear thee, 0 Lord?" (Rev. xv. 4.) Days multiplied

were the Old Testament reward. (Chap. iii. 2, 16; iv. 10; x. 27.) And

truly the value of life is only realized in the knowledge and service of

God. Inconceivably joyous to us is the prospect of years of life increased

into a boundless eternity—infinite desires; fully satisfied, yet excited

unceasingly to more full and heavenly enjoyment.

 

12. If thou be wise, thou shalt be wise for thyself: but if thou scornest, thou

                                           alone shalt bear it.

            The consequences of our conduct, good or bad, chiefly reflect on

ourselves. (Chap. xvi. 26.) God cannot be profited by us (Job, xxii.

2, 3. Ps. xvi. 2. Luke, xvii. 10); and he is infinitely above our injury.

(Job, xxxv. 6, 7.) The wise man's light is a blessing to the Church and

to the world. (Matt. v. 14, 16.) But he is wise for himself— for his own

advantage. (Chap. iii. 13-18; xxiv. 3. Eccles.. viii. 1.)  The scorner is

a grief to his minister, and a stumbling to his church. But he hurts

no one so much as himself. He alone shall bear it. (Chap. viii. 36.

Ezek. xviii. 20. Luke, vii. 30.) A surety indeed there is. But his

scorning rejects him. He sinks therefore into perdition under a mill-

stone of guilt without remedy. (Chap. xxix. 1. Heb. x. 28, 29. Lev.

xxiv. 15.) This then is the ordinance of God. "Every man shall bear

his own burden. Whatsoever a man soweth, that shall he also reap:"

life or death—a double harvest—for time and for eternity. (Gal. vi. 5, 7, 8.)

 

13. A foolish woman is clamorous; she is simple, and knoweth nothing.

            14. For she sitteth at the door of her house, on a seat in the high places

            of the city.  15. To call passengers who go right on their ways:

            16. Whoso is simple, let him turn in hither: and as for him that

            wanteth understanding, she saith to him,  17. Stolen waters are sweet,

            and bread eaten in secret (of secresies, marg.) is pleasant.  18. But he

            knoweth not that the dead are there; and that her guests are in the

            depths of hell.

            Wisdom's free and gracious invitation has been before us.  And we

 

    * The parallelism with the former clause seems to demand this meaning. The applica-

tion of the plural number to the sacred name is elsewhere used by Solomon (verse i. 1-20.

Eccles. xii. 1) as well as by others of the inspired Writers. Gen. i. 26. Job, xxxv. 10. Isa.

liv. 5. Compare the Heb. of Hos. xii. 1. Josh. xxiv. 19. Bishop Horsley remarks— God

is the only Being, to whom the same name in the singular and in the plural may be indis-

criminately applied. And this change from the one number to the other, without any

thing in the principles of language to account for it, is frequent in speaking of God in the

Hebrew tongue, but unexampled in the case of any other Being.' Sermon xxix. on the

Watchers. The reason of this peculiar usage—we may add—is obvious to any one, who

receives with implicit and reverential faith the Scriptural revelation of the Divine Essence.


                                               CHAP. IX. 13-18.                                     89

 

might almost ask—who could resist it?  Now we have an allurement

from the opposite quarter. For sin is no less earnest to destroy, than

wisdom is to save. The distinct character of folly here alluded to,

may be gathered from the pictures formerly given. (Chap. ii. v. vii.)

Fleshly lusts are in open opposition to Divine wisdom. ‘The delight

of the soul fixed on anything but God and his grace, is but spiritual

adultery.'*  The woman of foolishness is clamorous (Chap. vii. 11), and,

though "subtil in heart" (Ib. verse 10) in the devices of Satan, she is

simplicity itself in her utter ignorance of right. So fearfully do sensual

pleasures darken the understanding, that the tempter, from the very

habit of deceiving, becomes the victim of her own delusion! (Hos.

iv. 11. 2 Tim. iii. 13.) With a shameless front she dares to present

herself in the highest places of the city (Gen. xxxviii. 14, 21. Jer. iii. 2, 3.

Ezek. xvi. 24, 25, 31), alluring, not only those who are "going the way

to her house " (Chap, vii. 8), but the inexperienced who are going right

on their ways. Thus, even the highway of God, though a path of safety

(Chap. x. 9), is beset with temptation. Satan is so angry with none as

with those, who are going right on. When Israel was in the straight

path, quickly did he turn them aside by the golden calf. (Exod. xxiv. 7,

with xxxii.) And now enticements or assaults wait on every step.

The temptation to open sin would be revolting. But must you give up

all your pleasures? May not some stolen waters (Chap. v. 15-17. 2 Sam.,

xi. 2), some secret indulgences (Chap. xx. 17. Job, xx. 12-14), be

allowed? Ah! sinner—there is no such thing as secret sin. All is

naked and open as day before the eye of God. (Job, xxiv. 15; xxxiv.

21, 22.) All will soon be proclaimed before the assembled world.

(Luke, xii, 1, 2.) But the strength of this temptation is, that they are

forbidden pleasures. (Gen. iii. 1-6.) Restraint provokes the dormant

power of sin;† as children will do that which is forbidden, because it is

forbidden. But what will be the end? Satan shows only the sparkling

cup, and the glaring light. Ask to look into the inner chamber. The

blinded fool hath wilfully closed his eyes (Chap. vii. 22. Isa. i. 3. 2 Pet.

iii. 5); else might he know that the dead are there; and that her guests

—the wilful despisers of wisdom, are in the very depths of hell. (Chap.

ii. 18; vii. 27.)

            Reader— the wisdom of God, and the great deceiver of man—stand

 

     * Diodati.

     † Rom. vii. 8. 1 Cor. xv. 56. See Augustine's description of his robbing the pear-tree —

not for the gain of the fruit (the greater part of which he threw away), but for the mere

pleasure of sin as sin—as breaking God's law. Truly affecting also is it to see him, like the

Psalmist (Ps. li. 5) tracing the sin to its root—'Behold my heart, 0 Lord, behold my heart,

which thou hadst pity upon in the very bottom of the bottomless pit!'—Confess. iii. 4, 6.

                       ‘Nitimur in vetitum semper, cupimusque negata :

                            Sic interdictis imminet aeger aquis.

                        Quidquid servatur, cupinius magis, ipsaque furem

                             Cura vocat pauci, quod sinet alter, amaut.'—OVID.


90             EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

before you. Both are wooing thine heart; the one for life--the other

for death. Both are intensely anxious for success. Wisdom crieth.

The foolish woman is clamorous. (Verse 3 with 13.) Both take their

station in the high places of the city. (Verse 3 with 15.) Both spread

out their feast for the simple and ignorant (Verse 4 with 16), smiling

and happy on the brink of ruin. But how opposite their end? The

one makes the simple wise unto eternal life. The other bears away her

willing captive into unutterable misery. Which voice arrests thine

ear, and allures thine heart? Which feast excites thine appetite?

Whose guest art thou? Wilt thou not open thine eyes to the infatua-

tion and pollution of this house of horror and death?  Oh! remember

that every listening to the enticement rivets thy chain, rejoices thy

grand enemy, cheats thee out of thy present, no less than of thine

eternal, happiness, and will banish thee for ever from the paradise re-

opened as thy home. Thou mayest sink into the grave and perish.

But it will be with the Saviour's voice crying in thine ears, "How long,

ye simple ones, will ye love simplicity?" (Chap. i. 22.) The voice of

mercy now warns thee against estranging thyself from thy God. But

mercy is limited to time. Then justice, without mercy, will hold the

scales with relentless severity, and the sentence of condemnation will

bind thee in the lost and blasted kingdom of eternal death. What

then is our heart's desire and prayer, but the free grace and love of the

Gospel may draw and fix thine heart; and that the Lord may preserve

thee from the tempter's snare, by keeping thee closely walking with

himself.

 

                                         CHAPTER X.

 

1. The proverbs of Solomon. A wise son maketh a glad father: but a

                     foolish son is the heaviness of his mother.

THE former chapters have beautifully set forth in continuous discourse

the nature and value of heavenly wisdom, contrasted with the fascina-

tions of sinful folly. We now come to what are more properly (not

excluding the foregoing) (Chap. i. 2) the Proverbs of Solomon. They

are for the most part unconnected sentences, remarkable for profound

thought, and acute observation, expressed in an antithetical or illustra-

tive form; the whole comprising a Divine system of morals of universal

application; a treasury of wisdom in all its diversified details, personal,

domestic, social, civil. The previous chapters form a striking introduc-

tion to the book. The glorious description of the Great Counsellor (Chap.

i. viii.) commends to us his gracious instruction as the principles of

true happiness and practical godliness.

            Perhaps this first sentence may have been placed in the front, to


                                          CHAP. X. 2.                                            91

 

point to the value of a godly education in its personal, social, national

influence, connected both with time and eternity. We naturally look

for rest in our children, as the choicest gift of God. (Gen. v. 28, 29;

xxxiii. 5. Ps. cxxvii. 3.) Faith, indeed, may he tried, perhaps severely

tried. (Eccles. xi. 1.) But the child, watched, prayed over, instructed,

and disciplined, shall, in the Lord's best time, choose wisdom's paths

(Chap. xxii. 6), and be the gladness of his father's heart. (Chap. xv. 20;

xxiii. 15, 16, 24, 25; xxvii. 11; xxix. 3. Gen. xlv. 28; xlvi. 30.)

            Many a mother, alas! is chastened with the heaviness of a foolish son.

(Gen. xxvi. 34, 35; xxvii. 46.) In such cases, has not indulgence, in-

stead of wholesome restraint; pleasure, instead of godliness; the world,

instead of the Bible—educated the child? Want of early discipline;

passing over trifles; yielding when we ought to command—how little

do we think to what they may grow! (1 Sam. ii. 24; iii. 13. 1 Kings,

i. 5, 6; ii. 25.) God has laid down plain rules, plain duties, and plain

consequences flowing from their observance (Chap. xxii. 6; xxiii.

13, 14) or neglect. (Chap. xxix. 15.) To forget a daily reference to

them; to choose our own wisdom before God's (1 Sam. ii. 29);— can

we wonder that the result should be heaviness?*

 

2. Treasures of wickedness profit nothing: but righteousness delivereth from

                                                         death.

            The most substantial earthly treasures profit nothing. (Chap. xxiii. 5.

Matt. vi. 19.) Much inore do treasures of wickedness. (Jer. xxii. 13.

Ezra, vii. 19. Amos, iii. 10, 11. Hab. ii. 6-9.)  ‘A man may seem to

profit by them, and to come up wonderfully for a time.’†  But what

was the profit of Naboth's vineyard to Ahab, when in his "ivory palace"

he was withering under the curse of God? (1 Kings, xxi. 4-24, with

xxii. 39.) What was the profit of the thirty pieces of silver to Judas?

Instead of delivering from death, their intolerable sting plunged him

into death eternal. (Matt. xxvii. 5.) What else will be the fruit of

covetousness, but shame (2 Kings, v. 23-27. Rom. vi. 21), disappoint-

ment (Jer. xvii. 11), and ruin? (Chap. xxi. 6, 7. Josh. vii. 20-26. Dan.

v. 1-6.)  "Thou, O man of God, flee these things, and follow after

righteousness." (1 Tim. vi. 11.) This is "the breast-plate" (Eph. vi. 14.

1 Thess. v. 8), that covers the vitals in the fearful conflict. This is the

path-way to eternal life. (Chap. xii. 28. Ps. xv.; xxiv. 3-5. Isa. xxxv. 8.

 

   * Bishop Lowth supposes an antithesis between the relative terms (Prelim. Dissert.

Isaiah), which Bishop Jebb illustrates by the distinctive character of the father's gladness,

whose affections are more disciplined, and the mother's grief, whose tenderness might bind

her to the faults of her children, or lead her weakly to excuse them. — Sacred Literature,

Sect. ii. But, probably, this refinement of criticism is beside the meaning of the inspired

Writer, who interchangeably ascribes these exercises of feeling to both parents. Chap. xvii.

24, 25; xix. 13; xxiii. 24, 25. Comp. Gen. xxvi. 35. 2 Sam. xiii. 37-39. Comp. Glass. Phil.

Sacr. Lib. iv. Tract ii. Obs. 13. Schultens in loco.

    † Bishop SANDERSON's Sermon on 1 Sam. xii. 3.


92             EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Matt. v. 8.) This is the deliverance from the sting, the terror, the taste

of death. (Chap. xi. 4. John, viii. 51.) We must not flinch from this

scriptural statement from fear of legality. Lay the foundation of accept-

ance deep and clear upon the righteousness of Christ. But upon this

foundation fear not to raise the superstructure of inherent righteousness.

Take up the prayer and confidence of the man of God—"Let integrity

and uprightness preserve me; for I wait on thee.” (Ps. xxv. 21.)

 

3. The Lord will not suffer the soul of the righteous to famish; but he

                     casteth away the substance of the wicked.

            To spiritualize the temporal promises would be to lose great en-

largement of faith. They are not restricted to the Old Dispensation.

If David was preserved from famishing, and that too by those most

unlikely to help him,* Paul could also in similar trial "set to his seal"

—"I have all, and abound, I am full." (Philip. iv. 18.) How does our

gracious God double and redouble his engagements!†  He sends us to

the fowls of the air for the confirmation of our little faith. "Are not ye

much better than they?" (Matt. vi. 25, 26.)  ‘Yet the promises require

faith, whereby we believe that God helpeth us.’‡  He may for the

exercise of faith suffer us to hunger (1 Cor. iv. 11. 2 Cor. xi. 27, with

Deut. viii. 3. Matt. iv. 2-4); yet not to famish. (Ps. xxxvii. 3. Isa.

xxxiii. 16. Matt. vi. 32.).  And does not his unfailing care for temporal

provision convey the assurance, that he will not suffer the soul to famish?

"The good Shepherd knows his sheep." He "seeks them out in the

cloudy and dark day," and brings them into his fold, where "they go in

and out, and find pasture." (John, x. 9. Ezek. xxxiv. 12.) Awful

indeed is the contrast of the wicked—their substance cast out (Job, xx.

15); themselves buried in the ruins of their own family. (Ps. xlix. 6,

&c. Luke, xii. 19, 20; xvi. 23.)

 

4. He becometh poor that dealeth with a slack (deceitful, marg.) hand: but

                           the hand of the diligent maketh rich.

            Every day's observation confirms the fact, that a slack hand im-

poverishes (Chap. xix. 15; xx. 4; xxiii. 21; xxiv. 30-34. Eccles. x. 18),

and the hand of the diligent enriches (Chap. xiii. 4; xxi. 5), the harvest's

lord. Justly is the slothful condemned as, deceitful; because he

pretends,to serve his Master, when in truth be has been doing nothing.

(Matt. xxv. 26. Jer. xlviii. 10. M.R.).  He becometh poor by wasting his

trust. (Chap. xviii. 9. Comp. Matt. xxv. 28, 29.) His life, which might

have been a continued feast, is a continual vexation. Industry was the

law of Paradise (Gen. ii. 15); and though now it bears the stamp of

 

     * By Shobi the brother of his bitter enemy. 2 Sam. xvii. 27, with x. 4. Machir also of

the house of Saul. Ib. ix. 4. Comp. Ps. xxxvii. 25.

     † Heb. xiii. 5; five negatives in the original.                     ‡ Cope in loco.


                                             CHAP. X. 5.                                        93

 

the fall (Ib. iii. 19), it is overruled as a blessing; and in the ordinary

course of Providence maketh rich. (Chap. xii. 24, 27 ; xxii. 29.) The

Lord's visits of favour were never given to loiterers. Moses and the

Shepherds of Bethlehem were' keeping their flocks. (Exod. iii. 1, 2.

Luke, ii. 8, 9.)  Gideon was at the threshing-floor. (Judg. vi. 11.)

‘Our idle days’—as Bishop Hall observes—‘are Satan's busy days.’

Active employment gives us a ready answer to his present temptation

—"I am doing a great work, and I cannot come down." (Neh. vi. 3.)

            Is then the man of God waxing low in his store? Has there not

been a slack hand in drawing upon the sacred treasury? Has not he

gazed upon the heavenly treasures, with "his hand in his bosom?"

(Chap. xix. 24.) Has he not become poor by slighting his rich con-

solations? The Lord gives his blessing, as he gives the fruits of the

earth, not to those that wish (Chap. xiii. 4; xx. 4), but to those that

"labour" (Verse 3 with 4. John, vi. 27); not to sentimental indolence,

but to Christian energy and perseverance. The trade of the world is

uncertain. The trade of godliness is sure. There are no bankrupts

here. The diligent servant is honoured with an increase of his grace

(Matt. xxv. 29), and the enlargement of his confidence.*

 

5.  He that gathereth in summer is a wise son: but he that sleepeth in

                        harvest is a son that causeth shame.

            Indolence has just been contrasted with diligence. Forethought is

here opposed to improvidence. (Chap. vi. 6-8.) The importance of

opportunity is practically admitted in temporal matters. (Eccles. iii. 1;

viii. 5.) Joseph wisely gathered in summer and harvest for the coming

need. (Gen. xli. 46-56.) The woman of Canaan (Matt. xv. 22-28) —

the blind men (lb. xx. 30) —improved their present opportunities.

The wise son will thus gather his blessing at the fittest time. The fresh-

ness of youth is a summer harvest. It is as much the will of God, that

the young should gather knowledge, as that the farmer should gather

his harvest. The wise gathering in this summer gives substance, vigour,

high tone and power of usefulness in after-life! How often may we

trace poverty of mind, enervation of character, unprofitable habits, to

sleeping in this fruitful harvest!  ‘He who idles away the time of his

youth will bear the shame of it when he is old.’†  Specially looking at

this, as the season of Christian instruction, anxious promise, our Father's

 

     * 2 Pet. i. 5-11. Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on 1 Cor. vii. 24.

      † Henry in loco. See Bp. HORNE's Sermon on the Redemption of Time. Sir Walter Scott's

testimony in his Auto-Biography is most instructive—’If it should ever fall to the lot of

youth to peruse these pages. let such a reader remember, that it is with the deepest regret

that I recollect in my manhood the opportunities of learning which I neglected in my

youth; that through every part of my literary career I have felt pinched and hampered by

my own ignorance: and that I would at this moment give half the reputation I have had

the good fortune to acquire, if, by doing so, I could rest the remaining part upon a sound

foundation of learning and science.'


94          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

pleading time with the wayward heart (Jer. iii. 4), ere yet it be

hardened in habits of sin—is not the sleeper in such an harvest a son

that causeth shame?  Look again at the large harvest of opportunity in

labouring for God—the great and diversified machinery of religious

societies, needing direction and energy; the mass of fellow-sinners

around us, claiming our sympathy and helpfulness—"While we have

time, let us do good." (Gal. vi. 10.) How high is the privilege of

gathering with Christ in such an harvest! (Matt. xii. 30.) How great

the shame of doing nothing, where there is so much to be done! What

a harvest also is the present "accepted time!" (2 Cor. vi. 2.) Mark the

abundance of the means of grace, the living verdure of the gospel. The

Bible opens the way. The Saviour invites. The Holy Spirit strives

with the conscience. The Sabbath also is a golden gathering time for

the week. It draws us aside from the world, and beams with the peace,

joy, and hope of heaven. Now, am I diligently improving this harvest?

or am I sleeping—perhaps in the very house of God--instead of

listening to the voice from heaven—a shame to my minister, to my

church, to my Lord?

            The Lord preserve me from the ruin of sleeping (Matt. xxv. 5. Comp.

Isa. lv. 6. Luke, xiii. 28, 29. Chap. i. 24-28) away the invaluable hours

of " the day of salvation!" Can I bear the thought of that desponding

cry of eternal remorse—"The harvest is passed; the summer is ended—

and I am not saved?" (Jer. viii. 20. Comp. chap. v. 11-13.)

 

6. Blessings are upon the head of the just: but violence covereth the mouth

            of the wicked. 7. The memory of the just is blessed: but the name of

            the wicked shall rot.

            Is not affliction the lot of the just? (John, xvi. 33. Acts, xiv. 22:

2 Tim. iii. 12.) Yet how abundantly is it compensated by the blessings

that are upon his head (Chap. xxviii. 20. Gen. xlix. 26) —blessings tem-

poral (Deut. xxviii. 1-6. 1 Tim. iv. 8) and spiritual (Isa. xxxii. 17);

from man (Chap. xvi. 7. Job, xxix. 11-13) and from God. (Ps. iii. 8;

v. 12. Isa. lxiv. 4, 5. Matt. v. 3-12.) His very memory is a blessing to

his family and to the Church. (Ps. cxii. 6.) Fragrant is the "good

report of the elders" immortalized in the Apostolic Book of Martyrs.

(Heb. xi. 2.) Truly blessed is the memory of a godly parent (Chap. xxxi.

28); of a faithful minister (Heb. xiii. 7); of a righteous king (2 Chron.

xxxv. 24, 25); of a public benefactor (2 Chron. xxiv. 6); of a self-

denying Christian.*

            No such honour belongs to the wicked. Often some outward stroke

 

     * Mark, xiv. 9 ‘No spices can so embalm a man; no monument can so preserve his

name and memory, as a pious conversation, whereby God bath been honoured, and man

benefited. The fame of such a person is, in the best judgments, far more precious and

truly glorious, than is the fame of those, who have excelled in any other deeds or qualities.'

—BARROW'S Sermons.


                                                   CHAP. X. 8.                                          95

 

of violence covers their mouth (Ps. cvii. 42), and marks them for con-

demnation (Esth. vii. 8. Job, ix. 24), as they will all be so marked at

the day of retribution. (Rom. iii. 19.) And even now their memory rots

in corruption. (Job, xviii. 17. Ps. xlix. 11, 12; cix. 13. Eccles. viii. 10.

Isa. lxv. 15. Jer. xxii. 18, 19; xxix. 22, 23.) Contrast the memory of

the "man after God's heart," with that of "Jeroboam the son of Nebat"

(1 Kings, xi. 26; xiv. 14-16. 2 Kings, xiv. 3); or in later times, Ridley

and Latimer with the name of their wicked persecutors. Such is the

blessing and curse of God, long after the men had passed into eternity.

‘Thou mayest choose’— said godly Bishop Pilkington—'whether thou

wilt be remembered to thy praise or to thy shame.’*

 

8. The wise in heart will receive commandments; but a prating fool will

                                    fall, (be beaten, marg.)

            The heart is the seat of true wisdom, and a teachable spirit is the

best proof of its influence. For who that knows himself would not be

thankful for further light? No sooner, therefore, do the commandments

come down from heaven, than the well-instructed Christian receives

them, like his father Abraham (Heb. xi. 8. Gen. xxii. 1-3), with un-

disputing simplicity; welcomes the voice of his heavenly teacher

(1 Sam. iii. 10. Acts, x. 33. Ps. xxvii. 8; lxxxvi. 11; cxliii. 10); and,

when he knows that "it is the Lord, girds himself " with all the ardour

of the disciple to be found at his feet. (John, xxi. 7.)

            But look at the professor of religion destitute of this heart-seated

wisdom. We find him a man of creeds and doctrines, not of prayer;

asking curious questions, rather than listening to plain truths (Ib. verses

21, 22); wanting to know events rather than duties; occupied with

other men's business, to the neglect of his own. (Luke, xiii. 23, 24.

1 Tim. v. 13.) In this vagrant spirit, with all his thoughts outward

bound, he wanders from church to church, and from house to house, a

prating fool upon religion; bold in his own conceit (3 John, 10), while

his life and temper fearfully contradict his fluent tongue. Too blind

to respect himself (Chap. xviii. 2), too proud to listen to counsel (Verse

17; xv. 32), he will surely fall into disgrace, beaten with the rod of his

own foolishness. (Chap. xviii. 6, 7. Eccles. x. 12. 2 Kings, xiv. 8-14.)

Let me look at this picture as a beacon against the folly of my own

heart. Young Christian! beware of a specious religion, without

humility, consistency, love; because separated from close walking

with God.

 

9. He that walketh uprightly walketh surely; but he that perverteth his

                                       ways shall be known.

            An upright walk is Christian, not sinless, perfection (Job, i. 8);

 

     * Works, Parker Society, p. 36G.


96           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

"walking before God," not before men. (Gen. xvii. 1.) Impurity

indeed defiles the holiest exercise. But if the will be rightly bent, the

integrity will be maintained. ‘Show me an easier path’—is nature's

cry. ‘Show me’—cries the child of God—‘a sure path.’ Such is the

upright walk under the shield of the Lord's protection (Chap. ii. 7. Ps.

lxxxiv. 11) and Providence (Chap. i. 33. Eccles. viii. 5. Isa. xxxvii. 15,

16); under the shadow of his promises (Ps. xxiv. 3-6); in the assurance

of his present favour (1 John, iii. 18-22), and in its peaceful end. (Ps.

xxxvii. 37. Isa. lvii. 1, 2.) There will be difficulties. But a deliver-

ance will be wrought through them; as the Babylonish captives were

delivered through the fire from the infinite greater danger of apostacy.

(Dan. iii. 21-29.)

            From the want of this uprightness of walk, Peter denied the founda-

tion of the Gospel. (Gal. ii. 14.) Learn then the value of this principle

for an enlightened and full reception of the truth; that we may wel-

come " a Prince as well as a Saviour" (Acts, v. 31); combine his

sceptre with his sacrifice, his holy precepts with his precious promises

and prove the influence of a vital faith in godly practice. We shall

thus carry out the rule of the Gospel into everything, making God the

master of every thought, word, temper, motive, not less in our secular

calling than in our spiritual devotedness. (1 Cor. x. 31. Col. iii. 17.)

Such an upright walk will bring a happy confidence. ‘The man, con-

scious to himself of an honest meaning, and a due course of prosecuting

it, feeleth no check or struggling of mind, no regret or sting of heart.

He therefore briskly moveth forward with courage, there being within

him nothing to make him halt, to distract or disturb him.'*

            But to bend our rule to our own humour; to pervert our ways to

escape trouble, or for some interested end, will shake our confidence far

more than the heaviest cross. The eye of God knows the deviation

already (John, vi. 70, 71), and will bring it to shame. (Luke, xii. 1, 2.

1 Tim. v. 24.) Thus was Jacob chastened to the end of his days. (Gen.

xxvii. with xlii. 36-38.) Peter was openly rebuked. (Gal. ii. 11-44.)

Judas (Matt. xxvii. 3-5) and Ananias (Acts, v. 1-40) are known in

the records of the church as a beacon to the end of time. "Let my

heart be sound in thy statutes, that I be not ashamed. I will walk

in my integrity; redeem me, and be merciful unto me." (Ps. cxix. 80;

xxvi. 11.)

 

10. He that winketh with his eye causeth sorrow; but a prating fool

                                             shall fall.

            The contrast here intended seems to be between the man who

brings trouble on his fellow-creatures, and one who brings it upon

 

                                                 * Barrow.


                                           CHAP. X. 11, 12.                                         97

 

himself.*  Mischievous sport indeed is it to cause sorrow for selfish

gratification (Verse 23; xxvi. 18, 19); to make the eye an instrument

of wanton sin. (Chap. vi. 13. Ps. xxxv. 19.) Scarcely less affecting is

it to see the tongue a world of foolishness. But not a trace is visible of

the likeness, in which man was first created. Every member is per-

verted from its proper use and glorious end. Man is a plague to his

neighbour, because he is an enemy to his God. And because "the fool

despises wisdom" (Chap. i. 7), he falls the victim of his own folly.

 

11. The mouth of a righteous man is a well of life; but violence covereth

                                the mouth of the wicked.

            The Indwelling Spirit—"a well of living water"—is the glorious

privilege of the righteous. (John, iv. 14; vii. 38.) Hence his mouth,

replenished from the heavenly source, is a well of life, sending forth

refreshing waters. (Chap. xvi. 23.) The precious talent of speech is

thus consecrated to His service, "who made man's mouth." "Grace in

its measure is poured upon our lips" (Ps. xlv. 2); and our "tongue"

becomes "our glory." (Ps. lvii. 8 ; cviii. 1.) Wit, originality, imagin-

ation may furnish ‘the feast of reason, and the flow of soul.’ But how

poor is this pleasure compared with the godly instruction—perhaps

with little intellectual attraction—that pours forth from a well of life!

Servant of God! honour your high privilege of thus ministering a

blessing to the Church. (Verse 21; xv. 7. Eph. iv. 29.) Enlarge its

exercise by increasing your spiritual store, and walking in closer fel-

lowship with your God. What owe you to His grace, who hath made

your mouth a well of life; while the violence of the wicked falls back upon

themselves, and covers their mouth with confusion?

 

             12. Hatred stirreth up strifes: but love covereth all sins.

            A simple but forcible contrast! Hatred, however varnished by

smooth pretence, is the selfish principle of man. (Tit. iii. 3.) Like a

subterraneous fire, it continually stirs up mischief, creates or keeps

alive rankling coldness, disgusts, dislikes, "envyings and evil sur-

misings;" carps at the infirmities of others; aggravates the least slip

(Isa. xxix. 21); or resents the most trifling, or even imaginary, pro-

vocation. These strifes are kindled (Chap. xv. 18; xvi. 27, 28; xxviii.

25; xxix. 22) to the great dishonour of God, and the marring of the

beauty and consistency of the gospel. Is not here abundant matter

for prayer, watchfulness, and resistance? Let us study 1 Cor. xiii. in

all its detail. Let it be the looking-glass for our hearts, and. the

standard of our profession. Love covers, overlooks, speedily forgives

and forgets. (Chap. xvii. 9. Gen. xlv. 5-8.) Full of candour and inven-

tiveness, it puts the best construction on doubtful matters, searches out

 

                                     * See Bishop Hall.


98             EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

any palliation, does not rigidly eye, or wantonly expose (Gen. ix. 23)

a brother's faults; nor will it uncover them at all, except so far as may

be needful for his ultimate good. To refrain from gross slander, while

abundant scope is left for needless and unkind detraction, is not covering

sin. Nor is the "seven-times forgiveness" the true standard of love

(Matt. xviii. 21), which, like its Divine Author, covers all sins. And

who does not need the full extent of this covering? What is our

brother's all against us, compared with our all against God? And

how can we hesitate to blot out a few pence, who look for the covering

of the debt of ten thousand talents? (Ib. verses 22-35.)  Oh! let us

"put on the Lord Jesus" in, his spirit of forbearing, disinterested, sacri-

ficing love—"Even as Christ forgave you, so also do ye."*

 

13. In the lips of him that hath understanding wisdom is found; but a rod

                 is for the back of him that is void of understanding.

            Solomon and his son admirably illustrate this contrast. Such

wisdom was found in his lips--the fruit of an understanding (1 Kings,

iii. 12) heart—that "all the world came to hear of it." (Ib. iv. 31;

x. 1.) And "happy were they" justly pronounced, which stood con-

tinually before him, and "heard his wisdom." (Ib. x. 8.) Rehoboam

was as void, as his father was full, of understanding. His folly prepared

a rod for his back.†  Learn then to seek for wisdom at the lips of the

wise. (Verses 11, 21; xiii. 20; xv. 7.) The want of this wisdom, or

rather the want of a heart to seek it, will surely bring us under the rod.

In many a chastisement we shall feel its smart, for the loose education

of our children (Chap. xxix. 15); for the neglect of family discipline

(Ib. verse 21); for carnal indulgence. (2 Sam. xii. 9-11.) And how

different is this rod from our Father's loving chastisement! That—

the seal of our adoption (Chap. iii. 11, 12. Feb. xii. 6, 7)—This the

mark of disgrace. (1 Pet. ii. 20.) Will not the children of God cry—

"Turn away the reproach that I fear, for thy judgments are good."

(Ps. cxix. 39.)

 

14. Wise men lay up knowledge: but the mouth of the foolish is near

                                              destruction.

            Did not Solomon prove his title as a wise man by his diligence in

 

     * Col. iii. 13. Comp. I Pet. iv. 8. The first clause of the verse, compared with the

Apostle's application of the second, clearly proves that the subject is the covering our bro-

ther's sin before men. Este—one of the most evangelical of the Romish interpreters—

thus limits the application. The gloss, therefore, of man's covering sins before God is

utterly groundless. Comp. chap. xvii. 9. Calvin and Geier conceive Jam. v. 20 to be only

an allusion to the Proverb. The latter adds—'It is one thing to cover sin before men;

another thing to cover it before God. The first is the act of love. (1 Cor. xiii. 4. Gal. vi. 2.)

The last requires an infinite price, equal to the turning away of the eternal wrath of God.'

Rom. iii. 25. 1 John, i. 7. Ps. xxxii. 1, &c.

      † 1 Kings, xii. 13-24. Comp. chap. xix. 29; xxvi. 3. The rod was the usual corporal

punishment under the Mosaic law. Deut. xxii. 18; xxv. 2, 3.


                                                      CHAP. X. 15.                                     99

 

laying up knowledge? (Eccles. xii. 9, 10.) No wonder that wisdom is

found in the lips, where "out of the abundance of the good treasure of

the heart the mouth speaketh."*  It is "the householder" storing his

mind not for selfish gratification, but for liberal and useful distribution.

(Matt. xiii. 52.) If the hoarding wisdom be cultivated in youth (Chap.

vi. 6; xviii. 1, 15), what a store of valuable treasure would be laid up!

yet all little enough to meet the coming trial. Let every day add

something to the stock. So inexhaustible is the treasure, that no doubt,

difficulty, temptation, or duty, will be found unprovided for!

            Wise men lay up knowledge, for their own use—Fools lay it out.

For want of sound wisdom, they only open their mouths for their own

mischief, in profane rebellion (Exod. v. 2. Ps. xii. 3-5; lii. 1-5); gro-

velling selfishness (1 Sam. xxv. 10, 11, 38); ungodly worldliness (Luke,

xii. 18-20); or hateful pride (Acts, xii. 21-23)—near to destruction.

(Chap. xii. 13; xiii. 3; xviii. 7. Eccles. x. 12, 13.) How near--who

can say?—But if they be not " taken away with a stroke" without

remedy (Job, xxxvi. 18); they only stand out as monuments of the

"much long-suffering of God, enduring the vessels of wrath fitted to

destruction." (Rom. ix. 22.)

 

15. The rich man's wealth is his strong city; the destruction of the poor is

                                                  their poverty.

            This is as it appears on the surface. The rich man's wealth fences

him from many invading evils (Eccles. vii. 12), obtains for him influ-

ence and respect (Chap. xix. 4, 6. Gen. xxiii. 6), and serves to him as a

talisman against all sorrows. (Eccles. x. 19.) Thus "in his own con-

ceit" it is his strong city. (Chap. xviii. 11.) So prone are we to rest on

the creature as the stay and comfort of life. (Ps. xlix. 6; lxii. 10. Jer.

ix. 23. 1 Tim. vi. 17.) All notions of God are blotted out, and man

becomes a god to himself. The poor, having no such defence, dwell as

"in a city without walls," exposed to every assault. (Chap. xiv. 20;

xix. 7; xxii. 7. John, vii. 48, 49.)  "Poverty comes upon them as an

armed man" (Chap. vi. 11), and sinks the spirit in consternation.†

            How secure--how happy then—we are ready to say—are the

rich! How wretched the condition of the poor! But the glass of

God's word discovers a more even balance. "Hath not God chosen the

poor of this world, rich in faith, and heirs of his kingdom?" (Jam. ii. 5.

Zeph. iii. 12.) Think of Jesus sanctifying the state of poverty by his

own blessed example. (Luke, ii. 7-12; iv. 22; viii. 3. Matt. viii. 20.)

Think of the riches of his grace, raising the poor out of the dunghill,

 

     * Matt. xii. 34. Jerome mentions of his friend Nepotian, that, ‘by daily reading and

meditating in the sacred volume, he had made his soul a library of Christ.’— Letter to

Nepotian.

     † This is the accurate rendering.—See Schuiteus, Holden, Scott.

 

 

 

100                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

that he may set him with the princes of his people. (Ps. cxiii. 7, 8.

1 Sam. ii. 8.)

Both states however have their besetting temptations, needing

special grace. (Chap. xxx. 8, 9.) The safety of both is, when the rich

are poor in spirit (1 Chron. xxix. 14) and large in heart; and the poor

"rich in faith," and "contented with the gain of godliness." (Job, i. 21.

1 Tim. vi. 6-8.) "Let the brother of low degree rejoice, in that he is

exalted; but the rich, in that he is made low." (Jam. i. 9, 10.)

 

16. The labour of the righteous tendeth to life: the fruit of the wicked

                                                     to sin.

Labour, not idleness, is the stamp of a servant of God: thus cheered

by the glowing confidence, that it tendeth to life. (John, vi. 27.) "Occupy

till I come--Do all to the glory of God" (Luke, xix. 13. 1 Cor. x. 31)

--this is the standard. Thus the duties even of our daily calling tend

to life. (Chap. xi. 19. Jer. xxii. 15, 16.) God works in us, by us, with

us, through us. (Isa. xxvi. 12.) We work in and through him. Our

labour therefore is work--wrought in dependence on him; not for

life, but to life. (Rom. viii. 13. 1 Cor. xv. 10. Philip. ii. 12, 13.) And

this is life indeed; the only exercise deserving the name; the only

object worth living for. (Philip. i. 21.) Lord! quicken us to "life

more abundantly." Thus sowing "to the Spirit, of the Spirit we shall

reap life everlasting." (Gal. vi. 8.) With the wicked, self is both the

object and the end. His fruit therefore is sin. (Chap. xxi. 4. Tit. i. 15.

Matt. xii. 33 j xv. 19.) His Master, so long as he serves him faithfully,

cares little how or in what sphere. "He that soweth to the flesh, shall

of the flesh reap corruption." Each tendeth to its own end. "What-

soever a man soweth, that shall he also reap." (Gal. vi. 7.)

 

17. He is in the way of life that keepeth instruction: but he that refuseth

                                             reproof erreth.

Mercy unspeakable is it, that the way of life is opened! Instruction

sets the way before us. He that keepeth instruction cannot fail of finding

and enjoying it. (Chap. viii. 34, 35.)  The more we value that most

needful part of instruction-discipline (Chap. vi. 23; xxii. 17), the

more shall we regard every practical lesson in the heavenly school.

To refuse the reproof; to be deaf to the voice that would save us from

ruin--is a most fearful error--the proof of a foolish and unhumbled

heart (Chap. xii. 1. 2 Chron. xvi. 7-10; xxv. 15, 16); the certain fore-

runner, if not corrected, of irremediable destruction. (Chap. i. 25, 26,30;

v. 12; xv. 10 ; xxix. 1. Jer. vi. 10. Zeph. iii. 2.) Child of God! is it

not matter of shame and sorrow, that you should be so slow to keep

such irestimable instruction; so prone to err from the way of life; and,


                                       CHAP. X. 18.                                              101

 

though having the full promise of Divine guidance, still so often acting

as the slave of your own will?

 

18. He that hideth hatred with lying lips, and he that uttereth a slander is

                                                       a fool.

Scripture history from the first chapter of fallen man abundantly

illustrates this proverb. Cain talking with his brother (Gen. iv. 8);

Saul plotting against David (1 Sam. xviii. 21, 22, 29); Joab's treachery

to Abner and Amasa (2 Sam. iii. 27; xx. 9, 10. Comp. xiii. 23, 29; Ps.

v. 9; lv. 21); the enemies of the Church on the return from Babylon

(Ezra, iv. 1-16. Neh. vi. 2)--all hid hatred with lying lips. Such was

also the smooth tongue of the Herodians (Luke, xx. 20, 21), and more

than all--the deadly kiss of Judas. (lb. xxii. 47,48, with Ps. lv. 12-14;

xli. 9.) So perfectly, yet with the most exquisite sensibility of pain,

did our Blessed Lord identify himself with the trials of his people!

Closely allied with the hypocrite is the slanderer (Ps. 1. 16-20)--both

stamped by God with the mark of fools. For of what avail is this

mask? Is there not an Eye that looks through, and a Hand that will

tear off, the flimsy cover? (Chap. XXVI. 23-28. Comp. Ps. 1. 21; Luke,

xii. 1,2.) And if their hatred be vented against the godly, is not the

day at hand, when their "rebuke and slander shall be taken away from

the earth?" (Isa. xxv. 8.)

But is this "root of bitterness" thoroughly mortified in the Christian's

heart? Is there no insincerity in our intercourse with those, to whom

we feel, if not hatred, at least strong repugnance? In the language of

polite courtesy, there is much that is hollow, if not false. Do we really

mean what we say? Or rather is not the profession of regard often ill

absolutely contrary to our real feelings? Do we never bring them

under ridicule, set them out in an unfavourable light, assert things upon

mere suspicion,*  or attempt to raise our own name upon the ruin of

their reputation?  In common society, how is it often considered the

acme of disappointment, when this conversation flags, or comes to a

pause; whereas the reverse ought to be the true subject of regret.

This spirit surely in the eyes of God is slander; an offence against the

"new commandment of love"--which is the badge of all the disciples

of Jesus. (John, xiii. 34, 35.) These noxious humours are the bane of

 

    * Occasions of evil report can never be wanting to them who seek, or are ready to embrace

them. No innocence, no wisdom, can anywise prevent them; and if they be admitted as grounds of

defamation, no man's good name can be secure. It is not every possibility, every seeming, every

faint show, or glimmering appearance, which sufficeth to ground bad opinion, or reproachful

discourse concerning our fellow-creature. The matter should be clear, notorious, and palpable,

before we admit a disadvantageous conceit into our head, a distasteful resentment into our heart, a

harsh word into our mouth about him…. Justice requireth full proof, "Charity thinketh no evil,

and believeth all things" for the best. Wisdom is not forward to pronounce before full evidence.'

BARROW'S Sermons.

 

102         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

true godliness. They must not only be restrained, but "laid aside," if

ever we would, ''as new-born babes, desire the sincere milk of the

word, that we may grow thereby." (1 Pet. ii. 1,2. Jam. i. 21.) Lord,

purge our hearts from these hateful hidden corruptions; even though

it be by "the Spirit of judgment and the Spirit of burning." (Isa. iv. 4.)

 

19. In the multitude of words there wanteth not sin: but he that refraineth

                                            his lips is wise.

Hypocrisy and slander are not the only sins of the tongue. Indeed,

considering the corrupt fountain from whence they flow (Gen. vi. 5.

Matt. xii. 34), we cannot conceive of words, much less a multitude of

words, without sin. There is the sin of egotism. "Our own mouth

praises us, not another." (Chap. xxvii. 2.) We love to hear ourselves

talk; and present our own judgment intrusively)". There is also the sin

of vain babbling, a canker to the vital principle. (2 Tim. ii. 16, 17.

Eccles. x. 13, 14. 1 Tim. v. 13.) The fool talks for ever upon nothing;

not because he is full, but because he is empty; not for instruction, but

for the pure love of talking. This wantonness is a sin of the flesh,

trifling with the most responsible talent, when conversation is, as

Bishop Butler truly remarks, 'merely the exercise of the tongue; no

other human faculty has any place in it.'*  The government of the

tongue is therefore a searching test of the soundness of our religion.

(Jam. i. 26; iii. 2.) Considering, therefore, the sin connected with the

multitude of words, it is surely our wisdom to refrain our lips (Chap. xvii.

27, 28. Job, xiii. 5. Eccles. v. 3. Jam. i. 19), not indeed in silence, but

in caution; to weigh our words before uttering them; never speaking,

except when we have something to say; speaking only just enough;

considering the time, circumstances, and person (Job, xxxii. 4-7); what

is solid, suitable, and profitable. (Chap. xv. 23. Eph. iv. 29. Col. iv. 6.)

Indeed a talent for conversation is valueless both to the possessor and

to the auditors, except it be connected with a talent for silence. The

sphere of social intercourse, that stimulates the conversational powers,

at the same time teaches the wholesome discipline of the tongue--that

beautiful accomplishment of silence; which however, alike with its

opposite grace, derives its chief loveliness, as the fruit of Christian

humility and kindness. The wisdom is especially valuable under pro-

vocation. (1 Sam. x. 27. 2 Kings, xviii. 36.) And even in the unbend-

ing of innocent recreation, the discipline of godly sobriety is of great

moment. The sins of this "little member" are not trifles. They need

the full application of the gospel? What but "the blood of sprinkling,"

 

* Sermon on the Government of the Tongue. ‘One meets with people in the world, who

never seem to have made the wise man's observation, that "there is a time to keep

silence." These times, one would think, should be easily distinguished by everybody;

namely, when a man has nothing to say, or nothing but what is better unsaid.'  Ib. Comp.

Ecclus. xix. 6; xx. 5-7.


                                 CHAP. X. 20, 21.                                          103

 

could enable us to meet "the account for every idle word at the day

of judgment?"  ‘Light words weigh heavy in God's balance.'* Woe

to us, if the great Surety did not bear the sins of our vain words, no less

than of our grosser wickedness! Never let us think of these sins as

anything less than the nails that pierced his hands and his feet. And

will not this sensibility of sin quicken our prayer for an increase of this

refraining wisdom? "Set a watch, 0 Lord, before my mouth, and keep

the door of my lips." (Ps. cxli. 3.)

 

20. The tongue of the just is as choice silver: the heart of the wicked is

            little worth. 21. The lips of the righteous feed many: but fools die for

            want of wisdom (of heart, marg).

The wisdom of refraining our lips must always be connected with

diligence in improving our talent. If our tongue be our shame in the

overflowing of sin (Verses 18, 19): is it not also our glory? (Ps. lvii.8;

cviii. 1.) When "speaking of the things touching the king" (Ib.

xlv. 1), or sketching the features of his transcend ant loveliness (Ib. 2.

Cant. v. 10-16); is it not then as choice silver, refined from this world's

dross, and shining with heavenly brightness? Who would not eagerly

gather up the silver scattered in the streets? And shall not we enrich

our store from the choice silver of the just man's tongue, pouring out its

precious instruction before us? If, as regards this world's wealth, the

Lord's poor must say--"Silver and gold have I none;" at least they

may scatter choice silver with a widely-extended blessing--"As poor,

yet making many rich." (Acts, iii. 6. 2 Cor. vi. 10.)

Observe also the usefulness of this member. If we be living with

God, it will diffuse a salt, a heavenly leaven, a rich propagation of

holiness in our various circles. The lips of the righteous feed many from

the rich stores of "the indwelling word" (Col. iii. 16); "ministering to

them grace," the soul's true and proper nourishment! (Eph. iv. 29. Job,

iv. 3, 4; xxix. 22, 23.)  ‘Their breath is food to others, as well as life

to them.'†  When "the priest's lips keep knowledge, and they seek the

law at his mouth," he feeds the church of God.‡ And as our great

Master broke the bread, and gave it to his disciples for their distribution

( John, vi. 11); so does he now dispense to his servants heavenly pro-

vision, suitable, and abundantly sufficient for tile need of their charge.

And every Sabbath is the wondrous miracle displayed before our eyes.

The imperishable bread multiplies in the breaking. The hungry, the

 

   * Nicholls. Matt. xii. 36.

      FLAVEL On Soul of Man.- Works, 8vo. ii. 551.

     Mal. ii. 7, with Jer. iii. 15. John, xxi. 15. Acts, xx. 28. 1 Pet. v. 2. Of Bishop

Ridley our Martyrologist records in his own beautiful style, that ‘to his Sermon

the people resorted, swarming about him like bees, and coveting the sweet flowers

and wholesome juice of his fruitful doctrine.'-Foxe, vii. 407.


104            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

mourners, the weary and fainting; yea, all that feel their need, are

refreshed and invigorated.

The wicked – his coffers may be full. But his heart, being empty

of the choice silver, is little worth. (Jer. xxii. 28.) So far from feeding

others, the fool dies himself for want of wisdom; or rather for want of

heart to seek it. He despises the lips that would feed him, and 'dies of

famine in the midst of the rich pastures of the Gospel.'*  Oh! how

often are we reminded that sin is self-destruction! (Hos. xiii. 9.)

 

22. The blessing of the Lord, it maketh rich, and he addeth no sorrow

                                                 with it.

            We have been told (Verse 4), that the hand of the diligent--here we

see that the blessing of the Lord--maketh rich. Both are consistent.

The one marks the primary, the other the instrumental and subordinate,

cause. Neither will be effective without the other. The sluggard looks

for prosperity without diligence; the practical atheist from diligence

alone; the sound-hearted Christian from the blessing of God in the

exercise of diligence. This wise combination keeps him in an active

habit; humble, and dependent on God. (John, vi. 27.) For "except

the Lord build the house, they labour in vain that build it. The race

is not to the swift, nor the battle to the strong." (Ps. cxxvii. 1. Eccles.

ix. 11.) The rich then may receive their portion (Eccles. ii. 24-26;

iii. 13; v. 18-20) as the blessing of the Lord (Gen. xxiv. 35; xxvi. 12.

1 Chron. xxix. 14. Deut. viii. 17, 18); carefully using it as a talent for

his service (Luke, xix. 13), and for the good of their fellow-creatures.

(I Tim. vi. 17, 18) The poor may enjoy the same enriching blessing in

the "gain of godly contentment." (Ib. verse 6.) Their cottage is a

palace, as the habitation of the King of kings; and neither life nor

death, neither time nor eternity, can separate them from their God.

(Rom. viii. 38, 39.)

The blessing of the Lord moreover hath this prerogative. He addeth

no sorrow with it; at least no sorrow, but what turns to a blessing.

Accumulation of riches may be the accumulation of sorrows. (Chap.

xx. 21; xxviii. 22. 1 Tim. vi. 9, 10.) Lot's covetous choice was fraught

with bitterness. (Gen. xiii. 10, 11; xiv. 12; xix. 15. 2 Pet. ii. 8.) Ahab

wore a crown and "lay sick on his bed" in discontent. (1 Kings, xxi. 4.)

Gehazi was laden with his bags; but the plague of leprosy was on him.

(2 Kings, v. 27.) Haman's mortification was the canker in his boasted

glory. (Esth. v. 13.) The rich youth's rejection of Christ was the source

of present- must we not fear?--everlasting sorrow. (Luke, xviii. 23.)

The worldling's recompense for his daily toil is "eating the bread of

sorrows.  So"--mark the striking contrast--"he giveth his beloved

 

     * Schultens. Comp. Acts, xiii. 41, 45, 46.


                                   CHAP. x. 23, 24.                                  105

 

sleep." (Ps. cxxvii. 2. Eccles. ii. 26; v. 12.) Happy portion of the

children of God! They "know both how to be abased, and they know

how to abound." (Philip. iv. 12.) "All things are theirs." (1 Cor. iii. 21.)

"Thy blessing is upon thy people." (Ps. iii. 8.)

 

23. It is as sport to a fool to do mischief: but a man of understanding hath

                                                    wisdom.

The wanton sport of putting others to pain argues the perverseness

of a fool both in judgment and heart. (Chap. xxvi. 18, 19. 2 Sam. ii.

14-16.) Sometimes this cruel amusement may engage a man in the

tempter's work. (Chap. i.11-14.) For fools, who make sport of mischief,

may heedlessly go on to "make a mock of sin." (Chap. xiv. 9.) But

even without going so far, should not we guard against mischievous

jokes, tending to wound a neighbour's character, or to give him

uneasiness? Are we sufficiently careful against indulging our wit

or humour at his expense? All this is not less unmanly, than it is

inconsistent with the sobriety and gravity of a Christian profession. It

is the pure native selfishness of the human heart. Should not also

children's play be sometimes under restraint? Young people cannot

be too strongly disciplined to thoughtfulness and consideration of

others. Never let their hilarity of spirits lead to make sport of that,

which ought to call forth sympathy and tenderness. A man of under-

standing is too wise to find a reckless delight in his neighbour's injury.

The spirit of our Divine Master was according to his own law (Gal. vi.

2)--eminently considerate and sympathizing. (Luke, vii. 13.) Let

us who bear his name, cultivate his self-denying, loving mind.

(Philip. ii. 4, 5.)

 

24. The fear of the wicked, it shall come upon him: but the desire of the

                                     righteous shall be granted.

The sport of the wicked: how soon is it gone! (Eccles. vii. 6.) But

his fear--the evil which he feared--comes upon him. The Babel

builders were punished with the evil, which they had laboured to

prevent. (Gen. xi. 4,8.) Ahab's device could not shelter him from

his foreboded judgment. (1 Kings, xxii; 28-37.) The rebellious Jews

rushed into the ruin from which they fled. (Jer. xlii. xliii.) Belshazzar's

trembling was realized in his speedy destruction. (Dan. v. 6,30.) Thus

are "the wicked" tossed, "like a troubled sea." (Isa. lvii. 20, 21.) Do

not "their hearts" in solitude "meditate terror?" (Ib. xxxiii. 18. Comp.

Deut. xxviii. 67. Job, iii. 25; xv. 21.) Do not their consciences turn

pale at the question--"Where shall the ungodly and the sinner

appear?" (1 Pet. iv. 18.) And will it not be the constrained confession

at the great day--"According to thy fear, so is thy wrath?" (Ps. xc.

11. Mal. iv. 1.) Unwilling are they now to be reckoned among the


106     EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

righteous. Much more will they then be to be found in their sins--

fear their portion--ruin their doom--without hope--without end.

But if the fear of the wicked--so also will the desire of the righteous

--be fully realized. As the one cannot fear anything so bad, so the

other cannot desire anything so good, as what is really in store for them.

Desires bounded by the will (1 John, v. 14), and centered in the enjoy-

ment, of God (Ps. iv. 6; xxxvii. 4), will be granted to their utmost

extent. (lb. lxxxi. 10. Jer. xxxiii. 3. John, xvi. 23, 24.) God did not

raise them to be our torment, but our rest.

Granted they are upon the principle, that they "are only good."

(Chap. xi. 23.) Yet too often the desires of the righteous are not righteous.

The defilement of a worldly spirit (Mark, x. 37), or the hastiness of an

impatient spirit*--far better that they should be denied than granted.

(Ps. cvi. 15. Jam. iv. 3.) So generally indeed are they mixed with

infirmity, that their unreserved gratification might be our destruction.

(Exod. xxxiii. 18, 20.) But he is no less wise than kind: he separates

the evil, and fulfils the good (lb. verse 19); answering, not according

to our wishes, but our wants; not as in our ignorance we may have

asked, but as an enlightened regard to our best interests would have

led us to ask.

But 'I have desired a thousand times on my knees, and yet it has

not been granted.' Yet is it not worth being upon our knees for it a

thousand times more? May not the blessing be withheld a while, till

our sensibility of need be quickened (Isa. xli. 17); or to prepare us

ultimately for a richer enjoyment? (Chap. xiii. 12.)

But if our desires be granted, and even exceeded (Gen. xlviii. 11.

1 Kings, iii. 13. Eph. iii. 20); faith and patience will be tried in the

very grant. Growth in grace is given by deep and humbling views of

our corruption. Longings for holiness are fulfilled by painful affliction.

Prayers are answered by crosses. Our Father's dispensations are not

what they seem to be, but what he is pleased to make them.† Yet in

the darkest cloud the ground of our confidence is firm. All things

needful will be given, and at the grand consummation every desire will

be eternally fulfilled--‘As for me, I shall behold thy face in righteous-

ness; I shall be satisfied, when I awake, with thy likeness." (Ps. xvii.

15, xvi. 11.)

 

25. As the whirlwind passeth, so is the wicked no more: but the righteous is

                                     an everlasting foundation.

Thus suddenly, as the whirlwind,‡ does the fear of the wicked often

 

* Elijah, 1 Kings, xix. 4. Jonah, iv. 1-4. The disciples, Luke, ix.54-56.

†  See a beautiful hymn in Olney Collection.--Book iii. 36.

See note* p. 11. Comp. Jer. xxiii. 19. Hos. xiii. 3; also Job, xx. 8, 9;  xxi. 13,19-21. Ps. lxxiii.

19, 20.


                                    CHAP. X. 26, 27.                                              107

 

come upon him. All his hopes, pleasures, and dependencies; all his

opportunities of grace, and offers of mercy, are swept away in a moment

for ever. Such a whirlwind was the destruction of the old world, of the

cities of the plain (Luke, xvii. 26-29); of Sennacherib's army. (2 Kings,

xix. 35.) And such a whirlwind, infinitely more terrible, will be the

coming of the Lord. (Luke, xvii. 30. 1 Thess. v. 2, 3.) "But he that

doeth the will of God abideth ever" (1 John, ii. 17), as an everlasting

foundation. Faith hath fastened him to the Rock of Ages; hath built

his house upon this Rock; and no storm can root him up. (Matt. vii.

25. Ps. cxii. 7.) But remember, this is the confidence of the righteous.

Sin allowed and indulged will shake this foundation far more than all

the outward assaults of earth and hell. "Hold fast then thy rejoicing"

in a jealous godly fear. Thy portion is secure. Thy hopes, joys, and

prospects are unchangeable. Thou canst look at trouble-yea, at

death itself--without dismay, and feel--'I am safe.' But while "thou

standest by faith, be not high-minded, but fear." (Rom. xi. 20.)

 

26. As vinegar to the teeth, and as smoke to the eyes, so is the sluggard to

                                            them that send him.

A lively figure of the vexation of the sluggard to his employers!

(Contrast Chap. xxvi. 6, with xiii. 17; xxv. 13.) Suppose a fire to be

extinguished, medical assistance needed, a message of urgent haste to

be conveyed--he is worse than unserviceable. Common prudence

dictates the selection of active and industrious servants. And such

when influenced by godly principles, are "worthy of double honour."

(Chap. xxii. 29. Gen. xxiv. 1-14. 1 Tim. v. 17.)

Does then the sluggard disappoint and provoke his earthly master?

See that we be not such sluggards to our heavenly Master. Laodicean

professors are specially hateful in his sight. (Rev. iii. 16.) The slothful

Minister carries in a tremendous account to him that sent him. No more

pitiable object is found, than the man who has time to spare; who has

no object of commanding interest; and is going on to the end, as if he

had spent his whole life in children's play, and had lived for no useful

purpose. He may probably have parcelled out a portion of his time

for some miscalled religious duty. But he might as well be asleep as

on his knees; in idleness as in meditation--so little pains--so little

heart, is connected with his duties! Why "standeth he idle in the

market-place?" It cannot be--"No man hath hired him." His

Master's call sounds in his ears--"Go ye into the vineyard." (Matt. xx.

7.) And at his peril he disobeys it. (Ib. xxv. 30.)

 

27. The fear of the Lord prolongeth days: but the years of the wicked shall

                                                    be shortened.

            The fear of the Lord is not a single grace. It includes the substance


108          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

of all godly tempers. For all are radically one principle, from one

source. It essentially differs from the fear of the wicked. They fear

those whom they hate. The child of God-whom he loves. Whether

his temporal life be shortened or prolonged, he lives long in a little

time. He is an infinite gainer by the contraction of life; when his

days are prolonged and swallowed up in the one unclouded day, of

which "the sun shall no more go down." (Chap. ix. 11. Ps. xci. 16.

Isa. Ix. 19.) Justly is the fear of the Lord contrasted with the wicked;

because the absence of this grace is their distinguishing mark (Ps.

xxxvi. 1), the principle of all their ungodliness. (Rom. iii. 10-18.) And

often do we see the letter of this curse realized in the shortening of their

years. Excessive worldliness wears out the spring of life (Eccles. v.

10-12), and often brings it to an untimely end.*  Sometimes the God

of vengeance breaks out, and "takes away" the daring offender "with

his stroke." (Job, xxxvi. 18. 1 Sam. ii. 32; iv. 11. Acts, v. 1-10.) Yet,

if he be "visited after the visitation of all men," awful indeed is the

course of a long life wasted in folly and sin; living little in a long

time--"The sinner, being an hundred years old, shall be accursed."

(Isa. lxv. 20.)

 

28. The hope of the righteous shall be gladness: but the expectation of the

                                        wicked shall perish.

The fear of the Lord, so far from being opposed to, is often con-

nected with, the hope of the righteous. Ps. xxxiii. 18; cxlvii. 11.) And

well may this hope be gladness; for it is 'accompanied with sweet

patience, joyful hope, and crowned with a happy issue.'†  It has its

origin in eternity. (Tit. i. 2.) Its substance is Christ and heaven.

(Rom. v. 2. 1 Pet. i. 3,4. Col. i. 27.) The foundation is the work of

Christ. (1 Pet. i. 3, 21.) The security, the unchangeable engagements

of God. (Heb. vi. 17, 18.) "Who then but must see it to be "a hope

that maketh not ashamed; sure and stedfast?" (Rom. v. 5. Heb. vi. 19.

2 Thess. ii. 16.) Instead of, as is commonly supposed, bidding fare-

well to gladness, it brings the only sunshine of the soul. Beaming from

the precious cross, how does it dry up the penitent's tears. (Isa. xii. 2.)

Or, if the gladness be withheld for a time, yet it is sown: and the

"sheaves of joy shall doubtless " follow the "weeping." (Ps. xcvii. 11;

cxxvi.6. Isa. xxxv. 10.) And then-carrying as it were heaven in

and about us (Heb. x. 34)-how refreshing is this hope in its clear

insight into eternity! as Bunyan describes, in one of his beautiful

touches, his feelings on witnessing Christian and Hopeful's welcome

 

     *  Impurity, Chap. v. 9-11. Drunkenness, xxiii. 29-32. Malice, Ps. Iv. 23.

1 Kings, ii. 31-44. Wickedness, Ps. xxxvii. 9, 20. Eccles. vii. 17. Jer. xvii. 11.

Comp. Job, xv. 32, 33; xxii. 15, 16.

     †  Diodati.


                                          CHAP. X. 29.                                       109

 

into the heavenly city--'which when I had seen, I wished myself

among them.' Oh! there must be a reality in that hope, which bears

us away from earth, and makes its meanest heir richer and happier,

than if he were the sole possessor of this world's glory. Let me hasten

towards it, longing, yet not impatient. For how can I but desire to

change my traveller's lot for my home; my toil for rest; my sorrow

for joy; my body of sin for the likeness to my Lord; "the tents of

Kedar" for "the innumerable company of angels, and the church of the

first-born?" (Ps. cxx. 5, with Heb. xii. 22, 23.) Do I grasp this hope?

Then--as a godly man exclaimed--'Let who will be miserable; I will

not--I cannot!'

But the wicked--they too have their expectation. For none have a

stronger hope than those, who have no ground for hope. (Deut. xxix. 19.)

And this delusion often reaches to the moment of eternity (Matt. xxv.

10)--nay, even to the "day" of the Lord (Ib. vii. 22, 23); expecting

the door to be "opened to them," after it has been "shut " for ever

(Ib. xxv. 11); dreaming of heaven, and waking in hell! The expecta-

tion of the wicked shall perish.*

Christian! make sure the ground of your hope. (2 Pet. i. 10.) Then

set out its gladness, as becomes an heir of glory. Let not a drooping

spirit tell the world the scantiness of your hope. But show that you

can live upon its gladness, until you enter into its perfect and everlast-

ing fruition. (Ps. xvi. 11.) Doubtfulness leaves believers and infidels

nearly on the same level. A clear apprehension of its infinite joy

stimulates our "diligence to make our calling and election sure."

 

29. The way of the Lord is strength to the upright: but destruction shall be

                                   to the workers of iniquity.

Observe how the gladness of the righteous is "their strength." (Neh.

viii. 10.) In the roughness of the way "Go in this thy might"--is

the cheering voice--"Have not I sent thee?" (Judg. vi. 14.) "He

giveth power to the faint, and to them that have no might he increaseth

strength." (Isa. xl. 29.) This promise, however, implies help for our

work, not rest from our labour. We shall have strength for the conflict.

But "there is no discharge from the war." There is supply for real,

not for imaginary, wants; for present, not for future, need. The health-

ful energy of the man of God is also supposed. He is alive in the way.

His heart is set in it. This makes it practicable. What before was

drudgery is now meat and drink. Indeed, the more godly we are, the

more godly we shall be. The habit of grace increases by exercise.

One step helps on the next.

Thus was the way of the Lord strength to the upright Nicodemus.

 

* See the hope of the worldling. Ps. xlix. 6-14. Luke, xii. 19, 20. Of the wicked, Job, xi. 20;

xviii. 14. Of the hypocrite, Ib. viii. 13, 14; xxvii. 8.


110                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

His first step was feebleness and fear. Walking onwards, he waxed

stronger (Job, xvii. 9); standing up in the ungodly council, and ulti-

mately the bold confessor of his Saviour, when his self-confident dis-

ciples slunk back. (John, iii. 2; vii. 50, 51; XIX. 39.) Innate sufficiency

we have none. The strongest in their own strength shall "faint and

be weary." The weakest in the Lord's strength shall "march on, and

not faint."*  Thus, in the hour of temptation, the upright will find their

way to be strength. (2 Chron. xv. 2.) Joseph in Potiphar's house

(Gen. xxxix. 10); Obadiah in Ahab's house (1 Kings, xviii. 3); Daniel

in the Persian court (Dan. vi. 10), held on a fiery trial, sustained from

on high. Thus--thus alone--"the righteous shall hold on their way;

going from strength to strength; strengthened in the Lord, and walk-

ing up and down In his name." (Job, xvii. 9. Ps. lxxxiv. 5-7. Zech.

x. 12.) When we look at our own resources, we might 'as well

despair of moving sin from our hearts, as of casting down the moun-

tains with our fingers.'† Yet none of us need to shrink from the con-

fession--"I can do all things through Christ which strengtheneth me."

(Philip. iv. 13.)

No such resources support the workers of iniquity. Captives instead

of soldiers, they know no conflicts; they realize no need of strength.

Even now "destruction is in their ways” (Isa. lix. 7. Rom. iii. 16. Isa.

l. 11), and the "voice of the Judge will fearfully seal their doom.

Depart from me, ye workers of iniquiy." (Luke, xiii. 27. Chap. xxi. 15.

Job, xxxi. 3. Ps. xxxvi. 12.)

 

30. The righteous shall never be removed: but the wicked shall not inhabit

                                                       the earth.

The frailty of our present condition, common to all (Eccles. ix. 2, 11),

was not in the wise man's eye; but the state of the two classes as in

the purpose and mind of God. His way is strength to the upright. The

righteous, walking steadily in the way, shall never be removed. (Ps. xv.;

xxxvii. 22; cxii. 6; cxxv. 1. 2 Pet. i. 5-11.) 'They enjoy in this life

by faith and hope their everlasting Life."‡ "No weapon that is formed

against them shall prosper. The mountains shall depart, and the little

hills shall be removed: but my loving-kindness shall not depart from

I thee; neither shall the covenant of my peace be removed; saith the Lord

I that hath mercy on thee." (Isa. liv. 10.) Is not this a confidence, that

earth nor hell can never shake? (Rom. viii. 38, 39.)

The wicked--have they any such confidence? So far from being never

 removed, they shall never inhabit. They have no title, like the righteous

(Matt. v. 5. 1 Cor. iii. 22), as sons and heirs, to the blessings of earth; no

hope or interest in the land, of which the earth is the type.

 

    * Isa. xl. 31. Bishop Lowth's version             † Bishop Reynolds.

    ‡ Reformers' notes.


                                                 CHAP. x. 31, 32.                                                  111

 

(Ps. xxxvii. 29.) Often are they cut off from inhabiting the one. (Verse

27; ii. 22. Ps. xxxvii. 22. Ezek. xxxiii. 24-26.) Never will they be

suffered to inhabit the other. (1 Cor. vi. 9. Rev. xxi. 27.) As our cha-

racter is, so is our hope and prospect. We gain or lose both worlds.

 

31. The mouth of the just bringeth forth wisdom: but the forward tongue

            shall be cut out. 32. The lips of the righteous know what is acceptable:

            but the mouth of the wicked speaketh frowardness.

Another image (Comp. Verses 11, 20, 21) of the fruitfulness of a

gracious tongue! It bringeth forth wisdom (Ps. xxxvii. 30), and that

too in the practical exercise of knowing what is acceptable. This gift

needs to be deeply pondered, and carefully cultivated (Chap. xv. 23;

xxv. 11. Job, vi. 25), to give it a free scope, while we jealously confine

it to its own sphere of influence. There is evidently much diversity

of application. The same statement of truth does not suit all. And

how--what--when--to whom--to speak--is a matter of great

wisdom. (Eccles. viii. 5.) Yet this consideration of acceptableness must

involve no compromise of principle. Let it be a considerate accom-

modation of mode to the diversity of tastes; a forbearance with lesser

prejudices and constitutional Infirmities; avoiding--not all offences

(which faithfulness to our Divine Master forbids), but all needless

offences; all uncalled-for occasions of design and irritation. "The

meekness of wisdom" (Jam. iii. 13) should be clearly manifested in

Christian faithfulness. Thus Gideon melted the frowardness of the

men of Ephraim. (Judg. viii. 2, 3.) Abigail restrained David's hands

from blood. (1 Sam. xxv. 23-33.) Daniel stood fearless before the

mighty monarch of Babylon. (Dan. iv. 27.) Their lips knew what was

acceptable, and their God honoured them.

But most of all--let the Minister of God study to clothe his most

unpalatable message in an acceptable garb. Let him mould it in all

the sweetness of persuasion (2 Cor. v. 11, 20), compassion (Rom. ix.

1-3. 2 Cor. ii. 4), and sympathy. (Tit. iii. 2, 3. 2 Cor. xi. 29.) With

what parental earnestness does the 'Preacher of Jerusalem,' in his

introductory chapters, allure us to Wisdom's voice and instruction!

Yet were his "acceptable words upright, even words of truth." (Eccles.

xii. 10.) And thus must "the priest's lips keep knowledge," if he

would have his people "seek the law at his mouth, as the messenger of

the Lord of Hosts." (Mal. ii. 7.) He must discriminate his statements,

without diluting them. The "truth is to be proclaimed upon the

housetop" to the multitude. But it is to be refrained from ungodly

scorners. (Matt. x. 27, with vii. 6.) Always must he gain his people's

ears, that he may win their hearts.

The froward tongue, pouring forth its own frowardness, provokes its


112        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

own ruin. It shall be cut out. (Chap. viii. 13; xviii. 7. Ps. xii, 3; lii.

1-5; cxx. 3, 4. Num. xvi. 1-33.) 0 my God, what do I owe thee for

the bridle of discipline, that restrains me from self-destruction!

 

                                          CHAPTER XI.

 

1. A false balance is abomination to the Lord: but a just weight (a perfect

                                stone,* marg.) is his delight.

How valuable is the Book of God in its minute detail of principles for

every day's conduct! Commerce is a Providential appointment for

our social intercourse and mutual helpfulness. It is grounded with

men upon human faith, as with God upon Divine faith. Balances,

weights, money, are its necessary materials. Impositions; double-

dealings; the hard bargain struck with self-complacent shrewdness

(Chap. xx. 14)--this is the false balance forbidden alike by the law

(Lev. xix. 36) and the gospel. (Matt. vii. 12. Philip. iv. 8.) Men may

"commend its wisdom" (Luke, xvi. 8); God not only forbids, but he

abominates it. (Chap. xx. 10. Deut. xxv. 13-16. Amos, viii. 5.) The just

weight often passes unnoticed. But such a perfect stone is a perfect

jewel, and a precious stone in the sight of God.†  It is his delight

(Chap. xvi. 11; xii. 22)--a testimony infinitely above all human

praise!

We must not put away this proverb as a mere moral maxim. It

was given as a warning to a flourishing Christian Church (1 Thess. iv.

6); and the sin here reprobated has been a leprous spot upon many a

highly-gifted professor. (1 Cor. vi. 8.) Is it not a solemn thought,

that the eye of God marks all our common dealings of life, either as an

abomination or a delight! Have we never found, when upon our knees,

the frown of God upon some breach in our daily walk? (Ps.lxvi. 18.)

Look and see, whether the "conscience has been void of offence to-

wards man." (Acts, xxiv. 16.) "The righteous Lord loveth righteous-

ness; his countenance doth behold the upright." (Ps. xi. 7.) They--

they only--“shall dwell in his presence." (Ib. xv. 1,2; xxiv. 3-5;

cxl. 13.)

 

2. When pride cometh, then cometh shame: but with the lowly is wisdom.

Pride was the principle of the fall (Gen. iii. 5), and therefore the

native principle of fallen man. (Mark, vii. 22.) When pride had

stripped us of our honour, then--not till then--cometh shame. (Gen. iii.

 

      * In many shops in Palestine now, the only weights in the balance are smooth stones.

Narrative of the Scottish Mission to the Jews. Saphet, p. 274. Comp. chap. xvi. 11, marg.

      † Jermin in Loco


                                              CHAP. XI. 3-7.                                         113

 

7, with ii. 25.) This is the wise discipline of our God to scourge the

one by the other. The Babel-builders (Gen. xi. 4); Miriam (Num. xii.

2, 10); Uzziah (2 Chron. xxvi. 16-21); Haman (Esth. v. 11; vii. 10);

Nebuchadnezzar (Dan. iv. 29-32); Herod (Acts, xii. 22,23); all are

instances of shame, treading upon the heels of pride. Even in common

life, a man will never attempt to raise himself above his own level--

but then cometh shame (Luke, xiv. 11)--the most revolting recompense.

And thus our God puts to shame the man, who knows not his bounds,

and who refuses to stand on the low ground, on which he has placed

him. "Every one that exalteth himself shall be abased." (Luke, xviii.

14. Isa. ii. 17.)

Such is the folly of pride. With the lowly is wisdom. What a splen-

dour of wisdom shone in the lowly child, "sitting at the doctors' feet,

astonishing them at his understanding and his answers!" (Luke, ii.

47.) And will not this spirit be to us the path of wisdom?  For the

Divine Teacher "reveals to the babes, what he hides from the wise and

prudent." (Ib. x. 21.) There is no greater proof of proud folly, than

believing only what we understand. Faith is thus grounded on know-

ledge, not on testimony: as if the word of God could not be implicitly

received, except as corroborated by other witnesses. Happy is that

lowliness of spirit, that comes to God's revelation, as it were without

any will or mind of our own; humbly receiving what he is pleased to

give; but willing—yea--thankful--to be ignorant, when he forbids

us to intrude! (Col. ii. 18.)

 

3. The integrity of the upright shall guide them; but the perverseness of

            transgressors shall destroy them. 4. Riches profit not in the day of

            wrath: but righteousness delivereth from death. 5. Their righteousness

            of the perfect shall direct his way: but the wicked shall fall by his own

            wickedness. 6. The righteousness of the upright shall deliver them:

            but transgressors shall be taken in their own naughtiness. 7. When a

            wicked man dieth, his expectation shall perish: and the hope of unjust

            men shall perish.

Integrity or righteousness is a most valuable guide in all perplexities.

(Matt. vi. 22.) The single desire to know the will of God, only that

I we may do it (Ps. cxliii. 10), will always bring light upon our path.

It is also a covert from many dreaded evils. "God is a buckler to

them that walk uprightly. Who therefore is he that will harm you, if

ye be followers of that which is good?" (1 Pet. iii. 13.) Let the

Christian "stand, having on the breast-plate of righteousness; and that

wicked one toucheth him not." (Eph. vi. 14. 1 John, v. 18.) Often

indeed does it deliver from temporal, always from eternal, death.

"Whoso walketh uprightly shall be saved. In the pathway thereof


114         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

there is no death. If a man keep my sayings, he shall never see--

never taste of--death." (Gen vii. 1; 2 Kings, xx. 3-6.)

The perverseness, that neglects this godly principle, is the sinner's

own snare and destruction. (Chap. xxviii. 18. John, viii. 51. Ezra, xviii.

27.) And when the day of wrath cometh--as come it will--"a great

ransom will not deliver." (Deut. i. 43, 44. Num. xxii. 32. Isa. i. 28.

Ezra, ix. 9, 10. Hos. xiv. 9.) Riches will profit, nothing (Job, xxxvi. 18,

19); not even will they obtain "a drop of water to cool the tormented

tongue." (Luke, xvi. 19-24.) In vain will "the rich men of the earth"

seek a shelter from "the wrath of the Lamb." (Rev. vi. 15-17.) They

and their hopes will perish together.*  'They were not living, but lying

hopes, and dying hopes.'† What a contrast to that "hope, which is as

an anchor of the soul, both sure and steadfast, and which entereth into

that within the veil!"‡

 

8. The righteous is delivered out of trouble, and the wicked cometh in his

                                                       stead.

Thus do these two classes change places in the dispensations of

God. The same providence often marks Divine faithfulness and retri-

butive justice. The Israelites were delivered out of the trouble of the Red

Sea; the Egyptians came in their stead. (Exod. xiv. 21-28.) Mordecai

was delivered from the gallows; Haman was hanged upon it. (Esth.

v. 14; vii.10.) The noble confessors in Babylon were saved from the

fire; their executioners were "slain" by it. (Dan. iii. 22-26.) Daniel

was preserved from the lions; his accusers were devoured by them.

(Ib. vi. 22-24.) Peter was snatched from death; his jailors and perse-

cutors were condemned. (Acts, xii. 6, 19, 23.) Thus "precious in the

sight of the Lord is" the life, no less than "the death, of his saints."

(Ps. cxvi. 15.) For the deliverance of one precious soul out of trouble he

will bring a nation into distress. (1 Sam. xxiii. 25-28.) Yea--for the

ransom of his own chosen people, he gave not only "Egypt" of old,

but in later times "Ethiopia and Seba--men for them, and people for

their life."§ To what source but his own free and sovereign love can

we trace this special estimation? "Since thou wast precious in my sight,

 

    * Chap. x. 28. Job, viii. 13, 14; xl. 20; xviii. 14-18. Ps. xlix. 17, 18; cxlvi. 4. One of

Bunyan's graphical and accurate sketches represents Ignorance ferried over the river

by one Vain Hope, ascending the hill alone, without encouragement, and ultimately bound

and carried away. 'Then I saw'--adds he with fearful solemnity--'that there was a way to Hell,

even from the gates of Heaven! '

     † LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. I. 3.

  ‡ Heb. vi. 19. Does not this verse prove the knowledge of a future state; since, as

respects this life, the expectation of the righteous -alike with that of the wicked-–perisheth?

Comp. 1 Cor. xv. 19.

      § Isa. xliii. 8; 4, with 2 Chron. xiv. 9-11. 2 Kings, xix. 9. Comp. chap. xxi. 18 How

different their estimation in the eyes of man, when an Eastern autocrat was willing to cut

them off at a single blow as a worthless thing! Esth. Iii. 8-15. Comp. I Cor. iv. 13.


                                      CHAP. XI. 9.                                             115

 

thou hast been honourable, and I have loved thee." (Isa. xliii. 4, ut

supra.) We do not always mark the same outward manifestation. But

the love is unchangeably the same. And how should it at once lay us

in the dust, and build our confidence upon an unshaking foundation!

 

9.An hypocrite with his mouth destroyeth his neighbour: but through

                          knowledge shall the just be delivered.

Haman under the pretence of loyalty would have destroyed a whole

nation. (Esth. iii. 8-13.) Ziba under the same false cover would

have destroyed his neighbor. (2 Sam. xvi. 1-4.) The lying prophet

from mere wilfulness ruined his brother. Such is the hypocrite's mouth!

“a little member;” but "a world of iniquity: set on fire of hell." (Jam.

iii. 5, 6.)

Then look at him in the church--"a ravening wolf in sheep's

clothing," devouring the flock (Matt. vii. 15); "making merchandize

with feigned words" (2 Pet. ii. 1-3); an apostle of Satan, so diligent

is he in his Master's work of destruction! (2 Cor. xi. 3, 13.) "These

false Christs"--we are warned—“deceive many; if it were possible

the very elect.” (Matt. xxiv. 24.) But they--the just--are delivered

through knowledge- 'by the light and direction of the Holy Ghost, and

by the lively knowledge of God's word, which giveth unto the faithful

man wisdom sufficient for his preservation.'* Learn the value of solid

knowledge. Feeling, excitement, imagination, expose us to an unsteady

profession.†  Knowledge supplies principle and steadfastness. "Add

to your faith knowledge." (2 Pet. i. 5.) Guard against plausible error,

Usually built upon some single truth, separated from its connection, and

pressed beyond its due proportion. Do not the many delusions of our

day give force to the earnest exhortation--"Take fast hold of instruc-

tion; let her not go; keep her, for she is thy life?" (Chap. iv. 13.)

 

10. When it goeth well with the righteous, the city rejoiceth: and when the

            wicked perish, there is shouting. 11. By the blessing of the upright the

            city is exalted: but it is overthrown by the mouth of the wicked.

The world, in despite of the native enmity of the heart, bears its

testimony to consistent godliness (Chap. xvi. 7; Mark, vi. 20), and

rejoices in the prosperity of the righteous. Their elevation to authority

is a matter of general joy. (Chap. xxix. 2. Esth. viii. 15.) A godly

king;‡  a premier, using his authority for the glory of God (2 Chron.

xxiv. 16); a man of God of high influence in the church (2 Kings, ii.

 

    * Diodati. Comp. Heb. v. 14. 1 John, ii 20, 27. 2 Pet. iii. 17, 18.

    † Such as Eph. iv. 14.

  ‡ Chron. xxx. 25, 26. ‘All things prosper in every respect, so long as thou rulest

well'--was the speech of the Senate to the emperor Severus. Comp. Isa. xxxii. 1, 2.

1 Tim. ii. 1, 2.


116          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

12)--these are justly regarded as a national exaltation. Their prayers

(Exod. xxxiii. 12. Isa. xxxvii. 14-36. Jam. v.16-18), wisdom (Gen. xli.

38-42), disinterestedness, and example (Job, xxii. 30), are a public

blessing.

The wicked--they are only a curse to the community. Often has

it been overthrown; or endangered by their mouth. (Num. xvi. 3, 41.

2 Sam. xv. 1-14; xx. 1.) So that their perishing is a matter of present

exultation. (Job, xxvii. 23.) Such was the joy of Rome on the death

of Nero, and the public rejoicings in the French Revolution at the

death of Robespierre. The people of God unite in the shouting; not

from any selfish feeling of revenge; much less from unfeeling hardness

towards their fellow-sinners. But when a hindrance to the good cause

is removed (Chap. xxviii. 28. Eccles. ix. 18); when the justice of God

against sin (2 Sam. xviii. 14-28) and his faithful preservation of his

church (Exod. xv. 21. Judg. v. 31), are displayed, ought not every

feeling to be absorbed in a supreme interest in his glory? Ought they

not to shout?  (Ps. lii. 6, 7; lviii. 10. Rev. xviii. 20.) The "Alleluia" of

heaven is an exulting testimony to the righteous judgments of the

Lord our God, hastening forward his glorious kingdom. (Rev. xix. 1, 2.)

 

12. He that is void of wisdom (destitute of heart, marg.) despiseth his

            neighbour: but a man of understanding holdeth his peace.

Pride and uncharitableness show a man to be void of wisdom;  igno-

rant alike of himself, his neighbour; and his God. For could he de-

light in magnifying "the mote in his neighbour's eye," had he wisdom

to "consider the beam that is in his own eye?" (Matt. vii. 3-5.) Could

he despise his neighbour, did he really know him to be his own flesh

(Isa. lviii. 7. Mal. ii. 10. Acts, xvii. 26); perhaps even "a member of

the body, and of the flesh, and of the bones of his Lord?" (Eph. v. 30.)

Could he look down upon him in the plenitude of pride, did he realize

the consciousness; that, if he differs, it is God--not himself, “that

hath made him to differ?" (1 Cor. iv. 7.) Surely this blindness is to

be void of wisdom, and destitute of heart. 'It denotes the want of a

right state of mind, judgment, and affections. Such a man is without

heart to what is wise and good.'*

A man of understanding may see much in his neighbour to excite

his pity, and stir up his prayers, but nothing to despise. He may be

called openly to condemn him. But his general course will be loving

forbearance; holding his peace; 'keeping himself from speaking or

doing anything in scorn of another;† "considering thyself, lest thou

also be tempted." (Gal. vi. 1.) Self-knowledge shows the man of

understanding, and forms the man of love.

 

* Scott in loco-Comp. chap. xiv. 21. John. vii. 47-49.

+ Diodati


                                                       CHAP. XI. 13, 14.                                          117

 

13. A tale-bearer revealeth secrets: but he that is of a faithful spirit

                                       concealeth the matter.

Another breach of love is here reproved. (Lev. xix. 16,17.) The

gospel does not shut us up in our own private interests, as if we had

no sympathy with our neighbour. It is an universal brotherhood of

love. Yet it rebukes the tale-bearer, who, having no business of his

own, traffics with his neighbour's name and honour, and vends his

wares of scandal, as it may be, whether for gain or wantonness. (Neh.

vi. 17-19.) It is most unsafe to be within the breath of this cruel

trifler with the happiness of his fellow-creatures. (Chap. xvi. 28; xxvi.

22.) For as readily as he reveals our neighbour's secrets to us, will:

he reveal ours to him.*  All the bonds of confidence and friendship

are broken in pieces. Let ears and lips be closed against him. If

there be no vessel to receive his base matter, his words will fall to the

ground, and die away. Children, servants, and visitors in the family,

should guard most carefully against revealing secrets, that have been

spoken before them in the unreserved confidence of domestic life. The

tale-bearer having much time on his hands, worms out family secrets.

He is always delighted to make a discovery. The most idle rumour is

a treasure. A quarrel made up before he had time to reveal it, is a

disappointment. This busy idleness has always been a sore in the

church. (2 Thess. iii. 10-12. 1 Tim. v. 13. 1 Pet. iv. 15.) It is a reli-

gion always abroad, occupied impertinently with foreign interference;

while at home it is "the field of the slothful, grown over with thorns."

(Chap. xxiv. 30, 31.) Would we have our friend rest his anxieties on

our bosom (Chap. xvii. 17), let him not see the results of misplaced

confidence dropping out of our mouth. It is of great moment to our

peace, that those about us should be of a faithful spirit, to whom it is

not necessary on every occasion to enjoin secrecy; true to our interest

as to their own; who would rather refuse than betray a trust; whose

bosom is a cover of concealment, except when the honour of God and

the interests of society plainly forbid. (1 Sam. iii. 17, 18. Jer. xxxviii.

24-27. Contrast Judg. xvi. 16-20.) Invaluable is such a friend, but

rare indeed in this deceitful world. (Chap. xx. 6.) Yet Christian consist-

ency includes the faithful spirit; and its habitual absence makes it

most doubtful, whether the spirit and mind of Christ is not alto-

gether wanting.

 

14. Where no counsel is, the people must fall: but in the multitude of

                                  counselors there is safety.

Even in private matters the value of wise counselors is generally

 

   * Chap. xx. 19. Horace has given us this same warning:

Percontatorem fugito; nam garrulus idem est;

Nec retinent patulae commissa fideliter aures.--Epistle I. 18. 1 69, 70.


118         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

admitted. The agreement of the multitude gives safety to our decision.

And even their difference, by giving both sides of the question, enables

us to ponder our path more safely. The nation, therefore, without coun-

selors is like a ship in the midst of the rocks without a pilot, in immi-

nent peril. God has given to some the gift of government--"wisdom

that is profitable to direct." (Eccles. x. 10.) Where there is no counsel,

the people mush fall. In the dark time of the Judges, the want of a king

led to anarchy, and the people fell into the enemies' hands. (Judg. ii.

8-23; xxi. 25.) Ten parts of the people fell when Rehoboam listened to

evil counsel.*  A fall again was there of the people, when the counsel of

godly Jehoiada was removed! (2 Chron. xxiv. 17-21.) The good Lord,

deliver us from the deserved national judgment of weak and blinded

counsellors! (Eccles. x. 16. Isa. iii. 1-4; xix.11-14.)

David and Solomon, though themselves specially endowed with

wisdom, governed their kingdoms prosperously by wise counselors.

(Ps. cxix. 98-100, with 2 Sam. xv. 12; xvii. 14, also 1 Kings, xii. 6.)

The larger the multitude of such counselors (contrast Isa. xlvii. 13), the

greater the safety. To one such, a heathen monarch owed the safety

of his kingdom from desolating falling. (Gen. xli. 38-57.)

Often has the Church been preserved by this blessing. (Acts, xv.

6-31: Comp. chap. xv. 22; xxiv. 6.) Shall we not now plead for her safety

in this day of her distress, that her people may not fall by the want of

counsel (Ezra, xxxiv. 4-6. Matt. xv. 14); that her ordained counselors

may be largely filled with the "spirit of power, and of love, and of a

sound mind" (2 Tim. i. 7), to establish her people more firmly in the

pure faith of the gospel? (Acts, xvi. 4, 5.)

 

15. He that is surety for a stranger shall smart (be sore broken, marg.)

                  for it: and he that hateth suretyship is sure.

This repeated warning against suretyship (Chap. vi. 1-5) is intended

to inculcate considerateness; not to excuse selfishness, or to dry up the

sources of helpful sympathy. It must not be for a stranger (Chap. xxvii.

13), whose character and responsibilities are unknown to us. For such

incautious kindness, too often done to the injury of our family, we shall

smart, if not be sore broken. To hate such engagements is therefore our

prudent security.

But one exception we can never forget. The blessed Jesus, from

his free grace--unsought, unasked (John, x. 15, 17, 18. Philip. ii. 6-8)--

became surety--not for a friend (in which case we should have had no

interest), but for a stranger. He became One with us in nature, that

he might be One with us in law. He took our place under the curse of

the broken law. (Gal. iii.13.) He put his soul to the fullest extent in

our soul's place; and then made our nature pay the debt, which all the

 

1 Kings, xii. 16:-19. ‘Fall like leaves,'--LXX.


                                              CHAP. XI. 16.                                            119

 

angels of heaven could never have discharged. Oh! this was a smart

indeed. Yea--sore broken was he under the stroke of his Father's

hand.*  The Upholder of the universe was prostrate in the dust (Mark,

xiv. 35, with Heb. i. 3); his own creature strengthening his sinking

frame., (Luke, xxii. 43.) Had he hated suretyship, he would have been

sure; (for what could have disturbed his self-existent happiness?) but

we should have perished. Glory to his name! Though from all

eternity he knew the bitterness of the smart, instead of hating, he "re-

joiced and delighted" in his work. (Chap.viii. 31. Heb. x.7. Ps. xl.

6-8.) His was no rash engagement. For it was the arrangement of

the everlasting covenant. (Isa. liii. 10-12. 1 Pet. i. 20.) Every way it

was lawful. There was an infinite treasure to discharge the liabilities.

The claims of justice were fully satisfied. (Isa. i. 27; xlii. 21. Rom. iii.

26.) Sin was as thoroughly punished, as it was thoroughly pardoned.

There was no injury, but rather direct benefit to the family of God.

(Eph. i. 10. Col. i. 20.) What then remains for us, but to fall down

before this grace, and to spend our days, as we shall spend our eternity,

in adoring this wondrous manifestation of Divine glory! (Rev. i. 5, 6;

v. 12.)

 

16. A gracious woman retaineth honour: and strong men retain riches.

Everywhere the excellency of godliness meets our eyes. What

loveliness, dignity, and influence does it impart to the female character!

(Chap. xxxi. 10.) A gracious woman is known, not by her outward

beauty (lb. 30), but by her "inner becoming ornaments" (1 Tim. ii.

9, 10. 1 Pet. iii. 3, 4); which remain in full lustre, when external

accomplishments have faded away. (Chap. xxxi. 25.) And though "the

weaker vessel," she retaineth honour, as firmly as strong men retain riches.

She preserves her character unblemished. (Ruth, iii. 11.) She wins

her children (Chap. xxxi. 28)--perhaps her ungodly husband (Ib.

verses 12, 28. 1 Pet. iii. 1, 2)--into the ways of holiness. Thus

Deborah retained honour as "a mother in Israel," the Counselor and the

stay of a sinking people. (Judg. iv. 4; v. 7.) Esther retained her

influence over her heathen husband for the good of her nation. (Esth.

ix. 12, 13, 25.) And still the gracious woman retaineth honour long after

she has mingled with the dust. Sarah the obedient wife (1 Pet. iii. 5,

6); Hannah the consecrating mother (1 Sam. i. 28); Lois, Eunice, and

"the elect lady" (2 Tim. i. 5; iii. 15. 2 John, 1-4), in the family sphere;

Phoebe and her companions in the annals of the Church (Rom. xvi. 2-6.

Philip. iv. 3); the rich contributor to the temple (Mark, xii. 42-44);

the self-denying lover of her Lord (Ib. xiv. 3-9); Mary in contem-

plative retirement (Luke, x. 39); Dorcas in active usefulness (Acts, ix.

 

    * Isa. liii. 5, 10—bruised--sore broken.


120           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

36):--Are not these "good names" still had in honourable remembrance?

(Ps. cxii. 6.)

 

17. The merciful man doeth good to his own soul: but he that is cruel

                                 troubleth his own flesh.

Mercifulness is not natural benevolence, without God or godliness.

It is the "fruit of the Spirit" (Gal. v. 22); the image of our Father

(Luke, vi. 36); the constraint of the love of Christ (2 Cor. viii. 9); the

adorning of "the elect of God." (Col. iii. 13.) It is not pity in words

and looks. It is when our neighbour's trouble descends into the depths

of our hearts, and draws out thence bowels of kindness and practical

sympathy. (Luke, x. 33.) The merciful man will ever find a merciful God.

(Ps. xli.1. Matt. v. 7.) The widow of Sarepta and the woman of Shunam,

each for their kindness to the Lord's prophets, "received a prophet's

reward." (2 Kings, iv. 16; viii. 1-6.) The alms of Cornelius brought

good to his own soul. (Acts, x. 2-4.) In watering others with our mercy,

ourown" souls will become a watered garden." (Isa. xxxii. 8. Ps. cxii. 4.)

Even now" God is not unrighteous to forget our work and labour of

love." (Heb. vi. 10. Matt. x. 42.) At the great day he will honour it

before the assembled universe. (Matt. xxv. 34.)

            But not less certainly will cruelty bring its own mischief. (Jam. ii.

13. Matt. xviii. 34, 35.) Unsubdued passion is carrying about us the

very element of hell, wanting nothing but immortality to perfect the

misery. Cain found his brother's murder an intolerable trouble to his

flesh. (Gen. iv. 13, 14.) Joseph's brethren severally smarted for their

unfeeling wantonness. (lb. xlii. 21.) Adoni-bezek was constrained. to

acknowledge the justice of his chastisement. (Judg. i. 6, 7.) The doom

of Ahab and Jezebel was the curse of their own cruelty. (1 Kings, xxii.

38. 2 Kings, ix. 36, 37.) The treasures of selfishness will eat as doth

a canker in our own flesh. (Jam. v. 1-3.) 0 my God, save me from the

tyranny of my own lust, and may thy perfect image of mercy be my

standard and my pattern!

 

 18. The wicked worketh a deceitful work: but to him that soweth righteous-

            ness shall be a sure reward. 19. As righteousness tendeth to life, so

            he that pursueth evil pursueth it to his own death.

            Both the Masters that claim the heart put forth their promise of

reward. Did Satan fulfill all his promises, truly his servants would be

abundantly enriched. (Gen. iii. 4, 5. Matt. iv. 8, 9.) But the wicked

worketh a deceitful work, ending in disappointment. (Heb. ii. 13. Rom.

vi. 21.) Pharaoh's exterminating project against Israel deceived him in

its result, issuing in their increase, and the ruin of himself and his peo-

ple. (Acts, vii. 19. Exod. i. 20.) Abimelech doubtless expected peace


                                   CHAP. XI. 18, 19.                                          121

 

as the result of his murderous work. (Judg. ix. 22-51.) But he pursued

evil to his own death. Ahab anticipated rest from the riddance of

Naboth. But the words of his troublesome reprover were to him as the

"piercings of a sword." (1 Kings, xxi. 19.) How little did Gehazi

contemplate the plague of the leprosy, as the issue of his well-contrived

plan! (2 Kings, v.27.) Were the temptation presented in a naked

form--'For this pleasure sell thy soul--thy God--thy heaven'--

who would not fly with horror from the most enticing bait? But the

tempter worketh a deceitful work, painting the present pleasure, and

hiding the certain reality of ruin. (Chap. i. 15-18.) Oh! it is affecting

to see his poor victim eagerly pursuing evil (Chap. iv. 16, 17)--yet to

his own death. Not only his open acts, but his thoughts, motions, pur-

suits, ends--all tend to death. (Chap. v. 1-5; ix. 18.) God has no

place in his heart. And what else can be the end of a life without

God? Thus the religious professor deceives others, perhaps himself.

But his deceitful work will be the delusion of a moment, an eternity of

confusion.

The sure reward of righteousness stands out in bright contrast. The

"seed is precious;" and "the sheaves shall doubtless" follow. (Ps.

cxxvi. 6.) No sinner since the fall of man has ever known the full

reward of righteousness even in this life. It may be given as an afflic-

tive dispensation--grace to support under trouble, and to triumph in

the issue of it. It will probably be given as the harvest to the sower

--after trying and anxious waiting. (Jam. v. 7, 8.) But whenever

vouchsafed, or however delayed, it is a sure reward. Righteousness is

the seed. Happiness is the harvest. The reward indeed is not from

cause, but by consequence; not of debt, but of grace; depending upon

a free promise; mercifully, yet surely, linked with Christian persever-

ance. (Eccles. xi. 6. Hos. x. 12. 1 Cor. xv. 58. Gal. vi. 7, 8.) It must

however be true righteousness--not according to man's profession, but

according to the Divine standard. A routine of duties may skirt the

borders of religion, at the utmost distance from the Spirit of God, and

equally remote from the vital principle of the heart. But righteousness

not only "delivereth from death" (Verse 4) (a special mercy even with

the loss of all) (Gen. xix. 16. Jer. xlv. 5); but it tendeth to life (Chap.

x. 16. Isa. iii. 10. Rom. ii. 7. Gal. vi. 8); full of living enjoyment, of

infinite, eternal pleasure. What importance then attaches to every

godly principle! All have reference to eternity. If righteousness be

our main end, God will make it our best friend; nor will he, as the

world has done, reward us with ciphers instead of gold. Who will

not love and serve thee when "in keeping thy commandments there is

a sure reward?" (Ps. xix. 11; xxxvii. 3-6. Isa. xxxii. 17.) Irresistible

will be the conviction of the wicked at the last.-- 'Had I but sown right-

eousness in the service of God, it would have been infinitely happy for


122          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

me to eternity!' But inconceivably joyous will be the great consum-

mation to the righteous--"Behold, I come quickly, and my reward is

with me, to give every man according as his work shall be." (Rev.

xxii. 12.)

 

20. They that are of a froward heart are abomination to the Lord: but

such as are upright in their way are his delight. 21. Though hand

join in hand, the wicked shall not be unpunished: but the seed of the

righteous shall be delivered.

            The froward and the upright are often contrasted, as God looks at

them. (Verse 3. Chap. iii. 32. Ps. xi. 5-7.) Frowardness is abomination

to the Lord. (Chap. viii. 13.)  All the contests between God and man

are--whose will shall stand? (Exod. v. 2; ix. 17. Jer. xliv. 16, 28.)

Most thankful should we be for the school of discipline, that makes us

feel the privilege of "subjection to the obedience of Christ." (Ps. cxix.

67, 71.)  Frowardness in the heart is specially hateful (Chap. xvi. 5);

most of all under the garb of external religion. (Isa. lxv. 2-5. Luke,

xvi. 15.) Sinners encourage one another in sin (Chap. i. 11-14. Isa.

xli. 7)--hand joining in hand. But all such "confederacies shall be

broken in pieces." (Isa. viii. 9. Gen. xi. 8. Num. xvi. 1-33. Josh. ix. 1,

2.) For as "it is the same with him to save by many or by few"

(1 Sam. xiv. 6); so when he lifts his arm of vengeance, it is the same,

"whether it be against a nation or a man only." (Job, xxxiv. 29.)

The flood; the judgment on Egypt; the chastenings of rebellious

Israel in the wilderness; the destruction of Sennacherib's army-

plainly prove, that hand joining in hand is a vain resistance to the hand

of God. (Chap. xvi. 5.)

The upright are those, whom God makes upright. They are his own

workmanship. The upright in the way are contrasted with the froward

in heart: because as the heart is, so is the way. Yet he is not said to

delight in their way (though this is an undoubted truth). They them-

selves are his delight. (Chap. xii. 22. Ps. lxxxiv. 11.) He singles them

out from the ungodly world. (Gen. vii. 1. Num. xiv. 24.) Nay, he

even points to one of them as a challenge to Satan to do his worst.

(Job, i. 8.) Such is the condescension of his sovereign love–accept-

ing his own word; stamping with open honour the graces of his people,

sullied though they be with such "base defilement! "He knoweth

their days"--the first day of going to their Bibles, the first day of

prayer; all their after "cloudy and dark days." Nor does he put them

off with a "portion in this life." Their inheritance shall be for ever.

(Ps. xxxvii. 18.) It is but a moment, and they that love him shall be

with him for ever.

Nor is their blessing confined to themselves. The seed of the right-

eous shall be delivered. (Chap. xx. 7. Ps. xxxvii. 26. 1 Kings, xv. 4.)


                                   CHAP. XI. 21, 22.                                        123

 

‘The best way for any man to do his children good, is to be godly him-

self.'*  They have then a place in their father's covenant. (Gen. xvii.

7. Acts, ii. 39.) And is not this an encouragement--not indeed to

indolence and presumption--but to parental faith, in leaving our

children in this naughty world unprotected and alone? (Ps. ciii. 17.)

"The children of thy servants shall continue, and their seed shall be

established before thee." (Ib. cii. 28.)

 

22. As a jewel of gold in a swines snout, so is a fair woman which is with-

              out (departeth from, marg.) (Chap. vii. 10; ix. 13) discretion.

A most distasteful, and yet an apt comparison! Let us see things

as the Bible shows them to us. If a fair, light-minded young woman

should see her own face in this mirror, she might well start aside with

horror. Beauty indeed is to be honoured, as the gift of God.†  Yet in

itself it is a fading vanity (Chap. xxxi.30); and, without discretion, it is

as misplaced, as mis-becommg, as a jewel of gold in a swine's snout.‡

Would the ornament beautify the filthy animal? Rather would not

the unnatural combination make it more than ever an object of disgust?

All the charms of beauty are lost upon a foolish woman. Instead of

"retaining honour" (Verse 16), she only brings upon herself disgrace.

For just as the jewel is soon employed and besmeared in racking the

mire; so too often does the beauty of the indiscreet woman become sub-

servient to the vilest passions. (2 Sam. xi. 2.) No ornament can give

comeliness to a fool (Chap. xxvi. 8); but "wisdom maketh the face to

shine." (Eccles. viii. 1.)

‘Lightness and fantastic garb in apparel is the very bush or sign

hanging out, that tells a vain mind lodges within. The soul fallen

from God hath lost its true worth and beauty; and therefore it basely

descends to these mean things, to serve and dress the body, and take

share with it of its unworthy borrowed ornaments, while it hath lost

and forgotten God, and seeks not after him, knows not that he alone is

the beauty and ornament of the soul, and his Spirit, and the grace of it,

his rich attire.'§

Learn then to value far beyond beauty of face, the inner "orna-

ments" of grace, "which are in the sight of God of great price." (1 Pet.

iii. 4, 5.) Many a lovely form enshrines a revolting mind. All ex-

ternal even all intellectual, accomplishments without discretion issue in

barrenness. So entirely do we depend upon God's grace, for a fruitful

improvement of his own gifts!

 

* Exposition of Proverbs, by JOHN DODD and ROBERT CLEAVER, 4to. 1614.

+ See Moses, Acts, vii. 20. Joseph, Gen. xxxix. 6. David, 1 Sam. xvi. 12. Esth. ii. 7.

Job's daughters, xlii. 15.

 ‡ Isa. iii. 21. See Bishop Lowth's interesting note

 § LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. iii 3, 4.


124            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

23. The desire of the righteous is only good: but the expectation of the

                                                wicked is wrath.

Desire is the wing of the soul, whereby it moveth, and is carried

to the thing which it loveth, as the eagle to the carcase, in the Scripture

Proverbs (Job, xxxix. 30. Matt. xxiv. 28), to feed itself upon it, and

to be satisfied with it.*  The desire of the righteous must be good, be-

cause it is God's own work. (Ps. x. 17. Rom. viii. 26,27.) It must be

only good, because it centres in himself. (Ps. lxxiii. 25. Isa. xxvi. 8, 9.)

God in Christ is his portion: and what earthly portion can compare

with it? (Ps. iv. 6, 7)--his object; and what object is worth living

for--worth half a serious thought--besides? (Rom. xiv. 8,9. 1 Cor.

vi. 19, 20. Philip. i. 21.) Only let me subordinate my desires to his will

(1 John, v. 14); and I shall be equally happy, whether they be granted

or withheld. (1 Kings, viii. 17, 18.) As a physician, "he knoweth my

frame" (Ps. ciii. 14); what is, what is not, expedient for me. "As a

Father, he pitieth" my weakness. (Ib. verse 13.) As a God, he fully

supplies my real need. (Philip. iv. 19.) The desire, therefore, in-

wrought by him, fixed on him, submitted to his will, must be good.

But might not an angel weep to see the corrupt mixture† of worldliness

(Mark, x. 35-37), selfishness (2 Sam. xxiii. 15. Jonah, iv. 8, 9), pride?

(1 Chron. xxi. 1, 2.) Yet is this against our better will. (Rom. vii. 15.)

The main strength of the desire is to God; even though the tossing

tempest of sin and Satan may combine to drive it out of its course.

(Rom. vii. 22.) In despite of this mighty assault--"Lord, all my

desire is before thee; thou knowest all things; thou knowest that I

love thee." (Ps. xxxviii. 9. John, xxi. 17.) 'Thou didst put into my

mind good desires; and thou wilt bring the same to good effect!'‡

            But the exepectation of the wicked is discontent and opposition to God.

Often is it indulged, but with the fearful accompaniment of wrath.

(Num. xi. 18. Ps. lxxviii. 29-31; cvi. 15.) And how shortly will the

deluding dream end in inexpressible, eternal wrath! (Verse 7. Luke,

xvi. 23. Rom. ii. 8, 9. Heb. x. 27.) Oh! let me daily test my desires by

the true standard, and discipline them, that they may be fixed upon the

true object; so that, "delighting myself in the Lord," I may find

them "granted" "exceedingly abundantly above" my largest expecta-

tions. (Chap. x. 24. Ps. xxxvii. 4. Eph. iii. 20.)

 

24. There is that scattereth, and yet increaseth; and there is that with-

            holdeth more than is meet, but it tendeth to poverty.§  25. The liberal

 

    *  Bishop REYNOLDS' Treatise on the Passions.—Works, p. 666.       † Comp. Article ix.

    ‡  Collect for Easter Day.

    § There are those, who, sowing their own, make it more: and those who gather, and

are impoverished'--LXX.


                                 CHAP. XI. 24, 25.                                             125

 

soul (soul of blessing, marg.) shall be made fat: and he that watereth

shall be watered also himself.

God has put a mark of distinguishing favour upon the exercises of

that mercy, which is his own attribute. He scatters his blessings richly

around (Ps. xxxiii. 5; xxxvi. 5-7); and those that partake of his

spirit do the same. Men may scatter in improvidence and sin, and it

tendeth to poverty. (Chap. xxi. 17.) But there is that scattereth, and yet

increaseth. The husbandman, scattering his seed "plentifully" over his

field, expects a proportionate increase. And shall not the man of God,

"dispersing abroad" the seed of godliness (Ps. cxii. 9); consecrating

his substance and influence to the Lord; ''as he has opportunity, doing

good unto all men" (Gal. vi. 10)--shall not he receive a plentiful

increase? (2 Cor. ix. 6, 11.) The men of the world hazard all in un-

certain, and often, ruinous, speculations. But in this scattering there

is no uncertainty, no speculation. Bounty is the way to plenty. Have

faith in God; and laying out for him will be laying up for ourselves.

(Chap. iii. 9, 10; xix.17.) This will be abundantly manifest, either in

a visible enlargement of earthly blessings,* or in a satisfying enjoy-

ment of a more limited portion. (Deut. xv. 10.) The reward of grace

will be given in the gracious acceptance of our God (Heb. xiii. 16),

and in a blissful reception into "everlasting habitations." (Luke, xvi. 9.

1 Tim. vi. 18, 19.)

But is the covetous worldling happier nay--is he richer--in

withholding more than is meet? (Hag. i. 4-10.) 'Seldom does he prosper

much even in the world. For God metes to men in their own measure;

and bad crops, bad debts, expensive sickness, and a variety of similar

deductions, soon amount to far more than liberal alms would have

done.'†

Still more clearly does the Lord mark his blessing and his blast in

the Spiritual dispensation. The liberal soul is made fat in the health-

ful vigour of practical godliness (Verse 17. Isa. xxxii. 8. M.R.): and

while he is the soul of blessing to others, he is watered himself with the

descending showers.‡  The Minister is refreshed by his own message

of salvation to his people. The Sunday School Teacher learns many

valuable lessons In the work of instruction. The soul of the District

Visitor or the Christian friend glows in carrying the precious name of

Jesus to a fellow-sinner. Every holy temper, every spiritual gift,

every active grace is increased by exercise; while its efficiency withers

by neglect. (Matt. xxv. 29.)

 

   * Luke, vi. 38, into thy bosom--the sensible experience of the blessing'

    † Scott in loco.

  ‡Isa. lviii. 10, 11. 'How often, when my heart has been cold and dead, have I been

quickened by the loving-kindness of the Lord, upon doing something kind and loving

for a fellow-creature, and more especially for a fellow-Chnstian!--VENN Life, pp. 501, 502.


126           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

26. He that withholdeth corn, the people shall curse him; but blessings

                      shall be upon the head of him that selleth it.

This is a piece of sacred 'political economy.' It reminds us, that

we are the stewards of the gifts of God. (2 Cor. ix. 11.) To use them

therefore for our own interest, without a due regard to our neighbour,

is unfaithfulness to our trust. (Matt. xxv. 26, 27.) A flagrant sin,

therefore, is it to withhold the very "staff of life" (Isa. iii. 1); holding

back the hand of God stretched out in bounty over our land. This

may indeed be a prudential restraint in the time of scarcity. (Gen. xli.

46-49.) Private interest may also claim a measure of consideration.

But a grinding spirit; a spirit of selfish monopoly; raising the price for

gain, with manifest suffering to the poor--will bring a piercing curse.*

And here the curse of the people may be the curse of God. For if the

cry of oppressed individuals (Exod. xxii. 22-24. Jam. v. 4)--much

more that of an oppressed people--will "enter into the ears of the

Lord of Sabaoth." (Amos, viii. 4-8.) His withering blast upon with-

holden corn has often scourged this merciless covetousness.

The point of the antithesis apparently fails, only to give stronger

security to the blessing. The curse comes directly from the people; the

blessing from above. To him that subordinates his own interest to the

public good--blessings shall be upon his head (Chap. x. 6), descending

immediately from the fountain of all grace.

Would that the cry for the "bread of life" were as earnest and uni-

versal as for the bread that perisheth! But if he be justly cursed that

withholds the one; much more he, that unfaithfully and cruelly with-

holds the other. And if blessings be upon the head of him, that selleth the

corn of this life; what is his privilege, who sells not indeed the bread

 

    * The original implies the piercing of a sword, or dagger; as if the selfish spoiler was,

as it were, pierced through and stabbed to death by the curses of the people. --Cartwright

in loco. The system of speculating in corn, ill cruel disregard of the poor, was rebuked by

a popular preacher in the latter days of Elizabeth, in the true spirit of Latimer--'The

poor man must needs sell presently to maintain his family, to pay his rents. And that

which he sells the rich cormorant buys that hath money enough lying by him, to hoard it

up, that he may sell it dearer after. These buyers commonly dwell ill market-towns, and

wait to get into their hands all the com (if it were possible) in the country. Nay--they

will not only wait at home, but they will travel abroad into the country to those men,

whom they know have great plenty of corn to sell, and will bargain aforehand with them

for as much as they can spare, and so will prevent the market And when they have it

in their garners, they make the price at their pleasure. Surely this is a wolf of the soul.

Some others will sell at home to their poor neighbours; but they will make them pay for

their ease. They shall pay, above the market something; or else they will let them have

none. They know the poor man must need have it. He cannot buy it in the market,

because he cannot then convey it home; and knowing this his necessity, they will make

him pay above all reason. And that also which makes their sin more heinous; if they

send any corn to market, they will dress it very clean, and it shall be of their best corn.

But if they sell at home, they which buy shall be constrained to take their worst or

meanest and not so well dressed.' A godly and fruitful sermon, preached at Grantham

A.D. 1592, by FRANCIS TRIGGE.


                                    CHAP. XI. 27.                                            127

 

of life, but freely dispenses it to his fellow-sinners! "The blessing

of him that was ready to perish shall come upon him." (Job, xxix. 13.)

The supply is abundant. Let the invitation be welcomed. (Isa. Iv. 1.)

 

27. He that diligently seeketh good, procureth favour; but he that seeketh

                             mischief, it shall come unto him:

There is no negative existence. Man is born for action, ''as the

sparks fly upward," or the stone tends downward. All of us are living

with a stupendous measure of vital activity for good or for mischief. Man

was never intended--least of all the Christian--to be idle. Our Divine

Master "went about doing good;" always in motion; active in bene-

ficence. And he is a counterfeit, who does not live after this pattern.

Usefulness is everything. We must not rest in life received. We

should feel ashamed of our depravity, that we could ever spend a day

without the great object--seeking good. Nor must we wait to have

it brought to us. We must seek it diligently, rise up early, and spring

with joy to the work. Let us awake to the conscious responsibility of

having the means of blessing our fellow-sinners in our own hands.

Every talent finds its suitable sphere, and may be "put out to usury"

with large returns. There is the practical exercise of "pure and

undefiled religion" (Jam. i. 27. Matt. xxv. 35, 36); the teaching of the if

ignorant; the instruction of the young--the rising hope of our Church

--a work of deepening interest and anxiety. Let each of us try what

we can do; and, whether it be little or much, do it prayerfully, faith-

fully, heartily; not damped by trifling hindrances (Eccles. xi. 4); nor

making the incapacity of doing much an excuse for doing nothing.

In living for others, we live for our true happiness. In seeking dili-

gently their good, we procure favour; often from man (Chap. xvi. 7)

always from God. (Chap. xii. 2. Neh. v.19.) He honours a little

strength (Rev. iii. 8), the single talent (2 Cor. viii. 12), laid out for

him. And ‘filling up every hour with some profitable labour, either of

heart, head, or hands' (as. Brainerd justly observed) 'is an excellent

means of spiritual peace and boldness before God."*  

The ceaseless energy of Satan's servants in seeking mischief (Ps.

xxxvi.4) puts to shame our indifference! Yet their own mischief often

comes to them. (Esth. vii. 10. Ps. lvii. 6.) Satan himself found the

mischief that he brought upon man come unto him. (Gen. iii. 1-6, 14, 15.)

His servants often become the victims of their own delusions (2 Thess.

ii.l0, 11), with the fearful aggravation of having dragged multitudes

with them Into the pit of ruin. What then will be the fruit of my

 

    * Life of Brainerd--Edwards' Works, 8vo. vol. iii. 148. Religious people are heavy,

and moping, and cast down, principally because they are idle and selfish-Living and

working for God and to save souls, is the only way to knowing more and more of his truth

and his salvation.'--VENN'S Lift, pp. 321, 354.


128           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

diligence? Will it be a blessing or a curse to my fellow-sinners? 0

my God! may it be from thee, and for thee!

 

  28. He that trusteth in his riches shall fall: but the righteous shall flourish

                                                   as a branch.

Here is the cause and misery of the fall. Man seeks his rest in

God's blessings, in opposition to himself. (Jer. ix. 23, 24.) Riches are

one of his grounds of trust. (Chap. x. 15. Luke, xii. 19.) He depends

on them, as the saint upon his God. (Chap. xviii. 10, 11.) And is not

this the "denial of the God that is above?" (Job, xxxi. 24, 25, 28.) A

revolting truth indeed! such as only the heart crucified to the world,

by the cross of Christ can receive. Not that the possession of riches is

sin,*  but the trusting in them. (Mark, x. 24.) Nor may it be always

wrong to improve an opportunity of increasing them. But no one

that cares for his own soul, and believes the testimony of God (Mark,

x. 25-27. 1 Tim. vi. 9, 10), will seek the opportunity; or even avail

himself of it without a plain call, and clear advantage for the glory of

God. (1 Tim. vi. 18, 19.) Let God be our satisfying portion. Let him

be supremely loved and honoured, and he will determine for us, whether

the worldly advantage be a Providence or a temptation.

Disappointment will be the certain end of this trust. (Ps. xlix.

6-12. Eccles. v. 10, 11.) "'Then we need a staff we shall find a piercing

spear. (1 Tim. vi. 10.) Or we shall fall, like the withered leaf or

blossom before the blast. (Deut. viii. 17-19.) And how many lovely

blossom has this fallen! (Mark, x. 21, 22.) Thus does "the rich man

fade away in his ways!" (Jam. 1. 10, 11.)

But the righteous is the branch; not like the leaf or blossom, easily

shaken and withered;† but abiding In the true vine: full of life and

fruit. (John, xv. 5.) There may be, as in nature's winter, times of

apparent barrenness. But the spring returns, and with it the branch

flourishes never ceasing from yielding fruit; yea--"filled with the

fruit of righteousness" (Jer. xvii. 8): the branch of "the Lord's plant-

ing; the work of his hands, that he may be glorified; "to be trans-

planted in his own best time to the other side of the river, where "the

leaf shall not fade, neither shall the fruit thereof be consumed." (Isa.

lx. 21. Ezra, xlvii. 12.) Shall not this prospect fill us with lively joy

and praise?

29. He that troubleth his own house shall inherit the wind: and the fool

                          shall be servant to the wise of heart.

A house at unity with itself, flourishes under the special favour of

 

   * See the gift of God to Abraham, Gen. xxiv. 35; to David, 1 Chron. xxix. 12; to

Solomon, 2 Chron. i. 11, 12; to Job, xlii. 11, 12.

    † See the same contrast, Ps. Iii 7, 8.


                                                 CHAP. XI. 30.                                        129

 

God. (Ps. cxxxiii.) But a house troubled with division, "cometh to

desolation." (Matt. xii. 25.) Often also the irreligion or ungoverned

passion of the head blights the comfort of the family. (1 Sam. xxv. 17.)

Indeed he cannot neglect his own soul without injury to his house. He

deprives them of the blessing of holy prayers and godly example;

while he troubles them with the positive mischief of his ungodliness,

and himself inherits the wind in utter disappointment. (Hos. viii. 7.)

Thus did the rebellion of Korah (Num. xvi. 32,33); the sin of Achan

(Josh. vii. 24, 25); the neglect of Eli (1 Sam. ii. 32, 33); the wicked-

ness of Jeroboam and Ahab (1 Kings, xiv. 9-11; xxi. 20--22); the per-

verseness of the re-builder of Jericho (Ib. xvi. 34) trouble their house to

its ruin. Prayerless, careless Parents! ponder the responsibility, of

bringing a curse, instead of a blessing, upon your families. What!

if your "root should be as rottenness, and your blossom go up as

dust?" (lsa. v. 24.) What! if a man, instead of building up his house,

should be 'so foolish as to mispend himself, and come to be a servant at

the last to him that is wise to get and keep his own?'*  Such retribu-

tions have been known (Luke, xv. 13-15) for the abuse of the gifts of

God and the neglect of Christian responsibility.

 

    30. The fruit of the righteous is a tree of life: and he that winneth

                                   (taketh, marg.) souls is wise.

Here is the fruit of the flourishing branch. (Verse 28.) The whole

course of the righteous--his influence, his prayers, his instruction, his,

example--is a tree of life. What the tree of life was in paradise;

what it will be in heaven, that he is in this wilderness, fruitful (Rev.

xxii. 2, with chap. x. 11, 31, 32), nourishing (Rev .ii. 7, with chap. x. 21),

healing. (Chap. xii. 18; xv. 4.) 'And surely he, who by these means

winneth souls to righteousness and salvation, is wise indeed.'†  He only,

who purchased them by his blood, can win them to himself (and who

that knows the work, but will give him all the praise!); yet has he

set apart men for the work of 'drawing souls to God, and to the love

of him; sweetly gaining, and making a holy conquest of them to

God.'‡  This was the wisdom of our Divine Master. He "taught the

people as they were able to hear it" (Mark, iv. 33); accommodating

himself to their convenience (Ib. vi. 31-34), and their prejudices (Matt.

xi. 16-19) if that he might win their souls. And truly were these

opportunities "his meat and drink." For when "wearied with this

journey, he sat down on the well," thirsting for water; far more in-

tensely did he thirst for the soul of the poor sinner before him; and,

having won her to himself, he forgot his own want In the joy of her

salvation. (John, iv. 6, 32-34.) In close walking after this pattern of

 

    *  Bishop Hall. Comp. chap, xvii, 2.

    † Bishop HORNE'S Sermon on the Tree of Life                 Diodati


130        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

wisdom, did the great Apostle "become all things to all men, that he

might by all means gain some." (1 Cor. ix. 20-22; x.33.) God grant

that no Minister of Christ may spend a day, without labouring to win at

least one soul for heaven!

But--blessed be God!--this fruit--this wisdom--is not confined

to the Sacred calling. Do we love our Lord? Arise; let us follow in

this happy work, and he will honour us. The righteous--wife wins her

husband's soul by the wisdom, of meekness and sobriety. (1 Pet. iii. 1,2.)

The godly neighbour wins his fellow-sinner by the patient energy of

faith and love. (Jam. v. 19, 20.) "No man" in the true Church of

God "liveth unto himself." (Rom. xiv. 7.) The Christian who neglects

his brother's salvation, fearfully hazards his own. He is gone back to

his native selfishness, if he does not exhibit that "love and kindness of

God, which hath appeared unto men." We should be diamonds in the

lustre of grace, loadstones for our attractive power in winning souls.

How poor is the mitre or the crown; how debasing the wisdom of the

philosopher, the scholar, or the statesman, compared with this wisdom!

For wise indeed we must be to win souls; so hard are they to be won!

If only one soul be taken, the honour passes thought. 'A soul is a king-

dom. As many as we can bring back to God are so many kingdoms"

reconquered.'*  No ambition so great, no results so glorious. "They

that be wise shall shine as the brightness of the firmament; and "they

that turn many to righteousness as the stars for ever and ever." (Dan.

xii. 3.) Every soul won by this wisdom, will be a fresh jewel in the

Saviour's crown; a polished stone in that temple, in which he will be

honoured throughout eternity.

 

31. Behold! the righteous shall be recompensed in the earth; much more

                                  the wicked and the sinner.

The inspired application of this proverb infallibly expounds the

mind of God.†  It is introduced to us with a special call to attention.

--Behold! Let the righteous expect from their relation to God--not

immunity, but strict recompense. (Amos, iii. 2. 1 Pet. iv. 17.) They

are under the discipline, though not under the curse, of the rod. Such

is our too high estimation of the world, conformity to its ways and

spirit, and forgetfulness our inheritance and home; that but for the

rod we should soon backslide to our stubborn wantonness. The righteous

therefore are recompensed in the earth.‡  Every perfection of God is

 

     * Quesnel. Luke, xv.

  † Pet. iv. 18, is verbatim, LXX translation of this version-So also the Syriac--'Si

justus vix vivit, impius et peccator--ubi reperietur?'

  ‡ Jacob, Gen. xxvii. with xxxiii. Moses and Aaron, Num. xx. 12, with Deut. iii. 23-26;

xxxiii. 48-52. Ps. xcix. 6-8. Eli, 1 Sam. ii. 27-36. David, 2 Sam. xii. 9-12. Ps. xxxii.

3, 4; xxxviii.1-5. Solomon, 1 Kings, xi. 9-18. The disobedient prophet, Ib. xiii. 21-24.

Hezekiah, Isa. xxxix. 1-7.


                                                       CHAP. XII. 1.                                      131

 

glorified in this dispensation. As a wise Father, he will not indulge

them in sin. As a holy God, he must show in them his abhorrence of

it. As a faithful God, he will make the chastisements of his rod the

means of their restoration. (Ps. lxxxix. 30-32.) But--blessed be

God--all the penal curse is subtracted. We are recompensed in the

earth; not, as we deserve to be, in hell. Nay--"we are chastened of

the Lord, that we might not be condemned with the world" (1 Cor.

xi. 32); punished here, that we might be spared for ever; recompensed

in the earth, to be made meet for heaven. (Heb. xii. 10.)

Much more then will the wicked and the sinner be recompensed.

If the children be scourged, much more the rebels. If the fatherly corrections

be so terrible, even when the child be accepted; what must be the

unmingled wrath for the willful sinner? "If the righteous scarcely be

saved; where shall the ungodly and the sinner appear?" (1 Pet. iv. 18.)

"If they do these things in the green tree, what shall be done in the

dry?" (Luke, xxiii. 31.) "Behold the day of the Lord cometh, that

shall burn as an oven; and all that do wickedly shall be as stubble."

(Mal. iv. 1.) Let the wicked tremble. Let the child of God be humbled

in the dust--"My flesh. trembleth for fear of thee, and I am afraid of

thy Judgments." (Ps. cxix. 120.)

 

                              CHAPTER XII.

 

1. Whoso loveth instruction loveth knowledge: but he that hateth reproof

                                               is brutish.

 

Instruction, as the contrast teaches, chiefly implies discipline (Judg.

viii. 16: Jer. vi. 8).--that most needful course for acquiring spiritual

knowledge. (Ps. CXIX. 67, 71.) For so contrary is it to our proud hearts,

that the submission of the will is our only road to Christian attainment.

(Matt. xviii. 3, 4.) Yet the value of this attainment abundantly covers

the cost. (Philip. iii. 8.) A faithful Ministry, therefore, is a most

valuable blessing; and all instructive discipline may well be loved as

the way of life." (Chap. ix. 8. Ps. cxli. 5, with chap. vi. 23. Comp. Ps.

xvi. 7; xciv. 12; Jer. xxxi. 18.)

But that irritable pride, that hates reproof, as if it were an affront

to be told of our faults, argues not only want of grace (Chap. x. 17;

xv. 10), but want of understanding--brutish folly (Isa. i. 3. Jer. viii.):

like the horse, which bites and kicks at the man, who performs a pain-

ful operation upon him; tough absolutely necessary for removing a

dangerous distemper. He is surely a brute, and not a rational creature,

who has swallowed poison, and will rather suffer it to take its course,

than admit the necessary relief of medicine, lest he should be obliged


132            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

to confess his folly, in exposing himself to the need of it.'*  0 for a

teachable spirit to "sit at the feet of our Divine Master" and learn

of Him!

 

2. A good man obtaineth favour of the Lord: but a man of wicked devices

                                         will he condemn.

Goodness is "the fruit of the Spirit." (Gal. v. 22.) The good man

therefore is a man filled with the Spirit. He reflects the munificent

goodness of God. (Matt. v. 44, 45.) He is not only the subject, but the

almoner, of grace; not only "enriched" with all blessings for himself,

but "unto all bountifulness" (2 Cor. ix. 11) for the service of his fellow-

creatures. As a benefactor to mankind, he commands our devoted

gratitude. But as a far richer reward (of grace indeed, not of debt)

(Luke, xvii. 10) he obtaineth favour of the Lord. (Isa. lviii. 8-11. Neh.

xiii. 14. 1 Pet. iii. 12.) What are all this world's treasures compared

with it? (Ps. iv. 6, 7.) Is it not the joy of our salvation; our soothing

mercy (Ib. cxix. 76); our covering shield (Ib. v. 12); in the near

prospect of eternity, our absorbing interest? (2 Cor. v. 9, 10.) And if

here, in a world of sin, it be "life, yea, better than life " (Ps. lxiii. 3);

what will be that unclouded sunshine; "the path of life;" "the fulness

of joy in his heavenly presence; the pleasures at his right hand for

evermore!" (Ib. xvi. 11.)

The contrast to the good man is--not the man--(which alas! may

be a child of God) (2 Sam. xi. 12-15) in whom, wicked devices are found,

but the man of these devices. He lives in them as his element; his mind

is set upon them. He contrives them. He follows them as his course

and delight. (Chap. i. 10-12; vi. 18. Isa. xxxii. 6, 7.) Instead of favour,

he "is condemned already." (John, iii.19, 20.) His sting of conscience

and the curse of God is present condemnation. (Zech. v. 3, 4. 1 Kings,

xii. 25-30; xiv. 10.) And in the great day, the All-seeing Judge

"shall be a swift witness against him!" (Mal. iii. 5. Ps. l. 16-21.)

 

3. A man shall not be established by wickedness: but the root of the

                             righteous shall not be moved.

The man of evil devices may prosper for a time, but he shall not be

established by wickedness; except as God may permit it, in the sovereignty

of his purposes, and the judicial chastening of his wrath. But how soon

was the successful treason of Abimelech (Judg. ix. 54-57); and the

Israelitish kings (1 Kings, xvi. 9, 10. 2 Kings, xv. 10-14. 2 Chron. xxi.

4, 13-15), brought to an end! Ahab strove to establish himself in

despite of the threatened curse of God. He increased his family, trained

them with care under the tutelage of his choicest nobility. And surely

one at least out of seventy might remain to inherit his throne. But

 

    * Lawson in loco. Comp. Ps. xxxii. 9.


                                                    CHAP. XII. 4.                                          133

 

this was the vain "striving" of the worm "with his Maker." One hour

swept them all away; and not a word of the threatening fell to the

ground.*  The evil device of Caiaphas also, to establish his nation by

wickedness, was the means of its overthrow. (John, xi. 49, 50; with

Matt. xxi. 43, 44.) Such is the infatuation of sin!

Firm and unshaken is the condition of the righteous. Their leaves

may wither in the blast. Their branches may tremble in the fury of

the tempest. But their root--the true principle of life-shall not be

moved. They "are scarcely saved," not without many tossings. But

they are surely saved, beyond the powers of hell to destroy. Does not

thy faith--Christian--sometimes faint in the wearisome assaults of

thy implacable enemy? Rejoice in the assurance, that it cannot fail.

(Luke, xxii. 31, 32.) Thou art "rooted and grounded" in a sure

foundation. (Eph. iii. 17. Col. ii. 7.) Let "the Lord, who is thy

strength,"- be "thy song."--'He only is my Rock and my salvation;

I shall not be greatly moved: I shall not be moved at all.' (Isa. ii. 2.

Ps. lxii. 2, 6. Mic. vii. 8. Rom. viii. 31-39.)

And how bright is this prospect for the Church! It shall not be

moved. (Ps. cxxv. 1, 2. Isa. xxvi. 1.) Triumphant is her confidence in

the day of conflict. "The gates of hell shall not prevail. No weapon

that is formed against her shall prosper." (Matt. xvi. 18. Isa. liv. 17.)

 

4. A virtuous woman is a crown to her husband: but she that maketh

                        ashamed is as rottenness to his bones.

Faithful (Chap. xxxi. 11, 12), chaste (Tit. ii. 5. 1 Pet. iii. 2), reve-

rentially obedient (Eph. v. 22, 23. 1 Pet. iii. 1, 4-6),"immovable in

affection (Tit. ii. 4), delighting to see her husband honoured, respected,

and loved; covering, as far as may be, his failings; prudent in the

management of her family (Chap. xiv. 1), conscientious in the discharge

of her domestic duties (Chap. xxxi. 27,28); kind and considerate to all

around her (lb. verses 20, 26); and as the root of all--"fearing the

Lord" (Ib. verse 30)--such is the virtuous woman; "the weaker vessel"

indeed, but a woman of strength,† with all her graces in godly energy.

She is not the ring on her husband's finger, or the chain of gold around

his neck. That were far too low. She is his crown; his brightest

ornament;‡ drawing the eyes of all upon him, as eminently honoured

and blessed. (Chap. xxxi. 23.)

Truly affecting is the contrast of a contentious (Chap. xix. 13; xxi. 9,

 

  * 1 Kings, xxi. 21. with 2 Kings, x. 1-7. Compare the striking figures in the book of

Job. xv. 29; xx. 5-9; xxvii. 13-17.

  † Heb. 1 Pet. iii. 7. with Chap. xxxi. 10. Ruth, iii. 11.             gunh andreia--LXX. Strenua,

Schultens, Fortis, Geier. The etymology of areth in Greek, and virtus in Latin, gives the

meaning of manly courage. In the first ages of barbarism this was the 'primary virtue'

and therefore it naturally became the generic term of virtue.

     Perhaps there may be some allusion to the crown on the nuptial day. Comp. l Cor. xi. 7.


134          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

19), imperious, extravagant, perhaps unfaithful, wife; in the levity of

her conduct forgetting her proper place and subjection: seeking the

admiration of others, instead of being satisfied with her husband's

regard. This is indeed a living disease-rottenness in his bones;*

marring his usefulness; undermining his happiness; perhaps driving

him into temptation, and "a snare of the devil." Let a young woman,

in contemplating this holy union, ponder well and in deep prayer its

weighty responsibility. Will she be a crown to her husband, or one that

maketh ashamed? Will she be what God made the woman--"an help

meet" (Gen. ii. 18); or--what Satan made her--a tempter--to her

husband? (Ib. iii. 6. 1 Kings, xxi. 25. Job, ii. 9.) If she be not a crown

to him, she will be a shame to herself. If she be rottenness to his bones,

she will be a plague to her own. For what is the woman's happiness,

but to be the helper of her husband's joy? Oh! let their mutual

comfort be sought, where alone it can be solidly found, in "dwelling

together as heirs of the grace of life." (1 Pet. iii. 7.) Better never to

have seen each other, than to live together forgetful of this great end

of improving their union as an indulgent gift of God, and an important

talent for his service, and their own eternal happiness.

 

5. The thoughts of the righteous are right: but the counsels of the wicked

are deceit. 6. The words of the wicked are to lie in wait for blood:

but the mouth of the upright shall deliver them. 7. The wicked are

overthrown, and are not: but the house of the righteous shall stand.

The workings of good and evil are here traced to the fountain-head.

(Gen. vi. 5.) The thoughts of the righteous, "renewed in the spirit of his

mind" (Eph. iv. 23), are right. (Chap. xi. 23.) He learns to measure

everything by the unerring rule, and to lean upon his God in the

careful distrust of himself. Many indeed are his deviations. But there

is an overcoming law within, that, in despite of all oppositions, fixes

his thoughts, with delight on God and his law (Ps. cxxxix. 17, 18. Rom.

vii. 15-23), and gives to them a single bias for his service. Widely

different are the thoughts of the wicked, ripening into counsels fraught

with deceit. Such were the counsels of Joseph's brethren to deceive

their father; of Jeroboam, under a feigned consideration of the people;

of Daniel's enemies, under pretence of honouring the king; of San-

ball at, under the guise of friendship; of Haman, under the cover of

patriotism; of Herod, under the profession of worshipping the infant

Saviour. Indeed from such "a corrupt fountain" as man's heart,

what else can be expected but "bitter waters?" (Jer. xvii. 9. Matt.

xv. 19.)

 

  * Jerome aptly compares it to the worm eating into the heart of the tree, and destroying

it, Trapp in loco.

  † See Gen. xxxvii. 18-20. 1 Kings, xii. 26-28. Dan. vi. 4-7. Neh. vi. 2. Esth. iii.8-10.

Matt. ii. 7, 8.


                                                  CHAP. XII. 5-8.                                                 135

 

            Then look at words--the natural organ of the thoughts. How mur-

derous were the words of Ahithophel; the trap laid for our beloved Lord;

the conspiracy against the great Apostle*--all lying in wait for blood!

(Chap. xxix. 10. Ps.xxxvii. 12, 14.) The fiercer ebullitions of hu-

manity may indeed be softened down and restrained. But the prin-

ciples remain the same. The fiery elements only lie in slumbering

cover, and often break out, wasting the very face of society. Yet

even in this bursting storm the mouth of the upright preserves them.

(Chap. xi. 9.) The wisdom of our Divine Master was an unfailing

preservative. (Matt. xxii. 34, 35, 46.) The same mouth was a cover to

his upright disciples, with little of man's help, and much of man's

opposition; "None could gainsay or resist." (Luke, xxi. 14, 15. Acts,

iv. 13, 14.)

We cannot but wonder at the long-suffering, that suffers the wicked

thus to load the earth with such a mass of guilt and misery. Yet their

triumphing is but for a moment. (Job, xx. 5. Ps. xxxvii. 35, 36.) Look

at Haman--his deceitful counsels, his bloody wordsHe is overthrown,

and is not. (Esth. vii. 10.) "And shall not God avenge his own elect?"

(Luke, xviii. 7.) Their house, feeble as it often is, and brought low

(Verse 3. 1 Kings, xv. 4), shall stand. They shall "have a place in the

Lord's house" immovable here (Isa. lvi. 4, 5), and in eternity. (Rev.

iii. 12.) Yes--those, whose thoughts and words are upright, shall stand,

when all is sinking around--"They shall be mine, saith the Lord,

in that day when I shall make up my jewels." (Mal. iii. 17.)

 

8. A man shall be commended according to his wisdom: but he that is of a

                             perverse heart shall be despised.

The ordinary judgment of this world is to "put darkness for light"

(Isa. v. 20), and therefore to commend according to folly, rather than

according to wisdom. And yet even hated wisdom often carries its voice

of conviction both to conscience and judgment; and a man is com-

mended according to it. Hence the elevation of Joseph and Daniel; the

honour paid to David in private life; and the universal respect shewn

to his wise son.‡  Our Lord's wisdom was also commended, not only by

the popular voice (Matt. vii. 28, 29), but even by the testimony of his

enemies. (John, vii. 46.) the wisdom of Stephen, "making his face to

shine," overpowered his beholders with solemn awe. (Acts, vi. 10, 15.)

How thrilling will be the commendation of wisdom before the assembled

universe! (Luke, xii. 42-44.) Who will not then acknowledge the

wise choice of an earthly cross with an heavenly crown? (Matt. v. 11,

12.) Wisdom (2 Sam. xx. 18-22) then--not dignity, riches, or talent

 

   * 2 Sam. xvii. 1-4. Luke, xx. 19-21. Acts, xxiii. 14, 15.

   See Rom. iii. 15, as the proof of universal and total depravity, verses 9, 10.

   ‡ Gen. xli. 39. Dan. i. 19, 20; ii. 46. 1 Sam. xvi. 18; xviii. 30. 1 Kings, iii. 28; iv. 29-34.


136         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

--brings honour. This is the Lord's commendation. It must be right.

(2 Cor. x. 18.) It will stand for eternity.

What then makes a man despised? Not his poverty, obscure cir-

cumstances, or misfortune; but perverseness of spirit (1 Kings, xii. 16.

Mal. ii. 8, 9), too proud to be taught: following a mad course to ruin.

Perverse Nabal was despised by his own family (1 Sam. xxv. 17, 25); the

prodigal by his former companions. (Luke, xv. 15, 16.) And of all

such, shame will be their present promotion (Chap. iii. 35; xi. 2; xviii.

3), their eternal doom. (Dan. xii. 2.)

 

9. He that is despised, and hath a servant, is better than he that honoureth

                                  himself, and lacketh bread.

A man, who has only a competency, sufficient to have a servant

(Chap. xxx. 8, 9), and making no appearance, may be despised by his

richer neighbours. (1 Sam. xviii. 23.) But his state is better than the

proud show of rank, or family, without the means of sustaining it; or

than one humbled by Providence, yet unhumbled in heart. (Chap. xiii.

7. Luke, xiv. 11.) Nothing is so despicable as to be proud, where

there is nothing to be proud of. Sometimes from 'a shabby gentility'*

--the foolish vanity of keeping up appearances--a man debars him-

self from the common comforts of life--honouring himself, and lacking

bread. Such slaves are men to the opinion of the world! Principle is

sacrificed to pride; and men rebel against Him, who makes no mistake

in his allotments, and often appoints a descent from worldly elevation

as a profitable discipline. (Jam. i. 10, 11. Dan. iv. 32-37.) Yet it is

hard, even for the Christian, as Bunyan reminds us, 'to go down

the Valley of Humiliation, and catch no slip by the way.' We need

our Master's unworldly, elevated spirit (John, vi. 15) to make a safe

descent. Remember--"the pride of life is not of the Father, but is of

the world." (1 John, ii. 16.) "Let our moderation be known unto all

men," under the constraining recollection--"The Lord is at hand."

(Philip. iv. 5. Mark, xiii. 1, 2.) How will the dazzling glare of man's

esteem fade away before the glory of his appearing!

 

10. A righteous man regardeth the life of his beast: but the tender mercies

                            (bowels, marg.) of the wicked are cruel.

The minuteness of Scripture is one of its most valuable properties.

It shows the mind of God on many points apparently trivial. Here it

tests our profession by our treatment of the brutes. They were given

to man, as the lord of the creation, for his use, comfort, and food (Gen.

i. 28; ix. 3); not for his wantonness. A righteous man regardeth the life

of his beast, duly attends to its comfort (Gen. xxiv. 32), and never

presses it beyond its strength. (lb. xxxiii. 13, 14.) The brutal habits,

 

    * Bp. Sanderson.


                                          CHAP. XII. 10, 11.                                             137

 

therefore, the coarse words, inhuman blows (Num. xxii. 27), and hard

tyranny on the public roads, are disgraceful to our nature. The delight

of children in putting animals to pain for amusement, if not early

restrained, will mature them in cruelty, demoralize their whole cha-

racter, and harden them against all the sympathies of social life. For,

as Mr. Locke wisely observed, 'they who delight in the sufferings and

destruction of inferior creatures, will not be apt to be very compas-

sionate and benign to those of their own kind.'*  Thus the tender

mercies of the wicked are cruel, having no right feeling (Gen. xxxvii.

26-28); only a milder exercise of barbarity (1 Sam. xi. 1, 2. Luke,

xxiii. 13-16); and usually meted out for some selfish end.

But why is this humanity marked as the feature of a righteous man?

Because it is the image of our heavenly Father, who spreads his

cherishing wings over his whole creation. (Ps. xxxiii. 5; cxlv. 9, 16;

cxlvii. 9.) As though the field of man was too small for his goodness,

he regardeth the life of the beast. (Ib. xxxvi. 6, 7.) Witness the sanctions

of his law (Exod. xxii. 30. Deut. v. 14; xxv. 4), and the dispensations

of his judgments. (Jonah, iv. 11.) Nay, even did he by miracu-

lous interference put into the mouth of the stupid ass to plead as it

were the cause of the dumb creation. (Num. xxii. 28-30.) Must not

then his children reflect his whole image of love? (Matt. v. 44, 45.). And is not

the want of any feature of this image a mark of doubtful relationship to him?

 

11. He that tilleth his land shall be satisfied with bread: but he that

            followeth vain persons is void of understanding.

Special honour is given to the work of tilling the land. God

assigned it to Adam in Paradise. (Gen. ii.15.) It was the employment

of his eldest son. (Ib. iv. 2.) Its origin appears to have been under

immediate Divine Teaching. (Isa. xxviii. 23-26.) In ancient times it

was the business or relaxation of kings.‡  A blessing is ensured to

 

   * Thoughts concerning Education

   † Acts, xxiv. 26, 27.-- 'We have been used to hear much of the benevolence of infidels,

and the philanthropy of deists. It is all a pretence. Self is the idol, and self-indulgcnce

the object, in the accomplishment of which they are little scrupulous about the means.

Where self is the idol, the heart is cruel. While they talk of universal charity, they regard

not the cruelty of robbing millions of the consolation of religion. While they clumour

about reform, they would with unfeeling barbarity exult in the demolitionist of venerable

establishments. While they speak of harmless gaiety and pleasure, they would treache-

rously corrupt piety, and pollute unsuspecting innocence' --Holden in loco.

  ‡ 2 Chron. xxvi. 10. 'Omnium rerum, ex quibus aliquid acquiritur, nihil est agricul-

tura melius, nihil uberius, nihil dulcius, nihil homine libero dignius.' Such was the judg-

ment of the Roman Moralist.--Cicero De Offic. B. I. xlii ‘Of all the arts of civilized

man, agriculture is transcendently the most essential and valuable. Other arts may contribute

to the comfort, the convenience, and the embellishment of life. But the cultivation of the

soil stands in immediate connexion with our very existence. The life itself, to whose com-

fort, and convenience, and the embellishment, other arts contribute, is by this sustained: so

that others without it can avail nothing.'--WARDLAW on Eccles. v. 9.


138       EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

diligence; sometimes abundant (Gen. xxvi. 12); always such as we

should be satisfied with. (Chap. xxvii. 23-27.).

The principle applies alike to every lawful calling. Industry is

an ornamental grace (Chap. xxxi. 13-22), and a Christian obligation.

(Rom. xii. 11. 1 Thess. iv. 11.) Most ample is its reward in the work

of God. How rich is the harvest for the diligent student of the Scrip-

tures! Truly he shall be satisfied with bread. But idleness is a spot

upon our royal name, (2 Thess. iii. 10-12.) As an old writer observes

The proud person is Satan's throne, and the idle man his pillow, He

sitteth in the former, and sleepeth quietly on the latter.'* The man

therefore that followeth vain persons, instead of honest labour, proves

himself to be void of understanding, and will reap the fruits of his folly

(Chap. xiii. 20. Acts, v. 36, 37)--perhaps throughout eternity.

 

12. The wicked desireth the net of evil men: but the root of the righteous

                                          yieldeth fruit.

Man is always restless to press onwards to something not yet

enjoyed. The Christian reaches forth to higher privileges and in-

creasing holiness. (Philip. iii, 12-14.) The wicked emulate each other in

wickedness; and if they see evil men more successful than themselves, 

they desire their net (Ps. x. 8-10. Jer. v. 26-28); to discover their plans,

in order to imitate them. Not satisfied with the honest "gain of god-

liness," they desire a net, in which they may grasp richer treasures of

this world's vanity. (1 Tim. vi. 10.) The history of the Church strongly

illustrates this energy of sin; Infidelity and Popery; one net following

another with more crafty device. Such is the root of evil, fraught with

destruction. But the root of the righteous yieldeth fruit--true, solid,

abundant fruit; not always visible, but always acceptable. (Heb. xiii.

15, 16.) Dependence on Christ is the source of this blessing; neces-

sary in order to fruit,‡ and never failing to produce it. (John, xv. 5.)

The spiritual branches ‘are nourished and increased by the living root

of God's grace and blessing.'§

 

13. The wicked is snared by the transgression of his lips: but the just shall

                                                   come out of trouble.

We have seen the intense desire of the wicked to snare others in the

net. Here he is snared himself: The transgresions of his lips become

 

   * SWINNOCK'S Christian Man's Calling, Part I. 346.

  † The LXX gives a curious addition to this verse, not without some wholesome applica-

tion to young votaries of pleasure--'He that is sweet in wine-parties shall leave behind dis-

grace in his strong places.'

  ‡ John, xv. 4. Rom. vii: 4. It was the remark of a. venerable relative of the Writer's,

who was never suspected of enthusiasm--'As surely as the vine-branch can have no

powers, independent of the root; so surely cannot the Christian think, act, or live, as such,

but only so far as he derives his abilities from the stock, on which he is engrafted.'--The

Rev. WILLIAM JONES' (Nayland) Enquiry upon the Spring, p.36.       § Diodati


                                                CHAP. XII. 13, 14.                                139

 

the snare of his life. (Chap. xviii. 7. Ps.lxiv. 8.) 'Many have felt the

lash upon their backs for the want of a bridle on their tongues.'*

Such a snare were the lips of the Amalekite bringing the tidings of

Saul's death. Expecting a reward, he found his death. (2 Sam. iv.

9-12.) Such also was Adonijah's deceitful petition (1 Kings, ii. 22,23);

the hypocritical loyalty of Daniel's enemies (Dan. vi. 7, 8, 24); the

fearful imprecation of the devoted nation. (Matt. xxvii. 25.) The lips of

the wicked miss their mark, and become the instruments of his ruin.

(Ps. xxxv. 8.)

On the other hand, the godly exercise of the lips often delivers out

of the trouble, into which the wicked rush headlong. (Jer. xxvi. 12-16.)

The noble confession of Caleb and Joshua brought them safe out of the

trouble which was frowning upon their rebellious brethren. (Num. xiv.

6-10, 24.) And even when the just "are overtaken with" a transgression

of the lips, still their faithful God makes a difference. He will not

indeed wink at sin in his own children. (Amos, iii. 2.) But while his

covenant provides stripes for their transgressions, it ensures deliverance

in the end. (Ps. lxxxix. 32, 33.) Thus a presumptuous confidence is

restrained; and a humbling, self-abasing, tender confidence is esta-

blished.

 

14. A man shall be satisfied with good by the fruit of his mouth; and the

            if recompense of a man's hands shall be rendered unto him.

We have seen the snare of the tongue. Here is its blessing, not to

others (Chap. x. 20, 21) only, but to ourselves. Have we the mark of

"the saints of God, to speak of the glory of his kingdom?" (Ps. cxlv.

10, 11.) What a dignity will this grand subject give to our conver-

sation! What a preservative from that frivolous "talk of the lips,

which tendeth only to penury!" (Chap. xiv. 23.) What a tone of

elevation to our whole character! (Mal. iii. 16,17.) How shall we be

satisfied with good by the fruit of our consecrated lips! (Chap. xiii. 2;

xv: 23.) When our God becomes, not our visitor, but our inmate, the

fruit of our mouth is no constrained effort, but "out of the abundance of

heart"

From the devotedness of the lips flows the ready exercise of the

hands. Every member of the body is his purchased possession. (1 Cor.

vi. 19, 20.) And here also is a sure recompense. For who ever served

God "for nought?" (Job, i. 9, 10.) " He is not unrighteous to forget

our work and labour of love. A cup of cold water given to a disciple

in his name shall in no wise lose its reward." (Heb. vi. 10. Matt. x.42.)

The meanest exercise of love will be abundantly and eternally recom-

pensed.

 

    * Henry in loco.


140                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

15. The way of a fool is right in his own eyes: but he that hearkeneth

                unto counsel is wise.

The fool's conceit hinders his wisdom. (Job, xi. 12.) 1 discou-

raging case! (Chap. xxvi. 12.) His way is right in his own eyes. (Chap.

xvi. 2.) He needs no direction, asks no counsel, is stubborn in his own

way, because it is his own (Judg. ii. 19), and follows it to his own ruin.

His chief danger is his security. (Deut. xxix. 19.) There may be no

flagrant sin, nothing that degrades him below the level of his respect-

able neighbour. He has no doubt of heaven. Instead of the way

being so narrow, that few find it (Matt. vii. 14); in his view it is so

easy of access, that few miss it. Thus all his religion is self-delusion.

(Chap. xiv. 12.) 0 my God! save me from myself--from my own

self-deceitfulness.

What a proof of wisdom is a teachable spirit! What an excellent

means of increasing it! (Chap. i. 5.) Was not Moses wiser for heark-

ening to Jethro's counsel (Exod. xviii. 14-24); and David for listening to

the restraining advice of Abigail? (1 Sam. xxv. 23-32.) How precious

then to the child of God is the office of the Divine Counsellor! (Isa. ix.

6.) How wise the reverential faith, that hearkens to his counsel! Whom

does he ever disappoint? Whom does he "upbraid?" (Jam. i. 5.)

 

16. A fool's wrath is presently (in that day, marg.) known: but a prudent

                                         man covereth shame.

Let the tongue be ever under discipline. An unbridled tongue is

the proof of an unrenewed heart. (Ib. ver. 26; iii.2.) But specially

never let it be loose in a moment of wrath. How readily is the fool

known by his wrath! He has no command of himself. On the first

rising, he bursts out with an ungovernable impulse. (Chap. xiv. 17, 29;

xxv. 28.) Truly is wrath called shame. For is it not a shame, that

unruly passions should, as it were, trample reason under foot, disfigure

even the countenance, and subjugate the whole man to a temporary

madness? (Dan. iii. 19.) What else were Saul's unseemly sallies

against David and Jonathan;1 Jezebel's boiling rage against Elijah;2

Nebuchadnezzar's unreasonable decree to kill his wise men, because

they could not interpret his vision?3

Yet far more painful is the sight of the fool's wrath in the children

of God; in Moses, the meekest of men;4 in David, "the man after

God's own heart;5 in "Asa, whose heart was perfect with God all his

days."6  Nothing more excites the scoff of the ungodly, than the sight

of these gross ebullitions, which Divine grace ought to restrain. But

 

1 1 Sam. xviii. 10, 11; xix. 9-11; xx 30-34.                                             2 1 Kings, xix. 1,2

3 Dan. Ii. 12,13.                                                                                      4 Num. xx. 10, 11.

5 1 Sam. xxv. 21, 22.                                                                               6 2 Chron. xvi. 10.


                                     CHAP. XII. 16-18.                                    141

 

what is "man in his best estate," left to himself! animated with the

spirit of a wild beast! in that day he becomes an object of shame.

(Chap. xvii. 12.)

Self-controul, that covers the shame, and represses the rising fermen-

tation, is true Christian prudence. (Chap. xxix. 11. Judg. viii. 2, 3.) Even

as a matter of policy, it is most commendable. (1 Sam. x. 27.) But as

a gracious principle, it is indeed a victory more honourable than the

martial triumph (Chap. xvi. 32; xix. 11; xx. 3); not only subduing

our own spirit, but melting the hardness of our adversary. (Rom. xii.

18-21.)

Do we feel our temper at any time ready to rise? Cry instantly to

Him, who quiets the storm. (Matt. viii. 26. Ps. lxv. 7.) Keep before

our eyes his blessed example, "who, being reviled, reviled not again"

(1 Pet. ii. 23); and be what we behold. (2 Cor. iii. 18.)

 

17. He that speaketh truth sheweth forth righteousness: but a false witness

                                                            deceit.

This proverb may appear almost too obvious to need remark. But

the Scripture not only sets out what is deep and searching, but stamps

the every-day truths with the seal of God for our more reverential

obedience. Yet there is here more than lies on the surface. It might

seem enough for a faithful witness to speak truth. But no--he must

shew forth righteousness; what is just, as well as what is true. The

best-intentioned purpose must not lead us to conceal what is necessary

to bring the cause to a righteous issue; "rejoicing not in iniquity, but

rejoicing in the truth." (1 Cor. xiii. 6.)

A false witness does not always deal with open lying, but with deceit

--truth misrepresented, concealed, and thus turned into falsehood.

Thus was Doeg a false witness against the priests. He states the fact,

but by suppression of circumstances gives a false impression. (1 Sam.

xxi. 1-7; xxii. 9, 10.) The false witness condemned our Lord by a

similar perverse misconstruction of his words. (Matt. xxvi. 60, 61.

John, ii. 19-21.) Oh, cherish a deep abhorrence of deceit in all its

forms and beginnings. (Chap. xiii. 5. Ps. cxix. 163.) Christian obliga-

tion and privilege alike forbid it. (Eph. iv. 22, 25.) Truth and deceit

are not mere moral qualities, but the distinctive mark of the two classes

of the world. Look to it, that the broad stamp of truth and righteousness

brings out the testimony--"Behold! an Israelite indeed, in whom is

no guile." (John, i. 47.)

 

18. There is that speaketh like the piercings of a sword: but the tongue of

                                                the wise is health.

            Who has not felt the piercings of false, unkind, inconsiderate

speeches? How keenly have the servants of God suffered from this


142            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

sword!*  Many will speak daggers without compunction, who would

be afraid to use them. Surely it was not without reason, that our Lord

charges an angry word or tongue with the guilt of murder. (Matt. v.

21, 22.) The source of this mischief demonstrably shews its malignity.

"The tongue is a fire, a world of iniquity, and it is set on fire of hell."

(Jam. iii. 6.) Indeed, ‘a great and almost incredible calamity is it,

that man, who was created for humanity, should be so corrupted, that

no animal in the world is more ferocious and malignant.'

Yet is the little member no less powerful to heal than to wound.

It gives instant healing to the piercings of the sword (Judg. vii. 1-3.

1 Sam. xix. 1-7; xxv. 32, 33), even to the very wound, which it may

have constrained to inflict.‡  But it is the tongue of the wise, that is health.

Its unrestrained and unregulated vent might be hurtful. Wisdom is

the guiding principle; not a loose loquacity, but a delicate discriminat-

ing tact, directing us, how, when, what, to whom to speak; sometimes

repressing; sometimes quickening: "the tongue of the learned, to

speak a word in season to him that is weary." (Isa. 1.4.) This is no

negative responsibility. It is not enough, that there is no poison in

the tongue. It must be healing, not only purified from "corrupt com-

munication," but "ministering grace unto the hearers." (Eph. iv. 29.)

What need have we of the "indwelling of the word in all wisdom,"

that in "teaching and admonishing one another, our speech may be

always with grace," wholesome and edifying, to the glory of our com-

mon Lord! (Col. iii. 16; iv. 6.)

 

19. The lip of truth shall be established for ever; but a lying tongue is but

                                                for a moment.

            How important is it to eye eternity in all our words! Truth would

then be seen in its permanent value and results. The profession may

bring us into present trouble. (Matt. x. 32-39.) But its lip shall be

established for ever. Who will gainsay the martyr's testimony--'Be of

good comfort, Master Ridley; play the man? We shall this day light

such a candle by God's grace in England, as, I trust, shall never be put

out.'§  The lip also of the faithful minister of God is established for ever.

For "whatsoever he binds and looses on earth, shall be bound and

loosed in heaven." (Matt. xviii. 18. John, xx. 23.)

Truth then is eternal.  Lying, even if it suits our purpose as an

easy escape from difficulty (a miserable--short-lived policy!) is but

for a moment. (Ps. Iii. 4, 5.) Nay--should it escape detection for a

whole life; yet with eternity before us, what a moment is that! And

 

   * Job, xiii. 4; xvi. xix. David, Ps. xlii. 10; lii. 2. Jeremiah, xviii. 18-23. Lam. iii. 14.

Paul, 2 Cor. x. 1, 2, 10; xiii. 2, 3.

     DAILLE on Col. iii. 8.

     ‡ Ps. cxli. 5. Comp. the healing counsel, 2 Cor. ii. 6-11, with 1 Cor. V.

     § Foxe, vii. 550.


                                               CHAP. XII. 19, 20.                                     143

 

what will be the relief of this short moment under the tremendous

wrath of God? (Rev. xxi. 8; xxii. 15.) God's own people have always

found this momentary escape from trouble to be followed by shame and

confusion.*  The lie of the Gibeonites ended in their confusion (Josh.

ix.) The fruit of Gehazi's lie was the pleasure for a moment. The

shame endured under the end. (2 Kings, v. 25-27.) Under the same

withering curse, the lying tongue of false teachers passes away (2 Tim.

iii. 6-9); while truth remains constant. 'None are so visibly blasted

as those who make no conscience of a lie.'  Children! ponder it well

--Eternity is at once the gain of truth, and the cost of a lie. (Ps. xv.

1, 2. Rev. xxi. 8.) But oh! the infinite difference between heaven and

hell!

20. Deceit is in the heart of them that imagine evil: but to the counsellors

of peace is joy. 21. There shall no evil happen to the just; but the

wicked shall be filled with mischief. 22. Lying lips are abomination to

the Lord: but they that deal truly are his delight.

The principle of deceit is here traced to its fountain--the heart.

How early it is found there, the first lispings of infancy too plainly

prove. A lie is ready upon the child's lips, when the temptation is

presented to it; though nothing is to be gained by it, but the hateful

pleasure of sin. Yet though deceit is the native fruit of the heart, all are

not equally ready in imagining evil--"inventors of evil things." (Chap.

xiv. 22. Mic. ii. 1.) The principle is not equally active, or equally

developed in all. But when it does operate, the wicked are filled with

mischief, and reap the full harvest in disappointment and ruin. (Esth.

vii. 10. Job, v. 12, 13.)

How frightful also is it to remark the outward expression of deceit

in lying lips! Diversified indeed are its forms--falsehood, exaggera-

tion, colouririg, wilful perversion, wrong impressions produced or

encouraged.‡  No part of Christian Education is more important, than

the training of children in the deepest reverence for the simplicity of

truth.--Dr. Johnson has well observed, that the prevalence of falsehood

arises more from carelessness about truth, than from intentional lying.

If a child was relating what he had seen in the street, 'do not'--he

 

   *  Abraham, Gen. xx. 1-16. Isaac, xxvi. 7-10. Peter, Matt. xxvi. 69-75.

    Matthew Henry's Life, chap. xiii.

 ‡ 'As one common but most responsib1e instance of this,' (observes Mr. Goode in his

va1uable Sermon on this text), 'is instructing servants to say-  'Not at home.' Great is their

guilt, who thus tempt a fellow-creature to litter a palpable untruth for the paltry conve-

nience of a master. No Christian servant will consent to defile his conscience by acqui-

escing in any such iniquity. 'It is a matter of common consent, and everyone understands

it.' Be it so--it is untruth still, and lying lips are abomination to the Lord. Moreover, if it

be so generally understood, and admitted without offence; then how much more honourable

and Christian to say at once--'We are engaged. We wish to be alone!' Who that

accepts one excuse will not readily accept the other?' Comp. Ecclus. vii. 13.


144         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

advises--'suffer him to say, that he had seek it out of one window, if

he has seen it out of another.' Let them know that every wilful devia-

tion from strict accuracy bears the stamp of lying lips, which are (and

let the sentence be pondered, not only by children, but by all*) an

abomination to the Lord. (Chap. vi. 16, 17. Pi. v. 6.) With this sin were

Ananias and Sapphira hurried into eternity. (Acts, v. 1-10.) The

wilful liar proves his parentage (John, viii. 44), and will be classed in

eternity with all that is hateful. And fearfully will a righteous God,

even in forgiving his own child, "take vengeance of his inventions."

Here however is peace--the contrast to evil inventions: and, instead

of that sorrow which is connected with deceit (Judg. ix. 2 Sam. xv. 6;

xviii. 15), to them that "seek and pursue it," there is joy. Thus doubt-

less did Jonathan and Abigail rejoice in the success of their good

counsels. (1 Sam. xix. 4-7; xxv. 23-32.) And most responsible is the

obligation of Christians to be counsellors of peace, breathing their

Master's spirit of peace and love. (Col. iii. 14, 15.) A blessed office

indeed is it! pouring in the balm of peaceful counsel upon irritated

feeling. They will mediate, explain, and cover with considerate pru-

dence all the little causes of excitement. They will bring out the

strong and unchangeable obligations of Christian love. They will

seize the happy moment of softening to rekindle confidence. Happy

indeed are they, in the joy of their own conscience, in their dignity as

"the children of God" (Matt. v. 9), in the rich harvest of their Christian

exertions. (Jam. iii. 17, 18.) Instead of being filled with mischief, no

evil shall happen to them. Evil, whenever permitted, will become their

good. (Rom. viii. 28.) They shall be supported in it,1 delivered out

of it,2 sanctified by it.3  Its sharpness will pierce their corruptions.

Its bitterness will wean them from the creature. Its furnace

will mould them into the image of their Lord. Thus, what to the

ungodly would be a mass of sorrow, to the just becomes a world of

blessing.

Freedom from deceit is their broad mark in the promiscuous crowd.

They not only speak, but they deal truly: uniform in light and life.

(John, iii. 21.) They bear the image of a God of truth, and he delights

in them. (Chap. xi. 1.) "They are children that cannot lie. So he is

their Saviour." (Isa. lxiii. 8; xxxiii. 15, 16.)

 

23. A prudent man concealeth knowledge: but the heart of fools proclaimeth

                                                foolishness.

Knowledge is a talent to be wisely, not promiscuously, communicated.

 

  *  Lavater in loco.

 † Ps. xcix. 8. Comp. the example of Jacob, Gen. xxvii. with xxxvii. 31-35. David's

He Punished with such dreadful results, 1 Sam. xxi. 2; xxii. 18, 19.

   1 1 Cor. x. 18. 2 Cor. xii. 7-10.        2 Verse 13. Ps. xxxiv. 19.     3 Ps. cxix. 67, 71.


                                                             CHAP. XII. 24.                                  145

 

(Chap. ix. 9. Matt. vii. 6.) In Scriptural knowledge indeed there must be

no concealment of fundamental truths (Ps. xl. 9, 10. 1 Cor. xv. 3); or in

declaring on suitable occasions, or to suitable persons, the gracious

dealings of God to our own souls. Much harm would be done by

obtruding upon the ungodly those interior matters of Christian experi-

ence, which we are invited to tell to those "that fear God." (Ps. lxvi.

16.) Every truth is not therefore fitting for every person, or for every

time. (Eccles. iii. 7. Amos, v. 1.3.) Our blessed Lord charged upon his

disciples the prudent concealment of knowledge, after his example, till a

more favourable season. (Matt. xvi. 20; xvii. 9. John, xvi. 12.) The

Apostle concealed his knowledge for fourteen years, and even then men-

tioned it reluctantly, to vindicate his own rightful claims of Apostle-

ship. (2 Cor. xii. 1-6.) Elihu, though "full of matter," and longing to

give vent, yet prudently concealed his knowledge, till his elders had

opened his way. (Job, xxxii. 6, 18, 19.)

Circumstances also may sometimes prudently dictate concealment.

Abraham spared the feelings of his family, and cleared his own path, by

hiding the dreadful message of his God.*  Joseph concealed his kindred

for the discipline of his brethren (Gen. xlii. 7); Esther from a prudent

regard to consequences to herself. (Esth. ii. 10.) Nothing can justify

speaking contrary to the truth. But we are not always obliged to tell

the whole truth. Jeremiah answered all that he was bound to speak;

not all that he might have spoken. (Jer. xxxviii. 24-27.) In all these

cases "the wise man's heart will discern both time and judgment"

(Eccles. viii. 5. Chap. xv. 2); cherishing at once a sound judgment and

an ardent love for truth.

The fool however everywhere proclaims his foolishness. (Eccles. x. 3,

12-14.) He imprudently opens his heart. (Judg. xvi. 17.) He is

dogmatical in dispute, when wiser men are cautious. He is teaching,

when he ought to take the learner's place; his self-confidence proclaiming

his emptiness. (1 Tim. vi. 3,4.) Self-distrust and humility are most

important, to enable us to improve the gifts of God for his glory.

 

24. The hand of the diligent shall bear rule: but the slothful shall be

                                                under tribute.

Diligence is the ordinary path to advancement. Pharaoh required

men of activity for the charge of his cattle (Gen. xlvii 6); Solomon for

the administration of his kingdom. (1 Kings, xi. 28.) This was Joseph's

road to bearing rule. (Chap. xxii. 29.) But if it does not raise in the

world it will command influence in its own sphere. The faithful

steward is made ruler over his Lord's household. (Matt. xxiv. 45-47.)

The active trader bears rule over many cities. (lb. xxv. 21.) Diligence

 

  * Gen. xxii. 1-7. Comp. Moses' conduct, Exod. iv. 18.


146           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

therefore is not a moral virtue separate from religion, but rather a

component part of it. (Rom. xii. 11.)

The slothful spirit brings a man under bondage. 'He is perpetually

needing counsel of others, and hanging upon it.'* In the grand concern,

he is the slave of his own lust; in the worst service, under the most

degrading tyranny; "wicked" because slothful," and "cast out and

condemned as an unprofitable servant." (Matt. xxv. 26-30.) Christian

Professor! tremble at this responsibility of doing nothing, of living for

thine own indulgence; neglecting the great object of life--the only

object that tells upon eternity.

 

25. Heaviness in the heart of man maketh it stoop: but a good word

                                              maketh it glad.

Heaviness in heart is a palsy, that maketh it stoop, as under an

intolerable burden. (Gen. xxxvii. 33, 35; xlii. 38.) And gladdening

indeed is a good word of sympathy and comfort! (Neh. i. 4, with ii.I-8.)

'This maxim therefore points out an easy and cheerful way of being

useful.' Here we realize the precious efficacy of the Gospel. How

full is it of these good words! Is it distress for sin? "Come unto me,

all ye that labour and are heavy laden; and I will give you rest."

(Matt. xi. 28.) Is it the pressure of affliction? How good is the word,

"that speaketh unto us as unto children;" warning us neither to

"despise, nor to faint, under the chastening of the Lord!" (Heb. xii. 5.)

Is it despondency? Oft is the good word, repeated--"Fear not." (Isa.

xli. 10, 14; xliii. 1.) Know we not the voice--"It is I; be not

afraid?" (Matt. xiv. 27.) Human sympathy may give temporary relief.

But 'that was the grace, softer than oil, sweeter than roses, which flows

from the Saviour's lips into the sinner's wounds; and being poured into

the contrite heart, not only heals, but blesses it, yea, and marks it out

for eternal blessedness. Oh! how sweet is the voice of pardon to a soul

groaning under the burden of sin!'‡  David, but for these good words,

"would have perished in his afiliction." (Ps. cxix. 92.) What beside

made glad the jailor's stooping heart.' (Acts, xvi. 28-34.) Precious

indeed is the privilege, to strengthen the weak hands "with a good word

of God" (Isa. xxxv. 3, 4); to take the chair by the mourner's side, and

“comfort him with the same comfort, wherewith we ourselves are com-

forted of God." (2 Cor. i. 4.) Precious is the ministry of the gospel,

commissioned with the gladdening word to the heavy of heart. (Job, xxxiii.

23-26. Isa. xl. 1, 2.) Yet more precious the office of the Beloved

Saviour, "gifted with the tongue of the learned," and called with the

unction of the Spirit, for the express purpose of "comforting them that

 

  * Dathe in loco. 'The slothful shall become subservient to others.'--FRENCH and

SKINNER'S Translation of Proverbs, with notes, 1831. Comp. Chap. x. 4; xi. 29.

    Scott.

    ‡ LEIGHTON'S Meditations on Ps. cxxx. 4.


                                                      CHAP. XII. 26.                                        147

 

mourn." (Isa. 1.4; lxi. 1, 2.) How tenderly did he perform this office

let his last sermon testify. (John, xiv.-xvi.) See then the provision

for joy, so rich, so free, so ready. Beware "lest Satan should get

advantage" by a brooding spirit. (2 Cor. ii. 7.) Think on thy obligation

and thy privilege to "rejoice in the Lord." (Philip. iii. 1; iv. 4.)

 

26. The righteous is more excellent, (abundant, marg.) than his neighbour:

                         but the way of the wicked seduceth him.

God and the world are at issue in their estimate of his own people.

The righteous is low indeed in man's scale. But place him beside the

wicked (Mark, vi. 20)--even upon the same level (2 Kings, iii. 14),

and his superiority is acknowledged. More excellent is he in character,

more abundant in privilege, than his neighbour, be his external advantage

and endowments ever so great. Look at his birth, a child of God;1

his dignity, a king;2 his connections, a member of the family of

heaven;3 his inheritance, a title to both worlds;4 his food, the bread

of everlasting life;5 his clothing, the righteousness of the Saviour;6

his prospects, infinite and everlasting joy.7 Mark the honor which his

God puts upon him. He is the fulness of Christ;8 "the temple of the

Holy Ghost,"9 throwing the splendour of Solomon's temple into the

shade.10 Angels, while "beholding the face of their Father which is

in heaven," count it an honour to "minister to him as an heir of salva-

tion."11 How can his neighbour's most exalted privileges compare with

his? Contrast his high walk with God in "the holiest;"12 his heavenly

profession before men (Philip. ii. 15); his Christian victory over himself

(Chap. xvi. 32. Matt. xvi. 24), with his grovelling neighbour. For

'what an unprofitable drudgery is the service of the greatest prince in

the world, in comparison with the work of a poor Christian, that liveth

in communion with God!*  And then--passing to the last contemplation,

--see him in the full enjoyment of his present prospects, "carried by

the angels into Abraham's bosom;”13 "entering into the joy of his

Lord;"14 welcome before the assembled world;15 then fixed on the

throne of his Lord16 to be with him,17 near him,18 like him,19 for ever

--what are his neighbour's prospects, but as hell compared, with

heaven?20 Can we doubt this testimony--The righteous is more

excellent than his neighbour?

 

1 John, i. 12,13.                          2 Rev. i. 6.                                3 Heb. xii. 22, 23.

4 Matt. v. 5. I Cor. iii. 22, 23.      5 John, vi. 35-58.                        6 Isa. lxi. 10.

7 lsa. xxxv. 10.                          8 Eph. i. 23.                              9 I Cor. vi. 19.

10 Isa. lxvi. 1,2.                          11 Matt. xviii.10. Heb. i. 14.        12 Heb. x. 19, 20.

13 Luke, xvi. 22.                         14 Matt. xxv. 21.                                    15 Ib. v.34.

16 Rev. iii. 21.                            17 John, xiv. 3.                           18 Rev. vii. 15.

19 I John, iii. 2.                           20 Prov. xiv 32. Matt. xxv. 41.

   * MANTON on Ps, cxix. 45. 'God knows how much rather I would be the obscure tenant

of a lath-and-plaster cottage, with a lively sense of my interest in a Redeemer, than the

most admired object of public notice without it.'--COWPER'S Private Correspondence.


148           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

But we must not decide this character according to the standard of

this world. It includes all that is meant in that important but despised

word--conversion. What is commonly meant by amendment comes

very far short of it. That is only an external work. Conversion is an

inward change. That is only partial. This is total. That concerns

only the outward conduct, and leaves the heart untouched. But what-

ever good may be in it of moral restraint, the principles are to be found

with a far higher standard and tone in the inward change, which

reaches the heart, infuses there a new and heavenly principle, and turns

it to God by Christ, as its centre of rest, peace, and holiness. Here

alone is the real excellence, bearing the stamp of God, and commanding

often the reluctant admiration of the world.

But though wicked Balaam acknowledged the higher excellence of

the righteous, his own way seduced him? to his own ruin. (Num. xxxi. 8.)

Saul's testimony to David, and Joash's reverence for Elisha, still left

them seduced by the power of their own corruptions. (Isa. xliv. 20.)

Always is this way more pleasant to flesh, and therefore more generally

approved. Hence is the wicked easily seduced with the appearance of

the right way, and blinded to his own ruin. (1 Sam. xxiv. 17. 2 Kings,

xiii. 14, with 11.) Let me weigh my path most carefully--With whom

am I walking? In what way?

 

27. The slothful man roasteth not that which he took in hunting: but the

                        substance of a diligent man is precious.

How miserable and ruinous is the habit of sloth! It is a dead

palsy, under God only to be checked by early discipline and constant

resistance. Sometimes however the man makes a vigorous and suc-

cessful effort. He rouses himself even to the toil of hunting. But his

fit of exertion is soon over. He cannot be at the pains of preparing his

prey for his repast. (Contrast Gen. xxvii. 30, 31.) He leaves it to

others, perhaps even to his dogs; and quickly relapses into his beloved

habit.

Is not this a graphical picture of the slothful professor? He will

take up religion under a strong excitement. He begins a new course,

and perhaps makes some advances in it. But  “having no root in

himself," his good frames and resolutions wither away. (Matt. xiii. 20,

21.) The continued exertion required (Ib. xi. 12); the violence that

must be done to his deep-rooted habits; the difficulties in his new path;

the invitations to present ease; the delusive hope of better success at a

future day--all these hang as a weight upon his efforts. So that, not

knowing the only secret of resistance to his powerful enemy-earnest

and persevering prayer; he grows slack, and with just life enough to

feel himself dying, he sits down upon his little attainments; thus

virtually throwing them away; content to lose heaven itself, if it is to


                                     CHAP. XII. 28.                                      149

 

be gained at such a cost. (Chap. xiii. 4; xxi. 25; xxvi.15.) What use

--professor! Is it to make an effort, if you do not seek the grace of

perseverance? No present blessing can be enjoyed without grasping

something beyond. (Philip. iii. 12-14.) Godliness without energy loses

its full reward. (2 John, 8.) The enfeebling influence of doubts and

ears often arises, not from a deep feeling of corruption, but from an

indolent habit, and a want of a realized conviction of the infinite stake

of the soul, calling for instant and persevering labour.

Real substance (Chap. viii. 21; xv. 6) is the reward of the diligent;

precious, as the fruit of his toll; and increasing by his unwearied

exercise. (Matt. xxv. 16, 28, 29.) Live then—Christian--more in thy

work--"spend and be spent" in it. Thy privileges will be enlarged.

Thy substance will be enriched. Thy God will be honoured. (John xv.

8. Philip. i. 11.) Thy crown will be secured. (2 Pet. i. 11.)

 

28. In the way of righteousness of life; and in the pathway hereof there

                                            is no death.

Righteousness is here crowned with "life and immortality."*  So

clearly did the wise man see beyond this dying world; and catch the

sun-beams of glory "brought to light by the Gospel!" (2 Tim. i. 10.)

The way of righteousness is the way of God's salvation (John, xiv. 6), in

which his children come to him; the way of his commandments, in

which they love to walk with him. (Isa. xxxv. 8.) In this way is

present life (Chap. viii. 35; x. 16), "a passage from death unto life"

eternal. (John, v. 24.) Enjoying the sense of God's love; confiding in

his unspeakable, satisfying friendship; consecrating ourselves in spiritual

devotedness to his service; anticipating the fulness of his eternal joy--

this is life indeed for eternity.  For where the life of grace is possessed,

"the life of glory is secured. It is "hid with Christ in God" (Col. iii. 3);

so that--"Because I live, ye shall live also." (John, xiv. 19.)

In this pathway, there is no death. (Ib. viii. 51; xi. 25.) The curse

of the first death hath passed away. (Rom. v. 21.) The power of  "the

second death cannot hurt." (Rev. ii. 11; xx. 6.) "The body is dead

because of sin." (Rom. viii. 10; v. 12.) Yet it "sleeps," rather than

dies, under the care of Jesus. (Acts, vii. 60. 1 Thess. iv. 14.) "Surely

the bitterness of death is passed." Now, "0 death! where is thy

sting?" (1 Cor. xv. 55.) Sheathed in the body of Jesus.

And is not this cheering privilege, this glorious hope, an infinite

recompense for all the crosses of the way? Contrast the was of

sin, full of death (Rom. viii. 6. Eph. ii. 1. 1 Tim. v. 6), ending in death

eternal. (Matt. vii. 13. Rom. vi. 21.) Then wonder at the multitudes

 

  * 'In the path (If righteousness is life; yea--the highway is immortality.'--MSS. Trans-

lation of Proverbs, by the late Dr. GOOD. See also Schultens.

  † ‘Those who seek after righteousness preserve, and increase in themselves the spiritual

life of God's grace, and the presence of his Spirit, and so attain to life everlasting,'--Diodati.


150         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

"loving death." (Chap. viii. 36.) Pity, pray for them, "pull them out

of the fire." (Jude, 23.) Adore the riches of that Sovereign grace, which

has brought you to righteousness, to life, to salvation.

 

                                     CHAPTER XIII.

 

1. A wise son heareth his father's instruction: but a scorner heareth not

                                           rebuke.

SUCH a wise son in filial reverence was Solomon himself. (Chap. iv. 3, 4.)

The connection however of instruction with rebuke mainly points us to

that instruction, which is obtained by discipline.*  Here then we turn

to our great Exemplar. Was not he a wise son, when his ears were

opened to his Father's discipline? (Isa. 1. 5.) How did he con-

descend to this painful school to "learn obedience!" (Heb. v. 8.)

How good is it in our daily practical walk to keep our eyes steadily

fixed on him, followihg him closely in this child-like habit!

            But the proud spirit does not easily bend. He has never heard his

father's instruction with deference. Soon therefore he takes "the scorner's

seat." (Ps. i. 1.) When rebuke becomes necessary, he hears it not (Chap.

xv. 12); turns from it to his own course at the extreme point from

wisdom (Chap. xii. 1; xv. 5), on the brink of ruin (Chap. xv. 10;

xxix. 1); carrying about him a fearful mark of reprobation! (1 Sam.

ii. 25.) Let me remember--If I am reluctant to hear the faithful

rebuke of men, I am prepared to resist the rebuke of God. And how

soon may this stubborn revolt bring his long-suffering to an end

(2 Chron. xxxvi. 16), and my soul to destruction! (Jer. v. 3. Zeph.

iii. 2.) 'From hardness of heart, and contempt of thy word and com-

mandment, Good Lord, deliver me.'

 

2. A man shall eat good by the fruit of his mouth: but the soul of the

                                 transgressors shall eat violence.

            The first clause has been lately before us. (Chap. xii. 14.) But let

it ever be fixed in our minds, that, if the Christian is walking with

God, his tongue will pour out godly communication. Whatever be

the effect on others, at least his own soul will be warmed, refreshed and

edified. He shall eat good by the fruit of his mouth. Never shall we

carry upon our lips that Beloved Name to our fellow-sinners in simpli-

city, but its "savour" to our own souls will be ''as ointment poured

forth." (Cant. i. 3.)  We shall feed ourselves in the Christian distribution

of the heavenly manna.

            The transgressor also eats the fruit of his mouth--yet not good.

 

   * Chap. xii. 1. Schultens.                                   Litany.


                                           CHAP. XIII. 3, 4.                                      151

 

His soul sets his tongue on a flame. He loves violence, and therefore

eats it to his own ruin. (Ps. lxiv. 8.) "Death as well as life are in the

power of the tongue." (Chap. xviii. 21.) Let us look, that it be under

the influence of Divine grace, restrained from evil, disciplined for

usefulness, the fruitful instrument of our own happiness.

 

3. He that keepeth his mouth keepeth his life: but he that openeth wide his

                                    lips shall have destruction.

            The last Proverb contrasted a fruitful and mischievous—this a

cautious and ungoverned—tongue. "Keep thine heart." (Chap. iv. 23.)

This guards the citadel. Keep thy mouth. This sets a watch at the

gates. If they be well guarded, the city is safe. Leave them unpro-

tected—Thus was Babylon taken. ‘He that looketh carefully to his

tongue takes a safe course for preserving his life, which is oft in danger

by much and wild talking.'*  Think before we speak; ponder our

words, their substance, manner, time, place, audience. The unruly

member needs a strong bridle, and a strong hand to hold it. (Jam.

iii. 2, 3.) Though it be necessary to open our lips; yet to open them,

wide; to let all come out; is a fearful hazard. (Chap. x. 14; xii. 13.)

For if "in the multitude of words there wanteth not sin" (Chap. x. 19),

this evil must bring us within the jaws of destruction.

            "Set a watch, 0 Lord, before my mouth; and keep the door of my

lips" (Ps. cxli. 3) —was the prayer of one, who knew the danger of an

ungoverned tongue, and the only way to tame it. Shall we not call in

God's help, in the recollection, how often has our unguarded tongue

"given place to the devil" (Eph. iv. 27), and "grieved the Holy Com-

forter?" (Ib. verse 30.) How much more matter do we make for

repentance by our speaking than by our silence! Let the practical

power of faith quicken watchfulness and prayer, self-abasement and

self-discipline, godly fear and energy of conflict. Two things are clear.

But for the blood of Christ, the mass of guilt from the sins of the tongue

would have condemned us for ever; and in proportion as the "little

member" is bridled, "the peace of God rules in the heart."

 

4. The soul of the sluggard desireth, and hath nothing: but the soul of the

                                     diligent shall be made fat.

            Another vivid contrast of the sluggard with the diligent! (Chap. x. 4;

xii. 24.) The sluggard desires the gain of diligence, without the dili-

gence that gains. He would be wise without study, and rich without

labour. His religion is of the same heartless character. He desires to

overcome his bad habits, to enjoy the happiness of God's people. So

 

      * Bishop Hall, Chap. xxi. 23. Ps. xxxiv. 12, 13.


152          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

far well. Desires are a part of religion. There can be no attainment

without them. Many have not even the desire. They ridicule it as

enthusiasm. Yet the sluggard hath nothing, because it is desire without

effort. ‘He ever desireth; but he taketh no pains to get any thing.'*

He would fain go to heaven, if a morning dream would carry him

there. And many a wish (alas!--of prayer he knows nothing) he sighs

for "the death of the righteous." (Num. xxiii. 10.) He would gladly

be a Christian, if it cost him no trouble. His duties are a force upon

him; and when they are over, he feels as if relieved from a heavy

weight. This is no rare case. Often do we hear the cry—and that

year after year—'I desire to be a child of God.' And yet the soul

continues at the same point; or rather settles down more resolutely in

a lifeless profession. 'Hell'—says an old writer--' s paved with such

desires.'

            Oh! be industrious—if anywhere—in religion. Eternity is at

stake. Hours, days are lost. Soon they come to years; and for want

of energy, all is lost. Heartless wishes will not give life. The halt-

ing step will not bring us to God. A few minutes' cold prayers

will not seize the prize. To expect the blessing without diligence is

delusion.

            Diligence brings its own reward in the world (Chap. xxii. 29);

nuch more in religion. It will not be content with desiring, without

the reality of possession. The "exercise of godliness" tends to health

and profit. (1 Tim. iv. 8.) Useful habits are formed; dormant energy

is excited. The conflict of faith, and the violence of prayer, ensure

success. (Matt. xi. 12.) God honours the trading of talents, where he

has the full revenue of his own gifts. (Ib. xxv. 14-29.) He gives,

not the wisdom only, but "the manifestation;" not for selfish indul-

gence, but "to profit withal." (1 Cor. xii. 7.) The "talent must not

be hid in a napkin" (Luke, xix. 20), or "the light under the bushel."

(Matt. v. 15.) False humility--a cover for indolence—must not

hinder the faithful discharge of our trust.

            Child of God! shake off the dust of sloth. Take care that the bed

of ease cloth not pall thine appetite, and hinder thee from seeking food

for thy soul; or from active exercise for God. Let thy graces be

vigorous and radiant. Let thy profession be always progressing,

deepening, expanding. If thou be in Christ, seek to be "rooted and

grounded in him." (Col. ii. 7.) Let there be "life more abundantly."

(John, x. 10.) "Be strong in the grace that is in Christ Jesus."

(2 Tim. ii. 1.) Let "the joy of the Lord be thy strength." (Neh. viii. 10.)

Then thy soul shall be made fat, healthful, vigorous in all fruit and

grace. (Ps. xcii. 12-14.)

 

      * Reformers' Notes.


                                       CHAP. XIII. 5, 6.                                    153

 

5. A righteous man hateth lying: but a wicked man is loathsome, and

                                            cometh to shame.

            Observe the accuracy of Scripture. It is not that a righteous man

never lies. David lied.l  Peter lied.2 Yet David could say—"I hate

and abhor lying."3 He prayed to have it " removed from him."4  He

would not suffer the " liar in his 'sight."5  Peter in the painful remem-

brance of his sin earnestly shewed the happiness of departure from it.6

The child of God, though always a sinner, maintains an holy antipathy

against sin —"What I hate, that do I."7

            Nor is it a proof of a righteous man that he avoids lying. Selfish

motives, regard for character, may dictate restraint, without any hatred

of the sin as sin. But true religion brings in the new taste, conformity

to the mind of God. Therefore, as "lying lips"—however common,

profitable, convenient, or pardonable, they may be counted—"are

abomination to the Lord," the righteous man hateth them. (Chap. xii. 22.

Rom. xii. 9.) He would rather suffer by truth,, than sin by lying.

(Dan. iii. 16-18.)

            And yet how often, even in the Church, is this feature of godliness

obscured! Is not strict truth often sacrificed to courtesy? Is not

lying sometimes acted, insinuated, or implied, where we should be

ashamed of plainly speaking it? Is not the simple truth often coloured

with exaggeration?  "Abstain from alp appearance of evil" (1 Thess.

v. 22)—is the rule for the man of God. Commit the tongue to the

only safe ordering, the restraint and guidance of the God of Truth.

(Ps. xix. 14; cx1i. 3.)

            A wicked man indeed takes pleasure in deceit. Scripture gives him

his right name. His base means often bring him to shame on this side

of the grave. (2 Kings, v. 27. Acts, xii. 21-23.) But however this be,

shame will be his "everlasting recompence." (Dan. xii. 2. Rev. xxi. 8.)

 

6. Righteousness keepeth him that is upright in the way: but wickedness

                                     overthroweth the sinner.

 

            Would that this repetition of the aphorism (Chap. xi. 3, 5, 6) might

deepen its impression! It is indeed a straight way to heaven. "Lead

me in it, 0 my God " (Ps. v. 8), and keep me there. The many devia-

tions even of the children of God prove our need of Divine keeping.

The fear of man,8 the flinching of the flesh from positive duty;9 the

grasp of some desired object;10 the subtle allurements of sin11 — all

these have turned him out of the path; embracing his Father's will in

 

1 1 Sam. xxi. 2; xxvii. 9, 10.        2 Matt. xxvi. 70-74.                    3 Ps. cxix. 163.

4 Ib. verse 29.                           5 Ps. ci. 7; xxvi. 4.                     6 1 Pet. iii. 10; ii. 1.

7 Rom. vii. 15, 19.                      8 Gen. xii. 11-13; xx. 2.              9 Jonah, i. 1-3.

10 Gen. xxvii. 19-24.                   11 2 Sam. xi. 2. 1 Kings, xi. 1-4.


154         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

many things; in others preferring his own. Righteousness—steady

conformity to the mind of God--keeps the soul upright, and so keeps it

in the way. (Ps. xxv. 21.) Not that we exalt it to any meritorious

efficacy, or put it in the place of simply "looking unto Jesus" (Heb.

xii. 2) for life and salvation. The Christian, while "walking in his

integrity " (Ps. xxvi. 11), never loses his sense of sin, or forgets his need

of mercy. Yet his "righteousness is a breastplate" (Eph. vi. 14) keep-

ing him from many assaults of sin (Gen. xxxix. 9), and covering him

from threatening wrath. (Gen. vii. 1. 2 Pet. ii. 7-9.) But this is

righteousness, not perfection, mixed with much cleaving infirmity. Yet

—blessed be God—the uprightness is accepted, and the fault is

covered. (2 Chron. xv. 17.)

            But while ‘saints are secured from ruin, sinners are secured for

ruin.'*  The sinner's own wickedness overthroweth him. (2 Chron. xxviii.

23.) He is bent upon his own way, the sure road to destruction. 'Let

him not blame the Lord, or any mortal man beside himself, inasmuch

as he is the author of ruin to himself.'

 

7. There is that maketh himself rich, yet hath nothing; there is that

                   maketh himself poor, yet hath great riches.

            What a bubble are the world's riches! Yet some will affect their

shew, in order to gain the respect usually connected with them (Chap.

xii. 9); making themselves rich, yet having nothing. Others make them-

selves poor,  ‘and live as if they were so,'‡ having great riches. In all

cases riches are more justly estimated by their use than by their pos-

session. But both persons here practise a deceit upon God; the one

by pretending to have received, the other by virtually denying, his

gracious gifts. Both dishonour his wisdom and goodness; the one by

discontent with his dispensations; the other by neglecting the com-

munication of his blessings. (1 Tim. vi. 18.)

            The Church presents the counterpart of both these classes. The

boasting Pharisee,l the gifted Corinthian;2 the proud beggarly

Laodicean3--all admire their nothing, as if it were great riches.

Others again make themselves poor in "voluntary humility." Describ-

ing their whole course as unmingled sin, they deny the Almighty work

of grace. They give excuse for lying under the power of their corrup-

tions; instead of quickening the energy of a successful conflict. Thus

they promote the very evil which they deprecate, and sink the soul

into a hopeless despondency, alike prejudicial to their happiness and

usefulness. Sometimes, indeed, the Christian, from the deep sense of

remaining corruption, may be blind to what is evident to every one

else, and known to his God. (Rev. ii. 9.) But if it is the ruin of the

 

1 Luke, xviii. 11, 12.       2 1 Cor. iv. 8, 10.           3 Rev. iii. 17, 18.

* Henry in loco.     MUFFET's (Peter) Commentary on Proverbs, 12mo. 1596.  ‡ Scott.


                                    CHAP. XIII. 8.                                          155

 

self-deceiver to think himself better, it is at least the hindrance of the

upright to think himself worse, than he is.

            The true path of simplicity is to renounce all dependence on the

flesh, and gladly to welcome the gospel of grace. (Philip. iii. 3-9.)

Such disciples, rich in their holy poverty, are honoured of the Lord.

(Isa. lxvi. 2. Luke, xviii. 13.) ‘0 blessed Lord, who resistest the

proud, and givest grace to the humble, give me more humility, that I

may receive more grace from thee. And thou, whose gracious rain

shelves down from the steep mountains, and sweetly drenches the

humble valleys, depress thou my heart more and more with true lowli-

ness of spirit; that the showers of thy heavenly grace may sink

into it, and make it more fruitful in all good affection and all holy

obedience.'*

 

8. The ransom of a man's life are his riches: but the poor heareth not

                                                rebuke.

            The last Proverb rebuketh discontent with our lot, whether of riches

or poverty. The wise man here strikes the balance between these two

conditions. A man's riches may be the ransom of his life. Extortion of

money may prompt false accusation, and riches may be a ransom cheer-

fully paid. Or they may be the price of deliverance from his enemies.

They may save him from the punishment of the law (Exod. xxi. 29, 30.)

or from imminent danger of his life. (Jer. xli. 8.)  Yet if "money is

a defence" (Eccles. vii. 12), so also is often want of money. If "the

rich man's wealth is a strong city" (Chap. x. 15), the poor man's poverty

is often his safeguard. He is beneath notice. He hears not many a

rebuke; he escapes many a danger, which is destruction to his richer

neighbour. (2 Kings, xxiv. 14; xxv. 12.)  Had Isaac's flocks been

less numerous (Gen. xxvi. 13, 14), or Jacob less prosperous (Ib. xxxi. 1),

they would not have heard so much rebuke from their selfish enemies.

The poor with his empty pocket travels with security. His cottage

offers little temptation to the nightly robber.  "A man's life" therefore

—his true happiness—"consisteth not in the abundance of things

which he possesseth." (Luke, xii. 15.)

            His riches may be the ransom of his life. But "what shall he give

in exchange for his soul?" (Matt. xvi. 26.) Too "precious" is it to be

"redeemed with corruptible silver and gold." (1 Pet. f. 18.) So far as

he is concerned, "it ceaseth for ever." (Ps. xlix. 8.) Praised be the

Lord! when all the treasures of earth would have been beggared in

the ransom, the riches of heaven were freely poured out. (1 Pet. i. 19.

 

   * Bishop HALL's Devotional Works, vol. viii. 276.

   See Job, ii. 4. The Apostle refused to avail himself of this ransom. Acts, xxiv. 26.

‘The primitive Christians quoted this proverb in defence of their occasional habit of giving

money to restrain the fury of their persecutors.'— Geier in loco.


156         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Heb. x. 5-8.) The blood of the Son of God was the acceptable price.

The voice was heard from heaven—"Deliver him from going down to

the pit, I have found a ransom." (Job, xxxiii. 24.)

 

9. The light of the righteous rejoiceth: but the lamp of the wicked shall

                                             be put out.

            Who can estimate the worth of a Christian's bright shining light?

(Matt. v. 14-16. Philip. ii. 15. Chap. iv. 18.) Happy in his own soul,

like his counterpart in the heavens, he sheds a joyous light around him.

But how glowing, then, is the light of the Church in the combined

shining of all her members! Many of them have no remarkable

individual splendour; yet, like the lesser stars forming the milky way,

they present a bright path of holiness in the spiritual firmament. This

happy heavenly light "shineth into perfect day," and that day will

never set. (Isa. lx. 19, 20.) Sometimes it may be obscured, but only

that it may break out more gloriously. (Mica vii. 8); and soon will it be

a day without a cloud. (Rev. xxi. 23, 24.)

            But it is the light of the righteous that rejoiceth. Sin therefore will

bring the cloud. Do we hope to shine in the heavenly firmament?

Then must we shine with present glory in the firmament of the Church.

So delicate is the Divine principle, that every breath of this world dims

its lustre.

            The wicked have their lamp, a cold profession of the name of

religion. But being without oil, it will soon be put out (Job, xviii.

5, 6, Matt. xxv. 8.) Even while it lasts, it rejoiceth not. It sheds no

light upon the soul. It guides no fellow-pilgrim with its light. Fear-

ful will be the end. He takes his leave of the light of this world, only

to enter into eternal darkness, without even a flickering ray to cheer

"the blackness of darkness for ever." (Ps. xlix. 19. Matt. xxii. 13.)

 

10. Only by pride cometh contention: but with the well advised is wisdom.

 

            Most accurately is contention here traced to its proper source.

(Chap. xxviii. 25.) All the crudities of the day, all the novelties of

doctrine producing contention (1 Tim. i. 4. 2 Tim. ii. 23), originate in

the proud swelling of "the fleshly mind." (Col. ii. 18. 1 Tim. vi. 3, 4.)

Men scorn the beaten track. They must strike out a new path. Sin-

gularity and extravagance are primary charms. They are ready to

quarrel with every one, who does not value their notions as highly as

they do. The desire of pre-eminence (Matt. xx. 21. 3 John, 9); revolt

from authority (Num. xii. 2) or sound doctrine (2 Tim. iv. 3, 4); party

spirit, with the pride of knowledge and gifts (1 Cor. iii. 3, 4, with iv. 8)

--all produce the same results. Is it too much to say, that vain-glory

hath lighted up all the sinful contentions, that have ever kindled in the

Church?  We must indeed "contend for the faith" (Gal. ii. 5. 1 Thess.


                                      CHAP. XIII. 11.                                    157

 

ii. 2. Jude, 3), though it be with our own compromising brethren.

(Gal. ii. 11.) But even here how yet imperceptibly may pride insinuate

itself under the cover of glorifying God! Truly ' is it the inmost coat,

which we put on first, and put off last.'*

            This mischievous principle spreads in families, or among friends.

‘Some point of honour must be maintained; some affront must be

resented; some rival must be crushed or eclipsed; some renowned

character emulated; or some superior equalled and surpassed.'  Even

in trifling disputes between relatives or neighbours—perhaps between

Christians— each party contends vehemently for his rights, instead of

satisfying himself with the testimony of his conscience, and submitting

rather to be misunderstood and misjudged, than to break the bond of

the Divine brotherhood. (1 Cor. vi. 7.) In the wide field of the world

we may well ask—"From whence come wars and fightings among

you? Come they not from this lust?" (Jam. iv. 1.) Often has wounded

pride (Judg. xii. 1), even without any proved injury (2 Kings, xiv. 10),

brought destructive contention upon a land.

            The proud man conceives himself wise enough. He asks no

counsel, and thus proves his want of wisdom. But with the modest,

well-advised, there is the wisdom that is from above, "which is first

pure, then peaceable." (Jam. iii. 17, with 14-16.) Many a rising con-

tention has it quelled, (Gen. xiii. 8. Judg. viii. 1-3. Acts, vi. 1-6.)  "Let

nothing be done through strife or vain-glory; but in lowliness of mind

let each esteem other better than themselves." (Philip. ii. 3.) Christian

wisdom will keep us within our own line; knowing our own measure

and bounds (2 Cor. x. 13-16); and—whatever be our place, parts,

or gifts—humble, active, loving, constant, thankful, in the improvement

of them.

 

11. Wealth gotten by vanity shall be diminished: but he that gathereth

                                         by labour shall increase.

            This Proverb does not imply the means, by which wealth has been

gotten;‡ but the impoverishing use, to which it is applied. However

large, by vanity it will soon be diminished. Frivolous and expensive

pursuits, empty amusements, and the vain pomp and shew of dress, will

soon prove, that "riches certainly make themselves wings" (Chap.

xxiii. 5); that the treasure is "put into a bag with holes" (Hag. i. 6);

and that nothing remains but the awful account of unfaithfulness to a

solemn trust.

            On the other hand—God's blessing is upon Christian industry;

and, so far as is good, he that gathereth with his labour shall increase.

 

    * Bishop Hall.                       Scott in loco.

   ‡ The interpolation of our translators is uncalled for, and misleads the reader. The

word ‘vain' is of very frequent occurrence, and always implies, not what is sinful, but

what is empty and unsubstantial.— See Parkhurst.


158         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Only let him remember, that the security for his increasing wealth is the

dedication of himself and his substance to the Lord; the ready acknow-

ledgment, that he "is not his own," but God's property for God's glory.

(1 Cor. vi. 19, 20.)  'All that man can have, we have it on this con-

dition; to use it, to have it, to lay it out, to lay it down unto the

honour of our Master, from whose bounty we received it.'* The Lord

deliver us from the guilt of wasting on vanity what is due to Himself!

 

12. Hope deferred maketh the heart sick: but when the desire cometh, it

                                               is a tree of life.

            The first springing of hope is a pleasurable sensation, yet not unmixed

with pain. It is the hunger, that makes our food acceptable. But

hope deferred, like hunger prolonged, brings a kind of torture. It

maketh the heart sick. (Ps. cxix. 82, 123 ; cxliii. 7.) Yet when the desire

—the fulfilment of the hope--cometh, what a tree of life it is—so

invigorating! (Verse 19.)

            We must however limit this application to the spiritual world.

Elsewhere the fulfilment of the desire, instead of a tree of life, is vanity.

(Eccles. ii. 11.) Here however the child of (trod is often tried in his

faith, but never disappointed of his hope. Long we may have to wait.

But never let us despair. "The patience of hope" issues in "the full

assurance of hope." What was it to Abraham, when, after long deferred

hope, the desire came, and he called the child of promise--Laughter!

(Gen. xv. 3; xxi. 3-6.) What was it "when the Lord turned again

the captivity of Zion, and they were like unto them that dream!"

(Ps. cxxxvii. with cxxvi.) What was it to old Simeon and the waiting

remnant, when "the desire of all nations" came! (Luke, ii. 25-30, with

Hag. ii. 7. Comp. Matt. xiii. 16, 17.) What to the disciples, when at

the manifestation of their risen Lord, their sickening hearts "believed

not for joy, and wondered!" (Luke, xxiv. 41.) What to the little flock

met together in the faintness of deferred hope to plead for Peter's

deliverance, When the desire came—the answer to prayer, so marvel-

lously vouchsafed! (Acts, xii. 12-16.)

            To come to more personal experience. Such was the trial of faith

appointed for our Beloved Lord. Such was the joyful issue. (Ps. xxii.

1-3, with 22-25; lxix. 1-3, with 30-35.) Many a waiting, sickening

heart has been thus refreshed from a tree of life. But what will be the

joy of the grand consummation of hope! (Rom. viii. 23-25. 2 Cor. v.

1-4.) "The earnest expectation of the creation waiteth for the mani-

festation of the sons of God." (Rom. viii. 19.) Time seems long, trials

heavy, hearts failing. But "yet a little while, and he that shall come,

will come, and will not tarry." (Heb. x. 37, 38. Hab. ii. 3. Rev. xxii.

7, 12, 20.) The first moment of'the glorious manifestation will blot

 

               * SWINNOCK's True Christian, 4to. 1663, p. 169.


                                   CHAP. XIII. 13, 14.                                    159

 

out the remembrance of all toils, weariness, and trial. Yes—the desire

cometh--come it will in God's best time--"quickly." One moment

sick; the next—"the inhabitant of that land," where sickness is no

more. (Isa. xxxiii, 24. Rev. xxi. 4.) One moment clad in the rags of

the flesh; "in the twinkling of an eye" arrayed in the glory of the

Saviour's image. (1 Cor. xv. 51-54.)  "Come, Lord Jesus! Come

quickly." (Rev. xxii. 20.)

 

13. Whoso despiseth the word shall be destroyed: but he that feareth the

                              commandment shall be rewarded.

            God as a God of holiness will not be trifled with. As a God of

grace, none "serve him for nought." The presumptuous despiser of his

word cannot escape. The world before the flood was the object of his

long-suffering. "A preacher of righteousness" warned them of their

danger. But the despisers provoked their own ruin. (1 Pet. iii. 20.

2 Pet. ii. 5.) Pharaoh, often reproved, sometimes half-resolved, yet at

length despising the word, was destroyed. (Exod. v. 2; x. 16,17; xiv. 28.)

Jehoiakim's daring rebellion met with its righteous recompense Jer.

xxxvi. 23-32.) The warnings of Sinai are as a voice of thunder--

"If every transgression of the word spoken by angels received its just

recompence of reward; how shall we escape, if we neglect so great

salvation, spoken by the Lord? If they escaped not, that refused him

that spake on earth; much more shall not we escape, if we turn away

from him that speaketh from heaven. See that ye refuse not him that

speaketh." (Heb. xii. 25.)

            Let God and his word be our fear, not our terror. Faith is the

principle of fear, of reverential child-like obedience. (Ib. xi. 7.) Indeed

the heart can never be right, till it fears the commandment above every

earthly consideration. The slave fears the penalty; the child the com-

mandment. And this he fears more, than if an angel from heaven were

standing in his way with a flaming sword. He fears the father, not

the Judge. Here is no bondage, no legality. It brings its own reward.

The "heart that stands in awe of God's word," rejoices in it, "and is

largely enriched with its spoil." (Ps. cxix. 161, 162.) Here too is sun-

shine in the special favour of God--"To this man will I look, even to

him that is poor, and of a contrite heart, and that trembleth at my word."

(Isa. lxvi. 2. Comp. Ezra, x. 3.)

 

14. The law of the wise is a fountain of life, to depart from the snares of

                                                       death.

            Reverence to God's commandment has just been enforced. The bless-

ing of the law or instruction (Chap. iii. 1; iv. 2) of the wise is here

shown. It is a fountain of life (Chap. x. 11) to a teachable and thirst-

ing heart. It is a grand conservative principle in a world full of


160         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

snares, not of danger only, but of death. There is no safe treading, but

in the ways of God. The word of God gives the necessary warning.

(Ps. xvii. 4; cxix. 9, 11.)  The law of the wise--his instruction with

all the authority of a law—applies it. This was David's season-

able instruction to Solomon (Chap. iv. 4); Solomon's to us. (Chap. v.

1-13; vii. 24-27.) Hear this warning law of the wise from an Apostle's

mouth. The love of money was fearfully destroying souls.--"Thou,

0 man of God, flee these things." (1 Tim. vi. 9-11.) This is the grand

end of the Ministry of the Gospel; to "deliver them from the snares

of the devil, who taketh men captive at his will." (2 Tim. ii. 24-26.)

Let the young take heed to their feet, where every step is a snare of

death. Let the instruction of thy God and his Ministers be the law of

the wise to keep thy path in safety. Even in defect of literal prescript,

the spirit of the law will supply practical rules for keeping the heart

and life — e.g. to do nothing, of which the lawfulness is questionable--

to consider everything as unlawful, which indisposes for prayer, and

interrupts communion with God—never to go into any company,

business, or situation, in which the presence and blessing of God cannot

be conscientiously asked and expected.*  Such rules are in the spirit

of the law, and well worthy of adoption.  "Ponder the path of thy feet,

and let all thy ways be established." (Chap. iv. 26.)

 

15. Good understanding giveth favour; but the way of transgressors is

                                                    hard.

            Hence the value of that "good thing, bearing the yoke in the

youth." (Lam. iii. 27.) The exercise in this yoke, under Divine grace,

hardens the character to all manly virtues and practical godliness.

This is a good understanding (Ps. cxi. 10) — not a cold and dry appre-

hension, but the glow of heavenly light and love in all the discipline of

Christian habits. Natural conviction is often constrained to do homage

to it, as the image of God stamped upon his servants. Joseph in this

exercise acquired many of those valuable rules, which gave him favour,

and were of essential service to him in his various and important

responsibilities. (Gen xxxix.—xli.) And well was it for himself, for his

people, and for the whole Church of God, that he had been trained in

this school of understanding. The histories of Samuel (1 Sam ii. 6),

David (Ib., xviii. 14—16), attest the same point.  Good understanding

the effect of early discipline gave Daniel favour, even when past his

ninetieth year, the premier of the largest empire of the world.Our

blessed Lord, as "he increased in wisdom, increased also in favour

 

* ‘By the help of these three rules, I soon settle all my doubts, and find that many

things I have hitherto indulged in, are, if not utterly unlawful, at least inexpedient, and I

can renounce them without many sighs.'—Life of Rev. Dr. PAYSON, chap. iii.

   Dan. i. 9, 19, 20; vi. 1-3, 28. See also Abraham, Gen. xxiii. 10, 11. Paul, Acts,

xxvii. 43; xxviii. 2. Comp. Rom. xiv. 18.

 

                                       CHAP. XIII. 15.                                    161

 

both with God and man." (Luke, ii. 52.) Thus the way of wisdom,

with all its crosses, is cheered with sunshine. 'Wisdom exalteth her

children.' (Ecclus. iv. 11.)

            Can we say this of the way of transgressors? They dream of a

flowery path; but they make to themselves a hard way; perhaps

pleasing at first, as the spell to fasten them to the end. 'Wicked men

live under a hard task-master.'*  'I was held before conversion'--

said Augustine—‘not with an iron chain, but with the obstinacy of

my own will.' The philosophical infidel bears the same testimony

I begin to fancy myself in a most deplorable condition, environed with

the deepest darkness on every side.' (Essays, i. 458.) Voltaire, judging

of course from his own heart, pronounces—‘In man is more wretched-

ness than in all other animals put together. Man loves life, yet knows

he must die.'  'I wish'—concludes this wretched witness for his

Master—'I had never been born.' The worldly infidel adds his seal to

the record. Col. Gardiner declared, that in his course of wickedness,

he had often envied the existence of a dog. Wretch indeed must he

be, who cannot endure to commune with himself, and to hose peace

it is necessary that he should rid himself of every thought of God and

his soul!

            In every shape and form, the service of this merciless tyrant is a

hard way.Men fight their way to hell, as they do to heaven (Acts,

xiv. 22)—"through much tribulation." The native perverseness of

the will (Num. xxii. 32); the continual warfare with conscience;‡  the

absence of peace (Isa. lvii. 20, 21; lix. 8); the sting of sin (Chap. xxiii.

29-32. Jer. ii. 17-19); the certainty of destruction (Isa. lix. 7) —all

prove a way of thorns.§

            Which then is the way of my choice? Lord, do thou choose for

me. Help me under thy guidance, to choose the safe and pleasant path

of wisdom (Chap. iii. 7), the rich portion of godliness for both worlds.

(1 Tim. iv. 8.) The way of transgressors is hard. The end of that way

is death. (Rom. vi. 21.) The task-master will have his full "tale" of

work. The paymaster will pay down his well-earned wages to the

utmost farthing—Death eternal. (Rom. vi. 23.)

 

    * CARYL on Job, xv. 20.      Isa. v. 18; xlvii. 13; lvii. 10. Jer. ix. 5.

    ‡ Acts, ix. 5. See a fine passage in ARISTOTLE'S Ethics, B. ix. c. iii.; also

SHAKESPEARE'S King John:

            'Hostility and civil discord reign

             Betwixt my conscience,' &c.

   § ‘The pain of wickedness is grievous, and, apart from all other consequences, the most

painful.'—CICER. De Leg. ii. § 17. 'Nothing makes a man so wretched as impiety and crime.'

—Ib. De Finib. lib. iv. § 24. `His own iniquity and inward dread, remorse, and agitation

of conscience-these are the untiring and domestic furies of the guilty mind.'—Ib. Pro.

Rom. Amer. The philosopher, utterly ignorant of the spiritual character of sin, probably

only intended an application to heinous crimes. But the admission of the principle is

important, that the path of sin is present misery.


162          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

16. Every prudent man dealeth with knowledge: but a fool layeth open

                                 (spreadeth, marg.) his folly.

            How often is even valuable knowledge frittered away from the want

of prudent application! We must ponder the time, measure, helps, and

means of dealing with it, so as to put it out to its full advantage. (Chap.

xv. 2.) And how wide is the sphere for trading with this responsible

talent! In daily life it provides against foreseen dangers (Chap. xxii.

3), and makes a way to escape in trying difficulties).1  Not less useful

is it in the family economy; in the training of children (Judg. xiii. 8-1:2);

in the "guidance of affairs" (Chap. xiv. 1); in looking well to house-

hold occupations. (Chap. xxxi. 27.)  Must we not also deal with it in

the Church; in a wise accommodation to circumstances (Gal. ii. 2);

in the conviction of gainsayers (Tit. i. 9); in forbearing with the

prejudices of the weak (Acts, xv. 22-29); in the exercise of Christian

admonition? (Rom. xv. 14.) The want of it is the source of an unstable

profession. In understanding we are children, not men. (1 Cor. xiv. 20.)

Most precious therefore is "the word of knowledge," as "the manifesta-

tion of the Spirit given to us to profit withal." (1 Cor. xii. 7.) Greatly

also do we need this gift in our intercourse with the world; to avoid

occasions of stumbling;2 to mark seasonable times of reproof;3 to

refrain from needless offence.*  Nay—even in the political world what

need have we of " understanding of the tithes, to know what Israel

ought to do!" (1 Chron. xii. 32.) Thus to deal with knowledge in this

diversified application, is the responsibility of a prudent man of God.

(Chap. xiv. 8, 15.)

            From the want of this prudence, the fool layeth open his folly, he pours

out his wrath. (Chap. xii. 16. Num. xxii. 29, 30.) He vaunts out his

vanity. (1 Sam. xvii. 44.) He exposes his thoughtlessness. (Matt. xiv.

7.) He exercises no judgment (Chap. xviii. 13), and fills his sphere of

influence with mischief.

            Let us study the minute details of our Master's well-filled life. He

shall deal prudently. (Isa. lii. 13.)  This was his distinctive character.

The Spirit of prudence was the furniture for his work. (Ib. xi. 2, 3.)

How gloridusly did it shine forth in the confounding of his enemies

(Matt. xxi. 24; xxii. 42-46), and in tender sympathy with his afflicted

people! (Isa. 1. 4.) How good is it to have our knowledge disciplined

by his teaching, and consecrated to his service!

 

17. A wicked messenger falleth into mischief: but a faithful ambassador

                                                 is health.

            A messenger proves his character by his neglect or discharge of his

 

1  Acts, xvi. 37, 38; xxii. 25; xxiii. 7.        2 Ezra, viii. 22. Neh. vi. 11.

3 Chap. ix. 7, 8; xv. 23. 1 Sam. xxv. 86. Amos, v. 13. Matt. vii. 6.

* Neh. ii. 5. Speaking of his land before a heathen King, in reference not to the God of

Israel, but to the sepulchres of his fathers.


                                                CHAP. XIII. 18.                                      163

 

trust. A wicked messenger betrays his trust (Luke, xvi. 1), damages his

master (Chap. x. 26. Matt. xxv. 26), and, as a just recompense, falls into

mischief Faithfulness is the servant's glory, and his master's gain. He

brings and receives a blessing. Gehazi's unfaithfulness brought him

into mischief. (2 Kings, v. 26–27.) Eliezer, "spewing all good fidelity,"

was blessed himself, and health to his master. (Gen. xxiv. 33–56.)

            But to speak of the messenger and ambassador of the Lord. (Mal. ii.

7. 2 Cor. v. 20.) What words can tell the awful mischief of the wicked

messenger, ignorant of the worth of his commission, and utterly careless

in the discharge of it! Yet the mischief returns upon his own head;

laden as he is with the guilt of the blood of souls; himself overwhelmed

in the eternal damnation of those, who have perished through his

neglect. (Ezek. iii. 17, 18. 1 Cor. ix. 16.)

            Faithfulness marks the true ambassador. (1 Cor. iv. 1, 2. 1 Thess. ii.

3–6.) He "shuns not to declare the whole counsel of God" (Acts, xx.

27); not obtruding offensive truths in unnatural prominence; but not

withholding them in their just scriptural proportion. He condescends

to the capacities of his people: but he will not humour their prejudices

or antipathies. He "handles not the word of God deceitfully; but by

manifestation of the truth he commends himself to every man's con-

science in the sight of God," (2 Cor, iv. 2; ii. 17.)  "The tongue of

such an ambassador" is health (Chap. xii. 18), both to himself and to

his people. (Job, xxxiii. 23–26.)  "The wilderness rejoices" under his

fertilizing blessing (Isa. xxxv. 1); and the burst of joy and peace is

heard on every side—"How beautiful upon the mountains are the feet

of him, that bringeth good tidings, that publisheth peace!"

 

18. Poverty and shame shall be to him that refuseth instruction: but

                   he that regardeth reproof shall be honoured.

            The instruction of discipline is God's ordinance. Little do those who

refuse it know, what a blessing they cast away! (Heb. xii. 10, 11.)

Poverty and shame are often the Lord's rod for his wayward children

(Luke, xv. 12–16); two dreaded evils—the one bringing them to

want; the other hiding their heads; both disappointing "the lust of

the flesh, the lust of the eye, and the pride of life." (1 John, ii. 16.)

Young persons! learn to dread the liberty of being left to your own

choice. Dread the first step in the downward course, refusing instruction

—Remember your birth, "as the wild ass's colt." (Job, xi. 12.) Know

your besetting temptation, "as the horse and the mule" (Ps. xxxii. 9),

impatient of restraint. If godly remonstrance be slighted, all may end

in poverty and shame, embittered with the poignant sting of death-bed

remorse. (Chap. v. 11.)

            But here is honour contrasted with shame. For reverently to regard

reproof will ensure honour from man. (Chap. xxv. 12.) Honour from


164        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

God will be abundant. "If ye endure chastening, God dealeth with

you as with sons." (Heb. xii. 7.) If we be humbled under his reproof,

we shall be raised to his throne. (1 Pet. v. 6.) Pleasant indeed are his

words to his well-disciplined child. To have our ears open to receive

discipline, is to walk in the path of life and happiness (Chap. vi. 23.

Job, xxxvi. 10-12); the honour of conformity to our Divine Saviour.

(Heb. v. 8.) Man's pride deems it a degradation to receive reproof.

God counts it "brutish to hate it." (Chap. xii. 1.) Which judgment is

according to truth and right?

 

19. The desire accomplished is sweet to the soul: but it is abomination

                                   to fools to depart from evil.

            This must be limited to "the desire of the righteous."*  As that is

"only good," it "will be granted" (Chap. xi. 23; x. 24); and the

accomplishment is sweet to the soul. Infinitely sweeter will be the full,

the eternal, accomplishment--"I shall be satisfied, when I awake, with

thy likeness." (Ps. xvii. 15.)

            May not all enjoy this sweetness? All might, but all will not, be

happy. The object is so revolting to the "enmity of the carnal mind."

Perhaps those, who have been early trained in the ways of God, cannot

experimentally estimate the bitterness of this enmity. But what can

give a more awful view of this principle than the truth, that what is

abomination to God to see, is abomination to the fool to depart from!

(Chap. xv. 21.) A striking figure of heaven and hell, in full contrast;

with the great gulf that is fixed between them! Holiness makes

heaven ; sin makes hell. See then for which place the ungodly are.

fitting. Hatred of holiness is meetness for hell. Oh! what a mighty

change must that be, that can slay the enmity, and make it to the soul

an abomination to commit evil, as it now is to depart from it!

 

20. He that walketh with wise men shall be wise: but a companion of

                                         fools shall be destroyed.

            Every one desires to engrave his own image upon his companions.

We naturally therefore take our mould from their society. It is not

left to us to determine, whether there shall be any influence; only,

what that influence shall be. Walking with the wise—under their

instruction, encouragement and example—we shall be wise. Our prin-

ciples and habits will be fixed, our interest excited, and the resolution

formed—"We will go with you, for we have heard that God is with you."

(Zech. viii. 23.) See here the blessing of living in a godly family,

hearkening daily to "the wise man's learning" (Chap. xvi. 23. 1 Kings,

x. 8), or in membership with a Church, where each imparts from his

store for the increase and edifying of the body. (Eph. iv. 15, 16.) Mark

 

                                * See on verse 12.


                                          CHAP. XIII. 21.                                    165

 

—young people—the responsibility of the choice of friends. How

much hangs upon the determination to be "a companion of all them

that fear God, and keep his precepts?" (Ps. cxix. 63.) The world may

allure, the ungodly may mock, the evil heart may consent to their voice.

But seek you strength from God, and resolve to walk with the wise--

as the Lord liveth, and as my soul liveth, I will not leave thee."

(2 Kings, ii. 4.) Walk with those, whose acquaintance (as Bp. Burnet

testified of his intercourse with Abp. Leighton), will be a special talent,

to give account of to God.

            Joash, while he walked with his wise guardian, was wise. But when,

after his guardian's death, he became a companion of fools, he was

destroyed. (2 Chron. xxiv.) And how often does the scaffold warn us

of the "corruption from evil communications!" (1 Cor. xv. 33. Ps. i.

18-21; cvi, 28, 35.) Many a promising professor has been brought

step by step to destruction. The horror of sin, the instinctive recoil

from it, gradually abates. The fear of God—that cover from sin (Gen.

xxiix. 9. Neh. v. 15)—is weakened. The hold on the great hopes of

the gospel is relaxed. Other objects gain the ascendancy from this

disastrous commerce, and the ruin is complete. And when—we might

ask—have the godly companied with fools, without injury to their pro-

fession, and hazard to their souls? (2 Chron. xviii. 3; xix. 2.) If we

can live in a worldly element, without feeling out of ourrpwn element;

if we can breathe a tainted atmosphere, without sensibility of infection;

if we can familiarize ourselves with the absence of religion in the

ordinary intercourse of life, is there no ground of alarm, lest unsubdued

worldliness should be regaining dominion?

            The first warning to sinners just plucked out of the fire, was---

"Save yourselves from this untoward generation." (Acts, ii. 40.) And

the rule will be to the end—"Have no fellowship with the unfruitful

works of darkness, but rather reprove them." (Eph. v. 11. 2 Cor. vi.

14-16.) Connection we must often have with them. (1 Cor. v. 10.)

But let our delight be with the saints of God. (Ps. xvi. 3.) God may

soon decide for an halting professor. His patience may be exhausted.

His justice may take its course; and those, who are now his companions

in folly, will be his tormentors in hopeless misery.

 

21. Evil pursueth sinners; but to the righteous good shall be repaid.

            ‘Sinners are sure to find evil at last; the righteous, good:'*  The

histories of sin from the beginning--Cain,l Achan,2 Abimelech,3 Ahab,4

and his wicked wife,5 with many others—are solemn demonstrations,

that evil pursueth sinners, even when they seem to have found a refuge.

 

1 Gen. iv. 10-13.            2 Josh. vii. 20-26.           3 Judg. ix. 24, 56, 57.

4 1 Kings, xxi. 19; xxii. 38. 2 Kings, ix. 26.           5 1 Kings, xxi. 23. 2 Kings, ix. 30-36.

                                                    * Jermin in loco.


166         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

(1 Kings, ii. 28-31.) The delay even of centuries does not weaken the

certainty. (Exod. xvii. 14. 1 Sam. xv. 3-7.) As sure as the shadow

follows the substance, as the avenger of blood pursued "the manslayer"

(Num. xxxv. 19), "evil shall hunt the violent man to overthrow him."

(Ps. cxl. 11.) Yet often the sinner goes on in his blinded infatuation.

'No one has been witness to his sin. Or no one will make account of

it. Or his accusers, being as guilty as himself, will hold their peace;

or, should he be discovered, prudence or pleading will secure him from

punishment.'* And then, though a the iniquity of his heels com-

passeth him about" (Ps. xlii. 5), he thinks only of present gratification,

never looks back, and therefore sees not the evil pursuing him. His

blindness thus makes his ruin more certain. (Dent. xxix. 19, 20. Job,

xi. 20. 1 Thess. v. 3.) And how clearly are his momentary pleasures

purchased at the cost of eternity! (Eccles. xi. 9.)

            Not less sure is the good, which shall he repaid to the righteous. (Isa.

10, 11. Rom. ii. 6-10.) The evil follows in just retribution. The

other is the reward of grace. Not the smallest good—even "a cup of

cold water to a disciple" (Matt. x. 42), or honour shewn to his servants.

(Ib. verse 41. 1 Kings, xvii. 16-23)--shall "lose its reward." (Heb. vi.

10.) And if a single act is thus remembered, much more "a course, a

fight," held out to the end. (2 Tim. iv. 7, 8.) How manifestly is this the

constitution of grace; that when perfect obedience can claim no recom-

pence (Luke, xvii. 10), such unworthy, such defiled, work should be so

honoured with an infinite, overwhelming acceptance!

 

22. A good man leaveth an inheritance to his children's children: and the

                            wealth of the sinner is laid, up for the just.

            Here we have particular instance of the good to be repaid to the

righteous. It cannot however be meant as an universal statement.

Many good men have no inheritance to leave; or they have no children;

or none that survive them; or no children's children; or this generation

may be in poverty. The wealth of the sinner also, instead of being laid

up for the just, descends to his posterity for successive generations.

(Ps. xvii. 14.) Yet Scripture gives many examples of this dispensation

of Providence; shewing the blessing of personal godliness to unborn

posterity. Abraham left his covenanted inheritance to his children's chil-

dren.1 Caleb's children inherited their father's possession.2  "Although

David's house was not so with God" as he could have desired yet his

lamp continued to burn for upwards of seventeen generations.3 Often

also has the Divine blessing upon the discreet guidance of his affairs

(Ps. cxii. 5), and the special promise to Christian liberality (Chap. iii.

9, 10), preserved the good man's inheritance. And if there is no earthly

 

1  Gen. xvii. 7, 8. Ps. cxii. 2.    2 Josh. xiv. 14.      3 2 Sam. xxiii. 5. 2 Chron. xxi. 7.

                                                    * Lavater in loco.


                                            CHAP. XIII. 23.                                 167

 

substance to leave; yet a church in the house; a family altar; the

record of holy example and instruction; and above all, a store of be-

lieving prayer laid up for accomplishment, when we shall be silent in

the grave—will be an inheritance to our children of inestimable value.

For though no trust can be placed in hereditary religion (John, i. 13);

yet the recollection of the path in which their fathers walked, and in

which they themselves were trained, may, under God's grace, continue

a godly entail in our families, so that "instead of the fathers may be

the children." (Ps. lxxviii. 5, 6; xlv. 16.)

            But the good man's inheritance is also increased from the wealth of the

sinner. Laban's wealth was laid up for Jacob;1 the spoils of Egypt

and Canaan2 for Israel; Haman's wealth for Esther and Mordecai.3

Indeed this appears to have been a prominent feature of the Old Dis-

pensation (Chap. xxviii. 8. Job, xxvii. 16, 17); and it will be openly

renewed in the latter-day glory of the Church. (Isa. lxi. 6.) Probably

therefore the fulfilment is far more frequent than meets the eye. Often

also the wealth of the sinner, laid up for the aggrandizement of his own

name in his posterity, becomes the portion of the just in their own

holy seed; consecrated to the service of their Lord and his Church.

(Eccles. ii. 26.)

 

23. Much food is in the tillage of the poor: but there is that is destroyed

                                        for want of judgment.

            The produce of the soil is the fruit of industry.     Chap. xii. 11. Gen.

iii. 19.)  Much food is in the tillage of the poor; because, being wholly

dependent on their own exertions, they spare no pains or labour. So

that by careful husbandry they may gain support from a small plot;

while a large and fertile estate may be destroyed for want of judgment.

(Chap. xxiv. 30-34.) Indeed, for want of prudent management the

richest tillage may come to waste. Egypt with her abundant crops

would have been destroyed, but for Joseph's judgment in preserving the

much, food in the tillage. (Gen. xli. 33-36.) Solomon's prudent adminis-

tration of his household restrained waste and extravagance. (1 Kings,

iv. 27, 28.) Even our Divine Master, in the distribution of the food,

directed, that "the fragments should be gathered up, that nothing be

lost" (John, vi. 12), or destroyed for want of care and judgment.

            But what is the practical and extended application? If talents lie

inactive, or if their activity is not wisely directed, a rich harvest is

destroyed for want of judgment. The same ruin flows from the neglect

of religious advantages. The harvest of grace withers into a famine.

Slothful professor! rouse thyself to till the ground; else wilt thou starve

for want of food. Then let thy roused energy be directed by a sound

 

1 Gen. xxxi. 1, 9, 18.      2 Exod. iii 35, 36. Josh. xi. 14. Ps. cv. 44.            3 Esth. viii. 1, 2.


168        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

judgment; for want of which, the fruits of industry, temporal, intel-

lectual, and spiritual, will run to waste.

 

24. He that spareth his rod hateth his son: but he that loveth him,

                                    chasteneth him betimes.

            Among the many modern theories of education, how often is God's

system overlooked! Yet should not this be our pattern and standard?

The rod of discipline is its main character; not harsh severity, but a

wise, considerate, faithful exercise; always aiming at the subjugation

of the will, and the humbling and purifying of the heart. Here how-

ever God and man are at issue. Man often spares the rod, because he

loves the child. This at least he calls love. But is not our Father's

love to his children inconceivably more yearning than that of an

earthly parent? Yet does he not spare the rod—"What son is he,

whom the Father chasteneth not?” (Heb. xii. 7.)  Is the rod the proof

of his hatred? "Whom the Lord loveth, he chasteneth." (Ib. verse 6.

Deut. viii. 5. Rev. iii. 19.) Nay—he gives us his Divine judgment—

He that spareth the rod, hateth the child. Does he not act at least as if

he hated him; omitting a duty so necessary for his welfare; winking at

the indulgence of vicious habits and a wayward will, so surely issuing

in bitter sorrow?1  Is not this delivering him up to his worst enemy?

Better that the child had been trained in tile house of strangers, than

that he should thus be the unhappy victim of the cruelty of parental

love.

            The discipline of our children must therefore commence with self-

discipline. Nature teaches to love them much. But we want a con-

trolling principle, to teach us to love them wisely. The indulgence of

our children has its root in self-indulgence. We do not like putting

ourselves to pain. The difficulties indeed can only be known by expe-

rience. And even in this school one parent cannot measure the trials

of another. But all our children are children of Adam. "Foolishness

is bound up in their hearts." (Chap. xxii. 15. Gen. viii. 21.) All choose

from the first dawn of reason, the broad road of destruction. (Isa. liii. 6.)

And can we bear the thought, that they should walk in that road?

We pray for their conversion. But prayer without teaching is mockery,

and Scripture teaching implies chastening.*  Discipline therefore must

be. All need the rod, some again and again. Yet it must be the

father's rod, yearning over his chastened child. (Ps. ciii. 13), even while

he dares "not spare him for his crying." (Chap. xix. 18.) The rod

without affection is revolting tyranny.

            But often do we hear mourning over failure. And is not this the

 

    1 Chap. xxix. 15. 1 Sam. iii. 13. 1 Kings, i. 6; ii. 25. Comp. 2 Sam. xiii. 39; xviii. 33.

* The Scripture term combines chastening with instruction— LXX. Verse 18. Eph.

vi. 4. Heb. xii. 6. Comp. Ps. xciv. 12; cxix. 67, 71.


                                    CHAP. XIII. 25.                                   169

 

grand reason? We do not chastise betimes. (Ib.), Satan begins with

the infant in arms! (Ps. lviii. 3. Isa. xiviii. 8.) The cry of passion is

his first stir of the native corruption. Do we begin as early? Every

vice commences in the nursery. The great secret is, to establish autho-

rity in the dawn of life; to bend the tender twig, before the knotty oak

is beyond our power.*  A child, early trained by parental discipline,

will probably preserve the wholesome influence to the end of life.

            But fearful indeed is the difficulty, when the child has been the

early master; to begin chastening, when the habit of disobedience has

been formed and hardened; to have the first work to do, when the

child is growing out of childhood, and when the unreserved confidence

needs to be established. Rarely indeed does this late experiment suc-

ceed: while the severity necessary to enforce it is not less dangerous

than painful. "It is good for a man that he bear the yoke in his

youth." (Lam. iii. 27.)

 

25. The righteous eateth to the satisfying of his soul: but the belly of the

                                         wicked shall want.

            This is one of the many proofs, that "the righteous is more excellent

than his neighbour." (Chap. xii. 26.) Temporal blessings are assured,

so far as they are really good for him; whether little or much; enough

to satisfy his wants, not to "fulfil his lusts." (Chap. x.. 3. Ps. xxxiv. 10;

xxxvii. 3, 18.) Indeed ‘he can never want a sufficiency, because his

desires are moderate, and he makes a temperate use of God's blessings.'

He therefore shall eat to his satisfying, while the wicked shall want.

Jacob was fed with the best of the land, while the Egyptians were

destitute. (Gen. xvvii. 11-13.) Elijah was fed, first by ravens, after-

wards by a widow, when the wicked nation were in extremity. (1 Kings,

xvii. 1-11; xviii. 5.) The fare of the righteous maybe coarse, and that

of the wicked "sumptuous." But did not Daniel and his friends eat

their pulse with more satisfaction, than their fellow-captives did their

richer dainties? (Dan. i. 12-16.) And—as to higher food and hea-

venly satisfaction, Christ is a substitute for everything; nothing for

Him.—‘If then'—as the noble Luther declares—'we live here by

begging our bread, is not this well recompensed, that we are nourished

with the food of angels, with eternal life, and Christ himself?‡'

            Such a chaos of desires is the soul of the wicked, that no abundance

can satisfy his want. Ahab's crown could give him no rest, without

Naboth's vineyard. (1 Kings, xxi. 1-4. Job, xx. 20, 22.) So full is the

ungodly heart of insatiable cravings! (Ps. xvii. 14. Isa. lxv. 13, 14.

Hos. iv. 10. Mic. vi. 14.) But how intolerable will be this conscious

 

    * Principiis obsta; sero medicina paratur,

        Cum mala per longas convaluere moras.--OVID.

    Bishop Patrick.        ‡ LUTHER on Ps. cxxxii. 16. Comp. Ps. xxxvi. 8. John, vi. 35, 55.


170          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

want throughout eternity, when a drop of water to cool the tormented

tongue shall be denied! (Luke, xvi, 24.)

 

                                      CHAPTER XIV.

 

1. Every wise woman buildeth her house: but the foolish plucketh it down

                                        with her hands.

WE have seen the wife to be a blessing or a curse to her husband.

(Chap. xii. 4.) Such is She to his house. Her wisdom may supply

many of his defects ; while all the results of his care and prudence may

be wasted by her folly. The godly matron is the very soul of the house.

She instructs her children by her example, no less than by her teaching.

She educates them for God and for eternity; not to shine in the vain

show of the world, but in the Church of God. Her household order

combines economy with liberality (Chap. xxxi. 13, 18-27); strict inte-

grity in the fear of God. (Ib. ver. 30.) Thus, as godly servants bring a

blessing to the house (Gen. xxx. 27; xxxix. 5), so does the wise woman

build her house (Chap. xxiv. 3) under the blessing of God, 'establishing

it in a firm and durable state.'* Who can estimate the worth of a

Christian mother -- a Hannah1--an Eunice?2

            But mark the foolish woman—her idleness waste, love of pleasure,

want of all forethought and care, her children's wills allowed, their

souls neglected, their happiness ruined! We see her house plucked down

in confusion. A sad issue, if an enemy had done this! But it is the

doing, or rather the undoing, of her own hands. In proportion to her

power and influence is her capability of family mischief. Such was

Jezebel, the destroyer of her house.3

            What responsibility then belongs to the marriage choice, linked

with the highest interests of unborn generations! If ever there was at

matter for special prayer and consideration, this is it. Here to err

once, may be an undoing of ourselves and of our house. Of how little

account are birth, fortune, external accomplishments, compared with

godly wisdom!

 

                   1 1 Sam. 1. 27, 28.  2 2 Tim. i. 5; iii. 15.

                   3 1 Kings, xvi. 81-33; xxi. 24, 25. Comp. 2 Kings, xi. 1.

    * Diodati. Chap. xxxi. 28-31.

    Mr. Scott here, aptly quotes the proverb — that ‘a fortune in a wife is better than a

fortune with a wife.'  ‘For the building of a house three things are principally necessary;

first, a holy coming together; secondly, a special fitness in the head of the family; and

lastly, a holy living together. As many order the matter, they so provoke God by the first

entering upon a family, that the family travels ever after under the burden of God's anger.

— BYFIELD on Col. iii. 18.


                                     CHAP. XIV. 2-4.                                        171

 

2. He that walketh in his uprightness feareth the Lord: but he that is

                         perverse in his ways, despiseth him.

            There can be no stream without the fountain. Grace in the heart

is the spring of the upright walk. (Chap. iv. 23. Matt. xii. 33-35.) The

proof that we believe the reality of religion, is that we walk in the

power of it. The proof of the influence of the fear of God is, that we

"are in it all the day long" (Chap. xxiii. 17); not saints in our prayers,

and worldlings in our conduct; not substituting active zeal for per-

sonal devotedness; not teaching our families half of religion, to read

and pray; but "whatsoever things are true, honest, just, pure, lovely,

and of good report, to think on these things." (Philip. iv. 8.) Man may

boast of his moral uprightness, that he would scorn a mean action. But

the heart-searching Saviour lays open the root of worldly selfishness,

and spews his way to be perverse before him. (Luke, xvi. 14, 15.) Does

he remember, or does he know, while he slumbers in the delusion of

external decency, that the allowed supremacy of any earthly object

(1 Sam. ii. 29, 30), or the indulgence of a secret lust (2 Sam. xii. 9, 10),

brings him under the fearful guilt of despising God?

 

3. In the mouth of the foolish is a rod of pride: but the lips of the wise shall

                                               preserve him.

            How many figures does the wise man employ to sew the destruc-

tive evils of the tongue! Here it is a rod (Ezek. vii. 10, 11), a rod of

pride. The rod in the mouth is often sharper than the rod in the hand.

(Jer. xviii. 18.) Sometimes it strikes against God (Exod. v. 2. Ps. xii.

3, 4. 2 Kings, xix. 10); sometimes it is "the rod of his anger" (Isa. x.

5) against his people; permitted (Rev. xiii. 5), yet restrained. (Ps.

cxxv. 3.) Always in the end is it the rod for the fool himself. (Ib. lxiv.

8.) Yet when the heart is humbled, and filled with wisdom, the tongue

becomes the preservative from imminent dangers (Chap. xii. 6), even

from the threatened scourge of the rod of pride. (Job, v. 21. Ps. xxxi. 20.)

            Were this iron rod to rule the earth, who could tolerate the abodes

of men? (Ps. lvii. 4; cxx. 5.) But adored be the grace, which converts

this unruly boasting member of unrighteousness, to be "an instrument

of righteousness unto God!" (Rom. vi. 13.)

 

4. Where no oxen are, the crib is clean: but much increase is by the strength

                                                        of the ox.

            Oxen are used in husbandry. (Deut. xxv. 4. 1 Kings, xix. 19.) Where,

therefore, no oxen are, to till the ground, the crib is clean. (Amos, iv. 6.)

Because, where is no labour, there can be no food wherewith to supply

it. God works by means, not by miracles. There must be good hus-

bandry, in order to an abundant harvest. Let the ox be put to his


172          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

work, and much increase will be by his strength. (Ps. cxliv. 14.) In the

spiritual husbandry, where there are no labourers, all is barrenness and

desolation. But see the much increase—the harvest of precious souls

—the fruit of their strength and effectiveness.*  "In all labour," both

in the natural and spiritual husbandry, "there is profit." (Verse 23.) But

God will never acknowledge a slothful servant.

 

5. A faithful witness will not lie: but a false witness will utter lies.

            This might seem to be a truism, unworthy of inspiration. But a

closer inspection brings out a valuable maxim of practical wisdom. A

faithful witness is moved neither by entreaties nor bribes, neither by

promises nor threats, to swerve from truth. He is the man to trust. He

will not lie. But a false witness has lost all principle of truth. He will

utter lies, without any inducement but his own interest or pleasure.

Flee from his very breath. (Chap. xxv. 19.)

            The faithful witness answers God's requirements. (Ps. li. 6.) He is

therefore his delight. (John, i. 47.) He is the citizen of the heavenly

Zion (Ps. xv. 2; Isa. xxxiii. 15), and the ornament of godliness. (Philip.

iv. 8.) In the Sacred Office he will not lie. His spirit is firm and inde-

pendent. His message is full and transparent truth. (1 Thess. ii. 3, 4.)

But the false witness is a true child of "the father of lies." (John, viii.

44. 1 Kings, xxi. 13.) Awful indeed is his utterance in common life

(Chap. xxv. 18); more awful in the profession of the gospel (Acts, v.

1-4); awful beyond conception in the Sanctuary. (Jer. v. 31.) A

minister of God in his commission! a minister of Satan in his work!

(2 Cor. xi. 13-15) delivering a lying message "subverting the gospel

of Christ" (Gal. i. 7), to the destruction of his people, to the double

destruction of his own soul.

            Thus "the good and the corrupt tree," each brings forth its own

fruit. (Matt. vii. 17, 18.) Let us remember, that our principles, good

and evil, are exemplified in the most trivial transactions, and gather

strength from the slightest, as well as from the most important, exer-

cise. (Luke, xvi. 10.)

 

6. A scorner seeketh wisdom, and findeth it not: but knowledge is easy to

                                          him that understandeth.

            What then?—Is the promise belied--"He that seeketh findeth?"1

The failure lies at the scorner's own door. He seeks indeed, but without

seriousness;2 without honesty of purpose;3 without delight;4 solely

for his own interest.5  He finds therefore matter enough for his

 

                1 Matt. vii. 7, 8. Isa. xlv. 19.                   2 John, xviii. 38.

                3 Jer. x1ii. 1-3 ; xliii. 1-4. Ezra, xiv. 1-4; xx. 1-3. Matt. xxii. 15, 16.

                4 Chap. xvii. 16; xviii. 2.             5 Acts, viii. 18-23.

  * 1 Cor. iii. 9 ; ix. 9, 10. 1 Tim. v. 18, and the image of the Minister, Rev. iv. 7, seem to

warrant this application of the proverb.

 

                                           CHAP. XIV. 7.                                       173

 

humour, but none for his instruction!*  He charges the darkness upon

the Scripture, not—where it really belongs--to his own heart. He

feels himself able to comprehend the subject, and therefore free to

reject what is beyond his conception, or contrary to his prejudices. He

scorns the humbling submission of faith, so that the glory even of the

wisdom of God is foolishness with him. (Rom. ix. 31, 32; x. 3.) No

wonder that, while he makes an effort to seek, he findeth not. (Chap.

xxiv. 7. 2 Tim. iii. 7.) He seeks his object, but neglects the means, and

perishes in the scornfulness of his own unbelief (1 Cor. iii. 19.)

            To another class of seekers, knowledge is easy. (Chap. viii. 9.) The

Ethiopian Eunuch gathered his knowledge from simplicity. (Acts, viii.

31.) God gave him a ready will, a right taste; and in " doing his will

he knew his doctrine." (John, vii. 17.) Obedience is the path of under-

standing. " Whosoever shall humble himself as a little child, the same

is the greatest in the kingdom of heaven." (Matt. xviii. 4.)

            Shall not we thus unite with our Divine Master in adoring the

gracious Sovereignty of this dispensation?—"Thou hast hid these

things from the wise and prudent, and hast revealed them unto babes."

(Matt. xi. 25.) Shall not we seek for deeper humility, as the pathway

to higher instruction? While we "are in our Father's hands" as the

object of his love, think of the privilege of "sitting down at his feet,

every one to receive of his words." (Deut. xxxiii. 3.)

 

7. Go from the presence of a foolish man, when thou perceivest not in him

                                          the lips of knowledge.

            Fellowship with the ungodly is absolutely forbidden, and it is never

safe to contradict a plain command. (Chap. ix. 6. 2 Cor. vi. 17.) Let us

labour to win their souls to Christ. But the rule of prudence directs--

"Cast not your pearls before swine."  ‘Avoid'--says the holy Leigh-

ton—'the mixture of an irreverent commonness of speaking of holy

things indifferently in all companies.'  Therefore when we perceive not

in the foolish man the lips of knowledge, go from his presence. Some may

be called to dispute with him. But take care that the call is clear. It

is at least the safest path to dispatch your business with him as in

a shower of rain, and not to loiter in his society.

            Sweet indeed is the glow of the Saviour's name upon the young

Christian's lips. Its warmth may put elder Christians to shame. But

we must warn him--Harm may be got in an imprudent endeavour to

do good. Confess your Master, wherever he may open your door and

your mouth. But better retreat from cavillers. (Chap. xxvi. 4. 1 Tim.

vi. 4, 5.) You may be foiled by specious reasonings. Beware of tam-

pering with your simplicity by the hazardous experiment, how much

poison your constitution may bear. (1 Cor. xv. 33.) If our Lord. exposed

 

     * Lord Bacon, quoted by Bishop Patrick.       Matt. vii. 6. Leighton in loco, vol. iii.


174          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

himself to moral danger; yet think of the impenetrable cover of his

sanctity, his perfect self-government, his rules of godly prudence. Do

we feel secure in the strength of our Christian habits? None are so

confirmed, as to be safe in relaxation of watchfulness, and wanton

rushing into danger. There is a perpetual warfare with the old prin-

ciples of corruption. No dependence can be placed upon any habits,

that do not produce right conduct, and right apprehension of present

duty. The path of sin is much more easily avoided than relinquished.

We can far more readily keep out of the course of the stream, than

stem the torrent. Walk closely with God; and under his cover and

shield bear a protest against the ungodly. (Ps. cxix. 114, 115.) Com-

mune much with his people. The very sight of a man of God is

refreshing. (Chap. xxvii. 9.)

 

8. The wisdom of the prudent is to understand his way: but the folly of

                                            fools is deceit.

            This is not the wisdom of the learned, but of the prudent; not

abstract and speculative, but sound and practical. It is self-knowledge

and self-controul looking upward for Divine guidance. And how much

is this wisdom needed to understand our way! The restless professor

eagerly follows his own impulse. His constitutional bias interprets

Providences, and makes openings for himself. Everything is out of

place. He is so "fervent in spirit," that he becomes a slothful in busi-

ness." He conceives himself to be doing good; the more so, because

it is different from his brethren. He pleads the constraint of zeal as

an excuse for indiscretion; as if religion was meant to destroy, and not

rather to rectify, his judgment.

            But "God hath made everything beautiful in his time." (Eccles.

iii. 11.) Religion is an orderly thing, as wise as it is warm. What-

ever be the excitement to an irregular course, more good is done in

steady consistency. To break the ranks in disorder; to "busy our-

selves in other men's matters" (1 Pet. iv. 15. 2 Thess. iii. 11, 12); to

be eager to understand our neighbour's way (John, xxi. 21, 22), obscures

the light upon our own. The true wisdom is to understand what belongs

to us personally and relatively. (1 Kings, iii. 6-9. Eccles. viii. 5.)

"As God hath distributed to every man, so let him walk, and abide

with God." (1 Cor. vii. 17.) Let the eye do the work of the eye, and

the hand of the hand. If Moses prayed on the Mount, and Joshua

fought in the valley (Exod. xvii. 10, 11), it was not because the one

was deficient in courage, or the other in prayer; but because each had

his appointed work, and understood his own way. Many steps of our way

are different from our neighbour's, and may-often be difficult to discern;

being rather involved in the principles, than expressed in the detail, of

Scripture. But the wisdom of the prudent will "understand what the


                                             CHAP. XIV. 9, 10.                                175

 

will of the Lord is." (Eph. v. 17. Col. i. 9, 10.) " A single eye" and a

sound heart will make our way plain. (Matt. vi. 22.)

            But while the attention of a truly wise man is occupied in under-

standing his way; 'the arts of deceit engross the polluted minds of the

wicked.'*  Their wisdom of deceit is really folly.  Gehazi's overreach-

ing wisdom proved folly in the end. Daniel's accusers "were taken in

their craftiness." (Dan. vi. 24. 1 Cor. iii. 19.)  Ananias and Sapphira

vainly endeavoured to hide their covetousness under the cover of

liberality. (Acts, v. 1–10.) Who can deceive a heart-searching God?

The attempt to do so is fearful provocation, certain confusion.

 

9. Fools make a mock at sin : but with the righteous there is favour.

            What! Are there such, as will count sin a sport? They have

never seen the sight, never felt the weight. Look into eternity. It is

thought a grave matter in heaven. It is felt so in hell. Why should

it be made a mockery on earth?  ‘It brought death into the world, and

all our woe.' And is this a worthy matter of jest? How does God

feel it?1  Go to Gethsemane. Go to Calvary. Learn there what sin

is. Shall we make a mock at that, which was a crushing burden to the

Son of God?2  Ask converted souls, awakened consciences, dying sin-

ners—do they speak lightly of sin? How will the wretched mocker

call himself in eternity what God calls him now—a fool!  The mock-

ing cannot be beyond the grave; except it be the sport of the cruel

enemy at the unchangeably hopeless torments of his deluded victim.

The damnation of souls is sport in hell. Is not then the poor mocker,

rushing into this woe, the object of our pity and prayer?  We warn,

we weep, we would yearn over him.

            The righteous cannot mock, like this hardened fool. While ‘he

makes himself merry with his sin, and scoffs at the reproof and judgment

which pertains thereunto;‡ "they have the mark of those that sigh

and cry for the abominations of the land"--the sure seal of the Lord's

favour.§  Soon does the sport of the fool come to an end. Here is

favour abundant and unchangeable. Our God looks over, pities, bears

with, guides, loves, saves, eternally. What are crowns and kingdoms

compared with such a portion!

 

10. The heart knoweth its own bitterness: and a stranger doth not

                                intermeddle with his joy.

            A graphical illustration of man's proper individuality! "What man

knoweth the things of a man, save the spirit of man that is in him?"

 

   1 Isa. xliii. 24. Jer. xliv. 4. Ezek. vi. 9. Amos, ii. 13.       2 Matt. xxvi. 37, 38; xxvii. 46.

   * FRENCH and SKINNER'S Translation of Proverbs.          Milton.           ‡ Bishop Hall.

   § Ezek. ix. 4-6. 2 Kings, xxii. 19, 20. Dan. ix. 4-21. See the contrast set out by God

himself. Isa. lxvi. 2-6.


176        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

(1 Cor. ii. 11.)  The history of the soul is only fully known and felt by

the conscious subject. Each knoweth his own bitterness, deep, interior.*

The most poignant sufferings often arise from causes, which cannot be

told to our dearest friend. No two of us are framed alike; and this

diversity of mind and character precludes a perfect reciprocity even in

the warmest glow of human sympathy. Each only knows where the

heart is wrung. Each therefore must in a measure tread a solitary

path, and in that path often submit to be misunderstood. Hannah,

knowing her own bitterness, was rashly rebuked by him, who ought to

have been her comfort. (1 Sam. i. 10-43.) Gehazi harshly repelled the

Shunamite, through ignorance of her bitter sorrow. (2 Kings, iv. 27.)

Job's friends, from misconception, proved to be "miserable comforters,

physicians of no value." (Job, xiii. 4 ; xvi. 2.)

            But think of Him, who made himself " a man of sorrows," that he

might be "touched with the feeling of our infirmities." '(Isa. liii. 3.

Heb. iv. 15.) This is not the common love to the whole family, but an

individual interest of fellowship, as if each, had his whole heart, and

each was loved alone. The heart's bitterness is experimentally known,

and effectually relieved. (Isa. 1. 4, 5.) Man—very man as he is even

on the throne of God—he is alive to all our sorrows. (Ib. lxiii. 9.)

None of his members are too low for his highest and most endearing

thoughts. Into this bosom we may pour the tale of woe, which no ear

besides can receive. We may not be able to comprehend it. But he

will make us feel, that his sympathy with sorrow is no fiction, but a

precious reality. My Saviour! Has my heart a bitterness, that thou

dost not know, that thou dost not feel with me, and for which thou dost

not provide a present cordial and support?

            No less individual is the heart's joy. It lies deep within itself. A

stranger doth not intermeddle with it.  Michal could understand David's

bravery, not his joy. She knew him as a man of war, not as a man of

God. (1 Sam. xviii. 20. 2 Sam. vi. 16.) Indeed, joy is a plant in "a

garden enclosed," a stream from "a fountain, sealed." (Cant. iv. 12.) It

is "the secret of the Lord, which is with the righteous." (Chap. iii. 32.

Ps. xxv. 14.) It is the indwelling" Comforter, whom the world cannot

receive." (John, xiv. 16, 17.) Yes truly----that is the highest joy, that

the man hides in his own bosom, covered from observation. There is

no noise, or froth on the surface. But they are deep waters of a Divine

spring. Christ takes the believer apart from the crowd, feeds him on

hidden manna (Rev. ii. 17), and makes him partaker of his own joy.

Whatever cause there may be for mourning, there is "joy from our

 

    * 1 Kings, viii. 38, 39. ‘Every one is inwardly the only true and faithful judge of his

own joys and sorrows, and none also can truly perceive them.'—DIODATI in loco. ‘Each

mind has an interior apartment of his own, into which none but itself and the Divinity can

enter.'—FOSTER On a Man writing Memoirs of himself, Letter vii.

    Thus the Saviour separated himself even from his chosen disciples. Mark, xiv.32-35.


                                                CHAP. XIV. 11, 12.                                177

 

sorrow" (Jer. xxxi. 13), in the midst of it (Rom. v. 3), and as the ever-

lasting fruit of it. (Isa. lx. 20.)

 

11. The house of the wicked shall be overthrown: but the tabernacle of the

                                         upright shall flourish.

            The feeblest state of the upright is more stable than the prosperity of

the wicked. They build a house. The earth is their home, where they

would settle, and take their rest. The upright—knowing the uncer-

tainty of earth, and seeking a better house—only set up a tabernacle

(Heb. xi. 9) -- weak and trembling. Yet the house is overthrown, and

the tabernacle flourishes. (Chap. iii. 33; xii. 7.) The strongest support

of man totters. (Job, viii. 15. Ps. xlix. 12.) The support of God to the

weakest is Omnipotence. (Isa. xl. 29; xli. 10.) The eye of sense seems

however to see the contrary—the flourishing of the wicked, and the

overthrow of the upright. And a sore trial is it to the servant of God.

(Jer. xii. 1.) But " we must walk by faith, not by sight." (2 Cor. v. 7.)

"The sanctuary"—the word of God—will explain. (Ps. lxxiii. 16, 17.

Job, xviii. 14-21.) Wait awhile. The great day will set all in order

before us, and show that "the Judge of all the earth doeth right."

(Gen. xviii. 25. Ps. lviii. 11.) Meanwhile let us leave him to do his

own work, and to fulfil his own word in his own time.

 

12. There is a way that seemeth right unto a man; but the end thereof are

                                             the ways of death.

            No one can doubt the end of open ungodliness. (1 Cor. vi. 9. 1 Tim.

v. 24.) But other paths in the broad road, seemingly right, are not less.

certainly in their end the ways of death. Vice passes under the cover

of virtue. Covetousness is disguised under the name of prudence.

Indeed it is the fearful property of sin to hide its own character and

tendency. The blindness increases in proportion to our familiarity

with it. The self-deceiver has often been "a backslider in heart." (Ps.

xxxvi. 2, 3.) He lost his humility, relaxed his watchfulness, neglected

"the diligent keeping of the heart." Sin soon found admission. When

it could not be wholly covered, it was excused. Appearances were

kept up; misgivings gradually vanished, and the fool mistook death for

life. (Dent. xxix. 19. Isa. xliv. 20. Rev. iii. 17, 18.) But oh! how soon

will the cover drop off, and the discovery be made, that all along sin

was cherished in self-delusion.

            ‘Take care then'—as the saintly Leighton warns us—of sleeping

unto death in carnal ease.' (On 1 Pet. iii. 21.) Look well to the foun-

dation and soundness of thy faith. (2 Cor. xiii. 5.) Search carefully

both thy Bible and thine heart. Go to the Lord in prayer, and to his

Ministers, to shew you the true way. (1 Sam. xii. 23. Mal. ii. 7.)

"Prove thine own work." (Gal. vi. 4. Ps. cxxxix. 23, 24.) If not a bold


178           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

rebel against thy God, hast thou yielded freely thine heart to him?  If

thou be free from open wickedness, art thou not equally free from vital

godliness?  The most moralized unrenewed professor is the slave of

sin. Terrible indeed will it be to meet the bridegroom with a bright,

but unfurnished lamp; to fall from high expectations of heaven into

the depths of hell! (Matt. xxv. 1–12.) The Lord keep our eye steadily

on the end of our way, and make that end sure for heaven!

 

13. Even in laughter the heart is sorrowful: and the end of that mirth is

                                              heaviness.

            Many a sigh is heaved amid the loud laughter of folly. (Esth. v.

9–13.) As soon might true joy be found in hell, as in the carnal heart.

As soon might we "gather grapes of thorns, or figs of thistles," as this

"fruit of the Spirit" (Matt. vii. 16.) from ‘nature's barren soil.'  As

soon might the tempest-tossed ocean be at rest, as the sinner's con-

science. (Isa, lvii. 20, 21.) He may feast in his prison, or dance in his

chains. He may drink away his trouble. But it is a vain show of

happiness. Ask him what is in his bosom. Is not his smile a counter-

feit to hide a reality of woe? The voice of conscience and experience

will make itself heard--"It is mad—what doeth it?" (Eccles. ii. 2.)

If he has found a diversion from present trouble, has he found a cover

from everlasting misery? It is far easier to drown conviction, than to

escape damnation. And to be merry for a day, and to be in torment for

eternity—who would envy—who would not fee from—such a portion?

            Nor do we speak only of the coarse mirth of the vulgar. Take the

fullest cup of earth's best joys. What is this to satisfy desire, to allay

trouble, to meet eternity? Even the present end of this short-lived

mirth is heaviness (Amos, vi. 3–7); sometimes so intolerable, that death

is fled to, as the cure of the anguish; and to avoid the fear of hell, the

wretched sinner leaps into it. (Matt. xxvii. 3–5.) And at best eternity

will change the face of this mirth, when that will remain, which would

be the most desirable riddance—the sting of conscience, as enduring

as the pleasures of sin were momentary. (Luke, vi. 24; xvi. 21-24.

Rom. vi. 21.)

            But the end of that mirth implies another mirth with a different end.

Contrast the prodigal's mirth in the far country, with his return to his

father's house, when "they began to be merry." (Luke, xv. 13–24.) The

fruit of carnal mirth ends in heaviness. Penitential sorrow begets a

mirth, that ends in everlasting joy. (Ps. cxxvi. 5, 6. Isa. xxxv. 10.)

Lord! choose mine inheritance for me among thy weeping people.

 

14. The backslider in heart shall be filled with his own ways: and a good

                             man shall be satisfied from himself.

            Every spot is not the leprosy. Every mark of sin does not prove a


                                CHAP. XIV. 14, 15.                                       179

 

backslider. "A man may be overtaken in a fault" (Gal. vi. 1); or it

may be the sin of ignorance (Lev. iv. 2. Heb. v. 2); or sin abhorred,

resisted, yet still cleaving. (Ram. vii. 15-24.)  Backsliding implies a

wilful step; not always open, but the more dangerous, because hidden.

Here was no open apostasy, perhaps no tangible inconsistency. Nay

— the man may be looked up to as an eminent saint. But he is a back-

slider in heart.  A secret canker of unwatchfulness worldly conformity

(Hos. vii. 8), neglect, or indulgence, has insensibly "devoured his

strength." (Hos. vii. 9. Judg. xvi. 20.) He was once pressing onward.

A languor has now stolen upon him. His heart beats unsteadily. He

has become formal and hurried in his prayers; lukewarm in the means

of grace: reading his Bible to soothe his conscience, rather than to feed

his soul. The first steps, instead of alarming, and bringing him to

secret weeping (Matt. xxvi. 75), hurried him onwards from one liberty

to another, till he lost all power of resistance. His unsoundness was

known to God, long before it was manifested to the Church. Before

the matter of Uriah, indolence and security had probably unhinged the

man of God, and laid him open to the tempter. (2 Sam. xi. 1, 2.)

Perhaps this dispensation may be permitted to teach the child of God

his need of watchfulness and dependence. (2 Chron. xxxii. 31. Philip.

ii. 12.) The backslider's folly and wretchedness is graphically pour-

trayed, as a merciful warning to the church. He needs no other

rod than his own ways.  To be filled with them; thus to become the

fountain of his own misery; is the most fearful of all Divine judgments.1

            The good man is also filled from himself;* yet not as the backslider,

with misery, but with solid satisfaction. God has gives him a fountain

fed from a higher fountain; a living spring within himself (John, iv.

14); the witness of the Spirit (Rom. viii. 16); the life and joy of the

Heavenly Comforter (John, xiv. 16, 17); the rejoicing testimony of his

conscience (2 Cor„ i. 12); the assured hope of glory. (Col. i. 27.) This

is not independent of God, the one source of self-sufficiency. But it is

Himself dwelling in the heart and filling it with his fulness. Let the

sinner compare the satisfaction of sin and godliness--the curse and the

blessing; and lift up his heart for the direction of a right choice. Let

the backslider return to the gospel to awaken his contrition, and to

reanimate his faith. (Hos. xiv.)  Let the good man invigorate his soul

daily from his well of consolation.

 

15. The simple believeth every word; but the prudent man looketh well to

                                                   his going.

            To believe every word of God is faith. To believe every word of man

is credulity. Faith is a principle of infinite moment. Eternal life and

 

    1 Ps. xxxii. 3, 4. Jer. ii. 19; iv. 8. Comp. 1 Sam. xxviii. 15; Matt. xxvii. 3-5.

      * au]ta<rkhj, Philip. iv. 11, self-sufficiency. Comp. 2 Cor. ix. 8.—Gr.


180         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

death hang upon it. (Mark, xvi. 16. John, iii. 36.) But it must be

grounded upon evidence, and it can only be exercised according to the

character and measure of the evidence. An indiscriminate faith is there-

fore fraught with mischief. The world was ruined by this weakness.

(Gen. iii. 1-6.) And often since has it been the occasion of sin (2 Sam.

xvi. 1-4. Esth. iii. 8-11), and even of downfall. (1 Kings, xiii. 11-19.)

            Look at the fruit of this folly in the Church, when "our faith stands

in the wisdom of men, not in the power of God." (1 Cor. ii. 5.) Men

become loose in fundamental principles. They are "carried about with

divers and strange doctrines," and never know "the good thing of a

heart established with grace." (Heb. xiii. 9. Eph. iv. 14.) The novel-

ties of fancy, accredited by some favourite name, readily pass for the

revelation of God. We do not thus sit down to our food blindfolded;

not knowing whether we take food or poison. But here men are ready

to drink of any cup that is presented to them, like children, who think

everything good that is sweet. Thus are "unstable souls beguiled,"

and "corrupted from the simplicity that is in Christ." (2 Cor. xi. 3.)

Errors, never solitary, are built upon some partial, insulated, or per-

verted truth. Feeling and excitement come in the place of solid

practical principle.

            But the prudent looketh well to his going. Cautious consideration

should mark our general conduct; trying before we trust; never trust-

ing an uncertain profession. (Neh. vi. 2-4. John, ii. 24.)  Specially in

the Church, carefully ponder whom we follow. Sift the most plausible

pretensions. (1 Thess. v. 21. 1 John, iv. 1.) Never set a great name

against the Divine testimony. (Isa. viii. 20. Admit only the one

standard; like the noble Bereans, who would not believe even an

apostle's word, except it was confirmed by the written testimony. (Acts,

xvii. 11.)  Ask wisdom of God. Carefully regulate the energy of

religion by the Divine rule. Enlist feeling on the side, and under the

direction, of sound judgment. This prudent carefulness will exhibit a

well-ordered Christian profession.

 

16. A wise man feareth, and departeth from evil: but the fool rageth, and

                                                  is confident.

            Fear is sometimes thought to be an unmanly principle. But look at

the terrible extent of the evil dreaded. Without—it is vanity and dis-

appointment.1  Within—it is the sting of guilt.2 Upward—we see

the frown of God.3 Downward--everlasting burnings.4 Surely then

to depart from this evil,5 yea —to fear it worse than death,6 is true

wisdom.

 

   1 Rom. vi. 21.                         2 Chap. xiii. 15. 1 Cor. xv. 56.                3 John, iii. 36.

   4 Ps. ix. 17. Mark, ix. 44.        5 Gen. xxxix. 9, 10.

   6 Dan. iii. 16-15; vi. 10. Luke, xii. 5.


                                      CHAP. XIV. 17.                                  181

 

            The fool however, stout and stubborn in his mind, never fears till

he falls. The voice of God is unheard amid the uproar of passion, like

a raving tempest. Bravely independent, he sits amid the threatenings

of God as unalarmed, as Solomon amid his brazen lions; ‘carried by his

rash will, and blind passion, without apprehending the end and issue

of things.'* His character is here drawn to life. He rageth, and is

confident. Such a fool was Rehoboam, when his self-willed confidence

rejected the counsel of wisdom and experience. (1 Kings, xii. 13–15.)

Such a fool was the raging Assyrian, blindly confident in his own might,

till the God whom he despised turned him back to his destruction.

(2 Kings, xix. 28–37.) And will not the child of God bless his Father's

painful discipline, so needful to curb his raging will, and bring down

his high confidence—"Thou hast chastised me, and I was chastised, as

a bullock unaccustomed to the yoke: turn thou me, and I shall be

turned; for thou art the Lord my God?" (Jer. xxxi. 18.)

 

17. He that is soon angry dealeth foolishly: and a man of wicked

                                     devices is hated.

            Different gradations of sin are here opposed to each other—the

sudden passion, and the deliberate purpose; the gust and the continu-

ance of the storm. A hasty temper convicts us of foolishness before

our fellow-men. (2 Kings, v. 11–13.) What frightful mischief may be

the consequence of an angry word! (Jam. iii. 5.) How fearfully did

the "man after God's own heart" suffer the fire to burst out! (1 Sam.

xxv. 21.) Who then, with this example before us, will dare to relax the

watch? But are these sins of temper matters of sorrow and humilia-

tion? Does the remembrance of their cost to our crucified Friend

exercise our constant watchfulness, and prayerful resistance? Is not

our loving Father's rod sometimes needful to bring conviction of their

guilty foolishness? (Num. xx, 10–12)  Oh, for a rich vouchsafement

of that " charity, that is not easily provoked!" (1 Cor. xiii. 5.)  'Let

us give our hearts no rest, until we have purged their gall, and

tempered them with the sweetness and gentleness of our Lord and

Saviour.'

            But sin grows from weakness to wilfulness. ‘The first makes a

man contemptible; the second, abominable.'‡  Wicked devices;1

cherished malice;2 one act preparing for another; almost aiming at

the uttermost3 — all this shews the true picture of man, "hateful, and

hating one another."4 Such a man is hated of God, as "an abomina-

tion."5 Man holds him up to his righteous scorn.6 Absalom's pillar,

 

    1 Ps. xxxvi. 2-4; lxiv. 2-9. Jer. v. 26.   2 Gen. iv. 8; xxvii. 41.    3 2 Sam. xv. 2-12.

    4 Tit. iii. 3.                                          5 Chap. vi. 16-18.          6 Ps. lii. 2-7.

            * Diodati, 2 Chron. xxv 15-20.    DAILLE on Col. iii. 8. Comp. Col. iii. 13.

             ‡ Diodati.


182         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the monument of his name, is to this day the object of universal con-

tempt.*  The hatred of Haman's wicked devices is perpetuated from

generation to generation. (Esth. ix. 23-28.) Why are these warnings,

if we regard them not? Our dignity is our likeness to God! What

shame and degradation must there be in this contrariety to him!

 

18. The simple inherit folly: but the prudent are crowned with knowledge.

            The simple and prudent are again contrasted. The child of Adam is

born to folly. (Job, xi. 12.) That is his inheritance. He "received it

by tradition from his fathers" (1 Pet. i. 18):  yea, from his first father.

(Gen. v. 3. Ps. li. 5.) So long as he remains simple, he confirms his

title. Unlike an earthly inheritance, he cannot relinquish it. He holds

it in life; and, when he "returns naked to the earth, from whence he

came" (Job, i. 21. 1 Tim. vi. 7), he still holds it firm in death, and

reaps its bitter fruits throughout eternity. Here is no injustice, no just

cause of complaint. Sinner! is not wisdom freely offered to thee in

asking for it? (Jam. i. 5.) Dost not thou therefore continue simple

only by thy wilful neglect? If knowledge is at hand, to be satisfied

with ignorance, is to throw away a talent of inestimable price.  'I con-

fess'--says Doctor South--'God has no need of any man's learning;

but certainly then he has much less need of his ignorance.'  The pru-

dent, instructed in heavenly knowledge, are enabled to behold Divine

objects in a Divine light. Is not this knowledge therefore their crown,

not of laurel, not of perishing gold; but beautifying the man with all

the light, holiness, joy, and glory of life eternal? This is not that

religion of eccentric singularities, which obscures the glory of the

Divine image. Steady consistency is stamped upon it, such as en-

thrones its possessor in the conviction and regard even of those, who

are unfriendly to his principles. (1 Pet. ii. 12.) Thus "the wise" in

this life "inherit glory.”  (Chap. iii. 35.) What shall be their glory in

eternity, sitting on the throne of God, crowned with the hand of God

himself!

 

19. The evil bow before the good: and the wicked at the gates of the

                                                   righteous.

            This is not the general rule of the present dispensation. Righteous

Lazarus bowed at the wicked man's gate. (Luke, xvi. 20.) Thus faith is

tried (Ps. lxxiii. 12), and the foundations of our heavenly hopes more

deeply grounded. (2 Cor. iv. 17, 18.) And yet often has the very

letter of the proverb been verified. The Egyptians and Joseph's

 

    * Calmet mentions the habit of passing travellers throwing stones at Absalom's pillar,

to shew their hatred of a son's rebellion against his father and that now the accumulation

of stones hides the lower part of the monument. This tradition is confirmed by recent

travellers.

     Sermon on 1 Kings, xiii. 33, 34. Vol. i.


                                                      CHAP. XIV. 20.                                  183

 

brethren bowed before Joseph;1 the proud Pharaoh and his people

before Moses;2 Saul to David;3  Jehoram and Naaman before Elisha;4

Haman before Esther;5 the magistrates before the apostles.6  More

often still is the spirit of this proverb illustrated in the constrained

testimony of the wicked to the pre-eminence of the righteous. (Rev. iii.

9.) The millennial era will exhibit a more glorious fulfilment. (Isa.

xlix. 23; lx. 14. Rev. xx. 4.) The grand consummation will set all

things right, and shed a Divine splendour over this profound aphorism.

"The upright shall have dominion over the wicked in the morning."

(Ps. xlix. 14. Mal. iv. 1-3.)  "The saints shall judge the world." (1 Cor.

vi. 2) They shall there appear in their suitable rank, exalted with

their glorious Head over the whole creation. (Rev. ii. 26.)  Oh! let the

sunshine of this glory irradiate every clouded morn. If this be not

enough to counter-balance the scorn of the ungodly, where is our faith?

Had we a clear apprehension of this glory, should we have an eye for

anything else? Would not all besides, except as it had a reference to

this day, be an utter impertinence?

 

20. The poor is hated even of his own neighbour: but the rich hath many

                                                  friends.

            An humbling, but how common an illustration of native selfishness

Sometimes however we hear of cheering exceptions. "Ruth clave to

Naomi" in her poverty;7 Jonathan to David, when stripped of royal

favour.8  But too generally the poor, instead of being pitied and com-

forted (Job, vi. 14. Isa. lviii. 7), is hated or neglected of his own neigh-

bour.*  Yet the rich is not in a more enviable condition. He has many

friends indeed to his money and favour, but few to his interest. Many

would be the deserters, should a change of circumstave cut off sup-

plies for their appetites, pleasures, or covetousness. (Chap. xix. 4, 6.)

But how endearing is the love of Jesus! He was emphatically the

Poor man's Friend. (Ps. lxxii. 12, 14.) He sought his many friends

among the wretched and forlorn (Matt. iv. 18–22); and still does his

powerful compassion plead for those hated ones among their fellow-

sinners. (Ps. cix. 31.) Shall not we then, like the tried saint of old,

learn to look off from earthly destitution in a cleaving confidence on

Him, as the Rock of our salvation? (Job, xix. 13-27.) The practical

exercise of this confidence will be an overcoming of our selfish propen-

sity; cultivating that tenderness, which, instead of shrinking from the

 

         1 Gen. xli. 43; xlii. 6.                                 2 Exod. viii. 8; ix. 27, 28; xi. 8.

         3 1 Sam. xxiv. 16-21; xxvi. 21.                   4 2 Kings, iii. 12; v. 9.

         6 Esth. vii. 7.                                            6 Acts, xvi. 39.

         7 Ruth, i. 14, 21, 22.                                  8 1 Sam. xix. 1-7; xxiii. 16.

                  * Chap. x. 15; xix. 4, 7. Luke, xvi. 21.

                        Nil habet infelix pauipertas durius in se,

                        Quam quad ridiculos homines facit.—JUVENAL, iii. 152, 153.


184         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

sight of misery, hastens, though at the expense of personal sacrifice, to

its sympathizing relief. (Luke, x. 33-35.)

 

21. He that despiseth his neighbour sinneth but he that hath mercy on the

                                               poor, happy is he.

            The last proverb sheaved the general standard of selfishness. Here

we see its positive sinfulness. Some men are so high, that they cannot

see their lower brother. Yeti infinitely precious and honoured may be

this despised one in the Saviour's eyes, as the purchase of his blood.

And what a span is the distance between him and his most elevated

fellow-creature, compared with the infinite space between him and his

God! Yet doth he "that dwelleth on high," instead of despising, write

his name upon him, "raise him from the dust, and lift him out of the

dunghill, that he may set him with the princes of his people." (Ps.

exiii. 7, 8.)  The plain command is--"Honour all men" (1 Pet. ii. 17),

not all with equal measure; but in all honour our own nature, the re-

mains, however defaced, of the image of God. To look therefore upon

the meanest, as if he were made to be despised, shews a want of wisdom,

and a want of heart. (Chap. xi. 12.)  'Because we think we over-top

him, therefore to think we may overlook him,*  and neglect to have

mercy on him (Chap. xxi. 13. Jam. ii. 16)--this is reflecting on God's

own Providence (Verse 31); forgetting his example (2 Cor. viii, 9);

setting up our own judgment against his; sinning against his law of

love. (Jam. ii. 1-9.) And most fearfully will he visit this sin at the

day of recompense. (Job, xxxi. 13-15. Matt. xxv. 42-45.)

            But oh! the felicities of him that hath mercy on the poor;1 "hoping

for nothing again " (Luke, vi. 35); constrained by love to Christ and

his fellow-sinners!  'He shall be happy beyond expression.'  Does

not every exercise of love enlarge our own happiness? (Chap. xi. 17.)

Do we not ourselves richly feed on the bread, with which we "feed the

hungry?" (Isa. lviii. 8.) And will not the great day declare and

honour every act of love for our Divine Master? (Matt. xxv. 35-40.)

 

22. Do they not err that devise evil? but mercy and truth shall be to them

                                            that devise good.

            Scripture traces actions to principles. Wicked as it is to do evil, it

is far more hateful to devise it. (See verse 17.)  Devising is the incipient

working of the principle. Devising evil therefore, if it comes not to the

act, shews the purpose. (Chap. xxiv. 8.) They, may be men of con-

summate wisdom in other matters; but here at least do they not err?

They miss either their object, or their anticipated happiness from it.

 

            1 Comp. Ps. xli. 3; cxii. 9. Jer. xxii. 16. Dan. iv. 27. Matt. v. 7.

* Bishop SANDERSON on Rom. xiv. 3.

Scott. 'At qui miseretur inopum, 0 beatitudines illius!'--SCHULTEMS. Holden also

marks the peculiar emphasis of this pronoun.


                                                         CHAP. XIV. 23.                                     185

 

Witness the shame of the Babel-builders (Gen. xi. 9); the confusion of

Haman's device (Esth. vii. 10); the over-ruling of the wicked plot against

our beloved Lord. (Ps. ii. 1–4. Matt. xxi. 41-44.) How did the devisers

thwart their own purpose to their fearful cost! How little did Judas

estimate the result of his devising of evil--"A little matter kindling an

unquenchable fire!" (Matt. xxvi. 14–16; xxvii. 3-5.)

            Children of God! Do you exhibit the same diligence and deter-

mination in devising good? Even if your fruit be frustrated, your work

will be accepted. (1 Kings, viii. 18.). Mercy and truth are often set out

as reward of grace, the cheering encouragement to practical godliness.

What can be more joyous than the glorious perfections of Jehovah,

pouring into the soul the quickening energy of Divine blessing; mercy

the fountain-head, truth the pledge and fulfilment of unchangeable

mercy!*

 

23. In all labour there is profit: but the talk of the lips tendeth only to

                                                 penury.

            This is not universally true. What profit is in the labour of sin

(Rom. vi. 21), or of ill-timed work? Fruitful also is the talk of teach-

ing lips (Chap. x. 21; xv. 7.) But the contrast is intended between

what is solid on the one hand and what is shadowy on the other,

between lawful, well-directed labour, and empty talk. "Bread eaten in

the sweat of the face" is the profit of bodily labour. (Gen. iii. 19.) But

the idler is condemned to penury upon the talk of his lips. (Chap. xx. 4;

xxi. 25.) Enlargement of mind is also the profit of mental labour.

(Eccles. xii. 9, 10.) But the "prating fool" (Chap. x. 8)  ‘cuts himself

off from all advantage, except that of being entertained by his own

talk; his business in coming into company not being, at all to be

informed, to hear, to listen, but to display himself, and to talk without

any design at all.' Clearly therefore the talk of his lips tendeth only to

penury. Rich beyond conception is the profit of spiritual labour. (Chap.

x. 16.)  "The Son of man gives to the labourer enduring meat. The

violent take the kingdom of heaven by force. The labour of love God

is not unrighteous to forget." (John, vi. 27. Heb.6, 10.) But the talk

of the lips gives husks, not bread. Where there are only shallow con-

ceptions of the gospel, and no experimental enjoyment of Christian

establishment, it is ‘all running out in noise.'‡  There ids no instruc-

tion, because there is no "good treasure" within. (Matt. xii. 35.)

"What manner of communications are these that ye have one to

 

    * Gen. xxiv. 27. 2 Sam. xv. 20. Ps. xxv. 10; lxi. 7; cxvii. 2. Mic. vii. 20. ‘Note'—

says an old expositor—'that Solomon here is no lawgiver, but an evangelist, leading us

unto Jesus Christ. For we can obtain no mercy but in him only. For "the promises of

God are yea and amen in him.”'—Cope in loco.

    Bishop BUTLER'S Sermon on the Government of the Tongue.

    ‡ Henry. 1 Tim. v. 13. See Bunyan's graphical portrait of Talkative.


186       EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

another?" (Luke, xxiv. 17) —is a searching question. Ministers,

doctrines, the externals, circumstantials, disputations on religion--all

may be the mere skirts and borders of the great subject, utterly remote

from the heart and vitals. And indeed, the discussion of the substance

of religion without reverence, without a sense of the Divine presence,

and a single eye to edification, is only a profanation of holy things, and

at best must alienate the precious truths from their true purpose.

Nothing comes from a broken heart. It is only the deluding indul-

gence of a refined lust, a religious tongue without a godly heart--all

tending only to penury. Take care that religious conversation deserves

the name. Let the stamp of the profession of the saints of God be

visible. (Ps. cxlv. 10-12.) Let the burning theme of the Saviour's love

flow from the heart. (Luke, xxiv. 14-32.) Let that "name, which is

above every name," be upon our lips, "as ointment poured forth;" so

that "the whole house"— all that are living with us —"may be filled

with the odour of the ointment." (Cant. i. 3. John, xii. 3.)

 

24. The crown of the wise is their riches: but the foolishness of fools is

                                                    folly.

            The godly first are made wise by being "crowned with knowledge."

(Verse 18.) Then the crown of the wise are their riches. For though, as

a fearful temptation (Matt. xiii. 22; xix. 23), no wise man would desire

them; yet as the gift of God (1 Kings, iii. 13. Ps. cxii. 3) (the gift

indeed of his left hand) (Chap. 16) they may become his crown.

They enhance his reputation, and enlarge his usefulness as a consecrated

talent for God. What a crown were they to David and his wise Son, as

the materials for building the temple;1 and to Job, as employed lbr the

good of his fellow-creatures!2 So that, though wisdom "under all

circumstances is a blessing, it is specially pronounced to be "good with

an inheritance." (Eccles. vii. 11, 12.)  ‘It is necessary to distinguish be-

tween the thing itself, and the abuse of it. Wealth is in fact a blessing,

when honestly acquired, and conscientiously employed. And when

otherwise, the man is to be blamed, and not his treasure.*

            But if riches are the crown of the wise, they cannot disguise fools.

They only seem to make their folly more open. Wasted on their selfish

gratifications they become, not their crown, but their foolishness.3 The

foolish son of this wise father, with all his riches, only exposed his folly

more egregiously, and lost ten precious jewels from his royal crown,

(1 Kings, xii. 16.) Whatever be our talents, let us trade with them for

eternity, and they will be our everlasting crown. (Luke, xix. 13; xvi.

9.  1 Tim. vi. 19.)

 

    1 Chron. xxix. 1-5. 2 Chron. v. 1.        2 Job, xxix. 6-17. Comp. Ps. cxii. 9.

    3 I Sam. xxv. 36-33. Ps. xlix. 1.0-13. Luke, xii. 19, 20.

            * COWPER's Cursory Remarks on Carracioli.  Southey's Ed. viii. 273.


                                   CHAP. XIV. 25-26.                                           187

 

25. A true witness delivereth souls : but a deceitful witness speaketh lies.

 

            How weighty is the responsibility of testimony! (Chap. xxiv. 12.)

Every Christian has in him a principle of conscientious faithfulness.

As a true witness he would deliver the innocent from oppression or ruin.

But an ungodly man would prove a deceitful witness, the agent of

Satan (1 Kings, xxi. 13), speaking lies for his neighbour's destruction.

(Matt. xxvi. 60. Acts, vi. 13. Comp. chap. xii. 6, 17.) What need have

we to "walk before God" in our words, ready to hazard all for the

interests of truth (Ps. xv. 2; xxiv. 3-5); considering our obligations to

one another (Eph. iv. 25); ‘mindful of that true and faithful witness,

which every man carries in his own bosom, which no gift can blind, no

power can silence;'*  realizing our solemn appearing before the God

of truth, when "by our words we shall be justified or condemned!"

(Matt. xii. 37.) If the responsibility be so great to the witness in court,

how much more to the witness in the pulpit! Oh! is the minister of

God a true witness, by the declaration of his message, assured, that no

other truth, no adulteration of this truth, will deliver souls? (1 Tim. iv.

16.) Or is he speaking lies, holding back or denying truth, to the ruin

of the soul, whom he was charged to deliver? (Jer. v. 31. Exod. xiii.

17. Comp. verse 5.)  ‘As they are the most profitable witnesses, which

preach to us Jesus Christ; even so, the most exquisite deceivers are

they, who under the shadow of religion do set forth men's traditions.'‡

 

26. In the fear of the Lord is strong confidence: and his children shall

                                     have a place of refuge.

            "Fear hath torment." (1 John, iv. 18. Acts, xxiv. 25.) It is the

trembling of the slave (Rom. viii. 15); the dread of wrath, not of sin.

There is no confidence here. It is pure selfishness. It ends in self.

There is no homage to God. But the true fear of God a holy, happy

(See Ps. cxii. 1; xxxiii. 18; cxlvii. 11), reverential principle; not that

which "love casts out" (1 John, iv. 18), but which love brings in. It.

is reverence tempered with love. We fear, because we love.  We

"fear his goodness" (Hos. iii. 5. Ps. cxxx. 4) no less than his justice;

not because we doubt his love, but because we are assured of it. (Heb.

xii. 28. 1 Pet. i. 17, 18.) We fear, yet we are not afraid. (Ps. cxii. 1, 7.)

The holiest and humblest is the most fixed and trusting heart. The

fear of man produces faintness. (Chap. xxix. 25. Jonah, i. 3. Gal. ii. 12.)

The fear of the Lord—such is the Christian paradox —emboldens. Its

child-like spirit shuts out all terrors of conscience, all forebodings of

eternity. Confidence—strong confidence—issues out of it. Abraham

sacrificed his son in the fear of God; yet fully confident, "that God was

able to raise him up from the dead." (Gen. xxii. 12, with Heb. xi. 17-19.)

 

    * Bishop HORNE's Sermon on the Great Assize.

    Lavater and Scott in loco.             ‡  Cope in loco.

 

188          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

The fear of God led the Babylonish captives with unshaken confidence

into the fiery furnace. (Dan. iii. 16-18.) And thus does the child of

God, while walking in godly fear, rejoice in confidence, even in the most

frowning dispensation.1  His covenant privilege covers him;2 "and

that wicked one toucheth him not."3

            And how happy is the change wrought on our profession! Before,

as criminals, we fled from God—now, as his children, we "flee to him

—to hide us." (Gen. iii. 8, with Ps. cxliii. 9) The atonement, which

has "made an end of sin;" the righteousness, which hath brought in

the sunshine of favour; the intercession which maintains our standing

of acceptance—this is our ground of confidence, strong as death,

stronger than hell. (Rom., viii. 31-39.)  Yes—if heaven and earth

shake, God hath ordained and secured, that his children shall have a place

of refuge, such as they need, and when they need (Ps. xlvi. 1; xxviii. 3.

Isa. xxxii. 2) when the enemy is most strongly assaulting (Ps. lvi.

1-4. Isa. xxv. 4); at the last extremity, when every other refuge shall

have been swept away. (Isa. xxviii. 16, 17.) Oh! does not every act

of faith strengthen our confidence, and realize more sensibly the peaceful

security of our refuge? (Chap. i. 33; xviii. 10. Isa. xxxii. 18, 19.) But

remember— nothing short of a full application of the atonement can

establish our confidence, and deliver us from slavish fear and uncertainty.

 

27. The fear of the Lord is a fountain of life, to depart from the snares of

                                                      death.

            How glowing is this Divine principle! refreshing like the springs

of Canaan; 4 full of life,5 temporal,6 spiritual,7 eternal.8 It is the

influence of the heavenly Comforter, as a fountain  "springing up into

everlasting life." (John, iv. 14.) Its preserving tendency is invaluable.

It is always connected with the fear of sin (Chap. iii. 7; xvi. 6), as

grieving our most beloved friend, and separating from our only happi-

ness; while it keeps us from the snares of death (Eccles. vii. 26), "the

end and wages of sin." (Rom. vi. 23.) How complete then is its

application!  Not only is it a refuge from danger, but a fountain of life.

Not only does Christian confidence open a cover from the guilt, but its

holy influence roots out the power, of sin. For among the countless

throng of the redeemed not one finds a cover, from condemnation, who

is not renovated unto spiritual life. Thus does this invaluable grace

flow with the full streams of gospel blessing. How much of that

worldliness that soils our profession, and of the restraint that contracts

our spiritual joy, may be traced to the sparing or defective application

of this Christian principle!

 

1 Job, 1. 1, with xiii. 15. Mic. vii. 7-9. Heb. iii. 16-19.        2 Jer. xxxii. 40.

3 1 John, v. 18. Comp. chap. iii. 21-26; xix. 23.                4 Deut. viii. 7. Josh. xv. 19.

5 Chap. xxii. 4.                            6 Chap. x. 27.              7 Chap. xix. 23. Mal. iv. 2.

8 Ps. viii. 17.


                                       CHAP. XIV. 28, 29.                                        189

 

28. In the multitude of people is the king's honour; but in the want of

                            people is the destruction of the prince.

            The Bible is a book for all. Even the King is interested in it, and

was commanded to treasure it. (Dent. xvii. 18.) It describes him as

a curse or a blessing to his people, as he is led by his own caprice

(1 Kings, xii. 13), or directed by Divine wisdom. (2 Chron. ix. 8.) ‘He

is not appointed for luxury or for pleasure; but that as a Head he may

preside over his members; as a Shepherd, he may care for his flock; as

a tree, he may nourish those who dwell under his shadow.'*  In the

multitude of people is his honour. They are the stay and strength of his

kingdom.  In the want of people is his destruction. His revenue fails.

His, strength is enfeebled. His enemies take advantage of his weak-

ness. (2 Kings, xiii. 4-7.) His interests and his people's are one. In

promoting their happiness, the prince secures his own honour. (Ps. lxxii.)

If he be the father of his numerous family, he will always have "a

quiver full of arrows to meet his enemies in the gate." (Ib. cxxvii.)

How great then is the honour of our heavenly King in the countless multi-

tude of his people!  How overwhelmingly glorious will it appear, when

the completed number shall stand before his throne (Rev. vii. 9, 10)

each the medium of reflecting his glory (2 Thess. i. 10); each with a

crown to cast at his feet (Rev. iv. 10, 11), and a song of everlasting joy

to tune to his praise! (Ib. v. 9.)

 

29. He that is slow to wrath is of great understanding: but he that is

                        hasty (short, marg.) of spirit exalteth, folly.

            The world judge very lightly of a hasty spirit, except when it

touches themselves. ‘It is a fit of passion, soon over and forgotten.'

But does God judge so? See how his word stamps the native rooted

principle. It is "giving place to the devil;1 grieving the Holy

Spirit;"2 contrary to the mind and example of Christ;3 inconsistent

with the profession of the Gospel;4 degrading human nature;5 a work

of the flesh, that shuts out from heaven,6 and condemns to hell?

Surely then to be slow to wrath--such a fruitful source of sin and

misery — is a proof of great understanding. (Chap. xx. 11; xx. 3. Jam.

iii. 17.) It is as if we felt our just dignity, and high obligations.

But too often, instead of being slow to wrath, the spirit is hasty, and

finds a short way to wrath. It is as tinder to every spark of provoca-

tion, and at one step hurries into the midst of wrath.  There is

often a sourness of spirit, that sits upon men, by which they are

 

 1 Eph. iv. 26, 27.           2 Ib. verse 30.             3 Matt. xi. 29. Phil. 11.3-6. 1 Pet. ii. 23.

 4 Col. iii. 8, 12, 13.        5 Chap. xvii. 12; xxv. 8 ; xxix. 20.

 6 Gal. v. 19-21.             7 Matt. v. 22.

   * Geier.

  1 Kings, iv. 20. 2 Chron. xvii. 14-19. Yet this honour had well nigh proved the de-

struction of the prince in the chastisement of his pride. 2 Sam. xxiv.


190        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

angry at they know not what; lighting into a flame at the most

trifling matters, such as in cooler moments we shall be ashamed at

having contended for. Terrible flames have arisen from these trifling

sparks.*  This is indeed exalting folly on an eminence to be seen by all.

(Chap. iii. 35.) Yet too often passion serves instead of law and reason,

and this folly is deemed high-mindedness and proper spirit. Oh! it is

a mercy to be delivered from the standard of this world, and to live,

act, and judge by the standard of God and his word.

            But let the children of God remember, that a hasty spirit con-

demned the meekest of men. (Ps. cvi. 32, 33.)  Never was folly more

exalted, than by the fretful selfishness of a prophet of the Lord. (Jonah,

iv.) The gentlest spirit needs to be cast into a deep mould of lowliness

and love for communion with God. (Isa. lvii. 15. 1 John, iv. 16.) Who

can plead inability to resist?  Has not God given understanding to

shew the temper; reason to govern it; his Word and Spirit to crucify

it? Realize our obligations to sovereign grace, as the effective disci-

pline for this baneful propensity. (Jam. i. 18, 19.)

 

30. A sound heart is the life of the flesh: but envy the rottenness of the

                                                     bones.

            Many will admit religion to be good for the soul. But they con-

ceive its fancied gloom to be injurious to the body. The wise man,

however, teaches, that it is the life of the flesh. (Chap. iii. 7, 8.) And

surely a sound heart, freed from corroding passions, and imbued with

Christian habits, though it will not bring immortality, must be

eminently conducive to health. The contrast, however, here distin-

guishes a sound heart by the absence of selfishness,‡ and rejoicing in

another's happiness or honour. (Num. xi. 29.) Envy, on the other hand, is

wounded by our neighbour's prosperity. (Gen. xxvi. 14. 1 Sam. xviii. 9.)

His ruin, or at least his injury, would give pleasure. It sickens at hearing

of his praises, and repines at his very virtues. Something is always

wrong in his conduct, something at least, which, if it does not deserve

blame, greatly detracts from his intolerable praise. This evil is indeed

the deadliest fruit of selfishness. Nothing flourishes under its shade.

(Jam. iii. 16.) Often is it a fretting sickness (Esth. vi. 6, 12), or a

pining despondency (Ps. cxii. 10), like the destruction of the bodily

system by the rottenness of the bones.  'Truly'-- as Bishop Hall

observes —‘this vice is executioner enough to itself!'§ Such a hell

does the man carry in his own bosom!  Alas! that this plant should

be the growth of our own soil.||  So contrary is it to the mind of Christ

 

   * See on verse 17.

   The soul disburdened of passions and perturbations, helpeth strength and liveliness

of body very much.--DIODATI.

     ‡ ‘Cor senator' SCHULTENS—a benevolent heart.

     § Sermon on Rom. xii. 2.—Works, v. 251.             || Mark, vii. 22, ‘evil eye,' James, iv. 5.


                                           CHAP. XIV. 31, 32.                                  191

 

(Rom. xiii. 13), and to the spirit of his gospel. (II Cor, xiii. 4.) So

surely will it exclude from heaven! (Gal. v. 21.)

 

31. He that oppresseth the poor reproacheth his Maker: but he that

                       honoureth him hath mercy on the poor.

Are not the poor no less than the rich "made in the image of God?"

(Gen. ix. 6.) Both "meet together" before their Maker without respect

of persons. (Chap. xxii. 2. Job, xxxi. 15.) Both carry the same undying

principle in their bosom. Both sink to the same humiliating level of

death. Both rise to the same eminence of immortality. Besides--

have not the poor a special interest in, the Gospel?1 Was not the

Gospel first spread by the poor?2 Has not the voluntary poverty of

the Son of God for us put high honour upon the lowly condition?3

Then what ground is there to oppress the poor, as if they were of a

lower grade than ourselves? This involves the guilt of reproaching our

Maker. (Chap. xvii. 5.) It is slighting his own work; despising his

own ordinance (Deut. xv. 11), and charging him with injustice, as if he

had formed the poor to be the footstool of their oppressors. (1 Sam. ii. 7.)

Would we honour God? We must not only refrain from oppressing;

but we, must have mercy on the poor. Sure and large is the interest of

this mercy (Chap. xix. 17. Ps. xli. 1) in the case of the Lord's poor.

High indeed is the privilege, and everlasting the recompense, of

honouring the Saviour in his own person. (Matt. xxv. 40.)

 

32. The wicked is driven away in his wickedness: but the righteous hath

                                          hope in his death.

            We cannot judge men by their outward condition, for "there is one

event to the righteous and to the wicked." (Eccles. ix. 2.) Such a judg-

ment would often throw the balance on the wrong side. (Ps. lxxiii. 12.)

The standard of the world is not less erroneous. While men rarely

give an unqualified commendation of their neighbours in mutual

intercourse; yet—as respects God--all are good enough for heaven.

A hope is entertained of the most criminal, that they, will be taken to

mercy at last. And thus the distinctive terms — righteous and wicked

--so confounded, and brought so near each other, that there is

little meaning in either.

            But now let us turn to this striking picture before us, which sweeps

away all human standards. Eternity is here realized before us—the

wicked and the righteous— each "going to his own place." (Acts, i. 25.)

Let us ponder the sight with deep-toned solemnity. 0 my soul, "make

thy calling sure!  "The wicked includes a diversified mass of character.

Many are amiable, useful, and in a variety of ways exelmplary. Others

 

     1 Matt. xi. 5. Jam. ii. 5. Ps. lxviii. 10.              2 Matt. xxviii. 191, 20. Acts, iv. 13.

     3 Luke, ii. 7. Phil. ii. 7. 2 Cor. viii. 9. Matt. viii. 20.


192               EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

are Absorbed in vanity; or they wear themselves away by the lamp of

study; or they are given up to selfish indulgence. But whatever be

the external shape or feature, the stamp is every way broad--"forget-

fulness of God"--and the condemnation sealed--"turned into hell."

(Ps. ix. 17.)

            Truly is the wicked pictured as driven away in his wickedness. He

is dragged out of life, like a criminal to execution; torn away from his

only heaven here, with no joyous heaven beyond. (Job, xviii. 18;

xxvii. 21.) Dreadful beyond imagination to the thus forced out of the

body, to die a violent death. Fain would he stay. But he cannot. He

cannot live. He dares not die. Sometimes he departs with a horror

that no words can paint. Hell is manifestly begun on this side eter-

nity. (1 Sam. xxviii. 15.) He is driven out of a world, which has

cheated and damned his soul for ever. And even where he has “no

bands in his death, but his strength is firm” (Ps. lxxiii. 4), where do we

hear of "a desire to depart?" (Philip. i. 23.) Though he may fall

asleep as softly as lambs, he will wake to live for ever "with the devil

and his angels." His few moments of peace are only the respite from

hopeless, never-ending torments. His wickedness was his element in

life. It will cleave to him still, the sting of the undying worm, the fuel

of unquenchable fire.

            But is the righteous driven away?  He dies by his own consent. It

is a glad surrender, not a forcible separation. (Ps. xxxi. 5.) The taber-

nacle is not rent or torn away, but “put off.” (2 Pet. i. 14.) He can

take death by his cold hand, and bid him welcome.  ‘I can smile on

death'—said a dying saint —‘because my Saviour smiles on me.'

There, is courage to face "the King of terrors," and delight in look-

ing homeward to his God.* There is loveliness and sunshine in his

death, such as flashes conviction upon the most hardened conscience.

(Nuns. xxiii. 10.) The righteous hath hope in his death. His death is

full of hope. Job pierced his dark cloud of sorrow with this joyous hope.1

David rested his way-warn spirit upon the Rock of salvation.2 Stephen

anchored within the vail, undisturbed by the volley of stones without.3

Paul triumphed in the crown, as if it was already on his head.4  And

hear we not daily "the voice from heaven," assuring to us the "blessed-

ness of them that die in the Lord?" (Rev. xiv. 13.) Praise to our

Immanuel! 'When thou hadst overcome the sharpness of death, thou

didst open the kingdom of heaven to all believers.' By thee as the

way to the Kingdom we go freely, gladly, out of life. We go to what

we love, to our native home, to our Saviour's bosom, to our rest, our

 

   1 Job, xix. 25-27.         2 2 Sam. xxiii. 5.            3 Acts, vii. 55-60.    4 2 Tim. iv. 6-8. 2 Cor. v. 1.

            * 2 Cor. v. 8. qar]r[ou?men—undaunted boldness. Eu]dokou?men—we are well pleased.

—Comp. Matt. iii. 17.

            Te Deum.


                                               CHAP. XIV. 33.                            193

 

crown, our everlasting joy. "Now, Lord, what wait I for? I have

waited for thy salvation, 0 Lord."*

 

33. Wisdom resteth in the heart of him that hath understanding: but that

                     which is in the midst of fools is made known.

            Often does the wise man spew the blessing of wisdom on the lips.

(Chap. x. 11, 20, 21; xv. 2, 7.) Here we trace it to its home. It flows

from the head, and rests in the heart. Thus did it rest without measure

in the humanity of Jesus (John, iii. 34); and most glorious was its

manifestation.1 When it rests in our hearts, incalculable is its value, as

a fixed principle. It preserves us from the tossing of "divers and

strange doctrines," and gives us "the good thing of a heart established

with grace." (Heb. xiii. 9.) We see now the vital difference between

speculation and experience; between the convictions of the judgment

and the movement of the will.

            It differs widely from mere worldly disputation. This--as Bishop

Taylor observes — ‘covers no vices, but kindles a great many. Though

men esteem it learning, it is the most useless learning in the world.'

True wisdom, while it fixes its rest, sets up its throne, in the heart. All

is therefore Christian order and holiness.

            But there is another fountain always bubbling up.2 The fool's mul-

titude of words,3 selfish indulgence,4 uncontrolled passions,5 make mani-

fest what is in the midst of him.6  Let him stand out as a warning

beacon against display, self-conceit, self-ignorance. Never let our

prayers cease, until He who is the Wisdom of God (1 Con i. 24) "takes

his rest in our hearts." Have we received the precious gift? Then let

us seek the increase by a close union with him, and an entire depend-

ence upon him. (Ib. ver. 30.)

 

   1 Luke, ii. 47, 52; iv. 22. Matt. xxii. 46. John, vii. 46.

   2 Chap. xv. 2, 28; xxix. 11.           3 Eccles. v. 3; x. 14.             4 1 Sam. xxv. 10.

   5 1 Sam. xx. 30-34. 1 Kings, xix. 1, 2. Comp. ver. 16; xii. 16.

    6 Chap. x. 9; xii. 23; xiii. 16; xviii. 2. Eccles. x. 3.

 * Ps. xxxix. 7. Gen. xlix. 18. Does not this text clearly prove that, while "life and

immortality were brought to light by the gospel" (2 Tim. i. 10), the dawn of the day

beamed upon the Old Testament saints? What could this hope of the righteous be, but the

consummating prospect of the Gospel? Bishop Warburton (Div. Leg. B. vi § 3) expounds.

‘that they shall be delivered from the most imminent danger.' That sagacious mind could

never have confounded two things so essentially distinct, as hope in death, and hope of

escape from death had it not been necessary to subserve a favourite hypothesis. Equally

satisfactory and beautiful is the note of a learned German critic —'A splendid testimony of

the knowledge of the Old Testament believer in a future life. The wicked in this calamity

is agitated with the greatest terror. He knows not where to turn. But the godly in this

last evil has no fear. He knows to whom to flee, and where he is going.'—DATHE in loco

Again—‘He (the righteous) dieth in God's grace, and in an fissured confidence of the salva-

tion of his soul, and of the glorious resurrection of his body.'—DIODATI.

   Via Intelligentiae--Preached before the University of Dublin.


194            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

34. Righteousness exalteth a nation: but sin is a reproach to any people.

            If it be not beneath statesmen to take lessons from the Bible, let

them deeply ponder this sound political maxim, which commends itself

to every instinct of the unsophisticated mind; Indeed it would be a

strange anomaly in the Divine administration, if the connection be-

tween godliness and prosperity, ungodliness and misery, established in

individual cases, should not obtain in the multiplication of individuals

into nations. The Scripture records however--confirmed by the result

of impartial and extended observation—clearly prove this to be the

rule of national, no less than of personal, dispensation. The annals of

the chosen people, as they were a righteous or sinful nation, are marked by

corresponding exaltation or reproach.* Not the wisdom of policy, extent

of empire, splendid conquests, flourishing trade, abundant resources—

but righteousness—exalteth a nation. It is both ‘he prop to make it sub-

sist firm in itself, and a crown to render it glorious in the eyes of others.'

Greece in her proud science; Rome in the zenith of her glory—both

were sunk in the lowest depths of moral degradation. Their true

greatness existed only in the visions of poesy, or the dream of philosophy.

Contrast the influence of righteousness, bringing out of the most debased

barbarism a community, impregnated with all the high principles, that

form a nation's well-being.§ Thus to Christianize, is to regenerate, the

community; to elevate it to a more dignified position; to exalt the

nation (Deut. xxvi. 16-19), and that, not with a sudden flash of shadowy

splendour, but with solid glory, fraught with every practical blessing.

But sin is a reproach to any people. No nation is so low, as not to sink

low under it; while to the mightiest people, it is a blot in their

escutcheon, that no worldly glory can efface. What an enemy is an

ungodly man to his country! Loudly as he may talk of his patriotism,

and even though God should make him an instrument of advancing

her temporal interest; yet he contributes, so far as in him lies, to her

deepest reproach.

 

   * Exaltation, Deut. xxviii. 13. Josh. x. 42. 1 Kings, iv. 20-24. 2 Chron. xvii. 2-5, 11, 12;

xxxii. 22, 23. Reproach, Dent. xxviii. 43, 44. Judg. ii. 715. 2 Kings, x. 31, 32; xviii.

11, 12. 2 Chron. xv. 2-6; xxxvi. 11-17. Jer. vii. 29. See the name of reproach given by God

himself. Isa. i. 10; lvii. 3. Hos. i. 6-9. Zeph. ii. 1. Comp. Wisd. v. 23.

    Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on Erod. xxiii. 1-3. Even an heathen sage spoke of moral

righteousness—e]rma polewj—the pillar and support of the city. —PLATO de Legibus, book

vi. ‘Those princes and commonwealths, who would keep their governments entire and

uncorrupt, are, above all things, to have a care of religion and its ceremonies, and preserve

them in due veneration. For in the whole world there is npt a greater sign of imminent

ruin, than when God and his worship are despised.' Such was the testimony of the infidel

and profligate politician — Machiavel. — Discourses on Livy.

   ‡ Rom. i. 22-32, was a picture of the heathen world in the best ages of refinement.

   § The Missionary Records of New Zealand and the South Sea furnish ample proof of

this statement.


                                         CHAP. XIV. 35.                                   195

 

Beloved Britain! nation highest in the profession of righteousness!

For thee we "rejoice with trembling." The combined effort of a little

band, to promote the honour of the Sabbath;*  to resist the encroach-

ments of Popery; to enlarge the usefulness and efficiency of the Church;

to train the young in the sound principles of the Gospel; to circulate

the word and preaching of the gospel to the ends of the earth —this is

thy national exaltation.  But the evil example among the Heathen,‡ the

accredited influence of Romish heresy:§ the flood of infidelity, lawlessness, and

ungodliness; the want of a full recognition of God in thy public acts—this is thy

reproach. Let the little remnant in the midst of thee remember their high

responsibility. (Matt. v. 13.)  Let them take care, that their personal and relative

profession add to the righteousness, not to the sin, of the nation. Let them plead

for their country's true prosperity with humiliation, faith, and constancy.||  Let

them labour for her exaltation with more entire union of heart.

 

35. The king's favour is towards a wise servant: but his wrath is against

                                      him that causeth shame.

            The administration of the wise servant is often the working cause of

national exaltation. (2 Chron. xxiv. 1-16.)  The king's favour towards

him1 is therefore the rule of sound policy. Not less so is his wrath

against him that causeth shame (Esth. vii. 6-10) ‘to the office which he

beareth, and to the Prince's choice.' ¶

            Thus is it with the great King. All of us are his servants, bound

to him by the highest obligations;2 animated by the most glowing

encouragements.3 All of us have our responsibilities, our talents, our

work, our account. Towards "the faithful and wise servant," who has

traded with his talents, who has been diligent in his work, and who is

ready for his account—his favour will be infinitely condescending and

honourable. (John, xii. 26.)  But against him that causeth shame--

 

   1 Gen. xli. 38-40. Dan. vi. 3. Comp. chap. xvi. 13; xxii. 29.

   2 Ps. cxvi. 16. 1 Cor. vi. 19, 20 ; vii. 23.            3 Matt. xxv. 21, 23; xxiv. 44-46.

* See how heavily the honour of the Sabbath weighs in the scale of national dispensa-

tion. Neh. xiii. 15-18. Isa. Iviii. 13, 14. Jer. xvii. 24-27. Ezra, xx. 15-24.

Mr. Addison, in one of his papers, after drawing a lively picture of the procession of

children on a day of thanksgiving for the triumphs of the Queen's arms, gives his decided

testimony, that these unprecedented victories were God's national' blessing for the religious

instruction of the poor. This was the testimony of a Secretary of State.— Guardian, No. 105.

‡  Ezra, xxxvi. 20-23 Rom. ii. 23.  ‘What a God must he be'—said a poor Indian of

the Spaniards—‘who had such bloody men for his servants and children!'

§ What must be the national guilt connected with the annual dedication of 100,000 l. of

our revenue (including the ungodly grant to Maynooth) to the support of Popery! Who

that receives implicitly the Scripture testimony, Rev. xviii. 4, must not tremble at the

consequence of our nation madly going into Babylon, instead of coming out of her?  Expe-

diency may plead plausibly. But Burke's golden maxim is the soundest policy—'What is

morally wrong can never be politically right.'

|| What a pattern does Dan. ix. furnish for this exercise of Christian patriotism!

¶ Diodati.


196        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

reflecting upon his Master, neglectful of his work, and unprepared for

his account—his wrath will be tremendous and eternal. (Matt. xxv.

24-30.) What will the solemn day of reckoning bring to me? May

I--may we all--be found wise servants to the best of Kings! looking

with confidence for his welcome!

 

                                          CHAPTER XV.

 

1. A soft answer turneth away wrath, but grievous words stir up anger.

 

WHAT a mine of practical wisdom is this Book of God! Let us ponder

this valuable rule for self-discipline, family peace, and Church unity.

Scripture often illustrates the different effects of the tongue. The soft

answer is the water to quench*--Grievous words are the oil to stir up,

the fire. And this is, alas! man's natural propensity, to feed rather

than to quench, the angry flame, We yield to irritation; retort upon

our neighbour; have recourse to self-justification; insist upon the last

word; say all that we could say; and think we "do well to be angry."

(Jonah, iv. 9.) Neither party gives up an atom of the will. Pride and

passion on both sides strike together like two flints; and “behold! how

great a matter a little fire kindleth!”  (Jam. iii. 5.) Thus there is the

self-pleasing sarcasm; as if we had rather lose a friend, than miss a

clever stroke. All this the world excuses as a sensitive and lively

temper. But the gospel sets before us our Saviour's example;1 imbues.

with his spirit;2 and imparts that blessed "charity, that is not easily

provoked;"3 and therefore is careful not to provoke a chafed or wounded

spirit. If others begin, let us forbear from continuing the strife.‡

'Patience is the true peace-maker.'§ Soft and healing words 4 gain a

double victory—over ourselves 5 and our brother.6

 

2. The tongue of the wise useth knowledge aright: but the mouth of fools

                                        poureth forth foolishness.

            Before we had the tongue of love. Here is the tongue of wisdom.

 

1 Pet. ii. 23.         2 2 Cor. iii. 18. Philip. ii. 3-5.                  3 1 Cor. xiii. 5.

4 Chap. xxv. 15. Comp. Eccles. vii. 8. Jam. iii. 17, 18.      5 Chap. xvi. 32.

6 Rom. xii. 19-21.

* See Jacob with Esau, Gen. xxxii. xxxiii.: Aaron with Moses, Lev. x. 16-20: the

Reubenites with their brethren, Josh. xxii. 15-34: Gideon with the men of Ephraim,

Judg. viii. 1-3: David with Saul, 11 Sam. xxiv. 9-21; xxvi. 21: Abigail with David,

xxv. 23-32.

See the instances of Jephthah, Judg. xii. 1-6: Saul, 1 Sam. xx. 30-34: Nabal,

xxv. 10-12: Rehoboam, 1 Kings, xii. 12-15: the Apostles, Acts, xv. 39. Comp. chap.

xxx. 33.

‡ Chap. xvii. 14. Even a Heathen could give this excellent advice—‘Let dissension

begin from others, but reconciliation from thee.'—SENECA.

§ Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on Rom. xv. 5.


                                         CHAP. XV. 2, 3.                                             197

 

The tongue chews the man. The wise commands his tongue. The fool

—his tongue commands him. He may have a mass of knowledge in

possession. But from the want of the right use, it runs to waste.

Wisdom is proved, not by the quantum of knowledge, but by its right

application. Observe "the Spirit of knowledge resting upon our Divine

Master."1 In condescending to the ignorance of the people;2 in

commanding their respect;3 in silencing the gainsayers;4 in alluring

sinners to himself5--how did his wise tongue use knowledge aright!

Thus did his great Apostle give to all the same knowledge, but wisely—

not the same form or gradation. (1 Cor. iii. 2.) Instead of exasperating

his Heathen congregation by an open protest, he supplied their acknow-

ledged defect, by bringing before them the true God, "whom they were

ignorantly worshipping." (Acts, xvii. 23.) He pointed an arrow to

Agrippa's conscience, by the kindly admission of his candour and

intelligence. (Ib. xxvi. 27-29.) This right use of knowledge distinguishes

the "workman approved of God, and that needeth not to be ashamed."

(2 Tim. ii. 15.) The want of it often gives out. truth so loosely and

unsuitably, as to open, rather than to shut, the mouth, of the gainsayer;

rather to bring discredit upon the truth, than conviction to the adver-

sary. Specially will the tongue of the wise direct a right application of

knowledge to those, who have newly entered the path of God. May we

not sometimes in our present stature, forget our former feeble infancy?

If now we "strike our roots as Lebanon," was it not once with us only

"the least of all seeds?" (Hos. xiv. 5. Matt. xiii. 32.) Let our con-

siderate instruction pluck the thorn out of their tender feet, "lest that

which is lamed be turned out of the way; but rather let it be healed."

(Heb. xii. 13.)

            But to judge of the waters flowing from a fool's fountain; listen to

Baal's worshippers;6 Rabshakeh's proud boasting;7 the fretting mur-

murings of the people of God8 all pouring out foolishness. Oh! for a

large infusion of sound knowledge in the treasure-house within, that the

tongue may be at once disciplined and consecrated!

 

3. The eyes of the Lord are in every place, beholding the evil and the good.

            Adored be this All-seeing God!9 His inspection of the universe so

minute, exact, unwearied!10 The first mark of the apostacy was a dread

of his presence.11 The ungodly try to forget it,12 and often succeed in

banishing him out of their thoughts. (Ps. x. 4.) Yet in despite of all their

efforts to hide, he does see them. His eyes are in every place. Heaven,

hell, the secret places of the earth, are all open before him.13  He beholds

 

1 Isa. xi. 2.                          2 Mark, iv. 33.                      3 Matt. vii. 29. John, vii. 46.

4 Matt. xxii. 15-46.             5 Ib. xi. 28-30. John, iv. 1-26.  6 1 Kings, xviii. 26.

7 2 Kings, xviii. 26-29.        8 Num. xiv. 2-10; xvi.-13.       9 Ps. c1xxix. 1-6.

10 Jer. xxiii. 24. Ps. xi. 4.    11 Gen. iii. 8.                          12 Ps. x. 11. Ezra, viii. 12.

13 Verse 11. Ps. exxxix. 8.


198        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the evil; whether the king on his throne;1 or in his palace;2 or the

servant indulging his secret sin.3 Yes—he may shut out the sun from

his retreat, but he cannot shut out the eye of God, "from whom the

darkness hideth not."4 Reckless indeed is he to do or think what he

would hide from God; and then—such is the secret root of atheism!5

—thinking he can do so. (Isa. xxix. 15.)

            But his eyes also behold the good. He sees them in outward destitu-

tion,6 in secret retirement,7 in deep affliction.8  He pierces the prison

walls.9  He "covers their heads in the day of battle."10 He is with

them in the furnace,11 and in the tempest.12  His eye guides them as

their journeying God, and will guide them safe home;13 full of bless-

ing,14 protection,15 and support.16  ‘He fills hell with his severity,

heaven with his glory, his people with his grace.'

            But how shall I meet these eyes? As a rebel or as a child? Do

they inspire me with terror, or with love? Do I walk carefully under

their lively impressions? (Gen. xvii. 1.) Conscious corruption leads

me to shrink from the eyes of man. But oh! my God! I would lay

myself naked and open to thee. Search me; try me; shew me to myself.

Bring out my hidden iniquities, and slay them before thee. (Ps. cxxxix.

24.) How is the overwhelming thought of this piercing eye more

than counterbalanced by the view of the great High Priest, who covers

and cleanses all infirmities and defilements, and pleads and maintains

my acceptance notwithstanding all discouragement! (Heb. iv. 13, 14.)

 

4. A wholesome tongue (The healing of the tongue, marg.) is a tree of

                    life: but perverseness therein is a breach in the spirit.

            Wisdom is finely pourtrayed as a tree of life. (Chap. iii. 18.) So is

also the genial influence of the righteous (Chap. xi. 30)--here the

fruitfulness of this "little member." A high image of what it ought

to be; not negative, not harmless, but wholesome. As the salt, cast

into the spring, cleansed the bitter waters (2 Kings, ii. 21); so when

there is grace in the heart, there will be healing in the tongue. (Chap.

xii. 18.) "The speech will be with grace, seasoned with salt." (Col.

iv. 6.) Large indeed is the sphere, and abundant the blessing. When

employed in soothing the afflicted, calming the troubled waters with

words of peace, it creates a paradise around. It is not like ‘the thorny

bush, pricking and hurting those that are about us, but a fruitful tree--

a tree of life.'

 

1 Acts, xii. 23.                                       2 Dan. v. 5.                   3 2 Kings, v. 20.

4 Job, xxxiv. 21, 22. Jer. xvi. 17.             5 Ps. xiv. 1.                   6 Gen. xvi. 7, 13.

7 John, i. 48.                                          8 Exod. iii. 7. Ps. xci. 15.

9 Gen. xxxix. 21. 2 Chron. xxxiii. 12, 13. 10 Ps. cxl. 7.                  11 Dan. iii. 25.

12 Acts, xxvii. 23.                                   13 Ps. xxiii. 4; xlviii. 14. Isa. xlii. 16.

14 Gen, xxvi. 3.                                      15 2 Chron. xvi. 9. 1 Pet. iii. 12.   16 Isa. x1i. 10.

* Charnock.      LEIGHTON'S Exposition of the Ninth Commandment, vol. iv.


                                    CHAP. XV. 5, 6.                                       199

 

            But if the gracious tongue be healing, the evil tongue is wounding.

The meekest of men felt perverseness a breach in the spirit. (Num. xvi.

8-15.) The tongue of Job's friends broke "the bruised reed," which

needed to be bound up. (Job, xiii. 1-5.) Even our Beloved Lord, who

never shrunk from external evil, keenly felt the piercing edge of this

sword to his inmost soul. (Ps. lxix. 19, 20.) May "grace be poured

upon my lips," as upon my Divine Master's (Ib. xlv. 2), so that it may

be a wholesome tongue, full of blessing and of good fruits!  ‘Everlasting

benediction be upon that tongue, which spake, as no other ever did, or

could speak, pardon, peace, and comfort to lost mankind! This was

the tree of life, whose leaves were for the healing of the nations:*

 

5. A fool despiseth his father's instruction, but he that regardeth reproof

                                                is prudent.

            Alas! we cannot wonder at this folly. Remember the birth of

the fool, "as a wild ass's colt " (Job, xi. 12), despising discipline and

restraint. Yet subjection to parents is the law of nature, recognized by

the most uncivilized nations. Much more is it the law of God.  The

authority of parents is the authority of God. ‘The wayward resistance

of the ungodly will be fearfully scourged.' (1 Sam. ii. 22-25.) And

even the Christian penitent has felt the smart of the rod to the end of

life.‡  If example would put this folly to shame, do we not read of One

child, able to teach, yea to command, his parents, who yet exhibited

the lovely pattern of filial subjection?§ But pride must be broken

down, and the "clothing of humility" worn (1 Pet. v. 5), before the

child will see that his parents know better than himself, and that to

count their word law,—to "bear the yoke in his youth" (Lam. iii. 27),

—and to regard reproof, is the path of prudence (Verses 31, 32; xix. 20),

no less than of honour. (Chap. xiii. 18.) Solomon's wisdom, though the

special gift of God, was doubtless connected with his filial regard to his

father's instruction. (1 Chron. xxii. 11-13; xxviii. 9, 20.) Will those,

who despise their earthly father's instruction, listen to their Heavenly

Father? How surely therefore will this untractable spirit exclude from

the Kingdom of God! (Matt. xviii. 3, 4.)

 

6. In the house of the righteous is much treasure: but in the revenues of

                                          the wicked is trouble.

 

            The comparison between the righteous and the wicked, always turns

in favour of the righteous. Even in treasure (Verses 16, 17; iii. 33),

 

 * Bishop HORNE's Sermon on the Tree of Life.

  Exod. xx. 12. Eph. vi. 1, 2. Comp. Deut. xxi. 18—21. Timh>n, kaqaper qeoij.

ARIST. Eth. ix. 2. E. Comp. viii. 14. PLATO De Leg. Lib. iv.

See Memoirs of Mrs. Hawkes, p. 524. —A most instructive biography.

   § Luke, ii. 49-51. `Who was subject? And to whom? God to men.'—BERNARD,

Homily i.

 

200             EXPOSITION OF TIE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the world's idol, he exceeds. For though his house may be destitute of

money, yet is there much treasure; often unseen (2 Cor. vi. 10), yet

such, that the revenues of the wicked, compared with it, sink into nothing.

Divine Teaching alone can convey any just apprehension of it. (1 Cor.

ii. 9.) Even eternity cannot fully grasp it; as throughout eternity it

will be progressively increasing. 'Drop millions of gold, boundless

revenues, ample territories, crowns and sceptres; and a poor con-

temptible worm lays his One God against all of them.'*  The treasures

of the wicked are too much for their good, and too little for their lust.

They cannot satisfy their senses, much less their souls. (Eccles. v. 10.)

They may "take wings" (Chap. xxiii. 5) at any moment; and, while

they continue, unlike the treasures of the righteous (Chap. x. 22), they

are burdened with trouble. (Eccles. iv. 6.) But is it not the crown of

the Christian's crown, and the glory of his glary, that his portion is so

full, that he cannot desire more? All the excellences of the creation

are only dark shadows of its more substantial excellency. What a

mercy to be delivered from the idolatrous bait, so ruinous alike to our

present peace and eternal welfare! (1 Tim. vi. 9, 10.) But a greater

mercy still, to be enriched with that treasure, beyond the reach of harm,

that raises to heaven; a portion in God, his favour, his image, his

everlasting joy.

 

7. The lips of the wise disperse knowledge: but the heart of the foolish

                                               doeth not so.

            The "right use of knowledge" is, first to "lay it up" in a store-

house (Chap. x. 14); then out of the store-house to disperse it. The

sower scatters the seed in the furrow, and calculates upon a propor-

tionate harvest. (2 Cor. ix. 6.) Thus the lips of the wise disperse the

precious seed, "giving a portion to seven, and also to eight;" not dis-

couraged by trifling difficulties, but "sowing morning and evening,"

and committing the result to God. (Eccles. xi. 2, 4, 6.) Our Lord thus

dispersed the heavenly knowledge of his gospel. (Matt. iv. 23; ix. 35.)

He commanded his Apostles to scatter the seed through the vast field

of the world. (Matt. xxviii. 19, 20.) The persecution of the Church

was overruled for this great end. (Acts, viii. 4.) The Reformers widely

dispersed their treasures both by preaching and writing, and rich indeed

was the fruit. Do we remember, that our gifts and talents are the

riches of the Church (1 Cor. xii. 7. 1 Pet. iv. 10); that, like our father

Abraham, we are blessed, not for our own sakes, but to "be a blessing?"

(Gen. xii. 2.) And does not conscience speak of the waste of many,

even important, opportunities of intercourse with our fellow-sinners or

fellow-Christians, when not an atom of knowledge has been dispersed?

We contend for no eccentric irregularity, no passing of our proper

 

       * Bishop HOPKINS' Works, i. 43. Treatise on Vanity of the World.

 

 

                                               CHAP. XV.     8, 9                                      201

 

boundary, no entrenchment upon paramount obligations. But be care-

ful, lest in quenching unnatural fire, we inadvertently quench some

genuine spark of holy flame. Be mindful of small opportunities. The

careful cultivation of the smallest field ensures an abundant harvest.

The acceptance is not to the number, but to the improvement of the

talents; not noly "where much has been given;" but where we "have

been faithful in a few things." (Matt. xxv. 21.)

The sin of the wicked is not always, that they "pour out foolishness "

(Verse 2); but that they do not so. They neglect to disperse. If they

do not abuse their talent, they omit to improve it. If not blots, they

are blanks in the Church. If they do no harm, they do nothing. (Matt.

xxv. 25-28.) Indeed, they can disperse nothing from their empty store-

house. They can only trade with the trash of the world, not with the

commerce of substantial knowledge--The end of both is according to

their works--"Unto everyone that hath (actively improves) shall been

given, and he shall have abundance; but from him that hath not (uses

not) shall be taken away, even that which he hath." (Matt. xxv. 29.)

 

8.         The sacrifice of the wicked is an abomination to the Lord: but the prayer

of the upright is his delight. 9. The way of the wicked is an abomina-

tion unto the Lord: but he loveth him that followeth after righteousness.

Let the reader ponder this awful question 'What am I--what is

my service-when upon my knees before God? an abomination or a

delight! Man judges by acts; God by principles. The sacrifice of the

wicked, though it be part of God's own service, yet 'will be found in his

register in the catalogue of sins to be accounted for.'*  'At best little is

said or done, where nothing would be lost.  But it is "the sacrifice of

fools' (Eccles. v. 1)--heedless and unreflecting, performed without

interest, with the heart asleep. Nay more--where the heart is deli-

berately and habitually absent (Isa. xxix. 13)--it is the acting of a lie.

And whether it be smoothly fashioned to impose on man, or whether

it be forced by the sting of an awakened conscience--instead of pos-

sessing the virtue of a sacrifice, it is an insulting provocation; not

only vain (Matt. xv. 7-9), but abominable--yea abomination itself.

(Chap. xxi. 27.) That is wanting, "without which it is impossible

to please God; "the lack of which stamped the sacrifice of Cain as

an abomination. (Gen. iv. 3-5, with Heb. xi. 4.) It is a 'work, that doth

not flow from a lively faith, and therefore hath in it the nature of sin.' (Art. xiii.)

Not that prayer itself is a sin. 'It is,' as Archbishop Usher expounds

--‘a good duty, but spoiled in the carriage.'  And far indeed would

we be from discouraging the wicked from prayer. (Acts, viii. 22.)  We

 

     * Bishop HOPKINS' Works, ii. 481 Comp. lsa. lxvi. 3; Hag. ii. 12-41.

     Eighteen Sermons on Eph. ii 1.


202           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

would only press the awakening conviction, that it must be done in

God's order and way; else never can it find his acceptance.

But not only the sacrifice but the way, of the wicked; not only his

religion, but his common course, natural as well as moral, is abomi-

nation. (Chap. xxi. 4. Tit. i. 15.). All is the course of a rebel against

God. All his doings are the corrupt stream from a corrupt fountain. Awful,

indeed, is the thought of every step of life as being hateful to God!

Is he then finally rejected? Far from it. His desire to seek the

Lord would be the beginning of the prayer, that ensures acceptance.

The prayer of the upright, from its first, feeblest utterance, is not only

acceptable to the Lord, but his delight. (Cant. ii. 14; iv. 11. Dan. ix.23;

x. 12.) Here is that which brings acceptance--not the perfection, but

the simplicity of uprightness. The man feelingly knows his own defile-

ment. If he has not fathomed the depths of his corruptions, he has

made the discovery, that to him at least they are unfathomable. (Jer.

xvii. 9.) This consciousness of hidden sins only makes him more con-

cerned to tear them from their hiding-place. His sacrifice therefore is

that of truth, as contrasted with that of falsehood. That was the service

of the outer--this of the inner--man. That seems what it is not, and

covers what it is. This, “cometh to the light,” and "the deed is made

manifest," with all its infirmities, "that it is wrought in God." (John,

iii. 21.) This prayer of the upright is the Lord's delight. It is suited to

his own spiritual nature. "The Father seeketh such to worship him."

(Ib. iv. 23, 24.) The golden censer above (Heb. x. 19-22), and the

gracious intercession within (Rom., viii. 26, 27), combine with fragrant

odour before our God. Never could we faint in prayer, did we realize

more habitually this pure ground of acceptance. Not less pleasing to

him is the course of the upright.  He has given him a measure of

righteousness, and an effort for more. And though he fulfils it not, he

follows after it, cheered with the smile of his Father's gracious love.

(Chap. xxi. 21. Philip. iii. 12.)

 

10. Correction is grievous unto him that forsaketh the way: and he that

                                   hateth reproof shall die.

But is it not also "grievous for the present" to the child of God?

He knows his need of it, kisses the rod, bows his will, and reaps a

fruitful blessing. (Heb. xii. 11.) But grievous indeed is it to him that

forsaketh the way. He is humbled by force, not in spirit. He kicks at

it and like an untractable child under the rod, only increases his own

chastisement. There is no surer step to ruin than this hatred of reproof.*

 

* Chap. i. 30; v. II, 12, 23; xxix. 1; Pharaoh, Ex. x. 24-29; Ahab, 1 Kings, xviii. 11;

xxi. 20; xxii. 8, 31; Amaziab, 2 Chron. xxv. 15, 16, 27; Ahaz, xxviii. 22, 23; the Jews.

xxxvi. 15-17.  Jer. vi. 16-19.


                                                   CHAP. XV. 11.                                       203

 

How do "the spots of God's children" (2 Chron. xvi. 10) here warn us

--“Cease ye from man!" (Isa. ii. 22.)

But correction turns back him, who had forsaken the way. Then it

is grievous no more. Had not Manasseh more cause to bless God for

his fetters than for his crown, for his dungeon than for his palace?*

"This man was born there." We would always look hopefully at a

sinner under correction. For surely so long as the physician administers

the medicine, there is no ground for despondency.

Child of God! Dost not thou still need the correction, to perfect

thee for more difficult and refined obedience? This costly teaching

brings us on wonderfully. The Lord teach thee, when the thorn is in

the flesh, to pray for grace in the heart! (2 Cor. xii. 7.) Seek thy

Father's favour, more than thine own ease. Desire the sanctifying,

rather than the removal, of his rod. Mock him not by the empty

ceremonial of repentance. But in true penitence look up to thy smiter

to be thy healer (Hos. vi. 1); yet not till his correction has fully accom-

plished his gracious work. Lord! let me know the smart of thy rod,

rather than the eclipse of thy love. Show me thy love; then do with

me what thou wilt.

 

11. Hell and destruction are before the Lord: how much more, then, the

                                 hearts of the children of men.

Once more (Verse 3) behold we an Omniscient--Omnipresent God.

Hell and destruction; every recess of the vast Hades; the state of the

dead, and the place of the damned--are before the Lord, before his

eye; open to his cognizance. How much more, then, the hearts of the

children of  men (1 John, iii.20), unsearchable though they be! (Jer.

xvii. 9, 10.) No depth is there within, that he cannot fathom; no

manner of deceit so complicated, that he cannot track them. Words

are not necessary with him to lay open the heart. Aaron's rebellious

feelings were as cognizant to his eye as Moses's angry words. (Num.

xx. 12, 24.) The inward hypocrisy of his people was as open before

him, as if it had been stamped upon their foreheads. (Deut. v. 28, 29.

Zeph. i. 12.)

Yet what a mass of practical unbelief is there in this plain demon-

strative truth! For would men dare to indulge their vain thoughts,

their light notions, their trifles, their impurities, did they really believe

that the Lord searched their hearts? Would they attempt a forced

concealment from his eye (Isa. xxix. 15); as if outward service, lip-

worship, would avail, while the heart was cherishing its unrepented

sin? Would they not be afraid to think before him what they would

 

  * Chron. xxxiii. 11-13. Comp. David, Ps. cxix.. 67, 71: Ephraim, Jer. xxxi. 18-20:

the Prodigal, Luke, xv. 12-20.

  † Job, xxvi. 6. Pa. cxxxix.. 7, 8. Destruction, Heb. Abaddon. Comp. Rev. ix. 11


204        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

shrink from doing before men? Oh! is it not an awful moment in

privacy to stand the test of this searching eye? Awful indeed is the

thought to the idolatrous sinner, the lover of pleasure, distinction, or

low ambition. Thine heart is open before thy God. Never will he

stoop to occupy the second place there. Thy covering of deceit is

swept away. The refuges of lie are pierced and laid bare.

The conscious sinner shrinks from this appaling view. The believer

walks undismayed in the sight of this "consuming fire." His godly

fear is the exercise of filial confidence. (Heb. xii. 28, 29.) The sins,

that are opened to his Father's knowedge, are covered from his justice.

(Ib. iv. 13. Ps. xxxii. 1.) When he “finds the law, that when he would

do good, evil is present within him;" he can look up--"All my desire

is before thee." (Rom. vii. 21. Ps xxxviii. 9.) Thus does the Gospel

clothe the Divine attributes with light and love.

And see we not here a testimony to the Divine Glory of Immanuel?

For are not hell and destruction before him (Rev. i. 18) as his vast empire?

And did not he often prove his prerogative of searching the hearts of the

children of men; charging sin in the inner world, beyond the ken of

any, but the One all-seeing eye? And this indeed is the confidence of

his people. Each of them appeal to this Omniscient eye, in despite of

all accusing from the enemy--"Lord! thou knowest all things; thou

knowest that I love thee!" (John, xxi. 17. Rev. ii. 23.)

 

12. A scorner loveth not one that reproveth him: neither will he go

                                          unto the wise.

How different from David's spirit, thankful for the "kind smiting of

the righteous" (Ps. cxli. 5); and from the lovely humility of an Apostle,

who shewed before the Church his honour and love to his reprover!

(Gal. ii. 11-14, with 2 Pet. iii. 15.) Yet he had need to be wise with

“the wisdom that is from above" to give reproof aright. So closely

does the mixture of our own spirit cleave to every Christian exercise!

Not less grace and wisdom does it require, instead of revolting from our

Reprover, to go unto him, and ask the continuance of his faithful offices.

That most sensitive, delicate, and unvarying of all feelings, self-love--

has been wounded, and the wound is not easily healed. The scorner

has been his own flatterer so long, that he cannot bear to be brought

down to his proper level. The truth-telling friend therefore he counts

as his enemy. (Gal. iv. 15, 16.) He loveth not—yea--he hateth--one

that reproveth him,*  though before he might have reverenced him.

(Mark, vi. 17-20.) "The Pharisee derided" our Lord with external

scorn, when he struck at their right eye, and reproved their hypocrisy.

 

* Chap. ix. 8. 1 Kings, xxi. 20; xxii. 8. Amos, v. 10; vii. 10-13.

+ Luke, xvi. 13, 14.  ecemukthrizon, from mukthr, nostril--contempt shewn by the

nostrils--mussw, to blow the nose--'They blowed their nose at him.' See LEIGH'S Critica

Sacra, and PARKHURST on mukthrizw.


                                              CHAP. XV. 13                                         205

 

"Everyone that doeth evil hateth the light; neither cometh to the

light, lest his deeds should be reproved.” (John, iii. 20.)

 

13. A merry heart maketh a cheerful countenance, but by sorrow of the

                                heart the spirit is broken.

How close is the sympathy between the body and soul, though

framed of such opposite elements! A man's countenance is the index

of his spirit. In the sensation of joy, the heart sits smiling in the face,

and looks merrily out of the windows of the eyes.'*  Yet too often this

high exhilaration, this countenance lighted up, is a matter of sadness

rather than of pleasurable contemplation; as connected with a happi-

ness, that estranges the heart from God. Who has a true right to a

merry heart, but he that is walking in the joy of Divine acceptance?

(Ps. xxxii. 1, 2, 11.) This spring of joy lighted up Hannah's sorrowful

countenance into godly cheerfulness. (1 Sam. i. 18.) Stephen stood

before his judge, with his heavenly prospects beaming in his "angel

face." (Acts, vi. 15; vii. 55.) Everywhere does the hearty reception

of the gospel "give beauty for ashes," sunshine for gloom. (Isa. lxi. 3.)

Sad, indeed, is the contrast of a heart broken by worldly sorrow.

(1 Sam. xxviii. 16. 2 Cor. vii. 10.) Too often does a mischievous gloom

worm itself into the vitals of the child of God. (Chap. xviii. 14.)The

melancholy victim drags on a weary, heavy-laden existence, clouding

a distinct feature of his character (Philip. iii. 3), and one of the most

attractive ornaments of his profession.(Ps. xxxiii. 1. Philip. iv. 4.) His

hands slacken; his whole energies are paralyzed for, the work of God;

and he sinks into desponding apathy and indolence, as if he had taken

leave of life and the sun. (Chap. xvii. 22.)

Every effort should be made to sweep away this black hovering

cloud. Let sense and feeling be kept within their bounds; and the

Saviour's voice, encouraging confidence, will be practically regarded.

(lsa. l. 10.) Even our very "sighing and crying for the abominations

of the land" (Ezek. ix. 4) must not issue in heartless complaints, but,

rather stimulate to the diligent improvement of present opportunities.

Did we realize, as we ought, our present privilege, and grasp our eternal

prospects; no sorrow of the heart would break our spirit. 'I wonder

many times'--says Rutherford--'that ever a child of God should

have a sad heart, considering what his Lord is preparing for him.' The

gleam of the present sunshine is the earnest of what it will be, when--

as he again beautifully observes--'we shall be on the sunny side of

the Brae.'  Meanwhile the first step in religion is, not only beginning "

to be serious, but to be happy. To maintain our Christian balance,

 

  * Trapp in loco. This merriment, however, widely differs from the noisy mirth of the

ungodly. (Chap xiv. 13.) The word is of frequent use among our old writers, It is Foxe's

favourite description of the holy joys of the martyrs. Comp. Eccles. ix, 7.

    RUTHERFORD's, Letters.

 

206           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

even "godly sorrow" must be disciplined; lest it break the heart which

it was intended only to humble; lest it give advantage to the enemy,

and bring hindrance to the Church. (2 Cor. ii. 7.)

 

14. The heart of him that hath understanding seeketh knowledge, but the

                           mouth of fools feedeth on foolishness.

Observe the man of natural understanding. Every apprehension

quickens the thirst to seek knowledge. He is ready to learn from any

quarter, even from a child. He is all eye, all ear, all heart, for his

object. Much more will spiritual understanding stimulate the desire.

(Chap. i. 5; ix. 9.) Repress the appetite to be "wise above what is

written." But make vigorous effort to be wise to the full extent of the

Revelation. David, with his his attainments, was ever crying for

Divine Teaching.1 His wise son sought knowledge upon his knees,2 and

not less in the diligent habit of application.3 The Queen of Sheba,

"coming from the utmost parts of the earth;"4 Nicodemus and Mary,

"sitting at the feet of Jesus;"5 the Eunuch, journeying to Jerusalem;6

Cornelius and his company, drinking in the precious message of salva-

tion;7  the Bereans, carefully "searching the Scriptures"8--all these

shew the understanding heart, seeking a larger interest in the blessing.

Invaluable, indeed, is the gift. Warm affections need the discipline

of knowledge to form Christian consistency and completeness (Philip. i.

9. Ps. cxix. 66): seeking for wholesome food, not intoxicating draughts;

not deeming novelty the most desirable thing; but rather, with the

wise Sir M. Hale, desiring ‘to be impressed and affected, and to have

old and known truths reduced to experience and practice.'

But while the man of understanding is never satisfied with knowledge,

the fool is fully satisfied with folly. His brutish taste feeds upon foolish-

ness, as his meat and his drink. His spirit "is of the earth, earthly."

Young people! guard against this folly at every turn. Avoid trifling

amusements, frivolous reading, profane merriment. In religion, beware

of preferring empty speculations and disputings on matters indifferent,

to the rich pasture of the children of God. (Verse 21; Acts, xvii. 21.)

Let us all ponder the responsibility or "going on to perfection; that,

being of full age, we may have our senses exercised to discern both

good and evil." (Heb. vi. 1; v. 14)

 

15. All the days of the afflicted are evil: but he that is of a merry heart

                                     hath a continued feast.

Affliction, as the fruit and chastening of sin, is an evil. Hence all

the days of the afflicted are evil. (Gen. xlvii. 9. Ps. xc. 7-9.) Yet a solid

 

1 Ps. cxix.98-100, with 33, 34, &c.     2 1 Kings, iii. 5-10.                      3 Eccles. xii. 9, 10.

4 1 Kings. x. 1. Matt. xii. 42.               5  5 John, iii. 1, 2. Luke, x. 39.    6 Acts, viii. 28.

7 Ib. x. 33.                                            8 Ib. xvii. 11.


                                            CHAP. XV. 16, 17.                                        207

 

principle of inward satisfaction will bring real comfort in most trying

circumstances. Though therefore the abounding consolation of Christian

affliction does not blot out his penal character; yet the child of God is

not so miserable as he seems to be. (2 Cor. vi. 10.) The darkest of

these evil days can never make "the consolations of God small with

him."1 He can sing in the prison, as in a palace.2 He can "take

joyfully the spoiling of his goods."3 He can praise his God, when he

hath stripped him naked."4 He can rejoice in him as his portion in

earthly destitution.5 'Who is it'--said the heavenly Martyn in a

moment of faintness--'that maketh my comforts to be a source of

enjoyment? Cannot the same hand make cold, and hunger, and

nakedness, and peril, to be a train of ministering angels conducting

me to glory?'*

What real evil then can affliction bring? Or rather, what does it

bring, but many feast days'? (Eccles. ix. 7.) A few days' feasting would

soon weary the epicure. But here the merry heart hath a continual feast.

His temporal mercies are fraught with cheerfulness. And 'all his

trouble is but the rattling hail upon the tiles of his house,' not dis-

turbing his enjoyment. Fed with this heavenly portion, shall I not

thank my God, that he hath rooted me up from present satisfactions?

"Let me not eat of this world's dainties. Thou hast put gladness into

my heart, more than in the time that their corn and their wine increased."

(Ps. cxli. 4; iv. 6, 7.)

 

16.       Better is little with the fear of the Lord, than great treasure, and trouble

therewith. 17. Better is a dinner of herbs where love is, than a stalled

ox and hatred therewith.

Here are the sources of the merry heart--the fear of the Lord, and

love to man. And here also is the continual feast, so satisfying, that the

saint's little is better than the worldling's all.6 It is his Father's gift;7

the fruit of his Saviour's love;8 enjoyed by special promise,9 and

sweetened with the "great gain of godly contentment."10  If it be only

little, it is not from lack of his Father's care and love; but because his

wisdom knows what he really needs,11 and that all beyond would be a

temptation and snare. Truly "a man's life consisteth not in the

abundance of the things which he possesseth."12  ‘Riches and poverty

are more in the heart than in the hand. He is wealthy, that is con-

tented. He is poor, that wanteth more.'‡  The universe will not fill a

worldly,13 while a little will suffice for an heavenly,14 heart. "The

 

1 Job, xv. 11.                 2 Acts, xvi. 25.              3 Heb. x. 34.

4 Job, i. 21.                    5 Hab. iii. 17, 18.            6 Chap. xvi. 8. Ps. xxxvii. 16.

7 Matt. vi. 11.                8 2 Pet. i.3.             9 Ps. xxxiv. 10; xxxvii. 3, 19. lsa. xxxiii. 15, 16.

10 1 Tim. vi. 6. Philip. iv. 11, 12.                          11 Matt. vi. 32.

12 Luke, xii. 15.              13 Eccles i.8.                 14 Gen. xxviii. 29

* Life, Chap. ii.              LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. i. 2; iii.17.        ‡ Bishop Hall.


208              EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

children of light" content themselves willingly with the small pittances,

which their Father allows them during the time of their minority;

knowing that their main portion is reserved for them in safe keeping

unto the "full age." (1 Pet. i. 4.) They are well satisfied on their way

home to live rather more scantily by the way; like Joseph's brethren,

who were provided with food for their journey; but their full sacks

were unopened, till they reached their home. (Gen. xlii. 25.) Here

their God compensates for everything. But what would compensate

for him?

On the other hand, there must be trouble with great treasure, without

the fear of the Lord. (Eccles. iv. 6; v. 12.) And far more destitute is

its possessor in his unsubstantial happiness, than the man of God, who

is "eating his bread in the sweat of his brow." 'Jacob's ladder, which

conveys to heaven, may have its foot in the smoking cottage.'*  And

as to this world's comforts--the dinner of herbs, the homely meal of

love, is better than the stalled ox, preparing for a sumptuous, but un-

brotherly, feast.1 Love sweetens the meanest food. Hatred embitters

the richest feast.2  How did the presence and converse of the Lord of

angels dignify the humble fare!3   How much more refreshing were

the social meals of the Pentecostal Christians, than the well-furnished

tables of their enemies!4  When the Lord's ordinance of marriage is

marred by man's selfishness; when wealth, rank, or adventitious ac-

complishments govern the choice of life's companion, rather than the

fear of the Lord; what wonder if the stalled ox, and hatred therewith, be

the order of the house? Mutual disappointment is too often the source

of criminal indulgence abroad; always the bane of peace and unity at

home.

Few, alas! practically believe this divine testimony. Parents! do

you seek the solid happiness of your children? Then lead them to

expect little from the world; everything from God.

 

18. A wrathful man stirreth up strife,  but he that is slow to anger

                                           appeaseth strife.

This Proverb requires no explanation. But observe the principles

of hatred and love, contrasted in active exercise. Some persons make

it their occupation to sit by the fire, to feed and fan the flame, lest it be

extinguished. An useful and friendly employment, were it a fire to

warm. But when it is an injurious, consuming, and destructive

element, it would seem difficult to discover the motive of these

incendiaries (Chap. x. 12; xvi. 27, 28; xxvi. 21), did we not read, that

 

1 Chap. xvii. 1; xxi. 19; xxiii. 6.                            2 1 Sam. xx. 24-34. 2 Sam. xiii. 23-29.

3 John, xxi. 9-12.                                                4 Acts, ii. 4-6. Comp. Ps. cxxxiii.

* Bishop REYNOLDS' Sermon on 1 Tim. vi. 17-19.

A man of wrath, Heb. constantly indulging it; unwilling to put it away; a firebrand,

Vir flagrantiae.'--SCHULTENS. Comp. xxix. 22.


                                                     CHAP. XV. 19                                        209

 

"out of the heart proceed evil thoughts, murders, wickedness, an evil

eye, pride, foolishness." (Mark, vii. 21, 22.)

What then is the Christians exercise? Instead of stirring up, to

appease, strife; to bring water, not fuel, to the fire; by “a soft answer

to turn away wrath;”* by a yielding spirit to melt, subdue, and bring

peace. (Gen. xiii. 7-9. Eccles. x. 4.) Let me remember, that I owe my

very salvation to this attribute, slow to anger. (Ps. ciii. 8. 2 Pet. iii. 15.)

And shall I not endeavor to imbue my profession with this lovely

adorning, and to "be a follower of God, as his dear child, walking in

love?" (Eph. v. 1,2.) Will not this temper of the gospel secure my

earthly enjoyment of godliness? (Matt. v. 5.) Will it not also seal my

title as a child of God? (Ib. ver. 9.)

 

19. The way of the slothful man is as an hedge of thorns; but the way of

             the righteous is made plain (raised up as a causey, marg.)

            Another picture of the slothful man drawn to life! He plants his

own hedge, and then complains of its hindrance. He is always at a

stand. Every effort is like forcing his way through a hedge of thorns,

where every thorn-bush tears his flesh. Indecision, delay, and sluggish-

ness, add to his difficulties, and paralyze his exertion; so that after a

feeble struggle of conscience, with much to do, but no heart to do any-

thing, he gives up the effort.

This sloth is ruinous in temporals. One or two hills vigorously

climbed make the way plain for future triumph. But to put half the

soul to the work; to drag to it as an unavoidable task; to avoid

present difficulties in order to find a smoother path, makes a hedge of

thorns, harassing to the end of the journey.

Much more ruinous is this evil in the Christian life. The sluggard

in religion is never at ease. He knows that he needs a change. He

makes an effort to pray; or he takes up a good book. But all withers

for want of purpose of heart. Exertion is to him impossible. He sees

no hope of overcoming, and sinks again.

Nor is this merely the beginning of his path. It is his way--his

whole course. The righteous may loiter or decline, but it is not his

way. The slothful man may have a fit--sometimes an astonishing fit

--of exertion; but he relapses to his former state (Chap. xii. 27), still

surrounded by a hedge of thorns, unable to force his way, pierced, dis-

heartened to the end.

Observe God's estimate of him. He contrasts with him, not the

diligent, but the righteous, marking him as a "wicked, because a

slothful servant." (Matt. xxv. 26.) The difficulties are far more in the

 

  * Verse 1. References.

 † ‘A highway--a path so formed, as to be easy to the foot of the traveler'--FRENCH and

SKINNER. Comp. Isa. xxxv. 8. Also 2 Chron. ix. 11, marg.


210         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

mind than in the path. For while the slothful sits down by his hedge-

side in despair, the way of the righteous, in itself not more easy is made

plain. He does not expect God to work for him in an indolent habit.

But he finds that God helps those that help themselves. Working

with diligence, he finds that he can work in comfort. Following his

commands, feeding upon his promises, continuing in prayer, in waiting

and watching for an answer to prayer--his way is raised up, before

him. He believes what is written, and acts upon it without disputing,

without delay. As soon as ever the light comes into his mind--at

the very first dawn--this determines the direction of his steps, and the

order of his proceedings. Thus his stumbling-blocks are removed.

(Num. xiii. 30; xiv. 6-9. Isa. lvii. 14.) Industrious wisdom performs

what lazy foolishness deemed impossible. Thorns there are doubtless

in the way, but not an impassable hedge of thorns; only such, as while

they pierce his flesh, are overruled as a blessing to his soul. (2 Cor. xii. 7, 8.)

Now to apply this to myself--to my great work. Of infinite

moment it is for me to have my way made plain. For this--confidence

of success is indispensable. Let me then examine my ground. Suppose

up to this moment I have been living in enmity with God; yet now

he "willeth not my; death;"1 he invites me to come to him;2  he

assures my acceptance."3 I have his word to depend upon. Why

should "I stagger in unbelief?" His truth claims my confidence, and

warrants my expectation of the certain blessing. I do not begin, hoping

to amend for past neglect, but, believing in him for free pardon and

strength. The physician heals my helplessness. Faith expels slavish

fear, and "the way of the Lord," instead of a hedge of thorns, is “strength

to the upright." (Chap. x. 29.) The prospect brightens, and instead of

"the hard man," which the slothful pictures to himself, a reconciled God

appears before me. (Matt. xxv. 24. 2 Cor. v. 19.)

This is no easy way. What fluctuation of faith!--What weariness

and discouragement! But at length the way is made plain. Difficulties

are faced, surmounted, carried by assault, and what cannot be removed

is endured. The mountains are leveled before Zerubbabel. (Zech. iv.

7.) The feeble worm threshes them by the energy of faith. (Isa. xli. 15.)

Hope, love, and joy, are conquering principles. Religion, with all its

crosses, is found to be a practicable thing. (Philip. iv. 13.) The victory

over sloth opens a happy and triumphant way to heaven. (Matt. xi. 12.)

The slothful man has enjoyed the same advantages. But he has

not gone through the thorn-hedge of his own corruptions. He has never

learnt, that the cross is the discipline to the end of the way. He does

not think what is spoken to faith, but what is agreeable to feeling. He

has never broken through the thorn of unbelief. He has compromised

 

1 Ezek. xxxiii 11.                        2 Matt.. xi 28.                            3 John, vi, 37.


                                    CHAP. XV. 20.                                      211

 

and failed in the unreserved trust and surrender of himself to his

Saviour. He never therefore comes to God in confidence. All his

service is with a festering conscience, and with that timidity and delay

which ensures defeat. His way at every turn is restless trouble;

struggling with a hedge of thorns to the very last.

Child of God! beware of a sluggish spirit. Even the morbid,

scrupulous strife about your state may sometimes be a slothful indul-

gence in direct opposition to the plainest declarations of God. Let not

unbelief wrest the promise from your hand, or paralyze the hand that

holds it. If the way has been made plain, sit not down in the indulgent

comfort of it. But "go in this thy strength" to more important ad-

vantage. Prize every particle of success obtained by exertion. Oh!

it is worth everything, if we have suffered ourselves to be entangled by

spiritual sloth, to rise, though it be at the setting of the sun, and clear

away the clouds, that "in the evening time there may be light." (Zech.

xiv. 7.) Happy indeed will it be to be quickened, though at the last,

to a firmer confidence; to be brought, though only a step nearer to

Christ,--to have one thorn less to conflict with in the struggle of

death.

 

20. A wise son maketh a glad father; but a foolish man despiseth his

                                                  mother.

Do not the brightest joys,1 and the bitterest sorrows2 in this world

of tears, flow from parents' hearts? Whatever be the delight to see a

son prospering in life; the Christian father finds no rest, until a wise

son maketh him glad. And here we need not any development of talent,

or superior attainment, but the true wisdom; humble and docile, marked.

(as the contrast suggests) by filial reverence, specially by the cordial

choice of that, which "is the beginning of wisdom--the fear of the

Lord." Such a son does indeed rejoice his father, as he watches, with

equal pleasure and thankfulness, the daily growth and healthiness of

his choice vine.

But what if folly, instead of gladdening, despise a mother3--her,

whose tender love,4 and yearning faithfulness,5 are a faint picture of the

heart of God? The law of God commands honour6 and reverence,7

and the transgression of the law will not be forgotten.8 But is not this

neglect a chastening rebuke for capricious indulgence? What grace

and wisdom is needed, that the parents may be a valuable blessing to

their children for their highest interests! A single eye is the primary

concern.

 

1 Chap. x. 1; xxiii. 24. 1 Kings, i. 48.                                2 Chap. xvii. 25. 2 Sam. xviii. 33.

3 Chap. xix. 26; xxiii. 22. 4 Isa. lxvi. 13.                5 Ib. xlix. 15.

6 Exod. xx. 12.                           7 Lev. xix.3.                  8 Chap. xx. 20; xxx. 17. Ezek. xxii. 7.

 

 

212                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

21. Folly is joy to him that is destitute of wisdom: but a man of

                           understanding walketh uprightly.

This Book of instruction probes our profession. What think we of

folly! Not only does the ungodly practise it. But it is joy to him.

He sins without temptation or motive. He cannot sleep without it.1

It is "the sweet morsel under his tongue."2  He "obeys it in the lusts

thereof."3  He "works it with greediness."4  He hates the gospel,

because it  “saves from it."5  But hear the humbling confessions of a

child of God--"I am carnal, sold under sin. 0 wretched man that I

am! who shall deliver me?" Verily would he sink under his hated

burden, but for the confidence--"I thank God--There is no con-

demnation." (Rom. vii. 24, 25; viii. 1.)

This appetite for sin proves the man to be destitute of wisdom. That

which hath turned this fair world into a sepulchre; nay--that which

hath kindled "everlasting burnings," is his joy. And thus he goes on,

intent upon the trifles of the day; and trifling with eternal concerns;

preferring shadowy vanities to everlasting glory. Will he not open his

eyes to the discovery, that "they that observe lying vanities, forsake

their own mercy?" (Jonah, ii. 8.) The Lord save him, ere it be too

late, from reaping the bitter fruit of his foolish choice!

But the man of understanding gives himself to the word of God. He

has joy in wisdom (Chap. xxi. 15), as the sinner in folly. Even his

painful discoveries of indwelling corruption ground him deeper in solid

religion, than those who know only the surface. He is taught of God,

and his upright walk is a bright  “shining path.” (Chap. iv. 18.) Give

me, 0 my God, understanding, that my joy may be in thy wisdom, not

in my own folly.

 

22. Without counsel purposes are disappointed: but in the multitude of

                               counsellors they are established.

The value of this proverb as a political truth is sufficiently obvious.

A nation without counsel can never be established. (Chap. xi. 14.) A

multitude of counsellors is an indispensable advantage to the Sovereign

for his own purposes. (Chap. xx. 18; xxiv. 6.) And by the neglect of

them many good purposes have been disappointed.*  In the Church, also,

combined counsel has greatly tended to Christian establishment. (Acts,

xv. 6, 31.) Its influence also in our religious institutions is of the

highest moment. Clear and commanding is the duty of godly and able

men as a multitude of counsellors, to take an active part in their purposes.

 

1 Chap. iv. 16, 17.                      2 Verse 14; ix.17. Job, xx. 12.                 3 Rom. vi. 12.

4 Eph. iv. 19.                             5 Matt. i. 21. Acts, iii. 26.

   * Rehoboam, 1 Kings, xii. 13-19. Ahab, xxii. 18-39. Even David, 2 Sam. xxiv. 1-4, 15.


                                                  CHAP. XV. 23.                                               213

 

In many individual perplexities we are led highly to estimate this

advantage. For how weak and ignorant we are! Were our judgment

perfect, the first impressions would be infallibly right. But feeble and

of shaken as it is by the fall, every dictate needs pondering. How much

evil has been done by acting upon impulse in a hasty moment, or by a

few warm words or lines without consideration! (Chap. xix. 2.) Our

wisdom lies in self-distrust; at least leaning to the suspicion that we

may be wrong. Yet, while guarding on the other side, against that

indecision of judgment, which is carried about by every person's

opinion; the expediency, especially in important matters, of experienced

counsel will be generally felt. But even here the wisest is fallible, and

often erroneous. In the use of human means, let us mainly look up to

the great "Counsellor" (Isa. ix. 6) of his Church for guidance, and in

reverential thankfulness take "his testimonies as the men of our

counsel." (Ps. cxix. 24, M.R.) Blessed be God for this special privilege

of counsel always at hand! In humility and confidence we shall not

materially err. (Chap. iii. 5, 6.)

 

23. A man hath joy by the answer of his mouth; and a word spoken in

                                  due season, how good is it!

This is a true Proverb, when the mouth is under Divine discipline.

A word for our Great Master to our fellow-sinners he will condescend

to bless. The remembrance--“Who made man's mouth?" (Exod. iv.

11)--puts away pride. But have we not joy by the answer of our

mouth?  (Chap. xii. 14; xiii. 2.) The pain that every right-minded

Christian feels in giving "open rebuke," is abundantly compensated by,

the joy of the happy issue. (Chap. xxvii. 5. 2 Sam. xii. 1-13.) Even an

unsuccessful effort brings the joy in "the testimony of our conscience."

It must however be a word spoken in due season (Chap. xxv. 11), though

it be from feeble lips.*  For--though ‘there are some happy seasons,

when the most rugged natures are accessible;' yet many a good word

is lost, by being spoken out of season. Obviously a moment of irritation

is out of season. We must wait for the return of calmness and reason.

(1 Sam. xxv. 37,) Sometimes indeed the matter forces itself out after,

lengthened and apparently ineffectual waiting. It has been long

brooded over within, and must have its vent. But this explosion

sweeps away every prospect of good, and leaves a revolting impression.

 

  * Chap. xxiv. 26. Thus Luther, after the pattern of the great Apostle, gladly acknow-

ledged his obligation.--'The word of a brother, pronounced from Holy Scripture in a time

of need, carries an inconceivable weight with it. The Holy Spirit accompanies it, and by

it moves and animates the hearts of the people, as their circumstances require. Thus

Timothy, and Titus, and Epaphroditus, and the brethren who met St. Paul from Rome,

cheered his spirit; however much they might be inferior to him in learning and skill in

the word of God. The greatest saints have their times of faintness, when others are

stronger than they.'--SCOTT'S Contin. of Milner, i. 332: See the ministry of Christ, Isa. vii. 4.

  † Bishop HOPKINS' Works, iv. 485. 'Mollissima fandi tempora.'--VIRG. AEn. iv. 293, 294.


214         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Instead of a fertilizing shower, it has gathered into a violent and

destructive tempest.

It is most important, that our whole deportment should bring con-

viction, that we yearn over the souls of those whom we are constrained

to reprove. The general rule is, to give reproof privately (Matt. xviii.

15); not exasperating, except when the occasion calls for it (1 Tim. v.

20. Acts, xiii. 6-11), by public exposure. Never commence with an

attack; which, as an enemy's position, naturally provokes resistance.

Study a pointed application. A word spoken for everyone, like a coat

made for everyone, has no individual fitness. When "the wise man's

heart discerneth both time and judgment" (Eccles. viii. 5), the word is

doubly effective. Manoah's wife upheld her husband's faith.1 Abigail

restrained David's murderous intent.2  Naaman's servants brought their

master to sober reason.3  Paul withheld the jailor's hand from self-

destruction, and opened salvation to his soul.4 Sweet indeed also is

the Minister's joy from the answer of his mouth, when the "gifted tongue

of the learned speaks a word in season to him that is weary." (Isa. l. 4.)

And will it not be an element of his consummating joy "at that day,"

when he shall welcome those instrumentally saved by the answer of his

mouth, as his "glory and joy?" (1 Thess. ii. 19, 20.)

 

24. The way of life is above to the wise, that he may depart from hell

                                                beneath.

Another beam of light and immortality here shines upon the Old

Testament Dispensation. For if the life above is beyond animal sen-

sation, it must be the life eternal. The hell beneath, opposed to it, must

stretch beyond the grave into eternity. But the way of life--the way

in which alone life is formed, the way to God, the way to glory--is but

one. That way is Christ. (John, xiv. 6.) If therefore I come to him,

renouncing all other hope, casting all my hope on him, and every step

of my way "looking unto him" (Heb. xii. 2)--am not I in this way?

And if I follow him in "the obedience of faith," is not my course, my

daily walk, advancing in that way? (John, viii. 12.)

This way is above--of heavenly origin--the fruit of the eternal

councils--the display of the manifold wisdom of God. Fools rise not

high enough to discern it, much less to devise and walk ill it. Their

highest elevation is groveling. God does not allow them even the

name of life. (1 Tim. v. 6.) Cleaving to the dust of earth, they sink

into the hell beneath. But this way of the wise is above. They are born

from above; taught from above; therefore walking above, while they

are living upon earth. A soaring life indeed! The soul mounts up,

looks aloft, enters into the holiest, rises above herself, and finds her

resting-place in the bosom of her God. A most transcendent life! to

 

1 Judg. xiii. 23.               2. 1 Sam. xxv. 32, 33.                3. 2 Kings, v, 13, 14.      4. Acts, xvi. 28-31.


                                                    CHAP. XV. 24.                                       215

 

be "partaker of the Divine nature!" (2 Pet. i. 4) the life of God him-

self (Eph. iv. 18); in humble sublimity, ascending above things under

the sun, above the sun itself. Not only is it out of the reach of carnal

men, but beyond the comprehension of all. (Job, xi. 7-9.) It is such

a way as neither men nor angels could ever have cast up, such as can

never be contemplated but with reverential faith. The wise in their

most favoured moments cannot fully conceive their present privileges;

how much less the glorious unfolding, when the clouds shall never

more be known.

The further we walk in this way above, the further we depart from

hell beneath. Heaven and Hell are here before us. Soon will our state

be fixed for eternity.--What then am I? Where am I? Those "who

mind earthly things, their end is "the hell beneath Those who walk in

the way above--"their conversation is in heaven;" their hope is fixed

on the Lord's coming from thence; their everlasting joy will be the

complete transformation into his own image.1 There is no downward

tendency. It is still upwards. It is all rising ground. Mount ever so

high, the ascent is ever before us; an immense distance still appears,

ere we gain the summit. Yet the moment we desire this heavenly

state, we have begun to know it, and we shall rise higher and higher

heavenward, till we take .our place before the throne of God. Thus

‘he that is truly wise, In this holy way of obedience, walketh to

eternal life.'*

Children of God! walk like yourselves; with "your hearts lifted

up in the ways of the Lord;"2 with a holy loftiness above the debasing

pleasure of earth; "looking at the things that are unseen;"3 "having

respect unto the recompence of the reward;"4 walking in the way above,

where your hope is,5 where your treasure,6 where your home,7 above

all--where your ascended Saviour is;8 and where one golden ray of

his favour, one reflected beam of his glory, will outshine all the glare

of a shadowy world. Had we more of heaven in our hearts, we should

have more of its spirit in our profession. We should think less of the

roughness of the way, if we more fully realized the rest beyond. But

except we know--in its measure--heaven as our state now, how can

we hope to enjoy it as our everlasting home? 'Grant, we beseech

thee, that, like as we do believe thy only-begotten Son, our Lord Jesus

Christ, to have ascended into the heavens; so we may also in heart and

mind thither ascend, and with him continually dwell.'†

 

1 Philip. iii. 19-21. Comp. Ps. xvii. 14, 15.

* Bp. Hall.

2 2 Chron.11. xvii. 6. Comp. lsa. xxxiii. 16; xl. 31; lviii. 14.

3 2Cor. iv.18.                 4 Heb.xi.24-26.                          5 2 Cor. v. 1-5. Col. i. 27.

6 Matt. vi. 20.                7 2 Cor. v. 6-8. Heb. xi. 19; xiii. 14.

8 Col. iii. 1.                                           

                         * Bp. Hall.                        Collect for Ascension day.


216              EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

25. The Lord will destroy the house of the proud: but he will establish the

                                        border of the widow.

The administration of the Divine Government is to humble the

proud, and to exalt the humble. (Luke, i. 51, 52.) The contrast marks

the proud oppressor, an usurper of God's rights. Therefore as a traitor,

he destroys not only his person, but his house.1 And who can but

acknowledge the retributive vengeance of the Judge of the earth?2

But the widow, whom many care not for, many are ready to trample

on--what a Friend and Protector has she!3 "Let thy widows trust in

me."4 God condescends to link himself with them in a special rela-

tion; concentrating all his care and tenderness on their bereaved con-

dition.5 Did not he provide fur sorrowing Naomi a staff in her faithful

daughter, and ultimately establish her borders in Israel?6 (Did he not

supply the pressing need of the Minister's widow7 (a cheering warrant

of faith in similar affliction), and take up the Shunamite's oppression,

and again establish her border,8 And shall we forget how he teaches

the returning penitent to plead the gracious manifestation--"In thee

the fatherless findeth mercy?" (Ps. xiv. 2, 3.)

 

26. The thoughts of the wicked are an abomination to the Lord; but the

words of the pure are pleasant words (words of pleasantness, marg.)

How lightly do most men think of the responsibility of their

thoughts! as if they were their own, and they might indulge them

without restraint or evil. One substantial sin appals men, who quietly

sleep under the mighty mass of thinking without God for months and

years, without any apprehension of guilt. But thoughts are the seminal

principles of sin.* And as the cause virtually includes its effects; so

do they contain, like the seed in its little body, all the after fruit. They

are also the index of character. Watch their infinite variety; not so

much those that are under the control of circumstances, or thrown up

by the occasion, as the voluntary flow, following the habitual train of

our associations. "For as a man thinketh in his heart, so is he." (Chap.

xxiii. 7.) Let the Christian yield himself up to the clear radiance of

"the word, as a discerner of the thoughts and intents of the heart:"

and what a mass of vanity does only one day, one hour, bring to

 

1 Esth. vii. 10; ix.10. Jer. xxii. 13-30.                               2 Ps. x. 14, 18; xii. 5; l,iii. 11.

3 Chap. xxiii 10, 11.                                                        4 Jer. xlix. 11. Comp. 1 Tim. V. 5.

5 Ps.lxviii. 5; cxlvi. 9. Deut. x.17, 18.                               6 Ruth. i. 7-18; iv.14-17.

7 2 Kings, iv. 1-7.                                                           8 Ib. viii. 1-6.

* Chap. xxiv. 9. Gen. vi. 5. Even an Heathen accurately described them. Autoxqonaj

phgaj thj kakiaj. 'The indigenous fountains of evil.' PLUTARCH. Moral--Again--' If

thou wouldest unlock the door of thine heart, thou wilt find a storehouse and treasury of

evils diversified, and full of numberless passions.' Ibid

Heb. iv. 13.    xritikoj--a critic, censuring the errata with the most minute accuracy.


                                                CHAP. XV. 27.                                    217

 

account! As to the wicked? "Evil thoughts" are the first bubbling

of the corrupt fountain. (Matt. xv. 19.) The tide; of evil rolls on

unceasingly in "thoughts of iniquity" (Isa. lix. 7), in order to give

effect to the malevolent temper; dwelling on wickedness with com-

placency; pursuing it with determined purpose. What can such

thoughts be, but an abomination to the Lord?

Very different is his mind towards his own people. The words of

the pure, as the expression of their thoughts (Matt. xii. 34. Ps. xxxvii.

30, 31), are pleasant words. How pleasant, is manifest from his inviting,

call to their intercourse with him (Verse 8. Cant. ii. 14); yet more

from the open reward prepared for them before the assembled world.

"They that spake often one to another--and thought upon his name--

they shall be mine, saith the Lord, in that day when I make up my

jewels." (Mal. iii. 16, 17.)

 

27. He that is greedy of gain troubleth his own house; but he that hateth

                                             gifts shall live.

What an awful stamp has God fixed upon covetousness! Idolatry;1

abomination;2 an evil eye: the cause of poverty;3 "the root of all

evil!"4  Not only is it a curse to the sinner, but often a trouble to his

house. So did Lot,5 Achan,6 Saul,7 Ahab,8 Gehazi,9 Jehoiakim,10 and

the Jews,11 find it. And often in our own day, has greediness of gain

plunged whole families into misery by ruinous speculations!12  For

where the enriching blessing of God is not desired or sought, we cannot

wonder that it is withheld!

Can the man of God do so? Not only would he refuse, but he

hateth gifts, not only in the corruption of bribes,13 but in any case, that

would bring dishonor upon his God. Abraham refused the gifts of

the king of Sodom,14 and Peter the enticement of Simon15 The man

who thus walks in integrity, lives on high in the special favour of his

God.16  He, who hateth this world's gifts for the affliction of the cross,

shall receive an hundred-fold recompence in this life, and in the world

to come, everlasting life." (Heb. xi. 24-26. Matt. xix. 29, 30.) ‘Let

their money perish with them' (was the noble confession of the Marquis

of Vico, nephew to Paul V. 'that prefer all the world's wealth before

one day's communion with Jesus Christ, and his despised people.'*

 

1 Eph. v. 5. Col. ill. 5. Job, xxxi. 24.        2 Ps. x. 3.                      3 Chap. xxviii. 22.

4 1 Tim. vi. 9, 10.                                   5 Gen. xiii. 10,11; xiv. 12; xix. 14, 30.

6 Josh. vii. 1, 15, 24. Deut. vii. 26.           7 1 Sam. xv. 19-26.

8 1 Kings, xxi. 1-14, 19-22. 2 Kings, ix. 24-26.                 9 2 Kings, v. 20-27.       

10 Jer. xxii. 13, 18-30.                             11 Ib. vi. 12, 13; viii. 10.  12 Hab. ii. 9, 10.

13 Exod. xviii. 21; xxiii. 8. Deut. xvi. 19.                14 Gen. xiv. 22, 23.

15 Acts, viii. 18-20.

16 Ps. xv. 5. lsa. xxxiii. 15. 16. Jer. xxii. 15, 16. Ezek. xviii. 5-9.

   * See his interesting history in Dr. M'CRIE'S Reformation in Spain.


218           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

28. The heart of the righteous studieth to answer; but the mouth of the

                                  wicked poureth out evil things.

Consideration is an important part of the Christian character;

nowhere more important than in the discipline of the tongue. Think

twice, before we speak once. The wise man's heart is at his right

hand" (Eccles. x. 2), that he may weigh his words, and study how to

answer (Chap. x. 31, 32; xvi. 23), and "be ready always to give an

answer to him that asketh a reason of the hope that is in him." (1 Pet.

iii. 15.) Though there may be "good treasure" within, yet we must

carefully ponder to draw from it "a word in due season." (Verse 23.)

Often may we reflect upon ourselves for speaking hastily. And indeed,

when that comes out which is uppermost, nothing but the dross of evil

can be looked for. Many stumblings have been made by speaking

from the impulse of the moment, from warm feelings, rather than from

a well-balanced and considerate judgment. (Ps. xxxi. 22; cxvi. 11.)

In this haste, Joshua was beguiled by the Gibeonites;1 David indulged

a burst of murderous revenge;2 Peter would fain have dissuaded his I

Master from the work,3 which he came down from heaven to do, and

without which we should have been a world eternally lost. Cultivate a

pondering mind. If ever asked to open an important subject, throw it

not off hastily, nor give an answer, till we have obtained it from God.

For the heart's study to answer necessarily implies prayer, the only medium

of receiving the "wisdom that is profitable to direct." (Chap. ii. 1-6.

Eccles. x. 10. Jam. i. 5.) Nehemiah darted up his prayer; and how

graciously was the answer for the moment vouchsafed! (Neh. ii.1-6.)

This is especially a ministerial responsibility for the many cases of con-

science, that require "the tongue of the learned"--a word of wisdom,

conviction, or consolation. How can "the priest's lips keep knowledge"

(Mal.ii. 7), unless the heart under his Master's teaching studieth to answer

The wicked has no such restraint. He cares not what he says. It is

of little consequence to him, whether it be true, or well-timed, or whom

it wounds. His poisoned fountain poureth out poisonous waters. (Eccles.

x. 3, 12-14.) Yet fearful is it to think, how every light word brings

its account (Matt. xii. 36), and will be found a 'hot coal to make the

fire of hell burn more fiercely.'*  Such a plague often infests the

Church. (Tit. i. 10, 11.) "From such withdraw thyself." (1 Tim. vi. 5.)

Separation is the keeping of the soul.

 

29. The Lord is far from the wicked: but he heareth the prayer of the

                                             righteous.

Such is the Lord's difference between these two classes! He is

 

 1 Josh. ix. 14, 15.                      2 1 Sam. xxv. 13-21                   3 Matt. xvi. 22.

   * Cartwright, in loco.


                                       CHAP. XV. 29.                                      219

 

equally near to them both in his essence.1 But in his favour he is far

from the wicked,2 and reflects their prayer.3  He is near to the righteous,

and heareth them.4 His distance from the wicked is to their hearts'

desire.5 Yet does he sometimes make them groan,6 as they will sink

hereafter under its everlasting curse.7  But who can estimate the

grace, that calls these "stout-hearted, that are afar off, to hearken,

and brings near righteousness and salvation to them?"8 Inexpressible

must be the guilt of despising such abounding mercy.9

But to the righteous, he is most graciously near.10  He heareth their

breath, when there is no voice;11 their desire and weeping, when there

are no words;12 their stammering, when there is no gift.13 Wonderful

indeed is it, that he should hear such prayers, polluted as they are in

their very breath. Yet does our compassionate High Priest wait for

these vile offerings at the door of the oracle; and in his golden censer

they appear spotless before the throne.14  For his sake we are not only

borne with, but accepted. Our sighs are the breathings of faith. Our

broken words his own Spirit has indited. (Rom. viii. 26, 27.) How then

can he turn away from them?

Yet the enemy will suggest the doubt. Does he hear? Well he

knows, what a shelter prayer is from his assault; and gladly would he

drive us from it. 'Am I righteous?' Be it so, that thou art not. But

is not thine advocate so? (1 John, ii. 1.) Then put thy prayer in his

hands. Thou canst not doubt his access to God; that the ear, if it be

shut to thee, is open to him. "Wouldst thou he spoken for to the

king?" (2 Kings, iv. 13.) Stammer out the prayer to thy Friend--"0

Lord, I am oppressed; undertake for me." It would tire the hands

of an angel to write down the pardons, that God bestows upon one

penitent sinner.'*

'But I see no answer.' Correct the errors of sense by faith in his

word, which declares, whatever appearances may be--He heareth.

Judge not by thy feelings or conceptions, but by his own unchangeable

word, by the manifestation of his name (Ps. lxv. 2); that he will refuse

thee nothing that is really good; that thou dost obtain, If not what

thou desirest yet what upon the whole is best and fittest for thee.

Have patience with God. Dictate nothing. Commit thy will to him.

Say not--"I will that thou give me by and by." (Mark, vi. 25:)  Leave

time and all to him. If he does not answer in thy time, he will in his

own far better season. (Isa. xxx. 18.) He has clearly shewn his

 

1 Jer. xxiii. 24. Acts, xvii. 27, 28.             2 Ps. xxxiv. 16. Jer. xviii. 17. Amos, ix. 4.

3 Isa. i. 11. Jer. xiv. 12. Ezek. viii. 18.                 4 Isa. i. 11. Jer. xiv. 12. Ezek. viii. 18.

5 Job xxi. 14.                             6 Exod. xxxiii. 1-7. 1 Sam. xxviii. 6. Hos. v. 15. Mic. iii. 4.

7 Ps ixxiii.27. Matt. xxv. 41. 2 Thess. i. 9.           8 Isa. xlvi. 12, 13.                   9 Acts, xiii. 38-46.

10 Ps. xxxiv. 18; cxlv. 18,19.                               11 Lam. iii. 56.

12 1 Sam. i. 13. Ps. xxxviii.9; vi. 8.                      13 Isa. xxxviii. 14.                 14 Rev. viii. 3, 4.

  * Dr. Bates.


220            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Sovereign appointment, that those who pray must wait his time, and

his will. (Luke, xviii. 1-7.)

Yet let us look out, and see how our prayers speed. The husband-

man looks for his harvest. And when we have sown in a fruitful soil

--in the very bosom of God--shall not we look for the return, wait in

hope, strengthen our heart in the--Divine promises, and never cease to

look up, till the answer come down? No prayer will be without God's

fruit.

Study the character of God. It is not the judge on his seat; or

the king on his throne of state; but the Father in the full flowing of

his love. Is not this attraction? In the sharpest trial, not all the

world, not all the power of hell, can bar thine access to him. No child

runs to his father with such a confidence as thine. Never will he chill

the heart, that throws itself upon his love.

Then honour him in this confidence. Shew that you really mean

what you say. Bring to him no general petitions (the signs of an

heartless frame), but definite objects. Tell him what you want, and all

that you want. Shew that prayer is no penance, or irksome endurance,

but a pleading exercise; a conscious reality, a living soul speaking to

a living God. Prize his presence supremely--the pleasures of the

closet above all privileges. No creature, not even the company of

Apostles, can compensate for the loss of him. Wrestle in prayer, but

sit still in faith. He has bound himself by his own promises. And

the fulfillment of them in answer to prayer will quicken confidence and

praise.

 

30. The light of the eyes rejoiceth the heart; and a good report maketh

                                             the bones fat.

The eye is the medium of the most rational enjoyment. Most

elevating is the sight of the wonders of the creation! (Ps. xix. 1;

cxi. 2.) The Psalmist's hymns of praise finely pourtray his delight.

(Ib. cviii. civ.) Glowing was the joy, which, burst from the wise

man's heart in the sight of the morning glory--"Truly light is sweet,

and a pleasant thing it is for the eyes to behold the sun." (Eccles.

xi. 7,) Look also at his gracious and unexpected providence--How

did the light of the aged Patriarch's eyes rejoice his heart, when he

embraced his long-lost son! A sunbeam truly was it in the cloud of

despondency! And when the eye fastens upon the one object of attrac-

tion; even one look casts a glory on the soul, and fills it with life and joy.

(Gen. xlvi. 29, 30. Chap. xiii. 12.) "They looked unto him, and were

lightened." (Ps. xxxiv. 5.) And what will it be, when the whole soul,

animated with Divine Power, shall centre in the eye; when the light of

the eyes shall present him to unclouded view, whom all heaven adores

with everlasting praise!


                            CHAP. XV. 31, 32.                                     221

 

            But let us look at the joy of hearing. How did the Patriarch's

heart bound at the good report of his beloved Joseph! (Gen. xlv. 27, 28.

Chap. xxv. 25.) The absent Minister seems to live again in the good

tidings of his thriving people. (1 Thess. iii. 8.) 'How delightful must it

be to the humbled sinner to hear the good report of salvation, and to

have his eyes enlightened to behold the glory of God in the face of

Jesus Christ!'*  The animating delight, with which the Shepherds

saw the good report realized before their eyes, can scarcely be conceived.

(Luke, ii. 15-17.) So joyful is it still to the humbled sinner, that

the very "feet of its messengers are beautiful" in his eyes. (Isa. lii. 7.)

"Blessed are the people that know the joyful sound." (Ps. lxxxix. 15.)

 

31. The ear that heareth the reproof of life abideth among the wise.

32. He that refuseth instruction (correction, marg.) despiseth his own

            soul: but he that heareth reproof getteth understanding--(possesseth

an heart, marg.)

What a contrast to the "scorner" lately described, who "goeth not

unto the wise!" (Verse 12.) Naturally we are unteachable, neither

knowing, nor caring to know. But the Lord gives humility and self-

knowledge. Our unteachableness yields. Light pours in. We learn

the meaning of words before familiar to us only in sound. The

circumcised ear now heareth the reproof that tends to life (Chap. vi. 23),

and welcomes the medicine. (Verse 5; xii. 18. Ps. cxli. 5.) This

exercise of reproof is the law of social life; a component part of the

love of our neighbour (Lev. xix. 17, 18); the bounden obligation to be

"our brother's keeper" to the utmost of our power.  The mode of

receiving reproof is a test of principle. Humility, sincerity, self-

knowledge--the exercise or the defect of these graces--is brought

out to our honour or dishonour. Beautiful indeed is the sight of "a

wise reprover upon an obedient ear."1 The man of God abode with the

wise. He took his meek reprover to be his wife.2  He honoured the

faithful messenger of his Father's rod with his highest confidence. The

Apostle's affectionate testimony to his reproving brother shewed, that

he had heard the reproof of life.3 This considerate and humble temper

always gets understanding.4  Nothing teaches like experience; and no

experience is more useful, because none so abasing, as rebuke.5

            Reproof indeed may be considered one of the wholesome bitters of

life.6 Thoughtless gaiety may prefer "the song of fools" to "the

rebuke of the wise."7  But after-reflection will shew the wisdom of

honouring those, who deal faithfully with our faults, though it may be

with somewhat of severity; rather than those, who would soothe us

 

1 Chap. xxv. 12.                                    2 1 Sam. xxv. 39-42.

3 2 Sam. xii. 7-12. 1 Kings, i. 32. Comp. chap. xxviii. 23.              4 Gal. ii. 11, with 2 Pet. iii. 15.

5 Chap. i. 5; ix. 9; xii. 1.             6 Chap. xxix. 15. Rev. iii. 19       7 Comp. Eccles. vii. 5.

* Scott.                                     † This obligation was repudiated by the first murderer. Gen. iv. 9.


222          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

with the poisoned sweets of flattery, and wink at or encourage our

wayward follies. (Chap. xxvii. 5, 6.) Unhappily however for a man, a

want of real sincerity is his nature. He has no hearty desire to be set

right. He concludes a hollow truce with his conscience, dreading its

painful disturbance. He throws a protective cover over all his faults,

thus shielding his most dangerous enemies. In this unfavorable

state of mind he refuseth instruction, because contrary to flattery, and

despiseth his own soul. (Verse 10.) Many are the examples of this

ruinous folly.*  The fool will not indeed own the charge. But does he

not underrate its high value and imminent danger, when he despises

God's warning and provision for its salvation? (Matt. xvi. 26.) “Be

thou instructed, 0 Jerusalem, lest my soul depart from thee." (Jer.

vi. 8. Zeph. iii. 2.)

 

33. The fear of the Lord is the instruction of wisdom: and before honour

is humility.

The fear of the Lord is elsewhere described as the substance (Job,

xxviii. 28), and the beginning or principal part (Chap. i. 7; ix. 10;

Ps. cxi. 10), of wisdom. Here it is set forth as the instruction of wisdom.

The Teachers, inspired by Divine wisdom, inculcated it as a grand

subject of their instruction.  Nor is it less important under the new

dispensation, linked as it is with the full privileges of the Gospel.

(Acts, ix. 31. Heb. xii. 28.) The fear of terror melts away. The fear

of reverence fills the soul. God rejoices in his mercy; the child of

God in his confidence. But as it realizes the presence of a holy God,

it must always be connected with humility. Indeed no Christian grace

can exist without this conservating principle. Every dispensation of

God strikes at the root of self-exaltation, and tends to that real absence

of self-esteem and self-sufficiency, which most of us rather long after

than attain.

Most wise therefore is our Father's discipline--Humility before

honour. Indeed, without humility, honor would be our temptation,

rather than our glory. Had not the Apostle been kept down by a

most humbling trial, his honour would have been his ruin. (2 Cor. xii

7-9.) The exaltation of the Lord's people in Providence, is therefore

often conducted through the valley of Humiliation. Joseph was raised

from the prison to the throne.1 Moses and David were taken from the

Shepherd's fold to feed the Lord's inheritance.2  Gideon acknowledged

himself to be of "the least of the families of Israel."3  Ruth was

humbled by adversity, ere she was raised to the high honour of a Mother

 

1 Gen. xli. 14-44.                    2 Exod. iii. 1-12. Ps. lxxviii. 70-72.        3 Judg. vi. 15, 16.

* The young man, Chap, v. 11-13; Korah and his party, Num. xvi. 12-14, 31-33;

Zedekiah. Jer. xxvii. 17; xxxviii. 14-23, with xxxix. 1-7.

† Moses, Deut. x. 12; Joshua, xxiv. 14; Samuel, I Sam. xii. 14, 20, 24; David, Ps.

xxxiv. 9-11; Solomon, Eccles. xii. 13.


                                                CHAP. XVI. 1.                                              223

 

in Israel, and progenitor of the Saviour.1 Abigail confessed herself un-

worthy to wash the feet of her lord s servants, before she was honoured if

to be his wife.2  And in the daily walk of life, the lowest place is the

path-way to honour.3

The same principle obtains in the dispensations of grace. "He that

humbleth himself shall be exalted---In due time."4 Not that in the

forgetfulness of our high privileges and confidence, we are to be

weighed down in a sense of degradation. The true humility, which

realizes our vileness, casts us most simply upon the full resources of the

gospel, so that the most humble is the most triumphant believer.

'The lower then any descend in humiliation, the higher they shall

ascend in exaltation. The lower this foundation of humility is laid, the

higher shall the roof of honour be over-laid.'*

And was not this the track of our beloved Lord--Before honour,

humility--the cross before the crown? How deep was that descent,

by which he, who was infinitely more than man, became "a worm and

no man" (Ps. xxii. 6.) And yet the honour, which rewarded this

humility, what tongue can tell! (Phil. ii. 9.)  ‘We must not disdain

to follow Jesus Christ.  Is it a light privilege to follow in the path-

way consecrated by his steps, irradiated by his smile? (Matt. xi. 29; ii,

xx. 28. John, xiii. 14.)

 

CHAPTER XVI.

 

1. The preparations (disposings, marg.) of the heart in man, and the

                      answer of the tongue, is from the Lord.

The grand question is here decided--'Who is the first mover in

the work of conversion? Can man prepare his own heart for the grace

of God?'  The preparations of the heart in man are from the Lord.‡   He

takes the stone out of the heart, that it may feel (Ezek. xxxvi. 26);

draws it, that it may follow; quickens it, that it may live. He opens

the heart, that he may imprint his own law, and mould it into his

image. (Acts, xvi. 14. Jer. xxxi. 33.) He works, not merely by moral

suasion, or by the bare proposal of means of uncertain power; but by

invisible Almighty agency. The work then begins with God. It is

not, that we first come, and then are taught. But first we learn; then

 

1 Ruth, ii. iv. 13-22. Matt. I. 5.                2 1 Sam. xxv. 41, 42.                  3 Luke, xiv. 7-11.

4 Ibid. xviii. 14. 1 Pet. v. 6.

* Trapp in loco. ‘The more humble, the fitter to come to God, and he the more willing

to come into the soul, and dwell in it. The highest heavens are the habitation of God's

glory; and the humble heart hath the next honor, to be the habitation of his grace.'--

LEIGHTON.

Cope in loco.

Ps. x. 17. 'From whom all holy desires, all good counsels, and all just works do pro-

ceed.'--Liturgy


224           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

we come. (John, vi. 45.) His grace both prevents and co-operates

(Art. x.): not working upon a stone, and leaving it in its dead con-

dition; but as when in Paradise he breathed into the lifeless earth

principle of life and energy. (Gen. ii. 7.)

Shall we then indolently wait until he works? Far from it. We

must work, but in dependence upon him. He works not without us,

but with us, through us, in us, by us; and we work in him. (Phil. ii.

13. Job, xi. 13.) ours is the duty; his is the strength. Ours the

agency; his the quickening life.  His commands do not imply our

power to obey, but our dependence upon him for the grace of obedience.

The work, as it is a duty, is ours; but as a performance, it is God's.

He gives what he requires, and his promises are the foundation of our

performances.'* Our works are not the cause, but the effect, of his

grace; and never could they come out of us, until God had first put

them in us.

The fruit also, as well as the root--the answer of the tongue, no less

than the preparation of the heart--is from the Lord. The tongue of the

ungodly is under Divine restraint. (Num. xxii. 18.) And when the

Christian's thoughts are marshalled in due order, does not he depend

upon the Lord for utterance? (Eph. vi. 19.) Often in prayer, the more

we speak, the more we leave unspoken, till the answer of the tongue is

fully given, "crying, Abba, Father." (Gal. iv.6.) But the fluency of

the tongue without the preparation of the heart; when prayer is with-

out special business; when we read the precious promises, and carry

not a word to plead before the throne--this is man's dead formality; not

from the Lord; an abomination in his sight.

This habit of dependence must continue to the end. We can no

more prepare ourselves after grace received, than before it.  He who

"is the Author," must be "the Finisher, of faith." (Heb. xii. 2.) He is

"Alpha and Omega, the beginning and the end" (Rev. i. 8), in this

Almighty work. Our happiness and prosperity is in the humbling

acknowledgment of praise--"By the grace of God I am what I am."

(1 Cor. xv. 10.) Dependence is not the excuse for indolence, but the

spring of active energy.‡

And if man's reason disputes--'If God does not give me grace,

how can I come?'--we ask--Did you ever desire, did you ever ask

for, grace? If not, how can you complain, that you have never received it?

 

* Bp. REYNOLDS' Works, p. 129.

† Isa. xxvi. 12. 2 Cor iii. 5. 'I beg '--said Jerome--'that I may receive; and when

I have received. I beg again.'

‡ Quamvis enim, nisi adjuvante illo, sine quo nihil possumus facere, os non possumus

aperire; tamen nos aperimus illius adjumento, et opere nostro.'-- Aug. contra duas Epist.

Pelag ad Bonif. Commentators appear to be much perplexed on the translation of this

verse. Many give it, as if the preparntions or disposings (marg.) of the heart were in man,

but the answer of the tongue from the Lord. But Holden, as the result of a minute and

critical examination, has substantially vindicated the received translation.


                                                    CHAP. XVI. 2.                                          225

 

If helplessness is really felt, if it brings conviction, grace is ready to be

vouchsafed." Ask, and it shall be given you." (Matt. vii. 7.)

 

2. All the ways of a man are clean in his own eyes, but the Lord weigheth

                                             the spirits.

            If man were his own judge, who would be condemned? But man

judges by acts; God by principles. His eye therefore beholds a mass

of corruption; while all the ways of a man are clean in his own eyes.

(Gen. vi. 5. Ps. xiv. 3.) In fact--man will never believe his real

character, until the looking-glass is held to his face will convincing

light (Rom. vii. 9), or some subtle temptation unfolds the hateful dis-

covery. He confesses himself indeed to be a sinner. But what his

sins are, he knows not; probably only venial, and abundantly com-

pensated by his fancied virtue. "Ye are they"--said our Lord to

men of his stamp--"which justify yourselves before men: but God

knoweth your hearts; for that which is highly esteemed among men is

abomination in the sight of God." (Luke, xvi. 15.)

Sometimes we see this delusion under the most shadowy cover:

Pilate washed his hands, and was clean in his own eyes, from the blood

of his condemned victim. (Matt. xxvii. 24.) The murderers of Christ

were clean, by refraining from the defilement of the judgment-hall, and

by eating the passover. (John, xviii. 28.)

The persecutors of the Church blinded their consciences in the

sincerity of unbelief. (Acts, xxvi. 9.) Often has the self-deceiver passed

into eternity under a creditable profession. But how does he stand

before God? He never acted from principle. He had the form and

shape of a Christian, so drawn to life as to pass for a living man. But

the eyes that are as a flame of fire, bare witness--"Thou hast a name

that thou livest, and art dead." (Rev. iii. 1.)

External form without a sanctified heart is a baseless religion. Our

real worth is, what we are in the sight of God. He weighs, not "the

actions"1 only, but the spirits. His eye discerns, if but one grain too

light, and pronounces the sentence. Saul was thus "weighed in the

balances, and found wanting."2 And "if thou, Lord, shouldest mark

iniquities "--the short-comings of thy full and righteous demands-

"0 Lord, who shall stand?"3  Must we not fly from Omniscience to

satisfied justice, and there find, that "there is forgiveness with God?”4

Joyous, indeed, is it to mark the even balances of our Judge; in one

scale, his own perfect law; in the other, his Son's perfect obedience.

Here, 0 my God, is my peace, my security. "Thou, most upright, dost

weigh the path of the just." (Isa. xxvi. 7.) But oh! place the blood of

 

1 1 Sam, ii. 3; xvi.7.                                            2 Ib. xv. 11. Dan. v, 27.

3 Ps. cxxx. 3; cxliii. 2.                                        4 Gal. iii. 10, 13, with Ps. cxxx. 4.


226           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

thy beloved Son even in the scale of thy justice; and we will render to

thee the glory of thy wondrous work of grace.

 

3. Commit thy works unto the Lord, and thy thoughts shall be established.

An unsettled mind is a serious evil--a canker to Christian peace.

Every faculty is thrown into disorder. The memory is confused, the

judgment undecided, the will unsteady. No moral rules can discipline

the tossing exercise. Faith is the only principle of solid establishment.

(Ps. cxii. 7. Isa. xxvi. 3.) Here was our original happiness and

security. Independence was the destruction of our well-being. (Gen.

iii. 5.) The return to this humble simplicity is the privilege of the

gospel. "In all thy ways acknowledge him" (Chap. iii. 6)--is the

rule of peace. Eliezer's thoughts were established in committing his work

to the Lord. (Gen. xxiv.) This confidence was the stay of our beloved

Lord in his great work. (Isa. xlix. 4; 1. 7-9.) Prayer was the exercise

of his faith. Establishment was the issue. (J ohn, xvii. 4.) Has the

fretting spirit ever tried this true remedy? Actively engage the two

hands of faith and prayer in making over our burdens to our Father.

To have a sanctuary to flee to--a God, on whom to roll our cares;*  

to lean to his wisdom, and rest on his faithfulness--Here is a chamber

of quietness in the most distracting anxieties--"So he giveth his

beloved sleep." (Ps. cxxvii. 2.)

Commit then all thy works to him. Seek to him for strength and

guidance in all. Look to him for success in all. Roll on him the great

work of thy soul's salvation. Be satisfied with his management of thy

concerns. Put thy works, as thou wouldest put thy children, with

confidence into the hands of God. Christian self-possession will be the

result. Let thy heart habitually turn to the throne of grace; so that in

a crisis of trouble instant faith, instant--perhaps speechless (Neh.

ii. 4)--prayer, may bring instant composure and resolution. This

active energy of faith will enable us to collect our thoughts, establish

them in the peace of God, and keep our souls in fortified security.

Indeed a great part of our worship is to commit our works to him " with-

out carefulness;" not in a general dependence on his goodness or

wisdom, but in a particular dependence for our special need. The

burden being now cast upon one who is better able to bear it (1 Pet.

v. 7), the mind is easy, the thoughts composed, quietly waiting the issue

of things; knowing that all, that is for our good, and the glory of our

God, shall be brought to pass. (Ps. cxii. 7.) Thus "we which have

believed do enter into rest.” (Heb. iv. 3.) But if we will not believe

 

* M. R. ‘Volve in Dominum quae tibi facienda sunt.'-MICHAELIS, Ps. xxxvii. 5. M. R.

+ Phil. iv. 6, 7, frourhsw.

 


                                       CHAP. XVI. 4.                                              227

 

- -so speaks the solemn warning--"surely we shall not be estab-

lished."*

 

4. The Lord hath made all things for himself; yea, even the wicked for the

                                                day of evil.

Every workman has some end for his work. God has the highest

end. As the Apostle reasons concerning the oath of God--"because

he could sware by no greater, he sware by himself" (Ib. vi. 13); so

here--because he could propose no higher end, he proposed himself.

Indeed it is his exclusive prerogative, that, as he has been "the Begin-

ning" (Col. i.18. Rev. iii. 14), so he should be the end of all his works.

The Lord hath created all things--all the works of the creation--all

the events of nations--all the dispensations of Providence--for him-

self, not to fill up a vacuum (for what vacuum could there be to the

fountain of sufficiency?); but for the manifestation of his glory to his

intelligent creatures. (Isa. xliii. 21; Ix. 21.) Nor Indeed can it be

doubted, but that from his immense power and wisdom, from his bene-

volent and diffusive goodness he displayed, an infinite weight of glory

is reflected upon the great source of all these perfections. "The Lord

rejoices in his works" (Ps. civ. 31) with inexpressible delight and

satisfaction. And thus all things return to that boundless ocean, from

whence they sprung. Even the wicked, whose existence might seem

scarcely reconcilable to the Divine perfections, he includes in the

grand purpose of setting out his Name.  'It is the greatest praise of

his wisdom, that he can turn the evil of men to his own glory!'‡  He

hath made even the wicked for the day of evil.--Wicked they are of them-

selves. He made them not so.1 He compels them not to be so.2  He

abhors their wickedness. But he foresaw their evil. He permitted it;

and though "he hath no pleasure in their death,"3 he will be glorified

 

1 Gen, i. 27, Eccles. vii. 29.                     2 John, iii. 19.                             3 Ezek. xxxiii. 11.

 * 2 Chron. xx. 26. Isa, vii. 1-9. Nothing can be more erroneous than for those who fear

God, to suppose themselves as liable as ever to  “the changes and chalices of this mortal

life." Change, if God see good, they may experience; but the sincerely religious have

done with chance. Having once cordially committed themselves to God's paternal care,

they can meet nothing in their course, which is not the result of Divine adjustment, of

wisdom which cannot err, of love, to which the tenderness of the tenderest parent bears

 no comparison. Under such a management what can we rationally fear? Let us,

through Divine grace, only keep within the circle where these movements are carried on,

and we need not doubt, that, though we see nothing  remarkable in our course, an unseen

hand is directing every circumstance, so as in the most effectual manner, to avert what

might hurt us, to ensure what will benefit us, and to direct all our concerns to the best

possible issue'--ALEXANDER KNOX'S Remains, Vol. ii. 'Divine Providence,'--a work full

of instructive thought, but deeply tinctured with unsound principles",

 † lsa. xliii. 7; xlviii. II, 12. Rom. xi. 36. Rev, iv. 10,11. See President Edwards's pro-

found and interesting reasoning, -'God's chief end in Creation.' Chap. i. Works?  i. Could

there be a clearer demonstrotion of the Divinity of Christ, than the representation of him

as the great end of creation--"All things were made by Him, and for Him?”. Col. 1. 16.

 ‡ Bishop Hall. Comp. Exod. xiv. 17.


228         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

in them in the day of evil;1 and when they sin by their own free-will,

he ordains them to punishment, as the monuments of his power, his

justice, and his long-suffering.2

Clearly God is not the Author of sin; He cannot impart what he

has not--what is contrary to his nature. Infinite perfection cannot

impart imperfection. Absolute holiness cannot be the cause of sin;

though, like the law,3 it may be the innocent occasion or excitement of

it. If he foreknows--'infinite foreknowledge'--as Edwards pro-

foundly observes--'proves the necessity of the event foreknown; yet

it may not be the thing, which causes the necessity.'*  He can decree

nothing but good. If he permits evil, so far as not to hinder it, he hates

it as evil, and permits it only for, the greater good--the greatest of all

good--the more full manifestation of his own glory in it, and out of it.

He will be glorified in, or on, all his creatures. "All thy works shall

praise thee, 0 Lord!" (Ps. cxlv. 10.) His retributive justice, no less

than the riches of his grace, sets out his glory. (Rom. ix. 22, 23.) It

would seem as if the redeemed are permitted to see this, and to partici-

pate with Divine satisfaction. The flames of hell excite the reverential

praises of heaven.--"And again they said--Alleluia. And her smoke

rose up for ever and ever."

 

5. Every one that is proud in heart is an abomination to the Lord; though

hand join in hand, he shall not be unpunished,--(held innocent,

marg. )

The hatefulness of a proud look has been mentioned. (Chap. vi. 17.)

But the Searcher of hearts marks pride in heart under a humble look.

(Matt. vi. 16.) Men see no abomination in this spirit. It brings no dis-

grace. Nay, it is often thought to be high-minded. But it keeps back

the heart from God. It lifts up the heart against him. It contends for

the supremacy with him. (Ezek. xxviii. 2.) When it thus strikes at God, what

wonder that God strikes at it (1 Pet. v. 5), as an abomination to him?

How unseemly moreover is this sin! A creature so utterly depen-

dent, so fearfully guilty, yet proud in heart! A true child of a fallen

 

1 Job, xxi. 30, 2 Pet, ii. 9.            2 Rom. ix. 17, 22.           3 Ib. vii 5, 8, 11-18. 1 Cor. xv. 56.

  * Treatise on Will, Part ii. Sect. 12. See also Doddridge's valuable note on Luke, xxii. 22.

 † Rev. xix. 3. 'God made man neither to save nor damn him, but for his own glory.

And it is secured, whether in his salvation or damnation. (See 2 Cor. ii. 15.) Nor did, nor

does, God make man wicked. He made man upright. Man makes himself wicked; and

being so, God may justly appoint him to damnation for his wickedness; in doing which he

glorifies his justice.' GILL in loco. ‘Those two great acts of his most secret and unsearch-

able' counsel, than the one whereof there is not anyone act more gracious--the destination

of those that persevere in faith and godlliless to eternal happiness; nor anyone act more

full of terror and astonishment than the other--the designation of such as live and die in

sin to eternal destruction; the Scriptures in the last resolution refer them wholly to his

glory, as the last end. The glory of his rich mercy being most resplendent in the one, and

the glory of his just severity in the other.'--Bishop SANDERSON's Sermon on Rom xv. 6.


                                            CHAP. XVI. 5, 6.                                        229

 

parent, who, in dreaming to be as God, made himself like the devil.

(Gen. iii. 5.) Many are the forms of this hateful spirit. Some are proud

of their beauty; some of their talents; some of their rank; some of

their goodness--all forgetting, that they "have nothing which they

have not received (1 Cor. iv. 7); all unconscious, that they are an

abomination to the Lord.

Perhaps, however, this declaration applies more distinctly to proud

combinations against God--hand joining in hand.1 "That is all this

force, but the worm "striving with his Malter?2 "who is the Lord?"

--was the boast of haughty Pharaoh. Let him and his people go to

the Red Sea, and learn.3  Hand joining in hand shall not be held innocent

--shall not be unpunished. The Babel combination was blasted with

confusion.4 The "associations" against the holy child Jesus were

"broken In pieces."5  The infidel conspiracies of Voltaire and his

school have been overthrown. And thus in our own day, "will all Social

and Chartist banding together for wickedness, Only manifest more

gloriously--"There is no wisdom, nor understanding, nor counsel

against the Lord." (Chap. xxi. 30.)

 

6. By mercy and truth iniquity is purged: and by the fear of the Lord,

                                          men depart from evil.

The true exposition of this verse requires much care and consider-

ation. We protest against that false principle of theology, which sub-

stitutes the grand doctrines of the gospel in the place of its practical

statements. The purging of iniquity seems here however to direct us to

expiation.* Therefore to connect it with man's mercy and truth is to

overturn the foundation of the gospel. These are duties to be per-

formed (Chap. iii. 3); not atonement for sin: and often are they per-

formed by men destitute of the grace of God, whose iniquity therefore is

not purged. They may indeed in the dispensation of God be available

for averting national judgments. (Dan. iv. 27.) But there is a wide

difference between this "lengthening tranquility," and in purging iniquity.

On the other hand--considering that divine mercy and truth are

frequently exhibited in connection with this invaluable blessing;6  the

analogy of faith appears to link it here with these combined perfec-

tions, 'which kiss in Christ the Mediator (Ps. lxxxv. 10), and with that

covenant of grace, in which they shine so brightly.' Should this view

be thought not to cohere with the general tenor of this book, which

'deals more with practical points and matters of common life, than

 

1 Chap. xi. 21. Ps.lix. 3,12,13.                 2 Isa. xlv. 9.                              3 Exod. v. 2; xiv. 26-30.

4 Gen. xi. 1-9.                                        5 Isa. viii. 9. Ps. ii. 1-5.

6 Exod. xxxiv. 6. Ps.lvii. 3; 1xxxvi.15. Mic. vii. 18-20. John, i. 17. Comp. ch. xiv. 22.

  * It is the ordinary sacrificial term. Exod. xxx. 10. Lev. iv. 20; v.6. xvi. 6. Dan.ix.

24. Also Ps. lxv.3.

     † Henry. Comp.lxxxix. 2, 3, 14. Ps. cxvii. 1.

 

230         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

with the deeper articles of faith; '* it may be observed, that, when

some of its pages are so fully illuminated by evangelical sunshine

(Chap. viii. 9), we might naturally expect--besides this connected

splendour--occasional rays of doctrinal light to rest upon this system

of Christian morals.

Taking, therefore, in accordance with most of our best critics and

soundest expositors,this ground of interpretation--we observe the

great controversy between God and man. Men would purge iniquity by

repentance or external ceremonials. God determines it by sacrifice;

not nullifying the sanctions of the law by a simple deed of mercy; but

combining the manifestation of his truth, by fulfilling these sanctions

upon the Surety, which mercy provided. (Isa. liii. 6. 2 Cor. v. 21.) No

display of mercy can be conceived in force and emphasis to compare

with that awful moment when "God spared not his own Son" (Rom.

viii. 32), but permitted blameless love and purity to agonise upon the

cross. Yet was this wondrous display of mercy a display of truth not

less wondrous; inasmuch as it was the means, by which inflexible

justice could justify the guilty. (Rom. iii. 26.) So gloriously do these

two attributes harmonise! We enquire not, to which we owe the

deepest obligation. Mercy engages, truth fulfils--the engagements.

Mercy provides, truth accepts--the ransom. Both sat together in the

Eternal council. Both made their public entrance together into the

world. Both, like the two pillars of the temple (1 Kings, vii. 21), com-

bine to support the Christian's confidence; that, though there is abun-

dant material for condemnation even in the holiest saint; actual

condemnation there is not--there cannot be. (Rom. vii. 14 -25;

viii. 1.)

But if in the first clause of the verse we see how the guilt of iniquity

is purged, the second clause shews, how its power is broken. The very

exercise of forgiveness is to implant a conservative principle.1  By the

fear of the Lord, men depart from evil.2  The supposition of pardon for a

sinner continuing impenitent, would be to unite the two contraries of

reconciliatien and enmity. Iniquity is not purged, that we should wallow

again in the mire.3  The beam of light, which scatters every record of

condemnation, is convincing, sanctifying, healing to the soul. Indeed

God shews the deepest abhorrence of sin in the very act of its expia-

tion. Yet the implanted principle of obedience is no legal bondage.

The fear of the Lord is at once a bridle to sin, and a spur to holiness.

 

*  Geier.

Junius and Tremellius, Cartwright, Schultens, Holden, Henry, Scott, Comp. Glass'

beautiful exposition. Lib. iii. Tract. iii. Can. xxvi. The LXX omit the verse in its place,

and add it to Ch. xv. 27, connecting the blessing with man's moral virtues, not with God's

perfections.

1 Ps. cxxx. 4. Comp. Jer. xxxii. 40.                                         2 Chap. iii.7; viii. 13; xiv. 16, 27.

3 Luke, i. 74, 75. Comp. Rom. vi. 1. 2 Cor. vii. 1.


                                          CHAP. XVI. 7.                                         231

 

It changes the slave into a child. Filial confidence--its twin-grace

--like a seven-fold shield-covers from sin. Sin's very touch is

hateful; and all its ways are abhorred and forsaken.

 

7. When a man's ways please the Lord, he maketh even his enemies to be at

peace with him.

Often is the favour of God and man combined to the man of God.

(Chap. iii. 3, 4. Rom. xiv. 18.) Yet he will always have his enemies, if

from no other source, from "his own household." (Matt. x. 36.) To seek

peace with them by compromise of principle, would be to forfeit his

character at a dreadful cost. Let him hold fast his principles in the face

of his enemies. 'Though they mean him no good, they shall do him no

harm.'*

How then do we explain the persecution of the saints (2 Tim. iii. 12),

of Him especially, whose ways always pleased the Lord? (John, viii. 29,

37.) Each statement limits the other. The one shews the native

enmity of the heart: the other its Divine restraint. It shall be let

loose, so far as is for the glory of God. Beyond this, it shall be

restrained. (Ps. lxxvi. 10.) His Church had her season of rest. (Acts,

ix. 31.) He hath all tongues, all hands, all hearts, under his power.

Who then needs to fear man, that walks in the fear of God?

(Rom. viii. 31.)

'The best way for our enemies to be reconciled to us, is for us to be

reconciled to God.'  All our danger lies in his wrath, not in their

anger. No creature can touch us without his permission.1 Laban

followed Jacob as an enemy, but was constrained to be at peace with him.2

Esau when about to execute his long-brooded threat, was melted down

into brotherly endearment.3 Israel's lands were preserved from invasion,

while they were engaged in the service of God."4 The enemies of the

godly kings were manacled, and bowed before them.5 Often has the

majesty of the godly brow commanded the reverence, and even bound

up the hands of the wicked.‡  And such will be the ultimate victory

of the Church over all opposition.6

But even if the enemies be let loose; yet if their harm be overruled

to larger good, is not the promise substantially fulfilled? 'No wise

man will tax him with breach of promise, who, having promised a

pound of silver, giveth a talent of gold. Or who can truly say, that that

man is not so good as his word, that is apparently much better than his

 

* Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on Text                                Bishop Patrick.

‡ David, 1 Sam. xxiv. 17. Daniel and his fellow-captives, i. 6-21; iii. 26-30; vi. 24-28.

1 See Job, i. 9-12. Ps. cv.13-15.              2 Gen. xxxi. 24.               3 Ib. xxvii. 41; xxxii. 1-4.

4 Exod. xxxiv. 23, 24.                             5 1 Kings, iv. 21-25; x.23-29. 2 Chron. xvii. 10.

John the Baptist, Mark, vi. 20. Paul, Acts, xxvii. 43.

6 Rev. iii. 9.


232      EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

word?'*  God will take care of his people. Peace or war shall turn

to their everlasting good. (Rom. viii. 28. Philip. i. 12-19.)

 

8. Better is a little with righteousness, than great revenues without right.

            We have before had this Proverb in substance (Chap. xv. 16); save

that the treasures are more distinctly shewn to be revenues without right.

It seems almost too plain to need illustration. Yet so blind is the love

of gain, that it looks only at its own selfish end, and the present

moment; and fancies, what never can be, enjoyment1 and security.2

Retributive justice is at hand.3  Far better is the little with righteousness.

Was not the widow of Zarephath richer with her scanty fare, than

Jezebel in her royal attire;4 the poor prophet, sharing her pittance,

than the King with his revenues without right;5  Zaccheus, when reduced

to his comparative little with righteousness, than with his former abun-

dance of "the unrighteous Mammon?"6  If the sight of a man's

possession stirs envy, his scantiness of enjoyment might shortly melt it

away in compassion. We learn the valuable lesson--The fewer desires,

the more quiet. This is the present manifestation. Much more clearly

will the day declare it. The little righteously employed will then find a

gracious acceptance.7  The treasures of wickedness will be found

treasures of wrath eternal.8

Few however possess great revenues. But the most trifling acquisi-

tions without right will canker. Beware of the hair-breadth deviation

from straight principle. "Mortify that member of the earth," which

"is idolatry" (Col. iii. 5) against God, and "the root of all evil" to

ourselves. (1 Tim. vi. 10.) Godliness is great riches in this life; what

will it be in eternity! (1 Tim. v. 6; iv. 8.)

 

9. A man's heart deviseth his way: but the Lord directeth his steps.

A fine description of the Sovereign government of God! Inscrutable

indeed is the mystery, how he accomplishes his fixed purpose by free-

willed agents. Man without his free will is a machine. God without

his unchangeable purpose ceases to be God. (Mal. iii. 6.) As rational

agents we think, consult, act freely. As dependent agents, the Lord

exercises his own power in permitting, overruling, or furthering our

acts.9  Thus man proposes; God disposes. Man devises; the Lord

directeth. He orders our will, without infringing our liberty, or

disturbing our responsibility. For while we act as we please, we

must be answerable.

 

* Bishop Sanderson ut supra.

1 Ps. cxxvii. 2. Eccles. v. 12.                              2 Chap. x. 8; xxi. 6, 7. Jer. xvii. 11.

3 Jam. v. 4.                                                        4 1 Kings, xvii. 10. 2 Kings, ix. 32-37.

5 1 Kings, xxi. 19, with xvii. 15.                           6 Luke, xix. 2, 8.

7 Matt. xxv. 34-40. Luke, xvi. 9.                          8 Hab. ii. 6, 9, 12. Jam. v. 1-8.

9 Chap. xix. 21; xxi. 30. Ps. xxxiii. 11. lsa. xlvi. 10, Lam. iii. 37.


                                                          CHAP. XVI. 9                                          233

 

We observe this supremacy, in directing, not only an important end,

but every step towards it; not only the great events, but every turn;*

not only in his own people,1 but in every child of man.2  How little

did Joseph's brethren contemplate the overruling direction to their evil

devisings!3  When Saul's heart was devising "slaughter against the

disciples of the Lord;"4 when the renegade slave was running in his

own path, little did they think of that gracious direction of their steps,

to the salvation of their souls. When David simply went at his father's

bidding, little did he know the grand crisis, to which the Lord was

directing his steps.5  As little did the captive girl calculate upon the

weighty results from her banishment from her country.6 Often also

hath the path of the Lord's people been encouraged by the counter-

acting of their enemies' devising, and the backward direction of their

steps, at the moment when they were ready to grasp their prey!

(1 Sam. xxiii. 27; Isa. xxxvii. 7, 8.) In fact--as Bp. Hall remarks-

'Every creature walks blindfold. Only he that dwells in light, sees

whither they go.' (2 Kings, v. 2, 3.)

This doctrine of Providence is not like the doctrine of the Trinity-

to be received by faith. Experience gives a demonstrable stamp of evi-

dence--even in all the minutiae of circumstances which form the parts

and pieces of the Divine plan. A matter of common business;7 the

indulgence of curiosity;8 the supply of necessary want;9 a journey from

home10--all are connected with infinitely important results. And

often, when our purpose seemed as clearly fixed, and as sure of ac-

complishment, as a journey to London, this way of our own devising has

been blocked up by unexpected difficulties, and unexpected facilities

have opened an opposite way, with the ultimate acknowledgment--

"He led me forth in the right way." (Ps. cvii. 7. Isa. xlii.. 16.) The

Divine controul of the Apostle's movements, apparently thwarting their

present usefulness, "turned out rather to the furtherance of the gospel.

Philip was transferred from an important sphere in Samaria, from

preaching to thousands, into a desert. But the Ethiopian Eunuch

was his noble convert, and through him the gospel was doubtless

widely circulated. (Acts, viii. 37-39.) Paul was turned aside from a

wide field of labour to a more contracted ministry. A few women, and

a family, were his only Church. Yet how did these small beginnings

issue in the planting of flourishing Churches!11  After all, however, we

need much discipline to wean us from our own devices, that we may

seek the Lord's direction in the first place. The fruit of this discipline

 

1 Ps. xxxvii. 23.                                       2 Chap. xx. 24. Jer. x. 23.                       3 Gen. xxxvii. 26-28; xlv. 5.

4 Acts, ix. 1-6.                                        5 1 Sam. xvii. 17, 18, 23, 58.                  6 2 Kings, v. 2, 8.

7 1 Sam. ix. 3, 15, 16.                              8 Luke, xix. 4, 6, 9.                                  9 John, iv. 7.

10 Acts xvi. 14.                                       11  Ib. xvi. 6-15, 34, with Philip. i. 1. 1 Thess. i. 1.

* What vast results hung upon the sleepless night of the Eastern autocrat! Esth. vi. 1.

Epistle to Philemon.


234           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

will be a dread of being left to our own devices; as before we were

eager to follow them. (Ps. cx1iii.10.) So truly do we find our happiness

and security in yielding up our will to our Heavenly Guide! He

knows the whole way--every step of the way--"the end from the

beginning." And never shall we miss either the way or the end, if

only we resign ourselves with unreserved confidence to his keeping

and direction of our steps.

 

10. A Divine sentence (Divination,*  marg.) is in the lips of the king; his

            mouth transgresseth not in judgment. 11. A just weight and balance

            are the Lord's; all the weights of the bag are his work. 12. It is an

            abomination to kings to commit wickedness; for the throne is established

            by righteousness. 13. Righteous lips are the delight of kings; and they

            love him that speaketh right.

Here is a manual for kings; shewing, not what they are, but what

God requires them to be, that they may be a blessing to their people,

and benefactors to the world. (2 Sam. xxiii. 3, 4.) If this standard be

neglected, the wisely-arranged ordinance fails of its end. "One man

ruleth over another to his own hurt" (Eccles. viii. 9); and ruler and

people may each become a curse to the other. (Judg. ix. 20.)

The king is not indeed wiser by birth than his subjects; but he is

under stronger obligations to seek wisdom.1 And when God's law is his law, a

divine sentence is in his lips. Such was the wisdom of Solomon, when in a

delicate and difficult cause his mouth transgressed not in judgment.

Such a King (and this is the glory of royalty) will have no interest

of his own, apart from the public good. The remembrance that the

balances and weights are the Lord's, his work--made by his appointment

--dictates an even-handed justice.‡  Not only will he refrain from

wickedness; but it will be abomination to him to commit it. Not only will

he be careful to remove all evil from his person; 2 but he will surround

himself with faithful counsellors.§ Righteous lips will be his delight.

 

* Not Divination--strictly so called, which was absolutely forbidden (Deut. xviii. 10);

but penetration in discovering truth. See PARKHURST.

1 Kings, iii. 26-28. 'Who would have expected to have found in this Proverb a proof

of the Pope's infallibility! 'If Kings are infallible, much more Popes.' 'Arguments must

be extremely scarce, when such are alleged.'--SCOTT.

Deut. xxiv. 15, 16. Ezek. xlv. 10, The Jews used to keep their weights in bags.

Mic. vi. 11.

§ Chap. xxii. 11. Ps. ci. 6, 7. Dan. iii. 28-30; vi. 24-28. Constantius, the father of

Constantine, tested the character of his Christian servants, by the imperative command to

offer sacrifices to his gods. Some sunk under the trial. Those, who had really "bought

the truth," would sell it for no price. (Chap. xxiii. 2:1.) They were inflexible. He banished

the base compliants from his service. The the confessors he entrusted with the care of his

own person. 'These men'--said he--'I can trust. I value them more than all my treasures.'

This was sound judgment. For who are so likely to be faithful to their king, as those that

have proved themselves faithful to their God!

 1 Chap. xxv. 2. 1 Kings, ili. 9. 2 Sam. xiv. 17.                 2 Chap. xx. 8, 26, contrast xxix. 12.


                                           CHAP. XVI. 14, 15.                                    235

 

Admirable was Eli's, regard to Samuel's lips, even when they spoke

daggers to his heart.*

Nothing is wanting to such a reign but stability. And thus speaks

the word, unnoticed indeed by worldly statesmen, but well-warranted

by experience--The throne is established by righteousness.1  Thus 'the

Polity acknowledges itself indebted to religion. Godliness, being the

chiefest top and well-spring of all true virtues,' is the foundation of

national prosperity. The righteous are the pillars of the earth,2 the

lions around the King's throne, his glory and defence.3

And shall we not plead for our Beloved Queen, that she may embody

this royal standard in her personal character and high responsibilities?

(1 Tim. ii. 1, 2. Ps. lxxii. 1.) And may we not see here some faint

delineation of the glorious King of Zion? What Divine sentences of

discriminating judgment dropped from his lips! (Matt. xxii. 15-46.)

How even are the balances of his perfect standard!4  How fully is his

throne established by righteousness!5--himself "loving righteousness,

and hating iniquity!" And what and who are his delight?--righteous

lips--He that speaketh right.6

 

14. The wrath of a king is as messengers of death; but a wise man will

pacify it. 15. In the light of the king's countenance is life; and his

favour is as a cloud of the latter rain.

The vast power of a King is here developed in a graphic picture of

Eastern despotism. Life and death is in his hands. His will is law.

(Eccles. viii. 4.) Every sign of his wrath--even the frown of his face, or

the word out of his mouth--is a messenger of death. (Esth. vii. 7-10.)

The despot issues his order, and the executioner performs his warrant

without delay or resistance.‡  No common wisdom was needed to

pacify his wrath. Jonathan appeased his father's wrath.7 Daniel

pacified the outrageous autocrat of Babylon.8 What a blessing, in con-

trast with this tyranny, is our own constitution! Such an admirable

counterpoise between the power of the people and the caprice of the

Sovereign! The just authority of the crown is preserved, without

invading the due liberty of the subject.

 

1 Kings, ii. 3. 2 Chron. xxxii. 22, 23. Jer. xxii. 13-20.                                 2 Ps. 1 xxv. 3.

3 1 Kings. x. 19, 20.                    4 Ps. xlv. 6, 7. lsa. xi. 3, 4; xxxii. 1.         5 Isa. ix. 7. Jer. xxiii. 5.

6 Chap. xi. 1; xii. 22; Ps. xv. I, 2; xxiv. 3-5.                                              7 1 Sam. xix. 4-6.

8 Dan. ii. 15, 16. Comp. Acts, xii. 20-22.

* 1 Sam. iii. 15-18. Contrast 1 Kings, xxii. 8; 2 Chron. xv. 7-10; xxv. 15, 16; Mark,

vi. 17, 18. Clarendon perhaps was the finest example in modern times of unbending recti-

tude, boldly reproving his flagitious master, and beseeching him 'not to believe, that he

had a prerogative to declare vice to be virtue.' Well had it been for Charles, had these

righteous lips been his delight.

HOOKER, Eccl. Pol. B. v. c. i. 2. Chap. xiv. 34.

1Sam. xxii. 16-21. 1 Kings, ii. 24, 25, 46. 2 Kings, vi. 31-33. Matt. xiv. 10. Comp.

PAXTON'S Sacr. Geogr. 405.


236        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

            The king's favour marks the same absolute power. The restoration

of Pharaoh's butler to his place was as ' life from the dead.”1  The

captive monarch found renewed life in the light of his Master's counte-

nance;2 Nehemiah's depression was cheered by his Sovereign's kind

manners and still kinder indulgence.3 And was not the golden sceptre,

held out to Esther,4 as the reviving cloud of the latter rain--the security

of "the joy of harvest?"*

But think of the King of kings, before whom the mightiest Monarch

is as dust. (Isa. xl. 22.) How much more is his Wrath to be dreaded as

a messenger of death!5  The Kings themselves will fly to the rocks in

vain for a shelter from its fury.6  Wise indeed is the man who pacifies it.

What owe we to that blood, which speaks our peace?7 Sinner--ere it

be too late--listen to the pleading call--"Be ye reconciled unto

God."8  And then whose wrath need he fear, who knows that God is

propitious to him?

For truly, if in the light of the earthly King's countenance, much more

"in his favour is life." (Ps. xxx. 5.) One smile scatters the thickest

cloud, and brings "gladness" infinitely more than all the treasures of

earth;9 refreshing as the latter rain.10  'Christ liveth'--said the noble

Luther--'else I would not desire to live one moment.' Yea--

Christian!--bitter and deep as thy sorrow may be, dread above all

thy troubles the clouding of thy Lord's countenance. Watch every

interval to obtain a glimpse of it. Seize every leisure to exchange a

word or a look. Count every moment of separation irksome to thee.

Above all--look and hasten to that time, when thou shalt walk up

and down in the unclouded light. Oh, my Lord! 'let the splendour of

that day irradiate my soul, even at this distance from it, and leave no

space void of its light and comfort. Yea--let it eclipse all other joys,

and by its glistening beauty cause the small contentment of this world

to be so many glow-worms, which shine only in the night. Impress

on my heart such a lively sense of thee, and of thy glory, that I may

sooner forget myself, than thee and thine appearing.'

 

16. How much better is it to get wisdom than gold! and to get understand-

ing rather than chosen silver!

This apart from inspiration, must be considered to be a competent

judgment. It was formed by one, who had the largest portion of both

 

1 Gen. xl. 20.21.                                    2 2 Kings, xxv. 27-30.                3 Neh. ii. 1-8.

4 Esth. v. 2, 3, with iv. 16.                      5 Matt. xxii. 13. Luke, xii.                       6 Rev. vi. 15.

7 Col. i. 20: Heb. xii. 24.             8 2 Cor. v. 200; vi. 2. 9               9 Ib. iv. 6, 1; xxi. 6.

10 Ib. lxxii. 6. Hos. vi. 3.

* Deut. xi. 14. Job, xxix. 23. Joel, ii. 23. Zech. x. 1. Jam. V.7. As the Jews began

their civil year after the Autumnal Equinox, the latter rain fell in the spring; 'and the

more wet the spring '--says Dr. Russel--'the later the harvest, and the more abundant the

crop.' HARMER'S Observ. i. 71.

Bishop PATRICK'S Glorious Epiphany, pp. 110, 114


                                       CHAP. XVI. 16, 17.                                          237

 

blessings, that ever fell to the lot of man. (1 Kings, iii. 12, 13.) Cal-

culate in the balances of the sanctuary the overwhelming interests of

heaven above earth, of the soul above the body, of eternity above time;

and who will dispute this verdict? One who had made the choice

counted all things but loss and dung in comparison. (Phil. iii. 8.) It

is more valuable,1 more abiding,2 more fruitful,3 more satisfying. It is

inexpressibly better. The question implies admiration and delight--

How much better to get wisdom than gold? understanding than silver!4

It is the only thing under the sun exempted from the universal verdict

--"All is vanity."5  The spiritual apprehension of it is like the sudden

discovery of a rich treasure ready for immediate use.

The security of the possession also heightens its value. Multitudes

labour night and day for gold; yet miss the treasure. But who was

ever disappointed in the effort to get wisdom?6 When has earnestness

and prayer failed of success?7 "Wisdom is the principal thing; there-

fore get wisdom; and with all thy getting, get understanding."8  No-

thing less than salvation is the great end.9 How rich must be that

blessing, of which the Son of God is the storehouse! For "in him are

hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge." (Col. ii. 3.) And none

shall spoil us of our portion.

 

17. The highway of the upright is to depart from evil: he that keepeth his

way preserveth his soul.

The highway is the plain beaten path. The highway of the upright--

his ordinary course of profession--is "the way of holiness" (Isa. xxxv.

8. Ps. cxix. 1-3)--departing from evil. Here let him be seen, peculiar

in his practice as in his principles. Each of us have our own world of

evil--an inner circle, where the conflict is far more sharp; where the

need of divine discipline is far more sensibly felt, than in the grosser

form of sin. Shew great forbearance to others, but none to ourselves.

Admit no foibles or infirmities. Count nothing small, that hinders the

completeness or consistency of profession. The real injury is not from

our living in the world, but from the world living in us. So delicate is

the vital principle, that it never can emit its glowing influence, except

in the atmosphere of heaven.

To keep therefore this way is to preserve our soul. (Chap. iv. 23-27;

xix. 16.) Indeed 'if religion did possess sincerely and sufficiently the

minds of all men, there would need no other restraint from evil.'*

Joseph was thus saved (Gen. xxxix. 9, 10): while David, forsaking the

path, fell into a grievous sin. (2 Sam. xi. 2.) The quick perception of

evil--the sensibility of danger from lawful things--at once proves

 

1 Chap. iii. 13-15; viii. 10, II, 18.              2 Chap. xxiii. 5.                          3 Ecc. vii. 12.

4 Ib. v. 10.                                             5 Eccl. i. 2.                                6 Matt. xi. 12.

7 Chap. ii. 3-5. Jam. i. 5.                         8 Chap. iv. 7.                             9 2 Tim. iii. 15.

* HOOKER, Eccl. Pol. B. v. c. i. 2.


238           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

our heavenly birth, and covers, us from many subtle devices. (1 John, v.

18.) "The unclean shall not pass over this highway; but the redeemed

shall walk there." (Isa. xxxv. 8, 9.)

 

18. Pride goeth before destruction, and a haughty spirit before a fall. 19.

Better is it to be of an humble spirit with the lowly, than to divide the

spoil with the proud.

            What more vivid exposition of these Proverbs is needed than our

own ruined condition? Our father's pride, desiring to "be as God"

hurried his whole race to destruction. '0 Adam'--was the exclamation

of a man of God, 'what hast thou done!'*  'I think,'--said another

holy man--'so far as any man is proud, he is kin to the devil, and a

stranger to God and to himself.'  The most awful strength of Divine

eloquence seems to be concentrated to delineate the character and ruin

of pride.1  Example abounds throughout the Scripture;‡  each sound-

ing this solemn admonition--"Be not high-minded, but fear."2  Fear-

ful indeed is our danger, if the caution be not welcomed; if the need for

it be not deeply felt!

The haughty spirit§ carries the head high. The man looks upward,

instead of to his steps. What wonder therefore, if, not seeing what is

before him, he falls? He loves to climb. The enemy is always at

hand to assist him (Matt. iv. 5, 6); and the greater the height, the

more dreadful the fall. There, is often something in the fall, that

marks the Lord's special judgment. God smites the object, of which

the man is proud. David gloried in the number of his people, and the

Lord diminished them by pestilence. Hezekiah boasted of his trea-

Sure; and the Lord marked it to be taken away. At the moment that

Nebuchadnezzar was proud of his Babel, he was banished from the en-

joyment of it. "The vain daughters of Zion," priding themselves on

their ornaments, were covered with disgrace. (Isa. iii. 24.) Yet after all,

the state of heart that prepares man for the fall, is the worst part of his

condition. For what is our pride is our danger, 'Why'--a wise man

asks--'is earth and ashes proud? Pride was not made for man.'

But have we been preserved from open disgrace? Examine secret

faults. Trace them to their source--a subtle confidence in gifts,

attainments, and privileges. And then praise thy God for his painful

discipline--the preserving mercy from ruinous self-exaltation. Truly

the way down to the valley of Humiliation is deep and rugged. Hu-

 

                1 Isa. xiv.4-19. Ezek. xxviii. xxix. Job, xl. 11,12.

                2 Rom. xi. 20. Comp.l Cor. x. 12; 1 Tim. iii. 6.

* ADAM'S Private Thoughts                                            BAXTER'S Narrative.

Pharaoh, Ex. ix. 16,17; Amaziah, 2 Chron. xxv. 15-20; Haman, Esth. v. 11; vii. 10;

Pharaoh, Ezek. xxix. 3-5. Nebuchadnezzar, Dan. iv. 29-33; Herod, Acts, xii. 21-23; In

the Church, David, 2 Sam. xxiv. 1; Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi. 4-16; Hezekiah, xxxii.

25; 1sa. xxxix.; Peter, Matt. xxvi 33, 69-74.

§  Altifrons elatio spiritus.--SCHULTENS.


                                             CHAP. XVI. 20.                                       239

 

mility, therefore, is the grand preserving grace. The contrite publican

was safe, when the boasting Pharisee was confounded. (Luke, xviii. 14.)

Better then--more happy, more honourable, more acceptable to God

and man--is a humble spirit, companying with the lowly, than the spoil

of the haughty conqueror, ministering only to his destruction. (James, i.

9.) Better is an humble spirit, than a high condition; to have our

temper brought down, than our outward condition raised. But who

believes this? Most men strive to rise; few desire to lie low! May

thy example--blessed Saviour--keep me low! 'When Majesty'--said

pious Bernard--'humbled himself shall the worm swell with pride?'

 

20. He that handleth a matter wisely shall find good; and whoso trusteth

in the Lord, happy is he.

Two things are needed for the success of a matter--wisdom and

faith. One teaches us what to do for ourselves; the other what to expect

from God. "Wisdom is profitable to direct" (Eccles. x. 10), specially

in important matters. Joseph's wise management in a great emergency

found good.*  The Apostles wisely handled the matter of the ministra-

tion of the widows, relieving themselves from the secular work, and for

the greater satisfaction choosing the officers (as seems probable from

the original of the names) from the complaining party. And great

good did they find from the arrangement.‡  Let the young Christian

earnestly study this wisdom. His first glowing impulse would cast

away every relic of his former course, and stamp his religion with

needless singularity. But he may learn, that true self-denial is more

an internal exercise than an external badge of difference; that there

may be a martyred singularity without the genuine love; that the dis-

tinction between enthusiasm and zeal is not the energy, but the direc-

tion, of the principle. This wisdom will be profitable for Christian

humility and consistency.

After all, however, the most profound human wisdom may be out-

witted. (2 Sam. xvii. 14.) Prudence without faith, will come to nought.§

True wisdom handles the matter in self-distrusting dependence. (Chap.

iii. 5, 6.) Eliezer's discreet handling was in the spirit of faith. In the

same spirit did Jacob conduct his prudential defence against his

brother. (Gen. xxxii. xxxiii.) Esther wisely handled her delicate

matter; using a fast to call upon God, and a feast to obtain favour

 

* Gen. xli. 25-44. Hence the removal of wise men is a national judgment. lsa. iii. l, 2.

Comp. also Chap. xiii. 16, xvii. 2, xix. 8.

SCOTT in loco.

Acts, vi. 1-7. Similar good result was obtained in the wise handling of the difficult

matter of circumcision. Ib, xv.

§ Isa. xxii. 5-11, Comp. 2 Kings, xviii. 13-17, Man at his best estate vanity, Verses 5, 6.


240        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

with the King.'* This is in all cares true wisdom--to make man the

excitement to diligence; God the object of trust.

And where, as in this practical trust, shall we find so Divine, so

simple, a recipe of happiness? Never did God intend to create our

happiness out of our own resources. To feel that we know nothing,

that we can do nothing, contrive nothing; then to look up to him,

our supreme Good, and to trust him as our only Friend--when was

such reliance and expectation ever disappointed? We feel that we,

and all that we have, are in his hands. This is our peaceful security.

'I have had many things'--said Luther--'in my hands, and I have

lost them all. But whatever I have been able to place in God's, I still

possess.'  In this quiet confidence we have nothing more to do with

ourselves. A thousand perplexing thoughts are scattered to the winds.

God now takes the place once filled by most unquiet agitations. The

soul is fixed in God. He reigns over all with an all-seeing eye, and an

all-moving hand. The eye of faith pierces through the darkest cloud

and reads God's thoughts of peace and love. All the world cannot rob

us of one word of God, Providence may seem to oppose his promises.

But there is more reality in the least promise of God, than in the

greatest performance of man. 'I will therefore ever trust him on his

bare word; with hope, beside hope, above hope, against hope, for small

matters of this life. For how shall I hope to trust him in impos-

sibilities, if I may not in likelihoods?'‡ This simple habit of faith

enables us fearlessly to look an extremity in the face. Thus holding

on, it is his honour to put his own seal to his word--whoso trusteth in

the Lord, happy is he. (Ps. ii. 12. Jer. xvii. 7,8.)

 

21. The wise in heart shall be called prudent; and the sweetness of the

lips increaseth learning.

The heart is the proper seat of wisdom.1 There "it dwells with

prudence."2 Their combined exercise is essential to the completeness

of a Christian profession. Intellectual wisdom without a prudential

application tends to no practical end. The pervading want of prudence

gives needless offence to the gospel, and destroys influential weight of

character. Often also do spiritual affections run to waste for want of

prudent direction or discipline. Moral habits from this defect become

either morbid or hardened. There is either a superstitious scrupulous-

ness, or a reckless indifference; sometimes conscience about every-

thing, sometimes about nothing. Prudent wisdom gives consistency to

 

* Esth. iv. 16; v. 5; vii, 1-7. Bishop REYNOLDS on Hos, xiv 3,

D'AUBIGNE'S History of the Reformation Book xiv. chap. vi.

‡  Bishop HALL'S Works viii, S

1 Chap. ii. 10; x, 8.                                 2 Chap, viii. 12. Hos. xiv. 9.


                                             CHAP. XVI. 22.                                      241

 

the whole system. The eye directs the foot, and we walk safely upon

firm ground. 'Bright and sparkling parts are like diamonds, which

may adorn the proprietor, but are not necessary for the flood of the

world. Whereas common sense' (substantially identified with prudent

wisdom) 'is like current coin. We have every day in the ordinary

occurrences of life occasion for it. And if we would but call it into

action it would carry us much greater lengths than we seem to be

aware of.'*

These internal qualities gain increasing acceptance from external

gifts. "When we are enriched with all utterance, as well as with all

knowledge" (1 Cor. i. 5); when we are enabled to clothe our thoughts

in a flowing style and clear expression; this doubtless gives a great

advantage in communicating knowledge. (Eccles. xii. 10, 11.) The

sweetness of the lips increaseth learning! Ambrose's mellifluous eloquence

arrested and gradually brought conviction to Augustine's mind.Yet

much more does this advantage belong to 'the sweet words of consola-

tion, which come forth of a godly trust.'‡  Wisdom is in the heart, as

in a treasury; and "out of the abundance of the heart the mouth

speaketh."1  When therefore "the heart is inditing a good matter,

speaking of the things touching the King; the tongue, "like the

Apostle's2--without any adventitious attractiveness, is "the pen of a

ready,vriter."3 And when without measure "grace was poured upon

the lips"4 of the King himself what wonder that he should have con-

strained the admiration,5 and fixed the attention,6 of his hearers! How

inestimable the privilege of his true disciples to sit at his feet, increasing

learning from the sweetness of his lips!

 

22. Understanding is a well-spring of life unto him that hath it: but the

instruction of fools is folly.

A religion of notions--what is it? A dreaming theory! All is

death. There is no pulse in the affections, no motion in the heart.

But when the understanding is enlightened, to apprehend spiritual

things in their spiritual glory, notions become principles. Feelings

flow from light, and are filled with life. The Book of God shines forth

with new glory. Every verse is a sunbeam. Every promise is

irradiated with Divine love. What before was unmeaning sound

becomes now "spirit and life." (John, vi. 63.) This spiritual under-

standing is indeed a well-spring of life (lb. iv. 14; vii. 38), not a work

on the surface; not a mere forced impulse; not the summer stream,

but a deep-flowing fountain. (Chap. xviii. 4.) If it be not always

bubbling, there is always a supply at the bottom-spring.

 

1 Matt. xii. 34. Comp. verse 23; also Ecclus. xl. 21.          2 1 Cor. ii. 1-4.               3 Ps. xlv. 1.

4 Ib. verse 2.                  5 Matt. vii, 28. Luke, iv. 22. John, vii 46.      6 Luke, xix. 48.

* SEED'S Sermons                   Confess. Lib. v. c. 13, 14.                   ‡ Reformers' Notes.


242          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

            But the contrast leads us to speak of this well-spring, as not only

refreshing to him that hath it, but a blessing to all around him. And

indeed every Christian will feel the responsibility of fertilizing his

sphere, be it narrow or wide. The fountain in the Apostle's heart,

filled with knowledge and spiritual understanding, "communicated a

widely-extended blessing. (Acts, xiv. 21, 22;) Let the meanest member

of the Church attend to the valuable advice of one of the Ancients;

and 'by the daily reading of the Scriptures pour oil into his faculties,

and prepare the lamp of his mind; so that, according to the precept of

the gospel, it may give light to all that are in the house.'*

Yet the stream cannot rise above its level. It must be only as the

fountain. What then but folly can be the instruction of fools?1 Such

in the fullest sense was the whole system of Heathenism;2 the instruction

of its dark philosophy;3 and the creed of the sensual Epicureans.4

Justly did our Lord stamp with his rebuke the senseless instruction of

the Scribes and Pharisees.5 What else could it be, but "the blind

leading the blind, and both falling into the ditch?"6

            Christian professor! ponder--Unless thy understanding be filled

with heavenly light, it will be a poisoned fountain, not a well-spring of

life. What if thy understanding be clear, and thy heart be dark; if

thou be learned in the truth of Christ, yet not "taught by him, as the

truth is in Jesus" (Eph. iv. 20, 21); if like Balaam, thou be sound in

theology, yet damned in sin! (Num. xxxiii. 19-23. 2 Pet. ii. 15.) 'Let

us not think much of ourselves'--says the excellent Bishop Reynolds

though God should have adorned us with the most splendid natural

gifts; with quickness of understanding, almost like that of angels;

unless at the same time he adds to all the gift of his spiritual grace,

by which we may attain to a knowledge and delight in the heavenly

mystery.'

 

23. The heart of the wise teacheth his mouth, and addeth learning

to his lips.

The well-spring of life, however silently it may flow, cannot be con-

cealed. The weighty instruction, pouring out from a Divinely-

instructed heart, shews the heavenly source, from whence the well-spring

is supplied. While the "talk of the lips impoverishes" (Chap. xiv.

23), the teaching of the heart addeth learning. Who does not know the

difference between one, who speaks of what he has read or heard, and

one who speaks of what he has felt and tasted? The one has the

 

1 Chap. xv. 2.                2 Isa. xliv. 9-20. Jer. x. 1-8.                    3 Rom. i. 21-25. 1 Cor. i. 19, 20.

4 1 Cor. xv. 82.              5 Matt. xxiii. 16-26.                                6 Ib. xv. 14.

* Theophilus of Alexandria, quoted by Nicholls.

Animalis Homo--an admirable Sermon preached before the University of Oxford.

Works, p. 822.


                                                   CHAP. XVI. 28.                              243

 

knowledge of the gospel--dry and spiritless. The other has "the

savour of this knowledge" (2 Cor. ii. 14)--fragrant and invigorating.

The theorist may exceed in the quantum (for Satan-as an angel of

light--is a fearful proof, how much knowledge may be consistent with

ungodliness;) but the real difference applies, not to the extent, but to

the character, of knowledge; not to the matter known, but to the mode

of knowing it. 'Unbelievers'--as Dr. Owen admirably observes--

may know more of God, than many believers; but they know nothing

as they ought; nothing in a right manner; nothing with an holy and

heavenly light. The excellency of a believer is, not that he hath a

large apprehension of things; but that what he doth apprehend (which

perhaps may be very little) he sees it in the light of the Spirit of God,

in a saving, soul-transforming light. And this is that, which gives us

communion with God.'*  It is not therefore the intellectual knowledge

of Divine truth that makes the Divine. The only true Divine is he,

who knows holy things in a holy manner; because he only is gifted

with a spiritual taste and relish for them. His apprehensions therefore

are manifestly of God. His object has a real existence. Without any

theological aid, he comes to the enjoyment of "all the riches of the full

assurance of understanding" (Col. ii. 2); to a clearer certainty of the

truth, than by the most demonstrable theorism. (1 John, ii. 27; v.20.)

And this experimental theology gives a rich unction to his com-

munications. Divinity is not said by rote. The heart teacheth the

mouth.

Take as an illustration the doctrine of the Trinity--that mystery,

of which every letter is mysterious. The disputant of the schools, in

attempting to expound it, only "darkens counsel by words without

knowledge." (Job, xxxviii. 2.) The heart of the wise--heaven--taught

--realizes the indwelling of the three sacred persons in undivided

essence; and every act of prayer is through God--by God--to God.

(Eph. ii. 18.) Conscious weakness needs Divine breath. Conscious

guilt trusts in Divine advocacy. The heart, thus taught in the school

of experience, expounds the doctrine in simplicity, and addeth learning

to the lips. How much better is faith understood in the practical

exercise than in the accurate definition! He who lives most simply

"a life of faith on the Son of God" (Gal. ii. 20. 1 John, v. 10) will

explain most clearly its office and influence. Contrast also proud

reasoning man replying to the Sovereignty of God, with the heart

humbled, and teaching the mouth the adoration of wonder and praise.

(Rom. ix. 19, 20; xi. 33.)

This heart-teaching gives the Minister "the tongue of the learned"

for the refreshment of the weary soul, when he "declares," not only

"what he has seen and heard" (Isa. 1. 4, with 2 Cor. i. 4), but "what

 

* On the Mortification of Sin in Believers, Chap. xii.


244            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

his hands have handled of the Word of life." (1 John, i. 1-3.) He then

speaks, not only the message of God, but from the mouth of God; and

his "gospel comes not in word only, but in power, and in the Holy

Ghost, and in much assurance." (1 Thess. i. 5.)

In fine--man's religion begins, with the head; God's with the

heart. "Out of the heart are the issues of life." (Chap. iv. 23.) Let me

be careful, in what atmosphere, under what teaching I live. The vivid

theory brings me into the icy zone: cold, and clear and cold.* The

experimental application realizes the glow of evangelical light and

warmth. Let me look mainly, not to intellectual or theological attain-

ments, but to heavenly teaching. Let me seek that my heart be first

taught. Then let it teach my mouth, and add learning to my lips for the

praise of my God, and the edifying of his Church.

 

24. Pleasant words are as honeycomb: sweet to the soul, and health to

the bones.

The sweets of pleasure are not always health. (Chap. v. 3-5.) The

honeycomb combines both. Description may give a fancied notion of it.

But the taste affords the only true apprehension. Such is the mysterious

delight and refreshment conveyed to us in pleasant words. When they

are words of counsel, sympathy, or encouragement, they are medicinal

also; not only sweet to the soul, but health to the bones. Much more are

the pleasant words of God both sweet and wholesome. The professor

may enjoy a passing sweetness in them.1 But it is only "the drinking

in of them,"that realizes their solid pleasure,2 "sweeter than honey or the

honeycomb"3  We go on our way, like Samson, eating our honeycomb;4

like Jonathan, revived.5 We take the Lord's words to the throne of

grace; and, pleading them humbly and thankfully, most pleasant are

they to our taste. Yea, so overwhelming often is their richness, that

we can only ask, as concerning the manna--"What is it ?"6  Not less

healthful are they than pleasant; invigorating to our inner principles,

the strength--the bones--so to speak--of our spiritual system. (Chap.

iii. 8; iv. 22.)

The like pleasure and health flow from the words of man in the

things of God.7  How did "David and Jonathan in the wood strengthen

each other's hands in God!"8  How was the Eunuch cheered by Philip's

exposition of the precious Scripture!9 What health did Paul's most

 

1 Ezek. xxxiii. 32. Matt. xiii. 20. Heb. vi. 4, 5.                                          2 Heb. vi. 7.

3 Ps xix. 10. Comp. cxix. 103.                4 Judg. xiv. 8, 9.                         5 1 Sam. xiv. 27.

6 Exod. xvi. 15, marg.                            7 Verses 21, 23; xv. 23; xxvii. 9. 8 1 Sam. xxiii. 16.

9 Acts, viii. 35-39.

* ‘Going over the theory of virtue in one's thoughts, talking well, and drawing fine

pictures about it, this is so far from necessarily or certainly conducing to form the habit

of it in him, who thus employs himself, that it, may harden the mind in a contrary course,

and form an habit of insensibility to all moral considerations.' Such is the weighty and

solemn warning of Bishop Butler, Analogy, part i. chap. v.


                                              CHAP. XVI. 25.                                          245

 

pleasant words pour into the heart of the desponding jailor!1 And

how was his own spirit received by the meeting at Appii Forum;2 as

the disciples had been refreshed by the converse of their Divine Master

on the walk to Emmaus!3 When he is the subject, and his Spirit the

teacher, pleasant indeed will be the words of Christian communion beyond

any earthly enjoyment.

 

25. There is a way that seemeth right unto a man: but the end thereof are

the ways of death.

Again we have this solemn, searching caution. For so fearful is

the danger of self-delusion, that we are only safe by warning upon

warning. (Philip. iii. 1.) Not defect of understanding, but love of sin

is the cause. (John, iii. 19.) The judgment is perverted, because the

heart is blinded.4  It is no proof that a way is right, because it seemeth

right.5 "All the ways of a man are right in his own eyes;"6 yet the

end thereof are the ways of death. The way of disobedience seems to be

necessary; or it is only a small deviation; yet was it punished as

"witchcraft and idolatry."7 The way of deceit seems to be right; an

easy way of escaping difficulty;8 or obtaining some present advantage.9  

"But a lying tongue is but for a moment;"10  and the unrepenting liar

finds his "part in the lake, that burneth with fire and brimstone." (Rev.

xxi. 8.) The Pharisee is dazzled with his own goodness. All his

religion is in externals; sufficient ground for his own acceptance with

God.11  He has compounded for the internal work, to add to the pomp

of the heartless ceremonial. He brings to God the formal duty, which

he abhors,12 and he refuses the spiritual service, which he demands.13

Yet his way seems to be right. But his countenance is hated,14 his

prayer is cast out;15  his goodness is an abomination.16  The orthodox

professor takes up his opinion, and puts on appearances, only to keep

the Spirit out of the heart, and to quiet his conscience, without coming

to the true point. Yet his way--with so much doing in religion--

seemeth right unto him. Often there is considerable working of natural

feeling. Joy is mistaken for faith, till the scorching sun has withered

it away. (Matt. xiii. 20, 21.) Alarm is mistaken for penitence; better

indeed than total indifference; yet proving itself to be only a fit.

selfish terror, passing away with the apparent danger. (Ps. lxxviii.

33-37.) Yet thus "he feedeth upon the ashes" of his own delusion,

 

1 Acts, xvi, 27, 34.                      2 Ib. xxviii. 15.                           3 Luke, xxiv. 32.

4 Isa v. 20. Eph. iv. 18.               5 Chap. xii. 26. John, xvi. 2. Acts, xxvi. 9.

6 Verse 2; xii. 15.                       7 1 Sam. xv. 20-23.                    8 Ib. XXI. 2.

9 2 Kings. v. 22.                         10 Chap. xii. 19.

11 Chap. xxx. 12, with Rom. ix. 33. Luke, xviii. 11, 12.                  12 Isa. i 10-14.

13 Matt. xv. 7-9.                                     14 Verse 5; chap. vi 16, l7.          15 Luke, xviii. 14.

16 Isa. lxv. 5. Luke, xvi 15.


246           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

grave; yea--even to the presence of his God, when heaven shut, and

hell opened, shew him the truth too late.1  Madness indeed is it to dream

of heaven, when every step is the way of hell. The end tests the safety

of the path. Hence it is the enemy's grand design to shut it out of

view, that he may make his way seem to be right. The ways of death are

many. The way of life is but One--"I am the way; no man cometh

to the Father, but by me." (John, xiv. 6.) Oh! the transcendent mercy

of the eyes opened to see the awful danger of our own way, and our

ears opened to hear the voice behind us, saying--"This is the way;

walk ye in it!" (Isa. xxx. 21. Jer. vi. 16.)

 

26. He that laboureth, laboureth for himself; for his mouth craveth it of

him.

A state of labour is the penal appointment of God. (Gen. iii. 19.)

It is the law of God in his Church, so that those who are no workers;

are counted "disorderly workers." (1 Thess. iv. 11.) Yet is mercy

mingled with this curse. What if there were no obligation to labour?

"Every imagination of the heart" (Gen. vi. 5)--unmingled, unceasing

"evil"--would, for want of other occupation, be left to its own undis-

turbed energy. Wise then and gracious is the decree--Rest in heaven;

labour on earth. This is the necessary condition of the great mass of

mankind. Their mouth craveth it of them (Eccles. vi. 7), eager as a

suppliant to receive the needful food. This is labouring for ourselves.

The harvest is our rich recompence. Only take care, that we labour

not for vanity,2 or for" evil covetousness."3 This is working our own

ruin.4

But even where we are exempt from bodily toils, the wide-spreading

progress of knowledge fills up daily life with wearisome mental occupa-

tion; which, under Christian discipline, brings its own reward, so that

he that laboureth, laboureth for himself. Barrow severely handles the

popular notion--'What is a gentleman, but his pleasure? If this be

true,'--he remarks--'if a gentleman be nothing else but this; then

surely, he is a sad piece, the most despicable, the most pitiable and

wretched creature in the world. But'--he adds--'in truth it is far

otherwise. To suppose that a gentleman is loose from business, is a

great mistake. For indeed no man hath more to do; no man lieth

under greater obligations to industry than he.'*

And yet all toil, whether bodily or mental, is an evil, if it prevents

concentration of interest on the only satisfying object of labour. This

--need we state it?--is "not for the meat which perisheth, but for

 

1 Matt. vii. 22, 23; xxii. 11-13; xxv. 10-12.

2 Chap. xxiii. 4, 5. lsa. xlvii. 12, 13. Hab. ii. 13.                 3  Hab. ii. 9. Isa.. V. 8.

4 Chap. xxviii. 22. 1 Tim. vi. 9, 10.

* Sermon on Industry in our particular Calling as Gentlemen


                                       CHAP. XVI. 27-30.                                        247

 

that which endureth unto everlasting life." (John, vi. 27.) Ponder the

certain harvest--"The Son of man will give it." Look over the field

of labour--the gospel of his grace. Every promise is there to meet

thee, to wait on thee, to "perform all things for thee" (Ps. lvii. 2);

and yet of what avail, if thou dost not apply, and take it to thyself?

Happy indeed for us, when the spiritual appetite is created; and our

mouth craveth this labour of us for satisfaction. All other objects find

their place, when the primary object is rightly determined. We do

not annihilate our interests in this world, which has its due claims, and

will make them good. Our hands and our time are given to the world;

our hearts to God. Our activity is in our calling; our affections above

it. This is in the highest sense labouring for ourselves--for our best,

our most enduring good. All is centered in God. Indeed without him

our life is, cast away. Whatever be its momentary enjoyments, it is

all a gloomy world of emptiness and vanity. Most truly does the

Christian's heart respond to Augustine's confessions 'All other plenty

besides my God is mere beggary to me.'*

 

27. An ungodly man (a man of Belial, marg.) diggeth up evil: and in his

lips there is as a burning fire. 28. A froward man soweth strife; and

a whisperer separateth chief friends. 29. A violent man enticeth his

neighbour, and leadeth him into the way that is not good. 30. He

shutteth his eyes, to devise froward things: moving his lips, he bringeth

evil to pass.

The man of Belial laboureth hard; but not for himself "certainly not

for his own good. Yet his labour presents a vivid picture indeed of

the energy of sin. He has broken away every yoke of restraint.

Every member of his body, every power of his mind, is "a servant

of iniquity unto iniquity." (Rom. vi. 19.) May we not learn from him

in humiliation the true standard of concentration of mind, singleness of

object, diligence, delight, and perseverance? His pleasure is to dig up

evil; pursuing his evil projects with intense activity, as if he was

"searching for hid treasure." The tongue is usually the chief instru-

ment of mischief. In what black colour has the Divine pen set out

this vile criminal--a burning fire--"a world of iniquity, set on fire of

hell!"‡  And as he diggeth, so he soweth, evil-seed that comes up

only with a blast. Strife he soweth in every furrow (Chap. xv. 18);

 

* Confess. Lib. Xiii. C. 8.

Ps. vii. 14, 15; Saul, I Sam. xviii. 21, 22; Ahab, 1 Kings, xviii. 10; Jeremiah's

enemies, xviii. 18; the chief priests seeking false witnesses against our Lord. Matt.

xxvi. 59.

Jam. ill. 6-8. Ps. Iii. 1-4; lvii. 4. 'His tongue is a burning firebrand, to set all the

world ill combustion.'--Bishop HALL. The LXX Version is very strong--'The perverse

carrieth perdition on his own mouth. The foolish man diggeth up evil to himself; he

treasureth up fire on his own lips.'


248            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

jealousies among nations,1 war between the Sovereign and his people,2

divisions among Churches,3 coldness between Ministers and their

flocks,4 ill-will among friends5--a spirit eminently hateful to God.

(Chap. vi. 16, 19.) Where open contentions might not work, whisper-

ings,* "evil-surmisings," idle and slanderous reports are employed to

separate even chief friends. (Chap. vi. 14; xviii. 8.)

Truly he is a man of mischief. If he deals not in direct falsehoods,

his dark whispers are plain enough to be understood, and sure to be

exaggerated. The well-meant word or act may be misinterpreted.

He has seen or heard probably only a little. He guesses at the rest to

make his story complete. And thus by this report, half true and half

false, he plays with his neighbour's name to his incalculable injury.

No wonder, that this mischievous gossiper should be classed with "the

thief and murderer." (1 Pet. iv. 15.) For the man, who thus loosens

the closest ties, and breaks up the peace of whole families, sins against

those commandments, which charge crime upon the thoughts, the word,

the principle, as well as the outward act. (Matt. v. 21, 22.) Again, we

find him in his father's native work--a tempter--a violent man indeed;

but combining with loud and overbearing speech enticements for his

neighbour, to lead the unwary into the way that is not good.6  His whole

soul is filled with this Satanic object. Sometimes we may see him

shutting his eyes from outward distractions; moving his lips, as if engaged

in deep thought to bring evil to pass;7 all 'expressing the profound

study, with which he contrives his neighbour's ruin!'

Such is the heavy service of the most cruel Master! He wears out

both the minds and bodies of his slaves, and gives them at the end only

the fearful wages of eternal death.8 If the way to heaven be narrow,

is not "the way of transgressors hard?"9 Is there not more toil in

the way to hell; and that--without one beaming hope of the cheering

home, one staff of the heavenly promise, that upholds the servants of

God in all their weariness and trial? "Gather not my soul with

sinners, in whose hands are mischief," and where "destruction and

misery are in their paths." (Ps. xxvi. 9, 10. Rom. iii. 16.)

 

31. The hoary head is a crown of glory, if it be found in the way of

righteousness.

The hoary head is the old man's glory (Chap. xx. 29), and claim for

 

1 2 Sam. x. 3.                                         2 Ib. xx. 1.                     3 1 Cor. i. 11, 12; iii. 3.

4 Ib. iv. 8. 2 Cor. xii. 15. Gal. iv. 16.        5 2 Sam. xvi. 3.

6 Chap. i. 11-14; iv: 16, 17. Acts, xx. 30. 2 Pet. ii. 1, 2.                 7  Chap. vi. 12-14; x.l0.

8 Rom. vi. 23.                                        9 Matt. vii 14, with Chap. xiii. 15.

* 1 Sam. xxiv. 9. Ps. xxxv. 15. 2 Cor. xii. 20. This sin is numbered in the black

catalogue of Heathen abominations. Rom. i. 29. Comp. Ecclus. xxviii. 13.

Bishop Patrick--'A furnace of mischief'-is the addition of LXX. Comp. Isa.

xxxii. 6, 7.


                                                 CHAP. XVI. 31.                                     249

 

reverence.1 God solemnly links the honour of it with his own fear.*

“The ancient" are numbered with "the honourable." (Isa. ix.15.) The

sin of despising them is marked (Ib. iii. 5), and, when shewn towards

his own prophet, was awfully punished.2 Wisdom and experience may

justly be supposed to belong to them.3 and the contempt of this wisdom

was the destruction of a kingdom.4

But the diamond in the crown is, when it is found in the way of right-

eousness. Even an Heathen Monarch did homage to it (Gen. xlvii.

7-10); an ungodly nation and King paid to it the deepest respect.

The Fathers of the Old and New Testament reflected its glory. The one

died in waiting faith in the Lord's salvation. The other was as ready to

"depart in peace" in the joyous sight of it.5 "Zacharias and Elizabeth

walked in all the ordinances of the Lord blameless;"6 Anna--“a

widow indeed" in the faith and hope of the Gospel;7 Polycarp, with

his fourscore and six years in his Master's service.‡ --Crowns of glory

were their hoary heads shining with all the splendour of royalty.

Earnestly does the holy Psalmist plead this crown for usefulness to

the Church (Ps. lxxi. 18); the Apostle, for tile cause of his converted

slave. (Philem. 9:) And who more honourable than those, who, having

been "planted" in youth within the courts of the Lord, grow up to

"bring forth fruit In old age," manifesting the glory of the Lord's

faithfulness and love? (Ps. xcii. 13-15.) Truly is an old man's

'diadem that, which not the art of man, but the kingdom of God, hath

fashioned and set on his head.'§ And is not the earthly glory brightened

by its nearness to the unfading, everlasting crown?

But separate the heavenly virtue from the hoary head. "The crown,

is fallen." It lies dishonoured in the dust. For, what is a more lament-

able spectacle, than a graceless old man, only gaining by his score of

years a proportionate share of guilt? Time is no empty duration. It

is filled up with talents for eternity, a field for their exercise, helps for

their improvement, and account for their neglect or abuse. The white

hairs of ungodliness bespeak ripeness for wrath “wrath treasured up"

with every day's uninterrupted increase "against the day of wrath."

(Rom. ii. 5.) "The Sinner being an hundred years old shall be accursed."||

 

1 Chap. xxiii. 22. 2 Sam. xix. 32, 39.                                2 2 Kings, ii. 23, 24.

3  Job, xii. 12; xxxii. 4-7.                         4 I Kings,. xii. 18-20.      5 Ib. xlix. 18. Luke, ii. 28, 29.

6  Luke, i. 6.                              7 Ib. ii. 36, 37.

* Lev. xix. 32. The Roman satirist intimates, that the neglect of "rising up before the

hoary head" was punishable with death,.-JUVEN. Satire, 13, 54-56. The reverence paid by

Lacedaemonians to the hoary head is well known. They probably borrowed this law

from the Egyptians, who inculcated this respect to its full extent. HEROD. Lib. ii. c. 26.

Comp. also OVID, Fasti, v. 57, 58. See a serious all dinstructive paper in the Rambler, No. 50.

 Samuel, 1 Samuel xxv. 1. Elisha, 2 Kings, xiii. 14. Jehoiada, 2 Chron. XXIV. 15, 16.

‡  EUSEB. Lib. IV. c. 15. MILNER'S Church History, i. p. 16.

§ Muffet in loco.

|| Isa. lxv. 20. 'There is not on earth a more venerable and delightful spectacle than


250            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

32. He that is slow to anger is better than the mighty; and he that ruleth

his spirit than he that taketh a city.

A great conflict and a glorious victory are here set out; a conflict

not in notion, but in action; hidden from the mighty ones of the earth:

known only to those, who having enlisted under the baptismal banner,

are 'manfully fighting'* against their spiritual enemies. The heart is

the field of battle. All its evil and powerful passions are deadly foes.

They must be met and triumphed over in the strength of God. Those

who are ignorant of God and of themselves make light of them. They

scarcely acknowledge them as such. Instead of being slow to anger,

under provocation, they think that they "do well to be angry." (Jonah,

iv.9.) It is a disgrace to put up with wrong. An hasty temper is an

infirmity. They are hardly responsible for it. Nay--the indulgence

is a relief, and they hope to cool down in time, utterly unconscious of

any sin against God. Thus, instead of having rule over their spirit, they

are captives, not conquerors.

But can a Christian do so?--he who hath "yielded himself unto

God, as one that is alive from the dead?" (Rom. vi. 13.) "How shall

we, that are dead to sin, live any longer therein?" (lb. verse 2.) Must

we not vigorously "keep under the body, and bring it into subjection"

(1 Cor. ix. 27); especially that "little member," which is such a mighty

instrument of evil? To bridle the tongue, so as to check the expression

of passion, or "speaking unadvisedly with our lips"--is a victory

(Jam. iii. 2), that can only be achieved by Almighty strength. The

pains and cost of the conflict are beyond human calculation. But the

victory compensates for all.

The glory of this victory is indeed far above the mighty. The taking

of a city is child's play, compared with this "wrestling with flesh and

blood." That is only the battle of a day. This, the weary, unceasing

conflict of a life. There, the enemy might be mastered with a single

blow. Here, he is to be chained up, and kept down with unremitting

perseverance. The magnifying of the conflict exalts the glory of the

 

that of an aged pilgrim walking with God; and a more affecting and deeply melancholy

sight can hardly, on the contrary, be imagined, than that of a hoary-headed sinner, who

has lived his fourscore years “without God in the world,”—all that time God calling and

he refusing, and the Almighty “angry with him every day:” his body now bowed down

beneath the wight of years; all his powers of action and of enjoyment decaying; every

hour likely to be his last; time all behind him, and eternity all before him; and his soul

still “dead in trespasses and sins;” the hour of his departure come, and no readiness for

the world to which he is bound. O! with what opposite emotions do we contemplate old

age in this character, and in the saint of God; who in approaching the close of his earthly

pilgrimage is drawing near to what has been the goal of his hopes and desires; who, while

outwardly decaying, is inwardly maturing for heaven; in whom every symptom of coming

death is but a symptom of approaching life; and who, in the final exhaustion of nature,

bids adieu to the world in the words of aged Simeon—“Lord, now lettest thou thy servant

depart in peace, for mine eyes have seen thy salvation.”'—WARDLAW, on Eccles. xii.7.

                                               * Baptismal Service


                                          CHAP. XVI. 32.                                    251

 

triumph. Gideon's rule over his spirit was better than his victory over

the Midianites. (Judg. viii. 1-3.) David's similar conquest was better,

than could have been the spoils of Nabal's house. (1 Sam. xxv. 33.) Not

less glorious was that decisive and conscious mastery over his spirit,

when he refused to drink the water of Bethlehem, obtained at the hazard

of his bravest men; thus condemning the inordinate appetite, that had

desired the refreshment at so unreasonable a cost? (2 Sam. xxiii. 17.)

On the contrary, the renowned conqueror of the East lived and died a

miserable slave. He lost more honour at home, than he gained by his

conquests abroad; famous in war, but shamefully degraded by a brutish

foe.*   Though valour is commendable, as a natural gift of God (Judg.

vi. 12); yet ‘to be our own master, is far more glorious for us, than if

we were the masters of the world.' Among all my conquests'— said

the dying emperor Valentinian—'there is but one that now comforts

me. I have overcome my worst enemy—my own haughty heart.'

This then is to subdue an enemy, that has vanquished conquerors--

This surely is to be "more than conquerors." Christian! never forget

the source of victory—"Through him that loved us." (Rom. viii. 37.)

            This recollection brings us to the true point. Keep close to the

glorious standard of an Almighty, most loving Saviour. Never is

victory severed from it. Trials may be appointed, yet only to discipline

for triumph; to draw us from our fancied, to our real strength.

            Often does the Christian soldier win the day, even when he has

been wounded in the fight. Yet think not the war is ended, because a

battle is won. No quarter can be given, no truce allowed on either

side. The enemy may have been stabbed at the heart; yet will he get

up, and renew the fight. Thou must walk--yea--sleep—in thine

armour. It must be worn, not laid up. There is "no discharge from

this war," till thy body of sin and death is laid in the grave. Meanwhile

victory is declared, before the conflict begins. Let every day then be

a day of triumph. The promises are to present victory.‡  With such

stirring, stimulating hopes, thou shalt surely have rule, if thou wilt but

dare to have it. And if thou hast not courage enough to be a Christian,

thou must be a slave for life to the hardest of task-masters.

            This bloodless victory, so contrary to the turmoil of war (Isa. ix. 5),

is the crown of Christian grace. (Rom. xii. 19.) No other grace of the

gospel can be exercised without its influence, Yet the daily conquest

 

   * ‘So old and no older'--wrote Philip Henry in his Diary, when he had completed his

thirtieth year—'Alexander was, when he conquered the great world: but I have not yet

subdued the little world—myself.' ‘Thou art a slave of slaves'--said the proud Philo-

sopher (Diogenes) to this mighty conqueror—‘for thou art a slave to those appetites, over

which I rule.' The complaint of the Czar Peter—‘I can govern my people, but how can I

govern myself?'—was a practical acknowledgment of the difficulty: ‘Quem magis admira-

beris, quam qui imperat sibi; quam qui se habet in potestate!' SENECA De Benef. 7.

    Lawson in loco.

    ‡ Rev. ii. 7; &c. iii. Him that overcometh.


252     EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

anticipates the final victory, the spoils of which will be reaped through-

out eternity.*

 

33. The lot is east, into the lap; but the whole disposing thereof is of the

Lord.

            The lot cast into the lap, or into the bottom of an urn, often deter-

mined important matters. Officers were thus chosen;1 work deter-

mined;2 dwellings fixed;3 discoveries made;4 contentions caused to

cease:5 Yet the Lord's disposal was manifestly shewn. Canaan was

thus divided, so as to accord fully with Jacob's prophecies.6 The

offender was brought to justice.7  What could be more beyond human

direction?  Yet what more entirely under the Divine disposal? No

one doubted the decision. Saul was acknowledged to be King,8

Matthias was numbered among the Apostles9--without disputing.

Even when cast profanely or superstitiously, the same Sovereignty

overruled. Haman's lot was so disposed, as wholly to overthrow his

exterminative project; giving full time for the deliverance of his

victims,10  The soldier's lot was the direct fulfilment of a prophecy,

that could not otherwise have been accomplished.11 The Heathen

sailors cast it in ignorance; yet was it the Divine discovery of the

guilty criminal. (Jonah, i. 7.) Heathen divinations were controuled by

the same absolute power. (Ezek. xxi. 21, 22.)

            The lot is however a solemn matter, not to be lightly cast. (Acts, i.

24-26.) It is an acknowledgment of absolute Sovereignty; giving up

our personal responsibility, and virtually appealing to an Omniscient,

 

1 1 Chron. xxiv. 5.                     2 Luke, i. 9.                   3 Neh..xi. 1.

4 1 Sam. xiv. 41.                        5 Chap. xviii. 18.            6 Num.xxvi. 55. josh. xviii. 8.

7 Josh. vii. 16.                            8 1 Sam. x. 20-24.          9 Acts, i. 26.

10 Esth. iii. 7; ix. 1, 2.                 11 John, xix. 24, with Ps. xxii. 18.

   * Many striking sentiments from Heathen Ethics might illustrate this aphorism. Cato

the elder (in Plutarch) declared him to be the best and most praiseworthy general, who

had rule over his own passious. Livy brings in Scipio speaking to his friend—.'The danger

of our age—believe me—is not so much from armed men, as from the pleasures scattered

all around us. He that has disciplined them by his own temperance, has obtained to him-

self much honour and a greater victory, than we had in the conquest of Syphax.'—Lib.

xxx. c. xv. 'In all ages fewer men are found, who conquer their own lusts, than that

conquer an army of enemies.'—CICER. Ep. Lib. xv. Ep. 4. Thus Seneca writes to a friend

---‘If you wish to subject all things to yourself, subject yourself to reason. You will rule

many, if reason ruleth you.'

                        Latius regnes avidum domando

                        Spiritum, quam si Libyam remotis

                        Gadibus jungas, et uterque Poenus

                                    Serviat uni..       Holt. Od. Lib. ii. Od. 2.

Alas ! that this should be all fine barren sentiment, not Christian principle !

                                    Video meliora, proboque:

                        Deteriora sequor.          Medea in OVID. Metam. vii.

Parkhurst translates the word to mean the bottom or midst of an urn or vessel, into

which the lots were cast.


                                           CHAP. XVI. 33.                                     253

 

Omnipresent, Omnipotent God. It teaches us, that things that we

conceive to be accident are really under Providence. ‘What is chance

to man is the appointment of God.'*  The lot, cast  'at peradventure,

carrying a show of casualty,--is under a certain disposal. Yet admitting

it to be a Scriptural ordinance, its expediency under our more full light

is more than doubtful. "We have" at least "a more sure word of

prophecy, whereunto we do well that we take heed, as unto a light that

shineth in a dark place." (2 Pet. i. 19.) The book of God is given us

expressly as "a lamp to our feet, and a light to our path." (Ps. cxix. 105.)

The rule is more clear in itself, and linked with a most encouraging

promise—"In all thy ways acknowledge him, and he shall direct thy

paths." (Chap. iii. 6.) It is.far better to exercise faith, than indolently

to tamper with personal responsibility.

            The instructive lesson to learn, is that there is no blank in the most

minute circumstances. Things, not only apparently contingent, but

depending upon a whole train of contingencies, are exactly fulfilled.

The name of a King (1 Kings, xiii. 2), or of a deliverer (Isa. xliv. 28),

is declared many hundred years before their existence--before therefore

it could be known to any—save the Omniscient Governor of the uni-

verse—whether such persons would exist. The falling of a hair or a

sparrow is directed, no less than the birth and death of Princes, or the

revolutions of empires. (Matt. x. 29, 30.) Everything is a wheel of

Providence. Who directed the Ishmaelites on their journey to Egypt

at the very moment, that Joseph was cast into the pit?‡  Who guided

Pharaoh's daughter to the stream, just when the ark, with its precious

deposit, was committed to the waters? (Exod. ii. 3-5.) What gave

Ahasuerus a sleepless night, that he might be amused with the records

of his kingdom? (Esth. vi. 1.) Who prepared the whale at the very

time and place, that Jonah's lot was cast? (Jonah, i. 17.) Who can

fail to see the hand of God, most wonderful in the most apparently

casual contingencies, overruling all second causes to fulfil his will,

while they work their own?  ‘When kingdoms are tossed up and down

like a tennis-ball (Isa. xxii. 18); not one event can fly out of the

bounds of his Providence. The smallest are not below it. Not a

sparrow falls to the ground without it. Not a hair, but it is numbered

by it.'§

 

* Scott in loco.                         Bishop Hall.

‡ Gen. xxxvii. 25.  ‘The unparalleled story of Joseph'—as Dr. South remarks in his

striking Sermon on this text—' seems to be made up of nothing else but chances and little

contingencies, all tending to mighty ends.'

§ POLHILL on the Divine Will, p.159.

 


254          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

                                    CHAPTER XVII.

 

1. Better is a dry morsel and quietness therewith, than a house full of

                                  sacrifices with strife.

            THE allusion is to the Jewish ordinance of feasting at home upon the

remains of the sacrifices.l  A house full of sacrifices was therefore a house

of plentiful provision. Yet when the spirit of love does not rule, self

predominates, the fruitful source of strife and confusion. Well may the

Christian be content with his dry and quiet morsel, to be delivered from

such jarrings. ‘Holy love, found in a cottage,'* is better than the most

luxurious feast in the palaces of strife. (Chap, xv. 17.) The happiness

is not adding to our condition, but straitening our desires, and pro-

portioning them to our condition. The secret dew of the Lord's blessing

brings the rich gain of godly quietness (1 Tim. vi. 6). and contentment,

and provides a satisfied meal, and a well-furnished house in the poorest

dwelling.

            The marriage-feast perhaps was comparatively a dry morsel. Yet

was this a feast of love better than the Pharisee's house, full of sacrifices

with strife.2 Would we then enjoy our temporal mercies? Welcome

the Saviour to them. Cherish his Spirit. Eye his glory in their enjoy-

ment. The scanty fare or the more abundant store will be alike blessed

with the token of his presence, and the seal of his everlasting love.

Ponder every thought that may quiet to contentment. If you have

not so many comforts as you had, or as you might have, or as others

less deserving enjoy; yet have you not far more than you deserve?

Might not a larger abundance have tempted you to forget God, and to

live for the world? Will not the remembrance of the earthly lot which

thy Saviour chose, turn every thought of discontent into the adoring

rapture of thankfulness and love? Such is the "great gain of godliness

with contentment."

 

2. A wise servant shall have rule over a son that causeth shame; and shall

                     have part of the inheritance among the brethren.

            Folly naturally tends to shame; wisdom to honour. (Chap. iii. 35;

8.) The son, the heir of the family, may degrade himself by mis-

conduct, and, instead of being the glory of the house, cause shame. A

wise servant, though having only a temporary interest in the house

(John, viii. 35), may be promoted to rule over him. The Scripture path

recorded no literal instances of this interchange of place. But retribu-

tive Providence has ordained, that " the foolish shall be servant to the

wise in heart." (Chap. xi. 29.) The prodigal son, in. conscious shame,

 

1 Lev. vii. 16; min. 6. 1 Sam. ix. 24.        2 John, ii. 1-3, with Luke, vii 36-39; xi. 87, 38, 45, 53.

                                                * Henry.

 


                                         CHAP. XVII. 3.                                         255

 

was ready to take his place among the "hired servants." (Luke, xv. 19.)

The wise servant has however sometimes shared the inheritance among

the brethren. Jacob, by marrying Laban's daughter, was portioned with

the inheritance.1  Solomon's own servant probably thus verified this

proverb.2 Abraham also would have made his wise servant his heir, but

for the interposing mercy of God.3

            Yet this promotion is a dangerous eminence. No one can bear

elevation safely without special grace and painful discipline.4 Great

wisdom, much prayer, and constant watchfulness, are needed to promote

humility and Christian consistency; as well as to silence the envy and

jealousy, which unexpected prosperity naturally excites. (Dan. vi. 3-5.)

Honour from man calls for abasement before God, and careful holiness

in adorning our profession.

 

3. The fining-pot is for silver, and the furnace for gold; but the Lord

                                        trieth the hearts.

            The refiner's fining pot and furnace try his metals. But Jehovah

claims to himself the prerogative of trying the hearts. (1 Kings, viii. 39.

Jer. xvii. 10.) His eyes are as a flame of fire. (Rev. i. 14.) Nothing

deceives him; nothing escapes his probing search. The gold must be

put into the furnace. So mixed is it with dross, that the workman's eye

can scarcely discover it. But for the furnace, the dross would cleave

inseparably. The refiner's process burns it out, and the pure metal is

left behind. No burnishing is of any avail. Till it has undergone the

fire, it is unfit for use. And must there not be a furnace for the child

of God? (Isa. xxxi. 9. Jer. ix. 7.) None of us know ourselves, until

"the fire has tried every man's work, of what sort it is." (1 Cor. iii. 13.)

We can but exclaim in witnessing the result--Lord! what is man!

the heart of man of the holiest saint thus proved—thus laid open to

view?

            But the Lord will have the metal cleansed. We cannot do the

work. It is no common power, that can separate the base alloy. No

milder remedy will accomplish the purpose. But by this process the

hidden evil is brought out for humiliation;5 the hidden good for

honour.6 Deep personal or relative affliction;  "the knowledge of the

plague of our own hearts;"7 the discovery of secret sins; circumstances

of daily trial in trifles, known perhaps only to the heart that feels them8

—all or any of these are a searching, piercing furnace.

            Painful indeed is the purifying process. The flesh trembles at the

fire. Yet shall we not let the refiner do his work, though it be by

Nebuchadnezzar's furnace ?9 Shall we not commit ourselves with well-

 

1 Gen. xxx. 27-34; xxxi. 1.                      2 1 Kings, iv. 7, 11.                    3 Gen. xv. 3, 4.

4 2 Cor. xii. 1-7.                                     5 Deut. viii. 2 2 Chron. xxxii. 31.

6 Gen. xxii. 12. Matt. xv. 23-28.              7 1 Kings, viii. 3                         8 3 Chap. xiv. 10.

9 Dan. iii. 19.


256            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

grounded confidence to his wisdom, tenderness and love?--"0 Lord,

correct me; but with judgment." (Jer. x. 24.) Is not any furnace, that

"purges away our dross" (Isa. i. 25) of earthliness, that brings us to

know ourselves, our God, and his dealings with us--a mighty blessing?

The best materials for praise are brought out of this consecrated furnace.

Yet we must carefully examine, ere we shall perceive the value of these

trying dispensations. When the action of fire, upon the metal has

brought it into its best state for use, we now look for the results, in the

displacing of all worldly idols, in the melting away of the stubbornness

of the will, and the entireness of the heart for God. For as gold cast

into the furnace receiveth their new lustre, and shineth brighter when

it cometh forth than it did before; so are the saints of God more glorious

after their great afflictions, and their graces even more resplendent.'*

The refiner's process may be slow, but its results are sure. Nothing

but dross will perish, The vilest earth will be turned into the finest

gold. No refiner ever watched the furnace with such exactness and

care. Many glittering particles may be swept away. But the pure

residue--the solid particles--comparatively scanty in the amount, but

sterling in quality, shall be delivered into the mould. Strange as it

may seem to see the gold-left in the fire, ‘he that put it there will be

loth to lose it. Not one grain, not one drachm, shall be lost.' He

"sits" in patient watchfulness (Mal. iii. 2, 3), moderating the heat, and

carefully marking the moment, when it "shall be brought through the

fire" (Zech. xiii. 9), and set out in all the purity of the purifying

trial. Every hour of the trial is above gold, and issues in a richer

vein of Christian attainment. A suffering Saviour is realized and

endeared.

            Here then in the furnace—child of God—see the seal of thine

election (Isa. xlviii. 10); the ground and establishment of thy con-

fidence (Zech. xiii. 9); thy joyous anticipation, that thy faith that is

here in the furnace shall, when thy Lord shall appear, be then made

up into a crown 'of pure gold, and be found unto praise and honour,

and glory.'‡

 

4. A wicked doer giveth heed to false lips: and a liar giveth ear to a

                                            naughty tongue.

            Here is a black, but true picture of human nature. The wicked doer

is not content with the stirring impulse of his native lust. But such is

his craving appetite for sin, that he seeks foreign stimulants to give it

increasing activity.1 Amnon thus stimulated his own lust, by giving

heed to the false lips of his friend.2  Ahab, to secure his desired object,

 

* Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on Ps. cxix. 75.          LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. i. 7.

                        ‡ 1 Pet. i. 7. Leighton ut supra.

1 Chap. iv. 16, 17. Ps. lxiv. 5, 6.              2 2 Sam. xiii. 5, 6.


                                     CHAP. XVII. 5.                                   257

 

eagerly listened to the counsels of his murderous wife.l The Jews

gave delighted ears to the false prophets, who flattered them in their

wickedness.2 Active and intense was the malice of the ungodly, in

suborning false witness for our Lord's condemnation.'3 Yet 'there

would not be so many open mouths, if there were not as many willing

ears to entertain them.'*  But be it remembered, that the listening

ears share the responsibility of the naughty tongue; as all are in-

volved in the treason, that are directly or indirectly acquainted with

the plot.

            Gladly does the liar give ear to that, which countenances his own

wickedness.4 If he did not "love a lie," he would not listen to it.

But thus he shrinks from the condemning light of truth into his own

atmosphere of darkness. (John, iii. 20.) How unlike is this spirit to

the true "charity" of the Gospel, which "rejoiceth not in iniquity, but

rejoiceth in the truth!" (1 Cor. xiii. 6.)  ‘If then'--- saith good Bishop

Hall, 'I cannot stop other men's mouths from speaking ill, I will

either open my mouth to reprove it; or else I will stop mine ears from

hearing it, and let him see in my face, that he hath no room in my

heart.' (Ps. xv. 3.) Let the guilty talker think,—how certainly will

this "reproach taken up against his neighbour" exclude from the

heaven of light and love! Oh! my God, fill my heart and tongue

with thine own gracious Spirit!

 

5. Whoso mocketh the poor reproacheth his Maker: and he that is glad at

            calamities shall not be unpunished (held innocent, marg.)

            The sin against our Maker of "oppressing the poor," has before

been noticed. (Chap. xiv. 31.) In this mocking probably there might

be no power to oppress. The poor is so, not by fortune, but by Pro-

vidence. The reproach therefore falls, not on the poor, but on His

Maker— on Him who made him, and made him poor, "Woe unto him

that" thus "striveth with his Maker!"‡  To pour contempt upon the

current coin with the king's image on it, is treason against the sove-

reign.  No less contempt is it of the Sacred Majesty, to despise the poor,

who have, no less than the rich, the king's image upon them. (Gen.

ix. 6.) This view marks the contempt of the poor as a sin of the

deepest dye.

            Specially when poverty is brought on by calamity; when the hand

of God is therefore more manifest, then to be glad at calamities is a

fearful provocation. This was the sin of Shimei, scorning his fallen

Sovereign. (2 Sam. xvi. 5-8.) This sin brought the enemies of God's

           

1 1 Kings, xxi. 4-7.                     2 Isa. xxx. 9-11. Jer. v. 30, 31. Mic. ii. 11. 1 John, iv. 5.

3 Matt. xxvi. 59, 60.                   4 Chap. xxviii. 4.

            * Bp. HALL'S Works, viii. 7.                             Works, ut supra.

‡ Isa. xlv. 9. Comp. Job, xl. 2.   See Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on 1 Pet. ii. 17, § 13.


258        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

people under his severest punishment.*  Very different is the spirit of

the Bible: teaching us, even where calamity is the fruit of misconduct,

instead of being glad—to sympathize; instead of crushing, to raise, a

fallen brother, or even a fallen enemy.1

            All slight of the poor is evidently here rebuked. And who, that

knows himself and his obligations, could ever disdain?  ‘Why should

I'--asks Bishop Reynolds—‘for a little difference in this one particular

of worldly wealth, despise my poor brother? When so many and great

things unite us, shall wealth only disunite us? One sun shines on

both; one blood bought us both; one heaven will receive us both;

only he hath not so much of earth as I, and possibly much more of

Christ. And why should I disdain him on earth, whom haply the

Lord will advance above me in heaven?'

 

6. Children's children are the crown of old men; and the glory of children

                                      are their fathers.

            This Proverb has its limit. What a crown of thorns to each other

are an ungodly progeny and graceless parents! Little glory indeed

did Rehoboam and his son add to their fathers.2 As little was the

godly Hezekiah dignified by his reprobate parent.3 Gehazi brought

shame, not glory, to his children.4 But in the ordinary course gracious

children and parents reflect honour upon each other. Such parents

rejoice in the number and growth of their children. Such children

regard their father's name as their glory. Joseph was indeed a crown to

his aged father (Gen. xlvii. 11, 12); as was Jacob himself the glory of

his child, even in a Heathen nation. (Ib. xlvii. 7-10.)  ‘A good root

maketh the branches to flourish, by virtue of the lively sap that it

sendeth up. And flourishing branches win praise to the root, for the

pleasant fruit which they bring forth.'‡

            The Old Testament promise---"length of days" (Chap. iii. 2, 16)--

was enhanced, when accompanied with the blessing of children; yet

more—when crowned with the increase of children's children.5 The

true blessing, however, could only be known, when children, early

brought up into God's covenant, were trained in his ways, and "de-

clared them to their children, that they might set their hope in God."

 

1 Chap. xxiv. 17, 18. Job, xxxi. 29. Ps. xxxv. 13, 14. Rom.. xii. 20, 21.

2 1 Kings, xii.                 3 2 Chron. xxviii. xxix.                            4 2 Kings, v. 27.

5 Ib. xlviii. 11; l. 23. Job, xlii. 16. Ps. exxviii. 6.

   * Babylon, Lam. i. 21, 22. Ammon, Ezek. xxv. 6, 7. Tyre, xxvi. 2, 3. Edom, Obad.

10-15. Contrast this barbarous delight with the godly tenderness of the Lord's prophets

in foretelling calamities. Isa. xvi. 9-11. Jer. ix. 1; xvii. 16. Mic. i. 8. The gladaess, else-

where expressed in the calamities of the enemies of the Church, was obviously the admiring

discovery of the Lord's faithful keeping of his Church, and of his glory in the deserved

punishment of his irreconcileable rebels. Exod. xv. Ps. xxxv. 8-10, 19-26. Rev. xviii. 20.

   Works, p. 9115.

    ‡ CLEVER on Chap. i. 1.


                                           CHAP. XVIII. 7, 8.                                 259

 

(Ps. lxxviii, 5-7.) "Happy was the man, who had his quiver full of

such children." (Ib. cxxvii. 5.) Happy the children, thus crowned

with the example of such fathers! Abraham was the honourable,

though delusive, boast of his seed.l  David was the glory of his children,

preserving to them the throne of Judah for seventeen generations.2

And may not godly parents, under a larger dispensation of grace

educating their children by example, no less than by precept--may

they not look for a "godly seed"—the children of the covenant,3 who

shall acknowledge infinite, eternal obligations to parental faith and

godliness?4

 

7. Excellent speech (a lip of excellency, marg.) becometh not a fool;

                              much less do lying lips a prince.

            Men naturally speak as they are. The lip is the organ of the heart.

The lip of excellency, to speak suitably of high and lofty things, evidently

becometh not a fool.5 A grave discourse on godliness becometh not an

ungodly man.6  It carries no weight, and, so far from doing good, it

often brings contempt.7  Christ would not accept even a sound confes-

sion from the lips of Satan, lest it should bring an occasion of stumbling.8

So unseemly was excellent speech from so corrupt a source!

            Much less do lying lips become a prince—the Minister and Guardian

of truth. (Chap. xvi. 10.) Yet in a world, where self reigns supreme,

such inconsistencies are but too prevalent.*  The pure doctrine of our

Divine Master alone secures Christian consistency in heart, lip, and

life. Never let us forget, that, if excellent speech becometh not a fool, it

does become the gospel of Christ—the "saints of God." (Philip. i. 27.)

And oh! let it be fully manifested in all its gracious unction and

power, for "the edifying" of the Church (Eph. iv. 29), and for the con-

viction of gain-sayers." (Col. iv. 6.)

 

8. A gift is as a precious stone in the eyes of him that hath it;

                 whithersoever it turneth, it prospereth.

            ‘A gift is so tempting, that it can no more be refused than a lovely

 

1 Matt. iii. 9. John, viii. 33.                      2 1 Kings, xi. 12, 13; xv. 4. 2 Chron. xxi. 7.

3 Gen. xvii. 7. Ps. exxvii. 3.                    4 2 Tim. i. 5 ; iii. 15.

5 Chap. xxvi. 7, 9. Comp. Ecclus. xx. 20.            6 Ps. 1. 16, 17.

7 Matt. vii. 3-5. Rom. ii. 21-24.               8 Mark, i. 34. Comp. Acts, xvi. 16-18.

   * Heathen morality from the lips of one of her wisest teachers allowed the lying lips of

princes, because they governed for the public good, ‘All others'— he adds—‘must abstain.'

PLATO, De Repub. ‘Qui nescit dissimulare, nescit regnare'—has been too often a royal

maxim. Far more becoming a prince was the saying of Louis IX. of France—‘If truth be

banished from all the rest of the world, it ought to be found in the breast of princes.'

Alphonsus of Arragon declared (Lavater in loco) that ‘one word of a prince should be a

greater security than a private man's oath.'  Undoubtedly the royal character ought to

display a grandeur and dignity of principle, that should shine through every dark cloud of

trial and perplexity.

 


260         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

jewel, by him to whom it is presented; and such is its power, it com-

monly prevails over all men, dispatches all business, carries all causes,

and—in a word—effects whatever a man desires.'* Such is the

sympathy between a lusting eye and a glittering. gift. The covetous

prophet1--'nay even an apostle2—was wilfully beguiled by its fasci-

nation. The Heathen soldiers sold themselves to its slavery.3  A

King's Minister was won over by its allurement. (Acts, xii. 20.) Even

a King—and such as the man after God's own heart—was sinfully

perverted in the snare. (2 Sam. xvi. 1-4.) Seldom does it fail to

prosper whithersoever it turneth. But who would envy a prosperity for

evil? All ministers of law were wisely directed (like fabled justice)

to give their decisions blindfolded! not looking at this precious stone,

lest they should be dazzled by its sparkling attraction.4 Unfaith-

fulness was always visited with the heavy displeasure of the Great

Judge.5

            And is not the child of God often pressed with this temptation?

Does the influence of a gift, the sense of obligation, never repress the

bold consistency of godliness? Does no bias of friendship, no plausible

advantage, entice into a crooked path?  Oh! be resolute in a better

strength than thine own in the resistance of the sin. The conflict is

not with violent temptation, or with open sin, but with subtle and

apparently harmless deviations from the strait path. Exercise thy

"integrity and uprightness" in the spirit of faith; and doubt not that

they will "preserve thee." (Ps. xxv. 21.) The man of God, who

"dwells on high" with his God, "shaketh his hands from holding of

bribes;" as the Apostle shook off "the viper that had fastened. on his

hand."6 From this height he looks down upon this corruption with

indignant abhorrence—" Let thy gifts be to thyself--Thy money

perish with thee."7

 

1 Num. xxii. 7, 8, 21. 2 Pet. ii. 15.                       2 Matt. xxvi. 14-16.

3 Ib. xxviii 12-15.                                               4 Exod. xxiii. 8. Deut. xvi. 10.

5 Deut. xxviii. 25. Isa. v. 22, 23. Mic. vii. 8, 4.     6 Isa. xxxiii. 15, with Acts, xxviii. 5.

7 Dan. v. 17. Acts, viii. 18-20. Comp. 1 Sam. xii. 3.

* Bishop Patrick —'What a description'— adds Mr. Scott--'of the mercenary selfishness

of mankind!' Comp. also verse 23; xviii. 16. Even the Heathen conscience seems to

have had a just perception of this evil. The saying of Philip of Macedon is well known,

that ‘there was no fortress so strong, but it might be taken, if an ass laden with gold was

brought to the gate.' The poet finely illustrates this remark, referring also to the current

report, that—'not Philip, but Philip's gold,— conquered Greece.' HOR. Od. lib. iii. M.

'Auro loquenite, inest omnis Oratio.' GREG. NAZIAN. 'Gold and silver pervert many

things, especially motives of right. Money bath a great power with those that are in

power. A golden key will open any prison door, and east the watchman into a deep

sleep. Gold will break open gates of iron, as well as silence the orator's voice, and blind

the judge's eyes. It will bind the strong man's hands, and blunt the edge of the sword.

It makes war, and it makes peace. What almost can it not do with corrupt minds?'

CARYL on Job, xxxi. 21.


                                             CHAP. XVII. 9, 10.                                          261

 

9. He that covereth a transgression seeketh love: but he that repeateth a

                                 matter separateth very friends.

            Seeketh love!  A beautiful expression, much to be kept in miind!

It shows a delight in the atmosphere of love-- man's highest elevation

in communion with his God. (1 John, iv. 16.) It implies not the mere

exercise of love, where it is presented, but the searching and making

opportunity for it. But how seldom do we rise to the high standard of

this primary grace, exalted as it is pre-eminently above "the best gifts"

(1 Cor. xii. 31; xiii.); and illustrated and enforced by no less than the

Divine example! (Eph. v. 1, 2.) Yet too often it sits at the door of

our lips, instead of finding a home in our hearts; forgetting that the

exhortation is not, that we should talk of love, but that we should " walk

in it;" not stepping over it, crossing it, walking by the side, but "in it,"

as our highway and course. One step of our feet is better than an

hundred words of the tongue.

            A forbearing spirit is a fine manifestation of this heavenly grace.

Our motives are often misconstrued. We meet in a world of selfish-

ness, cold reserve, instead of glowing confidence. Prejudice builds a

wall against Christian intercourse. Wounded pride would return un-

kindness with contempt. Resentment stirs up recrimination.  Disap-

pointment kindles morbid suspicion. Here is a noble field for Christian

victory; instead of resenting, to cover the transgression with a mantle of

love (Chap. x. 12. 1 Cor. xiii. 7. Gr.); with that act of amnesty, by

which we are saved—the most aggravated transgression, the most un-

provoked injuries, being covered in eternal forgetfulness. (Heb. viii. 12.)

            The repeating a matter has often separated friends by uncovering a

forgotten quarrel. (Chap. xvi. 28.) Mischief might not be intended.

But to amuse ourselves with the follies or weakness of our brethren, is a  

sinful trifling, fraught with injury. Justly are "tellers and busy-

bodies" described as "speaking things which they ought not." (1 Tim.

v. 13) A disciplined tongue is a gracious mercy to the Church.

 

10. A reproof entereth more into a wise man, than an hundred stripes into a

                                                        fool.

            If we should cover transgression, we should not forbear reproof. Re-

proof distingnishes the wise man from the fool. (Chap. xiii. 1.) A word

is enough for the wise. The discipline of stripes is needful for the fool.

Parents and tutors should specially study the character of children, that

they may temper reproof wisely. Many a fine spirit has been spoiled

by unsuitable treatment.

            If this be true of man's reproof, much more of God's. A word was

enough for David.1 A look entered more into Peter's heart,2 than an

 

1 2 Sam. xii. 1-7; iv. 13, 14.                    2 Luke, xxii. 61, 62.


262             EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

hundred stripes into Pharaoh,1 Ahaz,2 Israel.3  Stripes only scourge the

fool's back. They never reach his heart. He is therefore a fool still.

"Though thou shouldest bray him in a mortar among wheat in a pestle;

yet shall not his foolishness depart from him." (Chap. xxvii. 22.)

            What then makes the difference as to the effect of reproof? "The

stony heart is taken away, and an heart of flesh is given." (Ezek. xxxvi.

26.)  A needle pierces deeper into flesh, than a sword into Stone. A

wakeful ear, a tender conscience, a softened heart, a teachable spirit--

these are the practical exercises, by which a wise and loving father

disciplines his children for his service, for his cross, and for his crown.

 

11. An evil man seeketh only rebellion: therefore a cruel messenger shall

            be sent against him. 12. Let a bear robbed of her whelps meet a man,

            rather than a fool in his folly. 13. Whoso rewardeth evil for good,

            evil shall not depart from his house.

            Some awful pictures of man are here set out. Look at his wayward-

ness— seeking only rebellion—resisting all authority of God and man.

This is no light sin. (1 Sam. xv. 23.) Therefore a cruel messenger, one

that will not be turned from his work, shall be sent against him. The

disobedient son in the family;4 Korah in the Church,5 Absalom,6

Sheba,7 and Pekah,8 in the kingdom—all stand out as monuments of

retributive justice. Not that rebellion is the only sin, but that it is the

grand outbreaking of the stubborn will. It may be hidden under a

peaceful and amiable cover.  But it "is not dead, but sleepeth.”*  Let

God remove the restraint; let Satan bring the occasion of temptation ;

and, when all before appeared love and unity, "hateful, and hating one

another" (Tit. iii. 3) — will be the dark features of the prospect.

            Look again at man in his folly. The strength and accuracy of the

figure can scarcely be surpassed. The savage beast under the strongest

excitement —a bear robbed of her whelps—is less dangerous to meet.

Witness Jacob's sons putting a whole city to fire and sword for the folly

of one man;9 Saul slaying a large company of innocent priests;10

Nebuchadnezzar heating the furnace sevenfold;11 Herod murdering the

children in Ramah;12 "Saul breathing out threatenings and slaughter

against the disciples of the Lord"13—was not all this the rage of a

beast, not the reason of a man? Humbling, indeed, is this picture of

man, once "created in the image of God." (Gen. i. 27.) More humbling

is it to see this folly in a child of God; to see David binding himself

 

1 Exod. ix. 34, 35.          2 2 Chron. xxviii. 22.                  3 Isa. i. 5; ix. 13. Jer. v. 3.

4 Deut. xxi. 18.              5 Num. xvi.                               6 2 Sam. xviii. 7.5, 16.

7 Ib. xx. 1, 22.               8 2 Kings, xv. 27-30.                  9 Gen. xxxiv. 25.

10 1 Sam. xxii. 18.          11 Dan. iii. 13-19.                       12 Matt. ii. 16.

13 Acts, ix. 1.

            * The philosophical remark of Burke — ‘Those who do not love religion, hate it'—is the

spirit of our Divine Master's saying, Matt. xii. 30.

 


                                               CHAP. XVII. 11-13.                             263

 

with an oath to massacre a whole family, some of whom had taken up

his cause against the sottish offender. Yet the melting away of his

fury under wise remonstrance shewed the man of God covered with the

shame of his folly; not the fool living in it as his nature, habit, and

delight. (1 Sam. xxv. 32, 33.)

            But to turn nearer home—are there no households where uncon-

trouled anger governs all at pleasure? Does the self-willed victim

remember, that 'nothing is said or done in a passion, but may be better

said or done afterwards?'* Do we never see the Christian, whom his

Master's discipline and example ought to have transformed to a lamb,

still like the bear robbed of her whelps? Man—the holiest, "left of God

to try him, that he might know all that was in his heart" (2 Chron.

xxxii. 31)—"man," so left to himself, "verily at his best estate is

altogether vanity." (Ps. xxxix. 5.) Abhorred be that vain, but too

common excuse—‘It is my way.' Is not this the very cause of grief

to a contrite soul, calling for deep humiliation and increasing watchful-

ness?

            Look again at man in his ingratitude. God forbids to reward evil for

evil; much more evil for good. This sin even the Heathen deemed to

include every other.--And so hateful is it to God, that he visits the evil,

not only on the sinner himself, but on his house. Israel was punished

for the ill return to Gideon.1 The traitor's house was doomed to a

curse.2 And how fearful the evil to the ungrateful nation, who does not

know?3

            This ingratitude is by no means uncommon, though the conscience

is little awake to the guilt. What else is it, when the ungodly resent

an attempt to promote their best interests? David complained of this

unkind and undeserved return, simply because he was pursuing active

benevolence. (Ps. xxxviii. 20.) Such a recompence is marked out for

special reprobation.

            And surely evil rewarded for good was the stamp of our father's sin.

(Gen. iii. 5, 6, with ii. 8-18.) And ever since has the curse been fear-

fully verified--Evil shall not depart from his house. Nor is this unjust

severity. What say we to a child, nourished with the tenderest care,

yet casting off all filial regard, and rewarding evil for good? Could any

other appearances of virtue atone for this unnatural abomination, this

awful deformity? And yet is not this sin—the astonishment of heaven

and earth--the mark of every child of fallen Adam? "I have

nourished and brought up children, and they have rebelled against me."

 

1 Judg. viii. 35; ix. 56, 57. Comp. Jer. xviii. 20-23.            2 Ps. lv. 12-15; cix. 9-13.

3 Matt. xxvii. 25, with xxiii. 32-39.

* MATTHEW HENRY'S Sermon on Meekness.

   ‘Ingraturn si dixeris, omnia dixeris.' Yet was it the aggravation of their own sin.

Rom. i. 21.

 


264           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOR OF PROVERBS.

 

(Isa. i. 2.) But for the transfer of this mighty mass of guilt, how could

we stand before God? And who of us still in the consciousness of this

guilt, will not seek for a more full influence of that no less perfect work,

by which the rebel spirit is tamed and humbled into the meekness and

love of the Gospel?

 

14. The beginning of strife is as when one letteth out water: therefore

                  leave of contention before it be meddled with.

            Both the destructive elements---fire and water—illustrate the

danger of the beginning of strife.1 To neither element can we say--

"Hitherto shalt thou come, and no further!" (Job, xxxviii. 11.) As

well might we command the raging storm, as the uncontrouled passion

--"Peace! be still." (Mark, iv. 39.) The dam may restrain a large

body of waters; but cut the sluices, and the letting out of water may be

a sweeping inundation.*  Thus fearfully has the beginning of strife

issued in the murder of thousands,2 and, even in the desolation of

kingdoms.3

            No less destructive is it in ordinary life. One provoking word

brings on another. Every retort widens the breach. Seldom, when

we have heard the first word, do we hear the last. An inundation of

evil is poured in, that lays desolate peace, comfort, and conscience.

Does not grace teach us the Christian victory, to keep down the ex-

pression of resentment, and rather to bear provocation than to break

the bond of unity?

            Truly it is a wise rule to stop the evil at the beginning. The bank

is much more easily preserved than repaired. The breach once made,

if it only let out a drop of water, is the beginning of an evil, the fruit of

which cannot be calculated. How soon was the indignation of the ten

apostles moved against the two; which, but for the immediate inter-

vention of their Divine Master, might have been productive of serious

issue! (Matt. xx. 24.) For—as one strongly observed—‘Man knows

the beginning of sin; but who bounds the issues thereof?' Abraham

nobly yielded in the contention with Lot, and the evil was stayed. (Gen.

xiii. 8, 9.) Paul and Barnabas--neither would yield; "and the con-

tention was so sharp between them, that"--sad record!—"they de-

parted asunder one from the other." (Acts, xv. 39.) Moses restrained

himself in the rising provocation with his wife. Israel wisely refrained

from contention with Edom in the churlish refusal of water.4 David

answered gently to his brother's irritating suspicion.5 He "was as a

deaf man" to his enemies, who were seeking contention with him.6

 

1 Chap. xxvi. 21. Judg. ix. 19, 20. Jam. iii.           2 Judg. xii. 1-6. 2 Sam. ii, 14-27.

3 2 Chron. x. 14-16; xiii. 17; xxv. 17-24.  4 Num. xx. 14-21.

5 1 Sam. xvii. 23, 20,                                          6 Ps. xxxviii. 12-14.

            * See Virgil's elegant picture, AEn. ii. 496-499.

                        Francis Spira.

 

                                   CHAP. XVII. 15.                                         265

 

The prompt decision of the Apostles in the ministration of the widows,

preserved the infant Church from a serious schism.l  Under similar

threatening circumstances, would it not be well to consider, whether we

are contending for a shadow, or for substance? if the latter, whether it

might not be rather an exercise of forbearance than an handle of dis-

sension (Rom. xiv.); or, if its importance justified the dissension (Gal.

ii. 5), whether our judgment and conscience were fully and intelligently

decided on the real principles involved. "Peace and holiness" are the

main points we are commanded" to follow (Heb. xii. 14); and so

combined are they, that in vain can we expect to advance in holiness,

except we "follow the things that make for peace."2 In watching

against the baneful issue of contention: be it well remembered, that the

time to leave off is not when we see its worst, but its beginning; yea,

before it be meddled with; restraining the first rising in ourselves;

mortifying our own proud tempers, and cultivating our Master's meek

and self-denying spirit.*

 

15. He that justifieth the wicked, and he that condemneth the just, even they

                           both are an abomination to the Lord.

            Judicial iniquity is an awful abuse of God's authority. (Exod. xxiii.

7.) The judge or magistrate" is a minister of God for good." (Rom.

xiii. 4.) The appeal is to him for justice, as the Representative of God.

(Deut. xxv. 1.) If the great Judge "loveth righteousness and hateth

iniquity,"3 this unrighteousness justifying the wicked must be abomination

to him. This guilt of Samuel's sons, so contrary to his own integrity,

was the immediate cause of the abolition of the Theocracy.4  The

judges in David's time seem to have been guilty of both these branches

of injustice.5 Ahab's house was ruined by his condemnation of the just.6

"Not this man, but Barabbas"7--combined the double sin. It was the

perfection of injustice, the most aggravated abomination.

            Not however to confine the application to official iniquity--Do we

not all need great watchfulness, that we may "judge righteous judg-

 

1 Acts, vi. 1-4.                                       2 Rom. xiv. 19. Col. iii. 12-15. Jam. iii, 18.

3 Ps. xlv. 7. Deut. xxxii. 4.                     4 1 Sam. viii. 3-5, with xii. 3.

5 Ps. lxxxii. 2; xciv. 20, 21.                     6 1 Kings, xxi. 13-19.

7 John, xviii. 40.

* The following remarks from Mr. Burke are well worth consideration — ‘The arms with

which the ill dispositions of the world are to be combated, are moderation, gentleness, a

little indulgence of others, and a great distrust of ourselves; which are not qualities of a

mean spirit, as some may possibly think them; but virtues of a great and noble kind, and

such as dignify our nature, as much as they contribute to our repose and fortune. For

nothing can be so unworthy of a well-composed soul, as to pass away life in bickerings and

litigations, in snarling and scuffling with every one about us.'—Letter to Barry. PRIOR'S

Life of Burke. See an admirable Chapter in PALEY's Moral Philosophy (Book iii. Chap. vii.)

—a work however not to be recommended without very many reserves, on account of its

false philosophy and unsound principles.

Isa. v. 23. Comp. SOPHOCLIS OEdip. Tyr., verses 622, 623, also Chap. xxiv. 23, 24.


266            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

ment" (John, vii. 24); that no corrupt bias may prejudice the exercise

of our private judgment, either in favour of the wicked, or in the con-

demnation of the just?

            But let us place ourselves before the "Judge of all" accused by

Satan, our own conscience, and the righteous law of God; convicted of

every charge; yet justified. Does God then in thus " justifying the

ungodly" (Rom. iv. 5) contravene this rule? Far from it. If he

justifies the wicked, it is on account of righteousness. (Ib. iii. 25, 26.) If

he condemn the just, it is on the imputation of unrighteousness. Nowhere

throughout the universe do the moral perfections of the Governor of

the world shine so gloriously as at the cross of Calvary.1 The satisfac-

tion of the holy law, and the manifestation of righteous mercy, harmo-

nise with the justification of the condemned sinner.2 And this com-

bined glory tunes the song of everlasting praise.*

 

16. Wherefore is there a price in the hand of a fool to get wisdom, seeing he

                                         hath no heart to it?

            A question of wonder and indignation! We often find this reckless

infatuation in temporal things. A young man will spend a, large in-

come at the university in the professed purchase of wisdom, and yet

idle away all his time! Is not the price manifestly in the hand of a fool,

who has no heart to the advantages? The thoughtless rake might be

warned even by his worldly friends. He is losing important opportu-

nities, revolting his best friends, involving himself in debt, injuring

his constitution, blasting his character. Is not this throwing away a

valuable price by reckless folly?

            Yet much more affecting is it to see the picture of this folly in reli-

gion. Why is a fool so blessed, seeing he hath no heart to improve his

blessings? Birth, religious privileges, talents, time, influence, oppor-

tunity—all are a price to get wisdom. If the fool throws it away, the

account of unprofitableness seals his sentence. (Matt. xxv. 24-30.) The

grand price of inestimable value is in our hands.3 Yet how many

thousand fools have no heart to buy, would rather lose it, than labour

for it; rather go sleeping to hell, than toiling to heaven! The rem-

nant of the ten tribes despised the opportunity put within their reach

of coming up to the feast of the Lord.4 The town where Jesus was

brought up,5 the cities where he wrought his miracles,6 wilfully

 

1 Isa. liii. 5-10. 2 Cor. v. 21.                   2 Ps. lxxxv.10. Isa. x1ii. 21; x1v. 21.

3 Chap. viii. 4, 6 ; ix. 4-6. Isa. 1v. 1-3. Rom. x. 8. Rev. iii. 20.

4 2 Chron. xxx. 10.                                5 Luke, iv. 28.                6 Matt. xi. 21.

    * Bishop Davenant justly quotes this text, as an example of the forensic use of the term

justification—‘not the infusion of a quality, but the pronouncing a sentence.' (Dis-

course on Inherent Righteousness, chap. xxii.  Allport's Translation.) In this true sense it is

used in reference to our justification before God—pronounced just in God's own court of

judgment.

 


                                  CHAP. XVII. 16, 17.                                      267

 

despised the price of wisdom. The Gadarenes threw away the pearl.1

Herod eyed it with curiosity;2 Pilate with indifference;3 the Jews

with scorn.4 The rich youth preferred his own " goodly pearls " to it.5

Felix hoped to turn it to his own selfish purpose.6 Agrippa dared not pur-

chase it.7 Were not all these pictures of the fool, that every day meets

our eye?  'That which "is more precious than rubies" (chap. iii. 15) is

to him more worthless than a pebble. That which "is more sweet than

honey," is tasteless as the white of an egg.'*  He lives for himself, as

if there was no God in the world. His heart is given to the world, as

if it could be a God to him, or could fill up God's vacant place in his

heart! Yet thus the realities of eternity—the mighty things of the

Gospel —things that should drink up our spirits, are like "a tale that

is told." Enough that they should have a place in our creed, though

never in our hearts. The world is preferred to heaven, time to eter-

nity; and the immortal soul, for which such a cost has been paid, and

such prospects prepared, perishes in folly. But lingerers will stop

short of heaven. And will it not be a sword in the awakened con-

science —' I might have been enriched, had I not wasted the golden

opportunities of salvation, and fooled away the glorious days of the Sort

of man?' Yea—will not this be the sting of the never-dying worm

--‘Had I come to Christ when I might, I should not have been in this

place of torment. I would not come then.8  I cannot come now.'9

‘Lord, save me'--- cries the pious Howe —'from trifling with the

things of eternity.'

            But if I have a heart to this wisdom, there can be no doubt the price

will get it. I shall find the inestimable blessing by trading with my

talent, by the diligent improvement of my privileges. I shall find

Him whom my soul needeth above all, and desires to love above all;

whose lovely names are not empty names, but full of truth. Brother

—Husband—Saviour—would but the fool ponder, might not the

picture attract his heart; as One "able to promote him to honour," to

give him an infinite compensation for his toil or loss; whose very

upbraidings are pity, whose strivings are tenderness; whose rebukes

are love, whose smile is heaven.

 

17. A friend loveth at all times, and a brother is born for adversity.

            This beautiful picture of friendship has been drawn by moralists,

sentimentalists, and poets. But the reality is only found, where Divine

grace has melted away natural selfishness into disinterested love. If

virtue is the best ground of friendship, then is this most heavenly virtue

 

1 Matt. viii. 34.              2 Luke, xxiii. 8. Comp. Acts, xvii. 21, 32.

3 John, xviii. 38.             4 Acts, xiii. 46.                           5 Mark, x. 22.

6 Acts, xxiv. 25-27.        7 Ib., xxvi. 28.                            8 Matt, xxiii. 37. John, v. 40.

9 Matt. xxv. 10. Luke, xiii, 25-28; xvi. 26.

            * Lawson.                                 Works, iii. 130.


268         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the firmest ground of all. What passes under the name is too often, as

Bishop Hall* describes it, 'brittle stuff.' This fickle excitement cools

by distance, or by the coldness of our friend. Degradation of worldly

circumstances converts it into indifference (Job, vi. 14, 15), or even into

hatred. The friend, who hath left the right path, is forsaken, instead

of being followed, watched over, and every opportunity improved for

reclaiming him. But the true friend loveth at all times, through "evil

as well as good report." He does not change, when circumstances

change. He is the same, whether we are in wealth or need. He proves

himself in adversity, by rising in warmth, and exerting every nerve, in

proportion as his aid is needed.1  He is not ashamed of poverty or of

a prison.2 In any jarrings of the flesh, adversity cements love.‡  The

loving friend becomes now a brother born for adversity.§ Such was the

love of Joseph to his brethren; unshaken by vicissitudes, unabated by

ingratitude.3 Such was the firm cleaving of Ruth to her desolate

mother;4 the unity of heart between David and Jonathan;5 the affec-

tionate sympathy of the beloved disciple to the Mother of his Lord (John, xix. 27);

the faithful love of the brethren to the great Apostle in his adversity.||

            We must not indeed look for perfection. Can we doubt the sincerity

of the disciples, while we are humbled, instructed, and warned by their

frailty? (Matt. xxvi. 40, 41.) For frailty it was; not wilfulness, nor

hypocrisy. " Ye are they, that have continued with me in my tempta-

tions"--was their Master's kindly acknowledgment at that season of

infirmity, when they all forsook him, and fled.6

            But--Ah! it is to him that we must look as the perfect; exemplar.

To see the Son of God in our nature, that he might be our friend and

brother--(Heb. ii. 14); to hear him "not ashamed to call us brethren"

(Ib. verses 11–13) — this is a mystery of friendship -- unsearchable.

Truly is this Friend —he alone, worthy of our unlimited confidence.

Such is the constancy of his love--at all times (John, xiii. 1) even

unto death¶--unaltered by the most undutiful returns--"turning and

 

1 2 Sam. xv.19-22 ; xvii. 27—29.            2 Phil. ii. 25. 2 Tim. i. 16-18.       3 Gen. xlv. 5-8.

4 Ruth, i. 16, 17.                                     5 1 Sam. xviii. 3; xix. 2; xxiii. 16.

6 Luke, xxii. 28, with Matt. xxvi. 56.

* Works, viii. 38. Meditations and Vows.

Chap. xix. 7. Job, xix. 17-20. Comp. Ovid's elegant lines, ex Ponto. Lib. ii. Ephes.

Hi. 5-10, 231-28.

‡ See the melancholy dispute between Bishop Hooper and Ridley upon ceremonials,

and the cementing influence of the prison; with Foxe's beautiful remarks, vi. 640, 641.

§ Bishop Patrick. Comp. Job, ii, 11-13. Ecclus. vii. 18 ; v3. 7, 8, 10, 16.

|| Aquila and Priscilla. Rom. xvi. 3, 4; Epaphroditus, Phil. ii. 25, 26—when a prisoner;

the Philippian Church, Ib. iv. 15.

  ¶ John, xv. 13.

                        ‘Mine is an unchanging love;

                        Higher than the heights above;

                        Deeper than the depths beneath;

                        Firm and faithful, strong as death.'—COWPER.


                                             CHAP. XVII.18.                                         269

 

looking upon "the disciple (a look so full of tenderness and power!)

(Luke, xxii. 61) whom we should have excommunicated. Such the

sympathy of his love--born for adversity; so united to us--the friend

and the brother we need; never nearer to us than when in our lowest

depths of trouble; and, though now our glorified Brother in heaven, yet

still "touched with the feeling of our infirmities" (Heb. iv. 15); still

"afflicted in all our afflictions" (Isa. lxiii. 9); presenting us to, his

Father, as his own elect, the purchase of his blood, "the members of his

body, of his flesh, and of his bones." (Ephes. v. 30.) Here is sympathy

in all its fulness, and all its helpfulness. ‘Here is indeed a Brother born

for adversity. "Trust him," 0 ye trembling believers, "at all times,"

and in all places.  You will then be possessed of the happy art of living

beyond the reach of all disappointment.'*

 

18. A man void of understanding (heart, marg.) striketh hands, and

                             becometh surety in the presence of his friend.

            Though we are to feel ourselves born for adversity, ever ready to

"bear one another's burdens" (Gal. vi. 2): yet we must not befriend

our brother at the risk or expence of injustice to our family. We have

therefore another warning against imprudent suretyship. (Chap. vi.

1-5; xi. 15.) Beware of striking hands in agreement without ascertain-

ing, whether we can fulfil our engagement, or whether our friend is not

equally able to fulfil it himself. This spews a man void of understand-

ing; specially to do this in the presence of his friend. For why is not

his word taken, but from the suspicion of insolvency or dishonesty? A

prodigal, thoughtless kindness may gain us a popular name. But the

principle, closely examined, will be found to be another form of selfish-

ness. There is no true benevolence in rash engagements, which may

involve our name and family in disgrace or ruin. True indeed—had

not those hands that were nailed to the cross, been stricken in suretyship,

the handwriting that was against us could never have been cancelled.

(Col. ii. 14.) Yet the eternal counsel is no pattern for our simple

folly. Nor is infinite love combined with perfect wisdom, a plea for

our rash generosity. Religion, though it warns its professors against

imprudence, yet too often unjustly bears the blame of them. If we

 

   * HOWELL'S Sermons, ii. 252. ‘Though solitary and unsupported, and oppressed by

sorrows unknown and undivided, I am not without joyful expectations. There is one

Friend who loveth at all times: a Bother born for adversity—the help of the helpless; the

hope of the hopeless; the strength of the weak; the riches of the poor; the peace of the

disquieted; the companion of the desolate; the friend of the friendless. To him alone will

I call, and he will raise me above my fears.'— Memoir of Mrs. Hawkes, pp. 1.7, 128. The

ancient Jews applied this Proverb to Christ, adducing it as a testimony, that the Divine

Messiah would by his incarnation become the Brother of man. Gill in loco.

Chap. vii. i; x. 13; xi. 12; xv. 21; xxiv. 30 'It denotes the want of all the faculties

of the soul, through ignorance, carelessness, and the prevalence of evil propensities

various kinds.'  SCOTT on xi. 12.


270           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

would adorn the Christian profession, and avoid occasions of stumbling

to the ungodly, we must "provide for honest things, not only in the

sight of the Lord, but also in the sight of man." (2 Cor. viii. 20, 21.)

 

19. He loveth transgression that loveth strife; and he that exalteth his gate

                                            seeketh destruction.

            We may indeed fall into strife without loving it. (Gen. xiii. 7, 8.)

But let us always look at it as a branch from the root of sin (Gal. v.

19-21), and the prolific source of sin. (2 Cor. xii. 20. Jam. iii. 16.) The

love of it is therefore the love of transgression. Ye who will own the

charge? The man engaged in strife protests that he loves peace; only

his neighbour's perverseness drives him into strife. And yet if we are

frequently in it; if we take no pains, make no sacrifice of self-will or

interest (1 Cor. vi. 1-7), to avoid the occasion of strife—does not con-

science bring home the charge?  Ah! the love of transgression lies

deeper than we often see. It shews itself in forms, that the world may

overlook, but which prove its nature to be "carnal."*

            Very generally it proceeds from the root of pride.l The man exalts

his gateabove his neighbour, and affects a style beyond his rank. Or

his ambition would tread his neighbour under his feet. Nay, he will

sometimes rise against his Sovereign,2 or even stand in defiance of his

God.3 The sluggard sees his ruin before him, and indolently waits

for it, without making any effort to avert it.4  But the proud man

seeketh destruction. He puts himself in the road and sooner or later his

day comes; and his name, glory, and honour are swept away.5 Watch

over me, 0 my God, to preserve me from the first rising of my proud

heart. Or if my frailty yield to it, 0 keep me from the prevalence of

this presumptuous sin, that hurries me as a rival against thy throne

into the pit of destruction.

 

20. He that hath a froward heart findeth no good; and he that hath a

                       perverse tongue falleth into mischief.

            The history of God's ancient people is a picture of frowardness with

all its barren results. Let their long-suffering God do what he would

to them and for them, they found no satisfying good. (Ps. lxxviii.) Self-

will, even in its fullest indulgence, instead of bringing the desired good,

 

1 Chap. xiii. 10. Mark, ix. 33, 34.    2 2 Sam. xv. 1. 1 Kings, i . 5; xvi. 9-18.     3 Rom. 1 , 2

4 Chap. vi. 11.                               5 Chap. xvi. 18. Isa. xxii. 15-19. Jer. xxii. 13-19.

* 1 Cor. iii. 3, 4. ‘I never loved those salamanders that are never well, but when they

are in the fire of contention. I will rather suffer a thousand wrongs, than offer one. I will

rather suffer an hundred, than inflict one. I will suffer many, ere I will complain of one,

and endeavour to right it by contending. I have ever found, that to strive with my

superior is furious; with my equal doubtful; with my inferior sordid and base; with any,

full of unquietness.'—Bishop HALL, Meditations and Vows, Works, viii. 18.

An allusion to the gates of splendid palaces in the East, generally elevated according to

the vanity of their owner.—MORIER, quoted in BURDER'S Oriental Customs.


                                           CHAP. XVII. 21.                                        271

 

always ends in disappointment; and, when, the perverse tongue breaks

out, in frightful mischief.1  The best of us are too often governed by

this waywardness. Even when we seek to walk with God, how does

the froward heart struggle to walk by its own inclination!  The good

Lord give us a mortified spirit, to restrain us from the guidance of our

corrupt fancies!  Many an erratic course in the Church we trace to

some unhappy bias, not disciplined by the Divine Spirit, not moulded

to reverential faith. Most graciously therefore does our God assert his

own right to supremacy; promising us—not freedom from restraint,

but a yoke (Matt. xi. 29), a binding law, a strict obligation, and--

above all—the heart to love and obey.2 Here is now self-controul and

stability; not impulse and feeling, but fixed and steady principle.

Shall not we then cry with filial simplicity--‘Not my will, 0 Lord.

Let me have anything but my own way. Leave me not to my per-

verse heart.' In proportion as the froward heart is thus subdued, the

perverse tongue is bridled; and we have the "perfect man" in Christian

consistency, humility, and love.

 

21. He that begetteth a fool doeth it to his sorrow; and the father of a

                                              fool hath no joy.

 

            Among "the vanities, to which the creature is made subject,"

Solomon elsewhere enumerated one, of which he probably had a feeling

experience—leaving the labour of his hand —he knoweth not to whom

—whether he shall be a wise man or a fool. (Eccles. ii. 18, 19.) The

latter prospect is here realized. The weeping parent not only finds no

joy in the fondly cherished object of his expectation; but a cankering

grief embitters all his joys, and often brings him "down with sorrow to

the grave."*  And how is this sorrow aggravated, should there be an

unhappy humbling consciousness, that undue indulgence or severity,

injudicious treatment, and more than all--neglect of real prayer for

the child, and of the diligent improvement of God's appointed means,

virtually suffered the evil propensities to grow to a direful harvest of

ruin!

            Yet let the godly parent expect everything from prayer—provided

 

1 Chap. xi. 20; xviii. 6, 7. Num. xvi. Acts, xiii. 8-11.     2 Jer. xxxi. 33. Ezek. xxxvi. 26, 27.

  * Gen. xlii. 38. Has not many an afflicted parent fellowship with the impassioned cry

of Augustus—‘Would that I had lived single, or died childless?'

 † Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on Rom. xv. 5. ‘Think none of you, you have sufficiently

discharged your parts towards those that are under your charge, if you have instructed

them, corrected them when they have done amiss, and rewarded then when they have done

well, so long as your fervent prayers for them have been wanting. In vain shall you wrestle

with their stubbornness and other corruptions, (though you put forth all your strength) so

long as you wrestle with them only. Then, or not at all, shall you wrestle to purpose,

when you enter the lists with the Father of Spirits, as Jacob did: wrestling with him by

your importunate prayers; and not giving him over, till you have wrung a blessing from

him, either for yourselves, or them, or both.'


272            EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

it be not palsied by despondency. (Gal. vi. 9; John, xi. 40.) In the

deepest distress never lose hold of the covenant of grace. (Gen. xvii. 7.)

Let the determined faith of a praying mother encourage perseverance.

(Matt. xv. 22-28.) God exercises faith; but he never fails to honour

it. He delays to answer prayer but every word, every sigh, is

registered for acceptance in his best time. Let Solomon's word be a

quickening—not a discouraging—word; "profitable" indeed "for

reproof, and for correction;" but not less so "for instruction in righte-

ousness." (2 Tim. iii. 16.)

 

22. A merry heart doeth good like a medicine; but a broken spirit drieth

                                               the bones.

            This is not true of all merriment. The wise man justly describes

the loud and noisy mirth of fools to be, no medicine, but "madness;"1

a transient flash, not an abiding source of enjoyment. Probably this

merriment here means nothing more than cheerfulness, which, in its

proper measure, on proper subjects, and at a proper time, is a legitimate

pleasure, especially belonging to religion. Our Lord thus made a

merry heart by his message of Divine forgiveness (Matt. ix. 2-7); and

this doubtless was a more healing medicine to the paralytic, than the

restoration of his limbs. If I be a pardoned sinner, an accepted child

of God, what earthly trouble can sink me?  "Paul and Silas sang

praises to God in the inner prison, with their feet made fast in the

stocks." (Acts, xvi. 25.) The martyrs "glorified God in the fire.''

They were "tortured, not accepting deliverance, that they might obtain

a better resurrection." (Heb. xi. 35.) All earthly enjoyments are now

doubly blest with heavenly sunshine. (Eccles. ix. 7-9.)

            There is also the Christian flow of natural spirits. For when con-

secrated to the Lord, they become a means of enjoyment, not only to

ourselves (Chap. xv. 13), but to those around us. Often has the mourn-

ing saint been encouraged, often also has the worldling been convicted,

by a brother's cheerful words or looks.2 To the former it has been a

medicine; to the latter a lesson.

            A broken spirit in an evangelical sense is God's precious gift;

stamped with his special honour, and always constituting an acceptable

service. But here it describes a brooding spirit of despondency;

always looking at the dark side; and, if connected with religion

(which is not always the case), flowing from narrow and perverted

views, a spurious humility centering in self. The influence drieth up the

bones. The bodily system is sensibly affected.  'It contracts and

enfeebles the animal spirits; preys on our strength; eats out the vigour

of the constitution. The radical moisture is consumed; and the

 

1 Eccles. ii. 2. Comp. 1 Sam. xxv. 36, 87.                2 Chap. xii. 25. Eccles viii. I.

 


                                            CHAP. XVII. 22.                                           273

 

unhappy subject of this passion droops like a flower in the scorching

heat of summer.'*

            Not less baneful is its influence upon the spiritual system. Hard

thoughts of God are induced, as if he had forsaken, neglected, or for-

gotten us. From doubting, the soul comes to chilling fear; thence to

gloomy despondency. The power of the telescope fails in bringing

distant objects nigh. Hence the present hold of the grand object is

feeble. The hope of future enjoyment is dark. Distance too often

lessens communication. Prayer is, less frequently or powerfully sent

up. The answers therefore, and the supplies of cheering grace from

this source, are more scanty. Thus we are not only weakened in com-

fort, but cut short in strength. The mind is clothed in sable. The

chariot's wheels are taken off; so that we "drag heavily." Discontent,

and a querulous unbelieving sadness, take possession of the soul, and

wholly unfit us for the service of God.

            Most watchful therefore should we be against this withering influence.

Allow not the imagination to dwell needlessly in gloom. Constitutional

temperament will have its influence. External things act upon the body,

and through the body upon the mind. We are some of us creatures even

of weather, not the same on a misty as on a bright day. There is much

in our physical economy rather within the province of the physician

than the Minister; much perhaps that we may be inclined too hastily

to censure in a brother, when a more accurate knowledge would open

our sympathy. When outward and inward troubles unite, what wonder,

if the vessel, like Paul's ship, "where two seas met" (Acts, xxvii. 41).

give way?  Yet, let it be remembered, that every indulgence increases

the evil; and that allowed prevalence may end in a fixed melancholy.

            Turn and see what materials can be gathered for resistance to this

ruinous evil, and inducing a well-regulated cheerfulness.  ‘Why am

not I at this moment utterly overwhelmed with distress? How

seldom, if ever, am I in pain all over at the same time! How faith-

fully do our greatest supports combine with our greatest trials!'

(2 Cor. i. 5.) Surely in these recollections some excitement of plea-

surable feeling might be directed into the channel of gratitude to God!

How many rays of collected mercy shine from the great centre of joy!

            But to come more immediately to the gospel—Unquestionably

there is abundant matter for the deepest humiliation. No words can

adequately describe the shame, that we ought to feel for our insensi-

bility even on account of one single act of infinite love. Yet the

 

   * Bp. HORNE's Sermon on a Merry Heart. Our English proverb is—‘Dry sorrow drinks

the blood'— sorrow that cannot weep!

   Chap. xii. 25; xv. 13. Job, xxx. 30. Ps. xxxii. 3, 4; cii. 3-5; cxix. 83. Comp.

Ecclus. xxx. 22; xxxviii. 18. Ovid's beautiful lines, Lib. i. ex Ponto. This mixture of

bodily aud mental anguish formed the completeness of our Lord's sufferings. Ps. xxii. 15;

lxix. 3.

 


274       EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

gospel encourages humiliation, not despondency. It deals in the

realities, not of woe and despair, but of hope, peace, and joy. Its life

and glory is he that "bindeth up the broken-hearted" (Isa. lxi. 1),

who "will not break the bruised reed" (Ib. xlii. 3), or crush under his

feet "the prisoners of hope."

            If then—Christian—you believe the gospel to be "glad tidings,"

shew that you believe it, by lighting up your face with a smile; not

by "bowing down the head as a bulrush," and as it were "spreading

sackcloth and ashes under you." (Ib. lviii. 5.)  Shew that it is the day-

light of your soul; that you really find its ways to be "pleasantness

and peace" (Chap. iii. 17); that you believe their joys, not because you

have read and heard of them, but because you have tasted them. If

they are happy, be happy in them. "Lie not against the truth," by

suffering your countenance to induce the belief, that religion is a habit

of inveterate and incurable gloom. Joy is indeed a forbidden fruit to

the ungodly.1  But let it be the adorning of thy profession.2 It is a

sin against thy God to be without it.3 The gloom of the servant reflects

unjustly upon the Master, as if thou "knewest him, that he was an

hard man."4 Resist then all sorrow, that suggests such dishonourable

thoughts of him. Disparage not his heavenly comfort, by laying

unduly to heart his counter-balancing afflictions. No cloud can cover

you, but the "bow may be seen in the cloud." And in all this world's

afflictions, one beam of his love might scatter all the clouds, and fill

the heart with "joy unspeakable and full of glory."  "Let the Lord

then be magnified, which hath pleasure," not in the misery, but in

"the prosperity of his servants." (Ps. xxxv. 27.) He giveth liberty to

be cheerful, ground to be cheerful, and he will give thee an heart. to be

cheerful with animated gladness.

            After all, however,--let each be careful to cultivate a just and even

balance. Liveliness needs a guard, lest it should degenerate into levity.

Be much in secret with God. Cherish a solemn, reverential spirit

before the throne of grace. Christian joy is a deeply serious thing.

The froth and lightness that passes for it deserves not the name. The

carnal element must be destroyed, to introduce the heaven-born prin-

ciple, that comes from God, and maintains communion with him.

            Yet on the other a grave temperament must be resisted, lest it

should sink into morbid depression. Gloom is not the portion, and

ought not to stamp the character, of the children of God. It may often

be a conflict with a man's own self, either in body or mind. But yet a

little while, and, instead of the broken spirit which drieth up the bones,

our spirits will be so high, that another body must be formed to contain

them. Meanwhile Christian discipline on both sides will be the principle

of enlarged happiness and steady consistency.

 

1 Hos. ix. 1.       2 Isa, lii.1, 2 ; lx. 1.            3 Deut. xxviii. 47.           4 Matt. xxv. 24.


                                            CHAP. XVII. 23, 24.                                       275

 

23. A wicked man taketh a gift out of the bosom, to pervert the ways of

                                               judgment.

            Again we are warned of the corruption of gifts. (Verse 8.) No sin

has a deeper stamp of wickedness; none a more awful mark of Divine

visitation. (Isa. i. 23, 24. Ezra, xxii. 13.) The temptation is the test of

principle. Sir M. Hale (as his Biographer writes) ‘had learned from

Solomon, that a gift perverteth the ways of judgment.'*  He always there-

fore rejected it with courteous integrity. Not even a good cause will

justify the evil practice. The Apostle, though restrained in bondage

from his great and blessed work, woald not gratify his covetous judge

by purchasing his release. (Acts, xxiv. 26.) The rules of the gospel

are clear and decisive. Let us not "do evil, that good may come.

Let not your good be evil spoken of. Abstain from all appearance of

evil." (Rom. iii. 8 ; xiv. 16. 1 Thess. v. 22.)

            Even a corrupt world is ashamed of this sin. The gift is in the

bosom (Chap. xxi. 14), concealed from the eye of man. But how fear-

fully uncovered is it to the eye of God, who will not wink at the

endeavour to pervert his ways of judgment! How will he one day

vindicate his Omniscience from all the insults put upon it in the

world by those foolish men, who were not ashamed to do those things

in the face of God himself, in which they would not have wished the

meanest of his creatures to detect them!'

            Let every child of Abraham hear the command given to his father

—"Walk before me, and,be thou perfect." (Gen. xxii. 1.)  "He that

walketh righteously, and speaketh uprightly—he that shaketh his

hands from holding of bribes---he shall dwell on high." (Isa. xxxiii.

15, 16. Ps. xv.)

 

24. Wisdom is before him that hath understanding; but the eyes of a fool

                                are in the ends of the earth.

            Let us trace our interest in wisdom from the beginning. It first

"enters into the heart." (Chap. ii. 10.) There it "rests in him that hath

understanding" (Chap. xiv. 33), as his principle of conduct. Now it

is before his eyes in the Book of Wisdom, as his rule of faith and life.

(Ib. verse 8.) It is the centre, to which all his thoughts, motives, and

pursuits tend. All is now order. Every faculty, desire, and affection,

finds its proper place.  ‘He that hath understanding fixeth his eyes upon

wisdom, and contenteth himself with that object; whereas the eyes of a

fool are constantly wandering everywhere; and his thoughts settle

upon nothing that may avail to his good.'‡  His eyes are in the ends

of the earth, rolling and wandering from one object to another. His

 

* Bishop BURNET'S Life. What a degrading contrast did Lord Bacon's character display!

Lawson in loco.                                                                                ‡ Bishop Hall.

 


276       EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

thoughts are scattered. He has no definite object, no settled principle,

no certain rule. Talent, cultivation of mind, improvement of oppor-

tunity—all are frittered away. He cares for those things which are

furthest from him, and with which he has the least concern.

            An original writer thus vividly pourtrays this inconstancy—'To-

day he goes to the quay to be shipped for Rome. But before the tides

come, his tide is turned. One party thinks him theirs; the adverse

theirs; he is with both; with neither; not an hour with himself.

Indifference is his ballast, and opinion his sail; he resolves not to

resolve. He knows not what he doth hold. He opens his mind to

receive notions, as one opens his palm to take an handful of water.

He hath very much, if he could hold it. He is sure to die, but not

what religion to die in. He demurs, like a posed lawyer, as if delay

could remove some impediments.--In a controverted point, he holds

with the last reasoner he either heard or read. The next diverts him,

and his opinion dwells with him perhaps so long as the teacher of it is

in his sight. He will rather take dross for gold, than try it in the

furnace. He receives many judgments, retains none.—He loathes

manna after two days' feeding.—His best dwelling would be his

confined chamber, where he would trouble nothing but his pillow. He

is full of business at Church; a stranger at home; a sceptic abroad;

an observer in the street; everywhere a fool.'*

            This diversion is a great engine of the enemy. His great object

is to turn the mind aside from what is immediate to what is indefinite,

from what is plain and important to what is, unsearchable;1 from what

is personal to what is irrelevant.2  Many trifles take the place of the

"One thing needful." And is not this waste of time often a temptation

to the Christian? Where are his eyes, or his thoughts, at prayer?

Alas! too often, instead of "looking unto Jesus" (Heb. xii. 2), his

great object, the life of prayer, the only way to God--are they not

in the ends of the earth, as if there was no nearer, no better object of

attraction?  Oh! do not we want simplicity of spiritual understanding

to keep him, the great untreated Wisdom, constantly before our eyes?

Lord! I am ashamed of my base inconstancy. But it is thou alone

canst heal it. "Turn away mine eyes from beholding vanity." (Ps.

cxix. 37.) Fix them—O fix them—on him, on whom all heaven, all

the redeemed, delight to gaze for ever.

 

25. A foolish son is a grief to his father, and bitterness to her that bare

                                                        him.

            Surely the Divine Spirit did not repeat the proverb (Verse 21) for

nought. Was it not to deepen our sense of parental responsibility and

 

1 Deut. xxix. 29. Col. ii. 18.                    2 Luke, xiii. 23, 24. John, xxi. 21, 22.

* Works of Rev. THOMAS ADAMS. Folio, 1630--The Soul's Sickness.

 


                                     CHAP. XVII. 25.                                        277

 

filial obligation? Can parents be insensible to the prospect of this

grief? Can children be hardened into the unnatural selfishness of

piercing a parent's heart with such bitterness? (Chap. xix. 13.) The

mother's anguish is here added to the father's grief (Gen. xxvi. 35.)

"As a sword in her bones," is the apprehension of having "brought forth

children to the murderer." (Hos. ix. 13.) How uncertain are the

dearest comforts of earth! Our fallen mother anticipated the joy of

"having gotten a man"—perhaps the promised seed —"from the

Lord." (Gen. iv. 1.) Yet to the bitterness of her soul "he was of that

wicked one, and slew his brother." (1 John, iii. 12.) Her daughter

naturally "remembereth no more her sorrow, for joy that a man is born

into the world." (John, xvi. 21.) Already she grasps the delightful

vision of his infant training, and ripening maturity. And yet too

often he proves in the end a foolish son, and bitterness to her that bare

him.

            Absalom was named 'His father's peace.' Yet was he the source

of his most poignant grief. This is not the "weeping of a night,"

succeeded by a "joyous morning" (Ps. xxx. 5); but the "heaviness

that maketh the heart stoop" (Chap. xii. 25), perhaps for years, perhaps

to the end of days. Its connexion with eternity gives to the trial its

keenest edge. To see a foolish son hurried irrevocably into his eternal

doom—Oh! this to the godly parent is an awful conflict. (2 Sam.

xviii. 33.) Strong indeed must be that faith (yet such faith has been

vouchsafed)1 which bows reverentially to the Divine Sovereignty, and

maintains the serenity of peaceful submission.

            But parental anxieties and sorrows must stimulate the enquiry--

'How may this piercing thorn be spared, this bitter grief—the bitterest

that ever a parent's heart can know—averted?' The primary root of

this sorrow is the indulgence of the will.2 The vast power of parental

influence must be used wisely, at once, at any cost.  We must not

instruct, or entreat only, but command.3  We must allow no appeal

from our authority, no reversal of our decision. This discipline in the

spirit of love, and enforced by example, is God's honoured ordinance.

Then to give power to all other means, there must be a living faith

in the word of God. For if I really believe that awful fact, that my

child is "a child of wrath," that Satan claims a right in him, and that

if he die unconverted, hell must be his everlasting portion; shall not I

apply myself with ceaseless energy to all the means for his soul's sal-

vation; under the clear conviction, that if he be not saved, "good were

it for him that he had not been born?"

            But this faith brings encouragement fully proportioned to the

tremendous anxiety. For, if I be a Christian Parent, may I not claim

a place for my child in the covenant of God? (Gen. xvii. 7.) May I

 

1 Lev. x. 1-3. 1 Sam. iii. 18.            2 Chap. xxix. 15.        3 Gen. xviii. 19. 1 Sam. ii. 23-25.

 


278           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

not plead with him, and for him as a covenanted child?  Here I desire

to exercise a sound balance of well-disciplined confidence; encouraging

parental hopes, and moderating parental anxieties. The law of the

kingdom is, "that men should pray always, and not faint." (Luke,

xviii. 1.) The fondest desires may not be accomplished till the

eleventh hour. There may be many haltings, many withering blasts,

many windings of the path. But "the bread cast upon the waters

shall be found," though it be not till "after many days." (Eccles. xi. 1.)

            Only let us see to it, that our faith proves its soundness as a prac-

tical principle. Do parents never pray, that God would take their

children as his own, while yet they train them, as if they were for the

world? Are we sure, that we desire nothing for them besides, or

unconnected with, eternal life?*  One such desire stirs up another;

till at length these few little things thrust down the primary blessing

from its place, and it becomes a nullity.

            In fine—would we look for rest in our beloved children? (Gen. v.

29, marg.) Hold them loose for ourselves; fast for God. Connect

them early with his Church. Train their first years in his yoke.

Instead of a sinking grief to us, they will then be "the restorers of our

life, and the nourishers of our age." (Ruth, iv. 15.) Instead of being

our bitterness as rebels against God, he will own and seal them, as "a

seed to serve him, to declare his righteousness," to set forth his praise.

(Ps. xxii. 31; xcii. 13.)

 

26. Also to punish the just is not good, nor to strike princes for equity.

            Often is the wise man's meaning much beyond his words. To

punish the just not only is not good, but it is "the abomination" (Verse

15)—"an evident token of perdition." (Philip. i. 28.) If rulers are

"a terror to good works," they are Ministers of God in authority, but

Ministers of Satan in administration.l  And how will such injustice

" abide the day of his coming," when he shall "lay judgment to the

line, and righteousness to the plummet!"2

            Not less wicked is the sin of the people. To strike princes is high

treason against God.3 The Apostle confessed the unwilling sin of his

smiting words.4 Much more guilty is it to strike them for equity. A

godly king—ruling in equity, "scattering away all evil with his eyes”5

—will raise to himself many and powerful enemies. The evil-minded

will undermine his influence,6 or resist his authority.7  If they dare not

strike him openly, they will "curse him in their thoughts."8 To strike,

 

1 1 Kings, xxi. 11-13. Matt. xxvi. 3, 4. Acts, iv. 1-3.

2 Isa. xxviii. 17, with Mal. iii. 2, 5.                                               3 Job, xxxiv. 18.

4 Acts, xxiii. 5. Comp. 1 Sam. xxiv. 5, 6; 2 Sam. xvi. 5-7.             5 Chap. xx. 8.

6 2 Sam. xv. 1-6.                                   7 Ib. xx. 1.                     8 Eccles. x. 20.

   * Mark the golden rule, on which all hangs, Matt. vi. 33.

   See this same meiosis. Chap. xvi. 29; xviii. 5; xx. 23. Ps. li. 17. Ezek. xxxvi. 31.


                                         CHAP. XVII. 27, 28.                             279

 

even in word, is our sin.1  To pray is our duty.  And who knoweth

what a prayer-hearing God would send--a righteous administration, a

covert and blessing to the land?2

 

27. He that hath knowledge spareth his words; and a man of understand-

            ing is of an excellent (cool, marg.) spirit.  28. Even a fool, when he

            holdeth his peace, is counted wise; and he that shutteth his lips is

            esteemed a man of understanding.

            The wisdom of these proverbs will be acknowledged by those, who

know the sins of the tongue, and the immense difficulty of restraining

the unruly member. A man of knowledge will spare his words, when the

probable prospect is harm rather than good. (Ps. xxxix. 1, 2. Matt.

vii. 6.) The good treasure is far too valuable to be unprofitably spent.

Silence is often the best proof of wisdom.* Our Lord in his divine

knowledge, careful as he was to improve every opportunity for instruc-

tion, sometimes spared his words. (Matt. xvi. 4.)

            This restraint is most important under provocation.3 Passion

demands immediate judgment. A cool, well-tempered understanding

asks further time for consideration. The fiery ebullition of the Apostles,

their Master judged to be the want of an excellent understanding. (Luke,

ix. 54, 55.) Nehemiah, by repressing the first vent of his righteous

anger, gave a reasonable and convincing answer for the occasion.

The prophet wisely refrained even a message from God to a king in

the moment of passion. (2 Chron. xxv. 16.)  ‘A little spark blows up

one of sulphureous temper; and many coals, greater injuries, and

reproaches are quenched, and lose their force, being thrown at another

of a cool spirit.'‡  Indeed a fool may purchase to himself the reputation

of wisdom, if only he shut his mouth, instead of exposing his folly to

common observation. (Contrast chap. xv. 2; xxix. 11.)  ‘He cannot

be known for a fool, that says nothing. He is a fool, not who hath

unwise thoughts, but who utters them. Even concealed folly is

wisdom.'§

            How infinitely momentous is the account, which God takes of the

 

1 2 Pet. ii. 10. Jude, 8,                2 1 Tim. ii. 1-3. 2 Sam. xxiii. 3. Isa. xxxii. 1, 2.

3 Num. xii. 1, 2. Ps. xxxviii. 12-14. Isa. M. 7.

   * Chap. x. 19. Job, xiii. 5. Comp. Ecclus. v. 12, 13; xxxii. 7-9. Dr. Good in his note

on Job, xiii. 5, gives a translation of an Arabic poetical proverb.

                        Keep silence then; nor speak, but when besought;

                                    Who listens long, grows tired of what is told:

                        With tones of silver though thy tongue be fraught,

                                    Know this—that silence of itself is gold.

  † Neh. v. 6-11. Cicero advises his brother Quintus (a proconsul in Asia) most diligently

to restrain his tongue under anger, which—he adds—is no less a virtue, than freedom

from anger itself.—Epist. ad Q. FRATREM, lib. i. 1.

    ‡ LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. iii. 9.

    § Bishop HALL. Works, viii. 83.


280     EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

tongue!  "Death and life are in the power of it." (Chap. xviii. 21.)

Our eternal acceptance or condemnation will—in part at least--hang

on it. (Matt. xii. 36, 37.) How could we endure the judgment for

"every idle," no less than for every wicked "word," if there were not

for the self-abased penitent a covering from this condemnation, a

cleansing from this guilt, a seal of acceptance? (Isa. vi. 7.)

 

                                       CHAPTER XVIII:

 

1. Through desire a man, having separated himself, seeketh and inter-

            meddleth with all wisdom. 2. A fool hath no delight in understanding,

            but that his heart may discover itself.

            DESIRE is the chariot-wheel of the soul, the spring of energy and delight.

The man of business or science is filled with his great object; and

through desire he separates himself from all lets and hindrances, that he

may intermeddle with its whole range. "This one thing"--saith the

man of God—"I do." (Philip. iii. 13.) This one thing is everything

with him. He separates himself from all outward hindrances, vain com-

pany, trifling amusements or studies, needless engagements, that he

may seek and intermeddle with all wisdom. John separated himself in the

wilderness,1 Paul in Arabia,2 our blessed Lord in frequent retirement,3

in order to greater concentration in their momentous work. Deeply

does the Christian Minister feel the responsibility of this holy separation,

that he may "give himself wholly to" his office. (1 Tim. iv. 15. 2 Tim.

ii. 4.) Without it—Christian--thy soul can never prosper. How

canst thou intermeddle with the great wisdom of knowing thyself, if thy

whole mind be full of this world's chaff and vanity? There must be a

withdrawal, to "commune with thine own heart" and to ask the

questions—"Where art thou? What doest thou here?" Much is

there to be enquired into and pondered. Everything here calls for our

deepest, closest thoughts. We must walk with God in secret, or the

enemy will walk with us, and our souls will die. "Arise, go forth into

the plain, and I will there talk with thee." (Ezek. iii. 22.) "When

thou wast under the fig-tree, I saw thee." (John, i. 48.) Deal much in

secrecy, if thou wouldst know "the secret of the Lord." Like thy

Divine Master, thou wilt never be less alone than when alone. (Ib.

xvi. 32.) There is much to be wrought, gained, and enjoyed. Thy

most spiritual knowledge, thy richest experience will be found here.

Men who live without retirement may be fluent talkers, and accurate

preachers. But nothing comes as from a broken and contrite heart.

The want of unction paralyses all spiritual impression. No intelligent,

 

1 Luke, i. 80.                 2 Gal. i. 17.                    3 Mark, i. 35; vi. 31. Luke, vi. 12.

 


                                         CHAP. XVIII. 3.                                        281

 

self-observant Christian but feels the immense moment of combining

holy solitude with active life, as the nourishment of his faith, and with

it of every Christian grace. Sir M. Hale left this testimony--'I have

endeavoured to husband this short, uncertain, important talent (time)

by dedicating and setting apart some portion of it to prayer and

reading of thy word; which I have constantly and peremptorily

observed, whatever occasions interposed, or importunity persuaded to

the contrary.*

            And then, when we look around us into the infinitely extended field

of the Revelation of God, what a world of heavenly wisdom is there to

intermeddle with! In the hurry of this world's atmosphere how little

can we apprehend it! And yet such is the field of wonder, that the

contemplation of a single point overwhelmed the Apostle with adoring

astonishment. (Rom. xi. 33.) Here are "things, which even the angels

desire to look into." (1 Pet. i. 12.) The redeemed) will be employed

throughout eternity in this delighted searching; exploring "the

breadth, and length, and depth, and height," until they be "filled with

all the fulness of God." (Eph. iii. 18, 19.) Surely then if we have any

desire, we shall separate ourselves from the cloudy atmosphere around

us, that we may have fellowship with these happy investigators of the

Divine mysteries.

            Yet the fool hath no delight in his understanding. All his desire is to

pour out his own frivolity, to come abroad from public observation, that

his heart may discover itself—an humiliating discovery, indeed, at once

of the scantiness of his knowledge and the vanity of his mind.

 

3. When the wicked cometh, then cometh also contempt, and with

                                      ignominy reproach.

            Selfishness is the character of the wicked.  ‘Wheresoever he cometh,

he is apt to cast contempt and reproach upon every man's face.'  His

neighbour's circumstances or infirmities furnish materials to hold him

up to scorn. The word of God has no favour in his eyes. His people

are the objects of his reproach. Their seriousness he calls gloom, their

cheerfulness levity. (Matt. xi. 18, 19.) If "none occasion or fault can

be found" (Dan. vi. 4), invention forges it with unwearied ingenuity.

"As saith the proverb of the ancients, wickedness proceedeth from the

wicked." (1 Sam. xxiv. 13.) We must calculate upon, this furnace,

though the fires of martyrdom are extinguished. Our blessed Lord

bore all the evils of the world without flinching.  But contempt and

reproach pierced his soul more keenly, than the "nails did his hands

and his feet." "Reproach," saith he--"hath broken my heart."1 And

 

                        1 Ps. lxix. 20. Matt. xxvii. 39-44.

            * The Good Steward. Contemplations, pp. 238, 239,

                        Bishop Hall. Comp. chap. xxix. 16.

 


282           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

must not the servant expect to be as his Master?1 Often however

does retributive justice overwhelm the wicked themselves with ignominy

and reproach.2 A scornful spirit against the godly is never forgotten.

Every bitter word is registered against the great day.3 And what a

sight will it then be, when the reviled shall stand forth, clothed with

all the glory of "the King of saints," and the faces of their persecutors

shall be covered with "everlasting shame and contempt!" (Dan. xii. 2.)

The sight of that day will never be blotted out! The rebuke of his

people shall be taken away from off all the earth, "for the Lord hath

spoken it." (Isa. xxv. 8.)

 

4. The words of a man's mouth are as deep waters, and the well-spring

                                of wisdom as a flowing brook.

            ‘This sentence expresses the depth, the, abundance, the clearness,

and the force of the counsels of the wise man.'*  The last clause gives

this restriction to wisdom. When "a man has intermeddled with all

wisdom," his words are in themselves deep waters, and in their com-

munication fruitful as a flowing brook. His wisdom is a well-spring,

‘which sends up full brooks, that are ready to overflow their banks. So

plentiful is he in good discourse and wholesome counsel!' So deep

were the waters from the wise man's spring, that his words nearly over-

whelmed the capacity of his royal hearer. (1 Kings, x. 4-8.) One

"greater than Solomon" "astonished the people" by the clearness, no

less than by the depth of the waters. (Matt. vii. 28, 29.) No blessing is

more valuable than a "rich indwelling of the word," ready to be brought

out on all suitable occasions of instruction 4 If the wise man some-

times "spares his words,"5 it is not for want of matter, but for greater

edification. The stream is ready to flow, and sometimes can scarcely

be restrained.6 The cold-hearted, speculative professor has his flow--

sometimes a torrent of words, yet without a drop of profitable matter;

chilling, even when doctrinally correct; without life, unction, or love.

Lord! deliver us from this barren "talk of the lips." (Chap. xiv. 23.)

May our waters be deep, flowing from thine own inner sanctuary, re-

freshing, and fertilizing the Church of God!

            This well-spring is specially invigorating, when, as in Chrysostom,

it gives an heavenly glow to outward eloquence. Consecrated mind

and talent are the gifts of God. Oh! let them be improved in sim-

plicity, not for the creature's honour, but for the glory of the Great

Giver.

 

1 Matt. x. 25. John, xv. 20.                     2 2 Sam. vi. 20-23. Esth. vii. 9, 10.

3 1 Pet. iv. 4, 5. Jude, 14, 15.                  4 Col. iii. 16; iv. 6.

5 Chap. xxvii. 27.                                   6 Job, xxxii. 19. Jer. xx. 9. Acts, xvii. 16.

*  Calmet.                                 Bishop Hall. Comp. chap. x. 11; xvi. 22; xx. 5.


                                    CHAP. XVIII. 5, 6.                                     283

 

5. It is not good to accept the person of the wicked, to overthrow the

                                 righteous in judgment.

            Were not "the foundations of the earth out of course," should we

hear of so gross a violation of the rule of right? (Ps. lxxxii. 2-5.) But

in a world, of which Satan is "the god and the prince;" injustice is a

natural principle of administration. The godly king of Judah pointed

his judges to the Divine example—‘Look —and be like Him.'

(2 Chron. xix. 7.) Everything revolting is connected with wickedness.

There is no one so noble, that it does not degrade so lovely, that it

does not deform; so learned, that it does not befool.  To accept there-

fore his person, is indeed not good.1  "Abomination," is its true name --

the stamp of God.2 ‘Whatever excuses man may make for its course,

it is an offence to God, an affront to justice, a wrong to mankind, and a

real service done to the kingdom of sin and Satan.'*  In judgment let

the cause be heard, not the person. Let the person be punished for his

wickedness, not the wickedness be covered for the person's sake. When,

as in the case of Naboth, the person of the wicked was accepted, to over-

throw the righteous in judgment, it overthrows the throne of judgment in

the land. The Shechemites were sharply punished for their sin, in

accepting Abimelech to the overthrow of the righteous claims of Gideon's

house. (Judg. ix.) No wonder. In such wickedness the rights of God

are despised; the claims of his justice are cast off. "He that ruleth

over men must be just, ruling in the fear of God." (2 Sam. xxiii. 3.)

Such was our Divine pattern in the flesh: "of quick understanding in

the fear of the Lord," and therefore "judging in righteousness." (Isa.

xi. 4.) Such will be his judgment, when "he shall judge the world

in righteousness." (Acts, xvii. 31.) His decision will be exact; his

sentence unchangeable.

 

6. A fool's lips enter into contention, and his mouth calleth for strokes.

            7. A fool's mouth is his destruction, and his lips are the snare of his

            soul.

            It is not a little remarkable, that the Apostle, when giving the

anatomy of man's depravity, should dwell chiefly upon "the little

member" with all its accompaniments—the throaty--the tongue—

the lips—the mouth. (Rom. iii. 13.) Such a world of iniquity is it,

defiling the whole body! (Jam. iii. 6.) We often see its mischief to

others; here is the mischief to the man himself. The fool's lips enter

into contention. This is folly indeed. The wise man may be drawn

into it by infirmity of temper,3 or by the force of circumstances.4  But

 

1 Chap. xvii. 26; xxiv. 23; xxviii. 21.

2 Chap. xvii. 15. Comp. Lev. xix. 15; Deut. i. 16, 17.

3 Acts, xv. 39.                                                               4 Gen. xi i. 8.

                        * Henry.

 


284          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

“as much as in him lies, he will live peaceably with all men,”l

quenching even the first rising of contention.2 The fool enters into it, by

intermeddling needlessly with strife,3 or wilfully stirring it up,4 ‘like

the alarum of war, and drums beating up to the battle.'*  And thus he

makes a rod for himself.5 He puts a weapon into the hands of Satan,

with which to beat his own head, and hammers him with fearful strokes 6

The wilful contention of the men of Succoth and Penuel with Gideon

called for strokes.7  The scoffing mouth of the little children was their

merited destruction.8  The slanderous lips of Daniel's persecutors were

the snare of their soul.9 There is no need to dig a pit for the fool. He

digs it for himself.10  The mouths of wild beasts devour each other.

The fool's mouth is his own destruction." The fowler's snare is not

wanted; for "he is snared by the transgression of his lips." (Chap. xii.

13.) He is not only the cause, but the agent of his own destruction.

            And shall not the child of God watch in godly fear, lest his folly

should call for his Father's stroke? Sharply may he "hew" by the

sword. (Hos. vi. 5.) He may be as if he would seem to kill, in order

to make alive. All this is, that he may embitter sin, and endear

returning mercy. Always is it wise and gracious love, as one of the

Fathers says—‘threatening, that he may not strike: and striking, that

he may not destroy.'  If shewing the rod will effect the purpose, gladly

will he forbear to strike. But if our folly—as Leighton speaks pulls

punishment out of his hands,' whom but ourselves have we to thank

for the smart?

8. The words of a talebearer are as wounds, and they go down into the

                             innermost parts of the belly.

            Do men deny, question, or soften clown the depravity of our nature?

Mark again how the virulent poison of only one member destroys

practical godliness, social order, and mutual friendship. The talebearer

was expressly forbidden by the law (Lev. xix. 16), and not less is he

opposed to the spirit of the gospel. (1 Cor. xiiii. 6.) No character indeed

is more despicable; no influence more detestable. It is right indeed,

that we should exercise interference with each other, and mutual

inspection. It is a hard selfishness only, that asks the question—

"Am I my brother's keeper?" (Gen. iv. 9.) The rule is clear—"Look

not every one on his own, but every man also on the things of others."

(Philip. ii. 4.) The rule is at once illustrated and enforced by an

example magnificent and constraining. It is "the mind that was in

Christ Jesus himself." Had the Son of God "looked at his own things,"

 

1 Rom. xii. 18; xiv. 19.    2 Chap. xvii. 14.                         3 Chap. xx. 3; xxvi. 17.

4 Chap. xvi. 27, 28.        5 Chap. xiv. 3; xix. 19, 29.          6 Chap. xxvi. 21.

7 Judg. viii. 4-17.            8 2 Kings, ii. 23, 24.                    9 Dan. vi. 13.

10 Ps. vii. 15; 1xiv. 8.     11 Chap. x. 8, 14; xiii. 3. Eccles. x. 12, 13.

              * Cartwright in loco.               Works, v. 114.


                                       CHAP. XVIII. 9.                                      285

 

and not "at the things of others," would he have emptied himself of his

divine glory? Would he have humbled himself to the accursed cross?

(Ib. verse 5-8.)

            Again—the bond of the interference will be determined by the

principle of the love of our neighbour. It is right therefore to "bring

an evil report,"1 for the prevention of sin. Eli was thus enabled, though

without effect, to remonstrate with his sons.2  The life of an Apostle

was by this means preserved.3  Serious evils in the Church were re-

strained or corrected.4  But no good results can arise from the spirit of

the talebearer, because with him it is pure selfishness,5 without a principle

beyond the love of sin for its own sake. He lives upon the scandal of

the place, and makes it his hateful business to carry about tales, or

slanders of his neighbour's faults.* Such reports are eagerly devoured,

and the mischief-maker feeds with greedy appetite upon the fruit of his

cruel indulgence. To him this may appear harmlees play. But if it

draws no blood, and no outward hurt is shewn, an internal, and often

incurable, wound is inflicted. (Chap. xxvi. 22.) We may seem to make

light of the tale brought to our ears, and wholly to despise it, But the

subtle poison has worked. 'Suppose it 'should be true. Perhaps,

though it may be exaggerated, there may be some ground for it.' The

thought indulged only for a moment brings suspicion, distrust, coldness;

and often it ends in the separation of chief friends.6  So dangerous a

member in the frame is the tongue without stern determined controul!

            The tale of an unguarded moment may be a tremendous irreparable

injury. The evil humour may meet with a welcome audience in good

society, where but for the food which scandal supplies, conversation

would drag heavy. But no favour can alter its real character, as an

abomination both with God and man. Ah! what but the power of

holy love, opening freely the channels of kindness and forbearance, can

overcome this mischievous propensity? And what will bring this

spirit of love, but a true interest in Christian privileges, and a cor-

responding sense of Christian obligations?  (Col. iii. 12-14.)

 

9. He also that is slothful in his work is brother to him that is a great

                                                  waster.

            Observe the affinity of the different principles and workings of

corruption. The sluggard and the prodigal belong to the same family.

 

1 Chap. xxiv. 11, 12. Gen. xxxvii. 2. Lev. v. 1.                 2 1 Sam. ii. 23, 24.

3 Acts, xxiii. 13. Contrast Jer. xl. 13-16; xli. 1, 2.              4  1 Cor. i. 11; xi. 18.

5 Jer. xx. 10.        6 Chap. xvi. 23; xvii. 9. 1 Sam. xxiv. 9; xxvi. 19. 2 Sam. xvi. 1-4.

* The word properly signifies a pedlar, who buys goods (stolen ones it may be) at one

place, and sells them at another, taking care to make his own market of them. So a tale-

bearer makes his own visits, to pick up at one place, and utter at another, that which he

thinks will lessen his neighbour's reputation, that he may build his own upon it.'--

M. HENRY's Sermon on Friendly Visits. Comp. chap. xi. 13; xx. 19.

 


286         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

The man who "hid the Lord's talent," was equally unfaithful with him

who "wasted his goods." (Matt. xxv. 25. Luke, xvi. 1.)  The slothful

has no heart for his work. Important opportunities slip by. His stock,

instead of increasing by trade, gradually dwindles into penury. ‘God

hath a bountiful "hand, and filleth all things living with plenteousness."

(Ps. cxly. 16. P. T.) But unless we have a diligent hand, wherewith to

receive it, we may starve. He that by the sloth of his hand disfurnisheth

himself of the means of getting, he is as near of kin to a waster as may

be.'*  He is the brother of a great waster—the lord of a large estate,

who, instead of husbanding, improving, and enjoying it, wastes it away

in extravagance and folly.

            It is the same in religion. The one is content with heartless ortho-

doxy. His secret prayer brings no after remembrance. His family

worship is a routine of formality, not the influential ordinance of the

day. "Communing with his heart" is mere barren generality, bringing

no accurate and humbling knowledge of himself. And wherein does

he differ from the careless waster of his privileges? Where is the

important distinction between him who prays, reads, and works

formally, and him, who utterly casts these high privileges away?

Both take the same course, though by a somewhat different track.

The one folds his arms in sloth. The other opens his hands in waste-

fulness. The one gets nothing. The other spends what he gets. The

one rushes into beggary. The other sits still, and waits its arrival.

(Chap. vi. 11.) The one dies by a rapid and violent disease. The

other by a slow, subtle, but sure, consumption. Thus fearful is the

guilt, solemn is the account, certain is the ruin, of both. God gives

talents, not only to enrich, but to employ. And whether they be

selfishly neglected, or carelessly thrown away—"Thou wicked servant"

will be the condemnation; "outer darkness" will be the just and

eternal doom. (Matt. xxv. 26-30.) Servant of Christ! let thy Master's

life be thy pattern and thy standard. Not a moment with him was

slothfully neglected; not a moment unprofitably wasted. Equally

fervent was he in daily work, as in nightly prayer. Follow him in his

work, and thou wilt be honoured with his revard. (John, xii. 26.)

 

10. The name of the Lord is a strong tower: the righteous rwnneth into it,

            and is safe (set aloft, marg.) 11. The rich, man's wealth is his strong

            city, and as an high wall in his own conceit.

            Consciousness of danger induces even the animal creation to seek

for a refuge.1 To man, a strong tower offers such a covert.2  But man

as a sinner—does he realize his imminent peril, his threatened ruin?

Oh! let him believe his welcome into the strong tower set before him.

 

1 Chap. xxx. 26. Ps. civ. 18.       2 Judg. ix. 51. 2 Chron. xiv. 7; xxvi. 9.

                    * Bishop SANDERSON's Sermon on 1 Cor. vii. 24.

 


                                             CHAP. XVIII. 10.                                  287

 

Such is the name of the Lord; not the bare outward words, operating as

a charm, but his character; that by which he is known, as a man by his

name. The full "declaration of this name" sets outmost powerfully the

strength of the tower. Every letter adds confirmation to our faith. (Exod.

xxxiv. 5-7.) Every renewed manifestation brings a fresh sunbeam of

light and blessing.*

            Take the sinner in his first awakening conviction. He trembles at the

thought of eternal condemnation. He looks forward—all is terror;

backward—nothing but remorse; inward—all is darkness. Till now,

he had no idea of his need of salvation. His enemy now suggests that

it is beyond his reach; that he has sinned too long and too much,

against too much light and knowledge ; how can he be saved? But

the name of the Lord meets his eye. He spells out every letter, and

putting it together, cries—"Who is a God like unto thee?" (Mic. vii.

18.) He runs to it, as to a strong tower. His burden of conscience is

relieved. His soul is set free, and he enjoys his safety.

            Take—again—the child of God—feeble, distressed, assaulted.

What, if I should return to the world, look back, give up my profes-

sion, yield to my own deceitful heart, and perish at last with aggravated

condemnation?' You are walking outside the gates of your tower; no

wonder that your imprudence exposes you to "the fiery darts of the

wicked." Read again the name of the Lord! Go back within the

walls—See upon the tower the name—"I am the Lord; I change not."

(Mal. iii. 6.) Read the direction to trust in it—"Who is there among

you that feareth the Lord, that obeyeth the voice of his servant: that

walketh in darkness, and path no light? Let him trust in the name of

the Lord, and stay upon his God." (Isa. i. 10.) Mark the warrant of

experience in this trust—"They that know thy name shall put their

trust in thee; for thou, Lord, hast not forsaken them, that seek thee."

(Ps. ix. 10.)

            Thus sense of danger, knowledge of the way, confidence in the

strength of the tower—all gives a spring of life and earnestness to run

into it. Here the righteous—the man justified by thine grace, and sanc-

tified by the Spirit, of God--runneth every day, every hour; realizing

at once his fearful danger, and his perfect security. Within these

walls, who of us needs to fear the sharpest or swiftest, dart that may be

shot against us? We realize our security from external trouble,l and

in trying exercises of faith!  We are safe from his avenging justice,

 

            1 Deut. xxxiii. 27-29. Ps. 1xi. 3; xci. 2. Isa. liv. 14.

  * See the New Testament names of God. Rom. xv. 5, 13. 2 Cor. i. 3; v. 19. 1 Pet.

v. 10.

  See the examples of Jacob, Gen. xxxii. 11, 28, 29. David, 1 San. xxx. 6. Ps. lvi. 3.

Asa, 2 Chron. xiv. 11; Jehoshaphat, xx. 12. Hezekiah, 2 Kings, xix 14-19. The Apostles,

Acts, iv. 24-33.


288          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

from the curse of his law, from sin, from condemnation, from the

second death.1  We joy in our safety2--yea--in our exaltation.3

Our best interests are beyond the reach of harm;4 and "the righteous

nation" takes up the song of triumph—‘We have a strong city;

Salvation will God appoint for walls and for bulwarks."5

            But only the righteous are found here. What know the ungodly of

this refuge?  ‘Our God's mercy is holy mercy. He knows how to

pardon sin, not to protect it. He is a sanctuary to the penitent, not

to the presumptuous.'*  Yet what joy is it, that the gates of this city

are always open! No time is unseasonable. No distance, no feeble-

ness, hinders the entrance. The cripple may run, like "Asahel, swift of

foot." (2 Sam. ii. 18.) All that enter are garrisoned to salvation.

Satan is raising batteries against the fort, using all means to take it,

by strength or stratagem, unwearied in his assaults, and very skilful to

know his advantages.'  But notwithstanding all his disturbing power,

"the peace of God" daily fortifies our hearts from fear of evil.6 Such is

our strong tower! What owe we to our gracious Saviour, who has

made our way to it so free, so bright?7  We repose in the bosom of

God, and are at peace.

            But the rich man has his strong city yea--and his high walls. (Chap.

x. 15.) Well does the wise man add—in his own conceit.  Little does

he think, that in a moment they may crumble to the dust, and leave

him in the fearful ruin of an unsheltered state. ‘Trouble will find an

entrance into his castle. Death will storm, and take it. And judgment

will sweep both him and it into perdition.'‡

            The histories of David and Saul contrast most strikingly trouble

with or without a refuge.8 An affecting contrast does our Lord draw

between a real and an imaginary refuge!9 Every man is as his trust.

A trust in God communicates a divine and lofty spirit. We feel that

we are surrounded with God, and dwelling on high with him. Oh, the

sweet security of the weakest believer, shut up in an impregnable

fortress! A vain trust brings a vain and proud heart, the immediate

forerunner of ruin.

 

12. Before destruction the heart of man is haughty, and before honour is

                                                    humility.

            We have had both these Proverbs separately. (Chap. xvi. 18; xv. 33.)

 

1 Job, xiii. 15.                 2 Ps. xviii. 1-3. Isa. xxv. 4.         3 M. R. Isa. xxxiii. 16.

4 Col. iii. 3.                                                                    5 Isa. xxvi. 1-4.

6 Philip. iv. 7. Gr. Comp. chap. i. 33; xiv. 26.                   7 Matt. xi. 27. John, i. 18; xiv. 6.

8 1 Sam. xxx. 6; with xxviii. 15. Comp. Isa. i. 10, 11.        9 Matt. vii. 24-27.

   * Bishop REYNOLDS on Hos. xiv. 1, 2.         1 Pet. i. 5 Gr. Leighton on the passage.

   Scott. Comp. Ezek. xxviii. 1-10. Luke, xii. 18-20. See also a fine passage in the

Rambler, in Dr. Johnson's best style of solemn instructiveness. No. 65.


                                            CHAP. XVIII. 12.                                   289

 

Surely this repetition, like our Lord's often-repeated parallel,* was in-

tended to deepen our sense of their importance. It is hard to persuade

a man that he is proud. Every one protests against this sin. Yet who

does not cherish the viper in his own bosom?  Man so little under-

stands, that dependence upon his God constitutes the creature's happi-

ness, and that the principle of independence is madness, and its end

—destruction. (Gen. iii. 5, 6.) The haughty walk on the brink of a

fearful precipice; only a miracle preserves them from instant ruin. The

security of the child of God is, when he lies prostrate in the dust. If he

soar high, the danger is imminent, though he be on the verge of

heaven. (2 Cor. xii. 1-7.)

            The danger to a young Christian lies in an over-forward profession.

The glow of the first love, the awakened sensibility to the condition of

his perishing fellow-sinners; ignorance of the subtle working of inbred

vanity, the mistaken zeal of injudicious friends—all tends to foster self-

pleasing. Oh! let him know, that before honour is humility. In the

low valley of Humiliation special manifestations are realized.l  Enlarged

gifts, and apparently extending usefulness, without growing more

deeply into the humility of Christ, will be the decline, not the advancing

of grace. That undoubtedly is the most humbled spirit, that has most of

the spirit of Christ. The rule of entry into his school--the first step of

admission to his kingdom is--"Learn of me, for I am meek and lowly

in heart." (Matt. xi. 29.)

            The spring of this humility is true self-knowledge. Whatever may

be seen of a man externally to his advantage, let him keep his eye

looking within; and the real sight of himself must lay him low. When

he compares his secret follies with his external decency—what appears

to his fellow-creatures with what he knows of himself--he can but cry

out—"Behold I am vile! I abhor myself!" (Job, xl.4.) The seat of

this precious grace is not in words, meltings, or tears, but in the heart.

No longer will he delude himself with a false conceit of what he has

not, or with a vain conceit of what he has. The recollection—"Who

maketh thee to differ?" (1 Cor. iv. 7) is ever present, to press him down

under the weight of infinite obligations. Its fruit is lowliness of mind,

meekness of temper, thankfulness in receiving reproof, forgetfulness of

injury, readiness to be lightly regarded. No true greatness can there

be without this deep-toned humility.  This is he "whom the King

delighteth to honour." "Blessed are the poor in spirit for theirs is the

kingdom of heaven. He raiseth up the poor out of the dust, that he

may set him with princes, even with the princes of his people." (Matt.

v. 3. Ps. cxiii. 7, 8.)

 

                 1 Job, x1ii. 5,6. Isa. vi. 5-7. Dan. ix. 20-23.

   * Matt. xxiii. 12. Luke, xiv. 11; xviii. 14. See Hoyt. Od. i. 34.


290        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

13. He that answereth a matter (returneth a word, marg.) before he

                  heareth it, it is folly and a shame unto him.

            Too often is this Proverb verified in common life. Men will scarcely

hear out what is unacceptable to them. They will break in upon a

speaker, before they have fully heard him, and therefore answer a matter,

which they have little weighed, and but imperfectly understood. The

eager disputant prides himself on his acute judgment. He interrupts his

opponent, and confutes arguments, or contradicts statements, before he

has fairly heard them.*  Job's friends seem to have erred here.1 Elihu,

on the other hand, considerately restrained himself, till he had thoroughly

heard the matter.2 Job himself prudently "searched out the cause that

he knew not."3 This impatient spirit tells (little for candour or hu-

mility, and only stamps a man's character with folly and shame. It is

fraught with injustice in the court of law. (Jahn, vii. 45-52.) Here at

least the judge must carefully hear and weigh both sides for a satisfac-

tory verdict. The wise man thoroughly heard his difficult case, before

he gave judgment.4 Job was scrupulously exact in thus "contending

with his servant."5  "The rich man, when his steward was accused to

him, that he had wasted his goods," did not turn him away upon the

mere report, but he examined his account.6 On the other hand,

Potiphar, from the want of this upright considerateness, was guilty of

the most flagrant wrong? The Eastern autocrats seldom cared to sift

accusations. Even "the man after God's heart" grievously sinned in

this matter. But their hasty decisions brought shame upon them,

being either covered over, or virtually retracted s our Lord's matter

was answered, before it was heard.9 The Apostle met with similar

treatment,10 though at other times he found a more impartial judg-

ment.11

            This folly was directly forbidden by God's law.12 It was no less

contrary to his own procedure. He examined Adam, before he pro-

nounced judgment.13 He came down to see Babel and Sodom, previous

to their destruction, for the more clear demonstration of his justice.14

While on earth, patient investigation marked its decisions.15  "All his

ways are judgment; a God of truth, and without iniquity, just and

right is he."16

 

1 Job, xx. 1-3; xxi. 1-6.               2 Ib. xxxii. 4, 10, 11.       3 Ib. xxix. 16.

4 1 Kings, iii. 16-28. Comp. chap. xxv. 2.             5 Job, xxxi 13.

6 Luke, xvi. 1, 2.                                                            7 Gen. xxxix. 17-20.

8 Esth. iii. 8-11; viii. 5-13. Dan. vi. 9, 14, 24. 2 Sam. xvi. 1-4; xix. 26-30.

9 Luke, xxii. 66-71.                    10 Acts, xxii. 21, 22; xxiii. 2.

11 Ib. xxiii. 30-35; xxiv. 1-22; xxv. 1-5, 24-27; xxvi. 30-32.

12 Deut. xiii. 12-14; John, vii. 24.    13 Gen. iii. 9-19.          14 Ib. xi. 5; xviii. 20, 21

15 Matt. xxii. 15-33, with Isa. xi. 3.                      16 Deut. xxxii. 4. Comp. 1 Sam. ii. 3.

   * See the wise rules, Ecclus. xi. 7, 8.


                                         CHAP. XVIII. 14.                                    291

 

14. The spirit of a man will sustain his infirmity: but a wounded spirit

                                            who can bear?

            Man is born in a world of trouble, with considerable power of

endurance. Natural courage and vivacity of spirit's will bear us up

even under the pressure of ponderous evils, poverty, pain, sickness,

want. Instances of heathen fortitude abound in the records of history.*  

Christian principle strengthens the natural strengths.  David, in the

most fearful extremity, "encouraged himself in the Lord his God."

(1 Sam. xxx. 6.) Job could bless God under accumulated external

trials. (Job, i. 21.) The Apostle "took pleasure in infirmities." (2 Cor.

xii. 10.) The martyrs "were more than conquerors" under the most

cruel tortures. (Rom. viii. 37.) Outward troubles are tolerable, yea—

more than tolerable, if there be peace within. The spirit of a man may

sustain his infirmity. But if the spirit be wounded—if the prop itself be

broken—all sinks. ‘If the strength that is in me be weakness, how

great is that weakness.'  The wound of the spirit is so much the

more piercing, as the spirit itself is more vital than the body. The

grief gains the victory, and becomes intolerable.

            The most powerful minds are easily vulnerable. Even our great

Newton, ‘endowed with an intellectual strength, which had unbarred

the strongholds of the universe,' and distinguished also by ‘unbroken

equanimity,' in middle life was a prey to mental dejetions, that, as he

informs us, shook his 'former consistency.'‡  Boyle describes his

wounded spirit, as so overpowering for many months, that, ‘although

his looks did little betray his thoughts, nothing but the forbiddenness

of self-dispatch hindered his committing it.'§  So long as the evil is

without us, it is tolerable. Natural courage can bear up. But a wounded

spirit who can bear.

            In the spiritual system—the pressure is yet more sinking. When

he who made the spirit wounds, or permits Satan to wound, we might

challenge the whole creation—Who can bear it?  The suffering of the

soul is the soul of suffering. Spiritual wounds, like the balm that heals

them, can never be known, till they are felt. It is sometimes, as if the

arrows of the Almighty were dipped in the lake of fire, and shot flaming

into the very midst of the soul, more sensitive than the apple of the

eye. (Job, vi. 4.) The best joys of earth can never soothe the

envenomed sting. Mirth is madness and vexation. (Eccles. ii. 2.)

            There is a hell for the wicked on this side eternity. Man becomes

a burden to himself. Cain's "punishment was greater than he could

bear." (Gen. iv. 13.) Saul was given up to the blackness of despair

 

               * See Virgil's fine picture of AEneas.—AEn. i. 208, 209.

  Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on Heb. xii. 3. Comp. chap. xv. 13; xvii. 22.

                 ‡ Sir D. BREWSTER'S Life, pp. 224, 232-235.

            § JONES's Christian Biography—Article, Boyle.''


292          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF'' PROVERBS.

 

(1 Sam. xxviii. 15.) Zimri in rebellious madness threw himself into

the flames. (1 Kings, xvi. 18.) Pashur was made a terror to himself.

(Jer. xx. 4.) Ahithophel and Judas "chase strangling rather than

life." (2 Sam. xvii. 23. Matt. xxvii. 5.) Thus are the torments of

eternity antedated. One hell is kindled within, before entering into

the other. Such is the foretaste of hell—only a few drops of wrath--

for a few moments. What will be the reality--the substance—for

eternity!

            Observe the poignancy of the wounded spirit in the children of God.

Job, delivered "for a small moment" into the enemy's power, "cursed

the day of his birth." (Job, iii. 1.) David "roared for the disquietness

of his heart." "The arrows of the Almighty stuck in him, and his hand

pressed him sore." (Ps. xxxviii. 1-8.) The martyrs* in a moment of

temporary apostasy, could not endure the anguish of the wounded spirit

and chose the flames as the less bitter alternative. Such is the sharp-

ness of the Lord's sword, and the weight of his hand, that every stroke

is deadly. Conscience is the seat of guilt, and its vivid power turns,

—so to speak—"the sun into darkness, and the moon into blood"

(Joel, ii. 31)—the precious promises of free forgiveness into arguments

of hopeless despondency. Many a penitent is thus held back awhile

from the full apprehension of Divine acceptance, and from the settled

enjoyment of the peace of the gospel. And but for the gracious restraint

of the Lord's power and love, hardened despair would be the successful

advantage of Satan's devices." (2. Car. ii. 11.)

            But let us gaze at the meek and glorious sufferer in Gethsemane.

Look at the wounded spirit there--the fainting humanity of the Son of

God—"his strong crying and tears," his prostrating sorrow, his "ex-

ceeding great and bitter cry," under the darkness of desertion. (Matt.

xxvi. 38.) Human nature, even when exalted to a personal union with

the divine, is human nature still; forced to confess its native weakness

in the conflict with Almighty wrath. If all the support of the indwell-

ing Godhead was demanded for this passion of unknown weight and

infinite intensity; with trembling astonishment we cry--A wounded

spirit who can bear?  Irresistible. is the inference--"If they do these

things in the green tree, what shall be done it the dry?" (Luke, xxiii.

31.) The flame, that could but scorch the one, must consume the other

to the uttermost.

            Yet is not this wounded spirit the Christians first seal of mercy; the

preparation for all future and eternal mercy? (Acts, ii. 37.)  Bitter

indeed is the anguish, when the mass of sin is raised from the grave of

oblivion, and "set in order before our eyes." (Ps. L. 21.) But is not

this the sight, that makes Jesus and his fret salvation inexpressibly

precious? (Acts, xvi. 29-33.) And does not this spirit place us within

 

     * Bainham —Bilney— Crammer. See FOXE's Records.


                                    CHAP. XVIII. 15.                                     293

 

the sphere of his healing commission? (Isa. lxi. 1, 2.) We ask now—

not, who can bear, but who can heal? Well did Luther say (and there

is no better judge on such matters), ‘It is as easy to make a world, as

to ease a troubled conscience.'  Both are creation-work, requiring the

Almightiness of God. (Gen i. 1. Isa. lvii. 19.) To him that "wounded

must we return for healing." (Hos. vi. 1.) His remedy is the sight of

himself wounded for us. (Isa. liii. 5.) And that sight--so healing—

so reviving—how does it quicken the soul to a cordial and animated

faith, issuing in the song of everlasting praise!*

15. The heart of the prudent getteth knowledge; and the ear of the wise

                                       seeketh knowledge.

            Knowledge is gathering its rays on every side. But all that is

intrinsically valuable centres in Divine knowledge. ‘All arts'—as

Bishop Hall teaches—'are Maids to Divinity. Therefore they both

vail to her, and do her service.'†  Indeed it is of the first moment that

she should go before, to imbue and impregnate the mass. For while

we readily admit the importance of intellectual knowledge; the grand

object is the salvation of the soul. And all knowledge that is not

grounded upon this primary conviction, or that does not directly or

indirectly subserve this great end, is worse than valueless. It is power

for evil. It is a weapon of mighty influence, that will ultimately turn

against the man's own self. Never let us forget, that unsanctified

knowledge is still, what it was at the beginning, gathering death, not

life, and that, if "the tree seem to be good for food, pleasant to the

eyes, and a tree to be desired to make one wise" (Gen. iii. 6), it is only

 

* In these days of deteriorated Church doctrine, when other remedies than that of the

gospel are applied to the wounded spirit, it is worth putting upon record the mode of

healing in the British Church, so far back as the time of the Conquest, which it will be

seen, was not the baptism of tears, auricular confession, penance, or man's working, but

the simple view of the great sacrifice, as the one object of faith. In the form of a prayer

for the Visitation of the Sick in the time of Anselm (Abp. of Canterbury, A.D. 1080),—the

 priest asked the sick person, 'Dost thou believe to come to glory, not by thine own merits,

but by the virtue and merit of the passion of the Lord Jesus Christ? Dost thou believe

that our Lord Jesus Christ did die for our salvation, and that none can be saved by his on

merits, or by any other means than by the merits of his passion?'  On the sick person

answering—'All this I believe'— the priest is directed to give him they following instruc-

tion and comfort, as a true physician of souls—'Give thou therefore'-- saith he to the sick

--'as long as thy soul remaineth in this place, thy whole confidence in his death only.

Have confidence in no other thing. Commit thyself wholly to this death, with this alone

comfort thyself. If he say—'Thou deservest hell'—say—'I put the death of our Lord

Jesus Christ betwixt me and this judgment, and no otherwise do I contend with thee.'

And if he say to thee—'Thou art a sinner'—say—'Lord, I put the death of our Lord

Jesus Christ between thee and my sins.' If he say to thee—'Thou halt deserved damna-

tion'—say—'Lord, I set the death of our Lord Jesus Christ between', thee and my bad

merits; and I offer his merits instead of my merits.' If he say—he is angry with thee, say—'Lord, I

interpose the death of our Lord Jesus Christ between me and thine anger.'—This is indeed the

sovereign specific for a case aggravated by the application of any other remedy of man's devising.

Works, viii. 107.


294              EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the enticement to the unwary, flattering them, that they "shall be as

gods," that, "being lifted up with pride, they may fall into the con-

demnation of the devil." (lb. verse 5. 1 Tim. iii. 6.)

            And yet in the sphere of Revelation the value of knowledge is

estimated by its character. When it is Speculative, not experimental;

general, without practical influence; it is mere listening to a sound.

It is not the sight, like that of the brazen serpent, that brings life from

the dead, with its blessed accompaniment of transformation into the

likeness of Christ. Lamentable is it to think of the mass of triflers in

this heavenly knowledge; hearing without retaining; retaining without

intelligence, or without personal application. So often "is the price

in the hands of a fool, who bath no heart for it." (Chap. xvii. 16.)

            But here is the prudent. He has pondered, and formed a just esti-

mate of the blessing. His heart has fastened upon it (Chap. xv. 14),

and, as the means are free, and success sure,1 he has gotten it. As the

proof of his possession, he seeks for more. For who that has a treasure,

will be satisfied with his store; content with a lesser measure, while a

larger is within his reach? His ear is now (wakened to seek the ministry

of the word, and the conversation of experienced Christians. (Chap. i. 5;

ix. 9.) Every avenue of instruction is diligently improved.

            A word to the young—Think how much important knowledge is to

be gotten. Be up early in its pursuit. Let it have your most, your

first, your best, time. Begin before your minds are corrupted with

false principles; before you have learned) too much, that must be

unlearned as disciples of Christ. Enquire what is the tone of your

prayers? Is it the concentration of the soil, filled with one desire, and

carrying it, where it will be accepted and satisfied? The only saving

knowledge cometh down from heaven, and is fetched thence upon our

knees. What—again—is the pulse of 'your exertions? Does it

chew the heart to be delighting in the object? Or is it only a start

for a moment, and then a sinking back to the slumber of the sluggard ?

Knowledge from heaven leads thitherward. Clearer knowledge sweeps

away many clouds. A better sight of your work will make it more

easy. With a more intelligent knowledge of the road, you will walk

more pleasantly. You will not only guide yourselves, but be "able

to admonish one another." (Rom. xv. 14.)   “Grow in knowledge.”

(2 Pet. iii. 18.) Follow your convictions. Let nothing divert you.

In particular--be considerate and prudent it your application of know-

ledge. Remember its valuable use to regul to the judgment. "Walk

wisely "before God" in a perfect way." (Ps. cix 2.)  Let "your love

abound more and more in knowledge, and in all judgment." (Philip.

i. 9.) Hasten onwards then. Happiness and usefulness, light and

glory, are before you; and while, sitting at Your Master's feet, at every

 

            1 Chap. ii. 8-6. Hos. vi. 3. Jam. i. 5.


                                      CHAP. XVIII. 16, 17.                          295

 

step you will enter more fully into the spirit of the confession of

Ignatius---‘I am now beginning to be a disciple.'*

 

16. A man's gift maketh room for him, and bringeth him before great

                                                men.

            We have before spoken of the corrupting influence of gifts.l  But

we may justly apply this proverb to their legitimate use. Eliezer's

gifts made room for him in Rebekah's family.2 Jacob's gifts made room

for him in his brother's heart.3 Nor was it inconsistent with his inte-

grity, by sending his present to the governor of Egypt, to bring his sons

with acceptance before the great man.4  Ehud's gifts made room for his

errand.5 Abigail's for the preservation of her house.6 Often indeed

were they presented simply as a tribute of respect;7 as now, in some

parts of the East, without them an inferior would sarcely have any

claim upon his superior for favour or protection.--The Minister of the

Gospel recognises their value, making room for him, perhaps also for his

message. Sympathy gives weight to his instruction, when, after the

example of his Divine Master, he combines kindness to the body with

love for the soul. Great wisdom and discrimination are however

obviously required to prevent the serious evil of air well-intentioned

charity. A wise consideration may also make room for us with great

men for the advancement of the Christian cause. But in this most deli-

cate exercise, let our own principles be fully acknowledged; else even

in the service of God, we shall be "carnal, and walk as men" (1 Cor.

iii. 3); not as the dignified servants of a heavenly Master.

            Blessed be God! We want no gifts to bring us before him. Our

welcome is free; our door of access ever open; our treasure of grace in

his unchanging favour unsearchable.

 

17. He that is first in his own cause seemeth just; but his neighbour cometh

                                        and searcheth him.

            We have lately had a rule against judging others. (Verse 13.)

Here we are warned against justifying ourselves. Self-flattery is our

cherished nature; highly valuing our fancied excellences; very blind

to our real imperfections. So ready are we to place our own cause in a

strong light ; and sometimes, almost unconsciously, to cast a shade

over, or even omit, what might seem to balance on the opposite side.

It is so difficult to state facts and circumstances with perfect accuracy,

where our own name, or credit is concerned. Hence, our cause, coming

first, seemeth just. But, according to the proverb, ‘the first tale is good,

 

1 Chap. xvii. 8, 23. Comp. xix. 6.            2 Gen. xxiv. 30-33.         3 Ibid. xxxiii. 1-11.

4 Gen. xliii. 11.                                       5 Judg. iii. 17, 18.           6 1 Sam. xxv. 18-27.

                                                            7 Ib. ix. 7.

* Nu?n ga>r a]rxh>n e]xw tou? maqhteuesqai>.      See PAXTON'S Illustrations, ii. 29.


296             EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

till the second is heard.' Our neighbour, acquainted with the real case,

cometh and searcheth us, exposes our fallacy, and puts us to shame.

Often has the tale of wrongs from a hard-hearted overseer, landlord, or

creditor, roused our indignation, and perhaps provoked our remon-

strance. But the searching process of the story on the other side has

shewn us the wrongness of a hasty, one-sided judgment. Saul made

himself appear just in his own cause. The necessity of the case seemed

to warrant the deviation from the command. But Samuel searched him,

and laid open his rebellion. (1 Sam. xv. 17-03.) Ziba's cause seemed

just in David's eyes, until Mephibosheth's explanation searched him to

his confusion.*  Job's incautious self-defence was laid open by Elihu's

probing application. (Job, xxxiii. 8-12.) An eloquent advocate may

easily make a bad cause coming first seem just. But the plaintiff is

always right, till the defendant's case has been opened. Yet the true

rule of justice would be, to judge neither to be right, till both sides

have been heard. Let the whole evidence be sifted; and often the

plausible cover is swept away by a more searching investigation. (Acts,

xxiv. 5, 12.) Judges are bound to "consider, take advice, and speak,"

(Judg. xix. 30); carefully guarding against prejudging the cause, till

the whole has been fully before them; else he that is last in the cause

comes with disadvantage, though it may be to cause of right. In our

own cause, always be alive to conviction. Watch against a self-justi-

fying spirit. Cultivate the spirit of self-distrust. Balance our enemy's

statement against our own prejudices. Judge as under the eye of God,

and with the sincere anxious prayer to lay ourselves open to his

searching disclosure of hidden evil. Deceit ill any form never answers

its end. " A conscience void of offence both towards God and man"

must be our great exercise. (Acts, xxiv. 16.)

 

18. The lot causeth contentions to cease, and parteth between the mighty.

            The general use of the lot has been before explained. (Chap. xvi.

33.) It is here adverted to, as an ordinance of peaceful settlement.

Whether from the evenness of the balance, or from want of confidence

in the judgment, a legal appeal might be of doubtful authority. Con-

tending parties therefore agree to abide by the decision of the lot. Im-

portant matters of order under the Divine Theocracy were thus deter-

mined.1 How many contentions would there have been between the

mighty, in settling the respective boundaries of the tribes, had not this

means been adopted to make them cease!2  When Saul was thus chosen

to the Kingdom,3 and Matthias "numbered among the Apostles,"4 the

 

            1 I Chron. vi. 63; xxiv. 31. Neh. xi. 1.     2 Num. xxxiii. 54.

            3 1 Sam. x. 20-24.                                 4 Acts, i. 26.

  * 2 Sam. xvi. 1-4; xix. 26. Comp. chap. xxviii. 11. She Bishop SANDERSON's Sermons

on Job, xxix. 14-17. Prov. xxiv. 10-12.


                                         CHAP. XVIII. 19.                                    297

 

election was acquiesced in, as the voice of God. There seems therefore

no scriptural prohibition to the use of this ordinance; provided it be

exercised in a reverential dependence upon God,l and not profaned for

common purposes or worldly ends.

            At the same time, as we have before observed, the word of God

appears to be, more fully recognized as the arbiter of the Divine will,

All contentions cease in a simple, childlike, unreserved readiness to be

guided by this "more sure rule." The extent of forgiveness is here

clearly defined (Matt. xviii. 21, 22), and the principle and motive for

its exercise effectively supplied. (Col. iii. 13.) Perhaps it is more easy

to abide by the decision of the lot than of the word. The last requires

more self-denial, humility and patience, and therefore is more prac-

tically useful.

 

19. A brother offended is harder to be won than a strong city: and their

                                contentions are like the bars of a castle.

            Adverting to the ceasing of contentions, how affecting is this case of

special difficulty!  A brother—not an enemy—is harder to be won than

a strong city; as if the nearer the relation, the wider the breach.*  The

thread, once snapped, is not easily joined.  ‘What a view does it give

us of our corruption, that the natural love implanted in us should dege-

nerate into Satanic hatred!' Such was the contention of Cain with

Abel; of Joseph's brethren with himself;2 of Absalom and Amnon;3

the civil wars between Benjamin and his brethren,4 in later times

between Judah and Israel;5 in our own country, the long-continued

and ruinous contentions between the Houses of York and Lancaster.

Cities in olden times were strongly fortified with bars of iron against a

siege. (See Isa. xlv. 2.) What a long siege did Esau's' strong city stand,

before it was won by the power of love, and the bars of, his castle opened

their avenues for conciliation!‡

            Nowhere is concord so important as in the Church. Never can she

prosper, except she maintain the form of Jerusalem--"a city compact

together." (Ps. cxxii. 3.) Begotten as we are by the same word, living

on the same food, animated by the same life, ought we not, with all our

lesser differences, to hold "the unity of the Spirit?"§ If ties so close

 

1 Acts, i. 24, 25.             2 Ib. xxxvii. 3-5, 18-27.   3 2 Sam. xiii. 22.

4 Judges, xx.                              5 2 Chron. xiii. 16, 17.

            * ‘A cerrima firma proximorum odia sunt.'— TACITUS.             Geier in loco.

   Gen. xxvii. 41-45; xxxiii. 5-11. The rooted enmity of the nation seems to render

doubtful the cordiality of the reconciliation. See Num. xx. 14-21. zek. xxxv. 5. Obad. 10-14.

   § Two reasons made a godly and learned man (Strigelius) long) to leave the world.

‘1. That I might enjoy the sweet sight of the Son of God and the Church of God. 2. That

I may be delivered from the cruel and implacable hatred of Theologians.' Melchior Adam

in vita. Chrysostom gives this rule—'Have but one enemy—the devil. With him never

be reconciled; with thy brother never fall out.'


298          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

cannot unite us; at least let our common welfare, and common danger,

quench this unholy fire; just as the fear o the enemy without, might

allay mutual misunderstanding within. Bu how painfully did the con-

tentions between Luther and Calvin (not to mention others of more

recent date in the Church) shew the fearful difficulty of winning a

brother offended!

            Yet the extreme difficulty does not diminish the obligation. Let it

not therefore paralyze the effort. Nothing can be more plain and deci-

sive than the Gospel rule. Yet so repugnant is it to flesh and blood, to

all nature's pride, feelings, and high notions, that we cry with the dis-

ciples of old —"Lord, increase our faith." (Luke, xvii. 5.) Call in this

only principle, that can constrain the heart and the Christian victory

is ensured. Grace reigns triumphant.

 

20. A man's belly shall be satisfied with the fruit of his mouth: and

            with the increase of his lips shall he be filled. 21. Death and life are

            in the power of the tongue: and they tha love it shall eat the fruit

            thereof.

            Who would not be careful, what seed he puts into a fruitful field

when he knows that his harvest will be according to his seed? (Gal. vi.

7, 8.) Here is not a field, but "a world" (Jam. iii. 6), to be cultivated

so that we may be satisfied with the fruit, and filled with the increase.

What this fruit and increase may be, is a fearful alternative. The fruit

of our lips—the power of our tongue—will be, poisonous or wholesome,

death or life.1  Evil words tend to death,2 goad words to life3—to the

comfort of the speaker, as well as to the blessing of the hearer. There

is no mean; nothing but extremes. It is either the worst of evils, or

the best of blessings.

            This is clearly manifested in public responsibilities. The testimony

of witnesses, and the legal decision of the judge, fearfully spew, that

death or life is in the power of the tongue. Take even a more important

field of illustration — the Ministry of the gospel--the doctrine of false

and true teachers. Suppose the sinner's conscience to be awakened.

Eagerly he longs for an answer to that immensely momentous question

--"What must I do to be saved?" (Acts, xvi. 30.) Let him be blinded

to his own state; soothed with false remedies, or the true remedy con-

cealed or obscured. Or let him be directed to the cross as the one

object, compared with which all other objects are vanity and delusion

— do not we see, that, according to the use of the tongue, death and life

is in the power of it?  Nay—in another--perhaps a more solemn,

apprehension of the great work, when all is simply and fully exhibited;

when man's helplessness and Divine sufficiency — sin and the Saviour

 

                           1 Verse 7. Ps. L. 20, 21. Matt. v. 22; xii. 36. Jude, 14, 15.

2 Chap. xiii. 2. Comp. Ecclus. xxviii. 18.              3 Chap. xii 14; xiii. 2. Ps. xxxiv. 12, 13.


                                     CHAP. XVIII. 21, 22.                            299

 

—the ruin and the restoration — are clearly displayed; according as

the message is rejected or welcomed, it becomes “a savour of death

unto death, or of life unto life." (2 Cor. ii.16.) Thus again, death or life

is in the power of the tongue.

            In the common intercourse of life, also is the tongue "the fountain

both of bitter waters and sweet;" as powerful to destroy as to edify;

the poison, or antidote, as it may be used.  ‘A man by using his tongue

aright, in talking, exhorting, witnessing, counselling, may save; and,

by abusing it in any of these ways, or any other, may destroy.'*  Either

way he will be filled with the fruit. The curse of destroying others will

return upon himself. In administering a blessing to his neighbour, his

own soul will be fed. (Chap. xi. 25.) They that love it shall eat the fruit

of it. It is, however, the habitual, not the occasional, use of this little

member, that determines its fruit. A saint may "speak unadvisedly"--

a sinner acceptably —"with his lips." Neither would thus determine

his true character.

            Born as we are for eternity, no utterance of our tongue can be called

trifling. A word, though light as air, scarcely market, and soon for-

gotten, may rise up as a witness at the throne of judgment for death or

for life eternal. (Matt. xii. 37.) When I think of this awful power, shall

I not—as Chrysostom warns—‘guard this little member more than the

pupil of the eye?' Are not the sins of the tongue an overwhelming

manifestation of the long-suffering of God?  'Woe is me'— exclaimed

a man of God--' for I am a man of unclean lips.'l  Shall I not cry to

my God, that he would restrain my tongue;2 yea, cry more earnestly,

that he would consecrate it3 as a sacred gift, stamped with his image,

that it might be my glory, not my shame; my organ of praise, my

exercise of joy?4 In the inner man the heart is the main thing to be

kept (Chap. iv. 23); in the outer man the tongue. (Clap. xxi. 23.)  0

my God! take them both into thine own keeping, under thine own dis-

cipline, as instruments for thy service and glory.

 

22. Whoso findeth a wife findeth a good thing,‡ and obtaiheth favour of the

                                                      Lord.

            This is obviously to be taken with limitation.  Manoah found a

good thing in his wife. (Judg. xiii. 23.) So did not Job. (Job, ii. 9, 10.)

           

                1 Isa. vi. 5.                    2 Ps. cxli. 3.

            3 Ib. li. 15.                     4 Ib. 1vii. 7, 8.

   * Muffet in loco.       Homily 62 on Matt.

  † Dr. Keunicott elaborately insists upon supplying the distinctive limitation from the

reading of the LXX Vulgate, and some old Chaldee paraphrase. (Second Dissertation

on the Hebrew Text, pp. 189—192.) But, the general term, frequently used by the wise man

for the obvious limitation, sufficiently explains his meaning, Chap. xv. 10; xvi. 10;

xxii. 1; xxix. 4. Eccles. vii. 28. The LXX adds—'He that casteth out a wife, casteth out

good things: but he that retaineth a strange woman is foolish and ungodly.'


300        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Some find "a crown to their head;" others, "rottenness to their bones."

(Chap. xii. 4.) That which alone deserves the name is indeed a good

thing. If in a state of innocence "it was not good for a man to be

alone" (Gen. ii. 18); much more in a world of care and trouble "two

are better than one" for mutual support, helpfulness, and sympathy.*

The good thing implies godliness, and fitness. Godliness is found, when

the man marries "only in the Lord" (1 Cor. vii. 39), and only one, who

is the Lord's. The "unequal yoke with unbelievers" (2 Cor. vi. 14)--

the union for life of a child of God with a child of Satan, is a most

awful anomaly.  'I wish'--said pious Bishop Hall, that Manoah

could speak so loud, that all our Israelites might hear him—"Is there

never a woman among the daughters of thy brethren, or among all

God's people, that thou goest to take a wife of the uncircumcised Philis-

tines?" If religion be any other than a cipher, how dare we not regard

it in our most important choice? Is she a fair Philistine? Why is not

the deformity of the soul more powerful to dissuade us, than the beauty

of the face to allure us?'

            There may however be godliness on both sides, without that mutual

fitness which makes the woman "a helpmeet for the man." The good

thing is, when he honours her, not as the wisest for the holiest of women,

but as the person, whom God saw to be the best and fittest for himself

in the whole world, a comfort for life, a help for heaven.‡ . Thus she

becomes the one object of his undivided heart. Mutual faith is plighted

in the Lord. Such a communion spiritualizes his affections, and

elevates him from earth to heaven.

            But how is this good thing found? Isaac found it, where every

Christian looks for his blessing, as an answer to prayer. (Gen. xxiv.) A

man's choice for his own indulgence will bring a curse upon himself and

his family. (2 Chron. xviii. 1, 2; xxi. 1-6.)  "Choose thou mine inherit-

ance for me" (Ps. xlvii. 4)— is the cry and confidence of the child of God.

Then truly will he obtain the gift, not as the result of fortune, or as the

proof of his own good discernment; but, as Adam received his wife,

"from the Lord" (Chap, xix. 14), a token of his special favour.

 

                         * Eccles. iv. 9, 10. See the Marriage Service.

   Contemplations, x. 3. Bp. Beveridge's Resolution is well worth recording—‘I shall

always endeavour to make choice of such a woman for spouse, who hath first made

choice of Christ as a spouse for herself; that none may be made one flesh with me, who is

not made one spirit with Christ my Saviour. For I look upon/ the image of Christ as the

best mark of beauty I can behold in her, and the grace of God as the best portion I can

receive with her. These are excellences, which, though not, visible to our carnal eybs, are

nevertheless agreeable to a spiritual heart; and such as all wise and good men cannot

choose but be enamoured with. For my own part, they seem to me such necessary qualifi-

cations, that my heart trembles at the thoughts of ever having a wife without them.'

Resol. ii.

   ‡ Luke, i. 6. See the beautiful picture. Chap. xxxi. 10-31. Comp. also Ecclus. xxvi.

1-3, 13-16; xxxvi. 24.  

 

 

                                      CHAP. XVIII. 23, 24.                                     301

 

23. The poor useth entreaties: but the rich answereth roughly.*

 

It is natural to the poor, sensible of their dependence, to use entreaties.

And this humiliation may be the discipline for that poverty of spirit,

which the Lord sealed with his first blessing. (Matt. v. 3.) Yet shame

is it to the rich, that he should often answer these entreaties roughly. In-

stead of the kindly feelings flowing out, he seems to be bound against

them with iron chains. He hears with indifference the tale of woe;

and having never himself tasted the bitter bread, he has no heart of

sympathy and helpfulness. The well-bred man of the world, who is all

courtesy and refinement in his own circle, to those under his feet is often

insufferably rude and unfeeling. His good breeding indeed is often

only the polish of selfishness. The proud worm knows so little the

true use of his power, that the exercise of it only transforms him into a

tyrant. Instead of scattering his blessings around, he only makes him-

self feared and hated by his misused responsibility. (1 Sam. xxv. 17.)

Would he but study the character of his Divine Master, he would see

the exercise of power enlivened with true greatness. Was he not as

considerate to blind Bartimeus, as to the nobleman of Capernaum?

(Mark, x. 49. John, v. 48.) All ranks alike shared in his tenderest

sympathy.

And yet, as the rich in their conscious superiority may be over-

bearing, so the poor, in using their entreaties, may shew a servile,

crouching spirit (1 Sam. 11. 36), shrinking from that bold integrity of

character, which gives dignity alike to the lowest as to the highest of

men. To all of us our Providential circumstances bring their besetting

temptations. Close walking with God is our only safeguard.

But surely the rich, in his rough answering of the poor, would do well

to consider, how much more dependent is he upon his God, than his

meanest brother is upon himself! And when he comes before his God,

must he not then wear the garb of poverty, though he be a king (Ps. xl.

17; lxxxvi. 1); using entreaties, not advancing claims? Yes--all of

us alike are poor before the throne of grace. All of us must use en-

treaties here. Yet when does our gracious Father answer his poor sup-

pliant child roughly; except as he wisely disciplines his faith, while his

heart is full of yearning parental love towards him? (Matt. xv. 26.

Comp. Gen. xlii. 6, 7.)

 

24. A man that hath friends must shew himself friendly: and there is a

friend that sticketh closer than a brother.

 

To be without a friend, marks a state of painful desolation. (Ps.

lxxxviii. 18.) On the other hand, a true friend is no common acquisi-

tion. (Chap. xvii. 17.) There are many pretensions, many professions,

 

 * This and the succeeding verse are omitted in LXX.

 

 

302        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

of friendship. But the jewel itself is as rare as it is precious. Yet what

is life without this cheering, enriching blessing? Kings have left

awhile their royalties for its enjoyment. (Ps. Iv. 14.)  To Alexander the

conquered world without his Hephæstion would have been a wilder-

ness.*  But if a man hath friends, and would keep them, he must shew

himself friendly. To throw them away by neglect, caprice, unreason-

able disgust, or needless offence, is to shew himself utterly unworthy of

the blessing. Observe Ruth and Naomi--each with warm reciprocity

of interest laying herself out for the other.l  David practically acknow-

ledged the kindness of his friends in distress.2  The Apostle dealt most

delicately with his friend's wounded sensibility,3 and manifested the

most considerate care for his companion's comforts.4  It is by such kind

offices that the bond is mutually cemented. A man having friends shews

himself friendly. Love begets love, and is accompanied with love.5

Not that this will shew itself in extravagant professions, or lavish

praise, gratifying to the weak, but revolting to an intelligent, mind.

The true expression will be in that unmistakable integrity, which at

once shews the man, and makes the Christian shine.

Thus we shall take care to base our friendship upon the true founda-

tion. Otherwise it may be snapped asunder by the veriest trifle, or it

may become idolatrous love, usurping God's place in the heart. San-

guine and affectionate dispositions are much exposed to sudden fancies

and mistaken impressions. But the charm is broken by the cold

return or empty professions of the misplaced love; and the illusion is

swept away in humbling disappointment. Wise men will refrain from

the choice of many bosom friends, or involving a multiplication of

duties, and too often of entangling difficulties.

The bond of real friendship is often closer than the natural tie.

“The friend is as one's own soul.” (Deut. xiii. 6.) Such was Jonathan

unto David--a friend that sticketh closer than a brother†--tender and

sympathizing, while his brother was fraught with unkind suspicion.‡

He dared the deadly displeasure of his father by open adherence, while

his wife shewed her love at the expense of his name.6 Hiram's cordial

kindness to Solomon, contrasts with his brother's unjust endeavour to

 

 1 Ruth. i, 16; ii. 11, 18, with iii. 1-14, 16; iv. 16. 2 1 Sam. xxx. 26-31.

 3 Philem. 8-20.                       4 Tit. iii. 13.                  5 Comp. Ecclus. xxii. 25.

 6 1 Sam. xviii. 20, 28; xix. 12-17, with xx. 24-33.

  * .   .   .   . Friendship's the wine of life.

  A friend is worth all hazards we can run.

  Poor is the friendless master of a world:

  A world in purchase for a friend is gain.--YOUNG.

† Bishop Coverdale's version is very beautiful--‘a friend that delighteth in love, doth a

man more friendship, and sticketh faster unto him than a brother.'

‡ 1 Sam. xvii. 28, with xviii. 3; xix. 2-4. 2 Sam. i. 26. It is interesting to observe the

reciprocity with one exception (2 Sam. xvi. 1-4) on David's part to the end of life, 2 Sam.

ix. 1; xxi. 7.

 

                                    CHAP. XVIII. 24.                                        303

 

keep him from the throne.1 Job's friends, notwithstanding their harsh

misconceptions, abode fast with the afflicted sufferer, when his wife

and family were “strange to him.”2  And do we not remember, that

when the brethren of Jesus shrunk from the near position to his cross,

there stood by the cross the disciple whom Jesus loved,” gladly receiv-

ing from his lips the sacred deposit of his bereaved mother? (John,

xix. 25-27.) Even natural minds of a high tone of feeling may exhibit

this strength of friendship. But its surest bond is that, which unites

the whole family of God. The identity of sanctified taste; sympathy of

experience; holy consecration for mutual helpfulness; above all--

union as Members of one body to one Head--hence flow magnetic

attraction, heavenly, Divine friendship.

But where shall we find the complete filling-up of this exquisite

picture, except in Him, who became our Brother, that he might cleave

to us closer than a brother in tenderness and help? (Heb. ii. 11, 14-18.)

Let his people bear witness, whether he be not the greatest, best, most

loving, most disinterested and faithful of friends. Truly he “loveth at

all times.” He is a friend to them that have no other friend; to those

who have been his bitterest enemies; a friend who abides, when all

others have passed away. Mark him as a present friend, known and

tried, able to enter into all that most deeply affects us; in temptation

opening, when needed, “a way of escape;”3 in affliction cheering with

the Divine Comforter;4 “in sickness making our bed;”5 in death

sustaining us by “his rod and staff;”6 in eternity “receiving us to

himself.”7 What brother sticketh so close as he, esteeming himself more

honoured, the more we lean upon him, “having no confidence in the

flesh?”

And then, looking on the objects of his love;8 its freeness;9 its

costliness;10 its perseverance notwithstanding all the discouragements

of our perverseness and folly;11 “loving us to the end,”* as parts and

members of himself--how can we duly honour this our faithful, tender,

unchanging, unchangeable friend? Are there none, who boast of their

faithfulness to the creature, who yet have no sympathy with this

Divine friendship, no reciprocal affection to this surpassing friend?

Will not our very sensibilities condemn our indifference? For what

stronger proof can there be of their depravity and disorder, than that

they should be flowing to the creature-objects, cold and dead to the

Divine Friend? Oh! let him be the first choice of youth, the tried and

chosen Friend of maturing age, the Friend for eternity! Cultivate a

 

1 1 Kings, v. with i. 5.                             2 Job, ii. 11-13, with xix. 13-17.

3 1 Cor. x. 13.                  4 John, xiv. 17, 18.                        5 Ps, xli 3.

6 Ps. xxiii. 4.                     7 John, xiv, 3; xvii. 24.                   8 Rom, v. 8.

9 John, vi. 37.                   10 Ib, xv, 13. 1 John, iii, 16.

  11 Isa. xlii. 4. Hos. xi. 7,8. Mal. Iii. 16.

* John, xiii. 1. See the beautiful Hymn in Olney Collection, B, i. 53.

 

304                       EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

closer acquaintance with him. Set the highest value upon his friend-

ship. Live a life of joyous confidence on his all-sufficiency and love.

Make him the constant subject of conversation. Avoid whatever is

displeasing to him. Be found in those places where he meeteth his

people. (Isa. lxiv. 5.) Long to be with him for ever. Thus testify

all around--“This is my beloved, and this is my friend.” (Cant. v. 16.)

Is it not because men have no eyes to see him, that they have no heart

to love him? Were but the eyes really opened, they would soon affect

the heart; and all would be for him in entire devotedness of service.

 

 

  CHAPTER XIX.

 

1. Better is the poor that walketh in his integrity, than he that is perverse in

his lips, and is a fool.*

 

POVERTY is never a disgrace, except when it is the fruit of ill-conduct.

But when adorned with godly integrity, it is most honourable. Better

is the poor man, than he whom riches lift up in his own eyes, and he is

given up to his perverseness and folly. (Chap. xxviii. 6.) Often man

puts under his feet those, whom God lays in his bosom. He honours

the perverse for their riches, and despises the poor for their poverty.

‘But what hath the rich, if he hath not God? And what

is a poor man, if he hath God?' Better be in a wilderness with

God, than in Canaan without him.† Was not Job on the dung-

hill, walking in his integrity, better than ungodly Ahab on the throne?

(Job, ii. 7, 8.) Was not Lazarus in his rags better than Dives with his

“fine linen and sumptuous fare?” (Luke, xvi. 19-21.) Calculate wisdom

by God's standard, who judges not by station, but by character. Esti-

mate things in the light of eternity. How soon will all accident dis-

tinctions pass away, and personal distinctions alone avail! Death will

strip the poor of his rags, and the rich of his purple, and bring them

both “naked to the earth, from whence they came.” (Job, i. 21. Eccles.

xii. 7.) Meanwhile let us hear our Lord's voice to his despised people

--“I know thy poverty; but thou art rich.” (Rev. ii. 9.) How glorious

the stamp upon the outcast professors walking in their integrity–“Of

whom the world was not worthy!” (Heb. xi. 37, 38.) For such is pre-

pared “the honour that cometh from God only”--his seal, his smiles,

and his everlasting crown.

 

  2. Also that the soul be without knowledge, it is not good; and he that

 hasteth with his feet sinneth.

 

Also--seems to trace the fool's perverse ways to their source. His

 

* This and the following verse are omitted in LXX.

† Bishop REYNOLDS on 1 Tim. vi. 17-19.

 

                                         CHAP. XIX. 2.                                       305

 

soul is without knowledge. Ignorance gives perpetuity to folly. Know-

ledge is valuable even to the mind. It expands and sharpens its

reasoning powers, and, when rightly directed, preserves from many

besetting temptations. ‘Be assured'--says a late eloquent Preacher

--‘it is not because the people know much, that they ever become the

willing subjects of any factious or unprincipled demagogue. It is just

because they know too little. It is just because ignorance is the field,

on which the quackery of a political impostor ever reaps its most

abundant harvest.'* Knowledge also opens much wholesome enjoy-

ment. The intelligent poor are preserved in their home-comforts from

the temptations of the ale-house. The most educated are raised above

the frivolities of dissipation. Thus both classes are restrained from the

sensualities of ungodliness.

But much more that the soul made for God, should be without know-

ledge, is not good. The blessing is not merely expansion of mind, or

restraint of evil, but light and life eternal. (John, xvii. 3.) Without it,

all is thick darkness--the darkness of death. Man has no directory for

his ways. He knows not “how to walk and to please God.” He knows

nothing of spiritual duties, heavenly affections, the life of faith, the

entire surrender of heart, or the living to the glory of God. Hence he

substitutes services of his own, carnal and unprofitable. He “walks in

darkness, and knows not whither he goeth.” (Ib. xii. 35.) He has no

remedy for his sins. Hence he devises penance, or at least repentance

or reformation. Not knowing the mystery of the gospel, he cannot

come to God by Christ, and wash in “the fountain opened,” and there-

fore can obtain no peace with God, or in his own conscience. (Rom. ix.

31, 32.) He has no support in his trouble, nothing better than vain

philosophy, or natural hardness. He knows not whence it comes, the

love of God in it, its true intent, its humbling, quickening, and sancti-

fying operation. He cannot “glory in tribulation” from a sense of its

beneficial effects (Rom. v. 3-5. Heb. xii. 11, with 5); and therefore he

either despises it, or hardens himself against it, or faints under it. He

has no strength for his duties--none but his own, which is perfect weak-

ness. He knows not how to be “strong in the Lord,” to be “strengthened

by the Spirit,” to use the Christian armour, to mortify sin, to resist

Satan, or to overcome the world. He might be endued with uncon-

querable strength, and be able to “do all things through Christ

strengthening him.” (Philip. iv. 13.) But he knows not Christ. He

has therefore no interest in him; and, “separate from him, he can do

nothing.” (John, xv. 5.) He has no hope in his end. All is fearful un-

certainty. He has no knowledge of the free grace of the gospel, no

reliance on its promises, no confidence in the Saviour, no title which he

can bring to God for acceptance, and no view of God's faithfulness.

 

  * CHALMERS' Commercial Discourses, p. 375.

 

306           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

And thus “fools die for want of wisdom.” (Chap. x. 21.) They “perish

for lack of knowledge.” (Hos. iv. 6.) “It is a people of no understand-

ing; therefore he that made them will not have mercy on them, and he

that formed them will shew them no favour.” (Isa. xxvii. 11.) The

terror of the great day will be, that “the Lord Jesus shall be revealed

from heaven with his mighty angels, in flaming fire, taking vengeance

on them that know not God.” (2 Thess. i. 7, 8.)

What then must we think of the thoughtless trifler, immersed in

pleasure, playing with trifles, and despising this inestimable knowledge?

What is he, but a man “without understanding,” justly compared to

“the beasts that perish?” (Ps. xlix. 20.) Is ignorance then the mother

of devotion? Is it not the worst of evils, the centre of all evil (Isa. i.

3, 4. Acts, iii. 17), the parent of irreligion, and the precursor of ruin?

(Luke, xix. 42.) Awful indeed are its aggravations--to be ignorant

in a time of knowledge, blind in a land of light, unenlightened in “the

valley of vision!”

But let us mark the evil of the want of soundly-disciplined know-

ledge in temporal matters. The uninstructed child or savage acts

rashly. The man of impulse is impatient to finish his work before

time, and therefore crowds into the day far more than belongs to it,

forgetting that ‘things are not done by the effort of the moment, but

by the preparation of past moments.'* Our wise moralist has well

remarked –‘He that is in a hurry proves, that the work in which he is

engaged is too much for him.'† Certainly this hasting with the feet

may be considered to be sin, inasmuch as it proceeds from a want of

simple trust in God, and submission to his orderly arrangements and

claims of regular duty.

The true method is to do “the thing of the day in the day.”

(1 Kings, viii. 59, marg.) This is all that God requires to be done.

The affair of one day at a time is as much as can be quietly committed

to God in the daily exercise of faith. This principle should be carried

into all important responsibilities. Bp. Burnet's account of Sir M. Hale

is most valuable in this view. ‘Festina lentè' was his beloved motto,

which he ordered to be en graven on the head of his staff. He was

often heard say, that he had observed many witty men run into great

errors, because they did not give themselves time to think; but, the

heat of imagination making some notions appear in good colours to

them, they, without staying till that cooled, were violently led by the

impulses it made upon them; whereas calm and slow men, who pass

for dull in common estimation, could search after truth, and find it,

with more deliberation, so with greater certainty.'‡

But far more serious is this evil in spiritual matters. ‘Where no

 

* CECIL'S Remains.                        †Dr. Johnson.

          ‡ Life of Sir M. Hale.

 

                                        CHAP. XIX. 3.                                               307

 

discretion is, there the soul is not well.'* The man therefore without

knowledge, instead of “pondering his path” (Chap. iv. 26), hasteth with

his feet, and sinneth. Haste, as opposed to sloth, is the energy of Divine

grace. (Ps. cxix. 60. Luke, xix. 6.)  Here, as opposed to consideration,

acting hastily in sin. This impatience is the genuine exercise of self-

will, not taking time to enquire; “not waiting for the counsel of the

Lord.” Godly Joshua offended here. (Josh. ix. 14, 15.) Saul's im-

patience cost him his kingdom. (1 Sam. xiii. 12.)  David's haste was

the occasion of gross injustice. (2 Sam. xvi. 3, 4.) The prophet, not

taking time to ponder the evidence contradicting his own message, was

without a right knowledge. He hastened with his feet, and sinned.

(1 Kings, xiii. 18, 19.)  Jehoshaphat's precipitancy asking counsel

after, instead of before, was sharply rebuked. (2 Chron. xviii. 1-4; xix.

2.) Rash experiments, the result of haste, often threaten serious evils

in the state. The same spirit rends the Church with schism. The

heady professor wanders from Church to Church, and from sect to sect,

without pondering. In common life how much sin has been the fruit

of a few rash words or hasty lines! A sudden impulse has taken the

place of considerate principles. Let us ever remember, that without

self-discipline there can be no Christian consistency or stability. In

a thousand cases haste may plunge our feet into sin (Chap. xxviii. 20,

22), if not into ruin. The best-intentioned purposes, unwarranted by

the will and word of God, are only blind impulses, to be checked, not

followed. The real peace of faith, is to stand or sit still, and see how

God will appear on our side, to make a way for us through many a

deep water of perplexity. (Exod. xiv. 13. Isa. xxx. 7.) “He that

believeth shall not make haste.” (Isa. xxviii. 16.)

 

3. The foolishness of man perverteth his way: and his heart fretteth

against the Lord.

 

Such was the foolishness of Adam! First he perverted his way; then

he charged upon God its bitter fruit. “God, making him upright,”

made him happy. Had he been ruled by his will, he would have

continued so. But, “seeking out his own inventions” (Eccles. vii. 29),

he made himself miserable. As the author of his own misery, it was

reasonable, that he should fret against himself. But such was his pride

and baseness, that his heart fretted against the Lord, as if he, not himself,

was responsible. (Gen. iii. 6-12.) Thus his first-born, when his own

sin had brought “punishment” on him, fretted, as if “it were greater

than he could bear.” (Ib. iv. 8-13.) This has been the foolishness of

Adam's children ever since. God has linked together moral and penal

evil, sin and sorrow. The fool rushes into the sin, and most unreason-

ably frets for the sorrow; as if he could “gather grapes from thorns, or

 

  *Bishop COVERDALE'S Translation.

 

308        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS

 

figs from thistles." (Matt. vii. 16.) He charges his crosses, not on his

own perverseness, but on the injustice of God. (Ezek. xviii. 25.) But

God is clear from all the blame (Jam. i. 13, 14): He had shewn the

better; man chooses the worse. He had warned by his word and by

conscience. Man, deaf to the warning, plunges into the misery; and,

while "eating the fruit of his own ways," his heart frets against the Lord.

‘It is hard to have passions, and to be punished for indulging them.  I

could not help it. Why did he not give me grace to avoid it?' (See

Jer. vii. 10.)  Such is the pride and blasphemy of an unhumbled spirit.

The malefactor blames the judge for his righteous sentence. (Isa. viii.

21, 22. Rev. xvi. 9-11, 21.)

            But let us look a little into this bold impeachment of God's right-

eousness.  ‘Why did he not give me grace?'  Is then God bound to

give his grace? Have we any claim upon God?  Is not God's grace

his own? (Matt. xx. 15. Rom. ix. 19-21.)  Is not the fool following his

own will, and therefore responsible for his doing?  Why cannot he

turn to God?  He will not listen or obey. The means are free before

him. No force of natural impossibility hinders. His stubbornness

alone is his impotency. He cannot, because he will not; and therefore,

if he perish, it is not in his weakness, but in his wilfulness. (Matt. xxiii.

37. John, v. 40.) The worst part of his wickedness is his wicked will.

It is not only that his nature is wicked, but that he is willing that it

should be so. Did he but feel his moral inability, would he but look

to him who is "eyes to the blind," "ears to the deaf," "feet to the

lame," his healing would be sure.

            This perverseness spews itself in every rising of corruption. The

Pharisee mocks God by his hypocritical service, and then frets, because

no good comes out of it. (Isa. lviii. 3. Mal. iii. 14.) The proud worm

cherishes a discontented humour with Providence. Either the desired

comfort is withheld, or the will has been crossed. If his tongue is

quiet, his heart frets. Had he been placed differently, he would have

succeeded better. God therefore has the blame of his failure. Whereas

it is obvious, that if he is not ready now to serve God, he needs a change

of heart, not a change of place. The disease is within, and therefore would

follow him through altered circumstances with the same result; leaving

him as far as ever from happiness. The constant struggle of the will

is to be anywhere, but where God has placed us for our best welfare.

            Humbling it is to see this foolishness in the Lord's people. Our

carelessness or waywardness provokes the rod; yet the heart fretteth

under the rebuke. (2 Sam. vi. 8.) While we shun what is positively

sinful, too often we allow occasions of sin. We are found in circum-

stances or society, which, as experience has taught us, hinder prayer,

damp the spiritual taste, and wound the conscience. If therefore we

allow this wilful indulgence, at least let us charge on ourselves, not on


                                      CHAP. XIX. 3.                                     309

 

God, the bitter consequence. Often also we quarrel with what we

cannot alter; thus doubling the burden, by adding guilt to our trouble.

If "a fool's contention" with his brother "calleth for strokes" (Chap.

xviii. 6), much more does the "murmurer and complainer" of God

(Jude, 16); "the man striving with his Maker" (Isa. xlv. 9); or rather

the child kicking against his Father's rod, instead of "humbling himself

under his mighty hand." (1 Pet. v. 6.)  Did he but know himself, could

he but trust his God, he would look, not at the rod, but at the hand that

holds it.1 Could the heart fret to see it in his father's hands? Should

he not kiss it, even while it smites him; peacefully, yea thankfully,

"accepting the punishment of his iniquity?" (Lev. xxvi. 41.)

            This turbulent insurrection against Divine Sovereignty brings its

own torment. It sets all the powers of the soul out of course. There

is no peace or tranquillity, but in complacency with the will of God,

being fully reconciled to his disposals and dispensations. While

"Ephraim was as a bullock unaccustomed to the yoke," it was only the

more fretting. After that he "was turned, and instructed," and "quieted

himself as a weaned child," he found ease. (Jer. xxxi. 18, 19.)

            Always, therefore, let us be ready with the cry—"Shew me where-

fore thou contendest with me. That which I see not, teach thou me.

If I have done iniquity, I will do so no more." (Job, x. 2; xxxiv. 32.)

Instead of "complaining for the punishment of our sins; let us search

and try our ways, and turn again unto the Lord." "I will bear the

indignation of the Lord, because I have sinned against him." (Mic. vii.

9.) The extent of the evil is little known, till we are brought under

the hands of God. It requires no less than his Almightiness to break

the stubborn will into ready obedience. "Thy will be done"--is easily

repeated, but hardly learned. If things are not "according to our

mind," too often is there a struggle to break loose from the

affliction; professing indeed to live by faith, yet repining at our

hard condition.

            So far as we regard our own happiness, our great desire should be,

‘that our own will may be annihilated, and the will of God placed in

its room.'*  The discipline, therefore, that schools the will into sub-

jection, brings with it nothing to excite one murmuring thought. So

much does it lay open to us of the secrets of God's heart towards us,

and of our hidden corruptions; that, both as coming from his hand,

and operating upon us, it is an invaluable blessing. Well satisfied are

we, that all that God does, will appear to be right and best when the

mystery is finished; that every leaf of his Providence will be expounded

with the full manifestation of his glory. It will then be seen that the

cross of disappointed wishes was the gracious means of saving us from

 

            1 1 Sam. iii. 18.2 Sam. xvi. 11. Ps. xxxix. 9.

                         * LEIGHTON on the Lord's Prayer.


310          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

ruining ourselves, and of exercising us for endurance,* and ultimately

for enjoyment. Joy and delight indeed will it be to look back upon

every step of "the right way, by which our Father has led us to the

city of habitation" (Ps. cvii. 7), and to mark, how needful was the

discipline at every point, how suited to every exigency; and what

abundant matter of praise does it furnish for that unwearied patience,

with which our loving Father "suffered our manners in the wilderness."

(Acts, xiii. 18.) Meanwhile let us study God more closely in all his

gracious dispensations.  ‘0 Lord, remove our ignorance, that we may

know thee; our idleness, that we may seek thee; our unbelief, that we

may find and enjoy thee.

 

4. Wealth maketh many friends; but the poor is separated from his

                                             neighbour.

            We have had the substance of this Proverb before. (Chap. xiv. 20.

Comp. verse 6.) It is nominally true, that wealth maketh many friends.

But generally they are little worth.  ‘Riches have them'—says Bishop

Hall—‘not the man.'+‡  The principle is selfishness; no earnest of

true and permanent friendship.  Few among them will be found

"loving at all times, brethren born for adversity." (Chap. xvii. 17.)

God has made poverty a gradation of rank; and as such we are bound

to regard it. Man makes it a wall of separation. It tries our own

faith and patience, and not less the love and sincerity of our faith.§

            This want of sympathy with the poor is a serious evil. It separates

those, whom God had linked together by a mutual bond of reciprocal

interest; the rich being the guardians and protectors of the poor; the

poor being the strength and support of the rich. But too often the poor

know their wealthier neighbours, only as living in the most luxurious

indulgence, while they themselves are left in the sense of their poverty,

unaided and uncared for. This could never be, if the gospel had

leavened the mass with its own Divine principle of love. But what—

if the Lord's poor be separated from his selfish neighbour. (Verse 7.)

There is One that "knoweth his soul in adversity" (Ps. xxxi. 7), and

that hath pledged his word—"I will never leave thee, nor forsake

thee." (Heb. xiii. 5.) Yes—this is the joy and the stay of his con-

fidence—"I am poor and needy; but the Lord thinketh on me." (Ps.

xl. 17.)  Poverty may separate him from his neighbour.  But who or

what shall separate him from his God? (Rom. viii. 38, 39.)  "Joint-

heir as he is with him, whom God hath appointed heir of all things,"

what can he want?1  ‘If it were possible for him to stand absolutely

 

              1 Rom. viii. 17. Heb. i. 2, with 1 Cor. iii. 21-23.

* ‘Quos Deus amat, indurat et exereet.'--SENECA De Providentia c. 4.

Bishop Hall.               ‡ Works, viii. 77. Comp. Ecelus. xiii. 22, 23.

                        § Amicus certus in re incerta cernitur.—CICERO.


                                       CHAP. XIX. 5.                                            311

 

in need of the use and service of the whole creation, all the creatures in

the world would surely wait on him, and be appropriated to him.'*

With such an inheritance as his, why should he fret for a few years'

poverty or neglect? Earth's short vision will soon be past; and then

comes the eternal reality of unclouded joy.

 

5. A false witness shall not be unpunished, and he that speaketh lies shall

                                                not escape.

            If "a true witness delivereth souls" (Chap. xiv. 25), a false witness

destroyeth them. Fearful guilt and responsibility! reaching, without

the atoning sacrifice, throughout eternity. Can we wonder that the

detection should bring him under certain condemnation? (Deut. xix.

16-21.) It is an offence against both tables of the law. The perjurer

takes "God's name in vain." The false witness is a direct transgression

against the law of our neighbour. This wickedness does not however

come to this height at once. But the habit of speaking lies, the allow-

ance of untruth under the pretence of a good end (Rom. iii. 8), or only

in play, grows to this aggravation.

            In this view a strict attention to truth forms a primary point in a

Christian education. The boundary line must never be trifled with.

Not even a child can pass it with impunity. It will soon lose its respect,

if it be not reverenced at any sacrifice, and under all circumstances. A

child must never be suffered to play with a falsehood. Ever press upon

him that anything less than truth is a lie. Even if no one is deceived

by it, a habit is fostered, of which we cannot tell to what it may grow.

"He that is unfaithful in that which is least, is unfaithful also in much."

(Luke, xvi. 14.) The indulgence of a lie soon banishes all fear of an

oath. The careless liar, if occasion needs, scruples not to become a

false witness. But neither in the higher or lower indulgence will false-

hood be forgotten. It may escape detection from man. But it lies

open and unveiled before the eye of God. It shall not be unpunished;

it shall not escape there. The liar may perhaps have thought or intended

no harm. But no palliation is admitted at the bar of God. "All liars

shall have their part in the lake that burneth with fire and brimstone."

(Rev. xxi. 8.)

 

6.  Many will entreat the favour of the prince; and every man is a friend to

            him that giveth gifts. 7. All the brethren of the poor do hate him: how

 

   * Bishop REYNOLDS' Works, p. 11.

   Jer. ix. 3-5. There is much instruction in the wise reply of Solon on first seeing the

rude theatricals of Thespis. Asking him, how he dared to tell so many lies before the

people, and receiving for answer, that he only did it in play—'Yes'—said the legislator,

striking his staff with force into the ground,—'But if we begin with telling lies in play,

we shall end with telling them in earnest.'


312         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

            much more do his friends go far from him! he pursueth them with

            words, yet they are wanting to him.

            The fourth verse is here further opened with too accurate a descrip-

tion of man's native selfishness. ‘A prince never wants suitors for his

favour.*  Every one loves, or professes to love those from whom they

expect a benefit, "having men's persons in admiration, because of

advantage" (Jude, 16), valuing them for their possessions, not for their

virtues. Yet if "riches make to themselves wings, and flee away"

(Chap. xxiii. 5), will not they take their flight with them? If the same

person, now fawned on for his gifts, were by Providence brought to

poverty, the same friends would hate or neglect him. 'Which of them'

--asks Bishop Hall—‘would dare acknowledge him, when he is going

to prison ?'  As the winter brooks, filled from the opening springs

and the torrents from heaven, are dried up and vanish before the

summer heat; so these friends of the poor go far from him, cold, distant,

and vanishing in the day of his calamity. If he pursueth them with

words, yet they are deaf to his entreaties for help and sympathy.  Job

found these "summer" friends a great aggravation to affliction.‡

Jerusalem in its days of prosperity was "the joy of the whole earth."

In the time of after-destitution "they called thee"—said the mournful

prophet—"an outcast, saying—This is Zion, whom no man seeketh

after." (Ps. xlviii. 2. Jer. xxx. 17.)

            But how ought we to entreat the favour of our Prince? What gifts

does he give to his beloved people? And shall not those who are

enriched with them exhibit his rule of mercy to their poorer brethren

(Gal. vi. 10. Heb. vi. 10), specially to his poor, the princes and heirs of

his kingdom? (Jam. ii. 5.)  ‘Lord! in my greatest plenty help me to

mind and feel others' poverty; and in my most prosperous condition

keep me from forgetting the afflictions of thy Joseph.'§

 

8. He that getteth wisdom loveth his own soul; he that keepeth

                              understanding shall find good.

            It would seem that self-interest might win us to religion. Careless

sinner! little do you- know your loss of solid happiness. If anything

is worth getting, and, when got, worth keeping—"Wisdom is the thing

therefore get wisdom, and with all thy getting get understanding." (Chap.

iv. 5-7.) How this blessing is to be obtained, Solomon had before

explained. Apply thine heart diligently to the search; then bring thy

 

* Bishop Patrick.                                   Works, xiii. p. 77.

‡ Job, vi. 15-22; xix. 13-19; xxix. xxx. Comp. Ecclus. xxxvii. 1-4.

                        Donec eris felix, multos numerabis amicos;

                        Tempora si fuerint nubila, solus eris.

                                                                        OVID, Trist. Lib. i. viii. 9, 10.

§ SWINNOCK'S Christian Man's Calling, Part ii. 353.


                                     CHAP. XIX. 9, 10.                                    313

 

heart to God for his light and teaching; and the treasure is thine own.

(Chap. ii. 1-6.) Yet it requires as much care to keep the blessing as to

get it. Soon may it slip away from a negligent hand. "Keep thy soul

diligently" (Deut. iv. 9), and thou wilt keep thy treasure; as the man,

who, having found the hidden treasure in the field, buys the field to

secure it. (Matt. xiii. 44.) It is no carnal good, however, that is found

here. The Christian's present portion involves the sacrifice of all.

(Luke, xiv„ 26, 33.) And yet, as a compensation, abundantly over-

paying for all that can be endured, it is real, infinite, heavenly.  To

get wisdom therefore, whatever be the cost, is to love our own soul.

"Whoso findeth me, findeth life" (Chap. viii. 35)—all in me, all with

me. Is not this the chief good, above every earthly good. (Ps. iv. 6, 7);

the eternal good, when every earthly good shall have passed away?

(Ib. lxxiii. 25, 26.) Whether Christ or the world shall have our highest

love, our supreme trust, our first time, and our choicest talent—one

should be ashamed to admit the question. Is. not the very mention of

it a sufficient answer? It is like comparing pebbles with pearls, dust

with diamonds, dross with gold. To follow our own way is then to

destroy, not to love, our own souls. "Whoso sinneth against me

wrongeth his own soul; all they that hate me love death.''

(Chap. viii. 36.)

 

9. A false witness shall not be unpunished, and he that speaketh lies

                                              shall perish.

            "A God of truth, and without iniquity; just and right is he--A.

God that cannot lie—Faithful and True." (Deut. xxxii. 4. Tit. i. 2.)

Such is the revealed character of Jehovah! We cannot wonder at the

repeated denunciations against deceit. So gross a dishonour is it to

his unchangeable attribute! One addition is here made to the former

sentence. (Verse 5.) The punishment shall not only be certain—"he

that speaketh lies shall not escape"—"but it shall be utter ruin—He

shall perish."1 "Lies and desolation" are linked together. (Hos. xii. 1.)

"I will be a swift witness against false swearers— and them that fear

not me--saith the Lord of Hosts." (Mal. iii. 5.)

 

10. Delight is not seemly for a fool: much less for a servant to have rule

                                              over princes.

            What has a fool to do with delight? This world's prosperity, so far

as he knows it, can only be a curse to him. (Chap. i. 32.)  Delight "is

comely to the righteous" (Ps. xxxiii. 1), suitable to his character. He

has a right and title to it. (lb. xxxii. 11.) But it is not seemly for the

fool.  He has indeed his merriment and folly.2 But solid joy he knows

 

1 Jer. xxviii. 15-17 ; xxix. 31, 32. 2 Pet. ii. 1-3. Rev. xxii. 15.

2 1 Sam. xxv. 25. Eccles. vii. 5, 6. Isa. v. 11, 12 ; xxii. 12-14. Hos. vii, 3-5. Amos, vi. 3-6.


314          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

not. Far more suitable to him is a chastening rod.l And should the

Lord graciously sanctify this dispensation—as in how many instances

he has done so!— it will introduce him to that "delight which will then

be seemly to him."2

            Much less seemly is the exhibition of a servant having rule over princes.

Such an elevation is dangerous to the individual.*  In the kingdom, it

is one of the "things which the earth cannot bear." (Chap. xxx. 22.)

The servant has indeed the same rational power with his Sovereign.

But contracted habits of mind unfit him to rule. Exceptions there are,

as in the case of Joseph. (Gen. x1i. 39-45.)  But seldom is God's order

reversed without anarchy and confusion.3  Such was the reign of our

second Edward, when worthless minions had rule over the prince; chosen

either for their external accomplishments, or for their subserviency to

his folly. Peace and happiness belong to godly contentment; (1 Tim.

vi. 6.)  "Let every man,-wherein he is called, therein abide with God."

(1 Cor. vii. 24.) To those whom he has placed in a subordinate station,

our Father's voice is full of instruction--"Seekest thou great things for

thyself?  Seek them not." (Jer. xlv. 5.)

 

11. The discretion of a man deferreth his anger: and it is his glory to pass

                                           over a transgression.

            What is anger, but temporary madness? To yield therefore to its

paroxysm, to act without deliberation under its impulse, is to do we

know not what, and what will surely bring work for repentance. (Chap.

xiv. 17, 29.) An interval between the inward rising and the outward

manifestation of the anger is most important. The discretion of a man

deferreth his anger. Mindful of his own infirmity, he will guard against

indecent sallies of temper, taking time to weigh, and careful not to

overcharge the offence. An affront therefore is the test, whether he

has discretion, or whether he is the slave of his own passion. The

standard of common usage is—'To be even, and to return one insult by

another.' The Christian standard is to be above; "not rendering railing

for railing, but contrariwise blessing."‡

 

1 Chap. x. 13, 14 ; xxvi. 3.               2 2 Chron. xxxiii.11-1.3. Luke, xv. 14-24.

3 2 Sam. iii. 24, 25, 39. Isa. iii. 5.

* Esth. iii. 1, 2 ; vii. 10. ‘Ex insolentia, quibus nova bona fortuna det, impotentes

laetitiae insanire.'—Liv. Lib. xxx. c. 42. Comp. Lib. xxiii. c. 18.

Chap. xvi. 32. Eccles. vii. 9. Jam. i. 19. Comp. 1 Sam. x. 27. Even Heathen moralists

acknowledge the value of this discretion.—‘I would have beaten thee, if I was not angry,'—

said the philosopher to his offending servant. Augustus under the impulse of anger was

requested to repeat the alphabet, to give him time to cool. ‘It is easier'—as Seneca wisely

observed—‘not to admit the passion, than, when admitted, to govern it.' Justin Martyr,

when asked what was Christ's greatest miracle, named his so great patience in such great trials.

‡ 1 Pet. iii. 9. The example of Joseph, Gen. xlv. 4-15; 1. 21. David, I Sam. lxxiv. 7-19.

Ps. xxxv. 7-14; xxxviii. 12-14. The prophet, 1 Kings, xiii. 4-6. Mr. Scott justly remarks

upon the identity of the Old Testament standard with that of Christ and his apostles,

Comp. Matt. v. 38-42; xxiii. 21, 22. Rom. xii. 17-21, with Chap. xxv. 21, 22.


                                        CHAP. XIX. 12.                                       315

 

            Again—To pass over a transgression—such is the proud folly of

man's judgment ! is disgrace, want of courage and proper spirit. But

Solomon, a wise man and a King, declares it to be weakness, not

strength or greatness, to be able to bear nothing.*  It is glory to pass

over a transgression. So it must be, because it is likeness to God. What

a motive!  ‘Let it pass for a kind of sheepishness to be meek. It is a

likeness to him, that was "a sheep before the shearers, not opening his

mouth." (Isa. liii. 7.) It is a portion of his spirit.'

            And what a pattern is his long-suffering with such wilful daily,

hourly, provocations ! (Eph. iv. 31, 32. Col. iii. 13.) If he create us

anew, it must be, as before, in his own image. Forbearance and

forgiveness will therefore take the place of resentment and malice.

Moral strength may, in some men, curb the outward expression. But

the poison lurks within. Forbearance from a pure motive, passing over

transgression in free love, is a noble triumph of grace, most honourable

to God, fraught with the richest spoils to our own souls.

 

12. The king's wrath is as the roaring of a lion: but his favour is as dent

                                            upon the grass.

            The monarch of the forest is a just comparison to the monarch of

the land.l  "The lion hath roared; who will not fear?"‡  The rocks

and hills echo the terrific cry. The whole race of the animals of the

forest are driven to flight, or petrified to the spot. Such is the king's

wrath in a land of despotism;2 reigning without law, above law, his

will his only law; an awful picture of cruelty,3 tyranny,4 and caprice!5

Unlimited power is too much for proud human nature to bear, except

with special grace from above. Just so is the king's favour a reviving

blessing, as dew upon the grass—the nourishment of vegetative life in

the East, where the more powerful influence is only partially or periodi-

cally known.6

            But if the wrath of a king be so terrible — Oh, my soul, what must

be the wrath of God! (Luke, xii. 4, 5.) If it be so terrible in this world,

where every drop is mixed with mercy; what will it be in eternity,

where it is “poured out without mixture” and without cessation (Rev.

xiv. 10, 11); where his power is so fearfully manifested, not only in

tormenting, but in preserving and “establishing for correction?”

(Hab. i. 12.) Oh ! let this wrath be the grand object of my reverential

 

   * The Roman moralist could say: —

            Infirmi est animi exiguique voluptas

            Ultio.                                        JUVEN. Sat. xiii. 190, 191.

LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. iii. 3, 4.

‡ Amos, iii. S. Rev. x. 1-3. See Homer's fine picture, Iliad, U. 164-171.

1 Comp. Jer. iv. 7; 1. 17. 2 Tim. iv. 17.                2 Chap. xvi. 14; xx. 2; xxviii. 15.

3 Matt. ii. 16-18.                                                4 Exod. v. 4-9. Dan. iii. 1-19.

5 Dan. ii. 5-1.2.                                                  6 Chap. xvi. 15. 2 Sam. xxiii. 3, 4.


316      EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

fear. Let me flee from it by the only way of escape, while escape is

open to me; and seek his favour, as the enriching "dew unto Israel,

invigorating and fertilizing my barren soil. (Hos. xiv. 5-7. Ps. lxxii. 6.)

 

13. A foolish. son is the calamity of his father: and the contentions of a wife

                                       are a continual dropping.

            ‘Many,' observes an old commentators—‘are the miseries of a

man's life; but none like that, which cometh from him, who should be

the stay of his life.'*  As "a wise son maketh a glad father” (Chap. x.1;

xv. 20), so a foolish son is the father's calamity — a multititude of cala-

mities meeting in one, such as no earthly portion, no riches, honour, or

station, can alleviate or balance. The denunciation--"Write this man

childless"‡ — would be to his heart a comparative boon.  The throne

of grace to the Christian father will be the only refuge fo his grief.

There will he pour out the bitterness of his soul in humiliation for

himself, and supplication for his child; and find rest. (2 Sat t. xxiii. 5.)

Oh! can we be too earnest for the prevention of this calamity? Shall

we not seek early grace for our children, and--combined with this--

special grace for ourselves (Judg. xiii. 12), to preserve us from unwit-

tingly sowing the seed in their young hearts, that will afterwards

spring up with such deadly fruit?

            Another domestic calamity is mentioned, not less poignant. The

contentions of a wife are as a continual dropping (Chap. xxvii. 1, also xxi.

9, 19; xxv. 24) of rain through the roof of an old house. Such dropping

utterly destroys a man's household comfort, and "wears away" a heart

firm as a stone." This trial is the more fretting, because there is no

lawful escape. The foolish son may be cast out. (Deut. xxi. 18.) The

contentious wife must be endured. (Matt. v. 32; xix. 9.) Yet would this

cross have been, had the plain Scriptural rule of subjection been duly

honoured?1 Or is it not the just chastening for the negleict of the

Divine injunction, so essential to secure happiness in the yoke?2  Or

may it not be the “thorn in the flesh,” the needful restraint from some

imminent, subtle, and fearful danger? (2 Cor. xii. 7.)  Self-will and

impatience would flee from the cross.  Faith will seek strength to bear

it meekly to the honour of God, extracting a solid blessing out of a

heavy trial. (Ib. verses 8, 9.)  And who knoweth but the contentious wife

may be given to persevering prayer and patient forbearance, as an

help-meet to her husband, and both shall ultimately "dwell as heirs

together of the grace of life?"3

 

1 Gen. iii. 16. 1 Cor. xiv. 34. Eph. v. 22-24. Col. iii. 18. Tit. ii. 5.

2 1 Cor. vii. 3J. 2 Cur. vi. 14.      3 1 Pet. iii. 7. Gen. ii. 18. 1 Cor. vii. 16.

* Jermin in loco.                       Heb. Plur. Chap. xvii. 21, 25.

‡ Jer. xxii. 30. Augustus in a burst of grief in his domestic trials, is sat to have

applied to himself Hector's exclamation against his effeminate brother—‘Would that thou

hadst never been born, or never married!'  Iliad, G. 40.


                                         CHAP. XIX. 14.                                    317

 

            But surely our God teaches us a valuable lesson of this world's

vanity, by fixing disappointment on its most substantial comforts. Let

his children beware of building their rest on an earthly portion, of

being ensnared by their best blessings; else will their jealous Father

embitter their sweetest sources of enjoyment, and teach them by painful

discipline to look to enter into no rest but his.

 

14. House and riches are the inheritance of fathers: and a prudent wife is

                                         from the Lord.

            "Every good gift is from the Lord" (Jam. i. 17); only, some in the

ordinary course; others more directly from him.  Houses and riches,

though his gifts, come by descent.  They are the inheritance of fathers.l

The heir is known, and in the course of events he takes possession of

his estate. But the prudent wife is wholly unconnected with the man.

There has been no previous bond of relation.2 She is often brought

from a distance.3  "The Lord brought her to the man"4 by his special

Providence, and therefore as his special gift. The history of Ruth

beautifully illustrates the train of matrimonial Providence. The

Moabitess married, contrary to all human probability, a man of Israel,

that she might be brought into Naomi's family, return with her to her

own land, and in coarse of filial duty be brought under the eye, and

drawn to the heart of Boaz, her appointed husband. (Ruth. i. 1-4; iv.

13.) Often do the wheels of the Lord's working in this interesting

matter constrain the admiration of men not well exercised in spiritual

observation. (Gen. xxiv. 50.) And how much more endearing and

secure is a special gift of God! The bread coming down from heaven

was more valued, than if it had been the fruit of labour. Thus is the

prudent wife honoured, as ‘a special blessing of God's immediate

choosing, and therefore to be obtained by our prayers at the hand of

the giver.'*  The prudence, however, here described, implies not only

her wise governing of her household,5 but that godly consideration

connected with Divine wisdom,6 by which she becomes the joy and

confidence of her husband:7 as the contentious wife is his trouble and

disgrace.

            But is not the husband, no less than the wife, from, the Lord? Let

each prospectively seek the blessing of God's ordinance; never trusting

to his own judgment and affections, without primary reference to his

guidance. (Chap. iii. 6.) Let us realize the responsibility, as well as

the indulgent comfort, of the union; ever counting it a talent for God,

for his service and glory: and not doubting for ourselves, that ‘all

 

1 Chap. xiii. 22.Num. xxvii. 7. Deut. xxi. 16. 1 Kings, xxi. 3, 4. 2 Cor. xii. 14.

2 1 Sam. xxv. 39-42.                  3 Gen. xxiv. 4, 5.            4 Ib. ii. 22.

6 Chap. xxxi. 27.                        6 Chap. viii, 12.              7 Chap. xviii. 22; xxxi.11, 23, 28.

                                                * Bishop Hall.


318         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

things shall turn to our commodity and comfort, if we draw the yoke in

one concord of heart and mind.'*

 

15. Slothfulness casteth into a deep sleep; and an idle soul shall, suffer

                                               hunger.

            All experience and observation attest the fact, that slothful habits

destroy mental energy, and idleness is the road to want. What could

we expect from a sluggard lying in his bed all the day? As little from

the slothful, who, goes about his work, as if he was cast into a deep sleep.

(Chap. vi. 9-11.) And even where the slumber is not a deep sleep, its

partial influence is the dead palsy upon active perseverance. He has

not the thorough use of his wakeful faculties. And if he has (as who

has not?) made a false step, there is no energy of effort to repair it.  

And if there be any reward of perseverance, sloth will never find it;

the idle soul will suffer hunger.

            Thoughtless sinner! Think how this applies to the world of God.

You persuade yourself that all is well, because you will no trouble

yourself to open your eyes to the truth; and you are content to let

things run their course. You do not rebel against the Gospel. But

has not our Divine Master said—"He that is not with me is against

me?" (Matt. xii. 30.) You conceive that you have done no harm. But

is it no harm to have hitherto wasted every opportunity for eternity?

to have wandered about in vanity from your cradle, instead of living to

God? You are determined to sleep at any rate. And though the two

grand treasures--the favour of God, and your own soul—are in immi-

nent peril; yet still you "say to your soul—Soul, take thine ease."

(Luke, xii. 19.) Instead of weeping love, wrestling prayer, and working

diligence—you are cast into a deep sleep. "Awake, thou that sleepest"

(Eph. v. 14); else wilt thou sleep the sleep of eternal death.

            Often do we find men active and laborious, all eyes, all ears, all

heart in worldly matters, hating sloth, yet themselves devoured by it.

Thev know that something must be done. But in the vital exercises

of denying self, crucifying the flesh, coming to Christ, loving the Lord,

and devotedness to his service — here it is a deep sleep. Is then the

grace of God to work as a charm, without, or independent of, means?

This were a deadly delusion, casting into the deep sleep of presumption.

Such an idle soul shall suffer hunger! (Chap. x. 4, 5; xx. 4) The

enduring meat is the gift of God; but, like every other blessing of the

Gospel, it is given only to labour.1  The idle mouth—full only of heart-

 

            1 John, vi. 27, with Heb. vi. 11, 12. 2 Pet. i. 5—11.

* Homily on Matrimony.

Marshall Turenne expressed his warm obligation to a friend, who had given him the

following advice, when first setting out in life — 'When you have made a false step, spend

not a moment in vexing yourself, and moaning over it; but think how it may best be

repaired, and instantly set about it.'


                                         CHAP. XIX. 16.                                      319

 

less complaints, perhaps sending up a dull prayer for the present quiet

of conscience— shall suffer hunger. The soul can never flourish, if it be

not in earnest with God. It may be roused for a while; but only to be

cast into a deeper sleep than ever. For godliness can never thrive with

this deadly malady. If the slothful may be sincerely religious; so far

as he is slothful, he deducts from the privilege and sincerity of his reli-

gion. And undoubtedly a slothful habit is utterly inconsistent with the

vitality of true godliness. Soon nothing will remain, but the dead form

of religion, the bare walls of the house, instead of the temple filled with

his glory.

            And now let us look at the child of God awakened out of a deep

sleep. He has set out in good earnest for the kingdom; he has begun

to fight—yea—to conquer.  But sleep has followed; and, instead of

improving the advantage, a sudden assault of the enemy has laid him

low.*  Mind thy work and thy conflict more than thine ease and com-

fort; else wilt thou be, not a conqueror, but a captive. In time of ease,

how naturally, as Bunyan's pilgrim found it, does the air of the plain

tend to make us drowsy!  And then the soul, instead of being "satis-

fied as with marrow and fatness" (Ps. lxiii. 5), suffers hunger, and

becomes faint for want of its proper nourishment. The heartless exter-

nals of godliness will abide. But the spirit that breathed life into them

is gone. Nothing but the unceasing prayer and exercise of a mortified

spirit can shake off this "evil disease that cleaveth to us." Be thou,

Lord, our Helper, our Strength, our Physician!

 

16. He that keepeth the commandment, keepeth his own soul; but he that

                                   despiseth his ways shall die.

            The fearing of the commandment is the path of honour. (Chap. xiii. 

13.) The keeping of it is our security, Keep the word, and the word will

keep us securely. Our duties are thus identified with our privileges.

(Ps. xix. 11; cxix. 165.) This is the first successful effort to shake our-

selves from the deep sleep of slothfulness; when we "stir up ourselves to

take hold of God, choosing the things that please him, and joining our-

selves to him, to serve him, and to love his name."1 Yet the power to keep

the commandment is not in a man's self.2  Is it not God working in us,

through, by, with us?3  Thus "all our deeds are wrought in him;"4

and nothing is left us, but the thankful, humbling acknowledgment —

“Yet not I, but the grace of God that is with me.”5 Let then the

world know, that we do not exercise obedience in a covenant of works,

nor reject it as a system, of bondage and despondency; but that keeping

the commandment evangelically is keeping our own souls6 — the way of

 

1 Isa. 1xiv. 7; lvi. 4-6.                 2 Jer. x. 23.                   3 Isa. xxvi. 12. Philip. ii. 12, 13.

4 John, iii. 21.                             3 1 Cor. xv. 10.              6 Chap. x. 17 ; xvi. 17; xxii. 5.

            * Invadunt urbem somno vinoque sepultam.—VIRG AEn. ii. 265.


320       EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

present happiness,1 the seal of everlasting mercy,2  the pathway to

heaven.3

            But alas! the multitude, instead of keeping the commandment, "go

at all adventures,"4 careless of their ways, reckless of their end. It is

with therm scarcely worth looking into, whether God is displeased or

not; whether they be walking in the narrow or broad path; and what

the end of that path may be. The sight before our eyes defies illus-

tration. The most momentous realities, that could ever attract the

attention of an immortal being, stand before him, not in dreaming

visions, but in actual demonstration—the favour or the curse of the

ever-blessed God—salvation or damnation. They confront hiim in the

presence of God. He sees them in the light of God. He acknow-

ledges the stamp of God upon them; and yet with this tremendous

sight, this fearful responsibility, not a serious thought fixes in his mind.

Instead of being overwhelmed with the consciousness of his own

interest in it (enough—were it apprehended—to suspend almost the

power of thought) he is ready for any trifle or vanity that crosses his

path. He despises his ways, and dies.

            Sometimes men come into this thoughtless world, fresh from the

influence of a religious education. For a while they yield alternately

to their conscience and their corruptions. They are touched a moment

under the convictions of the word, or the corrections of the rod. Yet

the want of steadiness and consistency soon sweeps all away into

"worse" hardness than before. (2 Pet. ii. 20-22.) They are “carried

away unto their idols, even as they were led” (1 Cor. xii. 2); amid, slaves

of their wills, their lusts, their fancies, they know not, they care not to

know, "that for all these things God will call them to judgment."5

            Young people—"Ponder the path of your feet." Look to it well

at every step, that " your ways may be established" (Chap. iv. 26) in

converting grace, the only security for Christian stedfastness. (2 Pet. iii.

17, 18.) Keep the conscience tender, the Divine rule before your eyes,

and the promise in the heart. Cherish a pliable spirit for your Father's

guidance. How solemn the warning—He that despiseth his ways shall

die! Sinner! would that thou wouldest ponder this death! It is no

creation of a distempered fancy. It is the death, which sin bringeth

forth to perfection. (Jam. i. 14, 15.) It is the harvest from that seed.

(Gal. vi. 7, 8.) It is the death such as a soul can die—an eternal

reality of infinite, unchangeable misery; the extinction, not of thy

being (that were a boon indeed !) but of thy happiness. What must

it be to be immovably linked with the wrath of God!  Yea—to have

the wrath of an immortal God filling the conscience of thine immortal

soul, with all its power eternally enlarging to receive the hull and

 

1 Isa. lxiv, 5. John, xiv. 21-23.     2 Ps. ciii. 17, 18.                        3 Isa. xxxv. 8-10. Rev. xxii. 14.

4 Lev. xxvi. 21, marg.                5 Eccles. xi. 9, with 2 Kings, x. 31. Jer. xliv. 17.


                                       CHAP. XIX. 17.                                      321

 

eternal impression! And whilst thou art "going on frowardly in the

way of thine heart" (Isa. lvii. 17), remember "there is but a step

who knows how short a step—how soon taken?—"between thee and

this death." (1 Sam. xx. 3.) "Why " then "wilt thou die," when the

oath of thy God testifies, that " he hath no pleasure in thy death," when

his gracious voice to thee is—"Turn and live.l Consider thy ways."2

Oh! listen, ere thou learn the wisdom of fools, to be wise too late.

 

17. He that hath pity upon the poor lendeth unto the Lord; and that which

                          he hath given will he pay him again.

            The ordinance of God is, that "the poor shall never cease out of the

land."3 Hence the universal obligation is, to have pity upon the poor.

This is according to the New Testament standard, which inculcates the

spirit, no less than the act.4 We must open our heart as much as our

hand (Deut. xv. 7, 10), "draw out our soul" as well as our bread, "to

the hungry" (Isa. lviii. 10); thus doubling the alms, by giving a part

of ourselves. It is possible to "give all our goods to feed the poor,"

without one atom of the true charity of the heart. (1 Cor. xiii. 3.) But

whatever we give, "if we shut up the bowels of compassion from our

brother, how dwelleth the love of God in us?" (1 John, iii. 17.) The

good Samaritan chewed true practical pity. Never let us forget our

Lord's application—"Go, and do thou likewise." (Luke, x. 33-37.)

            The appointment of the Deacons in the Primitive Church (Acts, vi.

2-6); the anxiety of the Apostles when delegating a commission to

their brethren (Gal. ii. 9, 10); the high commendation of the Mace-

donian churches (2 Cor. iii. ix.), the weekly rule of charity, laid down

(not enforcing a fixed standard, but "as God hath prospered") (1 Cor.

xvi. 2)—all this chews the acceptableness of this. Christian service.

Sir Thomas More used to say—'There was more rhetoric in this

little sentence, than in a whole library.' The worldly philanthropist

however has no conception of the Divine honour of the principle

involved in it. If our brother is the object of pity, in truth the majesty

of Heaven is concerned. The Lord considers it as a loan to himself.

It is lending to the Lord. Selfishness would evade the obligation under

the cover of prudence. But what we give is only a loan, to be paid

again, and that with such security, as can never fail. The Lord of

heaven condescends to be the Surety for the poor. He takes the debt

upon himself, and gives us the bond of his word in promise of payment.

Though he has a right to all, and is beholden to none,5 he becomes a

debtor to his own. Many acts of kindness have been buried and for- 

gotten. The witness of our conscience is the only fruit. But here is a

 

1 Ezek. xxxiii. 11; xviii. 32.         2 Hag. i. 5, 7.                 3 Deut. xv. 11.

4 Luke, vi. 30-36. Col. iii. 12. Comp. chap. xiv. 21.           5 Ps. xvi. 2. Rom. xi. 35.


322      EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

safe deposit in the very heart of God. It can never be lost or for-

gotten.1  ‘If then'— as Bishop Hall writes—‘we will needs lay up,

where should we rather repose it, than in the Christian's treasury?

The poor man's hand is the treasury of Christ. All my superfluity shall

there be hoarded up, where I know it will be safely kept, and surely

returned me.'*

            And yet would not many rather lend to a rich man of known

integrity, than to the Lord? It is indeed an act of faith, often of naked

faith, when there seems no hope of return. (Luke, vi. 38. Coup. chap.

xxviii. 27.) But this is the principle, which "the King delighteth to

honour." Franke's Orphan Institution stands out before us.  Doubt-

less if the experience of the Lord's people were fully brought out, it

would declare many similar manifestations of his faithfulness to his

word. The resurrection-day will bring all to light. (Matt. xxv. 34-40.)

Meanwhile let us admire this his wondrous grace. He puts the desire

into the heart, disposes the heart, opens the opportunity, and after

all accepts the act, as if it had been his own work, without spot or

pollution!

 

18. Chasten thy son while there is hope, and let not thy soul spare for

                                           his crying.

            Christian parents! carefully study the word of God. See here our

Father's wise and loving discipline with his children. "Like as a

Father, he pitieth his children." "As one whom his mother comforteth,

so will I comfort you."2  Yet when his children need chastening though

the flesh cries—Spare; though every groan enters into his heart,3 he

loves. so well, that his soul spares them not for their crying 4 He uses

the rod; yea, if need be, heavily.5 He will wither their brightest

comforts, children, or property, if they turn them to idols; and this,

"not for his pleasure, but for their profit."6 And what child has not

blessed him, that he did not refrain his discipline, till it had done "its

perfect work?"

            Is not this then our pattern and our standard; setting out the sound

principle of a Christian education?  "Fathers, provoke not your chil-

dren to wrath; lest they be discouraged." (Col. iii. 21.) But let not

the rule—chasten—spare not—be "a hard saying." Is not tenderness

for the child a cover for the indulgence of weak and foolish affections?

There is much more mercy in what seems to be harshness, than in false

tenderness. (Chap. xxiii.13,14.) Let the child see, that we are resolved;

 

1 Matt. x. 42; xxv. 40. Heb. vi. 10.                      2 Ps. ciii. 13. Isa. lxvi. 13.

3 Exod. ii. 23, 24. Judg. x. 16.                             4 Ps. lxxxix. 30-32.

5 Ib. xxxix. 10. 1 Pet. v. 6.                                 6 Heb. xii. 10. Com. Lam. iii. 33.

* Works, viii. 32. No man is a better merchant, than he that lays out his time upon

God, and his money upon the Poor.--Bp. TAYLOR'S Holy Living, Chap. i.

See his interesting Life. (Seeleys.)


                                      CHAP. XIX. 19.                                         323

 

that we are not to be diverted from our duty by the cry of weakness or

passion. Far better that the child should cry under healthful correction,

than that parents should afterwards cry under the bitter fruit to them-

selves and children, of neglected discipline.  ‘Eli could not have

devised which way to have plagued himself and his house so much, as

by his kindness to his children's sin. Parents need no other means to

make themselves miserable than sparing the rod.'*  Yet much less of

it would be needed, did they govern, as they ought to do, by the steady

decision of a word, a frown, or a look.

            But the great force of the rule is its timely application—while there

is hope. For hopeless the case may be, if the remedy be delayed. The

cure of the evil must be commenced in infancy. Not a moment is to

be lost. "Betimes" (Chap. xiii. 24; xxii. 15)—is the season, when

the good can be effected with the most ease, and the fewest strokes.

The lesson of obedience should be learnt at the first dawn. One decided

struggle and victory in very early life, may, under God, do much toward;

settling the point at once and to the end. On the other hand, sharp

chastening may fail later to accomplish, what a slight rebuke in thy;

early course might have wrought.

            But is there not too often a voluntary blindness, that does not

choose to see what it is painful to correct? The false notion—

‘Children will be children'--leads us often to pass over real faults,

and consider their tempers and waywardness as too trifling to require;

prompt correction. And thus sin, winked at in its beginnings, harden

in all the strength of deep-rooted corruptions. Whereas—who would

neglect their most trifling bodily ailment, which might grow into

serious results? If they cannot be argued with, they must be con-

trolled. How often have we found in after-life the evil of fixed habits,

which early correction might have subdued with far less cost of suf-

fering! (1 Kings, i. 6; ii. 24.) Oh! what grace and wisdom is needed

to discipline our minds, judgment, and affections to that tone of self-

government, which will enable us to train our children practically for

the service of God, and for their own happiness!

           

19. A man of great wrath shall suffer punishment; for if thou deliver

                           him, yet thou must do it again.

            How often does the unchastened child grow up to a man of great

wrath, bringing himself into trouble by his boisterous and ungoverned

passions! Adonijah, whom "his father had not displeased at any

time," rebels against his brother, and suffers punishment. (1 Kings, i. 5;

ii. 25.) The wretched victim gained nothing by experience. Delivered

from one broil, he plunges into another. Indeed who knows what

will be the end of undisciplined passion?  Cain--a man of great wrath

 

            * Bishop HALL'S Contemplations, Book xi. xii.


324           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

—the murderer of his brother--the punishment that he suffered was

"greater than he could bear." (Gen. iv. 5-8, 13.) The friendly efforts

to restrain this wrath must be repeated again and again (1 Sam. xix.

1-11; xx. 32, 33), even though too often ineffectually. Meanwhile the

man suffers his own punishment--the miseries of a fierce intestine war,

driven about by the fury of his raging lust. Truly "it is a man's dis-

cretion to defer his anger" (Verse 11), as the first, often the successful,

effort to restrain a passion, the indulgence of which leaves him degraded

and defenceless. (Chap. xxv. 28.)

            After all that a man boasts of his self-government, there is no fer-

mentation within, which restraint may bind, but cannot subdue.

Wounded pride and unquelled resentment leave the wretched criminal

in his brooding chamber within, suffering an intolerable burden of self-

inflicted punishment. What then is the radical cure? "Learn of me,

for I am meek and lowly in heart." (Matt. xi. 29.)  The glory and

encouragement of the gospel is, that religion, with all its difficulties, is

a practicable thing. (2 Cor. xii. 9.) "My grace is sufficient for thee"—

is the cheering word of Him, who sealed the faithfulness of the promise

with his blood. Doubt not then, that "he will perfect that which con-

cerneth us" (Ps. cxxxviii. 8), even to the moulding of the man of great

wrath into his image of meekness, gentleness, and love.

 

20. Hear counsel, and receive instruction, that thou mayest be wise; in thy

                                                      latter end.

            We have just had a word for parents, directing their Christian dis-

cipline. Here the children are exhorted to humility. Again are they

awakened to hear counsel and instruction.l And constantly do they need

the word. "Childhood and youth are vanity."2  Present gratification

is the main object.  Oh! remember that the seed, now sown in the

season of youth, will produce either blessed or bitter fruit in the latter

end. Rich indeed was the harvest from Timothy's early attention to

instruction.3 Fearful indeed was the judgment upon the scoffers,4 the

awful death of the profligate,5 the ruin of the holy nation6--- all the

fruit of despising timely wisdom and instruction. Might not Reho-

boam7 and Amaziahs have escaped the ruin of their kingdom, had they

heard counsel, and thus obtained wisdom in their latter end. ‘I am going

to die,' said a thoughtless King on his death-bed; 'and yet I have not

begun to live.'  How does the wisdom of mature age depend upon

diligence in hearing counsel and instruction!  Hence we value “the yoke”

—specially of affliction--"borne in youth"--a "good" thing indeed,

fraught with profit. (Lam. iii. 27.)  In this yoke Joseph heard from his

 

1 Chap. iv. 1, 2; v. 1, 2; vii. 1, 2.                          2 Eccles. xi. 10.             3 2 Tim. iii. 14, 15.

4 Chap. i. 26; xxix. l .                                         5 Chap. v.9-14.

6 Matt. xxiii. 37-39. Luke, xix. 41, 42.                  7 1 Kings, xii. 12-19.      2 Chron. xxv. 15-20.


                                        CHAP. XIX. 21.                                     325

 

God much counsel and instruction, that eminently qualified him with

wisdom for his high responsibility. (Gen. xxxvii. xxxix.-xli.) Daniel,

thus early instructed, found wisdom in the latter end of a life protracted

beyond the ordinary term, that enabled him to superintend a hundred

and twenty provinces with singular honour to his profession. (Dan. i.

4-9; vi. 3, 4.)

            And then as regards the latter end—"the end of all things,"—the

wisdom to meet the great crisis is not to be found in thoughtless dis-

regard. Counsel and instruction are largely given.  But alas! of the

most the Lord is constrained to complain—"My people doth not con-

sider. (Isa. i. 3.) And who, in the sight of the mass of ungodliness,

can refrain from the weeping lamentation of the man of God,—"Oh!

that they were wise! that they understood this, that they would con-

sider their latter end!" (Deut. xxxii. 29.)

 

21. There are many devices in a man's heart; nevertheless, the counsel of

                                    the Lord, that shall stand.

            Here is a fine contrast between man and God, setting out the just

relative disproportion between the worm and his Maker. Man's most

serious, well-digested thoughts are only devices—imaginations--un-

certainty—a poor nonentity. God's mind is counsel,1 firm and full

purpose. Man's devices are many; God's counsel is like himself—Unity.

Man's devices are full of anxiety. Many are eventually fruitless.2 All

of them are vain.3 God's counsel is immutable, and shall stand for

ever.4  "I will work and who shall let it—My counsel shall stand, and

I will do all my pleasure."5

            Now when God and man were at one, man's devices were identified

with God's counsel. Then it was "as the days of heaven upon earth."

But ever since the fall, man's devices and God's counsel are at opposite.

Which will triumph, who can doubt?  "There is no wisdom, nor

understanding, nor counsel against the Lord." (Chap. xxi. 30. Heb.

vi. 17.)

            We mark this conflict in every day's life. Man's own way is a way

devised by human weakness and folly; and it is impossible to make a

solid road out of such frail materials. Even in the most plausible path

—a well-calculated moderation in their earthly projects, he is only

preparing for himself certain disappointment, and increasing the cer-

tainty and perplexity of that disappointment by his every movement.

He devises his whole way, when not a single step is under his own con-

trol; not one step can he take, for one moment in opposition to the

Lord's counsel. (Lam. iii. 37.) That shall stand, though it may be reluc-

tantly to give him up his own devices; still—even after he has left

 

1  Eph, i. 11                               2 Ps. xxi. 11.                 3 Ib. xciv. 11.

4 Ib. lxxxiix. 2; cxix. 89.             5 Isa. xliii. 13; xlvi. 10.


326          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

him—seem to send a longing, lingering look after him.1 The malice

of Joseph's brethren was the means of fulfilling the Divine counsel in

the salvation of his Church.2 The plot laid for the destruction of Israel

furthered their prosperity.3 The vain attempts at opposition to Christ

were subservient to the great end of "the determinate counsel and fore-

knowledge of God."4 The device of man to prevent the Apostle's

journey to Rome was signally defeated.5

            How vain the impious attempt to "fight against God!"6  "Woe

unto him that striveth with his Maker!"7 Our liberty does not inter-

fere with his secret purpose. But let us be careful, that it does not

resist his declared will. As his Providence chooses our lot, let his word

discipline our desires, as the best means of bringing them to a pro-

sperous issue. After all, it is a cheering hope. All is clear above,

however cloudy it be below. All is calm in heaven, however stormy it

may be on earth. There is no confusion there.  One will alone reign.

Every purpose reaches its appointed end. "He is of one mind, and who

can turn him? And what his soul desireth, even that he doeth" (Job,

xxiii. 13.)

 

22. The desire of a man is his kindness, and a poor man is better than a

                                                    liar.

            The privilege of doing good is within the reach of all. For when

the power fails, the desire of a man is his kindness, as acceptable! as the

most expensive proof of love. If there be a willing mind, it is accepted,

according to that a man hath, and not according to that he hath not.

(2 Cor. viii. 12.) The dealings of God with his people are grounded on

this principle. David's desire to build the temple was as fully accepted

and, honoured, as the act itself was appointed for his son.8 Such also was

our Saviour's estimate of the value of the widow's mite,9--of the box

of ointment poured upon himself,10--of the "cup of cold water given to

a disciple."11  The desire was the kindness, more rich and fruitful than

the offerings of self-pleasing abundance.12  ‘It is the comfort of poverty,

that our affections are valued, not our presents.'*

            Yet the desire must be active; not indolent excitement, but "the

communication of faith effectual "according to the power given to us.13

Such a desire is far better in the sight of God, in the heart of one of his

poor people, than a man with large opportunities and hollow profes-

 

1 See Ps. lxxxi. 11-14.                2 Gen. xxxvii. 19; xlv. 5, 6.         3 Exod. i. 8-12, 20.

4 Ps. ii. 1-6, with Acts, iv. 26-28; ii. 23.                           5 Acts, xxiii 12, 15, with 11.

6 Ib. v. 39.                                 7 Isa. xlv. 9.                  8 2 Chron. vi. 8; vii. 12-17.

9 Mark, xii. 41-44.                      10 Ib. xiv. 8, 9.   11 Matt. x. 42.

12 Luke, xxi. 4.                           13 Philem. 6. 2 Cor. viii. 11.

* Bp. Hall. ‘Rich men's presents,' said the Venerable Bede when dying—‘are old and

silver, or other costly things. Mine must be recommended by the affectionate pleasure

with which I give them.'


                                         CHAP. XIX. 23.                                    327

 

skins, who proves himself to be a liar. (Verse 1. Ps. lxii. 9.) The poor

gives readily. The rich cannot afford. He denies that he has the

ability. He promises, and does nothing. The poor man is better than

the liar. Only take heed to the motive. Men know not the heart.

"The Lord weigheth the spirit" (Chap. xvi. 2); and "the fire will try

every man's work of what sort it is." (1 Cor. iii. 13.)

 

23. The fear of the Lord tendeth to life: and he that hath it shall abide

                      satisfied; he shall not be visited with evil.

            The fear of the Lord as a legal principle, it is a privilege to be

exempt from.1 As a grace of the gospel, cultivate it to the uttermost.2

Threefold fruit is here set before us — life—satisfaction— security.3  It

tendeth to life--not the mere natural life, common to the ungodly —

(though this blessing, so far as is good, is included4), but a heavenly,

yea—an eternal, life5 in the favour and enjoyment of God. So far as

we are under its influence, we speak, pray, think, and deal with man, as

if God was standing by. The genial beams of "the Sun of righteous-

ness" nourish this holy principle (Mal. iv. 2); and soon will it be

perfected in the service above. (Rev. xv. 3, 4.)

            Meanwhile the satisfaction which it imparts is a precious privilege.

The service of God is now our delight—our "great delight." The law

is no task-master over our heads, but a principle of life and joyous

energy within. The worldling's heart is torn with ‘an aching void.'

He travels from one source of happiness to another, crying—"Who will

shew me any good?" "Lord! lift thou up the light of thy counte-

nance upon me"—is the cry and solid satisfaction of a child of God,

above the best portion of earth. (Ps. iv. 6, 7.) Instead of being cast

from wave to wave, here is quiet rest. Whoever wants, "they that fear

the Lord want no good thing. Their souls dwell at ease." (Ib. xxxiv.

9, 10; xxv. 12, 13.) He that hath it shall abide satisfied. Is not this

fixed repose and trust in his love the very soul of happiness?

            If it be said, that an object of fear usually brings dread.  'But add,

whom—He that feareth the Lord. That touch turns it into gold. He

that so fears, fears not.'* He has his "confidence and place of refuge

high and sure, an impregnable fortress." (Chap. xiv. 26.) We do not

begin to inquire the way. "God is known in the palaces of Zion as a sure

refuge." (Ps. xiviii. 3.) We go to him as a God, with whom we are

acquainted, and who is engaged in covenant to us. And now taking

our sanctuary in God, we sit, and sing under his shadow. In this

hiding-place how can any evil, properly so called, visit us? (Chap. xii.

21.) What is evil in itself will turn to good. (Rom. viii. 28. Heb. xii.

 

1 Luke, i. 74. Rom. viii. 15. 2 Tim. i. 7.                            2 Heb. xii. 28. 1 Pet. i. 17.

3 See Eccius. xxxiv. 15-17.         4 Chap. ix. 11; x. 27.      5 Ps. xxxiii. 18, 19; xxxiv. 11, 12.

                        * LEIGHTON'S Sermon on Ps. cxii. 7.


328        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

11.)  It cannot separate from God. It will tend only to bind us closer

to him. We can tread upon scorpions unhurt, when our conscience is

kept tender, and our heart fixed in his ways. We fear not his uplifted

arm. But his frown of rebuke "enters into our soul." His mercy

sweeps away the fear, of terror.  His holiness maintains the fear of

reverence. Conscious security only tends more than ever to make us

dread departure and separation from his love.

 

24. A slothful man hideth his hand in his bosom, and will not so much as

                                 bring it to his mouth again.

            Another forcible figure of the palsy of sloth!*  It so grows on its

victim, that he has no heart to do even necessary things for himself; as

if he could not take his hand out of his bosom; and would rather suffer

the cravings of hunger, than make the exertion of putting his food into

his mouth. A melancholy picture it is of many fair intentions and

promises, and apparently good beginnings in religion—all stopped for

want of the effort to overcome the least hindrance. Every religious

duty is a burden. The struggle necessary for prayer—the only means

of receiving our spiritual food—is too hard. The soul, that seemed

to have been awakened, sinks into its former lethargy; and the effort

to rouse it becomes each time fainter and more hopeless. The hand

cannot be stretched out, though it were to lay hold on a crown.

            Some, indeed, seem to feel little or no exertion to be necessary; a

plain proof, that they have never been really in earnest about this

momentous concern. The conflict is not imaginary. "Woe unto

those, who," reposing on the lap of indulgence,  “are at ease in Zion.”

(Amos, vi. 1.) A religion without sacrifice, without diligence, will

never open a way to heaven. It is treasuring up unavailing repentance

against the latter days. If the work of the day, much more the work

of eternity, calls for all diligence. If the Emperor Titus could mourn,

that he ‘had lost a day,' what will be the stinging remorse of having

lost a life! To think, that by a right beginning, followed up by "a

patient continuance in well-doing" (Rom. ii. 7), we might have

effectively" served the will of God in our generation" (Acts, xiii. 36),

so as to have been missed in the world after we had "fallen asleep;"

to think that we might have sown seed for eternity, so that our

"memory," instead of "rotting," would "have been blessed" (Chap.

x. 7); that all this was wished, contemplated, nay—even resolved;

yet not an atom of it accomplished: will not this be a thorn for a dying

pillow, perhaps the tormenting worm for eternity?

            The mere waste of time is far from being the worst part of the evil.

It is fatal alike to our well-being, and our well-doing, to condemn our

energies to rust out in inactivity.  Thomson's excuse for reposing in

 

         * See similar figures Chap. xii. 27; xxvi. 15. Eccles. iv. 5.


                             CHAP. XIX. 24, 25.                                       329

 

his ‘Castle of Indolence' was, that he had nothing to do. And doubt

less the want of an object is sufficient to, make an idler of a man of

talent. But can this ever be the condition of any one — even the least

occupied, or the least influential among us? Are any of us freed from

the responsibility of diligence, if not for ourselves, at least in the ser-

vice of our fellow-creatures. Much less can the Christian plead as an

excuse for "standing idle," that "no man hath hired him." (Matt. xx.

6, 7.) Is not the great object always in sight, always worthy of all

the concentration of mind, talent, and energy — "To me to live is

Christ?" (Philip. i. 21.)

            The special time for the resistance of this deadly disease, is when

we are most under its power. When the Bible is uninteresting as a

common book, then is the time to live in it with patient diligence.

When prayer is cold and heartless, instead of giving up, hold on, how-

ever feebly, yet with perseverance. When in a state of listless exertion,

be employed for God and for his Church. Form habits of early energy.

Beware of a dreaming sentimentalism. Cultivate bodily activity.

Regard the incursions of sloth as the effects of those poisons, which,

while they cause sleep, unless counteracted by constant resistance,

must prove fatal. Yet with all these means, never forget the one only

principle, that makes them effectual — prayer, unceasing, believing,

"looking unto Jesus," who not only gives life, but liveliness. (Heb. xii.

1, 2. John, x. 10.)

            Christian! He who hath awakened you from the sleep of death, will

keep you awake, till the Lord come. Still even with you much drow-

siness remains, trifling away time in a tame, barren profession, such as

your Lord will not tolerate. He will make you feel, that life is a solemn

reality, that prayer is not a half-hearted work, but a close dealing with

the living God, a warm pulse of the hidden life, a continued conflict

with mighty enemies.

            Are you then struggling in this conflict? Look for repose only in

the arms of victory. While the conflict lasts, there is no time for

loitering or for slumber. Yet forget not to thank God for every victory,

yea, for the continued strength, enabling you to persevere in the fight;

for the wise dispensation also, that appoints this holy conflict, as the

means of invigorating our faith, our hope, our meetness for the crown,

and our joyful expectation of it. If peace with God is our life, "the joy

of the Lord is our strength" (Neh. viii. 10), our health, our happiness,

yet not to be found in a listless, enervated habit.

 

25. Smite a scorner, and the simple will beware; and reprove one that hath

                 understanding, and he will understand knowledge.

            There is a difference of opinion upon the profit of punishments.

Some will have it, that, if the will does not give way to reason, forced


330      EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

obedience is of little use. But God's word and ordinance is our stan-

dard, though great wisdom is required in the measure and adaptation.

Two kinds are here mentioned; each measured out according to the

character of the offender, but both wholesome in their results. The

scorner is a bold sinner.  Smite him, that the simple may beware. (Chap.

xxi. 11. Acts, xiii. 6-12.) It may be a timely warning to those that

are led by him. The taking the ring-leader of a mischievous party

may put an end to the combination. This is the benefit of laws. Often

an example made, though the sinner himself continues hardened, is for

the good of the whole body. Thus ‘God strikes some, that he may

warn all.'*

            But a man of understanding reprove. There is no occasion to smite.

"A reproof entereth more into a wise man, than a hundred stripes into

a fool." (Chap. vii. 10; xv. 5.) In the scorner's case, the profit is to

others. In the wise man's, it is to himself. He will understand know-

ledge. (Chap. ix. 8, 9.)  His wisdom enables him to profit, and to be

thankful for the seasonable check. (Ps. cxli. 5.) Never let us forget the

mercy of being kept from sin, or being restored from it, though it be by

our. Master's sharp and gracious rebuke—"As many as I love, I rebuke

and chasten; be zealous therefore, and repent." (Rev. iii. 19.)

 

26. He that wasteth his father, and chaseth away his mother, is a son that

                               causeth shame, and bringeth reproach.

            This is, alas! not an ideal picture of recklessness.  "Without

natural affection (Rom. i. 30, 31)--is an awful mark of unrestrained

depravity. Man is the debased slave of his selfish lust. The profligate

may waste his father's substance by extravagance, and his spirits and

health by his ill-conduct. Absalom wasted his father by his undutiful

rebellion. (2 Sam. xv. 1-14.)  And often has a mother's tenderness

been repaid with crushing unkindness. The insolence of an ungrateful

son virtually chaseth her from her home. Her idol has become her

curse! Such monsters in human shape, outraging every principle of

humanity, have been found in every generation. Yet seldom do they

escape without some mark of retributive justice even in this life. (Chap.

xxx. 11, 17.) And though they may be callous to public opinion, while

causing shame, and bringing reproach on their names; yet conscience will

speak (Isa. lvii. 20); and, sooner or later, the stroke will fearfully fall.

Children! A parent's sorrows carry a heavy account before the bar of

God.  If "the commandment be with promise '' (Eph. vi. 2), will not

the breach of the commandment cut off the entail of the promise, with

an awful and aggravated weight of condemnation?

 

* Bishop Hall. Compare Exod. xviii. 10, 11. Deut. xiii. 11; xix. 20; xxi. 21. Acts, v.

1-11. Rev. xi. 13.


                                         CHAP. XIX. 27.                                                   331

 

27. Cease, my son, to hear the instruction that causeth to err from the words

                                              of knowledge.*

            Hear the same caution from the lips of our Divine Master--"Be-

ware of false prophets. Take heed what ye hear." (Matt. vii. 15.

Mark, iv. 24.) All instruction is not to life. Teachers of evil, "Minis-

ters of Satan,"1 abound. And their instruction, causing to err from the

words of knowledge, is more palatable to the perverseness of the heart;

more alluring to the inexperience of the young, than solid Scriptural

teaching.2 The Apostle reproved the Galatian Church for listening to

teachers, causing them to err fatally from the words of knowledge.3 And

would he not have warned us against the same teaching, so fearfully

prevalent: placing ordinances in the stead of Christ, or conjoined with

him; man's proud work of "voluntary humility" and external service in

the room of pure simplicity of reliance on the Redeemer's work? When

the soul has thus "fallen from grace" (Ib. v. 4), what ground of confi-

dence can we bring before God? What is his service, but the bondage

of outward ceremonies, leading to cheerless despondency?

            This instruction is not generally a bold and direct departure from

truth. But, as in the first temptation (Gen. iii. 1-6), it causeth to err

so gradually, that the deviation from the straight line is scarcely per-

ceptible, till the mischief has been accomplished. Had Eve at once

ceased to hear, she would not have erred from the words of knowledge.

But the success of the first attempt has emboldened the seducer to deal

out his deadly poison to her enfeebled children. And what faithful

pastor does not feel a "godly jealousy" for his flock, lest by the same

beguilement "they should be corrupted from the simplicity that is in

Christ ?" (2 Cor. xi. 3.)

            Insinuating infidels, who endeavour to shake the principles of

young persons under the pretence of removing heedless scruples, and

enlarging their minds, and delivering them from the shackles of

bigotry— such persons shun them as the plague. Let us sound a cau-

tion also against false teachers of a more plausible, and therefore more

dangerous character. Let their devices and disguises be fully laid

open. It is the “wolf,” not in his native dress, but "in sheep's cloth-

ing." (Matt. vii. 15.) "Cunning craftiness" is the distinctive character

of the instruction. (Eph. iv. 14.) All that is pleasing is brought out

as a cover for the delusion. Perhaps never was the poison commended

in so attractive a form. All the charms of elegant fiction are employed

to give effect to it. A. lovely picture of practical religion is exhibited.

 

1 2 Cor. xi. 18-15.          2 Isa. xxx. 10. Jer. v. 31.                        3 Gal. i. 6, 7; iii. 1-4; v. 7, 8.

   * There is some difficulty upon the rendering of this verse—but Holden concludes the

‘least interpretation to be that of our Translators.' Mr. Scott adds, that ‘this translation

is of so much importance, that it should not be lightly departed from.'


332       EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Or the deliverance from the fowler's open snare is pourtrayed with

glowing colour of interest. Superficial readers are captivated by the

external loveliness. Parents -- sometimes even Christian parents --

commend to their children these pictures as models of domestic religion

or Church orthodoxy. But the wise watchman would raise his warning

voice--Cease, my son, from hearing.--To hear—to regard— is to err.

All these beauteous sketches of fancy are the framework, that conceal

principles most unscriptural. Weigh them in the balances of the sanc-

tuary, and they will be found wanting. Trace them to their source, and

it will be found to be a corrupt fountain. The Church, not Christ, is

the foundation principle. A human standard, not the word of God, is

the rule. Cease from hearing.1

            Indeed everywhere we would give the warning, that needlessly to

tamper with error, is "entering into temptation." Nay, it is most

hazardous to deal with it at all, ere our minds are thoroughly grounded

in the truth, and we have obtained "the good thing of the heart esta-

blished with grace."2  Yet we have senses given for discernment. Use

increaseth this discernment.3  Increasing clearness should be the

matter of daily supplication.4  We are bound therefore to exercise our

senses by the plainest commands.5  Our Divine Master distinctly

rebukes indolence.6  When the words came with the stamp of an

apostle, the appeal to the unerring standard was highly commended7

Should we give up our judgment to the Church, be it remembered, that

"every one of us shall bear his own burden, and shall give an account

of himself to God."8 Be the son, not the slave, of the Church, Reve-

rence her just authority; but maintain that right of private judgment,

which constitutes our personal responsibility.

            This Christian independence however must be held with humility

and simplicity. The duty of private judgment must be felt as one's

own burden, to be cast on none but God. Hence we must carefully

restrain self-will. We must attend the ordinances in the spirit of

learners rather than as judges desiring to gather instruction in child-

like simplicity, and watching lest the appetite for wholesome food

should give place to a spiritual lust. (See 2 Tim. iv. 3.) While the

right of judgment is our great privilege, never let us forget, that the

licentiousness of it is a cankering evil. If the Romanist enslave the

right, let the sound Protestant discipline its exercise.

            But what-- if our lot be manifestly cast, and our sphere of Christian

obligation opened, where words of knowledge are not found? We would

suggest at commencement, that particular cases require particular

application. There may be cases, when the call would be direct to

 

1 Rom. xvi. 17, 18. 1 Tim. vi. 3-5. 2 Tim. ii. 16, 17.                      2 Heb. xiii. 9.

3 Heb. v. 14.                 4 Phil. i. 9, 10. M.R.                               5 1 Tbess. v. 21. 1 John, iv. I.

6 Luke, xii. 57.               7 Acts, xvii. 11. Comp. Isa. viii. 20.         8 Gal. vi. 5. Rom. xiv. 12.


                                      CHAP. XIX. 27, 28.                                 333

 

cease from hearing. If the teaching be heretical, or wholly unevan-

gelical, if the teacher's life be immoral or scandalously worldly; if the

children and servants of the family are manifestly in danger of being

caused to err, the path may be made plain to depart. And yet in this

case much exercise of mind, much personal sacrifice would be called

for to separate from the Minister, not from the Church. And under no

circumstances let the ungodliness of the Minister be an excuse for the

neglect of Christian ordinances. At the same time, in many more

cases than are ordinarily supposed, the mature Christian will remain in

his place, continue in prayer, abound in labour of love, meekly use, as

occasion may allow, the weapons of admonition and reproof, display a

consistent example, and take up his appointed cross. In some cases,

when the offence is open, and the error manifest, sound discipline may

bring the heretical or ungodly teacher to punishment, and thus open

the way for better instruction.

            To the mass—who are mainly dependent upon the Ministry for

instruction, some forbearance must be admitted, even should they be

constrained by hunger to cease from hearing those, who would give

them a stone for bread. At least the main guilt lies on "the stranger,"

not on them, that flee from him, for they "know not his voice." (John,

x. 5.)  Fearful indeed will be the witness of many a soul neglected, if

not "destroyed, for lack" of hearing the words of knowledge. Assured

as we are, that the preaching of Christ is the alone preservation from

this tremendous evil, if Christ be preached, and sinners are converted

to him by other less accredited teachers, "we do rejoice, yea, and we

will rejoice." (Philip. i. 18.) Yet where Christians can abide, let them

do so—Let them "trust in the Lord, and do good."*  The words of

knowledge always, will they hear from the Church, if not from her

Ministers. The deficiency in privilege will be abundantly supplied.

Christian activity will be a quickening means of grace. The constant

application of the touchstone will be a preservation from error. The

food of the word will be more precious. And who knows but an

enlightened Minister may be given to the power of believing

prayer, and to the living influence of godly meekness, patience, and

consistency?

 

28. An ungodly witness (witness of Belial, marg.) scorneth judgment, and

            the mouth of the wicked devoureth iniquity. 29. Judgments are pre-

            pared for scorners, and stripes for the back of fools.

            Justly is this man called a witness of Belial. Satan himself hath  

suborned him for his own malicious purposes.  Scorning, instead of

 

* Ps. xxxvii. 3. See a remarkable instance in the Life of Mr. Walker of Truro.

1 Kings, xxi. 13. Such was the keen description of the Roman Satirist--

            Tam facile et pronum est Superos contemnere testes, &c.

                                                                                    JUVEN, Sat. xiii. 75.

 

334     EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

regarding judgment, his testimony is worthless. He has "cast the law

behind his back." He devours iniquity with greediness, feeds upon it as

his proper food, and, sinning without remorse, he is always ready to

trade in his deceit, either for gain or revenge.

            But in this greedy devouring he has swallowed the hook with the

bait. For such scorners judgments are prepared. For such fools as thus

"make a mock of sin" (Chap. xiv. 9)--stripes are ready for their backs,

often inflicted by men, the instruments of God. Scorners are warned

"lest their bands be made strong" (Isa. xxviii. 22) for judgment, which,

however they may despise, they cannot resist. Can thine heart endure,

or can thine hands be strong, in the day that I shall deal with thee?

Who shall dwell with the devouring fire? Who shall dwell with ever-

lasting burnings? It is a fearful thing to fall into the hands of the

living God.l  Oh! that thoughtless, light-minded young-person; would

lay such words to heart! When they join in the laugh of their more

hardened companions, and learn from them to scorn judgment, in spite

of the accusings of a conscience not yet silenced; let them tremble, lest

from "standing in the way of sinners," they may go on to "sit in the

seat of the scornful" (Ps. i. 1), and may even exceed their companions

in despising the threatenings of God.

            And when under these slighted judgments, who is to blame for

them?  ‘Our sin'—saith Bishop Hall—‘is our own, and the wages of

sin is death. He that doth the work, earns the wages. So then the

righteous God is cleared both of our sin and our death. Only his

justice pays us what our evil deeds deserve. What a wretched thing

is a wilful sinner, that will needs be guilty of his own death!*

Blessed—blessed day! should it ever see him bemoaning himself

thus—"Thou hast chastised me, and I was chastised, as a bullock

unaccustomed to the yoke; turn thou me, and I shall be turned; for

thou art the Lord my God." (Jer. xxxi. 18.)

 

                                        CHAPTER XX.

1. Wine is a mocker, strong drink is raging: and whosoever is deceived

                                       thereby is not wise.

            THE history of the world from the days of Noah (Gen. ix. 21) proves,

that the love of wine and strong drink is a most insidious vice.  The

wretched victims are convinced too late, that they have been mocked

and grievously deceived. Not only does it overcome them before they

are aware, but it promises pleasures which it can never give. And yet

so mighty is the spell, that the besotted slave consents to be mocked

 

             1 Ezek. xxii. 14. Isa. xxxiii. 14. Heb. x. 31.

                                    * Works, viii. 156.


                                       CHAP. XX. 1, 2.                                   335

 

again and again, till "at last it biteth like a serpent, and stingeth like

an adder." (Chap. xxiii. 29-32.)

            Its raging power degrades below the level of the beasts. The

government of reason is surrendered to lust, appetite, or passion.1

Ahasuerus, with his merry heart, shewed himself most irrational.2

The conqueror of the East murdered his friend. All is tumult and

recklessness. The understanding is gradually impaired.* "The heart,

uttereth perverse things." (Chap. xxiii. 33.) Other sins of the same

black dye follow in its train, often hurrying into the very jaws of

destruction.3 Surely then whosoever is deceived thereby is not wise.

            Humbling indeed is it to human nature, to see, not only the mass

of the ignorant, but splendid talents, brutalized by this lust; that which

was once " created in the image of God," now sunk into the dregs of

shame! Yet more humbling is the sight even of God's own people

"wallowing in this mire." The examples of Noah and Lot are recorded

(Gen. xix. 33), not as a laughing-stock to the ungodly, but as a beacon

to the saints. "Let him that thinketh he standeth, take heed lest he

fall." (1 Cor. x. 12.) Even au Apostle had practically learnt, that his

security lay not in the innate strength of his principles, but in the

unceasing exercise of Christian watchfulness. (Ib. ix. 27.) "Take heed

to yourselves"—is the needful warning of our Divine Master—"lest

your hearts be overcharged with surfeiting and drunkenness, and so

that day come upon you unawares. Be not drunk with wine"—said

the great Apostle —"wherein is excess; but be filled with the Spirit."

(Luke, xxi. 34. Eph. v. 18.)

 

2. The fear of a king is as the roaring of a lion; whoso provoketh, him

                         to anger sinneth against his own soul.

            The wrath of the king has been before mentioned under this figure.

(Chap. xix. 12.) Here his fear is described, the effect for the cause.

Even Joab with 'all his valour, trembled at this roaring of the lion, and

fled for refuge to the horns of the altar.4 Jonathan felt the strong

necessity for appeasing it.5 Such was the power of the king (unknown

in our happy land) the sole, the uncontrolled arbiter of life and death;6

whosoever therefore provoked him to anger, sinned, as Adonijah found to

his cost (1 Kings, ii. 23), against his own soul. What must then be the

fear of the Great King!  ‘Armies of terrors and doubts are nothing to

a look of his angry countenance. "0 Lord," says that holy man (con-

sidering the frailty of poor man, and the power of God) "who knoweth

 

1 1 Sam. xxv. 36. Isa. lvi. 12. Hos. vii. 5.                                     2 Esth. i. 10-12.

3 2 Sam. xiii. 28. 1 Kings, xvi. 8-10; xx. 16. Jer. li. 39, 57. Dan. v. 1-4. Nah. i. 10.

4 1 Kings, ii. 28-34.                    5 1 Sam. xix. 4-6. Eccles. x. 4.   6 Chap. xvi. 14. Esth. vii. 8.

* Isa. xxviii. 7. Hos. iv. 11. Plato determines that not only old men, but drunkards,

come to childhood.—De Legibus, I.

Gen. xix. 83. Isa. v. 11, 12, 22, 23. See the fine description, 1 Esdras, iii. 13-24.


336       EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the power of thine anger? according to thy fear, so is thy wrath."'*

Even "a little kindling" is ruin past conception, and without remedy?

(Ps. ii. 12.) Nay—his very "enduring long-suffering," kindles the

fire more fiercely for "the vessels of wrath," whose aggravated pro-

vocations of it have "fitted them for destruction." (Rom. ix. 22.)

Miserable sinner! deprecate his wrath. Seek a Mediator. Beware of

continuing to sin.'

 

3. It is an honour for a man to cease from strife: but every fool will be

                                           meddling.

            The opposition of this precept to the maxim of the world proves it

to, be from God. A world of sin must always be a world of strife,

because governed by "the wisdom that descendeth not from above,"

the parent of "strife, confusion, and every evil work." (Jam. iii. 14-16.)

And yet an evil world is a fine theatre for the display of the grace of

God, in the fruits of "the wisdom that is from above"--meekness,

gentleness. (Ib. 17, 18.) We have been before reminded, that "it is

the glory of a man to pass over transgression" (Chap. xix. 11); here

to cease from strife. Many from the love of quiet, if not from a

better motive, would overlook an injury. Yet if they were embroiled

in strife, they would feel their honour at stake, not in ceasing from it, but

in following it up, striking the last blow. Far more difficult is it to

gather back the waters once let out, than to restrain them within their

proper bounds. To "leave off contention,"‡ especially when we see

that we are in the wrong; or—if in the right—that no good will

come from it--this "is an high honour for a man, a noble triumph

over the flesh."l Abraham thus ceased from strife by disinterested

concession. (Gen. xiii. 8, 9.) Isaac spewed himself a man of peace

under the vexatious annoyance of the Philistines. (Ib. xxvi. 17—31)

The prophet "went his way," to prevent a further kindling of anger.

(Jar. xxviii. 11.) But how much more commonly is strife fed by the

folly of man's pride, than extinguished by a peaceful and loving spirit!2

The meddling fool rushes into strife as his element:3 and thus becomes

a torment to himself, and a plague to those around him. To return

"a soft answer" to "grievous words,"4 and to keep out of the way of

an angry person,5 is the path of wisdom. To "put on meekness and

long-suffering," and to “let the peace of God rule in our hearts”--these

 

1 Chap. xvi. 32. Rom. xii. 21.      2 Judg. viii. 1; xii. 1.

3 Chap. xviii. 6 ; 2 Sam. x. 1-14; 2 Kings, xiv. 8. 4 Chap. xv. 1. 5 Chap. xxv. 8.

* LEIGHTON'S Sermon on Jer. x. 23, 24. Ps. xc. 11.

Geier in loco.

‡ Chap. xvii. 14. Indeed—as Schultens remarks—'Solomon is here giving full signi-

ficance to this former proverb, which however'—he adds—'considered by itself, strongly

sets out the disgraceful and most dishonourable lust of quarrelling.'


                                           CHAP. XX. 4.                                             337

 

are the marks of " the elect of God," following the example of our Divine

Master. (Col. iii. 12-45.)

 

4. The sluggard will not plow by reason of the cold: therefore shall he beg

                                in harvest, and have nothing.

            Again (Chap. xix. 15, 24) are we instructed by a vivid picture of a

most baneful vice. The sluggard always has his excuses ready to shift

off any work, that requires exertion. He will not plough by reason of

the cold; although the season (our autumn) offered no hindrance, where

the heart was in the work. And does not the most trifling difficulty

hinder, where the heart is cold in the service of God? Let the pro-

fessor ask himself--Have his prayers during his whole life cost him

exercise answering to one hour's ploughing? What has he given to

God but the shadow of duties, when the world has had his full glow

and energy? The flesh flinches from suffering; and even, under the

wakefulness of temporary conviction, the heart is "sorrowful" at the

requisitions of Christianity, which it cannot admit.*  Farewell heaven

for ever, if it must be obtained at such a cost. How affecting is the

a contrast between our work for Christ, and his work for us—We

grudging exercise for him; He so filled with the absorbing interest

of his work—"How am I straitened till it be accomplished!"

(Luke, xii. 50.)

            But the sluggard must reap the fruit of his sin. If he will not plough

in the seed-time, he cannot reap in harvest. At that happy season---

the recompense of the labourer's toil—he shall beg, and have nothing.

'Men's hearts are justly hardened against that man, who by his own

sloth and sinfulness hath brought himself to want. And what else

can the spiritual sluggard look for?  The cold keeps him heartlessly

from the house of God. His soul is therefore perishing for lack of good.

If wishing would secure heaven, who would miss it? But heartless

wishes, without the crucifixion of the flesh, will stop short of the

promise. Millions have perished in serious religion, from want of

diligence and self-sacrificing devotedness. And what will it be to beg

in the great harvest, and beg in vain;1 then to have all wicked excuses

silenced, and the fearful doom pronounced upon the unprofitable

servant!2

            Christian professor! is it time to stand idle, when we stand at the

door of eternity? —to be slack, when so near our great salvation?

(Rom. xiii. 11.)  ‘Blessed are those, who have sown much for God in

their lifetime. Oh! the glorious harvest that those shall have ! The

 

1 Matt. xxv. 3-9. Luke, xvi. 24.               2 Matt. xxv. 26-30.

* Matt. xix. 21, 22. The shrinking from the cold—(as Melancthon observes in his brief

comment on this verse)—is the avoiding the cross.

 POOLE'S Annotations.


338         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

very angels shall help them to take in their harvest at the great day.  

And oh! the joy that there shall be in that harvest! The angels will

help to sing the harvest-song, that they shall sing, who have been

sowers of righteousness!*

 

5. Counsel in the heart of man is like deep water; but a man of

                            understanding will draw it out.

            The depths in the heart of man are not easily fathomed. Often are

they the subtilty of evil.1  David was duped by the smooth promises

of Saul,2 and afterwards by the religious hypocrisy of his ungodly son.3

The counsel of Daniel's enemies was too deep for Darius to see the

bottom of it.4  The counsel of Herod probably blinded the wise men as

to his real intentions.5  And yet a man of understanding will often

draw out the subtle counsel, and set it in its true light. David described

the deep counsels of his enemies, as one who had penetrated the bottom.6

Job accurately discovered the true, but indirect, counsel of his mistaken

friends. (Job, xxi. 27, 28.) Paul drew out the secret counsel of selfish-

ness in the schismatical preachers of the gospel. (Phil. i. 15.)

            But let us look at the bright side. Observe a man of God, in-

structed by God. Natural sagacity of intellect is deepened and

enlarged by spiritual light. His mind is enriched with the fruits of

scriptural study and meditation. Here are the deep waters of heavenly

counsel.7 The talkative professor in his superficial judgment sees

nothing. But a man of understanding will discover and draw out

valuable instruction. The Queen of Sheba thus drew out from the wise

man's capacious well deep and wholesome water. (1 Kings, x. 1-7.

Often, however, men of comprehensive mind have little sympathy with

general society. We may be in contact with them, without conscious-

ness of their worth. The waters are deep; but there is no bubbling up.

Yet a well-directed excitement will draw out flowing water from the

well-spring of wisdom. And often the intercourse, hitherto lost, with

a godly and experienced minister, or a soundly-instructed Christian,

becomes most precious—"He that walketh with wise men shall be

wise.' (Chap. xiii. 20.) But above all is to be prized familiarity with

the deep waters of the counsel of God. Say not—"I have nothing to

draw with, and the well is deep." (John, iv. 11.) A thinking habit in

the exercise of prayer will enable you "with joy to draw water from

the wells of salvation." (Isa. xii. 3.) Nay—will it not bring into

your own soul "a well of water, springing, up unto everlasting life?"

(John, iv. 14.)

           

1  Jer. xvii. 9.                 2 1 Sam. xviii. 17-20.      3 2 Sam. xv. 7-9.

4  Dan. vi. 4-9.              5 Matt. ii. 8.                   6 Ps. lxiv. 5, 6; cxix. 98.

7 Chap. xviii. 4. Contrast xxvi. 7, 9.

                        * BURROUGHS on Hos. x. 12.


                                             CHAP. XX. 6.                                       339

 

6. Most men will proclaim every one his own goodness; but a faithful

                                         man who can find?

            The last Proverb spewed the depth of the heart; this its deceitful-

ness and pride. Hear a man's own estimate of himself, and we need

no further proof of his want of self-knowledge. (Chap. xvi. 2.) Even

the ungodly proclaims his own goodness, "Jehu took no heed to walk

in the way of the Lord.' Still—said he--"Come, see my zeal for the

Lord."l  Absalom, while treason was at work within, "stole the hearts"

of the people by his loud pretensions to goodness.2 The whole nation,

while given up to all manner of iniquity, boasted of its integrity.3 The

Pharisee proclaimed his goodness at the corner of the streets;4 yea—

even in the presence of his God.5 Such is the blindness of a self-

deceiving heart! Lord! teach me to remember—"That which is

highly esteemed among men is abomination in the sight of God."6

            After all, however, does not this glass, honestly used, exhibit more

resemblance to our own features, than we would readily admit? We

all condemn the open boasting of the Pharisee. But too often we

eagerly catch at the good opinion of the world. Contrivance is made

to gain the shadowy prize!  A seeming backwardness is only, in order

that others may bring us forward. Care is taken, that it be known

that we were the authors, or at least, that we had a considerable part in

some work, that might raise our name in the Church. Sometimes we

are too ready to take a degree of credit to ourselves, which we do not

honestly deserve;* while we shrink from real reproach and obloquy

for the gospel's sake.

            In opposition to this self-complacent goodness, Solomon, an accurate

observer of human nature, exclaims almost in despondency--A faithful

man—as a parent--a reprover—an adviser---one "without guile"--

who can find? (Mic. vii. 1, 2.) Look close. View thyself in the glass

of the word. (Ps. ci. 6.) Does thy neighbour, or thy friend, find thee

faithful to him? What does our daily intercourse witness? Is not

the attempt to speak what is agreeable often made at the expense of

truth? Are not professions of regard sometimes utterly inconsistent

with our real feelings? In common life, where gross violations are

restrained, a thousand petty offences are allowed, that break down the

wall between sin and duty, and, judged by the Divine standard, are

 

1 2 Kings, x. 16, 19-31.                                                   2 2 Sam.. xv. 1-6.

3 Jer. ii. 23, 35; v. 1. Comp. Rom. ii. 17-23.

4 Matt. vi.1, 2, 5, 16; xxiii. 5. Comp. chap. xxvii. 2.           5 Luke, xviii. 11, 12.

6 Ib. xvi. 15.

    * Chap. xxv. 14. Thus Lysias, the chief captain, represented to the governor, that he

had interposed for Paul from his zeal for a Roman citizen, when the simple truth was, that

he was ignorant of the fact at the time, and was about to scourge him as a rebel. Acts,

xxiii. 27, with xxi. 33, xxii. 24.


340           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

indeed guilty steps upon forbidden ground. Never let it be forgotten,

that the sound influence of the social virtues can only be maintained

by the graces of the gospel. Never let the Christian professor deem

moral integrity to be a low attainment. The man of God bursts forth

into fervent praise for upholding grace in this path. (Ib. xlii. 11, 12.)

For indeed, what can bring greater honour to God, than the proof

manifested in the conduct of his people,athat their daily transactions

are animated with the soul of integrity, that their word is unchange-

able? Never does godliness shine more bright, than in "shewing all

good fidelity in all things." (Tit. ii. 10.)

 

7. The just man walketh in his integrity: his children are blessed

                                            after him.

            The faithful man is here fully drawn, rich in the blessing of his God.

Take the history of the father of the faithful. Abraham was the just

man, accepted with God, and "walking before him" in his integrity.

And did not the covenant of his God engage an everlasting blessing for

his children after him? (Gen. xvii. 1, 2, 7.) And thus does every child

of Abraham, walking in the same integrity, secure "an inheritance for his

children's children."1  It is ‘not however for the merits of the parent,

that they deserve it: but such is the mercy of God to the root and the

branches; that, because the fathers are loved, their children also are

embraced.'*  But we must shew our integrity, as did our father

Abraham, in the practical habit of faith; not only "taking hold of the

covenant" on our children's behalf, but bringing them under the yoke

of the covenant.2

            Christian parents!—let integrity, as before God, be the broad stamp

of our family religion. Walk not according to the maxims of the

world yourselves, nor allow them in your children. Let us make God's

word—his whole word—our universal rule; his ways, however

despised, our daily portion. "Let us seek first," for our children as for

ourselves, "the kingdom of God and his righteousness." Thus

walking in our integrity, we may look for the honoured blessing of being

the parents of a godly race. Our children are blessed after us; perhaps

"after we, having served our own generation by the will of God, shall

 

1 Chap. xiii. 22. Comp. Ex. xx. 5, 6. Ps. xxv. 12, 13; xxxvii. 26; cxii. 2.

2 Chap. xxii. 6, with Gen. xviii. 19.

  * Muffet in loco. ‘The branches fare better for the sap of grace in the root.'—Swis-

Nock's Christian Man's Calling, p. 383. ' When God saith—He will be a God to, the godly

man and to his children, I believe he intended more in that promise for the comfort of

godly parents than most of them think of. Acts, ii. 39. Gen. xvii. 7. The children of

believers are heirs apparent to the co'benant of grace in their parents' right.'—Ib. The True

Christian, p, 193.

  Matt. vi. 33. This was Mr. Scott's grand rule of edification; and the manifest honour,

which his Master vouchsafed to his singleness and integrity in acting it out, is well known.

1 Sam. ii. 30. See Life, pp. 611-614.

 

                                            CHAP. xx. 8.                                   341

 

have fallen asleep." (Acts, xiii. 36.) But well may we be content to

wait the coming of that great disclosing day, when "the thoughts of

many hearts shall be revealed." For then surely will the children's

blessing be found in the secret records of Heaven, linked with the

prayerful, practical exercises of the parents' faith and love.

 

8. A king that sitteth in the throne of judgment scattereth away all evil

                                             with his eyes.

            This is the picture of a godly king, such as the wise man's father

described and exemplified; "just, ruling in the fear of God;"1 making

it his great care and business to execute judgment. In those days he

sat himself on the throne of judgment, and decided the law.*  And such

might be conceived to be his influence, that the wicked dared not come

and sin in his presence. "Will he force the queen also before me?"

(Esth. vii. 8) —was the indignant exclamation of a sovereign, on

feeling not only his own rights, but the reverence for royalty, grossly

outraged. David, as a man of God, and a sovereign of his people;

could not endure the wicked in his presence. (Ps. ci. 3-8.)

            At present, "God standeth in the congregation of princes" (Ib.

lxxxii. 1), observing the manner, in which they execute the power

delegated to them; but hereafter he shall sit as "a judge" even of

them, who, by reason of that delegated power, are styled "gods." The

care then of the Magistrate, when he goeth up to the judgment-seat,

will be to put on righteousness as a glorious and beautiful robe, and to

render his tribunal a fit emblem of that eternal "throne," of which

"justice and judgment are the habitation."  And always in pro-

portion as the ruler realizes his solemn responsibility, evil will be made

to flee, and scattered away from him.‡

            But what is to be ever standing before the Great King, who scattereth

away all evil with his eyes?  "Thou art of purer eyes than to behold

evil, and cannot look on iniquity. The foolish shall not stand in thy

sight. All things are naked and opened unto the eyes of him with

whom we have to do." (Heb. i. 13. Ps. v. 5. Heb. iv. 13.) May the

High Priest ever stand between the sinner and the Holy God, that,

while we walk in reverence, we "may not be afraid with any amaze-

ment!"

 

                        1 2 Sam. xxiii. 3, with 2 Sam. viii. 15. 1 Kings, xv. 5.

   * 1 Kings, iii. 16-28, with x. 9. A Roman commentator (Corn. Lapide) mentions

the custom of St. Louis of France to sit twice a-week in the throne of judgment, and his

dying charge to his successor, not only to appoint the most upright judges, but to overlook

them in the discharge of their office. Does not the Court of the Queen's Bench suppose the

Sovereign to be sitting there in determination of judgment?

   Ps. lxxxix. 14. Bishop HORNE's Sermon on the Great Assize.

    ‡ Verse 26; xxv. 4, 5. Comp. 2 Chron. xv. 16. Plutarch relates of Cato, that such was

the reverence of his character, that the bad women of Rome could not bear his look.


342     EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

9. Who can say, I have made my heart clean, I am pure from my sin?

            Behold the Great King sitteth on the throne of judgment, and chal-

lenging every child of Adam--"Gird up now thy loins like a man; for

I will demand of thee; and answer thou me." (Job, xxxviii. 3.) The

question is confounding. The answer humbles us in the dust- Who

can say—truly say---I have made my heart clean? A sinner in his self-

delusion may conceive himself to be a saint. But that a saint should

ever believe that he made himself so, is impossible. Who can say--I

am pure from my sin? What! no vain thoughts, no sinful imaginations,

lodging within! No ignorance, pride, wandering, coldness, worldli-

ness, unbelief indulged! The more we search the heart, the more will

its impurity open upon us. "Turn thou yet again, and thou shalt see

greater abominations" (Ezek. viii.. 13), evils hitherto unsuspected.

Vain boasters there are, who proclaim their good hearts. But the

boast proves, not their goodness, but their blindness; that man is so

depraved, that he cannot understand his own depravity.1  What say

they, who have entered into the presence of the King, whose holiness

scattereth away all evil?  "Behold! I am vile!" said one. "Now

mine eye seeth thee. Wherefore I abhor myself."  "Woe is me"—said

another--"for I am a man of unclean lips, for mine eyes have seen the

King, the Lord of hosts."2  Take again one—counted as the foremost

of the saints of God; a very flame of love for Christ and his Church;

"in labours more abundant than all;" in tenderness as a mother for

her new-born child; in walk "holy, just, and unblameable"--does he

speak of his purity from, sin? Verily in his highest state of Christian

attainment he feels himself to be the chief of sinners—a wondrous

"pattern of Divine long-suffering." (1 Tim. i. 15, 16.) Such was the

mighty power of depravity, mingled with such shining grace, that but

for a miracle of instant Almighty help, he might have been thrown from

"the third heavens into the snare of the devil."3 To descend to the

level near to our own day.  ‘Once I thought'—said a holy man of

God—'some humiliating expressions of the saints of God, too low for

me—proud, blind wretch as I was!  Now I can say with Edwards

‘Infinite upon infinite only reaches to my sinfulness.''*  And indeed

there is not a conscious child of God, that does not drink into this self-

abased spirit. But for the clear manifestation of gospel grace, should

we not have cause to tremble, lest our sins—after such multiplied

engagements on our part, and such tender long-suffering on God's part

—should remain in all their hundredfold aggravations uncancelled in

the great account, and consign us in just demerit "to everlasting

 

1 1 John, i. 8. Comp. 1 Kings, viii. 46. Eccles. vii. 20. Jer. ii. 35. Hos. xii. 8.

2 Job, xl. 4; xlii. 5, 6. Isa. vi. 5.               3 2 Cor. xii. 2-7, with 1 Tim.iii. 6, 7.

                                                * VENN's Life, p. 183.


                                      CHAP. XX. 10.                                         343

 

punishment?" The clean heart therefore is not the heart pure from sin,

but the heart cleansed and renewed by grace. And truly, if none can

say---I have made my heart clean, myriads can witness to the blood of

him, who is the Son of God, cleansing it from guilt (1 John, i. 7), and

to the mightiness of the Creator to renew it unto holiness.

            But are there not many, who in the house of God will confess them-

selves miserable sinners, and at the holy table will acknowledge 'the

burden of their sin to be intolerable,' who yet will go back to the world,

and boast or comfort themselves in the confidence of their goodness?

confessing indeed, that they are sinners, but stoutly warding off every

charge of sin?  Ah! such are not "the heavy-laden," to whom Christ

hath promised "rest" (Matt. xi. 28); not "the lost, whom the Son of

Man is come to seek and to save." (Luke, xix. 10.) They will lie

beside the cleansing fountain, but never care to "wash and be clean."

But observe in this proverb the fundamentals of the gospel—man's

total corruption ; his inability to make his heart clean; and his grievous

tendency to self-deception. Hence his need. Hence, when that need

is felt, the value of the cleansing remedy. "If I wash thee not, thou

bast no part in me." If this be so, then, Lord, "not my feet only, but

my hands and my head." (John, xiii. 8, 9.) "Wash me throughly

from my transgressions, that I may be whiter than snow. Create in me

a clean heart, 0 God, and renew a right spirit within me." (Ps. li.

2, 7, 10.)

 

10. Divers weights (a stone and a stone, marg.) and divers measures (an

            ephah and an ephah, marg.) both of them are alike abomination to

            the Lord.

            This probably refers to the iniquitous custom of having different

weights and measures for buying and for selling—one stone too heavy

the other too light. Such practices seem to have been among the crying

sins of the nation, that brought down the judgment of God upon it.l

So opposite are they to the character of "a God of truth and without

iniquity,"2 that the very stone and ephah were abomination to him.3 The

disuse of barter, and the more accurate system of inspection, have in

some measure restrained this gross form of fraud. But the cheats of

trickery and close dealing, the evasion of legal duties, taking advantage

of the ignorance of the unwary--all those deviations from the scriptural

standard are alike abomination to the Lord.   'A very grievous thing it is

to think of the several kinds of frauds and deceits, wherein men are

grown wondrous expert, and so shameless withal, that they think it

rather a credit to them, as an argument of their perfect understanding

 

1 Hos. xii. 7. Amos, viii. 4, 5. Mic. vi. 10, 11.                   2 Deut, xxxii. 4.

3 Verse 23; xi. 1; Ps. v. 6.


344        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

in their several mysteries and particular professions, than any

blemish to them in their Christian profession.'*  What a fearful dis-

closure will the great day make, to the "shame and everlasting

contempt" of the ungodly trafficker! Every man of moral integrity

will scorn the flagrant breach of the golden rule. But let this, as every

other temptation, be a matter of prayerful watchfulness. And be not

satisfied with abstaining from this hateful vice. But blot out its dark-

ness by the bright, steady shining of an upright profession, full of sim-

plicity, love, self-forgetfulness, and active sympathy with our neigh-

bour's wants. "Let integrity and uprightness preserve me; for I wait

on thee." (Ps. xxv. 21.)

 

11. Even a child is known by his doings, whether his work be pure, and

                                      whether it be right.

            Let parents watch their children's early habits, tempers, and doings.

Generally the discerning eye will mark something in the budding of the

young tree, by which the tree in maturity may be known. The child

will tell what the man will be. No wise parent will pass over little

faults, as if it was only a child doing childish things. Everything

should be looked at as the index of the secret principle, and the work

or word should be judged by the principle. If a child be deceitful,

quarrelsome, obstinate, rebellious, selfish, how can we help trembling

for his growth? A docile, truth-loving, obedient, generous child—how

joyous is the prospect of the blossom and fruit from this hopeful

budding! From the childhood of Samuel,1 Timothy,2  much more of

the Saviour,3 we could not but anticipate what the manhood would be.

The early purity and right principles promised abundant and most

blessed fruit.

            But do we mourn over the evil of our child, specially when tracing

it to its original source?  Oh! let it be our stimulus to earnest and

persevering prayer, and to the diligent use of the appointed means for

that entire change of heart and nature, which we so intensely desire.

Take the child to the covenant of grace. Put the finger on the parental

promise (Gen. xvii. 7), and plead—"Remember the word unto thy

servant, whereunto thou hast caused me to hope." (Ps. cxix. 49.) The

answer may be delayed. But "though it tarry, wait for it. For at the

end it shall come; it shall not tarry." Meanwhile "live by faith" (Heb.

ii. 3, 4); work in faith. Never forget that we serve "the God of

Hope."  Despair not of his grace. Doubt not his faithfulness. Hold

on in active energy and patient hope. The tears of despondency

 

1 Sam. i. 28; iii. 19, 20.   2 2 Tim. iii. 14, 15, with i. 5. Phil. ii. 20, 21.

3 Luke, ii. 50-52.

                         * Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on I Sam. xii. 3.

            ‘A child is known by his conversation.'—Bishop Coverdale.


                                         CHAP. XX. 12.                                   345

 

shall be changed into tears of joy, giving a happy glow of warmth to

every tender remonstrance, and animating every prudential effort.

Thus the prodigal shall yet return. "The end of the Lord" will put

unbelief to shame. (James, v. 11.)  Sore indeed was the trial of the

faith of Augustine's mother. But most glorious was the crown of her

patient wrestling constancy. And ever since has the judgment of the

godly Archbishop—‘It is impossible that the child of so many prayers

could ever perish'--been treasured up in the Church, as an axiom of

accredited warrant, and cheering support.

 

12. The hearing ear, and the seeing eye, the Lord hath made both of

                                                  them.

            Seeing and hearing are the two senses, by which instruction is con-

veyed to the mind, They are component parts of that Divine struc-

ture, so "fearfully and wonderfully made."*  The natural senses are

gifts common to all. The spiritual senses are the special gifts of sove-

reign power and grace.1 It was left for marl to make the ear that

cannot hear, and the eye that cannot see; and then to degrade himself to

the senseless level, by worshipping the work of his own hand. (Ps. cxv.

4-8.) But the hearing ear, and the seeing eye, the Lord hath made both

of them.

            Man is deaf and blind in the things of God—"Having ears, he

hears not; having eyes, he sees not." (Matt. xiii. 13, 14.) The voice of

mercy is disregarded. To his need, and to his remedy, he is alike

insensible. His ear is open to sound advice, to moral doctrine, to the

dictates of external decency. But as to the gospel, he is a mere statue,

without life: All his senses are blinded, deadened, chained. (2 Cor. iv.

3, 4.) His moral disabilities can only be removed by that Almighty

power, which on earth gave ears to the deaf, and sight to the blind.2

As soon could we create our natural, as new-create our spiritual, self.

The hearing ear, which Solomon intends, is that which believeth and

obeyeth what it heareth. The seeing eye is that, which so seeth, as that

it followeth the good which it seeth.'  But who of us, whose ears are

wakened, and whose eyes are opened, will not rejoice in the adoring ac-

knowledgment—The Lord hath made both of them?  Would Lydia

have ascribed "the opening of her heart" with a new power of attention

and interest to her own natural effort? (Acts, xvi. 14. Comp. Isa. i. 4.)

0 my God---may the ears and eyes which thou hast made be for thyself

alone ! to hear thy voice (1 Sam. iii. 9. Ps. lxxxv. 8) —to "behold thy

beauty." (Ps. xxvii. 4 ; lxiii. 2.)

 

1 Matt. xiii. 16, with Deut. xxix. 2-4.       2 Mark, vii. 34; viii. 22, 25, with Isa. xxxv. 5.

   * Ps. cxxxix. 14. Comp. Ps. xciv. 9. Exod. iv. 11. The celebrated Galen is said to

have been converted from Atheism by an attentive observation of the perfect structure of

the eye.

    CARYL on Job, xxxiv. 3.


346       EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

13. Love not sleep, lest thou come to poverty; open thine eyes, and thou

                              shalt be satisfied with bread.

            Use ‘sleep, as tired nature's sweet restorer.'*   So man requires it.

So God graciously gives it. (Ps. iii. 5; iv. 8; cxxvii. 2.)  Without it

"man" could not "go forth to his work and to his labour." (Ib. civ. 23.)

Thus recruited for the active diligence of the day, he opens his eyes, "in

the sweat of his brow he eats his bread (Gen. iii. 19), and is satisfied with

it."  But love not sleep for its own sake.  ‘Let your sleep be necessary

and healthful, not idle and expensive of time beyond the needs and

conveniences of nature.'Otherwise may it become a baneful and

ruinous habit, by which the man of talent, who has much responsibility

upon his hand, and no heart to act up to it--cometh to poverty. Valuable

opportunities for improvements are let slip, and "the strong man

armed" readily takes possession of his prey. (Chap. v. 9-11.) Strange

inconsistency and delusion! Man wishes for a long life, and yet wil-

fully shortens the life given to him, by dozing it away in sleep!‡  

The time given for eternity is wasted. The talent entrusted for trading

is hid in a napkin. Nothing is done for God, for the soul, for his

fellow-creatures, or for heaven justly is he cast out as a wicked,

because a slothful, servant. (Matt. xxv. 14-30.)

            Unquestionably the Christian degrades himself from his proper level

by needless indulgence; choosing a state common to him with the

brutes, before that which elevates him to fellowship with angels. Nor

can he set his heavenly privilege of communion with God at a very

high estimate, if he be not willing to sacrifice fleshly pleasure for the

enjoyment of it. The evil however does not end with the present

indulgence. The habits of the day are enervated. The mind is--at

least partially—asleep, during the routine of occupation. What is

idle, or calling for little effort, is alone agreeable. Every exercise of

self-denial is revolting. It is sufficiently obvious that this spirit has

little sympathy with the genuine spirit of religion—life and spirit, and

joy and energy. It sinks far below the step and obligation of those,

whose profession is —"temples of the Holy Ghost,"1 "children of the

light and of the day,"2 "virgins with their lamps trimmed "3 for the

 

11 Cor. xvi. 19.              2 1 Thess. v. 5, 6.                      3 Matt. xxv. 7.

   * Young.                                Bishop TAYLOR'S Holy Living, Chap. I. Sect. i.

    ‡ Chap. xix: 15. Dr. Doddridge's life, though far from reaching the age of man (Ps.

xe. 10), was yet, by the resistance of this besetting temptation, virtually extended to the

ordinary bounds. By his successful energy in redeeming time from sleep he accomplished

his invaluable work in the midst of multiplied engagements. See Family Expositor on

Rom. xii. 13. ‘I take it for granted, that every Christian, who is in health, is up early in

the morning. For it is much more reasonable to suppose a person up early, because he is a

Christian, than because he is a labourer, or a tradesman, or a servant, or has business that

wants him.'— Law's Serious Call.


                                   CHAP. XX. 14.                                       347

 

bridegroom's coming, animated candidates for an incorruptible and

eternal crown.l

            Specially should those of us, who are of a drowsy habit of body,

listen to the call—Love not sleep. Here perhaps may be the Christian

conflict, often most painful in the house of God. But in this solemn

assembly—the gate of heaven—may we not hear the gentle rebuke,

"What! could ye not watch with me one hour? Watch and pray,

that ye enter not into temptation." (Matt. xxvi. 40, 41.) When

resisted, it is an infirmity; when allowed, or only feebly opposed, it is

sin. At all events, in the service of God it is safer to consider it, not

as a weariness to be encouraged, but as an indulgence to be mortified,

and that with vigorous energy of conflict.  Else, whilst the self-denying

Christian will open his eyes, and be filled with bread, the power of the flesh

may impoverish the spirit by the indulgence of a lifeless habit of

prayer, hearing, and meditation.

 

14. It is naught, it is naught, saith the buyer; but when he is gone his way,

                                          then he boasteth.*

            The Bible gives abundant proof, that man has always been the same

in every generation since the fall. Where is the market, in which the

counterpart to this disclosure of fraud and selfishness centuries ago is

not found? Commerce, the Lord's providential dispensation to bind

man to man, is marred by his depravity. The wise man had before

detected the iniquity of the seller. (Verse 10. Comp. Ecclus. xxvii. 2.)

Here he lays bare the buyer, and, to bring it home more closely, he

gives even the market-language--It is naught—it is naught—'The

article is of an inferior quality. I can get it cheaper elsewhere. If it

is worth so much, yet not to me; I have no present want of it, no

particular care about it.'  And when by these convenient falsehoods he

has struck a shrewd bargain, he is gone his way; he boasteth, laughing at

the simplicity of the seller, and is probably highly commended for his

cleverness. (Jam. iv. 16.)

            The same principle of fraud applies to the seller. If the one says

It is naught—it is naught—the other no less eagerly cries—‘It is

good—it is good'—'when neither of both speaketh, either as he

thinketh, or as the truth of the thing is.'  The one is bent on buying

cheap; the other on selling dear. The one decries unjustly; the other

praises untruly. He asks one price, when he means to take another,

and takes advantage of the confidence of his customer to impose on him

a worthless article.‡  In fact, 'no man's experience would serve him to

 

1 1 Con ix. 24, 25.

* Verses 14-19 are omitted in LXX.       Bishop SANDERSON's Sermon on 1 Sam. xii. 3.

 ‡ Amos, viii. 6. Contrast the disinterested transaction Gen. xxiii. 3-18. Augustine men-

tions a somewhat ludicrous, but significant, story.  A mountebank published in the full


348           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

comprehend, no man's breath to declare, the infinite variety of those

more secret and subtle falsehoods, that are daily invented and exercised

everywhere under the sun.'*

            All of us are engaged in pecuniary transactions. With many it is

the main business of life. Yet such are the temptations from our own

interest or self-defence, the selfishness of others, and the general

example of the world, to deviate from the straight line; that we should

be most thankful for this probing analysis of deceit. The man of God

stands on the frontier of the line of demarcation, and warns against a

single step of encroachment. Passing over the line is bidding defiance

to the Great King. The gain may be trifling, but the sin is vast.

Enough of guilt was included within the dimensions of a single apple,

to ‘bring death into the world and all its woe' to successive generations.

And here the law of God is deliberately broken;1  conscience is

violated; deceit is practised; "evil is called good, and good evil" (Isa.

v. 20); our duty to our neighbour transgressed; and all this— perhaps

without a moment of remorse--only to feed man's covetousness.

            But do Christian professors always prove themselves clear in this

matter?  Yet how can we be Christians really, if not relatively and

universally; if not in the week, as well as on the Sabbath; if not

in our dealings with men, as well as our communion with God?

What is our title to the name of disciples of Christ, unless we

yield to his authority, and in heart, hand, and tongue, are governed

by his laws? Let us each ask—Have we trembled before the solemn

warnings of the great Lawgiver?2  Are we ready to be tried by his

rules of guileless simplicity (Matt. v. 37), and reciprocal justice? (Matt.

vii. 12.) Have we always acted as under the eye of God? Are there

no money transactions, that we should be ashamed to have "proclaimed

upon the house-tops?"  Are we prepared to go to the bar of a heart-

searching God, with "a conscience void of offence both towards God

and towards man?" (Acts, xxiv. 16) —Let us never forget the gospel,

as the only principle, expulsive of selfishness, in its active exercise of

grateful devoted love, and in its indefatigable spirit of "doing all to

the glory of God."

 

15. There is gold, and a multitude of rubies; but the lips of knowledge are

                                          a precious jewel.

            This is not the standard of the world. There gold and rubies are

 

1 Comp. Lev. xix. 11; xxv. 14.    2 Col. iii. 25. 1 Thess. iv. 6.

theatre, that in the next entertainment he would show to every man present what was in

his heart. An immense concourse attended, and the man redeemed his pledge to the vast

assembly by a single sentence—‘Vili vultis emere, et caro vendere'—‘You all wish to buy

cheap, and to sell dear'—a sentence generally applauded: every one, even the most trifling

(as Augustine observes) finding the confirming witness in their own conscience. De Trin.

Lib. xiii. c. 111.

                        * Bishop SANDERSON, ut supra.


                                        CHAP. XX. 15, 16.                                      349

 

far above the lips of knowledge. So the young man made his choice,

and preferred his "great possessions" to those gracious words, that

arrested the admiration of the multitude.1  But when "gold is our

hope and confidence," it will surely be our ruin.2  Solomon's estimate

was that of one, to whom "the Lord had given a wise and understand-

ing heart."3  Gold and precious rubies were abundant in his days.4

Yet all these earthly treasures were as nothing in his eyes in comparison

of heavenly teaching. The lips of knowledge were a more precious jewel.*

It is Divine knowledge only, however, that stands out in this high pre-

eminence. Human wisdom may captivate the imagination, and

furnish its measure of useful information. But the words for the most

part die away upon the ear. They do not feed the heart. They

furnish no comfort to the afflicted, no hope to the desponding, no teach-

ing to the ignorant in " those things that belong to their "everlasting

"peace." (Luke, xix. 42.) If therefore they be "goodly pearls," at

least they are not" the pearl of great price"--that precious jewel, which

dims the lustre of earth's most splendid vanities. (Matt. xiii. 45, 46.)

            How precious a jewel are the lips of knowledge, when the messenger

of the gospel "brings glad tidings of great joy" to the burdened con-

science— to him "that is ready to perish !" Truly the very sound of

his "feet" is welcome for the sake of his message. Precious also will

be the communications of Christian fellowship. Though falling in-

finitely short of the grace that dwelt in our Divine Master; yet in pro-

portion as we are taught of him, will our "tongues be as choice silver

(Chap. x. 20), and our "lips will disperse knowledge" (Chap. xv. 7) as a

precious jewel, enriching, and adorning with the glory of our heavenly

Lord.

16. Take has garment, that is surety for a stranger; and take a pledge of

                    him for a strange woman. (Chap. xxvii. 13.)

            Again and again are we warned against suretyship for a stranger,5--

any new acquaintance, whose company may entice; much more for a

strange woman, whose character has lost all credit. This is the sure road to

beggary and ruin. If a man is so weak as to plunge into this folly, he

is not fit to be trusted. Lend nothing to him without good security.

Nay, if needful, take his garment as his pledge. The letter of the Mosaic

law forbade this extremity.6  But the spirit and intent of the law

 

1 Matt. xix. 22, with Luke, iv. 22.                        2 Job, xxxi. 24, with 1 Tim. vi. 9, 10.

3 1 Kings, iii. 9.                                      4 Ib. x. 27.

5 Chap. vi. 1-5; xi. 15 ; xvii. 18.

6 Exod. xii. 26, 27. Deut. xxiv. 12, 13. Comp. Job, xxii. 6. Amos, ii. 8.

* Chap. iii. 15; viii. 10, 11, 19; xvi. 16. Job gave the same verdict, chap. xxviii. 12-119.

 Isa. lii. 7. Rom. x. 14, 15. Such was the delight of hanging upon the lips of the

golden-mouthed Chrysostom, that the common proverb was—‘Rather let the sun not shine

than Chrysostom not preach.'


350          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

pointed at the protection of the poor and unfortunate, who were forced

to borrow for their own necessity, and, therefore claim pity. The com-

mand here touches the inconsiderate, who deserve to suffer for their

folly, in wilfully plunging themselves into ruin. Nor does it in any

degree incur the just suspicion of covetousness or close dealing. The

love of our neighbour does not involve the forgetfulness of ourselves.

The path of godly prudence is the safest for all parties. It never can

be wise to assist, where kindness only gives advantage to hurry on to

ruin. The refusal may be an exercise of self-denial. It is well that it

should be so. Let it be clearly seen to be the sacrifice, not the indul-

gence, of self-prudence, not selfishness. This grace is one of the

combined perfections of Immanuel. (Chap. viii. 12.) Let it not be

wanting in the profession of his people. It is necessary to the com-

pleteness of the Christian profession, and to avoid many occasions of

offence to the Gospel.

 

17. Bread of deceit is sweet to a man; but afterwards his mouth shall be

                                               filled with gravel.

            'Holiness is sweet in the way and end too. Wickedness is some-

times sweet in the way, but always bitter in the end.'*  It is with

deceit, as with every other sin, Satan always holds out a bait always

promises gain or pleasure as the wages of his service, and as surely

disappoints the victims of his delusion.1   If corn be thrashed upon a

gravelly floor, the grating soil would spoil the sweetness of the bread.

Oh! how many has this arch-deceiver allured by the sweetness of his

bread, whose mouths have been afterwards filled with gravel!  ‘The

bread, which a man hath got by fraud and cozenage, seems sweet and

pleasant at the first taste of it but by that time he hath chewed it a

little, he shall find it to be but harsh gravel, that crasheth between his

teeth, galls his jaws, wounds his tongue, and offends his palate.'

Everything gotten wrongfully is here implied.'‡  Bitter was Achan's

sweet, deceitfully hid in the tent, which brought ruin upon himself and

his family. (Josh. vii. 21-24.) Look at Gehazi. What profit had he

from his talents of silver and changes of garments? Bitter indeed was

the bread of deceit to him. (2 Kings, v. 20-27.) Look even at Jacob, a

true servant of God; and yet chastened heavily almost to the end of

his days with the bitter fruits of deceit. (Gen. xxvii.; xlii. 36-38.) To

the mass of such blinded sinners it is eternal ruin. Whatever be the

tempter's proffered advantage, his price is the soul, to be paid in the

dying hour. Oh! the undoing bargain! an eternal treasure bartered

for the trifle of a moment! Charmed we may be with the present

 

                                1 Chap. ix. 17, 18; xxiii. 31, 32. Job, xx. 12-16.

                                    * CARYL on Job, xx. 14.

     † Bishop Hall. Comp. Lam. iii. 16.          ‡ Bishop Patrick,


                                          CHAP. XX. 18.                                351

 

sweetness; but bitter indeed will be the after-fruits, when the poor

deluded sinner shall cry—"I tasted but a little honey, and I must

die." (1 Sam. xiv. 43.) So surely is the bitterness that springs out of

sin the bitterness of death.

            Not a single step can be trodden in the way if godliness, without

an entire renunciation of every accursed practice. Not even the

smallest violation of the law admits of palliatiot. To venture on

what we fancy the lesser shades of sin is a most dangerous experiment.

The smallest sin breaks down the fence; and this once overstepped,

the impulse is beyond our restraint. Universal uprightness is the

mark of the true servant of God. Let the man of doctrine exhibit the

holiness of doctrine. Never let ours religion be one thing, and our

business another. But let the image and glory of the Lord give the

pervading expression to our whole history. Every turning aside from

the straight path "grieves the Holy Spirit of God," darkens the sun-

shine of our soul, blasts the consistency of our procession, and wounds

the church of God.

 

18. Every purpose is established by counsel: and with good advice

                                              make war.

            This is true wisdom—to deliberate before we act, and to establish

our purpose by sound and experienced counsel. Even the wisest of men

valued this strengthening resource. (1 Kings, xii. 6. God has placed

us in society more or less dependent upon each other. And therefore,

while it is most important to possess a calm and decided judgment; it

is not less so to guard against an obstinate and exclusive adherence to

our own opinions. (Chap. xv. 22.) Especially in the national counsels

the rule is most weighty. With good advice make war. (Chap. xi. 14;

xxiv. 6.) Wars for the purpose of ambition or aggrandizement can

never be wisely made. Fearful may be the result of inconsiderate,

self-willed measures. David took counsel of the Lord;1 Nehemiah,

while supporting his courage by faith,2 established his purpose by counsel,

and called his counsel.to deliberate in all emergencies.3 Ahab, asking

counsel of his false prophets;4 Amaziah, despising he sound counsel

given to him5—both with bad advice made war to their own ruin.

Even godly Josiah—making every allowance for is circumstances,

was probably chargeable with precipitation; and, neglecting to establish

his purpose by the counsel of the Lord's prophets then living among his

people, was chastened with temporal destruction.*

            Now ponder Bishop Hall's description of the spiritual war.  'It

admits of no intermission. It knows no night, no winter. It abides

 

1 2 Sam. v. 17-23.          2 Neh. ii. 17-20; iv.        3 Ib. iv. 19, 20.

4 1 Kings, xxii. 6.           5 2 Kings, xiv. 8-12.

            * 2 Chron. xxxv. 20-24. Scott in loco.


352          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

no peace, no truce. It calls us not into garrison, where we may have

ease and respite, but into pitched fields continually. We see our

enemies in the face always, and are always seen and assaulted; ever

resisting, ever defending, receiving and returning blows. If either we

be negligent or weary, we die. What other hope is there, while one

fights, and the other stands still? We can never have safety and

peace, but in victory. Then must our resistance be courageous and

constant, when both yielding is death, and all treaties of peace mortal."*

Does not this war bring the greatest need of deliberate counsel, carefully

counting the cost (Luke, xiv. 31, 32); cleaving to our All-wise Coun-

sellor (Isa, ix. 6) and Almighty Helper? Yet fear not, under the

conscious direction of his counsel, and support of his grace, to take up

the song of praise—"Blessed be the Lord, my strength, which teacheth

my hands to war, and my fingers to fight!" (Ps. cxliv. 1.)

 

19. He that goeth about as a talebearer revealeth secrets: therefore meddle

                        not with him that flattereth with his lips.

            Never let us forget that all intercourse of social life must be based

on love. Any breach of this is highly displeasing to God. Witness

the talebearer. Unhappily he has much time on his hands unemployed

for any good purpose. Hence he spends it on other people's business;

ferreting out secrets, or diving into family arrangements. All this is

material for scandal, or for idleness. In his visit he talks of the affairs

of the last family. His present visit will furnish matter for idle talk in

the next house. And thus his name describes his work, indulging an

impertinent curiosity; making a tale of ever, thing he sees or hears.

It is the business of his life, for which all other business is sacrificed,

as if the whole man were one tongue, as if, in its restless babbling, it

had discovered the grand secret of perpetual motion. Such a one

meddle not with him. We would not wish him to look over our wall;

much less to enter into our houses; least of all, to associate with our

family circle, where his whole employment would be, either to draw

out, or to put in, what "was not convenient."

            The flagrant blot, however, in this contemptible, yet dangerous

character, is his unfaithfulness—going about--revealing secrets. (Chap.

xi. 13.) This is peculiarly offensive to a God of truth. Even when

matters have been given to him under a sea , his restless irritation

breaks through the feeble bond. He ‘dismantles and rends the robe

from the privacies of human intercourse. Who entrusts a secret to his

friend, goes thither as to a sanctuary; and to violate the rites of that,

 

 * Holy Observations, xxv.

     ‘Hic niger est:  hunc tu, Romane, caveto'—is the indignant warning of the Roman

Satirist.—HOR. Sat. lib. i. 4, 81—85.


                                          CHAP. XX. 20.                                    353

 

is sacrilege and profanation of friendship.'*  Never let us think this to

be a trifle. Never let us undertake a trust without the most resolute

determination of Christian faithfulness.

            Observe his other names—flattering with his lips. Thus he insinuates

himself into the secrets of the unwary, and gains his materials for tale-

bearing; flattering the present at the expense of the absent. Watch

and pray earnestly against this deadly evil. Keep thine own vineyard

carefully. Else if thine eye be abroad, when it ought to be at home,

it will be, like "the vineyard of the slothful, full of thorns and nettles"

(Chap. xxiv. 30, 31); like the ‘curious people,' whom Augustine re-

buked, who ‘pry into another's heart and life, but are slothful to amend

their own.'‡  Be diligent in your gown calling, serving the Lord and

his church. Study the obligation of Christian character, according to

the standard of the Divine Exemplar, whose every word was fraught

with the flowing of love.  Oh! how many in self-indulgence and for-

getfulness of their own obligations, because they have no employment

for their hands, set their tongues to work! (1 Tim. v. 13.) Such men

bring, as it were, the plague of flies with them (Exod. viii. 24); buzzing

from house to house, from one neighbour to another, all the report of

evil heard or done. A sharp reproof is their just desert, and an effectual

means of driving them away. (Chap. xxv. 123.)

 

20. Whoso curseth his father or his mother, his lamp shall be put out in

                                           obscure darkness.

            If darkness be the punishment, is it not also the cause, of this

atrocious sin?  For surely even the light of nature must be extin-

guished, ere the child should curse even those, who under God have

taught it to speak—the authors and preservers of its existence; its

greatest earthly benefactors. Even an undutiful look, much more a

word, is an offence against the commandment. What then must be

the weight of guilt involved in the cursing of them! The deepest

reverence is due to them when they are dead. (Jer. xxxv. 1-10.) What

then must be the provocation of sinning against them, while they are

living for their children, in all the active, self-denying energy of love

and service! This cursing, according to our Lord's standard, includes

"setting light by father or mother;"§ wilful disobedience--a fearful,

palpable mark of the last days.||  How God regards it, let his own curse

on Mount Ebal (Deut. xxvii. 16), and his judgment of temporal death,¶

 

     * Bp. TAYLOR's Sermon on the Good and Evil Tongue.

  † Mark the complaint, Cant. i. 6. Compare our Lord's probing advice, Matt. vii. 3-5.

     ‡ Confess. book x. c. 3,

     § Matt. xv. 3-6. The original words in Deut. xxvii. 16 (infra) precisely correspond.

     || 2 Tim. iii. 2. See also the black mark, Rom. i. 30, 31.

     ¶ Exod. xxi. 15, 17. Lev. xx. 9. Deut. xxi. 18-23. Comp. chap. xxx. 17. The Roman

punishment for a parricide was to be sewed up in a sack, and cast into the sea.— CICER.

pro Sext. Bose. Amorino, xi.


354         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

testify. The present degradation of Africa is a witness, on the con-

firming page of history, of the frown upon a undutiful son (Gen. ix.

22–25)--his lamp put out in darkness.* And if the temporal sentence

of death is repealed, the more awful judgment still remains unchange-

ably upon the Divine statute-book--obscure darkness--"the blackness

of darkness"— darkness eternal without a ray of light, of which "black-

ness" is only the shadow, to shew what the substance must be.

 

21. An inheritance may be gotten hastily at the beginning; but the end

                                thereof shall not be blessed.

            The wise man obviously limits his observation to an inheritance

gotten dishonestly. The advancement of Joseph in the glory of Egypt,1

of Mordecai in the Persian2 courts, of Daniel in Babylon3— was gotten

hastily; in a moment; yet under the special Providence of God. The

evil eye, hasting to be rich4 or great, may get an inheritance at the

beginning; but the end thereof shall be blasted,5 not blessed. Absalom6

acid Adonijah7 reached after a kingdom to their own ruin. One king

of Israel succeeded another, treading on each other hastily ; and each

hurrying on to destruction. (1 Kings, xvi. 8–22.) In our own history,

Richard the Third ended his hastily gotten crown in shame. In our

own day, Napoleon rose with astonishing rapidity to a magnificent

inheritance. Yet he finished his course in disgraceful banishment.

Less splendid possessions end in the same disappointment. What a

curse was that hastily gotten inheritance of Naboth's vineyard to the

reckless oppressor!8 Let not the warning be in vain—"They that

will be rich" What is the fruit?--"Many foolish and hurtful lusts,

many piercing sorrows." What is the end?  "Destruction and per-

dition." (1 Tim. vi. 9, 10.) Place the cross and crown of Jesus in.

view. The world fades, selfishness dies, a the very sight. One

object only attracts and satisfies.  "0 my soul, thou hast said unto the

Lord, Thou art my Lord; the portion of mine inheritance," (Ps. xvi.

2, 5.) Here is blessing beyond conception; without end.

 

22. Say not thou, I will recompense evil; but wait on the Lord, and he

                                            shall save thee.

            "Vengeance belongeth unto me—is the awful proclamation of

God.9 Most reverently do his people adore his high prerogative.10

Who besides is fitted to wield it?  He is Omniscient; we know but

imperfectly. He is without passions; we are blinded by our selfish

 

1 Gen. xli. 14-45.           2 Esth. vi. 11; viii. 15; x. 3.         3 Dan. ii. 46, 43.

4 Chap. xxviii. 20, 22.     5 Chap. x. 2, 3; xxi, 5; xxviii. 3.   6 2 Sam. xv. 10; xviii. 9-17.

7 1 Kings, i. 5-9 ; ii. 25.  8 1 Kings, xxi. 1-15, 19. Comp. Job xv. 29; xx. 18. Amos, vi. 4-8.

9 Deut. xxxii. 35. Rom. xii. 19. Heb. x. 30.          10 Ps. xciv. 1. Rev. vi. 10.

   * Chap. xiii. 9. Job, xviii. 5, 6, 18. Jude, 13. ‘The pupil of his eyes shall behold

darkness.'--LXX.


                                      CHAP. XX. 22,                                     355

 

lusts. He is just, "without partiality;" we are prejudiced on our

own side. What presumption, therefore, not to say impiety, for the

angry worm to entrench upon his prerogative! Revenge is indeed a

cherished lust of the flesh.*  Were it not for the Divine restraint upon

it, this world would be an "Aceldama—a field of blood." But never

did the Lord allow it in his people.  Not even an Edomite, their

most bitter enemy; not even the Egyptian, their most cruel oppressor

—was to be abhorred. (Neut. xxiii. 7.) The folly and sin of this

passion are alike manifest.  ‘He that studieth revenge, keepeth his

own wounds open.'‡  His enemy could not do him a greater injury.

The tongue, "speaking like the piercings of a sword" (Chap. xii. 18;

xxv. 18), is here the instrument of this passion. Yet often, when the

open purpose is restrained, the passion broods only the more fiercely

within.1 Or at least it is only a reluctant obedience, not the glorious

victory exhibited in the history of the men of God—"overcoming evil

with good."§

            What then is the remedy? In humility and faith lay our matters

before the Lord. Put them in his hands. Wait on him, and he shall

save us. Revenge rises, only because we have no faith. For did we

believe that God would take up our cause, should we not leave our-

selves implicitly in his hands? How did he plead the cause of "the

meekest man upon earth!"2  With what confidence did David rest

himself in the midst of reproach,3 thus warranting his rule of faith by

his own experience!4  And thus did David's Lord "commit himself

unto him that judgeth righteously." (1 Pet. ii. 23.) After this blessed

example therefore, "let those, that suffer according to the will of God,

commit the keeping of their souls to him in well-doing, as unto a

faithful Creator." (Ib. iv. 19.)  ‘Let it suffice thee for the "possessing

thine own soul in patience," to know, that all shall be righted one day.

God will set all straight at the last; but that day is not yet.'||  Be

satisfied then with his management. Suffice it, that "he shall deliver

and save, because we put our trust in him." (Ps. xxxvii. 39, 40.) Let

us stay our souls, as his praying people, on the great consummation.

"Shall not God avenge his own elect, which cry day and night unto

 

1 Gen. xxvii. 41. 2 Sam. xiii. 22.              2 Numb. xii. 1-10.

3 2 Sam. xvi. 12. Ps. xxxviii. 12-15.         4 Ps. xxxvii. 5, 6.

*  So even the Heathen acknowledged it

            Est vindicta bonum, et vita jucundius ipsa.

                                                            JUVEN. Sat. xiii. 180.

Chap. xxiv. 29. Lev. xix. 18. Observe the identity of this standard with that of the

New Testament—the teaching of our Lord—Matt. v. 38, 39, and his apostles, Rom. xii.

17, 19-21. 1 Thess. v. 15. 1 Pet. iii. 9. Comp. Ecelus. xxviii. 1-8.

‡ Lord Bacon.

§ Rom. xii. 21. Comp. Joseph, Gen. xlv. 5; L. 20. David, I Sam. xxiv. 18-21.

|| Bp. SANDERSON on Chap. xxiv. 10-12.


356     EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

him, though he bear long with them?  I tell you, that he will avenge

them speedily." (Luke, xviii. 7, 8.)

 

23. Divers weights are an abomination unto the Lord; and a false balance

                                                is not good.

            Here let us search into the mind of God. Thrice does he bring

home one point of practical detail. (Verses 10, 14, 23.) Yet doubtless

this is not a "vain repetition." (Matt. vi. 7.) There is a "needs-be"

for it. Instead of "precept upon precept, and line upon line" (Isa.

xxviii. 10), the infinite "treasures of wisdom and knowledge" might

have poured forth endless variety of instruction.  We wonder not to

see the apostolic ministry once and again upon the same argument of a

sinner's justification before God.*  And we gather from this repetition

the primary importance, and the peculiarly offensive character of the

doctrine. (Rom. x. 2, 3.) Does not then this continuous inculcation

similarly teach the great weight of the principle involved, and the

innate resistance to its full operation? If we feel, that we cannot be

too often gladdened with the manifestation of he grace of God; and

yet shrink from a frequent and probing application of practical obliga-

tion; if we love to be told, what we owe to God on the Sabbath, but

revolt from the minute detail of the week, the market and the shop; we

do not receive the whole revelation of God, and therefore do not

savingly receive any part of it. Ours is not "the wisdom that is from

above, without partiality and without hypocrisy" (Jam. iii. 17.)

            Most palpable is the need for this particular illustration. The evil

runs throughout our commercial system. The diverse weights, though

continually declared to be abominable—yea, an abomination (Chap. xi.

1. Mic. vi. 10, 11)—to God, yet how often an they palliated, as of

daily occurrence, perhaps even of necessity! But the scant measure

will fill up a full measure of guilt, and the light weights bring upon the

soul an heavy weight of judgment.'  If Job was fearful, lest his "land

and furrows cry against him"' (Job, xxxi. 38), let the trader beware,

lest his weights and measures bear witness against him. Cause, indeed,

have we for watchfulness! What means this cumbrous and expensive

machinery of administration, with all its checks and counter-checks, its

fearful multiplication of oaths, but the humiliating declaration, that

man cannot trust his fellow-man?  Oh! let me not forget, that of all

this deceit my heart is the native soil; that nothing but the culture of

Divine principle keeps down these poisonous weeds, and nourishes in

their room "the fruits of righteousness to the praise and glory of my

God." (Philip. i. 11.)  ‘The love of God constrains his servant. God

is true to him; and he will not be false to others. God is merciful to

 

* See Epistles to the Romans and the Galatians.

Bp. REYNOLDS' Sermon on Mic. vi.l 6-8.


                                               CHAP. XX. 24.                           357

 

him, and he will not be unjust to others.'*  This is the practical influ-

ence of the Gospel.

 

24. Man's goings are of the Lord; how can a man then understand his

                                              own way?

            God's uncontrollable power and sovereignty; man's absolute depend

ence and helplessness—let these be foundation principles. Here is no

infringement of liberty on the one side; no excuse for indolence on the

other. Man often acts, as if he were the master of his own purposes;

as if his goings were of himself. Or else, in the crude notion of the

predetermination of every event, instead of diligently working out the

Lord's purposes, he fancies "his strength is to sit still." (Isa. xxx. 7.)

But the humble, heaven-taught Christian exercises free agency in the

spirit of dependence. Though utterly powerless for obedience, he is

ever putting forth the effort, as the exercise in which he looks for the

strength. The consciousness that his goings are of the Lord, gives energy

to his faith. It is written—"The way of a man is not in himself." (Jer.

x. 23.) It is written again—"This is the way; walk ye in it." (Isa.

xxx. 21.) Thus does Scripture guard against Scripture. Here is

dependence without passive inertion; diligence without presumption

or self-confidence. Antagonal principles thus work together in har-

monious combination.

            The true liberty of the will is the power of acting according to

choice, without external restraint. Divine agency, so far from hinder-

ing its freedom, removes the obstacle of a corrupt and tyrannizing bias.

This let removed, it acts more freely, and more powerfully.  The man

is not moved as a machine, unconscious of its operations and results,

but acted upon by intelligent principles. He is not carried, along the

way, but enabled to walk. He is "drawn," not driven, "with the

cords of a man," not of a beast; and those cords are so wisely applied,

that they are felt to be "bands of love." (Hos. xi. 4.)  He is enlightened,

so that he sees; softened, so that he turns; "drawn, so that he runs."

(Cant. i. 4. Ps. cxix. 32.) He is moved effectually, but willingly;

invincibly, but without constraint. Divine grace acts, not as in a

lifeless machine, but as in a purposing, willing, ever-working creature.

Nothing is therefore distorted. There is no unnatural violence. It is

"the day of the Lord's power," who "worketh in him to will and to do

of his good pleasure."  His goings are of the Lord, who at once inspires

the effort, and secures the success.

            The world of Providence chews the same over-ruling agency. Man

determines and acts freely in the minute circumstances of the day. Yet

 

* POLHYLL's Speculum Theologiae, p. 438.

Ps. cx. 3. Philip. ii. 13. Comp. Daille in loco, and Disputation between Eck and

Carlstadt.—D'AUBIGNE'S History of Reformation, Book v. chap. 4.


358        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the active pervading influence, disposing every step at the right time

and place, makes it plain, that his goings are of the Lord. Rebekah

came to the well just at the moment, that Abraham's servant was ready

to meet her. "He being in the way, the Lord led him." (Gen. xxiv.

27.) Pharaoh's daughter goes out to bathe just at the crisis, when the

infant Moses was committed to the water. (Exod. ii. 1-5.) Was this

the working of chance, or some fortunate coincidence? Who can

doubt the finger or the leading of God? A cure of extermination was

pronounced against Eli's house. The word was fulfilled by a combina-

tion of apparently casual incidents. David fled to Abimelech for relief.

That very day Doeg was there; not in the ordinary course, but "de-

tained before the Lord." He gives information to his cruel master, and

in a moment of anger the curse was accomplished.1  Who can doubt

but the goings of Doeg and of David meeting to ether were of the Lord?

All parties acted freely. What was false in Doeg was righteous in

God, whom we adore as a sin-hating God, even while, as in the cruci-

fixion of Christ (Acts, ii. 23), he makes use of in for the fulfilment of

his own purposes.

            Man's goings therefore being of the Lord, they must often be

enveloped in mystery. How then can he understand his own way?

Often does it run counter to his design. The Babel-builders raised

their proud tower to prevent their dispersion: and it was the very

means of their dispersion. (Gen. xi. 4-9.) Pharaoh's "wise dealing"

for the aggrandizement of his kingdom issued in its destruction.2

Haman's project for his own glory was the first step of his ruin. (Esth.

vi. 6-13.) Often also is the way, when not counter, far beyond our

own ken. Little did Israel understand the reason of their circuitous

way to Canaan. Yet did it prove in the end to be " the right way."3

As little did Ahasuerus understand the profound reason, why "on that

night could not the king sleep;" a minute incident, seeming scarcely

worthy to be recorded, yet a necessary link in the chain of the Lord's

everlasting purposes of grace to his Church. (sth. vi. 1.) Little did

Philip understand his own way, when he was moved from, the wide sphere

of preaching the gospel in Samaria, to go into the desert, which ulti-

mately proved a wider extension of the gospel4, As little did the great

Apostle understand, that his "prosperous journey" to see his beloved

flock at Rome, would be a narrow escape from shipwreck, and to be

conducted a prisoner in chains.5  Little do we know what we pray for.

"By terrible things wilt thou answer us in righteousness, 0 God of our

salvation." (Ps. lxv. 5.) We go out in the morning not understanding

our way; "not knowing what an hour may bring, forth." (Chap. xxvii.1

 

1 Sam. ii. 30-32, with xxi. 6, 7; xxii. 9-18. 2 Exod. i. 8-10, with xiv. 80.

3 Exod. xiii. 17, 18, with Ps. cvii. 7.                     4 Acts, viii. 5-12, 26, 27.

5 Ib. xxvii.; xxviii. 20, 30, with Rom. i. 10.


                                          CHAP. XX. 25.                                   359

 

Some turn, connected with our happiness or misery for life, meets us

before night. (John, iv. 7.) Joseph in taking his walk to search for

his brethren, never anticipated a more than twenty years' separation

from his father. (Gen. xxxvii. 14.) And what ought those cross ways

or dark ways to teach us? Not constant, trembling anxiety, but daily

dependence. "I will bring the blind by a way that they know not: I

will lead them in paths that they have not known." But shall they be

left in the dark perplexity?  "I will make darkness light before them,

and crooked things straight. These things will I do unto them, and

not forsake them." (Isa. xlii. 16.) Often do I look back amazed at the

strangeness of my course, so different, so contrary to my way.   But it

is enough for me, that all is in thine hands; that "my steps are ordered

of thee." (Ps. xxxvii. 23. Comp. chap. xvi. 9.) I dare trust thy wisdom,

thy goodness, thy tenderness, thy faithful care. Lead me—uphold

me—forsake me not. "Thou shalt guide me with thy counsel, and

afterwards receive me to glory."*

 

25. It is a snare to the man who devoureth that which is holy, and after

                                      vows to make enquiry.

            In every path has the great fowler laid his snares. Perhaps, how-

ever, the most subtle are reserved for the service of God. Offerings

made holy to the Lord often were devoured by the hypocritical wor-

shipper, and sacrilegiously appropriated to his own use. Thus Achan,

robbing the treasury of the Lord, found a snare to his ruin. (Josh.

vi. 19; vii. 1.) This was the sin of "the whole nation;" and fearful

indeed was the judgment —"Ye are cursed with a curse." (Mal. iii.

8-10.) Voluntary vows were commonly practised;1 and often inquiry

was made after, which ought to have been made before. They were

at full liberty not to vow; but having vowed, they were bound to pay.2

As the counterpart to this hollow, half-hearted profession—‘a man

vows in distress to give something to God: but having obtained his

desires,' devoureth that which is holy, and after vows makes inquiry, ‘how

he may be loosed from this obligation.'  Often too in a moment of

excitement—perhaps under the glow of a religious meeting—has a

sacrifice been pledged to God; and, the impulse having subsided, after

the vow inquiry is made how the bond may be retracted. Such evasions

 

1 Lev. xxvii. 9, 10, 28—33.                     2 Deut. xxiii. 21, 22. Eccles. v. 4-6.

* Ps. lxxiii. 24. Augustine mentions the weeping prayers and deprecations of his godly

mother, on account of his voyage from Carthage to Italy. Her anxiety was grounded pro-

bably on his absence from her control, and the natural apprehension, that, when removed

from her influence, he would plunge deeper into sin. But it proved in the end to be the

Providential purpose for his conversion—‘In thy deep and hidden counsel'—writes the

pious Father—‘ listening to the cardinal point of her desire, thou regardest not what she

then implored, in order to accomplish in me what she ever implored.'—Confess. Lib. v. c. 8.

Bishop Patrick.


360     EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

-- what a revolting exhibition do they present of man's deceitfulness

He entangleth his soul in the snares of death, who resumeth unto a

profane use that which is once consecrated unto God, and who, after he

hath vowed aught unto the Lord, argues within himself, how to alter

that holy purpose, and to defeat God of his due:* Alienation of the

gift proves the prior alienation of the heart. Let Ananias and Sapphira

testify that God is a jealous God.1 Take care of rash—be faithful to

upright— engagements. Before entering into the service of God, make

inquiry into its full requisitions, Beware of a religion of temporary

excitement; far different from deep, solid, permanent principle. And

whatever be the cost, be true to the consecration of thyself as "a living

sacrifice" (Rom. xii. 1) on the altar of thy God.

 

26. A wise king scattereth the wicked, and bringeth the wheel over them.

            Solomon, as a wise king, was constantly eyeing his own responsi-

bilities. His standard was not to commit wickedness himself,2 nor to

allow it in his people; to scatter, not to encourage, the wicked. As the

husbandman's wheel, brought over the grain, cut the straw, and separated

the chaff; his sifting administration of justice brought the wheel of

vengeance on the wicked, and scattered them as worthless chaff (Ps.

i. 4), or crushed them in ruin. (1 Kings, ii. 25-46.) In the same spirit

did his father David destroy them, when they boldly claimed his

countenance.3 Godly Asa removed wickedness from the high place

nearest his own throne and heart.4  Amaziah justly punished it with

death.5  Nehemiah—that true reformer--rebuked it even in the

family of the high-priest.6   Our own Alfred appeared to maintain this

standard as a witness for God in an age of darkness. But it is the

King of kings alone, that can make this separation complete. Often

does he sift his church by trial, for her greater purity, and complete preser-

vation. (Amos, ix. 9.) But what will it be, when the shall come with

his fan in his hand, and shall throughly purge his floor!" (Matt. iii. 12.)

What a scattering of chaff will there be! Not an atom will go into the

garner. Not a grain of wheat will be cast away, 0 my soul! what

wilt thou be found at this great sifting day! "Who may abide the

day of his coming? And who shall stand when he appeareth?" (Mal.

iii. 2.)

 

1 Acts, v.1-10, with Deut. iv. 24.

2 Verse 8. Chap. xvi. 12. Comp. the contrast 1 Kings, xiv. 16,

3 2 Sam. i. 2, 16; iv. 5, 12. Comp. Ps. ci. 7, 8.                  4 2 Chron. xv. 16.

5  Ib. xxiv. 25; xxv. 3, 4.                                                 6 Neh. xiii. 28; 29.

* Bishop Hall.

Isa. xxviii. 28, 29. This is an obvious allusion to the war of threshing in the East.

One mode was by a wain, which had wheels with iron teeth like a saw. The axle was

armed with serrated wheels throughout. It moved upon three rollers armed with iron

teeth, or Wheels, to cut the straw. —See Bishop LOWTH'S note on Isa. xxviii. 27. Comp.

Amos, i. 3


                                      CHAP. XX. 27.                                             361

 

27. The spirit of man is the candle of the Lord, searching all the inward

                                       parts of the belly.

            We  are placed under a solemn dispensation of Divine government.

An infallible judgment is in constant exercise, discerning our principles,

estimating their standard, and pronouncing sentence. There ought

evidently to be in the soul some sense, that acknowledges the judgment

of the Great Sovereign. Such is conscience, aptly called—'God in

man.'  Thus "God hath not left himself without witness" in his own

benighted world. (Acts, xiv. 16, 17.) He brings the searching light

of his candle into the darkness. At the first creation bright indeed was

this candle of the Lord, shining in the little world --Man. (Gen. i. 26.)

But every faculty partook of the ruin of the fall. Still enough is left

in the inner mind and conscience, to shew even in the thick darkness

of heathenism the Divine perfections, the just desert of sin,1 and even

some faint glimpses of the standard of right and wrong.2 Yet dim

indeed is this candle, except it be lighted at God's lamp.3 But when

the word and Spirit of God give light to it, it will effectually perform

its important offices— (as Bishop Reynolds defines them) —‘direction,

conviction, and consolation;'*  not only exhibiting the outward acts,

but searching the innermost parts of the belly—all the hidden acts and

conduct pf the inner man. (1 Cor. ii.. 11. Comp. Job, xxxii. 8.) This

unwelcome intruder follows everywhere, interpreting the dispensation

of the rod, not— as men would have it--as the incidents or phaenomena

of the day, but as penal retribution. Glad indeed would the man of

ungodliness be to extinguish this candle. He is too great a coward to

venture into his secret chamber in the dark. He "hates the light"

(John, 20), which, in spite of all his opposition, drags forth into day

many secret lurking evils; never allowing the plea--"Is it not a little

one?"  Whatever may have been his gay and thoughtless pleasures,

the time will come, when he must leave them, and be alone. And

then--as the question has been stated in a manner not to be answered

—'What is all that a man can enjoy in this way for a week, a month,

a year, compared with what he feels for one hour, when his conscience

shall take, him aside, and rate him by himself?'

            Most valuable also is this candle, throwing the light of God upon

the narrow path; so that we 'are not scrupulous and nice in small

matters, negligent in the main; we are still curious in substantial

points, and not careless in things of an inferior nature; accounting no

duty so small as to be neglected, and no care great enough for principal

duties; not so tything mint and cummin, that we should forget justice

 

1 Rom. 1.120, 21, 32,                  2 Ib ii. 14, 15.                 3 Chap. vi. 23. Ps. cxix. 105.

* Treatise on the Passions, chap. xli.                               SOUTH'S Sermon on chap. iii. 17.


362             EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

and judgment; nor yet regarding judgment and justice, that we should

contemn mint and cummin.'*

            Now let me ask—when God causes his candle to shed a clearer

light, can I abide it? Do I welcome the hateful discoveries which it

brings out? Do I value its light, as opening the secret business of

communion between a sinner and a holy jealous God? Do I exercise

myself to preserve the light from being dimmed in the atmosphere of

sin, and to guard its purity, as the means of establishing my confidence

with God?1  Oh! let there be no inward part of my soul, where I am

not most willing, most earnest, to bring the candle of the Lord, that all

secret indulgences may be searched out and mortified.  "He that doeth

good cometh unto the light, that his deeds may be made manifest that

they are wrought in God." (John, iii. 21.)

 

28. Mercy and truth preserve the king: and his throne is upholden by

                                                   mercy.

            Punishment is indeed a necessary security against the infringement

of the law. (Verse 26.) Yet a wise King will follow the example of the

Great Sovereign, and "make judgment his strange work," and mercy

his "delight."2  And so long as truth inviolable is his guiding prin-

ciple, the abuse of mercy need be little feared. Nay, mercy is the uphold-

ing pillar of his throne. (Isa. xvi. 5.) But who does not know, that,

while truth commands reverence, it is mercy that wins the heart?

Solomon himself had a strong body-guard around him, for the safety

of his person. (Cant. iii. 7.) Yet were the mercy and truth of his govern-

ment not only the most splendid jewels of his crown, but 'the best

guard of his body, and supporters of his throne.'

            How lovely is this combination in the administration of the Great

King! "Justice and judgment are the habitation of thy throne;

mercy and truth shall go before thy face." (Ps. lxxxix. 14.) Much

more right is the manifestation of these glorious perfections in that

great work, by which he sacrificed even his Beloved Son, that man

might be saved without the tarnish of one spot upon his infinitely

adorable name. (Ps. lxxxv. 10.)

 

29. The glory of young men is their strength: and the beauty of old men

                                            is the grey head.

            Every stage of life has its peculiar honour and privilege. 'Youth

is the glory of nature, and strength is the glory of youth. Old age is the

majestic beauty of nature, and the grey head is the majestic beauty,

which nature hath given to old age.'‡  Yet these pictures describe the

use, not the abuse. It is their youth usefully exercised, especially

 

1 Acts, xxiv. 16. 1 John, iii. 20, 21.           2 Comp. Isa. xxviii, 21. Mic. vii. 18.

* Bishop HALL'S Works, viii. 112.         Trapp in loco.                       ‡  Jermin, in loco.


                                       CHAP. XX. 30                                      363

 

consecrated to God, and employed for, his glory. Otherwise, as an

occasion of wantonness,1 or vain-glorious boast,2 its strength is its shame,

and will end in vanity.3 The silver crown brings honour, and reverence,

and authority--only "in the way of righteousness."*

            Yet the beauty of the grey head is most likely to be found, where the

strength and glory of youth have been dedicated to God. The young

plant, stunted, and deformed in its youth, will generally carry its

crookedness into advancing growth. But who can calculate upon the

extent of fruitfulness, where "the beginning of our strength"—"the

dew of our youth"—has been given to the Lord? (Ps. xcii. 13-15.)

Let youth and age however each beware of defacing their glory. Each

takes the precedence in some things, and gives place in others. Let

them not therefore envy or despise each other's prerogatives. 'The

world--the state—the church needs them both--the strength of youth

for energy, and the maturity of age for wisdom.

 

30. The blueness of a wound cleanseth away evil: so do stripes the inward

                                          parts of the belly.

            Chastisement is the Lord's ordinance—the pain of the flesh for the

subjugation of the spirit; sometimes even "the destruction of the

flesh, that the spirit may be saved in the day of the Lord Jesus."

(1 Cor. v. 5) It describes not the gentle stroke, but the severity of

parental discipline; not in pleasure or caprice, much less in anger, but

for profit. (Heb. xii. 10.) The diseased body needs medicine no less

than food, and indeed to give nourishment. The diseased soul needs

chastening no less than consolation, and as the main preparation for

consolation. But if the blueness of the wound—the mark of severe chas-

tisement— cleanseth away evil, is it not the lesser evil, as the means of

subduing the greater? Do not the Lord's stripes cleanse the inward

parts? Misery beyond measure miserable is the untamed stubbornness

of self-will.  A gentle stroke is first tried. When this remedy is

ineffectual, the blueness of the wound is needful. Manasseh's Babylonish

chains doubtless prevented the "everlasting chains of darkness."4

Similar discipline was effectual with the holy nation, the prodigal son,5

and the incestuous Corinthian.6 Multitudes have borne witness to the

love, wisdom, and power of their Father's discipline—"chastened of

the Lord, that they might not be condemned with the world."7 The

evil was cleansed away; and those, who groaned under the stripes, to

all eternity will tune their harps to the song—" I know, 0 Lord, that

thy judgments are right, and that thou in faithfulness halt afflicted

me." (Ps. cxi . 75.)

 

1 2 Sam. ii. 14-16.                                  2 Jer. ix. 23.                  3 Isa. xl. 30.

4 2 Chron. xxxii 12, 13, with Jude, 6.       5 Luke, xv. 16-20.          6 2 Cor. ii. 6-8.

7 1 Cor. xi. 32.

                        * Chap. xvi. 31, and references. Comp. Ecclus. xxv. 6, 7.

 

364          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

            Child of God!  Think of your Father's character. "He knoweth

you frame. He doth not afflict willingly." (Ib. ciii. 14. Lam. iii. 33.)

Nothing will be given in weight or measure beyond the necessity of

the case.1 But truly blessed are the stripes, that humble and break the

pro d will.2 Rich indeed are "fruits of righteousness" from the conflict

and suffering of the flesh.3

 

                                        CHAPTER XXI.

1. The king's heart is in the hand of the Lord, as the rivers of water: he

                               turneth it whithersoever it will.

            Most reflecting persons acknowledge God as the doer of all things.

In inert matter he acts by physical force; in brute animals, by instinct

and appetite; in intelligent beings, by motives suited to their faculties ;

in his redeemed people, by the influence of grace. We are here

reminded of one course of his Providential acting. The general truth,

before stated, of man's entire dependence, is taught by the strongest

illustoration--his uncontrollable sway upon the most absolute of all wills

—the king's heart.

            The river of water is an apt emblem of this agency. Its commence-

men is a single spring; scarcely capable of turning an handmill to

grin, a day's corn. But increased by the confluence of other small or

great streams, it may turn hundreds of mills, and provide food for

thousands. So the thoughts of the king's heart are first a single imagi-

nation for the good of his subjects; then swelled by the attendant

thoughts of his mental resources, till what appeared desirable rises to

the full power of accomplishment. But after all, the Great Sovereign

turns the most despotic rule, all political projects, to his own purposes,

with the same ease, that the rivers of water are turned by every inflection

of the channel.*  While this course is directed, the waters flow naturally

and enforced on their own level. The king's heart he directs as a re-

sponsible agent, without interfering with the moral liberty of his will.

            Nehemiah fully acknowledged this prerogative, when, having a

favour to ask of the king, he "prayed unto the God of heaven."4  And

indeed Scripture witness is abundant. Abimelech's heart was in the

hand of the Lord for good.5 Pharaoh's heart was turned towards

Joseph.6  The Babylonish monarchs showed kindness td Daniel and

 

1 Isa. xxvii. 8. Jer. x. 24.                                                                        2 Jer. xxxi. 18-20.

3 Job, xxxiv. 31, 32; xxxvi. 9, 10. Isa. xxvii. 9. Heb. xii. 11.           4 Neh. ii. 4, 5.

5 Gen. xx. 6. Ps. cv. 14, 15.                                                        6 Gen. x1i. 37-45.

* The allusion evidently is to channels made for the distribution of waters according to

will, fo irrigation of gardens or fields. —See PAXTON'S Illustrations, i. 173. Bishop LOWTH'S

nuts on sa. i. 30. Comp. the beautiful figure, Ecclus. xxiv. 30, 31.


                                            CHAP. XXI. 2.                             365

 

his captive brethren.1  The Persian monarchs countenanced and

assisted in the building of the temple.2 The hearts of wicked kings are

alike in the hand of the Lord;3 yet he hath no part in their wickedness.4

The hated of Pharaoh; the ambition of Sennacherib and Nebuchad-

nezzar,5 were his instruments for his own purposes. Ahab's murderous

heart was restrained, and even made to accomplish the downfall of

Baal.6 the counsels of the kings of the earth against Christ were

under Divine control.7  Thus does "the wrath of man praise him; and

the remainder he restrains."8  Thus an Almighty agency is visible by

its effecting the minutest affairs. Ahasuerus's sleepless nights;9

Nebuchadnezzar's divination;10 the appointment of the year of general

taxation11--these seemingly unimportant events were turning-points

in the dispensations of God, fraught with immensely momentous results.

            The history of our blessed, though now calumniated, Reformation,

chews the same sovereign control of the royal heart. Henry VIII. was

employed as an unintentional instrument, and his godly son as a willing

agent, in furthering this great work. The recollection encourages us

to refer all anxious care for the Church to her great Head; to rejoice

that not kings, but the King of kings reigneth. (Isa. ix. 6.)  And shall

not we be quickened to earnest prayer for our beloved sovereign (1 Tim.

ii. 1-3), that her heart, being in the Lord's hand, as rivers of water, may

be disposed to rule for his glory, as a nursing-mother to the Church

(Isa. xlix. 23), and a blessing to her people?

 

2. Every way of a man is right in his own eyes: but the Lord pondereth the

                                                   heart.

            Let in be thankful for the repetition (Chap. xvi. 2) of this weighty

Proverb most valuable for the close probing of my heart, and the test-

ing of the vital spirituality of my profession. So "deceitful is the heart

above all things" (Jer. xvii. 9), that it deceives, not others only, but--

what even Satan never does—itself.  Every intelligent Christian bears

painful witness to this self-deception. How differently do we judge of

the same action in others, and in ourselves! Often do we palliate, if not

justify, in ourselves the very habits, which we condemn in others. Never

therefore is the prayer out of season—"Search me, 0 God; know me,

try me; shew me to myself." (Ps. cxxxix. 23.) There are no persons in

the world, about whom we make so many mistakes as ourselves. But, Oh!

to be approved of God in heart, and in sincerity, is no common mercy!

            Hid as the self-deluding professor is from himself, his way is right in

his own eyes. But is it right in God's eyes?  The Lord pondereth the

 

1 Dan. i. 19; ii. 48; iii. 30; vi. 1-3, 28. Ps. cvi. 46.

2 Ezra, i. 1; vi. 22; vii. 27; ix. 9. Neh. i. 11; ii. 4-9.                        3 Rev. xvii. 16, 17.

4 Exod. i. 8-2.  Ps. cv. 25.                      5 Isa. x. 7. Jer. xxv.       6 1 Kings, xviii. 10, 40.

7 Acts, iv. 25-28. Comp. John, xix. 10.                                        8 Ps. ixxvi. 10.

9 Esth. vi. 1, 2.                                       10 Ezek. xxi. 21.             11 Luke, ii. 1.


366           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

heart.  Solemn and awakening recollection! He thoroughly reads

ever heart. And what defilement does he see in those ways of a man

that are most right in his own eyes! Saul thought that he was serving

God acceptably. But the all-searching eye discovered pride, covetous-

ness, disobedient rejection of his God.1  What more self satisfying than

the soul's strict fast and humiliation?  But the defective motive

marred the sacrifice. "Did ye at all fast to me, even to me?"2 Little

did the self-complacent ruler suspect the spiritual pride, false confidence,

and worldliness, which this heart-searching God brought to view.3

And how much base alloy is hidden even in a sound-hearted profession!

The disciples covered their own spirit under the pretence of vehement

zeal or their Master. (Luke, ix. 54.) The Lord pondereth the heart.

He "weigheth the spirits" (Chap. xvi. 2); proving exactly what is of

himself, and what is of a baser kind; what, and how much, there is of

God, what of man. The principles of the heart lie deep. The work

may be good in itself. But what are the ends? The same work, ac-

cording to its end, may be accepted, or be cast away. Jehonadab and

Jehu both were engaged in the same exterminating work. With the

one it was right service; with the other, vile hypocrisy. (2 Kings, x.

15.)  Self-distrust is therefore the wisdom of true godliness (Chap.

xxviii. 26); daily, hourly, trembling in ourselves; yet boldly ground-

ing our confidence in God! But for the covering of the High Priest,

how could we stand for one moment under the piercing eye of our

Judge?  Did our dearest earthly friend know what was passing in our

thoughts at any one hour, could he ever deem us worthy of confidence?

Must not his heart revolt from contact with such vileness? Yet does our

gracious Lord, while pondering our hearts, and privy to all their hidden

corruptions, forgive, accept, yea—rejoice in us as his people.

 

3. To do justice and judgment is more acceptable to the Lord than sacrifice.

            Did Solomon mean to undervalue sacrifice?  Never did man more

highly honour it. (1 Kings, iii. 4 ; viii. 64.) Perhaps the splendour of

his sacrificial service may have given rise to the frequent national per-

verted trust in external forms. Sacrifice was appointed as a type of the

Great; Sacrifice for sin. (Heb. x. 12.) But never was it intended to take

the place of that universal moral obedience, which the law of God had

from the beginning indispensably required. Yet how soon did man

mistake the intention of the ordinance!  How easily did he substitute

the offering of bulls and goats for the more self-denying service of the

heart.4 Israel abounded in the observance of their outward ceremonials,

while indulging the sin of Sodom and Gomorrah.5 The Corban.

 

1 Sam. xv. 13-26.                       2 Zech. vii. 6. Isa. lviii. 5. Jer. ii. 35.

3 Matt. xix. 21.                          4 1 Sam. xv. 22. Ps. i. 13, 14.

5 Isa. i. 11. Jer. vii. 22. Hos. vi. 6. Amos, v. 21. Acts, vii. 42. Mic. vi. 6-8.


                                     CHAP. XXI. 3, 4.                                      367

 

sacrifice stood in the room of filial obligation. The lesser services of

"anise and cummin" were scrupulously observed to the neglect of "the

weightier matters of the law--judgment, mercy, and faith."1 Justly

therefore did our Lord commend the "discretion" of the scribe, who

gave the due place and proportion to the ceremonial and moral service.2

Both are his requirements; and a soundly-instructed conscience will

aim at both. Yet plainly has he in some instances dispensed with the

former;3 ever with the latter.4  He has accepted the moral without

the ceremonial ; but never the ceremonial without the moral, obser-

vance what would the world be without that justice and judgment,

which at once "establish the throne" (Chap. xvi. 12), "exalt; the

nation" (Chap. xiv. 34), and realize to their disciples a true interest in

that richest of all possessions—the love of God! (Chap. xv. 9. Comp.

Isa. lxiv. 5.)

            We indeed have no sacrifice to place in the stead of these invaluable

principles. But the same preference, and indeed exaltation, of external

service prevail among us. Whether under the proper form of Popery,

or the more plausible cover of Tractarian delusion, it is the true religion

of man's heart—something to recommend us to the favour of God;

something easier and less humbling than the "living sacrifice" (Rom.

xii. 1) for his service. Christian professor! mark carefully the

character of thy service. Let it be free and cheerful; else is it penance,

not acceptable duty. Though it be in weakness, let it ever be in

willingness, with the flower and strength of thy love. Look

to it— an thou resting in the shell and surface, or art thou wor-

shipping in the spirituality of service? Dost thou hear the voice

calling thee, from the dead forms, to seek the living power of godliness?

Cain brought the sacrifice, not the heart. If thou speakest more,

"what dost thou more than others?" (Matt. v. 47.) Remember

those externals, that stand in the place of a consecrated heart, are the

delusion of the great deceiver. Let thine heart be with God, walking

with him in the sound exercise of Christian obligation; honouring the

Divine stamp on every commandment; making conscience of every

duty; and though we come short of every one, yet daring not to neglect

any. (Ps. c . ix. 5, 6, 128.)

 

4. An high look, and a proud heart, and the plowing (the light, marg.) of

                                          the wicked is sin.

            Another stamp of abomination upon pride!5 We cannot mistake

the mind of God so continually declared. Yet so many shapes does

this sin assume, that, until the Spirit of God chews a man to himself, he

rejects the idea, of any concern in it. Nay, he will be proud of his very

 

1 Matt. xxiii. 3.              2 Mark, xii. 34.              3 Matt. xii. 7. Acts, x. 34, 35.

4 Matt. xxii. 3 -39.         5 Chap. iii. 34; viii. 13; xvi. 5.


368          EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

pride, proud of a high spirit; counting a Christian mean and cowardly,

who in the true spirit of the Gospel, yields up his right to a stronger

hand.l

            But not only the haughtiness, but even the natural actions— the

plowing of the wicked—is sin. "This is an hard saying; who can hear

it?” (John, vi. 60.) How can the plowing of the soil, in itself a duty

(Gen. iii. 19), become a sin? The motive determines the act. The

most natural actions are inculcated for Christian ends.2  They become

therefore moral actions, good or bad according to their own motives.

The man, who plows the soil, acknowledging God in his work, and

seeking his strength and blessing—" does it acceptably to the glory of

God."  It is essentially a religious action. But the wicked, who does

the same work without any regard to God— for want of a godly end,

his plowing is sin.*  His idleness is sin against a plain command.

(2 Thess. iii. 10.) His industry is the sin of ungodliness, putting God

out of his own world. The substance of his act is good. But the cor-

rupt principle defiles the very best actions. (Tit. i. 15) "Every

thought, every imagination, of the "natural "heart," is unmixed "evil."

(Ge . vi. 5.) If the fountain-head be bitter, how can the waters be

pure?  Sin indeed defiles every motive in the Christian's heart. But

here it is the substance of sin. In the one case it is infirmity of walk

in the straight path. In the other, it is an habitual walk in a crooked

path. With the wicked—'his eating as well as his gluttony; his

drinking as well as his drunkenness; his commerce, negotiation, and

trafficking, as well as his covetousness, and inordinate love of the world,

are if set down and reckoned by God for sins, and such sins as he must

reckon for with God.'  Fearful indeed is his condition. Would that

he could see it! Whether he prays,3 or neglects to pray,4 it is abomi-

nation. He cannot but sin ; and yet he is fully accountable for his

sin. To die, is to plunge into ruin.5 To live in unregeneracy is even

worse; it is daily heaping up wrath against the day of wrath." (Rom.

if. 5) Ought he then to leave his duties undone?  'The impotency

of an must not prejudice God's authority, nor diminish his duty.'‡

What then ought he to do? Let him learn the absolute necessity of

the vital change—"Ye must be born again." (John, iii. 7.) The leper

 

1 Matt. v. 39-41. 1 Cor. vi. 7.                 2 1 Cor. x. 31. Coil. iii. 17.

3 Verse 27. Chap. xv. 8. Isa. i. 13.          4 Ps x. 4.

5 Ib. lx. 17. Matt. xxv. 41-46.

    * Holy intention is to the actions of a man that, which the soul is to the body, or form

to its matter, or the root to the tree, or the sun to the world, or the fountain to the river,

or the base to a pillar. Without these, the body is a dead trunk, the matter is sluggish, the

tree is a block, the world is darkness, the river is quickly dry, the pillar rushes into flat-

ness and ruin, and the action is sinful, or unprofitable and vain.'—Bp. TAYLOR'S Holy

Living, Chap. i. Sec. iii.

   Bp. HOPKINS' Works, ii. 481.

    ‡ Bp. REYNOLDS' Works, p., 94.

 

                                          CHAP. XXI. 5.                                369

 

taints everything that he touches. But let him seek to the Great

Physician, whose word is sovereign healing (Matt. viii. 3), whose

Divine blood cleanses from every spot. (1 John, i. 7.) His nature

once cleansed, his works will be clean. His thoughts and principles,

all will be for the glory of God; all acceptable to God.*

 

5. The thoughts of the diligent tend only to plenteousness; but of every

                                one that is hasty only to want.

            The diligent is usually contrasted with the slothful:1 here with the

hasty. The thoughts of each work their own fruit, for plenteousness, or

forwant. The patient, plodding man of industry perseveres in spite of

all difficulties; content to increase his substance by degrees; never

relaxing, ever yielding to discouragement. This care of diligence is

profitable under the blessing of God. (Chap. x. 22.)  ‘Thou rnayest as

well expect' (says an old writer) ‘riches to rain down from heaven in

silver showers, as to provide for thy family without industry in thy

calling.'  Haste may have much of diligence in the temperament.

But as indolence is its defect, this is its excess, its undisciplined

impulse. The hand too often goes before, and acts without the

judgment. Hence our English philosopher wisely counsels us--

‘not to measure dispatch by the times of sitting, but by the advance-

ment of the business.' A wise man had it for a bye-word, when he

saw men hasten to a conclusion—'Stay a little, that we may make an

end the so ener. To choose time is to save time, and an unreasonable

motion is but "beating the air."'‡

            The evil of haste under a worldly impulse is truly fearful. Often

does it drive the man into rash projects; and high-raised delusive

expectation he finds to be the short and sure road to want.2 Need we

remark, how rich the harvest of Christian diligence, of "patient per-

severance in well-doing"—"eternal life?"3 The heavenly race is not

 

1 Chap. x.; xii. 24, 27; xiii. 4.       2 Chap. xix. 2; xxiii. 5; xxviii. 22.

                                    3 Rom. ii. 7. Heb. vi. 12.

   * Tit. i. 15, first clause. Many good commentators, following the old versions, adopt

the marginal reading. (Comp. xiii. 9; xxiv. 20. Job, xxi. 17.) But as the word is used

in a similar sense, chap. xiii. 23, and as our version is well supported, and gives a most

important mea sing, we have been content to adhere to it. Bishop Patrick explains the

ploughing in the figurative sense of dressing. But as the two first illustrations in the verse

are literal, it seems more consonant to unity to take the third on the same ground--'What

can they (the wicked) think, say, or do; even when they eat, play, fast, or pray, they are

always under the guilt of sin, because all flows from an impure heart, and the bad tree can-

not bring forth good fruit?' Matt. vii. 18. Cartwright in loco. ' Whatsoever they devise,

or whatsoever they do, inside and outside, the cloth and linings of their garments are all sin.'

CARYL on Job, i 8.  ‘The wicked man hath a, haughty look and a proud heart. Neither

are his misdispositions only sinful. But those his very actions and endeavours, which in another

man would be harmless, are in him no other than sin.'—Bp. HALL. Soe also Scott in loco.

SWINNOCK'S Christian Man's Calling, part i. 365.

‡ Lord BACON'S Essays.


370        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

to be run by so many heats, but by a steady course. "Run," not with

haste or speed, but "with patience the race set before us." (Heb. xii. 1.)

The seed springing up in haste withered. (Matt. xiii. 20, 21.) Excite-

ment is delusion, and ends in disappointment. What so important as

to cultivate a deep work of grace, pervading the whole man, and

abounding with fruit to the glory of God?

 

6. The getting of treasures by a lying tongue is vanity tossed to and fro of

            them that seek death. 7. The robbery of the wicked shall destroy (saw,

            marg.) them, because they refuse to do judgment.

            A graphical picture of the hasty spirit--its own crooked ways

tending to want. Treasures may be gotten by lying; but they become

vanity. They are "put into a bag with holes" (Hag. i. 6), and sink

away. They are like a ball tossed to and fro by a withering blast, or

dust and chaff before the wind.l Unrighteous gain is a dear bargain.

The wrath of God mingles gall and bitterness with the wages of ini-

quity.2  Eagerly did Judas desire to get rid of his ill-gotten treasure

as an intolerable curse. Yet he could not fly from his torturing con--

science. He sought death, and he found it. (Matt. xxvii. 5.)

            Indeed it is with the ungodly, as if they sought death as their reward.

So fondly do they love the way of eternal death!  Meanwhile their

own sin is the seed of destruction. Their robbery virtually destroys

them.3  And whom can they blame but themselves? It is not igno-

rance or inconsideration, but wilfulness, that destroys, because they refuse

to do judgment. "Know ye not that the unrighteous shall not inherit

the kingdom of God" (1 Cor.vi. 9)? that "the wages of sin," invariably,

inevitably---"is death?" (Rom. vi. 23.) What else did the robbery of

Achan and Gehazi bring to them?4 Short indeed was the enjoyment

of Ananias and Sapphira in "the part of the price kept back" at the

expsense of a lying tongue. Sudden and everlasting destruction was their

doom--a beacon to worldly, half-hearted, self-deceiving professors.*

 

8. The way of man is froward and strange: but as for the pure, his work

                                                is right.

            Observe the striking contrast— man by nature; and man by grace.

Who will say that man is now, as he first came from his Maker's hands?

 

1 Chap. x. 2; xxii. 8. Jer. xvii. 11.

2 Zech. v. 4. Comp. Isa. i. 23, 24. Jer. vii. 9-11, 15. Ezek. xxii. 18, 14. Flab. ii. 6-8.

3 Chap. i. 11, 18, 19; xxii. 22, 23. Hab. ii. 10-13.               4 Josh. vii. 21-26. 2 Kings, v. 20-27.

  * Chap. xii. 19. Acts, v. 1-10. The marginal reading seems to imply aggravated destruc-

tion, probably with shame. Comp. 2 Sam. xii. 31. Heb. xi. 37. Also, Luke, xii. 46. ‘Search

your chests; search your hearts, all ye that'hear me this day; and if any of you find any

of this adulterated gold among your heaps, away with it. As you love yourselves, away

with it. Else know, that (as Chrysostom wittily says) ‘You have locked up a thief in your

counting-house, which shall carry away all; and—if ye look not to it the sooner—you

soul with it."—Bp. HALL'S Sermon on the Righteous Mammon. Works, v. 109, 110.

 

                                      CHAP. XXI. 8, 9.                                  371

 

(Eccles. ii. 29.)  How is he born?  Froward,  "as a wild ass's colt."

(Job, xi. 12.) How soon does he develope his nature!  "Foolishness

is bound up in the heart of a child; childhood and youth are vanity."1

Need we add, that this is a strange way?  How strange from the God,

who made and loved him! Turned from God; "turned to his own

way" (Isa. liii. 6); with no law but his lust, no rule but his will (Eph.

ii. 3. Tit iii. 3); loving his own liberty, but despising true liberty;

made by his own self-delusion "the servant of corruption" (2 Pet. ii.

19); ignorant, licentious, wanton; desiring only to be the fountain of

his own happiness, the maker of his own sufficiency.

            Take him in his noblest path—the pursuit of wisdom. Here, too,

his way is froward and strange. Is not forbidden wisdom his delight—

wisdom, not as wisdom, but as forbidden; "intruding" into the counsels,

prying into the ark, of God ? (Col. ii. 18.) Such was the first appetite

of frowardness, not desiring to know God, which "is life eternal" (John,

xvii. 3); but to know as God (Gen. iii. 5), which was pride in its

principle, and death in its issue.

            But man, by grace made pure, new "created in the image of his

God" (Eph. iv. 24)—mark him well. His will is now conformed to

God; his actions are regulated by this perfect standard. Therefore,

his rule and aim being right, his work is right. (Tit. i. 15.) He lives

now, as does his Divine Saviour, to God." (Rom. vi. 10, 11.) Such is

the dignity of his great object! Such his fellowship with his glorious

Head!  Such his earnest of heaven, and growing meetness for it!

Oh! the  mercy of being turned from our own froward and strange way

to the pure service of our God! Yet such remains of the frowardness

still; such intricacies of self-deceitfulness; such twisted workings of

depravity!  ‘0 heart, heart'— cries a deep-taught experimental Christ-

ian*--‘what art thou? The vainest, craftiest, wickedest thing in

nature!' And truly, when the stroke goes deep into the soul, when

the inner circle, the very centre of being, is reached and probed, what

hidden evils come to light 0 my God! shew me to myself, so far as

I can bear the sight, that I may be kept humbled and self-abased;

always near my Saviour; always applying his precious blood; always

covering myself in his pure and perfect work of righteousness!

 

9. It is better to dwell in a corner of the house-top, than with a brawling

            woma in a wide house (a woman of contention in a house of society,

            marg )

            In the spacious houses in the East, several families lived together

in society.  A brawling woman would be a grievous disturbance to the

little community; and a peaceable man would prefer the corner of the

 

            1 Chap. xxii. 15. Eccles. xi. 10.

                 * Rev. John Berridge.


372           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

house-top,l exposed to all the inconveniences of wind and weather, to

the ample accommodation of a wide house in the atmosphere of contention.

(Verse 19; xxv. 24.) A solitary life without would be better than a

quarrelsome life within. Some intervals of comfort might be abroad;

nine at home. Infinitely greater is this trial, when it comes from a

man's own flesh; when she, who ought to be "a crown to her husband,"

becomes "rottenness to his bones" (Chap. xii. 4); when she that is

bound to be his choicest treasure, becomes his piercing scourge. ‘It

cannot be but a miserable thing to behold, that yet they are of necessity

compelled to live together, which yet cannot be in quiet together.'*

The intent of the Divine ordinance is here contravened. For it would

seem "good for the man to be alone," rather than that his "help-meet"

(Gen. ii. 18) should turn to be his hindrance, and his curse. But how

many bring this bitter trouble upon themselves! They plunge into the

important connexion on adventure; with no thought of the duties to

be done, the temptations to be avoided, the crosses to be borne. They

never sought direction in the momentous choice. The wife, not being

sought from the Lord, came not from him, and brought no "favour" of

him.2  Illicit pleasure, avarice, or waywardness, brought a calamity;

that no external accomplishments, no advantages of riches or rank, could

for a moment counterbalance.

            The only safe entrance into this 'honourable estate' is, when each

party (as Chrysostom instructs) commit themselves to God--.'Bestow

me as thou wilt, and on whom thou wilt.'  The only security for

happiness is, when, with due regard of mutual fitness, mutual love is

grounded reverentially upon the ordinance, which makes of "twain one

flesh.” (Gen. ii. 24, with xxiv. 67.)  Contentions will be restrained by

the preventive habit of Christian discipline; each considering that

passion improves nothing, and patience much, and that it is far better

to "give place" to each other, than "to the devil." (Eph. iv. 27.) The

husband in his claim for submission will remember, that he has found,

not a servant, but a wife. She, on her side, will not forget the beauty

and order of graceful sacrifice and ready concession; and that her glory

is departed from her, should she lose "the ornament of a meek and

quiet spirit;" lovely in the sight of man, and "in the sight of God of

great price." (1 Pet. iii. 4.)  'Each severally performs their faithful

duties; everything around them acquires firmness and stability.'‡

 

10. The soul of the wicked desireth evil: his neighbour findeth no favour

                                               in his eyes.

            A lively portraiture of Satan himself! not only doing, but desiring

 

   1 Comp. Deut. xxii. 8. Josh. ii. 6-8. 2 Sam. xi. 2. Acts, x. 9.

                            2 Chap. xix. 14; xviii. 22.

* Homily on Matrimony.          Homil. in Coloss.        ‡ CHRYSOST. in Colors. Hom. x.


                                     CHAP. XXI. 11.                                   373

 

evil!  Evil is the very nature of the wicked. What wonder, then, if his

very soul desireth it?  His "heart is fully set to do it."l He craves it

as his appetite, his main delight.2  What "fitting for destruction"

must there be in vessels thus full of sin, and therefore full of wrath!3

And here lies the difference between the godly and the wicked; not that

the one is pure from evil, and the other commits it; but that the one

does it from constraint, the other from delight. The one testifies--

"What I hate"--the other—What my soul desireth--"that do I."4

As the fruit of this native cherished principle, self to the wicked is both

his god and his object. Intent upon his own lust, not only his enemy,

or a stranger, but even his neighbour, who might have a claim upon him,

findeth no favour in his eyes. His charity does not extend beyond his

own door (1 Sam. xxv. 11.) No one is regarded, who stands in the

way of his own interest. Friend and brother must give place to selfish

gratification.

            Such is sin in its hateful character, and baneful fruits. "Men are

lovers of their own selves, hateful, and hating one another!"5 Look at

the man of God, with his heart enlarged and softened with the pervading

influence of the gospel. Where is the neighbour in distress, that does

not find farvour in his eyes? (Luke, x. 31-35.) "Charity seeketh not her

own" (1 Cor. xiii. 5)—is his spirit. "Pear ye one another's burdens"

(Gal. vi. 2 —is his rule. "The members of the body have the same

care one for another." (1 Cor. xii. 25.) Oh! for a larger measure of

this gracious spirit, "as the dew of Hermon descending upon the

mountains of Israel" (Ps. cxxxiii. 3), upon the church of God!

 

11. When the scorner is punished, the simple is made wise: and when the

                     wise is instructed, he receiveth knowledge.

            This Proverb in substance has been given before (Chap. xix. 25) as

an instructive illustration of the Lord's providential discipline. No

stroke of his rod is without its effect. The blow that strikes one, reaches

two—the scorner for punishment; the simple for improvement. The

scorner describes a character far more common than is usually conceived.

It includes much more than the gross outbreaking of the revolting

heart. Under a more decent external garb, often do we see the utter

want of that awful reverence for God, that humility of mind, that sub-

mission of our will, that prostration of desire, which is the glory and

happiness of those above, who "cast their crowns before the throne."

The very idea of the grace of God is an object of scorn and contempt.

We wonder not therefore that the daring offender should be marked

out for punishment. And yet, if (as is too frequently the case) the

 

1 Eccles. viii. 11.                        2 Chap. iv. 16; xii. 12; xiii. 19.                 3 Rom. ix. 22.

4 Rom. vii. 15-21, with vi. 12, 16, 17.                                                       5 2 Tim. iii. 2. Tit. iii. 8.


374         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

punishment be without fruit to the scorner (Isa. i. 5. Jer. v. 3), it reads a

lesson of wisdom to the simple, who had been, or were, in danger of being

missed by his evil example. (Ps. lxiv. 7.) Nay—even the man of God

learns a lesson of love mingled with wholesome trembling, from this

awful dispensation--"Thou puttest away all the wicked of the earth

like dross; therefore I love thy testimonies. My flesh trembleth for

fear of thee; and I am afraid of thy judgments."1

            The wise, though already taught of God; through his daily teaching

thankfully receives increasing knowledge. (Chap. i. 5.) Among his most

fruitful lessons are the instructions of the rod--instructions (mark the

difference of the term)--not punishment. Often does the teaching rod

seal the teaching law. And the well-disciplined child is ready with

his acknowledgments--"Blessed is the man, whom thou chastenest, 0

Lord, and teachest him out of thy law. I will bless the Lord, who hath

given me counsel; my reins also chasten me in the night season. It is

good, for me that I have been afflicted, that I might learn thy statutes."2

 

12. The righteous man wisely considereth the house of the wicked: but

                 God overthroweth the wicked for their wickedness.

            The punishment of the wicked reads a lesson not only of love and

trembling, but of wise consideration. Yet many are the perplexing

mysteries of Providence. The righteous man does not always see with

his right eyes. The prosperity of the wicked staggers his faith, excites

his envy, and induces hard thoughts of God. (Ps. lxxiii. 2-14.) But

when he looks with the eye of faith, he sees far beyond the dazzling

glory of the present moment. He wisely considereth their house; not its

external splendour and appurtenances, but how it will end. He jus-

tifies God, and puts himself to shame. (Ib. verses 16-22.) "Shall not

the Judge of all the earth do right?" (Gen. xviii. 25.) Here we rest,

until he shall "arise, and plead his own cause," and "with the breath

of his mouth, and the brightness of his coming, destroy"3 the very

existence of evil. Meanwhile, where the superficial eye sees nothing

but confusion, let the righteous man wisely consider lessons of deep and

practical profit. The shortness of the prosperity,4 and the certainty of

the overthrow, of the wicked;5 the assurance of a day of recompense;6

the contrast of the substance of the godly for time and for eternity7---

these are the apprehensions of faith. Do they not marvellously set out

the perfections of God, and call to each of his children--"My son, give

glory to God?"

 

1 Ps. xix. 119, 120. Comp. Heb. x. 26-31.            2 Ps. xciv. 12; xvi. 7; cx:ix. 71.

3 Ps. xxiv. 22; lxxxii. 8. 2 Thess. ii. 8.                  4 Job, xx. 4, 5. Ps. xxxvii. 35, 36.

5 Cha . xii. 7; xiii. 3-6; xv. 25. 2 Pet. ii. 4-9.         6 Job, xxi. 28-30. Ps. lviii. 10, 11.

7 Job, xxii. 15-20. Ps. lxxiii. 23-26.


                                        CHAP. XXI. 13.                                    375

 

13. Whoso stoppeth his ears at the cry of the poor, he shall also cry

                            himself, but shall not be heard.

            If there were no poor, much of the word of God, applying to their

comfort, and directing our obligations, would have been written in

vain. The obligation implies not only an helping hand, but a feeling

heart; hearing the cry of the poor with sympathy,1 cheerfulness,2 self-

sacrifice.*  The stopping the ears implies cruelty or insensibility;3

turning away from real and known distress;4 any kind of oppression;

beating down  “the hire of the labourer” (Jam. v. 4) beyond the power

of earning the necessaries of life; and neglecting, so far as is in our

power, to defend them against oppression. (Luke, xviii. 2-4.)

            Sometimes indeed it might be our duty to stop our ears. The law

of God discountenances the trade of begging, with all its pathetic cries

and appeals (2 Thess. iii. 10.) To retain therefore the poor in idle-

ness, however compassionate or self-pleasing the motive, is to encourage,

if not to participate in, sin. Considerate discretion, not feeling, should

direct our clarity. (Chap. xxix. 7.) Honest distress taxes most of us

to the utmost of our power, considering our responsibility to put out all

that we have, whether it be little or much, to the most profitable use.

Yet ever let the withholding of charity be a constraint upon our feeling,

not the indulgence of our selfishness. Count it a privilege, no less than

an obligation, to minister to the poor. Ponder it as conformity to our

Divine Master's spirit and work. (Matt. xiv. 14-21.) Consider niggard-

liness in giving; the useless expenses that abridge our power of help-

ing; luxuries, while our brethren are starving around us; restraining

the full extent of what we ought and might give— all this as virtually

stopping our ears against their cry. Covetousness and sensuality harden

the heart; and when the heart is hard, the ear is deaf.5 This sin was

wrongfully charged upon Job.6  But wherever it be found, the stamp

of divine displeasure is fearfully marked;7 and even the sin of omission

the great day will openly mark as the ground of condemnation.8

            And now, as the selfish hardness shews the man has no love to

God,9 he will find no love from God. "With the same measure that

he meted withal, it shall be measured to him again."10 Did he stop his

ears at the cry of the poor? God will stop his ears against his cry.11  He

 

1 Deut. xv. 7–1 . Isa. lviii. 6-9.                2 Rom. xii. 8. 2 Cor. ix. 7.

3 Chap. xxix. 7 Neh. v. 1-8.                    4 Luke, x. 30-32.

5 1 Sam. xxv. 10, 11.                              6 Job, xxii. 5-7, with xxix. 16; xxxi. 16, 17, 20.

7 Chap. xi. 24, 26; xxviii. 27. Jer. xxxiv. 10-22. Matt. xviii. 30-34.  8 Matt. xxv. 41–45.

9 1 John, iii. 17.                                      10 Luke, vi. 38. Judg. i. 6, 7. 1 Sam. xv. 33.

11 Job, xxxiv. 24 -28. Zech. vii. 9-13. See Ecclus. iv. 4-66.

  * 2 Cor. viii. 1-4. Howard's rule, so nobly expounded by his own self-denying devoted-

ness— is a fine comment on this example, ‘That our superfluities give way to other men's

convenience; the tour conveniences give way to other men's necessaries; and that even our

necessaries sometimes give way to other men's extremities.' See his Life.


376        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

that would not give a crumb on earth, was denied a drop of water in

hell.l  "He shall have judgment without mercy, that hath shewed no

mercy." (Jam. ii. 13.) Christian professor! study the character of thy

God—"pitiful and of tender mercy" (Jam. v. 11); and be like him.

remember—"bowels of mercies, kindness" are the ornament of "the

elect of God." (Col. iii. 12.)

 

14. A gift in secret pacifieth anger: and a reward in the bosom strong

                                                 wrath.

            We have before noticed* cases of resentment, where a legitimate

and prudent distribution of gifts may quell the storm, and restore the

calm. But a gift in secret implies a perversion;2 else why should the

tie light be dreaded?3 Both parties are involved in the guilt. The

giver acts as a tempter. The receiver wilfully breaks the law of God.4

The passions of men are easily charmed. But rarely will a covetous

man be so angry with his friends, as not to be pacified with his gift,

especially when, given in secret, it tells no tales. A reward in the bosom

to such a man is stronger far than strong wrath; and when it has shewn

its errand, the melting process is rapidly accomplished. (Eccles. x. 19.)

Thus is the wounded pride expelled by another ruling passion--

avarice! Who then can excuse himself in the indolent cry—'I cannot

help my passion, or gain any power over it!' For if it can be pacified

by sordid motives, it leaves us inexcusable, if we do not subdue it by

Christian motives. But it is too evident, that secret covetousness

cankers many a plausible exercise of forbearance. How do we need

a close watch and keeping of our own hearts, in order to a Christian

walk with God!

 

15. It is joy to the just to do judgment: but destruction shall be to the

                                      workers of iniquity.

            It is not that the just does judgment. Conscience may dictate this,

at least externally, while the bias of the heart is on the side of sin.

But it is joy to the just to do it. His rest, purpose, affections— all centre

in it. He has as much delight in doing judgment, as "the soul of the

wicked desireth evil" (Verse 10), as his own soul desired it.5  It is joy,

but only to the just.6 To the mere professor of religion it is conviction,

an fear; the service of a slave. He knows God only as a Master, and

conceives of him as a task-master. He has never known him as a

Fa her, and therefore never served him as a child. But his true ser

vice—does it not, Christian?--identifies holiness and happiness, and

brings its own smile and income of joy with it, as naturally as heat

 

1 Luke, xvi. 21, 24, 25.               2 Chap. xvii. 28.             3 John, iii. 20.

4 Exod. xviii. 8. Dent. xvi. 19.     5 Eph. ii. 2, 3. Tit. iii. 3. 6 Ps. xsxii. 11; xcvii. 11, 1

                                    * Chap. xviii. 16. Page 295.


                                  CHAP. XXI. 15, 16.                                 377

 

accompanies fire, and beams flow from the sun. And thus "the way

of the Lord is strength to the upright." (Chap. x. 23.) Was it not so

with our beloved Lord? He could say—"I delight to do thy will, 0

my God. My meat, that the world knows not of, is to do my Father's

will, and to finish his work."1  Oh! that the servant might be in spirit

like his Lord!

            What, then, is the gloom and sadness charged upon religion? Truly

the children of this world have never tasted the clusters of Canaan.

How then can they know their sweetness? Christian! look up, and

be cheerful, for the honour of your God and his gospel. Live not, as if

some affliction had happened to you; but as one snatched from de-

struction; as a child of God, an heir of heaven. You know more than

you can tell. You can tell enough to make the world inexcusable, if

they turn away. But you cannot tell half, when all that you can tell

is told. Yet let them see, that "the work of righteousness is peace,"

and "the broke of Christ is easy;"2 nay, that the sharpest sacrifices for

him are sweet; that there is more pleasure in " plucking out the right

eye" for him, than in using it for sin or for Satan. And then for your-

self think further, if this be the happiness amidst all the clogging hin-

drances of sin, what will it be, when these hindrances shall be removed,

and we shall serve him without sin for ever!3 If such be the wilder-

ness, what will Canaan be!

            But what know the ungodly of this reality? Sin is to them a

mockery,4 is sport,5 even a joy.6  But never can it be their solid joy.

It is their weariness, never their rest.7 To the workers of iniquity belong

only vanity and disappointment, ending in destruction.8  Hear the

testimony of God—"Destruction and misery are in their ways, and the

way of peace have they not known. There is no peace, saith my God,

to the wicked."9

 

16. The man that wandereth out of the way of understanding, shall remain

                              in the congregation of the dead.

 

            This seems to describe the fearful and irretrievable ruin of apostates.

(Ps. cxxv. 5) God has opened the way of understanding. The wandering

out of it implies, that the man was once in it; at least that he was

instructed, and professed to walk in it. The end of wilful wandering is

eternal death. Such was the character and end of the wicked son of

Jehoshaphat;10 and the rebellious children of godly Josiah;11 apostates

from the religion "received by tradition from their fathers."

 

1 Ps. xl. 8. John, iv, 32-34,          2 Isa. xxxii. 17. Matt. xi. 30.       3 Rev. vii. 15; xxii. 3.

4 Chap. xiv. 9.                           5 Chap. x. 23; xxvi. 18, 19.         6 Chap. xv. 21.

7 Isa. xivii. 13; 1vii.10, 20. Jer. ix. 5.                    8 Chap. v. 22. Matt. vii. 23.

9 Rom. iii. 16, 17. Isa. lix. 7, 8; lvii. 21.                10 2 Chron. xxi. 1, 4-6, 18, 19.

11 Ib. xxxvi. 1-17. Jer. xxii. 17-19, 28-30.


318           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

            But—not to go to olden times—It is no rare sight to see the

children of godly parents cast off the privileges of their birthright, as

despised in their eyes. Though early instructed in "the Holy Scrip-

tures;" instead of "continuing in the things which they have learned

and been assured of" (2 Tim. iii. 14, 15), they have "loved to wander."

(Jer. xiv. 10.) They have never proved a real apprehension of the

substance of truth, or a just appreciation of its value. The way has

been too strait, and too humbling. Novelties have been preferred:

self-confidence indulged; self-pleasing delusions cherished; the, want

of godly sincerity has darkened the path (Matt. vi. 23); conscientious

error, varnished with external holiness, is readily admitted; and the

man, destitute of a solid scriptural standard, wanders out of the way of

understanding.

            This state of death is often connected (and stands out more strongly

by the connexion) with external observance of religion, the practice of

many moral duties, and with a certain measure of moral taste, partially

formed according to the scriptural standard. But there are also occa-

sional emotions of conviction under the oppressive consciousness that

the heart was wanting; and whatever might be the temporary excite-

ment--like Saul under the soothing notes of the harp of the son of

Jesse (1 Sam. xvi. 14-23), there is no movement from the state of hardened

rebellion against God. The true cause of the death, is that in the full

blaze of religious knowledge, a living faith is absent. Hence there is

no reality of prayer; therefore no genuine desire, no vital effort, no

hearty perseverance. With all his light, knowledge, and privileges, the

man is still a wanderer out of the way of understanding.

            Indeed wandering is the character of man's fallen nature. (Isa.

liii. 6.) But light, conviction, advantages of instruction, awfully

aggravate the responsibility. (Ib. xxviii. 12, 13. Zeph. i. 4-6.) Beware

of the first wandering step, whether it may be in doctrine or in practice.

It may fix in a state of apostasy, like Bunyan's blinded wanderers out

of the strait path, who were found among the tombs, remaining in the

congregation of the dead. A special mercy will it be, if the wayward

wanderer does not find his last and final abode among ‘the mighty

dead,' "to whom is reserved the blackness of darkness for ever."*  "It

had been better for him not to have known the way of righteousness,

than; after he has known it, to turn from the holy commandments

delivered unto him." (2 Pet. ii. 21.) Let such as he remember, that

remaining among the congregations of the dead shews their character,

 

* Jude, 12, 13. ‘Mighty dead.'  See Dr. Goon's Note on Job, xxvi. 5. ‘In caeta gigan-

tum.'--MELANCTHON.  Parkhurst, and most critics consider intensity to be implied. Comp.

Isa. xiw 9. See on chap. ii. 18, n. Dr. Graves quotes this text with several others in this

Book iv. 18, 19; viii. 35, 26 ; xii. 28; xiv. 32) in evidence of the knowledge of the future

state under the old dispensation.—Lectures on Pentateuch, Part iii. Lect. iv.


                                     CHAP. XXI. 16, 17.                                   379

 

their state, and their home; and that though they be by birth Abra-

ham's children, born of godly parents, yet, wandering out of the way of

understanding, they are out of the way of life.

            One can only wish to view such sad apostates, as Faithful and

Hopeful did, with tears gushing out of our eyes, silently pondering.

Do they not stand as warnings to us, that we should tremble—yea--

"rejoice with trembling?" (Ps. ii. 11.) While we "stand by faith,"

must we not remember the needful caution—"Be not high-minded,

but fear?" (Rom. xi. 20.) Ever let us combine self-distrust with our

Christian confidence; "fearing, lest, a promise being left us of entering

into rest, any of us should seem to come short of it" (Heb. iv. 1); thank-

ful alike for the warnings to make us fear, and for the encouragements

to preserve us from despondency.

            But the great mass are also here described. They never profess;

they never have professed.  They know that "wisdom crieth without,"

yet they "refuse to hear the voice of the charmer."1 Many will occa-

sionally bear, yet "they go their way, and straightway forget what

manner of men they were."2  Noah's mighty generation was of this

character; and they remained in the congregation of the dead.3 And will

not every one, who, with the opportunities to attain wisdom, refuses,

departs, turns away, be found to have "died in their trespasses and

sins " (Eph. ii. 1) eternally?

 

17. He that loveth pleasure shall be a poor man: and he that loveth wine

                                    and oil shall not be rich.

            What then? are we to have no pleasure? This were indeed to

drive men from religion. Why—pleasure is the very character of the

ways of God (Chap. iii. 17); pleasure infinitely more satisfying "than

in the time that corn and wine increased." (Ps. iv. 6, 7.) Are we not,

again, to rejoice in our earthly comforts? "The living God giveth us

richly all things to enjoy."4 This large flow of happiness is more than

doubled by the rule of "thanksgiving." (1 Tim. iv. 4, 5.) Yet, strange

as it may seem, the way to enjoy pleasure is not to love it; to live above

it;*  to "rejoice as though we rejoiced not to use the world, as not

abusing it" (1 Cor. vii. 30, 31) ; never pursuing it as our portion, or as

making the happiness of an immortal being. The man, who gives his

whole heart and time to the love of pleasure, and sacrifices to it all his

prudence and foresight, is surely on the highroad to poverty.  On the

 

1 Chap. i. 20. Ps. lviii. 5.             2 Jam. i. 24.       3 1 Pet. iii. 19, 20. 2 Pet. ii. 5. Gen. vi. 4.

4 1 Tim. vi. 17. Comp. Eccles. ii. 26; iii. 22; ix. 7-9.

   * It is a fine remark of Cyprian's—‘The greatest pleasure is to have conquered plea-

sure; nor is there any greater victory than that, which is gained over our own appetites.

De bono Pudicitiae.

  † Verse 20 The instance of the profligate, v. 10, 11; of Samson, Judg. xvi. 1-21: of

the Prodical, Luke, xv. 13-16.


380           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

same road is he that loveth wine, under the power of a "mocking delu-

sion."1  He that loveth oil—one of the most precious fruits of Canaan2

—may find, that 'those who could not live without dainties came to

want necessaries.'*  But the most melancholy sight in the universe is

the man, immured in the prison-house of selfishness, who sacrifices to

the love of pleasure the interest of his immortal soul. Salvation is

thrown away as a thing of nought.3  Fearful indeed is the poverty, the

utter, eternal ruin of this wilful infatuation. "Woe unto you that are

rich; for ye have received your consolation. Son! remember that thou

in thy lifetime receivest thy good things, and likewise Lazarus evil

things; but now he is comforted, and thou art tormented."4

            Youth indeed dreams of uninterrupted pleasure, and sees not the

illusion of the charming perspective. But earthly joys are vain indeed.

They may leave us; we must leave them. To place our happiness in

this, is to build upon the wave, which rolls from under us, and plunges

us into the depths of despondency.

            But the double-dealing professor asks—'May we not combine the

two pleasures of the world and religion?' But the object of the man of

God is, first to awaken, then to satisfy, a holy appetite. And for this

end he knows he must separate himself from all that mixture of worldly

pleasure, which, while so far from quickening or nourishing, tends

utterly to quench it.

            ‘Thrice fools are we'--exclaims a glowing Christian--'who, like

new babes in the cradle, know not that there is a kingdom before

them!'What wonder, that those who know not heaven should take

their portion on earth! But should not the heirs of heaven live above

the love of earth, having no more sympathy with the sensual devotee;

than with the pleasure of "the sow wallowing in the mire? "Mark

well, then, the danger and temptation, the need of unceasing watchful-

ness, that in the necessary use you keep within its due measure—the

heart loosened here, and fixed above. (Luke, xxi. 34.) For should you

be growing in the love of earthly pleasure, you shall be a poor man,

indeed; growing indifferent to prayer; heartless and dead to God;

fancying shadows to be substance, and despising the true substance as

a shadow. Heavenly pleasures will lose their sweetness, as earthly

pleasures are relished. 'Certainly the more a man drinketh of the

world, the, more it intoxicateth.'‡  Our spiritual character is our glory.

Personal holiness is indispensable to spiritual enjoyments. Keep then

ever before you, as the witness of your better experience, the emptiness5

 

1 Chap. xx. 1; xxiii. 21.

2 Deut. viii. 8; xi. 14. Judg. ix. 9. PS. xxiii. 1. Mic.. vi. 15. Hab. iii. 17:

3 Eccles. xi. 9. 1 Tim. v. 6. 2 Tim.. iii. 4. 1 Pet. iv. 3-5.

4 Luke, vi. 24; xvi. 25. Comp. Ps. xvii. 14.                       5 Eccles,  ii. 11.

    * Henry in loco. Comp. Isa. xxiii. 9—12; xlvii. 8, 9. Zeph. ii. 15. Rev. xxiii. 7.

    RUTHERFORD'S Letters.             ‡ Lord BACON'S Essays.


                                         CHAP. XXI. 18, 19.                                     381

 

and bitterness1 of the world's pleasures, and the all-sufficiency of your

real portion.2 And shall a man's appetite and poisoned taste, blot out

these records----this solemn judgment of experience? God forbid!

 

18. The wicked shall be a ransom for the righteous, and the transgressor

                                                 for the upright,

            The ransom is here spoken of only in a popular sense, as equivalent

to a substitute. (Ps. xlix. 7, 8.) God sometimes, for wise reasons,

involves the righteous in the same judgment with the wicked. Some-

times the punishment of the wicked is the ordained means of averting

calamity from a righteous nation. (Josh. vii. 24-26.) Often, in the

Lord's retributive justice, the wicked are brought into the very trouble,

which they designed for the righteous,* Thus, suffering in their stead,

they are as it were a ransom for them. God may seem in trouble to

"sell his people for nought " (Ps. xliv. 12); yet "so precious are they

in his sight," that a whole nation shall, if needful for their preservation,

be given to ruin. Egypt and Ethiopia were thus a ransom for Jeru-

salem, when God turned Sennacherib's fury against them, and warded

off the threatened strokes from the sacred city, just as a bait, thrown

to a beast of prey, would give opportunity to the devoted victim to

escape. Often does God turn the enemies of the church to fight among

themselves, so that the destined scourge for his church is turned to

another quarter, as if the crushed nation was a ransom, a victim in the

stead of the innocent. However lowering the prospects of the church

may be, yet there is no ground for faintness or trembling for the ark of

God. His promises to his church are not empty sounds, but "the

munitions of rocks."  "No weapon that is formed against thee shall

prosper. He that toucheth you, toucheth the apple of mine eye."

(Isa. liv. 17. Zech. ii. 8.) The night may be dark; but the morn will

look forth gloriously.

 

19. It is better to dwell in the wilderness, than with a contentious and an

                                          angry woman.

            Another (Verse 9), perhaps even a stronger, picture of the misery

of domestic dissension!  It is better to be destitute altogether of the

communion of social life, if it must be purchased at so dear a rate as

the companionship of one, whose contentions will turn every comfort

into bitterness.  It is better to dwell, not only "upon the house-top,"

where there might be alleviation, but even in the wilderness; giving up

 

1 Chap. xiv. 13.                         2 Ps. xvi. 5, 6; xvii. 15; lxxiii. 25, 26.

* Chap. xi. 8, and references. See also the first-born of Egypt given for the deliverance

of Israel. Exod. xi. 4-8; xii. 29-86.

Isa. xliii. 3, 4. Ransom, the same word in the original. Comp. 2 Kings, xix. 7-9.


382           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

all social indulgences for desolation, solitude, and even dangers.*  Oh!

it is the poison in 'the sweetest cup of earth's best joy,' where "two

are joined to each other, and made one flesh " (Matt. xix. 5); yet not

"joined to the Lord," and so "made one spirit." (1 Cor. vi. 17.)  The

woman only is mentioned. Yet the disruption is as frequent, and at

least as guilty, from an imperious husband, as from a scolding wife.

Surely our gracious God here teaches his children a lesson too often

neglected to their cost—to put their necks into this sacred yoke,

reverently, discreetly, advisedly, solemnly, and in the fear of God.'‡

Let them carefully ponder the fact, that a choice influenced by the

fascination of beauty, manners, or disposition, by intellect or accom-

plishments, if made without reference to godliness, can give no promise

of the divine blessing, or of individual happiness. Often indeed it

issues in a state of degradation, too painful to dwell upon, into which

one or both parties are content to plunge, making themselves odious

for the sake of indulging their angry passions. Nor does this apply

only to the matrimonial yoke. All members of the family circle,

bound together by natural ties, and living together by providential

arrangements, may do not a little towards embittering each other's

happiness. The subjects of these uncontrolled tempers must, however,

reap the natural harvest of their seed sown, and suffer under the mor-

tifying consciousness, that others recoil from their society, and would

readily embrace, if need be, the alternative of the wilderness, as a welcome

change from perpetual irritation.

            ‘The family,' as Mr. Cecil justly observes, ‘is sometimes a fierce fire.

Our family comprehends the greatest portion of our world. It is to us

the most interesting, and therefore is capable of becoming the most

trying portion.'§ The child of God is bound indeed to recognize

effectual and fatherly discipline in his trials from the tempers of those

around him. Yet not less strange the fact, that even among Canaan's

pilgrims, words are often uttered, that must produce pain; and thus

thorns, which our heavenly Father hath not planted, are strewn in our

brother's or sister's path. Effects still more lamentable are to be traced

in impressions made upon the young, or on others watching the exhibi-

tion of such inconsistencies, where better things might have been

expected.

            The matrimonial "thorn in the flesh" may be a needful chastening,

overruled as a preventive against self-confidence (2 Cor. xii. 7), and for

 

  * See Mark, i. 13. "I had rather"—said the wise son of Sirach—"dwell with a lion and

a dragon, than keep house with a wicked woman."—Ecclus. xxv. 16. Comp. xxvi. 7, 27.

  ‘There is somewhat (as I may say) of a particular cut or fashion of the garment of

wives towards their husbands. But men ought to wear of the same stuff; yea, so if I

may speak, of the same piece, for it is in all one and the same spirit.'—LEIGHTON on. 1 Pet.

iii. 3, 4.

  ‡ Marriage Service.

  § See his Sermon on Hannah.

 

                                               CHAP. XXI. 19, 20.                           383

 

the exercise of adorning Christian graces.*  Yet much prayer and for-

bearance are required, to avoid being put out of frame with every trifle;

to refrain from needless occasion and subjects of irritation; to keep

aloof from the immediate bursting of ungoverned passion; and to

realize present support under this heavy cross, in the assured prospect

and intense longing for the home of everlasting peace.

20. There is treasure to be desired and oil in the dwelling of the wise; but

                                 a foolish man spendeth it up.

            To love an earthly treasure is the way to poverty. (Verse 17.) Yet

we may thankfully enjoy the prudent gathering, as the fruit of the

Lord's blessing (Chap. x. 22), like the oil of Canaan,‡ for refreshment.

This is not the forbidden "laying up for ourselves treasures upon earth"

(Matt. vi. 19), a hoarding for selfishness and distrust of God. (Luke, xii.

 

   * Hooker's meek endurance of the continual dropping (chap. xix. 13) must have read to

George Cranmer and others who witnessed it, a striking lesson on the influence of practical

religion. Buxtorf quoted a Jewish saying —'How will a man prove his spirit? By

enduring a bad wife.' When Socrates was asked—'Why he endured his wife? By this

means'— he replied —'I have a schoolmaster at home, and an example how I should behave

myself abroad. For I shall'— said he--'be the more quiet with others, being thus daily

exercised and taught in the forbearing of her.' Homily on Matrimony. Chrysostom gives

the story, like the Homilist, with a striking application. Homily on 1 Cor. xi. 16.

   It is not a grave question — whether divorces or conventional separations, such as we

hear of even in the Church of God, are not rather the flinching from, than the enduring

and honouring, the cross? The supposition that it is better to dwell in the wilderness implies,

that the worse alternative of the contentious and angry woman may be appointed. This was

Job's lot.  ‘The devil' (as M. Henry observed) 'spared his wife to him, not only to be his

tempter, but his tormentor.' Yet did he not put away his matrimonial cross. The en-

durance of it was doubtless a component part of that patience, which is commended to our

imitation, and which was honoured with a double increase of family blessing. (Jam. v. 11;

Job, xlii. 12, 13.) Our Lord, in restoring this ordinance to its original sternness of obliga-

tion, admits but one exception, thereby excluding every other. (Matt. v. 32; xix.1-9.)

According to this rule, an unfaithful wife must be put away as a sin; but a contentious wife

restrained, and endured as a cross. The Apostle, in discussing the question of casuistry

submitted to him (1 Cor. vii. 2-5), lays down the general law, and admits no revulsion of

taste or feeling, much less pretence of religion, to put asunder (save for a time, by mutual

consent, and for a spiritual purpose, 5) what God hath joined together. If in an extremity

the unbeliever was suffered to depart (15), no analogy can be applied from an heathen

marriage, where the light of Revelation had never shewn the obligation, to that of Christian

professors, where its full force was intelligently understood, and voluntarily recognized.

Constrained providential separations, where the hearts are in unity, maintain the principle

of the bond. But wilful settled separation rejects the distinct ground, on which the

ordinance stands. The woman (save where the primary law of nature—self-preservation-

dictates) is obviously bound by the same indissoluble tie. (1 Cor. vii. 10.) If on other side

it be defended, as avoiding the open scandal of continual contention; let the duty of humiliation

and mortification of the sins, which have produced this painful extremity, be first of all instantly

and habitually applied. Let the high offence of the direct infraction of God's ordinance be deeply

pondered. And let it be considered, whether such infractions do not shake the foundation of an

appointment, expressly framed to “make of twain one flesh;” (Gen. ii. 24 Matt. xix. 5); ordained

as a type of the unchangeable relation betwixt Christ and his church (Eph. v. 32); and of which "

the Lord, the God of Israel," saith, ''that He hateth putting away." (Mark, ii. 16.)

   ‡ See note on verse 17.


384              EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

16-22.)  This treasure is in the dwelling of the wise. For prudence is not

worldliness (Chap. x. 5. Gen. xli. 48); an indifference to coming trial, is

not faith, but foolish simplicity. (Chap. xxii. 3.)

            Even the cottage of the godly poor often contains this desirable trea-

sure, the reward of Christian diligence. Yet poor indeed is the palace,

where the Bible with its stores of unsearchable riches is not the grand

treasure, and where the oil of gladness, while it poureth out richly, is

not his choicest comfort.*  Wherever this treasure is pre-eminently

prized, this is the dwelling of the wise, whether it be the prince or the

pauper. And, as Cecil, Queen Elizabeth's Secretary, said, on leaving

Bernard Gilpin's house—‘There dwells as much happiness as can be

known on earth'— how shall we joy to be found in the same world with

such men!

            But whatever be the treasure of the foolish man, or however ob-

tained, his improvidence is a wide gulf to spend it up. All goes one

way. Drunkenness, wasteful expenditure, idleness, gambling, devours

it all. He serves a master, who will leave him nothing at the year's

end, and as the only reward of his drudgery, will bring him to utter

destitution. Such was the prodigal's course; yet in the gracious mercy

of his Father the means of changing him from his folly into a better

mind, and bringing him to the dwelling of the wise; a possessor of a

treasure more desirable, than his earthly appetite had longed for. (Luke,

xv. 13-24.)

            But there are other foolish men besides the drunkard and the spend-

thrift; and other treasure infinitely more desirable, that is spent up. Ad-

mission to the dwelling of the wise--the opportunity of thus growing

rich in knowledge and holiness (Chap. xiii. 20)—what a "price would

it be in the hands of a fool," had he but "an heart for it!" But the

golden moment is lost; the treasure is spent up. Time is wasted in

reckless frivolity of pursuit in innumerable ways. The entire absence

of an holy aim in his daily employments deadens all sense of responsi-

bility. He lives only as the creature of the present moment, with no

object connected with eternity. Oh! my God! leave me not to my

own folly, lest I spend up my treasure, instead of trading with it, and thus

enlarging it for my best welfare.

 

21. He that followeth after righteousness and mercy findeth life, righteous-

                                            ness, and honour.

            Here the desirable treasure is not spent up, but followed after with a

distinctness of purpose, that spews a perception of its value.  This is

the Christian standard--"Not as though I had already attained, either

 

  * Treasure and oil are mentioned; first the general term, then one of its valuable items.

A similar idiom may be found, Mark, xvi. 7.


                                         CHAP. XXI. 21.                                    385

 

were already perfect. But I follow after.”1  Heaven, "the prize of our

high calling," is the bright consummating object. But righteousness and

mercy--all our obligations to God and man--are the pathway to it,

and the meetness for it.2  Holiness must be our daily habit, as well as

our religious service —"in all manner of conversation." (1 Pet. i. 15.)

There must be nothing at home or abroad, where the man of God is not

seen.3 The true evidence of divine grace on the heart is the practical

influence upon the temper and conduct. (Tit. iii. 8.) Our Master's ex-

ample is our pattern. And he is a self-deceiving professor, who does

not labour intensely to follow after it.

            But this following after is not the toiling at a daily task ; not a com-

pulsory law, chaining the conscience against the inclinations of the

will. It is delight, freedom, and enlargement (Ps. lxiii. 8) ; the rising

flow of the heart filled with fearless love.*

            This following it finds its own reward.4 A reward of grace indeed

it must be; so infinitely is it above our faint and sinful efforts. He that

followeth findeth life5—that which is the life of life--the treasure of the

best happiness; fellowship with God; the sunshine of his face; the

enjoyment of his love.6 He findeth righteousness--a retributive blessing

from a God of grace.7  He findeth honour. For "if any man serve me"

--saith our divine Master--"him will my Father honour." "To them,

that by patient continuance in well-doing, seek for glory, and honour,

and immortality, he will render eternal life."8 Then—to depart in the

joy of conscious acceptance--"I have finished my course. Henceforth

there is laid up for me a crown of righteousness." (2 Tim. iv. 7, 8.)

            Such is godliness with its faithful and precious promises for both

worlds! (1 Tim. iv. 8.) Are they not worth following after? Yet how

many play with this grand exercise, as if it were an easy thing at the

next door! How often sloth and drowsiness degrade it into a lifeless

task, an "exercise that profiteth little!"  Where do we see this strenu-

ous sustained effort; this applying to the real work of the daily cross;

this making a business of religion? We look for the picture of men on

the stretch; all energy; all pursuit; nothing diverting from the ob-

ject; pressing all their might with constant urgency in the momentous

service; up to a point that they had never before reached. This high

 

1 Philip. iii. 12-14.                                              2 Ps. xv. Isa. xxxiii. 15-17; xxxv. 8.

3 1 Cor. x. 31. Col. iii. 17. Zech. xiv. 20.              4 Ps. xix. 11. Isa. xxxii. 17.

5 Chap. viii. 35; xii. 28; xxii. 4.                            6 Chap. xv. 9. Isa. lxiv. 5.  John, xiv. 2:1-23.

7 Matt. x. 41, 42. Luke, vi. 38. Heb. vi. 10.          8 John, xii. 26. Rom. ii. 7.

* ‘The will is in love with those charms, which draw us to God. And as no man will

complain, that his temples are restrained, and his head is prisoner, when it is encircled with

a crown; so when "the Son of God hath made us free," and hath only subjected us to the

service and dominion of the Spirit, we are free as princes within the circle of their diadem;

and our chains are bracelets, and the law is a law of liberty, and ‘God's service is perfect

freedom;' and the more we are subjects, the more we "reign as kings;" and the further

we run, the easier is our burden; and Christ's yoke is like feathers to a bird; not loads,

but helps to motion; without them the body falls.' Bp. Taylor.

 

386     EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

standard of perseverance will only just bring us to the goal. (1 Pet. iv.

18.) The half-hearted, temporary professor; the creature of impulse,

instead of the child of faith, though for a while he may "run well," will

utterly fall short.

 

22. A wise man scaleth the city of the mighty, and casteth down the strength

                                   of the confidence thereof.

            The art of war has already shewn the pre-eminence of wisdom above

strength.1  Prudent tactics, or a wise application of courage, triumphs

over mere personal prowess. Joshua's stratagem in taking Ai was a

proof of military wisdom.2 Solomon seems to have known of a wise Man

singly delivering his city from the power of a mighty king; a proof of

wisdom quite tantamount to the strength of an aggressor scaling the walls,

and thus casting down its confidence. (Eccles. ix. 13-18.) Much more there-

fore will spiritual wisdom, the immediate gift of God, overcome difficulties

as formidable as the scaling of the city of the mighty. A wise calculation of

the cost is eminently serviceable in achieving most important triumphs.

(Luke, xiv. 31, 32.) For does not conscious weakness lead to a single

dependence upon God? And what difficulties are too great for an

Almighty arm? "By thee—said a valiant soldier in the army of

faith---"I have run through a troop; and by my God have I leaped over

a wall."3  "Weapons of a spiritual, not of a carnal," temper, "are

mighty through God to the pulling down of strongholds" (2 Col. x. 4),

impregnable to the power of man. All the promises are "to him that

overcometh."*  Let the soldier go to the conflict "strong in the Lord,"

and "putting on his whole armour." (Eph. vi. 10.) The triumph is

sure. The heavenly city will be scaled.  "The kingdom of heaven

suffereth violence, and the violent take it by force." (Matt. xi. 12.)

 

23. Whoso keepeth his mouth and his tongue keepeth his soul from

                                               troubles.

            How frequently does the wise man remind us of the responsibility

connected with the use "of the little member!"4 Yet as the test of a

sound or unsound religion, can we have it too often before our eyes?

(Jam. i. 26.) Indeed the soundness of the regenerate heart is in no-

thing more manifest, than in making conscience of speech. The cor-

ruption of the heart indeed is the main source. But its evil is fearfully

increased by the ebullition of the lips. How large a portion of this

world's ceaseless troubles may be traced to this prolific source! It is

the unbridled horse, that brings his rider into fearful jeopardy. The

mouth has been opened rashly. The tongue has flowed unguardedly;

 

1 Chap. xxiv. 5, 6. Eccles. vii. 19.           2 Jos. viii. 3-22.              3 Ps. xviii. 29. Ps. cxliv. 1.

4 Chap. x. 14; xii. 13; xiii. 3; xiv. 3; xvii. 20; xviii. 6, 7, 21.

* Rev. ii. 7, and to all the Apocalyptic churches.


                                        CHAP. XXI. 24.                                    387

 

and "behold how great a matter a little fire kindleth!*  "Our neigh-

bour has been injured; God has been dishonoured; and bitter trouble

of soul has been the fruit.

            What then is our preventive from this imminent temptation? Cul-

tivate a deep and watchful sensibility. Walk closely with God.

Cherish the tender spirit of his constraining obligations. Keep the

tongue for his service; asking for, his grace at once to restrain and

employ it. (Ps. cxli. 3.) Thus consecrated to God, it becomes "the

glory of man" (Ps. lvii. 8); not only keeping him from trouble, but

elevating him to fellowship in the ceaseless praises of the heavenly

world.

 

24. Proud and haughty scorner is his name, who dealeth in proud wrath.

            And who gave him this name? Even he, who "will destroy the

tongue that speaketh proud things, who hath said, With our tongue

will we prevail; our lips are our own: who is Lord over us?" (Ps.

xii4 4.) See how God loads him with disgrace. Man's rebukes may be

"the curse causeless, that will not come." (Chap. xxvi. 2.) But God"s

stamp is indelible. Proud and haughty scorner! Such is his name. He

may pride himself upon his scorning. But contrast him with "the man,

to whom God looks, him that is poor, and of a contrite spirit, and that

trembleth at my word." (Isa. lxvi. 2.)

            Look at this vivid picture in Pharaoh--that haughty scorner

bursting out in his proud wrath—"Who is the Lord, that I should

obey his voice?" (Exod. v. 2) in Sennacherib, "reproaching and blas-

pheming the Holy One of Israel."l Haman meets with an affront. His

proud wrath kindles. He cares neither for God, nor man. The ruin of

his single enemy will not suffice. He must glut himself with the blood

of a whole unoffending nation.2

            Scorner is his name. Not an empty name. Never let us separate the

name which God hath given, from the doom which he hath denounced.

"The day of the Lord of Hosts shall be upon every one that is proud

and lofty, and upon every one that is lifted up; and he shall be brought

low.  Behold! the day cometh, that shall burn as an oven; and all the

proud shall be as stubble; and the day that cometh shall burn them up,

saith the Lord of Hosts, that it shall leave them neither root nor

 

 * Jam. iii. 5. See how strongly Job protests against the imputation of the injury of

the tongue, chap. xxxi. 30. 'The tongue' — says Bp. Taylor, in his bold imagery— 'is a

fountain both of bitter water and of sweet. It sends forth blessing and cursing. It is

sometimes "set on fire," and then it puts whole cities into combustion. It is unruly, and

no more to be restrained than the breath of a tempest. It is volatile and fugitive. Reason

should go before it; and when it does not, repentance comes after it. It was intended for

an organ of divine praises. But the devil often plays on it, and then it sounds like the

screech-owl, or the groans of death. Sorrow and shame, folly and repentance, are the note

and forcible accents of this discord.'—Sermon on the Good and Evil Tongue.

   1 2 Kings, xviii. 35 ; xix. 21, 22, 23.                  2 Esth. iii. 5, 6; v. 9.

 

388         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

branch." (Isa. ii. 12. Mal. iv. 1.)  "Now we call the proud happy. But

how shall they abide the day of his coming?" (Mal. iii. 15, with 2.)

Oh! with such a manifestation of the mind of God, never think lightly

of a proud thought, or a scornful feeling or expression.

            It may be, that this hateful abomination1 is indulged in God's own

children. Yet he will not wink at this sin, nor spare his rod. The glory

of their name shall be darkened. His frown shall be made visible. If

"Asa's heart was" in the main "perfect with God all his days," yet for

the sin of haughtiness and proud wrath, his sun went down in a cloud.2

"For our God is a consuming fire."3

 

25. The desire of the slothful killeth him: for his hands refuse to labour.

            26. He coveteth greedily all the clay long: but the righteous giveth and

            spareth not.

            Often have the shame and wretchedness of sloth been before us.

Here is the finishing stroke. The desire of the slothful killeth him. It

leads to no effort, therefore to no fruit. "Hope deferred maketh the

heart sick" (Chap. xiii. 12); and perpetual vexation frets him to death.*

'What he longs for, he does not set his hand to purchase. But he

would rather sit still and starve.' He thinks to live by wishing, not by

working.4 Some faint desires he may have to work. But the effort to

"take his hand out of his bosom"5 is too great. His hands therefore,

as if they were given him only to be folded, refuse to labour. There

is no want of physical power and activity. He could spend his

whole time in ‘busy idleness;'‡  but for useful labour he has no heart.

Meanwhile, with all his inactivity, he is a prey all day long to a greedy

covetousness; tantalized with insatiable desires; while the hope of

enjoyment, though not out of sight, yet, from want of exertion, is out

of reach. Thus, dreaming of the end without mortification or godly

exercise, he dies with his desires in his mouth; envying those, whose

industrious diligence enables them to give, and spare not.6

            Such is the temporal evil of sloth; one of the many forms of moral

selfishness, that paralyze alike our energy and our comfort. But far

more ruinous is it in the higher and deeper concern. The stamp of

death is broad and palpable upon the heartless professor. (Rev. iii. 1.)

We ask —What is his religion? He hopes he has a desire; and he has

often heard that  'the desire of grace is grace.' Now this is true, if the

desire be predominant. Faint as it may be in its first dawn, it "is the

day of small things not to be despised." (Zech. iv. 10.)  It is "the

smoking flax," which the Saviour "will not quench" (Matt. xii. 20),

 

1 Chap. vi. 16, 17; viii. 13; xvi. 5. Comp. Ecclus. x. 12, 13.

2 1 Kings, xv. 14. 2 Chron. xvi. 10-13.                             3 Heb. xii. 28, 29.

4 Chap. xii. 27; xx. 4.                 5 Chap. xix. 24.             6 Ps. xxxvii. 26; cxii. 9. Eph. iv. 28.

  * Virtutem videant, intabescantque relicta. PERS. Sat. iii. as.                Bp. Hull.

‡ 1 Tim. v. 13. Strenua nos exercet inertia. HOR. Ep. Lib. i. xi. 28.


                                              CHAP. XXI. 25, 26.                            389

 

but kindle into a flame. But if it is always a desire, and no more,

habitually overcome by a contrary inclination; instead of grace, it is a

delusion, a mere sentimental excitement, to lull the conscience asleep.

How can an object, which standeth in a fixed distance from the nature

which it should perfect, be procured by idle and standing affections?

Those affections must have life in them, which would bring life after

them. Dead desires are deadly desires.'*  Beware then of the slug-

gard's cry. His desires, instead of carrying life in them, are cold things,

that strike death into the soul. Earnest seeking is the test of godly

desire.1  No quarter will be left unexplored, where we might find our

God;2 no means of grace unimproved, where we might enjoy his pre-

sence. (Isa. lxiv. 5.)  It was an excellent prayer of Sir Thomas More

—'Lord! make me to bestow pains in getting those things, for the

obtaining of which I am used to pray unto thee."

            If some will call this active energy legal, our Lord's command to

“labour"3 proves, that it is scriptural. Whoever does not strive to

come near to the standard, has never really apprehended it. Whoever

desires only, and refuses to labour to be a growing Christian daily,

gives doubtful evidence whether he be a Christian at all. Some pro-

fess to be hindered from duty, because they have no heart for it, like

the man whom cold would keep from the fire, which was intended to

warm him. The sluggard talks about grace —His "soul desireth, and

hath nothing." (Chap. xiii. 4.) Effort is the death of sloth. It sweeps

away most, and endures the remaining difficulties, confident of ultimate

success.

            Not that the power is in ourselves. But when did God ever fail to

help the sinner's endeavour? "That thou givest, we gather." (Ps. civ.

28.)  ‘The ship is like to be steered with best certainty and success,

when the pilot's eye is to heaven, and his hand at the stern.'  And

thus prayer and diligence, dependence and energy, harmonize in the

Bible; however they may be discordant in the crude systems of man's

devising. Divine agency is given, not to excuse the neglect of human

means, but to encourage their improvement. (Phil. ii. 12, 13.) The

means are as much the matter of divine self fore-knowledge and

counsel, as the ends with which they are connected.

            What then want we for active service, but the continued exercise

of faith? This gave power at first; this alone sustains the power.

Never let us suppose exertion for the prize to be too late. If ever thou

art discouraged—much more— if thou art inclined to sloth—set it

down, in your mind, and pray that God would write it there clear as a

 

1 Ps. xxvii. 4. Isa. xxvi. 8, 9. Ps. xxiv. 8.             2 Job, xxiii. 8, 8, 9.

3 John, vi. 27. Luke, xiii. 24.

  * Dr. REYNOLD'S Treatise on the Passions, chap. xviii.

  Bp. SANDERSON's Sermon on 1 Cor. xii. 7.


390       EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

sunbeam— 'It is yours —It is yours for all time, and the fruit of it

shall be yours for all eternity.' There is no moment, when the Lord is

not giving; when he has not bound himself to give, by infinite and,

most loving obligations. Deliberately devote yourselves. Put the

resolution into practical form, habit, and place. Make all sacrifices for

it. Seize all opportunities for making it good. Our work will be our

recompense; our labour our wages. And while the slothful man only

covets for himself, the righteous, in the flowing of the willing heart, lives

for the Church. He has to give, and he spares not. "He is a blessing in

the midst of the land."*

 

27. The sacrifice of the wicked is abomination; how much more when he

            bringeth it with a wicked mind!  (in wickedness, marg.)

            This is the repetition of a former proverb (Chap. xv. 8) with addi-

tional intensity. At no time, under no circumstances, can the sacrifice

of the wicked be acceptable. All the true requisites of holy worship are

wanting. There is no heart. The service is therefore only formality or

hypocrisy. (Matt. xv. 7-9.) There is no way of access;1 no "altar to

sanctify the gift."2 Therefore it is presumption, self-righteousness,

will-worship.3  There is no "faith, without which it is impossible to

please God." (Heb. xi. 6.) The material act, considered in itself, may

oe good; but the corrupt principle makes the sacrifice an abomination.

(Mal. i. 7, 8.)

            How much more—the sin is double—when he bringeth it with a

wicked mind! The mind under the dominant power of sin is like a

pestilential atmosphere, which infests all within its sphere of influence.

Such was it, when Balaam brought his sacrifice, that he might curse

Israel;4 Saul, in wayward disobedience,5 Absalom and Jezebel, to

cover their treachery;6 the adulteress, as a lulling to her unwary

prey;7 the Pharisees, as a handle to their covetousness;8  Antinomian

professors, for the indulgence of their lusts!9 What an abomination

 

1 John, xiv. 6.                2 Heb. xiii. 10. Matt. xxiii. 19.     3 Gen. iv. 3-5.

4 Num. xxiii. 1-3, 13.      5 1 Sam. xiii. 8-15; xv. 21-23.

6 2 Sam. xv. 7-13. 1 Kings, xxi. 9-12. Isa. i. 13-16.          7 Chap. vii. 14, 15.

8 Matt. xxiii. 14.             9 Jam. iv. 3.

* Isa. xix. 24. The following exhortations are well worth our pondering — ‘Our heart

being naturally at a distance from God, it is not a single step, that will bring us near to

him. Neither will a few minutes of cold prayer suffice to support our souls.—Let us

beware of indolence. Many are the hours and days we lose on our road to heaven. These

days will soon amount to years; and we shall be too late at last for the marriage supper.

We should willingly exert ourselves to climb a mountain for the sake of a fine view, or a

pure air. Let us then use all our strength to climb the mountain of Zion, where we, shall

breathe a truly vivifying atmosphere, and from whose heights we shall behold the true

Eden, the valley of peace, through which flow living waters, and where the tree of life

flourishes. May the Lord bestow upon us all the necessary will and energy!'—Letters and

Biography of Felix Neff —a most interesting supplement to Dr. Gilly's Memorial of a short

Life filled up with usefulness, and crowned with glory.


                                            CHAP. XXI. 28.                                         391

 

must their service be before him, who is "of purer eyes than to behold

evil, and cannot look on iniquity!"1

            And yet apparent acceptance is sometimes granted to the sacrifice of

the wicked. God, as the moral governor of the world, externally rewards

actions externally good.2 But never does he fail to punish the evil

principle in those very actions, which are the subjects of his reward.

Our Lord's love of the amiable victim of self-delusion was the confession

of his humanity, not Divine complacency; and fully consistent with

holy abhorrence of his proud rejection of the gospel. (Mark, x. 17-21.)

            What then are the wicked to do, rejected as they are under the most

favourable circumstances? Shall they lie down in despondency, or

harden themselves in rebellion? (Jer. ii. 25; vii. 10.) Or shall they

wait for better dispositions, and prepare themselves for the gospel?

The door of prayer is their only refuge. (Acts, viii. 22.)  That door

opens the gospel to them with a free warrant of faith, abundant en-

couragement, and sure acceptance.3

 

28. A false witness (witness of lies, marg.) shall perish; but the man that

                                heareth speaketh constantly.

            The last clause of the proverb seems to fix and restrict the first. A

false witness often becomes so by the culpable habit of thoughtlessly

repeating, without examination or certain knowledge. A man may

thus do very serious injury to his neighbour's character or property. It

proves a very loose conscience, and an utter want of that "charity,

which covers," instead of exposing faults.4   It is "rejoicing in iniquity,"

rather than "rejoicing in truth."5 This false witness will certainly be

punished by God;6 and even ‘by man he will be confounded and

silenced. No one for the future will regard or receive his testimony.'*

But the man that heareth—the true witness who speaketh only what he

heareth, and is fully acquainted with--he speaketh constantly—to con-

viction. He holds to his testimony and never contradicts him-

self. He ‘speaks the truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth.'

His word, even if it had been slighted at first, gains more and more

credit and authority, when the false witness shall have perished. (Chap.

xii. 19.)

            Thus "the faithful and true witness" declared for himself and his

servants—"We speak that we do know, and testify that we have

seen."7 The Apostles, to give solid weight to their testimony, would

fill up the vacancy in their body only from among those, "who had

companied with them all the time that the Lord Jesus went in and out

among them" (Acts, i. 21,22); as if those only, who had heard, would

 

1 Hab, i. 13.                   2 1 Kings, xxi. 27-29. 2 Kings, x. 29-31.

3 Isa. i. 16-18; lv. 6, 7.    4 Chap. x. 12.                5 Contrast 1 Cor. xiii.

6 Chap. xix. 5, 9.            7 Rev. iii. 14. John, iii. 11.

8 Poole in loco.

 

392     EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

speak constantly. They claimed authority to their commission, as

having heard from the mouth of God, and therefore being assured of its

divine warrant.l  And indeed this constitutes the main power of testi-

mony. A feeble and hesitating tone is spiritless and ineffective.

(2 Cor. i. 17.)  A decided accredited presentment of truth--speaking

constantly—commands conviction. "We believe, and therefore we

speak." (Ib. iv. 13.)

 

29. A wicked man hardeneth his face: but as for the upright, he directeth

                                                   his way.

            A hardened face, without shame or blushing for sin, is a fearful

manifestation of a hardened heart. Cain standing boldly in the

presence of his God, with his hands reeking with his brother's blood;2

Gehazi with his fearless lie;3 the Traitor, bearing to be pointed out by

his Master, without visible emotion,4 then afterwards with unblushing

effrontery kissing his sacred cheeks5—how hardened must have been

their faces in determined wickedness! The adulteress also, clothing her

seductive witcheries with an impudent face, stands out before us. (Chap.

vii. 10-13.) Sometimes the wicked man, bent upon his way, hardens his

face against the most distinct warning and intimations of the will of

God. Nothing would hinder Balaam from his own "perverse way."

He even anticipated the conditional permission of God, lest it should

ultimately stand in his way.6  Ahab determinately hardened his face

against the clear forbidding will of God.7  Jehoiakim, before his whole

council, set God at defiance.8  His people "ran" with the bravery of

madmen "upon the thick bosses of his buckler."9  And does not sin

stand out before us with a brazen face? (Isa. iii. 9.) The drunkard

reels at noon-day. The swearer pours out his wickedness in the open

crowd. The sensualist "glories in his shame." (Philip. iii. 19.) Truly

this is the spirit of Satan. How near to hell! How awful is the plain

stamp of the seal of wrath! (Rom. ii. 5.) Truly 'we have no stay and

command of ourselves. So masterful are our wills and headstrong, but

that, if God should leave us wholly to the wildness of our unruly

nature, and to take our own course, we should soon run ourselves upon

our own ruin.'*

            Cheering is it to contrast the tender spirit of the child of God. This

is rest indeed—to put ourselves in the Lord's hands, fearful of taking

one step alone; carefully ordering our steps, lest by inadvertence,

much more by wilfulness, they should bring shame upon his face. (Ps.

cxix. 5, 6, 80.) Godly simplicity greatly clears the eye of the soul.

 

1 1 Cor. i. 23; xv. 3, 4. 2 Pet. i. 16-18. 1 John, i. 1-3.                    2 Gen. iv. 8, 9.

3 2 Kings., v. 25.                        4 John, xiii. 21-30.                      5 Matt. xxvi, 47-49.

6 Num. xiii. 20-22, 32..               7 1 Kings, xxii. 3-6, 18-29.          8 Jer. xxxvi. 23, 24.

9 Ib. xliv. 16, 17, with Job, xv. 25, 26..

            * Bp., SANDERSON'S. Sermon on Ps. xix. 13.


                            CHAP. XXI. 30, 31.                                         393

 

Where the heart is set on the duty, there will be seldom any great

difficulty is discovering the path. (Matt. vi. 22.) Secret heavenly

direction is engaged. (Chap. iii. 6.) An unfixed, unresolved mind

gives great advantage to the enemy's assault. Here lies the contrast--

The wicked man hardens his face against God's ordinances. The godly

directs his way by them; not waiting in inactivity for miraculous lead-

ing, but improving those ordinary means, which throw light upon

every step. Temporals, as well as spirituals; trifles, as well as

important matters, are brought under the eye of our gracious God.

Child-like confidence brings sunshine and acceptance, a brighter and

more glorious privilege than the sceptre of the universe.

 

30. There is no wisdom, nor understanding, nor counsel against the Lord.

            31. The house is prepared against the day of battle: but safety (victory,

            marg.) is of the Lord.

            This proverb is not true in the strict letter. All the wisdom and

policy of earth and hell are in active operation. But all is in vain

against the Lord. The history of the Church abundantly proves this.

The decrees and counsels of God are firm as adamant; immoveable,

notwithstanding all human machinations; no more to be stayed than

the course of the sun.'*  Wisdom and understanding and the best-con-

trived counsel, when against the Lord, come to foolishness. (Ps. xxxiii.

10, 11.) "He taketh the wise," not in their ignorance, but "in their

craftiness;"1 not when their wisdom was fading, but when it was at the

utmost zenith. Ahithophel's counsel was befooled at the time, when

"it was as if a man had inquired at the oracle of God." Pharaoh's

counsel to depress the chosen nation issued in their increase. (Exod. i.

8-12.) His murderous decree, as a link in the chain of Providence,

nurtured the Leader and Lawgiver of the people. (Ib. verses 15, 22,

with ii. 1-10.) Balak's desire to curse Israel was overruled for bless-

ing.3 The wise man vainly set up in his darker days his own wisdom

against the declared purpose of God.4 Ahab's project to ward off the

threatened stroke against his life;5 his determination to avert the ex-

tinction of. his family;6 Athaliah's deep-laid plot to exterminate the

family of David,7 and so to frustrate the Divine promise; the enmity

against the builders of the temple8--all this diversified mass of wisdom,

and counsel, and understanding against the Lord— what was it?—a

thing of nought.9  'They all signify nothing if they oppose the coun-

sels and decrees of heaven.'

            Mark the history of our Lord. It would seem, as if nothing could

 

1 Job, v. 13. 1 Cor. iii. 19.           2 2 Sam. xvi. 23; xvii. 7, 14, 23, with xv. 31.

3 Num. xxiv. 10.                                    4 1 Kings, xi. 11, 40.                   5 Ib. xxii. 30-34.

6 Ib. xxi. 21. 2 Kings, x. 1-7.       7 2 Kings, xi. 2.                          8 Neh. vi.

9 Isa. viii. 10; xiv. 27; xlvi. 10.

* Lavater in loco.         Bishop Patrick.


394         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

have hindered the success of Herod's wisdom and counsel against his

infancy. (Matt. ii. 8, 16.) What a combination of wisdom from all

quarters vainly to "entangle him in his walk!" (Ib. xxii. 15-46.)

How near to failure were the prophecies connected with his death,

burial, and resurrection! Stoning was the sentence for the charge laid

against him! (Lev. xxiv. 16.) His burial was appointed among

the wicked. (Isa. Iiii. 9.) His resurrection, so far as man could

do, was effectually prevented.1  But God had ordained crucifixion for

his death,2 his burial among the rich,* his resurrection as the confusion

of all their counsel. (Matt. xxviii. 1-15.) The event proved that there

was no wisdom, nor understanding, nor counsel against the Lord. ‘God's

desire is fulfilled to those who have the least mind to it. All man's

wisdom, while it strives for masteries, is overmatched.'

            Let us look at that kingdom of Providence, so finely represented by

"the wheels full of eyes round about them." (Ezek. i. 18.) To deny an

absolute superintending controul, is to ‘place an idle sceptre in the

hands of Him, who governs the universe.'‡  How many movements

baffle alike previous calculation and subsequent inquiry; effects, for

which no adequate cause is producible; anomalies, manifestly intended

to remove our eyes from second causes to the First Great Spring of

agency, moving alone all, and in despite of all opposition! The raging

Dioclesian struck his medal—'Christianity is extinguished.' The

Great Author brings out from the very fire the palpable proof that 'the

blood of the martyrs is the seed of the church.'   ‘Oh! the folly and

blindness of men, that think to carry all to their minds, and walk as

masters of their own designs, and never have any serious thought of

him, in whose hands both they, and all their business, and all the affairs

of states and kingdoms of this world, are as a piece of wax, to frame

them to what he pleases!'§ And do not some of us remember with

shame our "striving with our Maker" (Isa. xlv. 9)—how long we

endeavoured to defeat his purposes of love, until at length we were

brought to cast our weapons at his feet, and tb acknowledge, that there

is no wisdom, nor understanding, nor counsel against the Lord?

            But putting away rebellion—beware of vain confidence, scarcely

less displeasing to the Lord. The horse was a forbidden confidence in

the day of battle.3 The most glorious days of victory were, when that

veto was regarded.4 Declension commenced from the transgression of

the law; defeat from the very quarter of confidence.5 The after-

 

1 Matt. xxvii. 62-66.                   2 Gal. iii. 13.                  3 Deut. xxii. 16.

4 Josh. xi. 6, 9. Jud. iv. 3-15. 2 Sam. viii. 4.

5 1 Kings, x. 26-28. 2 Chron. xii. 8, 9. Comp. Isa. xxxi. 1-3.

* Isa. liii. 9. Bp. Lowth. Comp. Matt. xxvii. 57-60.

Trapp. Comp. Acts, ii. 23, 24; iv. 27, 28.

‡ Abp. Magee's interesting Sermon on this text. Works, ii. 354. Comp. Job, xii. 21, 22.

Isa xliv. 25.

§ LEIGHTON'S Sermon on Jer. x.,23, 24.

 

                                  CHAP. XXII. 1.                                          395

 

renunciation of this confidence was a time of gracious acceptance.l

The horse indeed may be legitimately employed as a means of defence.

But never let the material of warfare be our confidence. Use the

means, but idolize them not. They that "trust in them fall." Those

that remember that safety is of the Lord, "are risen, and stand upright."2

"The horse is a vain thing for safety."3  "The remembrance of the

name of the Lord" was mightier to the young warrior than the strength

of the giant. (1 Sam. xvii. 45.) Much more--in the spiritual warfare,

let us have the active exercise of dependence. "Salvation is of the

Lord"4--free, complete, triumphant and everlasting victory over all

the powers of hell.

 

                                      CHAPTER XXII.

 

1. A good name* is rather to be chosen than great riches, and loving, favour

                                    rather than silver and gold.

 

BUT what is this good name, here commended as a precious jewel?

Not the name, which the Babel-builders would "make to themselves."

(Gen. xi. 4.) Not as Absalom, who reared a pillar to "keep his name

in remembrance," or rather to commemorate his shame. (2 Sam. xviii:

18.) It is not the popular voice. So different is God's standard from

man's, that to have "all men speak well of us," would be a bad name!5

So apt are men to "put darkness for light; and light for darkness,"6

that the reputation too often serves in the place of reality, the false

glare for the generous principle, the shadow for the substance, the

tinsel for the gold. The good name is gained by godly consistency. 

The possessor is either unconscious of the gift, or humbled with the

conviction, that it is wholly undeserved. The loving favour connected

with it is often seen in early childhood.7  It was the heavenly seal upon

the Pentecostal Christians.8 And every servant of  God values it as a

trust and talent for his Master's service and glory.9

            Such is its value, that it is rather to be chosen than great riches, than

silver and gold.10 A bye-word may be attached to riches.11  Add to

which—"They fly away upon eagles' wings."12 But the good name

"will be in everlasting remembrance."13 And even now it brings con-

 

1 Hos. xiv. 3, 4.                         2 Ps. xx. 7, 8.                            3 Ib. xxxiii. 17.

4 Ps. iii. 8; xxxvii. 39, 40; lxviii. 20. Jonah, ii. 9.                            5 Luke, vi. 26; xvi. 15.

6 Isa. v. 20.                               7 1 Sam. ii. 26. Luke, ii. 52.        8 Acts, ii. 47.

9 Neh. i. 10, 11. Philip. ii. 15, 16; iv. 8, 9.                         10 Comp. Ecclus. xli. 12.

11 1 Sam. xxv. 3, 17, 25.             12 Chap. xxiii. 5.            13 Luke, vii. 4, 5. Acts, ix. 36-39.

* A name—meaning a good name. See chap. xviii. 22,n.

Heathen intelligence seemed to have some glimpse of this medium. Agesilaus--being

asked how a good name was to be obtained—replied—'By speaking the best, and doing

the most upright, things.' Socrates to the same question answered-- 'By studying really

to be what you wish to be accounted.'


396           EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

fidence and respect.1  It largely adds to usefulness; gives authority to

reproof, counsel, and example; so that, if the world cannot love, neither

can they despise. Hence the Christian obligation to be "blameless, as

well as harmless, to shine as lights in the world."2  Hence the honour

of "having a good report of all men, and of the truth itself."3 Hence

the qualification for efficiency in the sacred office--"blameless, having

a good report of them which are without."4 But how often do the

"dead flies" spoil "the precious ointment!" (Eccles. vii. 1; x. 1.)

Satan, when he cannot hinder the instruments, will blemish them,

to give currency to error, and to stumble the ungodly and unstable.

(2 Sam. xii. 14.)

            We must not indeed overvalue man's estimation, much less take it

as the standard of our principles, or the motive of our conduct. Yet we

must not on the other hand indiscreetly underrate it--'I never thought'

--said the wise Sir M. Hale—'that reputation was the thing primarily

to be looked after in the exercise of virtue (for that were to affect the

substance for the sake of the shadow); but I looked at virtue and the

worth of it, as that which was the first desirable, and reputation as a

handsome and useful accession to it.'*

            Some however judge—'So long as my conscience is clear, I care

not what the world think or say of me. Other consciences are not my

judges.' Now in resisting the efforts of the world to turn us aside

from the path of duty, 'we may seasonably comfort ourselves in our

own innocency, fly for refuge against the injuries of tongues into our

own consciences, as into a castle; and there repose ourselves in security,

disregarding the reproaches of evil men.'  But it should be our great

care to stop the mouths of gainsayers; and while we count it a "very

small matter to be judged of man's judgment," most anxiously to "pro-

vide things honest, not only in the sight of the Lord, but also in the

sight of men."5

            Yet precious as this blessing is, take care that it be not purchased

at the expense of conscience. Far better that others should blot our

name, than that we should wound our consciences. ‘Two things

there are,' saith St. Augustine, 'whereof every man should be specially

chary and tender—his conscience, and his credit. But that of his

conscience must be his first care; this of his name and credit must be

content to come in the second place. Let him first be sure to guard

his conscience well; and then may he have a due regard of his name

also. Let it be his first care to secure all within, by making his peace

with God and in his own breast. That done—but not before---let

 

1 Gen. xxxix. 4, 21; xli. 37. Dan. ii. 48, 49; vi. 1-3.            2 Philip. ii. 15.

3 3 John, 12. Acts, xvi. 2. 2 Cor. viii. 18.                          4 1 Tim. iii. 2, 7; iv. 16.

5 1 Cor. iv. 3, with 2 Cor. viii. 21. Comp.1 Cor. ix 15; 2 Cor. xi. 12; 1 Pet. ii. 12.

* The account of the Good Steward.       Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on Eccles. vii. 1, § 30.


                                        CHAP. XXII. 2.                                          397

 

him look abroad if he will, and cast about as well as he can, to strengthen

his reputation with and before the world.'*

            But though it be true, that reputation and the affection of others are

better than riches; yet must we not forget, that they may be in them-

selves vanity and a snare. And as seeking them is the infirmity, or

rather (when made an idol) the sin of a noble mind, the most severe

discipline is needed to preserve Christian simplicity and singleness.

But "the honour that cometh from God only" is always safe. And

that he should register a good name in the annals of the church,1 "in

the book of remembrance2 in the book of life"3—0h! is not this

infinitely above all this world's glory?4 And how gladly will be own

these jewels at the day of his appearing!5  How sure and glorious is

his promise to his faithful servant—"I will not blot out his name out

of the book of life; but I will confess his name before my Father and

his angels!" (Rev. iii. 5.)

 

2. The rich and the poor meet together: the Lord is the maker of them all.

            There is great. diversity in the several stations and circumstances of

mankind. Yet the difference is mainly superficial, and the equality in

all important matters manifest. The rich and the poor, apparently so

remote from each other, meet together. All have the same birth.6 All

enter the world naked,7 helpless, unconscious beings; all stand in the

same natural relation to their God; dependent on him for their birth;8

the children of his Providence;9 the creatures of his moral govern-

rnent.10  All are subject to the same. sorrow, sickness, infirmities, and

temptations.11  At the gate of the invisible world the distinction of

riches and poverty is dropped. "All go to one place"12--alike having

kindred with worms and corruption. And when they shall come forth

from the long home at the final consummation, all--"small as well as

great—shall stand before God." (Rev. xx. 12.)

            We meet together also on the same level as sinners. All are tainted

with the same original, corruption.13  "All, like sheep, have" personally

"gone astray." (Isa. liii. 6.) All need alike the same new birth to

give them life, the same precious blood to cleanse them, the same robe

of righteousness to cover them. (Rom. iii. 21, 22.) It is in fact a

common need, and a common salvation, (Jude, 3.) In all these

matters the rich and the poor are as one. "God is no respecter of

 

1 Matt. xxvi. 13.                                    2 Mal. iii. 16.     3 Philip. iv, 3.

4 Luke, x. 20.                            5 Mal. iii. 17.     6 Job, xxxi. 15. Mal. ii. 10. Acts, xvii. 26.

7 Job, i. 21. Eccles. v. 15.           8 Job, xii. 10. Acts, xvii. 25, 28.

9 Ps. cxlv. 9, 15, 16.                   10 Dan. iv. 35.   11 Heb. xiii. 8.

12 Job, iii. 19. Ps. Ixxxix. 48. Eccles. ii. 16; iii. 20; vi. 6; ix. 11. Heb. ix. 27.

13 Gen. v. 3. Job, xxv.. 4. Ps. li. 5.

* Bp. Sanderson, ut supra, § 23.

In the ordinance of redemption all were to give alike, as an acknowledgment of equal

need. Exod. xxx. 15.

 

398     EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

persons."1  The difference appears only as the outward garment.2

Yet what a distance it makes! The one scarcely hears of or knows

the other!

            And when redeemed into the family of God, is not every member of

the family our brother?3 Here then rich and poor meet on equal

standing at the same throne of grace, in the same spiritual body,* at

the same holy table.4 We communicate to each other the same blessed

hopes, feel the same sympathies, and anticipate the same home.

            Nor is this a constitution of accident, or of mechanical arrangement.

The Lord is the maker of them all.  Not only does he make us as men;

but he makes us rich and poor. (1 Sam. ii. 7.) Adored be that divine

arrangement, that has knit the rich and the poor together so closely in

mutual dependence, that neither can live without the other (Eccles.

v. 9); neither can say to the other, "I have no need of thee." (1 Cor.

xii. 21.) The lower rank may be the feet and the hands, which work

out the purposes of the mind. The higher may be the head, the seat of

counsel, absolutely necessary for the direction and preservation of the

social system. Truly indeed—in contemplating the balance, by which

perfect order is educed from the selfish passions of men, we must acknow-

ledge of the moral, no less than of the natural, system--"In wisdom

hast thou made them all." (Ps. civ. 24.)

            Yet this Christian equality before God does not annihilate the gra-

dation of rank before men. "The servants under the yoke must not

despise their believing masters, because they are brethren; but rather

do them service, because they are faithful and beloved." (1 Tim. vi. 2.)

In equality of rank, could men continue for a single day? Difference

of mind and talents, industry, self-denial, Providences, would shake the

balance before the morning was gone. God never meant to level the

world, any more than the surface of the earth. The distinction of rich

and poor still remains in his appointment, and all attempts to sink it

must end in confusion. To each of us are committed our several

talents, duties, and responsibilities both to God and man. Let each of

us therefore be given to our own work, and "abide in our calling with

God." (1 Cor. vii. 24.) "Let the brother of low degree rejoice, in that

he is exalted; but the rich, in that he is made low." (Jam. 1. 9, 10.)

Soon shall we all be one family in our Father's house—to "go out no

more." (Rev. iii. 12.)

 

3. A prudent man foreseeth the evil, and hideth himself: but the simple pass

                                      on, and are punished.5

            It is a great part of wisdom to see what God is doing, or about to

 

1 Acts, x. 34. Job, xxxiv. 19.       2 Luke, xvi. 19, 20.         3 Gal. iii. 28. Col. iii. 11.

4 1 Cor. x. 17; xii. 13.                 5 Chap. xxvii. 12.

            * See this implied in the rebuke, Jam. ii. 2-5.


                                          CHAP. XXII. 3.                                     399

 

do. When evil is come, most men can see it. But the prudent foreseeth

it. Not that God hath given to us the knowledge of futurity. This

would only have encouraged presumption. But he has given us

prudence, naturally foreseeing evil, and forecasting the most effectual

means of deliverance. David was thus directed to hide himself from

Saul;*  Elijah from Jezebel.l The disciples were taught to flee from

impending evil.2 Paul repeatedly hid himself from threatened destruc-

tion.3 Even our Divine Master acted on this rule of prudence,4 till his

hour was core. (Matt. xxvi. 46.)

            But to apply it to spiritual evils foreseen—"Noah, moved with fear,

prepared an ark for the saving of his house." (Heb. xi. 7.) Josiah

endeavoured to ward off the threatened judgment by humiliation before

God. (2 Chron. xxxiv. 21.) Paul "laboured" for the covering of present

acceptance, foreseeing the tremendous evil of "appearing" unsheltered

"before the judgment-seat of Christ." (2 Cor. v. 9, 10.)

            Not that the prudent man is gifted with supernatural knowledge. He

only uses the discernment which God hath given him. He regards the

signs of the times. He studies the word of God in reference to coming

judgments; and he acts accordingly. To walk carelessly in the midst of

evil, is reckless folly. We stand "not by faith" only, but "by faith"

balanced with fear (Rom. xi. 20) yet not the fear of bondage and

scrupulosity, but of care, watchfulness, and diligence. (Heb. iv. 1, 11.)

Guilty, wandering, tempted, afflicted, dying as we are, common—at least

Christian—prudence, shews us our need of an hiding-place. Except we

seek one in time, we are lost for eternity. Did we but realize the huge

mass of guilt lying upon us, and the infinite wrath that for that guilt

hangs over us, could we rest in an unsheltered state? Should not we

tread, upon all that lies in our way to run to shelter? Coming judg-

ments there may be. But let us set our face towards our hiding-place.

God will undertake for our danger. His own most loving voice points

us to a shelter in the chamber of his own perfections.

            Very different is the course of the simple. (Chap. xiv. 15, 16.) Devoid

of all prudence; foreseeing no evil; fearing none; given up to their own

ways, and reckless of all consequences, they pass on, and are punished by

their own folly. (Chap. vii. 7, 22, 23.)  Oh! many such are there, who

"when the Lord's hand is lifted up, will not see" (Isa. xxvi. 11); who

will not hear the distant thunder, betokening the approaching storm;

who in their fancied security laugh at those, who are preparing for an

 

1 I Kings, xvii. 3; xix. 3.                                      2 Matt. x. 23; xxiv. 15-18.

3 Acts, ix. 23-25; xvii. 14; xxiii. 17.

4 Mark, iii. 6, 7. Luke, iv. 29, 30. John, viii. 59; x. 39.

* 1 Sam. xx. 19; xxiii. 19-21; xxvi. 1.

Isa. xxvi. 20. ‘It is nature which teaches a wise man in fear to hide himself. But

grace and faith cloth teach him where. Where should the frighted child hide his head, but in

the bosom of his loving Father? Where a Christian, but under the shadow of the wings of

Christ his Saviour?'—HOOKER'S Remedy against Fear.

 

400        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

evil day; laugh even on the brink of that destruction, which, unless

Sovereign grace interpose, will make them wise too late.

 

4. By (the reward of, marg.) humility and the fear of the Lord are riches,

                           honour, and life (lives, marg.)

            Who then will say—"It is vain to serve God?" (Mal. iii. 14.)

Riches, honour, and life to enjoy them—all this accumulation and com-

pleteness of happiness belong to his service. But observe the two

marks of his ways, humility and the fear of the Lord.  Humility is not

the mere meekness of modesty. (1 Sam. x. 22.) This, though a lovely

temper, is not a Christian grace. Nor is it the servility of the hypocrite

for his own selfish ends;1 or the temporary conviction of external

humiliation.2 We may easily, distinguish the genuine principle by its

accompaniment—the fear of the Lord—that blessed holy reverence,

which none but his children feel, and which, while it represses pre-

sumption, establishes humility. A just apprehension of God will always

lay us in the lowest dust before him. The contrasted sight of his

majesty with our meanness, of his holiness with our defilement, con-

strained the cry from one—"Behold! I am vile; I abhor myself"3--

from another--"Woe is me, for I am undone!"4  Then humility is the

truest glory. The most humble is the most triumphant Christian.

Depressed indeed he may be; yet is he highly exalted. Riches are his,

both of grace and of glory. None can deprive him of them.5 Honour

is his---the true fruit,6 the gracious reward,7 of humility---high and

glorious; the title and present privilege of a child of God, "as heir of

God, and joint-heir with Christ."8  Life is his9--lives, every kind of

life, not natural only, but spiritual and eternal; life with the Father

and the Son, now "hid with Christ in God; and when Christ, who is

our life, shall appear," then to be manifested in all its fulness of ever-

lasting joy. (Col. iii. 3, 4.) Shall we look then beyond the narrow limit

of time, and search what is the character of the heirs of glory? He

"will beautify the meek with salvation." “Blessed” are the poor in

spirit; for theirs is the kingdom of God."10 How glorious is the end of

this lowly path of humility and godly fear.

 

5. Thorns and snares are in the way of the froward: he that doth keep his

                                soul shall be far from them.

            A forcible image to shew, that nothing stands so much in a man's

way, as the indulgence of his own unbridled will.  The man, who is

most perversely bent on his purposes, is most likely to be thwarted in

 

1 2 Sam. xv, 5.               2 1 Kings, xxi. 27.                      3 Job, xl. 4; xlii. 5, 6.

4 Isa. vi. 5.                    5 Chap. viii. 18.                          6 Chap. xv. 33; xviii. 12.

7 Luke, xviii. 13, 14.       8 Rom viii. 17.

9 Chap. xix. 23. Ps. xxii. 26. Comp. Ecclus. i. 11, 12, 18; ii. 8, 9; xl. 26, 27.

10 Ps. cxlix. 4; Matt. v. 3.    

 

 

CHAP. XXII. 6.                                                         401

 

them.  'He thinks to carry all before him; whereas his frowardness

makes thorns and snares for his way.1  He is as a man on all sides

encompassed with thorns and snares.  His stubbornness brings him into

infinite perplexities, out of which he can find no issue.'* Sarah,2 Jacob,3

Balaam,4 found the way of the froward full of hindrance and entangle-

ment.  A special mercy is it, when the thorns embitter the way, and

bring the froward sinner as an humbled child, asking and seeking the

road to his Father's house. (Luke, xv. 12-20.)  If there be difficulties in

the ways of God, are there none in the ways of sin?  A fair balance

would prove, which yoke, which burden, is the more "easy and light."

The sting of conscience; the rebukes of Providence; the disappoint-

ment of cherished desires, the tyranny of lust--all tend to make "the

way of transgressors to be hard." (Chap. xiii. 15.)  Nay--not the world

only, but even the holy Gospel, is made a snare in the way of the froward,

Such are "the depths and devices of Satan"5 that they "turn the grace

of God into lasciviousness," and the occasion or excuse of sin.6

      Our happiness and security therefore lie in an humble submission

to the Lord; desiring nothing so much as conformity to his will;

dreading nothing so much as being left to our own waywardness.  Thus

keeping our soul, we shall be far from the thorn and snare of the froward;

we shall "make straight" and safe, if not smooth, "paths for our feet,"

and "all our ways shall be established."7 "He that is begotten

of God keepeth himself, and that wicked one toucheth him not." (1 John,

v. 18.

 

6. Train up a child in the way he should go: and when he is old, he will

not depart from it.

      The hopes of at least two generations hang upon this most im-

portant rule.  How can we look on a child without thoughtful anxiety?

An existence is commenced for eternity.  No power of earth or hell can

crush it.  The whole universe does not afford an object of deeper in-

terest.  It is an "arrow in the hand of a mighty man;" a most power-

 

      1 Jer. xxiii. 12, 13. Judg. ii. 2, 3.                 2 Gen. xii. 10, 20; xvi. 1-6; xx. 2-14.

      3 Ib. xxvii. 4 Num. xxii. 22-32.                  5 Rev. ii. 24; 2 Cor. ii. 11 ; xi. 14.

      6 Rom. iii. 8; vi. 1. Jude, 4.                        7 Heb. xii. 13. Chap. iv. 26.

        *Bp. Hall.

        All commentators by their different versions admit the signicance of the original term.

Imbue--Schultens. Geier--'Give it the first dip, dye, seasoning.'  Initia--Begin the first

instruction--Lay the groundwork--the first stone.  Instrue--This is substantially the

marg. catechize--like Abraham's servants--instructed (catechized, marg.) alike in the art

of war and in the fear of God. Gen. xiv. 14; xviii. 19. The word elsewhere conveys the

idea of dedication to the service of God.  (Comp. Deut. xx. 5; 1 Kings, viii. 63; 2 Chron.

vii. 5; title to Ps. xxx.)  In this view a judicious expositor illustrates it--'As a house.

altar, or temple, newly built, and not yet profound, is fitted by certain rites and sacrifices

for its future use; so a child, as a newly-formed edifice, is fitted by a certain course for the

service and the church, and his heart is made meet as an habitation of God, and the temple

of the Holy Ghost.'-GEIER.


402                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

ful instrument of good or evil, according to the direction that is given

to it. (Ps. cxxvii. 4.)

      Everything hangs on his training.  Two ways lie before him-

the way in which he would go, headlong to ruin; and the way in which

he should go, the pathway to heaven.  The rule for training implies

obliquity.  A young and healthy tree shoots straight upwards and

instead of putting forth crooked and deformed branches, gives promise

of a fine and fruitful maturity.

       But all training, save on the principles of the Bible, must be in-

jurious.  To expand, without soundly enlightening, the mind, is but to

increase its power for evil.  Far better to consign it to total ignorance,

inasmuch as the uninstructed savage is less responsible, less dangerous,

than the well-furnished infidel.

     Yet the religious training must not be the border of the garment,

which might easily be cut off.  It must be the pervading substance

throughout.  Begin, as Hannah did, with the dedication of the child to

God. (1 Sam. i. 28.)  This done--train him as God's child, entrusted to

your care.  Ask guidance from day to day--"How shall we order the

child, and how shall we do unto him?" (Judg. xiii. 12.)  Train him, as

a baptized child, in the principles of his baptismal engagements.  Pray

for him.  Teach him to pray. Instruct him "from a child in the Holy

Scriptures," as the sole rule of faith, end directory of conduct.

Indeed, unless you give a child principles, you leave him utterly

helpless.  And yet too often parents have no established principles of

education themselves.  The children are theirs.  Something therefore

must be done for their training for future life.  But ignorant as they

are of their moral state, and of their besetting evils, they are utterly

unable to apply any effectual discipline.  The child therefore becomes

the victim of his parent's ignorance.  His education in all its important

departments is neglected.  The impulse of caprice gives the only direc-

tion, and in this atmosphere of confusion parental authority soon fails

to controul the far mightier influence of passion.

      Certainly, admitting the divine inspiration of the Scriptures, no-

thing can be more ruinous than to thrust them out of their place, as

the sum and substance of educational principles.  Never was Scriptural

training more momentous.  From a defect here many young persons

are tossed to and fro in every vacillation of error; and the anxious

attempt to set them right we find to be 'building where there is

foundation, or rather, where there is not so much as ground to build

upon.'  In fact, the mind, abhorring a vacuum, must have some notions.

And the alternative is not between sound principles and none; but

between wholesome with and those crude or poisonous errors, which

 

     * 2 Tim. ill. 15. Comp. the wise man's own training, chap. iv. 3, 4.

SOUTH'S Sermon on the text, vol. i.

 

CHAP. XXII. 6.                                             403

 

the subtle enemy is ever ready to inject, and the corrupt heart equally

prepared to receive.  Nor let the formation of sound practical habits

diligence, industry, and self-government, be forgotten.  Let the child

be trained, like the soldier under arms, to endurance, order, and sub-

jection.

       But we must not forget the distinct track of the educational training

--the way in which the child should, not that in which he would, go.

Heaven and hell are not more opposite than these two ways.  Indeed

they are identified with the narrow and broad way, in one of which

every child of Adam is walking.  The child's will revolting from God

is the certain way to ruin.  The way back to God, marked out in the

Bible, is consecrated by his blessing, and is the sure way to heaven.

Wisely does Solomon direct us to begin at the mouth or entrance of his

way,*--at the first opening intelligence.  The more early the training,

the more easy the work, and the more encouraging the results.  Our

character largely takes the form of that mould into which our early

years were cast.  Much in after-life, both good and evil, may be traced

back to the seed sown in the days of infancy. It is a matter of expe-

rience, that what is early learnt, is most tenaciously retained.  It stands the

friction of time with the least injury. Far better, instead of waiting for;

the maturity of reason, to work upon the pliability of childhood.  The

gardener begins to graft in the first rising of the sap.  If the crooked

shoots of self-will and disobedience are not cut off, their rapid growth and

rapidly growing strength will greatly increase the future difficulty of

bending them.  Present neglect occasions after risk and perplexity.

We may begin our work too late, but we can scarcely begin it too soon.1

If the child be too young to teach to read, he cannot be too young to

teach to obey.  Never let the watchfulness to check the buddings of

evil, and to cherish the first tenderness of right feeling, be relaxed.

The ceaseless activity of the great enemy teaches the value of early

training.  Be beforehand with him. Pre-occupy the ground with good

seed, as the most effectual exclusion of his evil tares. (Matt. xiii. 25-28.)

Be at the mouth of the way with wholesome food, ere he has the oppor-

 

                     1 Eccles. xi. 6. Isa. xxviii. 9, 10. Lam. iii. 27.

      * Heb. See Schult-ens and the general voice of critics.

      Mr. Locke does not hesitate to affirm, 'that of all the men we meet with, nine parts

out of ten are what they are, good or bad, useful or. not, according to their education.

Thoughts concerning Education.  The heathen moralists seem well to have understood

the subject.  Horace, after alluding to the early discipline of the colt and the hound,

applies it--

----Nunc adbibe puro

Pectore verba, puer; nunc te melioribus offer.

Quo semel est imbuta recens, servabit odorem

              Testa diu.--Epist. lib. i. ii. 67-70.

             ------Adeo in teneris consuescere  multum est.'-VIRG. Georg. ii. 272.

            ‘Udum et molle lutum es; nunc, nunc, properandus, et acri

            Fingendus sine fine rota.'--PERSIUS, Sat. iii. 23, 24.


404                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

tunity of pouring in his "bread of deceit;" ere nature is hardened by

the habits of sin, or brutalized by familiarity with vice.

      But this training must be practical.  The mere talk to a child about

religion, without bringing it to bear upon his loose habits, and self-

willed tempers, is utterly ineffective.  None of us liveth to himself

alone.  We are all spreading around us an influence, whether for good

or for evil.  Here therefore in our families lies the responsibility of

Christian consistency.  If the child hears of godliness, and sees but

wickedness, this is bringing him bread with one hand, and poison with

the other; 'beckoning him with the hand to heaven, and at the same

time taking him by the hand, and leading him in the way to destruc-

tion.'*  Who would receive even the choicest food from a leprous

hand? Neglect is far better than inconsistency; forgetfulness, than

contempt of principle.  A child learns more by the eye than by the ear.

Imitation is a far more powerful principle than memory.  A well-

trained child gladly looks to his parent's godliness as his model picture,

to copy after.  A wayward child eagerly seeks for the excuse of his own

delinquency, and this discovery in parental example will harden him in

infidelity and ungodliness.

     This training is indeed a work of watchful anxiety, attended with

painful, and often long-protracted, exercise of faith and patience.  Who

could hold on in it, but for the Divine support of the parental promise

--When he is old, he shall not depart from it?  The man will be, as the

child is trained.  Education is utterly distinct from grace.  But, when

conducted in the spirit, and on the principles, of the Word of God, it is a

means of imparting it.  Sometimes the fruit is immediate, uniform, and

permanent to the end.1  But often "the bread cast upon the waters of

the covenant is found," not till  "after many days" (Eccles. xi. 1);

perhaps not till the godly parent has been laid in the grave.|  Yet the

fruit, though late, will not be the less sure. (Hab. ii. 3.)  The child may

depart when he is young.  But when he is old--in after years, smothered

convictions will bring back the power of early impressions.  The seeds

of instruction will burst forth into life.+  He will find it "hard" in a

course of sin "to kick against the pricks." (Acts, ix. 5.)  The Scriptures,

fastened on his memory, will force themselves upon him with many a

sharp and painful struggle.  Conscience will disturb his pleasures, and

embitter the sweetness, which he had found, or fancied that he had

found, in his sins.  The remembrance of his father's house' brings the

 

                  1 1 Sam. i. 28; iii. 20; xii 2, 3. Ps. xcii. 13-15.

         * Abp. TILLOTSON'S Sermon on Education.

         | 2 Chron. xxxiii. 11-13. 'It is no small mercy,' said Mr. Flavel, alluding to this case,

'to have thousands of fervent prayers lying before the Lord, filed up in heaven for us,'--

Fountain of Life, Sermon xx.

      + Timothy was instructed as a child, but not converted till adult age.  Comp. 2 Tim.

iii. 15, with 1 Tim. i. 2


CHAP. XXII. 6.                                             405

 

prodigal "to himself," and he comes home with shame in his face tears

in his eyes, and godly sorrow in his heart. (Luke, xv. 17-20.)

      If then the promise is not fulfilled, it is because the duty is not per-

formed.  Never does God give a command, but he will give his sincere

servant grace to obey it.  The duty is not therefore to lie down in

despondency, or even in heartless prayer, but to "go forward" (Exod.

xiv. 13) in painful obedience.  With such a plain promise--the promise

of "him who cannot lie, or repent," and who will be true to every tittle

of his word (Num. xxiii. 19)--need we ever be cast down?--"Is

anything too hard for the Lord?" (Gen. xviii. 14.)  Cultivate then the

exercise of parental faith; trusting, not to what we see but to what

God has engaged; like our father Abraham, "against hope, believing

"in hope." (Rom. iv. 18-20.)  Expect the fulfilment of the parental

promise, as confidently as any other free promise of the gospel.*

Exercise faith in the full energy of Christian diligence, and in the

patience of Christian hope.  Leave God to accomplish his own gracious

will.  If his Sovereignty reserves the time and means to himself, his

faithfulness secures the promise to us, which is, and ever must be--

"Yea, and Amen"--"I will be a God to thee, and to thy seed after thee

I will pour out my Spirit upon thy seed, and my blessing upon thine offspring."1

 

      1 2 Cor. i. 20. Gen. xvii. 7. lsa. xliv. 3-5.

     * Such as John, vi. 37--couched in the same grammatical terms--a promise connected

with a duty, as the encouragement to the duty--"Him that cometh-he that traineth;--no

wise cast out--will not depart." Yet the latter is often considered a general promise, ad-

mitting of various and indefinite exceptions. The other is "Yea and Amen." But we

might ask--How can we loosen the ground of one promise, without shaking the foundation

of all?  And do not admitted exceptions in the educational promise give occasion to many

an exercised Christian to find his own exception in the Gospel promise? We fully concede,

that here the ground is more clear to the exercise of faith. We have the demonstrable

certainty of the work of the Son, the faithfulness of the Father, and the agency of the Spirit,

drawing the "given to come"--the compact of the Eternal Three unchangeably fulfilled.

In this parental promise the manifestly imperfect training of the parent, and the wanton

rebellion of the child, clouds the ground of faith to our vision.  But this touches only the

apprehension of the ground, not the ground itself.  If the performance of the parent's duty

in the one promise were as certain, as the work of God in the other, would not the assur-

ance of the promise in both cases be equally firm?  We cannot indeed anticipate an universal

fulfilment of the promise. Yet, as believers in the inspiration of Scripture, we are bound

implicitly to receive it. Is it not far safer and more satisfactory to" take all the promises of

the Bible upon the same ground? The cases that appear to contravene the educational

promise may be fairly explained. The promise is not falsified, but the Lord's time of fulfil-

ment is not yet come.  Or--has not some important element of education been omitted?

Has not some disproportion of one or other part of the system hindered the efficiency of

the whole? Have instruction and discipline been always accompanied with prayer and

faith? Or has prayer been always confirmed by consistent practice? Do not man's in do-

lence, self-indulgence, unbelief, unfaithfulness to the conditions implied, wither the blessing?

While Abraham, training up his family for God, shall find him "faithful that hath pro-

mised" (Gen. xviii. 19, with Heb. x. 23) the Elis and the Davids--good men, but bad

parents--(1 Sam. iii. 13; 1 Kings, i 6) shall know "God's breach of promise." (Num. xiv.

34.) It is too deep for man to reconcile the absolute election of God with weak, imperfect,

unfaithful fulfilment of duty. Nevertheless in all cases--"Let God be true, and every man

a liar (Rom. iii. 4.)


406                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

     This is the reward of faith to those, who make the salvation of the

soul the primary object of education. But the mass of mankind deal

with their children, as if they were born only for the world, with nothing

to look to after death. Wholly leaving out the mighty question--the

great end of life--'How this or that matter affects their soul'--the

only thought is--'Must they not be like others, to make their way in

the world?'  Thus they fearlessly bring them into contact with the

evil around them, set their feet in the "broad road of destruction," and

bid them go on with the rest.  In all important matters they educate

them consistently for time, not for eternity.  They concentrate their

grand interest on matters, in which the soul has no concern; accom-

plishments or scholarship, not godliness; refinement of taste and

manners, not soundness of faith.  Need we say, that this is an

education without God, without his promise, without rest?  The

parents of such children, and the children of such parents, are alike

objects of compassion.  Eternity will bring a solemn account to both.

 

7. The rich ruleth over the poor, and the borrower is servant to the lender.

     "The rich and the poor meet together" (Verse 2) for mutual

sympathy and helpfulness; yet God has appointed one to rule, and

the other to submit.  And this gradation of rank in all its forms,

involves distinct obligations to be carefully sought out and followed.

Subjection, on the one hand, is cheerfully acknowledged as God's own

ordinance; while the sense of responsibility is enlarged on the other.

The rule applies to all the domestic relations between dependants and

superiors.  Yet let it be the rule of order, not of pride, caprice, or selfish-

ness.  And especially, when exercised over young persons of refined

minds and education, let dependence be soothed by "the law of kind-

ness," elevating them to a rank far above the menials of the house.

The golden rule of love will diffuse Christian happiness without disorder

or compromise of obligation.

     Too often, however, it is a rule of harshness.1  And indeed, without

a practical submission to God's rule over us, we can scarcely be trusted

with power over our fellow-men.  Such obligations as that of the

borrower to the lender, often force the dependant to a servile bondage.

Man becomes an alien to his brother; the victim of his gratification,

not the object of his sympathy.*

       Very important is it to maintain an independence of mind, quite

distinct from pride, which elevates the mind far above doing or con-

niving at evil, for the sake of pleasing a patron. Many have been

 

     1 Chap. xviii. 23. Amos, ii. 6; iv. 1; v. 11, 12; viii. 4-6.  Jam. ii. 6; v. 4. Comp.

Ecclus. xiii. 19.

    * 2 Kings, iv.I. Neh. v. 3-5. Matt. xviii. 25,29. Compare the blessing, Deut. xv. 6;

xxviii. 12.


CHAP. XXII. 8.                                             407

 

forced to great entanglement of conscience, perhaps to vote contrary to

their conscience, rather than lose the great man's smile. Often also the

influence of capital is an iron rule of the rich over the poor.  Many, who

profess to resist conscientiously state-interference, have little regard for

the consciences of their dependants.  The monied master exercises a

controul over his workmen, which shews too plainly his purpose to

make them the creatures of his own will.  This gigantic tyranny should

be denounced with the most solemn protest.

     The true Christian line is to shun that proud independence, which

scorns the kindly offer of needful help; but at the same time to avoid

all needless obligations. 'Sell not your liberty to gratify your luxury.'*

If possible, "owe no man anything' but love." (Rom. xiii. 8.)  Guard

against that poverty, which is the result of carelessness or extravagance.

Pray earnestly, labour diligently. Should you come to poverty by the

misfortune of the times, submit to your lot humbly; bear it patiently;

cast yourself in child-like dependence upon your God.'|

 

8. He that soweth iniquity shall reap vanity: and the rod of his anger shall

fail (with the rod of his anger he shall be consumed, marg.)

     Scripture often gives the practical illustration of the seed-time and

harvest.l  They are linked together in the spiritual, not less than in the

natural, world. The harvest is according to the seed. (Gal. vi. 7, 8.)

Such is the transcendant dignity and worth of the soul, that eternity is

stamped upon all its actions. Every thought, every principle (is not

this a solemn recollection?) is a seed for eternity, issuing in an harvest

of eternal joy, or "desperate sorrow."  The wise man here adverts to

the latter--harvest. All experience and observation testify to the fact,

that the diligence of the ungodly sower can only end in vanity, in utter

and eternal disappointment. (Job, iv. 8.  Rom. vi. 21.)

     The connexion, however, of the two clauses of the Proverb may

intimate, that the iron rod of the rich ruling over the poor, following the

dictates of selfishness, will ensure disappointment. Their abused power

will shortly fail, and they will reap only the harvest of their injustice.

Often may oppressors prosper for a time.  God may use them as his

chastening rod. But the seed-time of iniquity will end in the harvest of

vanity; and when they have done their work, the rod of their anger shall

fail.  Such was Sennacherib in olden time,2 such was Napoleon in our

own day.  Never has the world seen so extensive a sower of iniquity,

never a more abundant harvest of vanity. The rod of anger was he to

the nations of the earth.  But how utterly was the rod suffered to fail,

when the purpose was accomplished! despoiled of empire, shorn of

 

      1 Pa. cxxvi. 5, 6. Hos. x. 12. Matt. xiii. 8, 24-30.

      2 Isa. x. 5-12, 24, 25; xxx. 31. Zech. x. 11.

 * Henry in loco.                                              Geier in loco.


408                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

greatness, an exiled captive.  Such is not the harvest from God's seed!

"A sure reward" (Chap. xi. 18), not of vanity, but of substantial, ever-

lasting joy. (Ps. cxxvi. 5, 6.)  Here let us "sow bountifully, that we

may reap also bountifully." (2 Cor. ix. 6, 9.)

 

9. He that hath a bountiful (is good of, marg.) eye shall be blessed; for

he giveth of his bread to the poor.

      The heart often looks out at the eye.l  The bountiful or good eye is

contrasted with "the evil eye."2 This man can look with indifference,

on distress," satisfy himself with the heartless expression of good-will,4

and find many reasons for withholding his charity. But the man of a

good eye delighteth in contriving acts of kindness. (Isa. xxxii. 8.)  He

not only relieves what is brought before him, but he looks out for

objects, and looks pleasantly on them. Nehemiah, instead of using his

ample power for his own aggrandizement, spent his substance in feeding

the people at his own table, giving of his bread to the poor. (Neh. v.

16-18.) His great work required a large heart. And such a heart

God had given him. Ever remember--Christian--that God's standard

is sacrifice, not convenience; giving of our bread; letting the poor share

with ourselves. (Job, xxxi. 17.)  Nor must it be wrung from us by

importunity. "God loveth a cheerful giver."5  His "charge is, that

we be ready to distribute, willing to communicate." (1 Tim. vi. 17, 18.)

This is his own pattern of bountifulness, "He openeth his hand, and

satisfieth the desire of every living thing." (Ps. cxlv. 16.)   We are only

the stewards of his bounty.  Of our property, be it little or much, we

must be ready to feel of that, as of ourselves6--It is 'not our own.'

But, let the motive be higher than the mere gratification of kindly

feelings.  Cherish carefully godly simplicity.  "Let your light shine

before men for your Father's glory," not for your own.*

     This bountifulness is a privilege, which earth possesses above heaven.

Many a rich blessing is sealed to it.7  'Beneficence is the most exquisite

luxury; and the good man is the genuine epicure.'  He "hath a

continual feast," because his objects are always before him.  Man will

bless him according to his ability;8 and when "they cannot recom-

pense thee, thou shalt be recompensed at the resurrection of the just;"9

when 'one good work done for God will be seen'--as Luther says--

'to shew more glory than the whole frame of heaven and earth.'  It is

 

     1 Luke, x. 33-35.             2 Chap. xxiii. 6. Deut. xv. 9; xxviii. 54, 56. Matt. xx. 15.

     3 1 Sam. xxv. 3, 10, 11. Luke, x. 31, 32; xvi. 19-21.          4 Jam. ii. 15, 16.

    5 2 Cor. ix. 6. Deut. xv. 10.                                                  6 1 Cor. vi. 19, 20.

    7 Deut. xv. 10. Isa. lviii. 10, 11. Matt. v. 7. Comp. Ecclus. xxxi. 23, 24.

    8 Job, xxix.11-13; xxxi. 16-29.        9 Ps. xli. 1, 2. Luke, xiv. 14. 1 Tim. vi. 19.

       *Matt. v. 16, with vi. 1-3; xxv. 34-40. It is stated of a munificent Christian, that he

strictly forbade the recipients of his bounty to return thanks.  Probably the knowledge of

his own heart suggested this prohibition.

        Bishop HORNE'S Sermon on Ps. xli. 1.


CHAP. XXII. 10,11.                                      409

 

the working of his grace, the following of his pattern, the reflection

of his image, the "shewing forth of his virtue." (1 Pet. ii. 9, marg.)

 

10. Cast out the scorner, and contention shall go out, yea, strife and

reproach shall cease.

     This is a word to rulers.  The scorner is a firebrand of contention in

the church. (3 John, 10.) He must be restrained.1  If restraint be

ineffectual, he must: if possible, be cast out.2  If "his seat" be allowed

in the family,3 strife and reproach must be the issue. A jeer or biting

taunt is more provoking than a blow. If therefore "peace is to the

house," and “the love of peace is to abide there,”4--cast out the scorner,

and the contention will cease.5  He must not be argued with.6  We

must keep no terms with him.  We must meet him with bold and

open rebuke, lest his influence should overthrow the faith of the

simple.7  If God "scorneth the scorner,"8 what less can we do, than

banish him from our society?9  Yet if we cast him out, cast him not

off. Pray for him. Remember "such were some of you." (1 Cor.

vi. 11.)  While we abhor the sin, pity the sinner.

      But what we should not be able to cast him out?  He may be a

husband or a child. At least give a protest.  Shew that you stand

not on the same ground. Turn away from his scorning. This will

mortify, if not silence. Turn from him to your God.10  This will bring

peace. Dwell with him "sighing, as David in Mesech.11  One greater

than David teaches us by his example.  Honour your Divine Master

by "enduring," as he did, year after year, "the contradiction of sin-

ners." (Heb. xii. 3.)  And who knoweth, but this meek and silent

endurance, with a loving, bleeding heart, may have power to cast out

the scorning, and to mould the scorner into the lowliness of the cross?

Then who would be a more welcome member of the church or of the

family?  Strife and reproach would cease in both, should the persecutor

of the faith become a monument of grace (1 TIm. 1. 13-16), a shining

witness to the truth. (Gal. i. 23, 24.)

 

11. He that loveth pureness of heart, for the grace of his lips the king

shall be his friend.

     Pureness of heart describes not the natural, but the renewed, man.

It is no external varnish, no affectation of holiness; but sincerity,

humility, shrinking from sin, conformity to the image of God.  He

who hath fully attained this pureness is before the throne of God.  He

who loveth it is the child of God on earth. His perfection is desire,

constant progress, pressing towards the mark. (Philip. iii. 12-15.)

 

    1 2 Tim. iii. 8, 9.            2 1 Tim. i. 20. Tit. iii. 10, 11.                            3 Ps, i. 1.

    4 Luke, x. 5, 6.              5 Gen. xxi. 9, 10. Comp. chap. xv.18; xvi. 28.

    6 Chap. xxvi. 4. 2 Kings. xviii.36.        7 2 Tim. ii:1-10.                         8 Chap. iii. 34.

    9 Ps. cxix. 115. Comp. Neh. xiii. 28.   10 Ps. xxxv. 21-24 lxix.11-13.    11 Ib. cxx. 5-7.


410                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

"When the fountain is cleansed, it sendeth forth sweet waters.  When

"the tree is made good, the fruit will be good."  "Of the abundance

of the heart the mouth speaketh." (Matt. xii. 33, 34.)

     Pureness of heart sheds such refinement over the whole character, and

pours such grace upon the lips, as attracts the admiration of those, who

do not understand its source, and cannot appreciate its principle. (Chap.

xxxi. 10, 26.)  Such was the grace upon the lips of the holy Saviour,

that "the multitude hung upon them, wondering at the gracious words

which proceeded out of his mouth:"1  The moral influence also of this

purity of character is to put impurity to shame.

      Solomon doubtless spoke his own determination, that the king should

be the friend of the gracious servant.  This had been his father's resolu-

tion.  This character smoothed the way to royal favour for Joseph,"

for Ezra," and Daniel.5  Nay--we find godly Obadiah in the confidence

of wicked Ahab.6  So powerful is the voice of conscience, even when

God and holiness are hated!  Yet this choice of the gracious lips is

too often rather what ought to be, than what is.7  Well is it for the

kingdom, when the sovereign's choice is according to this rule.8  Such

atone the great King marks as his friends.  Such he embraces with his

fatherly love.9  Such he welcomes into his heavenly kingdom.10

"Blessed are the pure in heart, for they shall see God." (Matt. v. 8.)

 

12. The eyes of the Lord preserve knowledge, and he overthroweth the

                                    words of the transgressor.

     The eyes of the Lord often describe his searching Omniscience;11

here his fatherly care.12  There are so many inlets to false principles;

such spacious appearances to warp the judgment, does the subtle enemy

pour in; so strong is the natural tendency in the same direction; that

but for this gracious covering to preserve knowledge in our hearts, the

words of the transgressor might "overthrow our faith." (2 Tim. ii.

17-19.)  Oh! let us seek in close communion with him continued

preservation from a cloud upon our intellectual faculties, and spiritual

apprehensions for our Christian establishment.

      But the proverb illustrates upon a wider scale his faithful keeping

of the truth in the world. Indeed it may be regarded as a prophecy

in the course of fulfilment to the very end of time.  For how wonder-

fully has the knowledge of God been preserved from age to age; and all

the plausible or malignant schemes to blot it out been overthrown!

The Scriptures, as the words of knowledge, have been preserved in a far

 

     1 Ps. xiv. 2, 7. Luke, xix. 48; iv.22.             2 Ps. ci. 6; cxix. 63.    3 Gen. xli. 37-45.

     4 Ezra, vii. 6, 21-25.                                    5 Dan. vi. 1-3, 28.

     6 1 Kings, xviii. 3, 12. 2 Kings, xiii. 14.     7 Chap. xvi. 12, 13.     8 Chap. xxviii. 2; xxv. 5.

     9 Chap. xv. 9. 10 Ps. xv. 1, 2; xxiv. 3, 4.

    11 Chap. v. 21; xv. 3. Ps. xi. 4.                    12 2 Chron. xvi. 9. Ps. xxxiv. 15. Zech. iv. 10.

.                                         *Scott in loco.


CHAP. XXII. 13.                                                       411

 

more accurate state than any other book of corresponding antiquity;

though man's wisdom has never been wanting in ingenuity to corrupt

it.  When knowledge seemed on the eve of perishing, a single copy of

the Scriptures, found as it were accidentally, preserved it from utter

extinction. (2 Chron. xxxiv. 14-18.) For successive generations the

Book was in the custody of faithful librarians, handed down in sub-

stantial integrity. (Rom. iii. 2.) When the church herself was on the

side of the Arian heresy, the same watchful eyes raised up a champion,*

to preserve the testimony. In the succeeding dark ages witnesses

prophesied, as from the earliest eras of Revelation,  some indeed for a

long time in sackcloth,1 until the dawn of a brighter day. Nor 'was

this in peace and quietness.  Often has the infidel transgressor laboured

with all the might of man for its destruction.  Often has Rome partian~

suppressed it, or committed it to the flames, or circulated perverted

copies and false interpretations.  Yet all these words and deeds of the

transgressors have been overthrown.  And notwithstanding all heretical

corruptions, the eyes of the Lord have preserved knowledge.  Still is his

word continued among us, with its Divine credentials unimpaired, and

its unsearchable store undiminished--a standing miracle of the faith-

fulness of its Almighty Keeper.  Full of joy and confidence is the

believer's acknowledgment--"Concerning thy testimonies, I have known

of old, that thou hast founded them for ever." (Ps. cxix. 152.)

 

13. The slothful man saith, There is a lion without, I shall be slain in the

                                    streets. (Chap. xxvi. 13.)

      'This sentence belongs to those who flinch from the cross.'§  Real

difficulties in the way of heaven exercise faith.  And such there are,

far too great for those, who have never "counted the cost," or who

"go to the warfare at any time at their own charges."2  But imaginary

difficulties are the indulgence of sloth.  The slothful man is a coward.

He has no love for his work, and therefore he is always ready to put a

cheat upon his soul, 'inventing some vain excuse, because he will not

do his duty.'||  He shrinks from every work likely to involve trouble.

(Chap. xv. 19; xix. 24.)  Fancied dangers frighten him from real and

present duties.  There is a lion without; I shall be slain in the streets--

an absurd excuse!--as if public streets, except in special cases, were

the haunts of wild beasts. (Ps. civ. 20-22.)  He is afraid of being slain

without, when he willingly gives himself up to be slain within. (Chap.

xxi. 25.)  Thus the unbelieving spies, when holding up to view the

exuberant fruit of Canaan, added--But we be not able to go up against

the people.  The cities are walled up to heaven; and the giants are

 

      1 1 Rev. xi. 3-11; xii. 14-17.              2 Matt. viii. 19, 20, with xi. 12. Luke, xiv. 28-30.

      * Athanasius.                                    Enoch, Jude, 14, 15. Noah, 2 Pet. ii. 5.

      ‡ Jer. xxxvi 23. The company ofVoltaire and his associates.

      § Melancthon in loco.                       || Reformer's Notes.


412                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

there. (Num. xiii. 27-33.)  As if the promise of God was not a stronger

ground of faith, than the giants of fear!1  But much more sad is it to see

Moses shrinking,2--nay--Jonah running away, from the Lord's work.3

All excuses against doing it partake of this cowardly spirit.  And who

has not felt the temptation, when called to a plain but self-denying

duty; to encounter painful opposition to the gospel, or to a faithful

rebuke of sin?--There is a lion without.  True.  But hast thou for-

gotten the promise in the ways of God?  "Thou shalt tread upon the

lion and adder; the young lion and the dragon shalt thou trample under

feet?" (Ps. xci. 11-13.)  Does not our Master call us to follow him in

a life of self-devoted conflict and energy?  Ponder the terms of dis-

cipleship.  "If any man will come after me, let him deny himself, and

take up his cross daily, and follow me." (Luke, ix. 23.)  Godly courage,

"endurance of hardness," "standing in the, whole armour of God "*--

all this is needed; all this must be daily and hourly sought for, not

only by those who stand in the forefront of the battle, but by the meanest

soldier of the cross; else, though "armed, and carrying the bow, he will

turn back" disgracefully "in the day of battle." (Ps. lxxviii. 9.)

 

14. The mouth of strange women is a deep pit; he that is abhorred of the

Lord shall fall therein.

      This fearful temptation has been already frequently opened.4  But

in a book specially for the young, who that knows the power of "youth-

fullusts" (2 Tim. ii. 22), and the seductive witcher es of sin, will deem

a fresh warning needless?  Is it not the voice of mercy?  For what

but unbounded compassion could stand as it were at the edge of the pit,

and unfold to the unwary its awful peril?  A deep pit indeed it is,5

easy to fall into; hard, next to impossible, to get out of.6  So besotting

is this sin to the flesh, to the mind, and to the conscience!7  It is the

mouth of a pit far deeper."  For her feet go down to death; her steps

take hold of hell."9  What more humbling proof can there be of the

total depravity of the nature, than the fact, that those affections,

originally given as the purest enjoyments of life, should become the

corrupt spring of such a defilement.  The sin and snare would seem to

be a judicial infliction for those, whose wilful rejection of God has

made them abhorred of him.9  They have turned away from instruction,

hated reproof, resisted conviction, been given up to their abomination;

they give therefore too plain proof that they are abandoned by God,

(Chap. v. 37)--abhorred of the Lord!  Is the embrace of the strange

 

      1 Num. xiv. 6-8 with Gen. xii. 7.       2 Exod. iv. 10-14.            3 Jonah, i. 1-3.

      4 Chap. ii. 16-19; v. 3; vi. 24-29; vii. 5, &c. ; ix. 16-18.          5 Chap. xxiii. 27.

      6 Chap. ii. 19. Eccles. vii. 26.            7 Judg. xvi. 19,20. Neh. xiii. 26. Hos. iv. 11.

      8 Chap. v. 5; 2 Pet. ii. 10-12. Rev. xxi. 8. 9 Rom. i. 28. Ps. lxxxi. 11, 12.

              * 2 Tim. ii. 3. Eph. vi. 11, 13. 'Invictus ad labores; fortis ad periculum; durus adver-

sus illecebras.'  Ambrose--a fine exhibition of Christian energy.


CHAP. XXII. 15.                                                       413

 

woman a compensation for such a judgment?  Every curse, eternal

frown and banishment, the weight of infinite unmingled wrath, is

involved in this awful name.  Not that he willeth the death of the

vilest sinner. (Ezek. xviii. 32.)  But must not his justice and his

holiness be in array against those, who of their own will choose evil

and reject alike the warnings of his wrath, and the invitations of his

love?

 

15. Foolishness is bound in the heart of a child; but the rod of correction

shall drive it far from him.

    What parent, what instructor of children, will not bear sad, but

decisive, testimony to the foolishness of the child?  'A little innocent'

--is the miscalled name of fondness and fancy.  One only of Adam's

race, and he--adored be his name! preserved by his holy conception

(Luke, i. 35)--lays claim to it.  Foolishness is the birthright of all

besides. The early development of waywardness and passion,--even

before the power of speech;* before the child is capable of observing

and imitating those around him--is a touching, but undeniable, evi-

dence of the innate principle.  Resistance therefore cannot begin too

early.  Education should commence even in the cradle.

        Observe--it is foolishness, not childishness.  That might belong

to an unfallen child.  No moral guilt attaches to the recollection

"When I was a child, I spake as a child, I understood as a child, I

thought as a child." (1 Cor. xiii. 11.)   A child is to be punished

as Mr. Scott wisely observed--'not for being a child, but for being a

wicked child.'  Comparative ignorance, the imperfect and gradual

opening of the faculties, constitute the nature, not the sinfulness of the

child.  The holy "child increased in wisdom." (Luke, ii. 52.)  But

foolishness is the mighty propensity to evil--imbibing wrong prin-

ciples, forming bad habits, entering into an ungodly course.  It means

the very root and essence of sin in a fallen nature--the folly of being

revolted from a God of love.  It includes all the sins of which a child

is capable-lying, deceit (Ps. lviii. 3), wilfulness, perverseness, want

of submission to authority (Job, xi. 12)--a fearful aptness for evil, and

revulsion against good.  It is not the sheet of pure white paper; not

the innocent, or even the tractable, creature, easily guided by proper

means, that we have before us; but a little heart full of sin, containing

all the seeds of future evil, multiplying to a fruitful harvest.

       We delight in our children's harmless play.  We would make

ourselves one with them in their sportiveness.  But this foolishness--

 

    * Augustine mentions a living demonstration of the fall--the sight of an infant, before

it could speak, shewing an evident look of envy and passion towards another infant about

to share its nourishment. He adds--in reference to himself--'When? I beseech thee, 0

my God, in what places, when or where, was I innocent?'--Confess. lib. i. c. 7.

      Life, p. 622.


414                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

visible every hour before our eyes--never let it be a subject of sport,

but of deep and constant sadness. Nor let childhood plead as an

excuse for this foolishness.  Children's sins may not be chargeable with

the guilt of adult responsibility; yet God has awfully shewn, that they

are sins against Himself. The judgment on the "little children" of

Bethel is enough to make "both the ears of" thoughtless parents "to

tingle."  (2 Kings, ii. 23, 24)

      But whence the origin of this foolishness?  "Look unto the rock

whence we are hewn."  Look unto "Adam" our father, and unto

"Eve that bare us." (Isa. li. 1, 2.)  As is the root, so ate the branches.

As is the fountain, so are the waters.  Our nature was poisoned at the

spring.  Our sinful parent, having lost God's image, could only "beget

a son after his image" (Gen. v. 3)--a sinner begetting a sinner.  "That

which is born of the flesh is flesh" (John, iii. 6), and could be nothing

else.  Now "who can bring a clean thing out of an unclean?" (Job,

xiv. 4; xxv. 4.)  The creature therefore is produced into being with a

radical enmity to God;--"by nature" therefore "a child of wrath."

(Eph. ii. 3.)  The entail is held from "our first father," and can never

be cut off.  There is no division of this sad inheritance.  Each of his

children has the whole.  His Maker testifies, that he is "a transgressor

from the womb, that his heart is evil from his youth."1  In shame he

acknowledges the testimony--"Behold! I was shapen in iniquity, and

in sin did my mother conceive me." (Ps. li. 5.)  If the joy of a child's

birth blot out the remembrance of its pain and sorrow (John, xvi. 21),

yet must not this joy be chastened in the humbling recollection of what

the child brings into the world--foolishness?  That self-will, that

proud independence, that shakes the very foundations of society, is the

birth-sin of our fallen nature.  Nor does it lie only on the surface, like

some childish habits, easily corrected.  It is bound in the child's heart,

'held firmly there by chains invincible to human power.'*  It is incor-

porated into his very nature.  And so various are its forms, so subtle

its workings, that the wisest parent is often at a loss how to detect and

treat the evil.

        The prescribed remedy, however, is clear.  It is vain to bid the

foolishness depart.  And little inclination is there in the child himself

to drive it far awayThe rod of correction is distinctly named, and

repeatedly inculcated, as God's own means for this important end.2

And surely the thought of having been an instrument of producing

nature envenomed against a God of love must constrain the parent

to use the means thus divinely appointed for destroying the deadly

poison.

      Only let the child see, that, as with our heavenly Father, love is the

 

     1 Isa. xlviii. 8. Gen viii. 21.           2 Chap. xix. 18; xxiii. 13, 14; xxix. 17.

                                      * Cartwright in loco.


CHAP. XXII. 16.                                                       415

 

ruling principle;1 that we follow the example of the wisest and best of

parents, that we use his rod for driving men from foolishness;2 that, like

him, we "chasten, not for our pleasure, but for our child's profit" (Heb.

xii. 10); not from caprice or passion, but from tenderness to his soul.

Use the Lord's means, and we can then, what otherwise we cannot do,

wait in faith for the promised blessing.  Many a stirring movement of

the flesh will be restrained.  Man's will will be put down, and God's will

gain the supremacy. Shame of sin will issue in abhorrence; and in

this sorrow and humiliation the path of wisdom will be chosen, loved,

and followed. (Chap. xxix. 15.)

      We have indeed no right to demand to see God's reasons for his

ordinance.  Yet we may be permitted, in part at least, to trace its

workings.  Habits are of immense value, as wrought into the character

by the Holy Spirit.  But there must be a beginning, and the use of

means to fix the principle.  If a child be punished for falsehood; to

avoid future punishment, he abstains, and speaks the truth.  As he

advances, he finds the blessing and comfort of the right path.  He

learns gradually to speak truth from a higher motive.  Insensibly his

conscience acquires tenderness respecting it; and it becomes a prin-

ciple in his character.  Thus the rod of correction performs its work with

permanent benefit.

 

16. He that oppresseth the poor to increase his riches, and he that giveth to

the rich, shall surely come to want.

        These two cases seem to be at opposites.  Yet they meet at the

same centre.  Both are equally destitute of the love of God, and of

their brother.  Both alike are seeing their own aggrandizement.  The

one oppresseth the poor to increase his riches.  The other giveth to the

rich, "hoping for" something "again."  Both courses--paradoxical

as it may appear--are the road to want.  "For the oppression of the

poor--now will I arise--saith the Lord.  Him that loveth violence,

his soul hateth." (Ps. xii. 5; xi. 5.)  'Sin pays its servants very bad

wages; for it gives the very reverse of what is promised.  While the

the sin of oppression promises mountains of gold, it brings them poverty

and ruin. (Jer. xii. 13-15.)  Injuries done to the poor are sorely re-

sented by the God of mercy, who is the poor man's friend, and will

break in pieces his oppressor.'*  But if oppression is the road to poverty,

is not liberality the way to riches?  Doubtless it is, if it be for God.

(Chap. iii. 9, 10.)  But here the man was putting forth a false show of

munificence to ensure gifts in tenfold return; while he could at the

same time indulge his selfishness in grinding the poor with impunity.

Our Lord, therefore, forbids his friends to "make a feast for the rich,

 

     1 Chap. xiii. 24, with iii. 11, 12.                           2 2 Chron. xxxiii. 12, 13.

                                * Lawson in loco.  Comp. verses 22, 23.


416              EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

looking for a recompence."*  "If ye do good to them"--said he to

his disciples--"that do good to you-if ye lend to them, of whom ye

hope to receive-what thank have ye?" (Luke, vi. 33.)  To give to

the rich is perverting our stewardship for the service of the poor.  But

retributive justice will blast the ill-gotten gains of selfishness;1 and

hypocrisy will meet its just reward of shame and disappointment. (Luke,

xii. 1,2.)  Oh! let the Christian ever hear his Father's voice--"Walk

before me, and be thou perfect."

 

17. Bow down thine ear, and hear the words of the wise, and apply thine

     heart unto my knowledge. 18. For it is a pleasant thing, if thou keep

     them within thee; they shall withal be fitted in thy lips. 19. That thy

     trust may be in the Lord, I have made known to thee this day, even to

     thee. 20, 21. Have not I written to thee excellent things in counsels

     and knowledge, that I might make thee know the certainty of the words

     of truth; that thou mightest answer the words of truth to them that

     send unto thee?

     Solomon here changes his mode of address.  From the tenth chapter

he had chiefly given detached, sententious aphorisms in an antithetical

form; contrasting right and wrong principles with their respective

results.  His observations are now more connected and personal, and,

like a wise minister, he preaches to his people, not before them; preach-

ing to them, not only in the mass, but in contact with their individual

consciences.

     The wise man here 'shews the power and use of the word of God.

He begins with an earnest call to attention.  He was speaking no

ordinary matters, but the words of the wise.  Bow the ear--apply the

heart unto my knowledge2 as to a message from God Lord! "waken

mine ear to hear as the learned." (Isa. L. 4.)

      Observe the attractiveness of wisdom.  It is a pleasant, no less than a

profitable, thing.  And who is not alive to the call of pleasure?  Yet

incomprehensible is it to the world to connect religion with pleasure.

It spoils all their pleasure.  And what amends can it make?  It

includes in their view much to be done, but nothing to be enjoyed;

something very serious, perhaps important in its place; but grave and

gloomy; a duty, not a privilege.  Yet how little has our profession

wrought for us, if it has not realized it as a pleasant thing "if it has not

adorned it with somewhat of an angel's face!  Often indeed by our

own fault it fails to comfort and invigorate us; a body indeed of truth,

 

     1 Job, xx. 19-22. Isa. v. 8, 9. Mic. iii. 2-5. Zech. vii. 9-14. Jam. ii. 6, 13; v. 1-4.

     2 Ch.ii 12; xxiii. 12

     * Luke, xiv. 12. Martial often alludes to the expectation of a legacy with keen rebuke

of selfishness.

     Melancthon in loco.


                                                CHAP. XXII. 17-21.                                     417

 

but" a body without the spirit"--cold and lifeless.  It is a pleasant

thing only, if we keep it within us.l  Heart-religion conveys vital hap-

piness.  The fruit is of "the tree of life;"2 its taste "sweeter than

honey or the honey-comb;"3 "Thy words were found, and I did eat

them, and thy word was unto me as the joy and rejoicing of my heart."

(Jer. xv. 16.)

      Mark also the connection between the religion of the heart and of the

lips.  Keep it within thee.  "Let this word dwell in your heart;" and

how graceful will be the furniture of the lips, fitting them to speak with

natural simplicity, and suitable application!4  When "the heart is

inditing a good matter, the tongue" is as "the pen of a ready writer."

(Ps. xlv. 1.)  It becomes "as choice silver."  The words are fitted like

a string of rich and precious pearls.'*  "The lips of the righteous feed

many."5  Yet the words will be but little fitted in the lips,6 "where

there is no treasure in the heart."  Never let the mouth attempt to

"speak of wisdom," until "the meditation of the heart has been of

understanding." (Ps. xlix. 3.)

     But how powerless are even the words of wisdom without personal appli-

cation!  Let each for a while isolate himself from his fellow-men, and

be alone with God, under the clear, searching light of his word.  If

prayer be cold; graces be languid, privileges be clouded, and profession

unfruitful, is it not because religion has been taken up in the gross,

without immediate personal contact with the truth of God?  O my

soul, the message of God is to thee, even to thee--this, day.  "To-day,

while it is called to-day,"7 welcome his voice with reverential joy.

"Take fast hold of his instruction, for it is thy life." (Chap. iv. 13.)

That thy trust may be in the Lord; that thou mayest claim thine interest it:

in him; that thou mightest seal his troth upon thine heart--he hath

made it known to thee, even to thee.  Believe, love, obey; be happy here,

and for eternity.  And who can doubt the excellency of the things that are

written, so rich in counsel and knowledge--'words fit for a prince to

speak, and the best man in the world to hear?'  Such free, such

pleading, invitations!8  Such deep manifestations of the divine

counsels!9  Such wise, earnest, parental warning against sin!10  Such

encouraging exhibitions of the service of God!11  Such a minute and

practical standard for relative life and social obligation!12

      But let us not forget the great end of this Revelation--that we may

know the certainty of the things; that we may give an answer concerning

 

     1 Chap. vi. 21; vii. 1, with ii. 10.                        2 Chap. iii. 18.

     3 Chap. xxiv. 13, 14. Ps.  xix. 10; cxix. 103.      4 Ps. cxix. 171; Matt. xii. 34. Col. ill. 16.

     5 Chap. x. 21. Comp. xv. 23; xvi. 21; xxv. 11.   6 Chap. xxvi. 7, 9.

     7 Heb. iii. 13; iv. 7, with Ps. xcv. 7.                    8 Chap. i. viii. ix. 9 Chap. viii.

     10 Chap vi. vii                                                    11Chap. iii.               12 Chap. x.-xxii.

                                                *Diodati.

     See the same emphatic reduplication, chap. xxiii. 15.     ‡ Chap. viii. 6. Scott in loco.


418                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

our confidence.  The Gospel itself was written with a special reference

to this important end.1  Yet this confidence is a Divine attainment.

"The word must come with power, and with the Holy Ghost," in order

to come "with much assurance." (1 Thess. i.5.)  That cannot be a

sound faith, which does not extend to the whole of the testimony.

And even a general admission of the authority of the whole, without

an individual application, would, if carefully analyzed, prove to be a

want of cordial reception of any part of the revelation.  A lodgment

in the heart can alone bring that full conviction--"Now we believe,

not because of thy saying; for we have heard him ourselves."

(John, iv. 42.)

      Doubts may arise as to the integrity of the foundation.  But a

candid and intelligent survey of the external evidence would satisfy all

reasonable minds.* And a fair trial for ourselves would confirm the

mass of proof with all the weight of internal evidences.  Far better to

make the trial at once, than to paralyze the modicum of remaining

strength by unreasonable doubtings.  The Bible exhibits a divinely-

appointed remedy commensurate with man's infinite distress, and

accepted of God in its power and prevalence.  Let this at least

encourage the effort to fit our case to the remedy, and to apply the

remedy to our case.  There may be shaking in the exercise, but not in

the foundation, of our confidence.

     No further proof can be expected.  None, in fact, could be given,

save a voice from heaven; which the busy enemy, working upon the

imagination, would readily convert into a vehicle of doubt. Actual

demonstration would leave no room for faith, which is clearly man's

discipline in the present dispensation; humbling him in the conscious-

ness of his ignorance and his dependence upon God.  We have only

therefore thankfully to receive, and diligently to improve, the sufficient

evidence vouchsafed to us.  Paley has given us a golden maxim of

Christian philosophy; when he defines the fortitude of understanding

to consist 'in not suffering what we do know to be disturbed and shaken by

what we do not know.'  To delay, therefore, "the obedience of faith"

(Rom. xvi. 26), until we shall have solved all the ten thousand objections

of a proud infidelity, is to waste the urgent responsibilities of the pre-

sent moment in an unwarranted expectation of light, which was never

intended to be given.  Perhaps time was, when these questions were

welcome, nurtured by pride or sensuality; rather insinuated, than for-

mally presented.  Simplicity was revolting.  Imagination was in the

stead of faith, not auxiliary to it.  But the tossings of the mind in

 

                             1 Luke, i. 1-4; 2 Pet. i. 15, 16.

     *See Dr. ALEXANDER'S Canon of the Old and New Testament Scriptures Ascertained--a

valuable volume from America--reprinted in London.

     See his Natural Theology, Chap. v.


                                    CHAP. XXII. 22, 23.                                                 419

 

speculative uncertainty have been ordained to enhance the value of a

soundly-assured confidence.

       Indeed the importance of such a confidence cannot be over-esti-

mated.  It constitutes the weight and effectiveness of the sacred office.

"The priest's lips keep knowledge, and they shall seek the law at his

mouth, as the messenger of the Lord of Hosts." (Mal. ii. 7.)  But except

he know himself the certainty of the words of truth, how can he answer the

words of truth to them that send unto him?  Scarcely less necessary is it,

for the Christian, that he may" be ready always to give an answer to

everyone that asketh him a reason of the hope that is in him." (1 Pet.

iii. 15.)  Temporary scepticism may be a chastisement of a disputatious

spirit; but prayer, and humility, with all its attendant graces, will

ultimately lead to Christian establishment.  Thus shall we be preserved

from the fearful, but alas! too prevalent, danger, of receiving the tradi-

tions of men in the stead, and with the authority, of the testimony of

God.  Ours will not be a blind Romish faith in the priests or in the

Church, but alone "in the law and the testimony;"1 "standing not in

the wisdom of men, but in the power of God;"2 stamped by the impress

of the Spirit, as "the witness in ourselves."3 No power of Satan or his

emissaries will drive us permanently from this stronghold.  We "know

whom" and what "we have believed" (2 Tim. i. 12), and "testify," for

the support of our weaker brethren, "that this is the true grace of God

wherein we stand." (1 Pet. v. 12.)

 

22, 23. Rob not the poor, because he is poor: neither oppress the afflicted in

      the gate: for the Lord will plead their cause, and spoil the soul of those

      that spoiled them.

      Perhaps after so solemn an exhortation, we might have expected

something more important.  Yet what can be more important than the

law of love, and to rebuke the breaches of that law?  Robbery and

oppression, under any circumstances, are a breach of the commandment.

(Exod. xx. 15.)  But to rob the poor, because he is poor, and has no

means of protection, is a cowardly aggravation of the sin. (2 Sam. xii.

1-6.)  Much more base is it to oppress the afflicted in the gate--the place

of judgment4--to make his only refuge a market for bribery,5 and to

pervert the sacred authority of God given for his protection.6  God is

most resisted in wronging those who cannot resist or defend them-

selves.  'The threatenings of God against the robbers of the poor are

sometimes laughed at by the rich and great.  But they will find them

in due time to be awful realities.'*  'Weak though they be, they have

 

      1 Isa. viii. 20. Acts, xvii. 11.        2 1 Cor. ii. 5.              3 1 John, v. 10; ii.20, 27.

      4 Ruth, iv. 1. 2 Sam. xv. 2; xix. 8. Job, v. 4. Amos, v. 15.

      5 Exod. xxiii. 6. Amos, v. 12. 6 Ps. lxxxii. 4. Comp. lxxii. 1-4.

                               * Lawson on Verse 16.


420                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

a strong one to take their part.*  He will plead their cause. And woe

to the man, against whom he pleads. "What mean ye"--demands the

poor man's pleader--"that ye beat my people to pieces, and grind the

face of the poor?"1

      The accumulation of divine vengeance is heaped upon this sin.2

Ahab's judgment testified to the fearful spoiling of those who spoil the

poor.3  The captivity in Babylon was the scourge for this wickedness."

And when the deeds of secrecy shall be brought to light, how black

will be the catalogue of sins of oppression!  How tremendous the judg-

ments of the oppressor!5  Meanwhile let the poor commit himself to his

God;6 yea, take up the song of praise,7 in the confidence that the

Divine pleader will "maintain his cause,"8 to the eternal confusion of

his spoilers.

 

24, 25. Make no friendship with an angry man; and with a furious man

            thou shalt not go: lest thou learn his ways, and get a snare to thy soul.

      Sin is contagious.  Alas! our corrupt constitution predisposes us to

receive it in any form, in which it may be presented to us.  The un-

lovely passions of a furious man rather repel than attract.9  But sin

never loses its infectious character.  Friendship blinds the eye; and

where there is no light in the mind, no true tenderness in the con-

science, we can see hateful things done by those we love, with blunted

sensibilities.  Common intercourse with a furious man is like living in a

house that is on fire.  His unreasonable conduct stirs our own tempers.

One fire kindles another.  Occasional bursts of passion soon form the

habit.  The habit becomes the nature.  Thus we learn his ways, and get

a snare to our soul. (Ps. cvi. 35, 36.)  How soon does a young person,

living with a proud man, get the mould of his society, and become

imperious and overbearing! (Ecclus. xiii. 1.)  Evil ways, especially

when they fall in with our natural temperament, are much sooner

learnt than good, and are much more powerful to "corrupt good man-

ners" (1 Cor. xv. 33), than good manners to amend the evil.  We learn

anger easier than meekness.  We convey disease, not health.  Hence it

is the rule of self-preservation, no less than the rule of God--Make no

friendship with an angry man.

 

26. Be not thou one of them that strike hands, or of them that are sureties

      for debts. 27. If thou hast nothing to pay, why should he take away

      thy bed from under thee?

     Avoid contention, not only with angry, but with imprudent, perhaps

 

      1 Isa. iii. 15. Comp. chap. xxiii. 10, 11. Jer. 1. 33, 34.              2 Ps. cix. 6, 16.

      3 1 Kings, xxi. 18-24.  Comp. Isa. xxxiii. 1. Hab. ii. 8.

      4 Ezek. xxii. 29-31.  Comp. Jer. xxi. 12.             5 Mal. iii. 5.     6 Ps. x. 14.

      7 Ib. cix. 30, 31.            8 Ib. cxl. 12.                    9 Chap. xxi. 24; xxv 28; xxvii. 4.

                                  *Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on 1 Sam. xii. 3.


                                    CHAP. XXII. 28.                                                       421

 

unprincipled associates.  Strike not your hands1 as a surety, without fore-

thought, perhaps without upright principle.  Repeated warnings have

been given of this danger.2  Striking hands for a friend is often striking,

and even wounding, our own hearts.  The putting your hand to a bill

may be almost signing a warrant for your own execution.  At all

events it is a fraud to give security for more than you are worth; pro-

mising what you are unable to perform.  The creditor may fairly in

this case proceed to extremities3--not with the debtor (whom he

knows to be worth nothing, and "whom indeed" the law of God pro-

tected4--but with the surety.  And why--the wise man asks--

shouldest thou rashly incur beggary and ruin, so as to have the bed

taken from under thee?

      There is, however, so much danger of erring in over-caution, and of

indulging selfishness under the cover of prudence, that these whole-

some cautions must be considerately applied.  Yet, in "devising liberal

things" (Isa. xxxii. 8), we must combine scrupulous regard to justice

and truth (Philip. iv. 8); else our very charity will prove the scandal,

instead of the glory, of our profession.5  We may "take joyfully the

spoiling of our goods," for the testimony of a good conscience.  But as

the fruit of our own rashness and folly, we cannot but take it heavily.

Oh! let our Divine Master be honoured in our profession; by well-

doing "putting to silence the ignorance of foolish men."

 

28. Remove not the ancient landmark, which thy fathers have set.

     Every one has an undoubted right to his own.  He must therefore

have the means of knowing and securing his right.  Even the heathen

admitted the sacredness of the landmark.  The stone or the staple was

honoured as the god, without whose kindly influence every field

would be the subject of contention.  The landmark was protected by

the wise laws of Israel.  God himself set the "bounds to the respective

parts of his own world, restricting each part within its proper limits.7

Thus also he distributed the different nations,8 and appointed the

same security for the several allotments of his own people.9 The

ancient landmark stood as the witness and memorial of each man's

rights, which his fathers had set.  Its removal therefore was forbidden,

as a selfish and unjust invasion of property,10 included in the curses of

Ebal11 and noted, in subsequent ages, as the forefront of national provo-

cation.12

 

     1 Chap. vi. 1.              2 Ib. verses 1, 2; xi. 15; xvii. 18.            3 Chap. xx. 16.

     4 Exod. xxii. 26, 27. Deut. xxiv. 12,13.       5 Rom. XIV. 16. 1 Tim. v. 22. Heb. xii. 13.

     61 Pet. ii. 12,15; iii.16.                                 7 Gen. i. 6-10. Job, xxxviii. 10, 11.

     8 Deut. xxxii. 8.                                            9 Num. xxxiv.

     10 Deut. xix. 14. Comp. chap. xxiii. 10. Job, xxiv. 2.

     11Dent. xxvii. 17.                                          12Hos. v.10.

            * Heb. x. 34. Henry in loco.                               See Ovid, Trist. ii. 630-648.


422                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

       All sound expositors* warn us, from this Proverb, to reverence long-

tried and well-established principles, and not rashly to innovate upon

them.  Some scorn the ancient landmarks as relics of bye-gone days of

darkness.  Impatient of restraint, they want a wider range of wandering,

to indulge either their own prurient appetite for novelties, or the morbid

cravings of others for this unwholesome excitement. (2 Tim. iii. 7;

iv. 3, 4.)  Endless divisions and dissensions have been the fruit of this

deadly evil.  The right of individual judgment oversteps its legitimate

bounds; and in its licentious exercise "every man" feels justified to

"do" and think "that which is right in his own eyes." (Jud. xxi. 25.)

       Rome, on the other hand, charges us with removing the ancient land-

mark of unwritten Tradition, which our fathers have set.  We ask--What

right had they to set it up?  We do reverence to no unwritten tradi-

tions upon the footing of "the law and the testimony." (Isa. viii. 20.)

We rebut the charge of Antichrist, and contend, upon the broad ground

of historic testimony, that she has removed the ancient landmarks, and sub-

stituted her own in their place; that Protestantism (in principle, though

not in name) is the old religion, and Popery a comparative novelty.

'We have not removed the ancient landmarks by bringing men back to

the true doctrine, because this, being delivered by God, is the ancient

doctrine, and the landmarks have been subsequently removed by the

subtilty of the devil, and idolatry put in the place of the true worship.‡

        Turning to our beloved and venerated Church; the last age wit-

nessed a rude, but by divine mercy an unsuccessful, effort, to root up

her landmarks.§  We have seen a subtle and invidious attempt to

remove them from the place, where our well-instructed fathers have set

them, and fix them nearer Rome; leaving but a narrow boundary of

division between Christ and Antichrist.  This is indeed the rooting up

of the foundations of the grace of God, which ought, if need be, to "be

resisted unto blood." (Heb. xii. 4.) The Lord make us "valiant for the

truth," and consistent witnesses of its power!

 

29. Seest thou a man diligent in his business?  he shall stand before kings;

                          he shall not stand before mean men.

      Seest thou a man?  He is marked out for a special notice!  And

 

                                         1 Chap. xxvi. 12; xxix. 20.

     *Bp. Patrick, Scott, Geier, &c. Romish expositors naturally apply it to their own

traditions.  Este quotes the Venerable Bede. See also Corn. a Lapide.

     The historical dates of the distinctive principles of Popery, accredited as articles of

faith are many centuries subsequent to the primitive era.  See a valuable tract by Rev.

Thomas Lathbury--'Protestantism the Old Religion, Popery the New.'  Also 'Our Pro-

testant Forefathers.'  By the Rev. Dr. Gilly--As regards our own church--Mr. Soames's

interesting and elaborate work on the Anglo-Saxon Church.

    ‡ Melancthon. Comment. 12mo. 1550.

     § The Heathen Association, at Feathers Tavern, supported by men of influence and

dignity, with the avowed object of sweeping away the Creeds, Articles, and Subscriptions.


                                    CHAP. XXIII. 1-3.                                        423

 

who is it?  A man diligent in his business; quick, ready, actively

improving his time, his talents, his opportunity for his work; like

Henry Martyn, who was known in his college 'as the man who had not

lost an hour.'*  A mean sphere is too low for such a man.  He shall

stand, as Joseph,1 Nehemiah,2 Daniel--all diligent in their business-

did--before kings.  If the letter of the promise be not fulfilled, "the

diligent man will bear rule" in his own sphere.3  Such was the honour

put upon Eliezer's care, forethought and, activity for his master's

interest. (Gen. xxiv.)  'Nobleness of condition is not essential as a

school for nobleness of character.  It is delightful to think, that humble

life may be just as rich in moral grace and moral grandeur as the loftier

places in society; that as true a dignity of principle may be earned by

him, who in homeliest drudgery plies his conscientious task, as by him

who stands entrusted with the fortunes of an empire.'

      Diligence, even without godliness, is often the way to worldly

advancement.  Pharaoh chose Joseph's brethren, as "men of activity,"

to be rulers of his cattle. (Ib. xlvii. 6.)  Jeroboam owed his rise in

Solomon's house to his "industrious" habits. (1 Kings, xi. 28.)  But

when a man "serves the Lord in fervency of spirit" (Rom. xii. 11),

thriftfully occupying his own talent for the day of reckoning (Luke,

xix. 13); not only the mean man, but the mighty man of the world, will

be too low for him.  He shall stand before the King of Kings with

unspeakable honour, with unclouded acceptance--"Well done! good

and faithful servant; enter thou into the joy of thy Lord." (Matt.

xxv. 21-23.)

      And if "the servants of this wise king were happy, which stood con-

tinually before him, and heard his wisdom;" what must be the joy of

standing before the great King, seeing his face, and serving him for

ever!4  "This honour have all his saints." (Ps. cxlix. 9.) "If a man

serve me," saith our gracious Master, "where I am, there shall also my

servant be; if any man serve me, him will my Father honour."

(John, xii. 26.)

 

                                                CHAPTER XXIII.

 

1. When thou sittest to eat with a ruler, consider diligently what is before

     thee: 2. And put a knife to thy throat, if thou be a man given to

     appetite. 3. Be not desirous of his dainties: for they are deceitful

     meat.

     THE book of God is our rule of practice, not less than of faith.  It

enforces religion not only in our religious, but in our natural, actions.

 

     1 Gen. xxxix. 3-6; xli. 42.                     2 Neh. i. 11; ii. 1. Dan. vi. 1-3; vi. 28.

     3 Chap. xii. 24. Comp. Ecclus. x. 25.   4 1 Kings, x. 8, with Rev. vii. 15; xxii. 3, 4.

           *Life, chap. ii.                              CHAMMERS' Commercial Discourses, p. 107.


424                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

(1 Cor. x. 31.)  It directs in the daily details of common life.  Suppose

we are invited, in the way of Providence, to the table of a man of rank

--how wise the caution--Consider diligently what is before thee!  Think

where you are; what is the besetting temptation; what impression

your conduct is likely to make.  Wantonness of appetite, or levity of

manner, gives a plausible ground of prejudice to the ungodly, or

"stumbling to the weak."1

      But after all, ourselves are mainly concerned.  May not the luxuries

of the table spread before us stir up disproportionate indulgence?  The

rule is plain and urgent.  If thou art conscious of being given to appe-

tite, making it thy first object and delight,--bridle it as by violence.

(Matt. xviii. 8,9.)  Act as if a knife was at thy throat.  Be stern and

resolute with thyself.2  Give no quarter to the lust.  Resist every

renewed indulgence.  The dainties are deceitful meat, sometimes from

the insincerity of the host;3 always from the disappointment of the

anticipated pleasure. (Eccles. ii. 10, 11.)  To use them may be lawful.

To be desirous of them is fearfully dangerous.

     Who that knows his own weakness will deem this caution needless?

Alas! was not "the lust of the flesh" the first inlet to that sin, which

has overwhelmed us all? (Gen. iii. 6.)  Often has it tarnished a

Christian profession,4 and damped the liveliness of spiritual apprehen-

sions and enjoyments.5  If Christ's disciples, conversant only with mean

and homely fare, needed a caution to "take heed;"6 much more must it

apply to a ruler's table, where everything ministers to the temptation.

            It is man's high prerogative to "have dominion over the creature."7

It is his shame therefore, that the creature in any form should have

dominion over him.  God gives us our body to feed, not to pamper;

to be the servant, not the master, of the soul.  He gives bread for our

necessities,8 man craves "meat for his lust."9   We are to "make pro-

vision" for the wants, not "for the lusts, of the flesh." (Rom. xiii. 14.)

And surely a soul, that "puts on the Lord Jesus Christ," can never

degrade itself to be a purveyor of the flesh. If a heathen could say, 'I

am greater and born to greater things, than to be the servant of my

body'*--is it not a shame for a Christian, born as he is, the heir of an

everlasting crown, to be the slave of his carnal indulgences?

      To go as near as we can to the bounds of intemperance, is to incur

imminent danger of exceeding.  'He that takes his full liberty in what

he may, shall repent him.' Temptation presses hard.  Then put the

 

      1 1 Cor. viii. 9. Rom xiv. 21.       2 Verse 31. Ps. cxli. 4.          3 Verses 6-8.

      4 1 Cor. xi. 21. Phil. iii. 18. 19. Jude, 12, 13.

      5 Gen. xxv. 28; xxvii. 4, with 26-29.                                        6 Luke, xxi. 34.

      7 Gen. i. 26, 28; ix. 2.                   8 Matt. vi. 11, 25-33.           9 Ps. lxxviii. 18.

             * Seneca.

         Bishop HALL'S Works, viii. 101. 'If I see any dish to tempt my palate, I fear a serpent

in that apple, and would please myself in a wilful denial.'--Ib. Ep. Decad. vi. Ep. i.


                                    CHAP. XXIII. 4, 5.                                                    425

 

strongest guard at this weak point.  'Curb thy desires, though they be

somewhat importunate, and thou shalt find in time incredible benefit

by it.'*  Take the prayer of our Church--'Grant unto us such absti-

nence, that our flesh being subdued unto the spirit, we may ever obey

thy godly motions.'Connect with it the resolution of one Apostle--

"I keep under my body, and bring it into subjection" (1 Cor. ix. 27)--

and the rule of another--"Add to your faith temperance." (2 Pet. i.

5, 6.)  This practical warfare will break the power of many a strong

temptation, and triumph over the flesh gloriously.

 

4.  Labour not to be rich; cease from thine own wisdom. 5. Wilt thou set

     thine eyes (cause thine eyes to fly, marg.) upon that which is not? for

     riches certainly make to themselves wings: they fly away as an eagle

     toward heaven.

      We have now a warning against covetousness.  If riches come from

the blessing of God, receive them thankfully,1 and consecrate them

wisely and freely for him. But to labour to be rich, is the dictate of our

own wisdom, not of that "which is from above."  'Let them be gotten

if they can, and how they can,' without needless scrupulosity.2  Solomon,

however, describes by a beautiful figure their true nature--a mere

nonentity, an illusion--that which is not. Folly indeed then is it to

set the eyes (to cause them to fly, like a ravenous bird upon his prey3)

upon this nullity.  One moment it seems to be within reach.  The

next it has eluded our grasp, and flown away as an eagle towards

heaven

     And yet practically to acknowledge the stamp of vanity upon this

idolized treasure, is a lesson not learnt in a day; learnt only in the

school of discipline.  The eagerness for the earthly, and the neglect of

the heavenly, object shew, either that eternity is a delusion, or that the

world is mad. For were the things of eternity really believed, would

not the thoughts be fixed, and the heart be filled with them, with but

little time or room for the engrossing vanities of life?  As to intrinsic

value, Luther not less truly than boldly declared--that 'the whole

Turkish empire in all its vastness was only a crust, which the great

Father of the family cast to the dogs.'  And then--as to abiding, there

is no need to invent wings.  Riches make them to themselves.  The man

who concentrates all his wisdom, talents, and energy, who sacrifices all

his peace; "rising up early, and late taking rest" (Ps. cxxvii. 2), in

 

     1 Chap. x. 22. Gen. xxxi. 9.

     2 Chap. xxviii. 20, 22. Ezek. xxviii. 4, 5. Luke, xvi.      3 Jer. xxii. 17. Hos. ix.11.

         * Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on Ps. xix. 13.

          Collect for first Sunday in Lent.

          ‡ Dan. i. 8. Compare Augustine's ingenious and instructive Confessions, book x. c. 31.

          § A frequent Scripture illustration of a speedy flight. Comp. Deut. xxviii. 49. 2 Sam.

i. 23. Lam iv. 19


426                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the labour after riches, often has been at one stroke deprived of all, just

when he supposed himself to be secure of all.  Divine chastisement,1

indolence,2 extravagance,3 injustice,4 robbery,--bring to the lowest

poverty.5  Their longest stay is but a moment. Eternity is at the

door;6 and naked shall we go out of the world, as we came into it.7

Yet even this palpable consciousness fails to teach men the lessons, to

cease from their own wisdom, to seek true substance on earth,8 and in

God's wisdom to lay up enduring "treasures in heaven."9

      Here then lies the contrast.  The world apprehends realities only

in the objects before them; the Christian only in invisible things.

Therefore if our judgment looks upon the one as a shadow, and the

other as a substance; let us see that we proportion our affections ac-

cordingly; giving the shadow of love to the things of earth, the marrow

and substance of the heart to the things of eternity.  Thank our God

for the present possession of "a better and an enduring substance."

(Heb. x. 34.)  But are there not moments of rest and indulgence,

when "uncertain riches" become our confidence (1 Tim. vi. 17), and

we need a sharp lesson to remind us, how certainly they make to them-

selves wings, and flee away?  Oh! think—Christian--of thy heavenly

birth, thine eternal expectations; what manner of man thou wilt be in

a short moment, when the false pageant shall have given way to the

real manifestation of the Son of God, and thou shalt be on the throne

with him for ever!10  With this glory in prospect, what a degradation

is it to set thine eyes upon a "fashion that passeth away!"*

 

6, 7. Eat thou not the bread of him that hath an evil eye, neither desire thou

            his dainty meats; for as he thinketh in his heart, so is he: Eat and

            drink, saith he to thee; but his heart is not with thee. 8. The morsel

            which thou hast eaten shalt thou vomit up, and lose thy sweet words.

       Kindly intercourse with our neighbours is a part of the courtesies

of life.11  Yet we ought not to entertain the invitation of a niggardly

man, who grudges the very food we eat, or of a deceitful man, whose

 

      1 Gen. xiii. 5-11; xiv. 12.       2 Chap. vi. 9-11.                   3 Luke, xv. 12-16.

      4 Chap. xx.. 21; xxi. 6. Jam. v. 2, 3.                                    5 Job, i. 14-11.

      6 Luke, xii. 20.                        7 Job, i. 21. Ps. xlix. 17.       8 Chap. viii. 18-21.

      9 Matt. vi. 20.                          10 Philip iv.5. Col. iii. 1-4.   11 Cor. v. 10, 11; x. 21.

        * 1 Cor. vii. 29-31. It is a fine remark of a Heathen philosopher--'Nothing can be

called great, which to despise is great. Thus riches, honours, dignities, authorities, and

whatever beside may have the outward pomp of this world's theatre, cannot be to a wise

man pre-eminent blessings, since the contempt of them is a blessing of no mean order.

Indeed those who enjoy them are not so much entitled to admiration, as those who can

look down upon them with a noble superiority of mind.'--LONGIN. De Sublim. sect. vii.

The Roman Satirist adverts to Solon's warning to Croesus, when he refused to admire his

immense riches (a warning despised at the time, but remembered when he was bound to

the stake)--

                                    --Croesum, quem vox justi facunda Solonis

                                    Respicere ad longrae jussit spatia ultima vitae.     Juv. x. 274.


                                    CHAP. XXIII. 9                                                         427

 

friendship is a cloak for selfish purposes.  The evil eye will peep through

the covers of his dainty meats, and betray him, in spite of his effort for

concealment.  We judge him not by his words; for as he thinketh in

his heart, so is he.  And while he saith, Eat and drink, it is but too plain,

that his heart is not with us. (Luke, xi. 37.)  "Better is a dinner of

herbs where love is," than his dainty meat.  "A poor man is far better

than such a liar."l  Every morsel at his table is loathsome; and gladly

would we retract, and lose the sweet words, with which we had unworthily

complimented our host.

      No such danger attaches to the invitations of the Gospel.  There is

no evil eye,2 no grudging--"Ho, every one that thirsteth, come ye to

the waters." (Isa. lv. 1.)  The table is set.  The herald is sent to make

the proclamation. (Comp. chap. ix. 2, 3.)  Hunger is the only qualifi-

cation.  While he saith--"Eat, O friends; yea, drink abundantly, O

beloved" (Cant. v. l),--his whole heart is with us.  There are no repent-

ings, no disappointments here.  Every taste increases the appetite for

more.  And the prospect is near at hand, when we "shall be abun-

dantly" and eternally "satisfied with the fatness of his house." (Ps.

xxxvi. 8; xvi. 11.)

 

9. Speak not in the ears of a fool:  for he will despise the wisdom of thy

                                                            words.

       Our Lord's rule is to the same purport--"Give not that which is

holy unto the dogs; neither cast ye your pearls before swine, lest they

trample them under foot, and turn again and rend you." (Matt. vii. 6.)

Cast not away your good counsels upon incorrigible sinners.  So long

as there is any hope of reclaiming the fool, make every effort for his

precious soul.  In the true spirit of our Master, bring the Gospel to the

worst and the most unwilling; and never make the rule of prudence

the excuse for indolence.  Yet "there is a time to keep silence, as well

as a time to speak."3  Such a time we shall understand by the trial to

our own spirit.  We long to speak in compassion.  But self-denial,

not self-indulgence, restrains.4  We have before been warned against

untimely rebuke. (Chap. i. 8.)  This caution extends further--Speak

not in the ears of a fool. Such was our Master's silence before Herod.

(Luke, xxiii. 9.)  If he would hear, there would be hope.  But instead

of being thankful for instruction, he will depise the wisdom of thy words

(Chap. 1. 7), and take occasion from them only to scoff and blaspheme

the more.  Many doubtful cases, however, require much wisdom.  And

the safe rule will be never to speak without prayer for divine guidance,

and simplicity, and love.

 

              1 Chap. xv. 17; xix. 22.                          2 2 Sam. xi. 13; xiii. 26-28.

              3 Eccles. iii. 7. Chap. xxvi. 4. 5.            4 Ps. xxxix. 1. 2.


428                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

10, 11. Remove not the old landmark: land enter not into the fields of the

     fatherless: for their Redeemer is mighty: he shall plead their cause

     with thee.

     The general prohibition to remove the old landmark has been before

given. (Chap. xxii. 28.)  A special warning, and a powerful reason are

here added.  Many would not dare to touch the rich, while they oppress

the poor at their will.  But the fields of the fatherless are under Almighty

protection.  Not indeed that there is any licence to trespass upon the

rich man's field.  But the fatherless having no might, God will plead

with the invader for the wrong done to them, as for a wrong done to

himself, because done to those, whom be undertook to protect.  Beware

therefore of arming against yourself the divine vengeance by entering

into it.  Helpless they may seem to be.  But their Redeemer is mighty;

he shall plead their cause with thee.1  Was the nearest of kin bound to

be the Redeemer of his kinsman's wrongs?2  Adored be the unsearch-

able pity, grace, and condescension of Emmanuel!  When he could

not redeem as--God, he became our kinsman, that he might be our

Redeemer!3  And he now bears the endearing title of "the Father of

the fatherless."4  His moral government shews, that "in him they find"

not "mercy"5 only but justice also. (Ps. ciii. 6.)  Here is their strong

confidence, when human help is gone.--"The poor committeth himself

unto thee; thou art the helper of the fatherless." (Ib. x. 14, 17, 18.)

"Pure and undefiled religion is" therefore to follow his heavenly

pattern--"to visit the fatherless and widows in their affliction." (Jam.

i. 27.)  Special provision was made in the Apostolical ministration for

these friendless objects of Christian help.6  The gospel reflects the

image of Christ, when native selfishness is thus melted away in

sympathizing love.

 

12. Apply thine heart unto instruction, and thine ears to the words of

                                                knowledge.

      The frequent repetition of these counsels,7 implies an humbling

truth, familiar to every day's experience-man's natural revulsion

from Divine instruction, and his inattention to the words of knowledge.

It is well to have these injunctions renewed from time to time.  We

all need "precept upon precept, line upon line" (Isa. xxviii. 13); and

that to the very end of our course.  The best taught and most advanced

Christian will be most earnest in seeking more instruction, and wilt

most gladly sit at the feet of the Lord's ministers, to hear the words of

knowledge.  Here lies the value of the Bible, as the one source of

 

     1 Chap. xxii. 22, 23. Jer. 1. 33, 34. Comp. Exod. xxii. 22-24. Job, xxii. 9, 10; xxxi. 21-23;

            xxxiv. 28. Isa. x. 1-3.                   2 Lev. xxv. 25. Num. xxxv. 12. Ruth, iii. 12.

     3 Heb. ii. 14-16.                                4 Ps. lxviii. 5, with 18.          5 Hos. xiv. 3. Pa. cx1vi. 9.

     6 Acts, vi. 1. 1 Tim. v. 3-5, 9, 10.       7 Chap. ii. iii. iv. viii. xix. 20.


                                    CHAP. XXIII. 13, 14.                                               429

 

instruction, and the alone treasure-house of the words of knowledge.  The

simple reference to this standard is the keeping of the soul from Romish

errors, whether on Romish or Protestant ground.

       Observe the connection between the application of the heart and of the

ears. (Chap. ii. 2.)  The heart open to sound advice or moral precept, is

yet shut to Christ and his doctrine.  It is closed up in unbelief, pre-

judice, indifference, and the love of pleasure.  A listless heart therefore

produces a careless ear.  But when the heart is graciously opened,

softened, and enlightened, the attention of the ear is instantly fixed.1

This indeed is the Lord's Sovereign creation work;2 yet wrought by a

God of order in the use of his own means.  A wakened desire brings to

prayer.3  Prayer brings the blessing.4  And precious then is every word

of knowledge, more "than thousands of gold and silver!"5

 

13. Withhold not correction from the child: for if thou beatest him with the

       rod, he shall not die. 14. Thou shalt beat him with the rod, and shalt

       deliver his soul from hell.

     Christian parents do not always recognize the scriptural standard

of discipline.  "Foolishness is bound in the heart" of the parent, no

less than "of the child." "The wild ass's colt" (Job, xi. 12) must

always need its measure of correction. The rule therefore is, notwith-

standing all the pleas of pity and fondness--withhold it not.  Do the

work wisely, firmly, lovingly.  Persevere notwithstanding apparently

unsuccessful results.  Connect it with prayer, faith, and careful in

instruction.

     We admit that it is revolting to give pain, and call forth the tears

of those we so tenderly love.  But while hearts are what hearts are, it

is not to be supposed that we can train without discipline.  If it be

asked--will not gentle means be more effectual?  Had this been

God's judgment, as a God of mercy, he would not have provided a

different regimen.  Eli tried them, and the sad issue is written for our

instruction.6  'Must I then be cruel to my child?'  Nay--God charges

thee with cruelty, if thou withheld correction from him.  He "goes on

his own foolishness."7  Except he be restrained, he will die, in his

sin.  God has ordained the rod to purge his sins, and so deliver his soul

from hell.  What 'parent then, that trembles for the child's eternal

destiny, can withhold correction?  Is it not cruel love, that turns away

from painful duty?  To suffer sin upon a child, no less than upon a

brother, is tantamount to "hating him in our heart."8  Is it not better

that the flesh should smart, than that the soul should die?  Is it no sin

to omit a means of grace, as divinely appointed, as the word and

 

    1 Acts, xvi. 14.                               2 Chap. xx. 12. Rev. iii. 7.          3 Ps. cxix. 18; xix. 10.

    4 Chap. ii 3-6.                                5 Ps. cxix. 14, 72, 127.               6 1 Sam. ii. 23-25; ill. 13.

    7 Chap. xx.ii. 15. Eccles. xi.10.     8 Lev. xix. 17, with Chap. xiii. 24.


430                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the sacraments?  Is there no danger of fomenting the native wicked-

ness, and thus becoming accessory to the child's eternal destruction?

What if he should reproach thee throughout eternity, for the neglect

of that timely correction, which might have delivered his soul from hell?

Or even if he be "scarcely saved," may he not charge upon thee much

of his increasing difficulty in the ways of God?

        Yet let it not be used at all times. Let remonstrance be first tried.

Our heavenly Father never stirs the rod with his children, if his gentle

voice of instruction prevail.  Continual finding fault; applying correction

to every slip of childish trifling or troublesome thoughtlessness, would

soon bring a callous deadness to all sense of shame.  Let it be reserved,

at least in its more serious forms, for wilfulness.  It is medicine, not

food; the remedy for the occasional diseases of the constitution, not the

daily regimen for life and nourishment.  And to convert medicine into

daily food, gradually destroys its remedial qualities.

      Some parents, indeed, use nothing but correction.  They indulge

their own passions at the expense of their less guilty children.  Unlike

our Heavenly Father, they afflict and grieve their children willingly;"1

to vent their own anger, not to subdue their children's sins.  Self-

recollection is of great moment.  'Am I about to correct for my child's

good?'  An intemperate use of this Scriptural ordinance brings dis-

credit upon its efficacy, and sows the seed of much bitter fruit.  Children

become hardened under an iron rod.  Sternness and severity of manner

close up their hearts.  It is most dangerous to make them afraid of us.

A spirit of bondage and concealment is engendered, often leading to a

lie; sowing the seed of hypocrisy--nay, sometimes of disgust, and

even of Hatred, towards their unreasonable parents.  'If parents,'--said

a wise and godly father--'would not correct their children except in a

praying frame, when they can "lift up their hands without wrath," it

would neither provoke God nor them.'*

     Other parents freely threaten the rod, yet withhold it.  It was only

meant to frighten.  It soon becomes all empty and powerless sound.

This again contravenes our Great Exemplar.  His threatenings are not

vain words.  If his children will not turn, they will find them faithful

and true to their cost.  This threatening play is solemn trifling with

truth; teaching children by example, what they had learnt from the

womb (Ps. lviii. 3), to "speak lies." Let our words be considerate, but

certain.  Let our children know, that they must not trifle either with

them or with us.  The firmness of truthful discipline alone can convey

a wholesome influence.  Any defect here is a serious injury.

      We must learn however not to expect too much from our children;

nor to be unduly depressed by their naughtiness.  Yet we must not

 

                                    1 Contrast Lam. iii. 33. Heb. xii. 10.

                                    * Matthew HENRY'S Life, chap. xiii.


 

CHAP. XXIII. 15, 16.                                               431

 

wink at their sinful follies.  We must love them not less, but better.

And because we love them, we must not withhold when needed correc-

tion from them.  More painful is the work to ourselves, than to them.

Most humbling is it.  For since the corrupt root produces the poisoned

sap in the bud, what else is it but the correction of our own sin?  Yet

though "no chastening for the present be joyous, but rather grievous"

(Heb. xii. 11); when given in prayer, in wisdom, and in faith, the

saving blessing will be vouchsafed.*  'Lord, do thou be pleased to

strike in with every stroke, that the rod of correction may be a rod of

instruction.'  'It is a rare soul '--said good  Bishop Hall--'that can

be kept in constant order without smarting remedies.  I confess, mine

cannot.  How wild had I run, if the rod had not been over me!  Every

man can say, he thanks God for his ease.  For me, I bless God for my

trouble.'

 

15. My son, if thine heart be wise, my heart shall rejoice, even, mine (I will

      rejoice, marg.) 16. Yea, my reins shall rejoice, when thy lips speak

      right things.

     The wise man now turns from parents, and addresses himself

must tenderly to children (chap. i. 8, 10, 15, &c.), perhaps to his own

child.  What Christian parent but responds?  Could we be happy to

see our child honoured in the world, admired, talented, prosperous,

without godliness?  If thine heart be wise--this is the spring of pa-

rental joy--my heart shall rejoice, even mine.  His health, his comfort,

his welfare, is inexpressibly dear to us.  But while we watch over the

casket, it is the jewel that we mainly value.  The love of our child's

soul is the life and soul of parental love.§  None but a parent knows

the heart of a parent.  None but a Christian parent knows the yearning

anxiety, the many tears, prayers, and "travailing in birth again" for the

soul of a beloved child; or the fervour of joy and praise, when the first

budding of heavenly wisdom bursts to view.||  The sight brings joy

into the innermost depths of the bosom.¶  Parents, who sympathize

not with these sensations, and with whom Solomon's language is

 

     *Comp. 1 Cor. v. 5; xi. 32. The Heathen Philosopher adverts to the subject of

punishments as an instrument of healing produced by means apparently contrary--

ARIST. Eth. ii. 3.

     SWINNOCK'S Christian Man's Calling, ii. 35.

     ‡ Silent Thoughts, xxi.

     § See Solomon's own education, chap. iv. 3, 4.

     || Verses 24, 25; x. 1; xv. 20; xxix. 8. ‘Lord, let thy blessing so accompany my

endeavour' (were the pleadings of a godly parent) that all my sons may be Benaiahs

(the Lord's building); and then they will he all Abners (their Father's light); and

that all my daughters may be Bethiahs (the Lord's daughters); and then they will be

all Abigails (their Father's joy).'--SWINNOCK'S Christian Man's Calling, ii. 29, 30.

     ¶The reins, as deeply seated in the body, are a frequent scriptural illustration of the

inner thoughts and affections. Ps. xvi. 7;  xxvi. 2. Jer. xii. 2. Lam. iii. 13.


432                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

unfelt and uninteresting, realize neither their responsibilities nor their

privileges.

      Greatly is the parent's joy heightened to hear his son's lips speaking

right things; to see him, in a day of apostacy and unstable profession,

openly standing forth on the Lord's side; "asking for the old paths

of rest," now that "the highways are" too often "unoccupied, and the

travellers walking through bye-ways."l

       But surely this child, now the father's joy, is one, from whom correc-

tion has not been withheld.  The "foolishness bound in his heart has thus

been driven from him;"2 and its place graciously supplied by a wise

heart--a witness to the subsequent rule and promise--"Correct thy son,

and he shall give thee rest." (Chap. xxix. 17.)

       And are not ministers also partakers of this parental joy?  "Paul

the aged" was filled with prayerful delight in his "beloved son in the

faith."3  The thriving churches were "his glory and joy."4  Another

Apostle "had no greater joy, than to hear that his children walked in

truth."5  And may we not rise higher, and adore the manifestation of

this joy in heaven6--yea, in the bosom of God himself over the return

of his corrected child to a wise heart--"This my son was dead, and is

alive again; he "was lost and is found?" (Ib. verses 13-24.)

 

17. Let not thine heart envy sinners: but be thou in the fear of the Lord

      all the day long. 18. For surely there is an end; and thine expectation

      shall not be cut off.

      Exactly similar is David's counsel. He sets out the end, and shews

how little reason we have to envy sinners, and what 'is the true path of

duty and quietness.7  He was, however, himself, for a while shaken by

this temptation.  And though he did not envy sinners, so as to covet

their worldly prosperity; yet comparing their condition with his own

‘chastening,' "it was too painful for the Psalmist until he went into the

sanctuary of God.  Then understood he their end,"* and learned to rest

in the assurance--Thine expectation shall not be cut off.

     What then is the safeguard proposed?  Just what the Psalmist had

found so effective--"being continually with his God"(Ps. lxxiii.23)--

the very spirit of the rule--Be in the fear of God all the day long.  Here

he gathered confidence for both worlds--"Thou shalt guide me with

thy counsel, and afterwards receive me to glory."  (Th. lxxiii. 24.)  With

such a portion both for time and for eternity, could his heart then envy

sinners?  "I have set the Lord alway before me. Thou wilt shew me the

 

      1 Judg. v. 6. Jer. vi. 16.            2 Chap. xxii. 15; xxix. 15.               3 2 Tim. i. 2-5.

      4 1 Thess. ii. 19, 20; in. 8, 9.   5 2 John, 4. 8 John, 4.                      6 Luke, xv. 7, 10.

      7 Ps. xxxvii 1-9, 35, 36.  Comp. chap. xxiv. 1, 2, 19, 20.

             * Ps. lxxiii. 8, 17.  Even a heathen discovered the power of this temptation.  Socrates,

being asked,--What was most troublesome to good men?  answered--'The prosperity of

the wicked.'


CHAP. XXIII. 19.                                          433

 

path of life, the fulness of everlasting joy." (Ps. xvi. 8-11.)  What more

could he desire?  His heart, instead of envying sinners, would be drawn

out in compassionate pleading for them, who have no portion but a

dying world (Ib. xvii. 14. Luke, xvi. 25); no expectation, but that which

shall quickly be cut off. (Chap. xxiv. 20.)

        But this habitual fear of the Lord is nothing separate from common

life.  It gives to it a holy character.  It makes all its minute details

not only consistent with, but component parts of, godliness.  Acts of

kindliness are "done after a godly sort." (3 John, 5, 6.)  Instead of one

duty thrusting out another, all are "done heartily, as to the Lord, and

not unto man." (Eph. vi. 6. Col. iii. 23.)  Some professors confine their

religion to extraordinary occasions.  But Elijah seems to have been con-

tent to await his translation in his ordinary course of work (2 Kings, ii.

1-12); an example that may teach us to lay the greater stress upon

the daily and habitual, not the extraordinary, service.  Others are satis-

fied with a periodical religion; as if it was rather a rapture or an occa-

sional impulse, than a habit.  But if we are to engage in morning and

evening devotions, we are also to "wait upon the Lord all the day."

(Ps. xxv. 5.)  If we are to enjoy our Sabbath privileges, we are also to

"abide in our weekly calling with God."1  Thus the character of a

servant of God is maintained--"devoted to his fear." (Ps. cxix. 38.)

       In this Christian walk with God, all is safe for eternity. The hope

of the ungodly,2 the hypocrite,3 the worldling," shall perish.  But thine

expectation shall not be cut off.5  It is "a hope that maketh not ashamed."6

It is grounded upon "the immutability of God's counsels," and "entereth

into that within the vail."7  Surely there is an end for this.  If the cross

be heavy, thou hast but a little time to bear it.  If the way be weari-

some to the flesh, the end drawing nearer will abundantly compensate.*

If the light be not visible, "it is sown" for thee. (Ps. xcvii. 11.)  And in

waiting for the glorious harvest--"here is the patience and faith of the

saints." (Rev. xiii. 10.)  Meanwhile judge not the Lord hastily, by

sense and feeling.  Hold fast by God's word.  Give time to his provi-

dence to explain itself.  Pronounce nothing upon an unfinished work.

Wait, and "see the end of the Lord."  "I know the thoughts that I

think towards you, saith the Lord; thoughts of peace, and not of evil,

to give you an expected end.  What I do thou knowest not now; but

thou shalt know"--and not only know--but approve "hereafter."8

 

19. Hear thou, my son, and be wise, and guide thine heart in the way.

      20. Be not among wine-bibbers; among riotous eaters of flesh: 21. For

 

     1 Ps. lxxxiv. with 1 Cor. vii. 20, 24.        2 Chap. xi 7.           3 Job, viii. 13, 14.

     4 Luke, xii. 19. 20.              5 Chap. xxiv. 14. Ps. ix. 18. Eccles. viii. 12. Philip. i. 20.

     6 Rom. v. 5.                        7 Heb. vi. 17-19.

     8 Jam. v. 11. Jer. .xxix. 11. John, xiii. 7.

           * 'O passi graviora! dabit Deus his quoque finem.'--VIRG. AEn. i. 199.


434                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

      the drunkard and the glutton shall come to poverty: and drowsiness

      shall clothe a man with rags.

      These repeated exhortations to hear, remind us of our Lord's earnest

and affectionate call--"Who hath ears to hear, let him hear."

(Matt. xi. 15; xiii. 9.)  They shew the great importance of hearing, as

the first step to be wise.  For wisdom, no less than "faith, cometh by

hearing." (Rom. x. 17, with chap. i. 5.)  "Guide thine heart in the way."

The promise makes this call effectual--"I lead in the way of righteous-

ness, in the midst of the paths or judgment." (Chap. viii. 20.)

       But the call specially warns against a besetting temptation.  God's

creature abuses his gifts.1  Wine becomes the occasion of excess.  Riot-

ous eaters of the flesh degrade the soul, as the slave of the body.  Not

only be not one of them, but be not amongst them. (Chap. xxviii. 7.)

Can we be among the leprous without infection?  May we not get a

stain, that will not easily be wiped out?  Do we not insensibly receive

the mould of our society?2  Did not Lot probably learn his dreadful

wickedness by contact with the ungodly?3  The truest love is not to

sit down with them, but to labour for their conversion; and, if this be

ineffectual, to avoid them.  Young people! remember--'Tinder is not

apter to take fire, wax the impression of the seal, paper the ink, than

youth to receive the impression of wickedness.'*  Fancy not that the

enemy intends even your present happiness.  His malice holds out a

poisoned bait.  Poverty and shame are the temporal fruits.4  But the

eternal ruin of his deluded victims is his far more deadly design.

       Noah as a wine-bibber,5 and the Corinthian converts, profaning the

sacred feast by drunkenness and gluttony,6 warn the man of God--

"Watch and pray, that ye enter not into temptation." (Matt. xxvi. 41.)

Always however evangelize these parental warnings with the principles

of the Gospel.  "Walk not in rioting and drunkenness; but put ye on the

Lord Jesus Christ"--the only effectual cover from the wantonness of

the flesh.--"  Having these promises, dearly beloved, let us cleanse our-

selves from all filthiness of the flesh and spirit."7

 

22. Hearken unto thy father that begat thee, and despise not thy mother

                                           when she is old.

        "We have had fathers of our flesh, and we gave them reverence."

(Heb. xii. 9.)  Such is the rule of nature.  Such is the law of God.8

The wise man here enforces its special application to an aged parent--

 

      1 Isa. v. 11, 12, 22; xxii. 13. Hab. ii. 5, with Ps. civ. 14, 15. 1 Tim iv. 3-5.

      2 Ps. cvi. 35. Comp. Matt. xxiv. 49.             3 Gen. xix. 30-32, with Ezek. xvi. 49, 50.

      4 Chap. vi. 11; xx. 13; xxi. 17. Isa. xxviii. 1-3. Joel, i. 5. Luke, xv. 13-16.

      5 Gen. ix. 20, 21.                                          6 1 Cor. xi. 21.

      7 Rom. xiii. 13, 14. 2 Cor. vii 1.

      8 Exod. xx. 12. Lev. xix. 3. Eph. vi. 1, 2.  Comp. chap i. 8; vi. 20.

                                  * GREENHILL on Ezek. xix. 4.


CHAP. XXII. 22.                                           435

 

thy mother when she is old.  Then surely love and reverence are doubly

due.  'A thing comely and pleasant to see'--says Bishop Hall--'and

worthy of honour from the beholder, is a child understanding the eye of

his parent.'*  More lovely still is this filial exercise, when the age of the

child has naturally loosened the restraints of authority.  Respect is then

the effect of principle and gratitude.  The child no more feels at liberty

to despise his parent's wishes, than if he were subject to their early dis-

cipline.  The Scripture examples are beautiful patterns for our imita-

tion.  Isaac with Abraham;l Jacob with both his parents;2 Joseph's

deference to his aged father, and desiring his blessing on his own

children;3  Moses with his father-in-law;4 Ruth with her mother-in-law;5

Solomon in the grandeur of royalty paying respect to his mother;6 the

Rechabites hearkening to their deceased father's command;7 and--

above all the rest--the Saviour's tender care for his mother in his own

dymg agonies.

       The contrary conduct is marked with the most awful reprobation.8

It forms a part of the dark mass of heathen depravity,9 and one of the

signs of the "perilous times in the last days." (2 Tim. iii. 1, 2.)  The

spectacle will ever bring a blot upon the child's name and character.

(Chap. xix. 26.)

     But is not this trial of neglect the Lord's chastening of foolish fond-

ness of our children when young, of our unwise treatment, or incon-

sistent conduct?  Sinful indulgence will always in the end make us

despised in their eyes, and lay our authority in the dust for them to

trample under foot.  Christian dignity and consistency, on the other

hand, command respect, even where they fall of producing the full

practical results. (Chap. xxxi. 28.)  Oh! what need have we of Divine

grace and wisdom, honourably to maintain parental responsibility

 

23. Buy the truth, and sell it not: also wisdom and instruction, and under-

     standing. 24. The father of the righteous shall greatly rejoice: and

     he that begetteth a wise child shall have joy of him. 25. Thy father

     and thy mother shall be glad, and she that bare thee shall rejoice.

     This is the merchant-man, who purchased the "pearl of great price

at the cost of all that he had." (Matt. xiii. 45, 46.)  The blessing can

indeed only be "bought without price." (Isa.lv. 1.)  It is as free, as it

 

      1 Gen. xxii. 9.                2 Gen. xxviii. 1-5.              3 Gen. xlviii. 9-14.

      4 Exod. xviii. 13-24.     5 Ruth, 11. 22, 23.              6 1 Kings, 11. 19.

      7 Jer. xxxv. 6.                8 Chap. xx. 20; xxx. 17. Deut. xxi. 18-21; xxvii. 16. Isa. iii. 5

      9 Rom. 1. 30.

        * Holy Observations, v.

        John, xix. 26,27. Dr. Taylor's 'godly exhortation to his son,' as Foxe writes in his

exquisite Biography, 'is worthy of all youth to be marked'--'When thy mother is waxed

old, forsake her not; but provide for her to thy power, and see that she lack nothing, for

so will God, bless thee, give thee long life upon earth, and prosperity, which I pray God to

grant thee. Vol. Vl. 692. Comp. Ecclus. iii. 8-14.


436                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

is precious.  But the figure sets out the importance of gaining it at

any cost.  First, however, let us satisfy ourselves that the seller is no

deceiver; that he is perfectly upright in his dealings.  "Buy of me"

(Rev. iii. 18)--saith the Saviour.  This sets the matter at rest.  If we

do not really want the article, we shall not pay much heed to the

injunction.  "Buy those things that ye have need of"1--is the rule.

Ponder also its inestimable value.  It is the truth, the only means of

salvation,2 the only deliverance from sin,3 the only principle of holi-

ness,4 the "One thing needful."5  Place the blessing fully in view-

"The excellency of the knowledge of Christ Jesus our Lord--that I may

win Christ, and be found in him--that I might attain unto the resurrec-

tion of the dead."6  We cannot be defrauded in the purchase.  It is a

cheap purchase at any price. (Chap. iii. 15.)  The "lover of pleasure"

values highly the baubles of Vanity Fair.  But Bunyan beautifully

describes the pilgrims, answering the sneering reproach--'What will

you buy?'  They lifted up their eyes above--'We will buy the truth.'

But, like the well-practised merchant, we must secure the genuine

article.  Many a counterfeit article is put forth.7  Bring everything

"to God's standard."8  That which brings wisdom, instruction, and

understanding, is the truth of God.

      Then having ascertained its riches and its purity--not only wish

for it, gaze at it, commend it; but buy the truth.  Not only bid, make

an offer; but strike the agreement.  Make it thine.  The man did not

wish for the field with the "hidden treasure;" but he "sold all that he

had, and bought it."  And let thy purchase be the whole truth.  Every

particle, the very filings of the gold, are invaluable--"Set thine heart

upon all that I shall shew thee." (Ezek. xl. 4.)  Many are content to

be at some pains, but they stop short of the prize. (2 Tim. iii. 7.)

Shrink not from the full price; as did Herod;9 the young ruler;10

Agrippa;11 and therefore they bought it not.  Moses gave up for it

"the treasures of Egypt;"12 Paul, his Jewish privileges, and high

reputation.13  The Hebrews "took joyfully the spoiling of their

goods."14  The martyrs "loved not their lives unto the death."15  And

who of these repented of the costly purchase?

      Having thus made the purchase, shall we part with it?  Should

we not find it all we expected; or should we after all discover that we

did not want it, we should be glad to be rid of it.  Many an estate has

been bought, and sold again, from disappointed expectations.  But

though usually what we have bought, we are at liberty to sell; here is

 

       1 John, xiii. 29.                            2 1 Tim. ii. 4.                  3 John, viii. 32. 2 Tim. ii. 25, 26.

       4 John, xvii. 17.                           5 Luke, x. 42.                  6 Philip. iii. 8-11.

       7 2 Cor. xi. 3, 14. Gal. i. 6, 7.     8 1 Thess. v, 21. 1 John, iv. 1. Isa. viii. 20.

       9 Mark, vi. 17-20.                       10 Luke,  xviii. 23.           11 Acts, xxvi. 28.

      12 Heb. xi. 24-26.                        13 Philip. iii. 4-8.             14 Heb. x. 34.

      15 Rev. xii. 11. Acts, xx. 23, 24.


CHAP. XXIII. 26-28.                                                437

 

a command to buy, but a prohibition to sell.  And a merciful pro-

hibition it is ! For those who sell the truth, sell their own souls with

it.  And "what shall it profit a man, if he shall gain the whole world,

and lose his own soul!" (Matt. xvi. 26.)  Can we look at Esau,l Judas,2

Demas3 selling their treasure for a thing of nought, without sorrowful

trembling?  Yet their apostacy clearly proved, that they had never

"received the truth in the love of it:"4 that it was some shining

shadow, merely notional and speculative; never engrafted in their

hearts.  Having therefore never felt the power, or known its price,

they could sell it for this world's pleasure, or for the more flattering

delusions of their own hearts.  Reader:  have you ever known that

apprehension of Divine Truth, that has made it in your eyes worth

every sacrifice to buy it?  No one--be assured--who has really

bought it, will ever be willing to sell it.

      A joyous sight it is to see children realizing their parents' fondest

hopes; proving "a wise heart," (Verses 15, 16) by a diligent enquiry

about this only gainful purchase; not content with receiving it by

education, but making the contract for themselves; discovering that

religion must be a personal concern, an individual transaction between

God and their own souls.  Cause is it indeed for greatly rejoicing, to see

our righteous children thus enriched for eternity, in possession of a

treasure which they can never spend, and which no troubles, no changes,

no malice of hell, can touch.  If the godly parents have had a seed-time

of tears, these precious sheaves of joy are an abundant recompense.5

The stern exclusive system which recognises little, save the divine

purpose and sovereignty, annuls, or at least enervates, the respon-

sibility of means, and thus loses the privilege both of trusting the

promise, and witnessing its accomplishment.  Will not the child feel

the constraining obligation to fulfil his parent's rejoicing thus vividly

pourtrayed?  Most unnatural must he be, if his heart does not glow

with the desire thus to repay his father's anxious love, and the yearning

tenderness of her that bare him.  They ask no other requital, than the

joy and gladness of seeing a righteous and a wise son.  Selfishness itself

might supply a motive; since parental gladness is the child's own joy,

walking in "wisdom's ways of pleasantness and peace."

 

26. My son, give me thine heart, and let thine eyes observe my ways. 27.

      For a whore is a deep ditch; and a strange woman is a narrow

      28. She also lieth in wait as for a prey, and increaseth the transgressors 

      among men.

      Solomon here manifestly rises above himself, and speaks in the

name and person of Divine Wisdom. (Chap. 1. 20; viii. 1.)  For who

 

      1 Heb. xii. 16, 17.                    2 Matt. xxvii. 3-5.              3 2 Tim. iv. 10.

      4Thess. ii. 10. 1 John, ii.19     5 Ps cxxvi 6. Comp. chap. x. 1; xv. 20.  Contrast xvii. 25.


438                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

else could claim the gift of the heart--the work of his own hands, the

purchase of his own blood?  My son.  Such is the relationship which

God acknowledges; including every blessing which he can give, and

all the obedience that he can claim.  No obedience can be without

the believing and practical acknowledgment of this relation--My son;

not a stranger; not an enemy; not a slave, but a son! invited to return.

An amnesty of the past, a perpetual jubilee of joy, awaits thee at thy

Father's house.

       Many are the claimants for the heart.  Heaven and hell contend for it.

The world with its riches, honours, and pleasures; and science with

its more plausible charms--cries--Give me thine heart.  Nay, even

Satan dares to put in a loud and urgent plea--"If thou wilt worship

me, all shall be thine." (Luke, iv. 7.)  The loving Father calls--My

son, give me thine heart.  The answer too often is--'I have no heart

for God.  It is engaged to the world.  I cannot make up my mind to

be religious, at least not yet.'  And so, even where there is no wicked-

ness--nay, perhaps even some plausible semblance of piety, "the

darling is given to the lion;" the heart to the murderer.  Not one is

naturally ready with the gift to him, who alone deserves it.  A few

only hearken in a moment of conviction; and then, not till they have

proved to their cost the falsehood and disappointment of all other

claimants.

       An honour indeed he puts upon his creatures, in condescending to

receive as a gift, what is his most rightful debt, and what he might at

any moment command for himself.  But his call wakens his child to

recollection and conscious dependence.  It is the Father's striving

with his child's will.  It is the test of his child's obedience.  It is a

pointed arrow of conviction to his conscience for wilful resistance to

his call; the only hindrance to his giving his heart being, that he has

already given it to claimants infinitely unworthy of it.  'My guilt is

damnable'--exclaimed an humbled saint--'in withholding my heart;

because I know and believe his love, and what Christ has done to gain

my consent--to what?--my own happiness.'*

     And yet this call to many is utterly without interest, as if it were

to lay up a treasure in the clouds.  To others it is rather like the

funeral knell than a jubilee sound; as if we were called to surrender

all our pleasures, instead of adding to them one of pre-eminent value

and pervading influence.  Indeed most truly is our happiness bound

up in this gracious command.  For what else can 'fill up the aching

void' within, but "the love of God shed abroad in the heart by the

Holy Ghost?" (Rom. v. 5.)  Created objects only seem to widen the

chasm.  If our appetite is satisfied, it is but for a moment; while every

irritation increaees the general dissatisfaction.  The heart, wilfully

 

                                  *ADAMS' Private Thoughts.


CHAP. XXIII. 26-28.                                                439

 

remaining at a distance from God, can find its home only in a land of

shadows.  It grasps nothing solidly; while its incessant conflict with

conscience is, "the troubled sea, which cannot rest." (Isa. lvii. 20.)

      Little indeed is it thought, who demands the gift.  It is claimed by

the ever-blessed God, whose smile is heaven, whose frown is hell.  To

rise to a higher obligation--it is claimed by Him, whose love brought

him from the throne of glory to the accursed cross; whose grace will

cast out none that come to him; who will find a place for his bitterest

enemies near to his heart; who will be to each of them all that a lost

sinner, with an immortal soul, can need; who "is able to save to the

uttermost;" who has saved countless myriads; who is ready--Sinner!

ponder it well--to save thee.

      But remember--he will never abate one atom of his full requi-

sitions.  He asks Dot for magnificent temples, costly sacrifices, pom-

pous ceremonials, but for the spiritual worship of the heart.1  He

demands, not the hands, the feet, the tongue, the ears; but that which

is the moving principle of all the members--the heart.*  Give that;

--It is all he desires.  Withhold it--He rejects all besides.  What

the heart does not do, is as if it were not done at all.  The cold for-

mality of a lifeless faith is a dead, not "a living," not therefore a

"reasonable" or acceptable, "service." (Rom. xii. 1.)  "How canst

thou say, I love thee, when thine heart is not with me?" (Judg. xvi. 15.)

The man, who gives his heart to the world, rises above all his difficulties,

persevering, resolved, successful.  Never can we triumph over the hin-

drances of the gospel without those supports, known only in the full

engagement of the heart to God.

      Never will he dispense with this claim of the love of all our heart.2

We must not deal with him as Lot's wife, moving slowly forward,

while the heart is behind;3 or like Orpah, stopping at the very moment

that the cross is to be borne.4  Dream not of dividing the heart with

the world.5  He loves a broken heart.  He spurns a divided heart.

Satan will seem to be content with a part; because he knows that, as

God will accept nothing less than all, the whole will thus fall to him.

It is far beneath the Majesty of heaven to possess anything less than

the throne (Matt. x. 37);--a mean throne at best for the Almighty

Sovereign of the universe.  But his claims are paramount.  And never

are we truly our own, till we unreservedly acknowledge ourselves to be

his.  Indeed all false religions in the world are but vain substitutes for

this plain and most happy duty. However plausible the show, if it

 

       1 Isa. lxvi. 1, 2. John, iv. 23, 24.       2 Matt. xxii. 31.          3 Gen. xix. 26.

       4 Ruth, i. 14.                                    5 Matt. vi. 24.

           * 'Non caput, non manum, non pedem, non caetera membra; sed omnium membrorum

principium, radicem, et vitae humanae fontem, qui cor est, dari sibi Deus postulat.'--GLASS,

Philolog. Sacr. lib. ii. pars 1. Tract. ii. sect. iii.


440                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

does not lead the heart to God, it is fearful delusion.  Whatever prin-

ciples, practices, or society, turn our hearts from God--it is the high-

road of ruin.

      And doth he ask his child for his heart; and will he refuse to give

it?  Does it open immediately to Satan and the world--yea--even

before they knock?  and is the beseeching Father to be excluded?

Are there no "bands of love to draw?" (Hos. xi. 4.)  Out of what rock

was it hewn, that it can be proof against the pleadings of Divine

parental love?  Canst thou not give it him?  Surely hadst thou the

will, thou wouldest have the power too.  If thou hast the faintest will,

at least shew though but the feeblest effort.  Offer it, though but with

a trembling hand.  His hand will meet thine, and take it of thee.  The

happiest day of life is now arrived; a day, the recollection of which

will never be tinged with one shade of regret.

      If thou hast not done it, do it now.  Let there be no half-giving.

To hesitate--to delay--is to refuse.  And why should you delay?

Has Satan been so good a Master, that you are reluctant to leave him?

Can you find a better friend than Him, who hath cared so long for you,

than Him who hath died for you?  Now then, with the help of the

Divine Spirit, without whom this cannot be done--resolve, decide--

once for all--for ever.  But if thou hast done it, do it daily.  He is

still the same; still as deserving of your heart as ever.  Thou canst not

give it to him too soon or too often.  The command does not hale us

(as Saul haled his victims, Acts, viii. 3) to the service of God.  The

citadel is not stormed, but it opens its gates.  A principle of immortal

energy constrains the heart; yet only by "making it willing." (Ps. cx,

3.)  The reluctancy is melted away, and by the power of love the heart

is "compelled to come." (2 Cor. v. 14. Luke, xiv. 23.)  What so free

as a gift?  And never is the will so free, as when it moves towards

God.  Weak as he is, yet the child can testify, that to give his heart is

his first desire; that he never designs or intends anything less; that

he longs for the consuming of every corruption, which hinders the full

surrender.  O my God!  thy grace alone can enable me.  I am

ashamed of the gift.  Nothing can be more unworthy.  But because it

is the purchase of thy death, and thou callest for it, it is thine own, it

shall be thine.  Take it then as it is. Make it what it is not.  Keep

it with thyself.  Bind it so close to thee with the cords of love, that it

may never cast a wishful look away from thee.  Had I a thousand

hearts, all should be thine.  Thou alone canst fill it.  Thou alone art

worthy of it.  Exalt thine own throne in it for ever.

        Think how all hangs on this point.  Give it; all the blessings of

the gospel are yours.  Refuse; you trample them under your feet; you

live a life of base rebellion to your best friend, and of cruel madness to

your own soul; you live without Christ; you will die without hope;


CHAP. XXIII. 26-28.                                                441

 

accursed, lost for ever. The command of authority is an invitation of

love--Dwell upon it.  Think how right, how reasonable, how winning,

how much it is beyond everything else, how much worth accepting in

spite of every hindrance and objection.  How much beyond every

other joy is the delight of giving your heart to the tender compassionate

love of your dying Saviour!  And then, having made him the object

of your desires, the sum of all your wishes for happiness and for depen-

dence; be determined to seek, and confident to find all in him, and re-

solute in rejecting every temptation to seek it elsewhere.  Having

therefore given your heart, let your eyes observe his ways.  (Chap. iv. 23-25.)

Our heart given, gives all the rest.  This makes eyes, ears, tongue and

hands, and all, to be holy, as God's peculiar.'*  His word will be our

rule;1 His Providence our interpreter.2  The heart, no longer divided,

is now at full liberty for the service.  The eyes, no longer wandering,

like "the eyes of a fool, in the ends of the earth" (Chap. XVII. 24), are

now fixed upon an object supremely worthy and abundantly satisfying.

       Here also is our power of resistance to the gross seductions of the

enemy (Chap. ii. 10, 11, 16)--"I have opened my mouth unto the

Lord, and I cannot," I will not, go back.3  He hath my heart, and he

shall have it.  So long indeed as we carry about us a body of sin and

death, we need a continual supply of "the Spirit to mortify the deeds of

the body."4  But in our new atmosphere of heavenly light, the mask

falls off from the allurements of sin.  The strange woman appears fright-

ful as a deep ditch, or, what is even more, a narrow pit, with no room to

escape.5  Mighty and strong men have fallen into it.  The tempter

hides the danger, while she lays wait for the prey; and thus she success-

fully increases the transgressors among men.6  Blessed be God!  if while

fleshly lusts "have destroyed their thousands and tens of thousands"

(Chap. vii. 26), we have, by giving our heart to its Divine Lord, been

enabled to abhor the temptation, and to ascribe to our faithful-keeping

God the glory of our deliverance.

 

29. Who hath woe? who hath sorrow? who hath contentions? who hath

       babbling? who hath wounds without cause?  who hath redness of eyes

       30. They that tarry long at the wine; they that go to seek mixed wine.

       31. Look not thou upon the wine when it is red, when it giveth his

       colour in the cup, when it moveth itself aright. 32. At the last it

       biteth like a serpent, and stingeth like an adder. 33. Thine eyes shall

       behold strange women, and thine heart shall utter perverse things.

 

      1 Chapt. vi. 23  Ps. cxix. 9-11, 105.                  2 Ps. cvii. 43.

      3 Jud. xi. 35. Comp. Gen. xxxix. 9.                  4 Rom. viii. 13. Gal. v. 16. 11.

      5 Chap. xxii. 14 ; ii. 19.                                    6 Chap. vii. 6, &c.  ix. 13-18.

     * Leighton on 1 Pet. II. 4, 5.

      1 Kings, xi. 1-8, with Neh. xiii. 26. Jud. xvi 4-20.  'He (Samson) broke the bonds

of his enemies; but he could not break the bonds of his own lusts.  He choked the lion;

but he could not choke his own wanton love.'  Ambrose quoted by Jermin in loco.


442                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

34. Yea, thou shalt be as he that lieth down in the midst of the sea, or

       as he that lieth upon the top of a mast. 35. They have stricken me,

       shalt thou say, and I was not sick; they have beaten me, and I felt it

       not: when shall I awake?  I will seek it yet again.

      A warning was lately given against keeping company with sensua-

lists. (Verses 20, 21.)  Here it is enforced by the most graphical de-

lineation of the sin in all its misery, shame, and ruin.  It is the

drunkard's looking-glass! Let him see his own face.  Let it be hung:

up in his cottage.  Fix it in the alehouse.  Could he go there?  The

picture is drawn with such a vividness of colouring!  'No translation

or paraphrase can do justice to the concise, abrupt, and energetic

manner of the original.'*  Drunkenness is a time of merriment.  But

what must be the stupifying insensibility, that can find a moment's joy,

with such an accumulation of woe!  Every sin brings its own mischief.

But such woe! such sorrow! in all its multiform misery! who hath it? The brawls

and contentions over the cup;  the babbling words of pollution;1 the wounds, often

to murder,2 without cause; the redness of eyes, shewing the effect of liquor on the

countenance; the impure appetites that are kindled; the infatuation almost

incredible--this is sensuality in all its wretchedness.

      Whence this world of woe and sorrow?  It is the curse of indulged

will.  Not satisfied with their healthful refreshment, many will "add

drunkenness to thirst." (Deut. xxix. 19.)  They continue long, "from

morning to night, till wine inflame them." (Isa. v. 11.)  They go to seek

the mixed wine, its strongest and most inebriating drink.§

        Wisdom's voice therefore is--Avoid the allurements of sin.  Often

has a look, harmless in itself, proved a fearful temptation.3  Look not

therefore at the wine when it is red.  Its very colour; its sparkling

transparency in the cup; the relish with which it moves itself aright, 'or

goes down pleasant'||--all tend to excite the irregular appetite.

Crush it in its beginnings, and prove that you have learnt the first lesson

in the school of Christ--"Deny yourself."¶  Whatever be its present

zest, at the last it biteth like a serpent, and stingeth like an adder. (Comp.

chap. xx. 17.)  Did it bite first, who would touch it?  Did Satan

 

     1 Dan. v. 4.                         2 2 Sam. xiii. 28. 1 Kings, xvi. 9,10; xx. 16-20.

     3 Gen. iii. 6; xxxix.. 7. Josh. vii. 21. 2 Sam. xi. 2.

     *Scott in loco. Comp. Bp. Hall.

      'Agemen malorum colligit, quae ebrietas secum trahit.'--LAVATER. 'Nemini ferme cer-

tius ingentia imminere pericula, tam quoad facultates atque famam, quam ipsam quoque

valetudinem, vitam, atque animae salutem, neminem etiam subjacere adeo Sp. S. impreca.-

tionibus, quam hominem temulentum.'--GEIER.

     Chap. xx. 1. 1 Tim. iii. 3. Comp. Hor. Od. iii. 21.

     § Chap. ix. 2, note. Homer describes his celebrated Helen, as mixing exhilarating

ingredients in the bowl, to revive the spirits. Odyss. D. 219-229.

     || Holden. Comp. Can. vii. 9.

     ¶ Matt. xvi. 24. Augustine gives an instructive example of his mother's nurse. Con-

fess. ix. 8. See also George Herbert's excellent advice in his well-known poem--The Temple.


CHAP. XXIII. 29- 35.                                               443

 

present the cup in his own naked form, who would dare to take it?  Yet

it comes from his hand as truly, as if he were visible to the eyes.  If

poison was seen in the cup, who would venture upon it?  Yet is the

poison less dangerous, because it is unseen?  The adder's sting is con-

cealed, yet most fatal.  The cup of sparkling wine becomes "a cup of

fearful trembling in the hands of the Lord." (Comp. Joel, i. 5.)

       Seldom does any sensual indulgence come alone.  One lust pre-

pares the way for others.  The first step is sure to lead onwards.  The

poor deluded victim cannot stop when he pleases.  Drunkenness opens

the door for impurity.1 The inflamed eye soon catches fire with strange

women; and who knoweth what the end may be?  Loathsome indeed

is the heart of the ungodly laid bare.  Drink opens it as far as words

can do; and through the organ of the tongue it does indeed utter per-

verse things.*  'Blasphemy is wit, and ribaldry eloquence, to a man that

is turned into a brute.'

      But the delirium is the most awful feature of the case.  The un-

happy victim, having lost all will and power to escape, sleeps quietly

amid dangers as imminent, as lying down in the midst of the sea, or upon

the top of the mast.2  Nay--even the senses seem to be stupified.

Stricken and beaten he may be.  But "his heart is as a stone,"3 and he

thanks his drunkenness, that he felt it not. Therefore "as the dog to his

vomit, the fool returns to his folly,"4 craving fresh indulgence--When

shall I awake?  I will seek it yet again.  More senseless than the brute

who satisfies nature, not lust; so lost to shame; his reason so tyran-

nized over by his appetite, that he longs to be bound again, and only

seeks relief from his temporary awakening to a sense of his misery, by

yielding himself up again to his ruinous sin. (Jer. ii. 25.)

       Oh! how affecting is tile thought of the multitude of victims to this

deadly vice in every age and clime, and among all ranks of society!

Perhaps there is no sin which has not linked itself with it; while the

unconsciousness in the act of sin only serves, not to palliate the guilt,

but to increase the responsibility.

       While we see the whole nature so depraved in taste, so steeped in

pollution--we ask--"Is anything too hard for the Lord?" Praised

be his name for a full deliverance from the captivity of sin, and of all and

every sin, even from the chains of this giant sin.5  The mighty, though

despised instrument is "Christ crucified; the power of God, and the

wisdom of God." (1 Cor. i. 23-25.)  It is this, which when vows,

pledges, and resolutions-all have failed; works secretly, yet most

 

        1 Gen. xix. 32. Comp. Jer. v. 8. Ezek. xvi. 49, 50. Hos. iv. 18. Rom. xiii. 13. 1 Pet. iv. 3.

       2 Isa. xxviii. 7, 8.  Hos. iv. 11. Comp. chap. xxxi. 4, 5.         3 1 Sam. xxv. 36, 37.

       4 Chap. xxvi. 11. Isa. lvi.12.                      5 John, viii. 34-36. 1 Cor. vi. 10, 11.

           * Ps. lxix. 12. Hos. vii. 5. The libertine poet praises the inspiring excitement of wine

to the genius of poesy.-HOR. Ep. i. 19.

         Lawson in loco.


444                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

effectually; imparting new principles, affections and appetites.  The

drunkard becomes sober; the unclean holy; the glutton temperate.

The love of Christ overpowers the love of sin. Pleasures are now

enjoyed without a sting (for no serpent, nor adder is here) and the newly-

implanted principle transforms the whole man into the original likeness

to God--"Whatsoever is born of God doth not commit sin, for his seed

remaineth in him; and he cannot sin, because he is born of God.  He

that is begotten of God keepeth himself, and that wicked one toucheth

him not."*

 

                                     CHAPTER XXIV.

 

1.  Be thou not envious against evil men, neither desire to be with them:

      2. For their heart studieth destruction, and their lips talk of mischief.

THIS counsel has been lately given. (Chap. xxiii. 17.)  But it is

very difficult in the false glare of this world's glory to "walk by faith,

as the evidence of things not seen." (2 Cor. v. 7. Heb. xi. 1.)  In the

confined atmosphere of impatience and unbelief "the spirit that

dwelleth in us lusteth to envy." (Jam. iv. 5.)  This evil spirit, if it

does not bring the scandal of open sin, curses our blessings, withers

our graces, cankers our peace, clouds our confidence, and stains our

Christian profession.  The full cup in the house of evil men stirs up the

desire to be with them. (Ps. lxxiii. 10-14.)  But if their fearful end did

not restrain, their awful character is warning enough.1  It is the

malignity of Satan himself studying destruction in their heart, mischief

in their lips.2  Take away then the delusive veil; and who would envy

them?  When Haman was studying the destruction of the holy nation,

the barbed arrow of discontent was corroding his vitals.3  Who would

envy Judas, studying his Master's destruction?  In the agony of remorse,

his "soul chose strangling, rather than life."4  "Gather not my soul

with sinners"--is the prayer of the child of God--"nor my life with

bloody men, in whose hands is mischief."5  Let me, instead of studying

the destruction, study the salvation, of my fellow-sinners--what can I

do to win them to Christ?  Let me desire to be with the man of God,

employed in this God-like work.  The Christian is the only enviable

person in the world.  The seeming blessings of evil men are God's heavy

curses; and the smart of the stripes is a favour too good for them to

 

       1 Chap. xxiii. 18. Comp. verses 19, 20, infra.

       2 Chap. i. 11-14; iv. 16; vi. 18. 1 Sam. xxiii. 9. Job, xv. 35. Ps. vii. 14; lxiv. 2-6. Mic. vii. 3.

       3 Esth. iii. 8, 9; v. 13. Matt. xxvi. 16; xxvii. 3-5. Job, vii. 15.

       5 Ps. xxvi. 9; xxviii. 3.

          *1 John, iii. 9; v. 18. See an affecting evangelical pleading with this case in that valu-

able manual, JOWETT'S Christian Visitor.


CHAP. XXIV. 3-6.                                        445

 

enjoy.  To judge wisely of our condition, it is to be considered, not so

much how we fare, as upon what terms.  If we stand right with heaven,

every cross is a blessing; and every blessing a pledge of future happi-

ness.  If we be in God's disfavour, every one of his benefits is a judg-

ment; and every judgment makes way for perdition.*  Instead of

envying sinners in their successful wickedness, dread their character

more than their end, and rejoice that your Father never counted the

poor vanities of this world a worthy portion for you.

 

3. Through wisdom is an house builded: and by understanding it is estab-

     lished: 4. And by knowledge shall the chambers be filled with all

     precious and pleasant riches. 5. A wise man is strong; yea, a man of

    knowledge increaseth strength. 6. For by wise counsel thou shalt make

    thy war: and in multitude of counsellors there is safety.

      Why should we envy the prosperity of the wicked?  Even if their

house be built,1 it cannot be established,2 by iniquity.  'It is only the

snow-palace built in the winter, and melting away under the power of

the summer's sun.'  "The wise woman buildeth her house" (Chap. xiv.

1) upon piety and prudence--a far more solid establishment.  Let every

chamber of the mind be enriched with these precious and pleasant endow-

ments.  Without them the man is without strength of character; the

creature of accident, circumstance, or society, thinking and living upon

the opinion of others.  A general irresolution marks his insignificant

course; the soul; when consecrated as God's house (2 Cor. vi. 16), is built

on an enlightened understanding of divine truth: and every chamber is

filled with the precious and pleasant riches of godliness. (2 Pet. i. 2-4.)

Heresy is restrained by conceding supreme authority to the Bible.  The

crude professor acts under feverish impulse, a sickly sentimentalist in

religion. Instead of retaining a firm hold of truth, he imbibes with

ease the most monstrous opinions.  He is "carried about with divers

and strange doctrines," instead of exhibiting "the good things of an

heart established with grace." (Heb. xiii. 9.) "Growth in" spiritual,

as distinct from speculative "knowledge," will always be accompanied

with "growth in grace." (2 Pet. iii. 18.)

     And may we not observe, how God has laid the foundations of the

spiritual house, shaped and framed the materials by his own divine

wisdom, and filled all the chambers with his precious and pleasant riches?

Delightful is the contemplation of the building, as it is rising, and as it

will be, when it is finished.  'Oh, the transcendant glory'--exclaimed

the heavenly Martyn--'of this temple of souls; lively stones, perfect

in all its parts, the purchase and work of God!

       In passing from the universal Church to one section of it, we cannot

 

      1 Mic. iii. 10.                    2 Chap. xii. 3. Jer. xxii. 13, 18. Amos. v. 11.

      *Bp. HALL'S Works, viii. 206.             Geier in loco.          Life, chap. iii.


446                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

but remark the wisdom and understanding with which our spiritual house

is builded and established.  It called for no common wisdom in such

jarring times, and such imperfect light, to avoid extremes on both sides,

and to frame a system, fraught with solid instruction, yet glowing with

spiritual exercise; popular yet reverential; conducive to "prayer"

alike "with the spirit and with the understanding." (1 Cor. xiv. 15.)

Our Reformers were indeed wisely taught, while they cast away the

superstition and idolatry of Rome, to apply her primitive treasures for

godly use, and when needed, to purify them from their drossy alloy, and

to mould the gold in evangelical purity.  Truly the chambers of our

house are filled with all precious and pleasant riches.  And did the mass

of our worshippers only imbibe the spirit of their house, what a prevail-

ing influence of godliness would-spread over our land!

       But we take another view of the high advantage of wisdom.  A wise

man is strong.1  Every view confirms Lord Bacon's far-famed aphorism

--'Knowledge is power.'  The discovery of the mechanical forces, and

the power of steam, has increased strength in an hundred-fold proportion

to physical force.  Intellectual knowledge, wisely applied, has immense

moral ascendancy.  It restrains the King from unadvised wars (Chap.

xx. 18); and, if forced into the field, instead of treading his perilous

path alone, he ensures the safety of his kingdom by multitude of coun-

sellors.2  The man of spiritual knowledge is a giant in strength. He

combines the power to draw the bow, with a steady hand and eye to

guide to the mark.  Conscious ignorance is the first principle of know-

ledge.  "I am but a little child"--said the wisest of men; and this

humility of wisdom was the establishment of his kingdom.3  The

Christian, "filled with wisdom and spiritual understanding," is also

"strengthened" in his warfare" with all might according to the glorious

power of his God." (Col. i. 9, 11.)  For "the people that do know their

God shall be strong, and do exploits." (Dan, xi. 32.)

 

7. Wisdom* is too high for a fool: he openeth not his mouth in the gate.

      The commendation of wisdom is here continued.  The man richly

endowed with it comes forth with authority, and speaks at the gate

among the wise.  The fool, destitute of wisdom, is debarred from this

honour.  The simple" and diligent5 prove, that the treasure is not

really out of reach.  But it is too high for the fool.  His grovelling

mind can never rise to so lofty a matter.  He has no apprehension of

it;6 no heart to desire it;7 no energy to lay hold of it.8  And there-

 

    1Chap. xxi. 22. Eccles. vii. 19; ix. 16.                         2 Chap. xi. 14; xv. 22.

    3 1 Kings, iii. 7; v. 12; x.23-29. 2 Chron. xxvii. 6.     4 Chap. viii. 9; xiv. 6. Matt. xi. 25.

    5 Chap. ii. 1-6. John, vii. 17.                                       6 Ps. x. 5; xcii. 5, 6. 1 Cor. ii. 14.

    7 Chap. xvii 16, 24.                                                     8 Chap. xiii. 4; xxi. 25.

                              *Wisdoms, Heb.  Ps. xlix. 4. Schultens, &c.


CHAP. XXIV. 8.                                            447

 

fore, though in the Gospel "it is nigh him, even in his mouth, and in

his heart,"1 it is inaccessible.  Its holy spirituality is too high for his

reach.  He commands therefore no respect in his own station of society.2

His counsel is not sought.  His opinion, if given, is of no account.

Though he may have a babbling tongue in the street, yet he openeth not

his mouth in the gate; utterly unfit to give judgment in the presence of

wise and judicious men.  Nor is this from natural defect, but from wilful

perverseness.  His Lord had committed at least one talent to his trust.

But he had frittered it away, not traded with it. (Matt. xxv. 24-30.)

Oh! let wisdom be sought, while it is within reach; while it is so freely

promised. (Jam. i. 5.) When found, let it be diligently improved for

the great end of life. What! if we should die without it, under the

fearful responsibility of having done nothing for our God or fellow-

creatures, of having neglected the way of life: and "in the greatness

of our folly gone astray" to everlasting ruin? (Chap. v. 23.)

 

8. He that deviseth to do evil shall be called a mischievous person. 9. The

    thought of foolishness is sin; and the scorner is an abomination to men.

      What a picture is here of human depravity, in its active working,

its corrupt fountain, and its fearful end!  Talent, imagination, active

mind, is so debased, as to be all concentrated upon Satan's own work-

devising to do evil.3  He was the first deviser (Gen. iii. 1), and he practises

his children, till he makes them, like himself, masters of mischief; con-

triving new modes of sinning, ways of trickery and deceit; like the

degraded heathen, "inventors of evil things." (Rom. i. 30.)  To do evil

is the principle; devising to do evil is the energy, of his service.  In this

craft of evil, Balaam was a mischievous person.4  Abimelech has earned

for himself the same reputation. (Judg. ix.) Jeroboam's subtle mischief

has stamped his name with the black mark of reprobation--"who

made Israel to sin."5 Jezebel,6 and others of less note, equally indus-

trious in evil, will appear in the same ranks at the great day.

      Even when it is not brought out into action, the thought of foolishness

--giving it lodgment (Jer. iv. 14), instead of casting it out as loath-

some--is sin.  'But what guilt'--it is asked--'can there be in a

thought?  It is but an airy notion; next to nothing.  It can make no

impression.  A malicious thought cannot hurt.  A covetous thought

cannot rob.  What guilt or danger can belong to so minute a being?'

Perhaps did we deal with man, these might be trifling evils.  But as

the thought is the fountain of the act, God counts it in the act, and holds

 

     1 Rom. x. 6-8.                2 Contrast Job, xxix. 7-10.               3 Verse 2. Ps. xxxvi. 8, 4.

     4 Num. xxxi. 16. Rev. ii. 14.                                                  5 1 Kings, xii. 26-38; xv. 30.

     6 Ib. xxi. 25. Rev. ii. 20.


448                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

us responsible for it.*  The smallest sin involves us in the breach of

the whole law. (Jam. ii. 10, 11.)  This is his decision; and who can

answer against it?  The most spiritual Christians lay their hands upon

their mouths, "and their mouths in the dust."

        The awakened sinner admits his total depravity upon the same

demonstration as his own existence--consciousness.  One sin gives

birth to another.  Countless multitudes follow in rapid and continuous

succession.  "Every imagination of the thoughts of the heart is only evil

continually." (Gen. vi. 5.)  Did we fully realize this apprehension, the

flitting moments of the day, each bringing with it an increase of guilt,

could not slide away so pleasantly from us; not at least without shame

and humiliation; without habitual application of the divine remedy.

Job's sensitive conscience carried his sons continually to the atoning

sacrifice. (Job, i.5.)  Bunyan (unlike many loose professors, who are

never troubled about their thoughts) was deeply afflicted in the remem-

brance of one sinful thought.  Nor let this be condemned as a morbid

temperament.  Is it not rather the tender sensibility of a heart humbled

by the continual view of the great sin-offering?  Our sensibilities rise

in proportion to our spiritual apprehensions.  Even a passing shade of

sin, did we suitably realize it--it might well be a matter of poignant

bitterness.  A believing sorrow for heart-sins--however involuntary--

is a clear mark of divine grace and teaching: issuing in deep humilia-

tion, not with despondency. (Rom. vii. 15-25.)

      But let us follow out this thought of foolishness unrestrained.  It

commits an immensity of folly.  The thinking faculty is never wearied

out.  It is the fruitful principle of sin, which, 'the more it is com-

mitted" (as it has been no less truly than philosophically remarked),

'the more it acquireth in the quality of evil.'  The thought therefore

gathers strength in every acting, till its full influence is developed in

the "scorner's seat" (Ps. i. 1)--an abomination, not only to God, but to

man.1  For however misused wit and talent may gain for the fool a

bad pre-eminence; he secures no respect, and is generally avoided or

dreaded, and ultimately brought to shame.2

 

10. If thou faint in the day of adversity, thy strength is small (narrow,

                                    marg.)

      Let this be a word of strengthening encouragement.  The marvel

is, that those who know not where to look for a refuge, when the storm

 

     1 Chap. xxi. 24. Mal. ii. 8, 9.                            2 Jer. xxxvi. 23, with xxii. l9.

    * Comp. chap. xv. 26. Ps. xciv. 11. Matt. ix. 3, 4; xv. 19. Acts, viii. 22. Rom. ii. 15.

Even an Heathen moralist could write--

Nam scelus intra se tacitum qui cogitat ullum,

                        Facti crimen habet.--Juv. xiii. 209, 210.

      Sir T. BROWNE, Bel. Med. p. 101. Edit. 1642.


CHAP. XXIV. 10.                                          449

 

is breaking over their heads, do not always faint.  But natural courage

and buoyancy, or a deeper plunge into the world, as a diversion from

sorrow, raises them above their troubles for a while, estranging them

yet further from God.

       But why should the child of God, contrary to his Father's injunc-

tion,1 faint?  Look at thy privilege--"The eternal God is thy refuge;

and underneath are the everlasting arms;"2 thy duty--"Call upon me

in the time of trouble:  I will deliver thee, and thou shalt glorify

me;"3--thy security--"I will never leave thee, nor forsake thee.

For a small moment have I forsaken thee; but with great mercies will

I gather thee."4

        Yet we "speak not parables."  Every Christian's heart responds to

the confession, that he is apt to faint.  'The strongest and holiest saint

on earth is subject to some qualms of fear;* not from the greatness of

the danger, but from the weakness of his faith. (Matt. xiv. 30.)  Even

those who had "endured a great fight of afflictions, who had taken

joyfully the spoiling of their goods," still needed stirring exhortations

and encouragements to Christian stedfastness.5  If they had borne the

brunt of one battle, there are heavier conflicts before them.6  Let each

of us be awake to the besetting danger.  Remember--when we seek

strength from our own resources;7 when faith gives way to distrust;8

praise to murmuring,9 hope to despondency;10 when relinquished plea-

sures vividly come to mind,11 and protracted toils press heavily12--

then we faint in the day of adversity.

     For this day we must prepare.  "Man is born to trouble,"13 as his

portion inherited from his first father.  He may be called to drink a

deep draught of the bitter cup, requiring much strength, that "patience

may have its perfect work." (Jam. i. 4.)  The day is needful for the

trial of our principles.  What seemed more promising, than the con-

fidence of the stony-ground hearers, or than the longer endurance of

the apostle's companions?  But the day of adversity exposed their

hollow profession.14  Often also, even when "the root of the matter is

found," a painful exhibition of faintness, unable to weather out a bad

day, proves the smallness, not the vigour, of strength.

       But why--again we ask-should the child of God faint?  If

"affliction came from the dust, and sprung out of the ground" (Job,

 

       1 Chap.iii.11.                   2 Deut. xxxiii. 27.                       3 Ps.l. 15; xci.15.

      4 Heb. xiii. 5. Isa. liv. 7.  5 Heb. x. 32-36; xi.; xii. 1-3.      6 Ib. xii. 4.

      7 Isa. xl. 30.                     8 Ps. lxxviii. 19, 20.                    9 Exod. xv. 1, 24; xvii. 3

     10 Num. xiv. 3.                 11 Exod. xvi. 3. Num. xi. 4-6.  12 Job, vii. 1-4.

     13 Ib. v. 7.                         14 Matt. xiii, 20. 21.2 Tim. iv. 16; i. 15.

         * Bishop HALL'S Contemplations, B. xviii. Cont. 8.

         Abraham. Gen. xii. 10-13; xx. 2. Moses, Exod. iv.l0-13; Num. xi.11; Joshua, vii

6-10; David, 1 Sam. xxvii. 1; Ps xxxi. 1, 22; cxvi. 11; Elijah, 1 Kings, xix. 3, 4

Jeremiah, xx. 7-18; Jonah, iv. 8, 9; Peter, Matt. xxvi. 35, 69-74: the disciples, ib. verse

35, 56.


450                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

v. 6), he might be discouraged by his ill-fortune.  But where every

minute circumstance has been the fruit of eternal counsel where "the

hairs of his head are all numbered " (Matt. x. 30), well may he "stay

himself upon his God."  If his soul, like Israel of old, "be much dis-

couraged because of the way" (Num. xxi. 4, 5), it leadeth to his

Father's house.  If he be wearied with his burden, soon will he rest

eternally in his Saviour's bosom.  Never will he be called to a martyr's

trial, without a martyr's faith.*  The chastening rod is the seal of

everlasting love.1  The temporal cross comes from the same hand as

his everlasting crown.  'Never believe'--Christian--'that thy tender-

hearted Saviour, who knows the weakness of thy constitution, will mix

the cup of affliction with one drachm weight of poison.' If thy

strength be small, go to the strong for strength.  "He giveth power

to the faint, and to them that have no might he increaseth strength." (Isa.

xl. 29.)  Commit thyself daily to him, for his supply of  "grace is

sufficient for thee."  So go onward, weak and strong at once; weak in

order to be strong; strong in thy weakness, "his strength being made

perfect in it;" and thou at length "glorying even in thy" depressing

"infirmity, that the power of Christ may rest upon thee" (2 Cor.

xii. 9); not only sustained, but "strengthened unto joyfulness." (Col.

i. 11.)

       Oh!--hasten the time, when the dark and cloudy day shall be

changed for unclouded sunshine; the crown of thorns for the crown of

glory; "the spirit of heaviness" for the garment of "everlasting praise."

(Isa. lxi. 3.)

 

11. If thou forbear to deliver them that are drawn unto death, and those

     that are ready to be slain,‡ 12. If thou sayest, Behold, we knew it

     not;  Doth not he that pondereth the heart consider it?  and he that

     keepeth thy soul, doth not he know it?  and shall not he render to every

     man according to his works?

     Suppose a fellow-creature in imminent danger--as it were drawn

unto death, and ready to be slain unjustly,2 or from wickedness. (Luke,

x. 30.)  The magistrate standing in the place, and invested with the

power of God§--If he forbear to deliver, on the false pretence that he

 

      1 Chap. iii. 12.  Isa. xlviii. 10.              2 1 Sam. xxiv. 11; xxvi. 18-20. 1 Kings, xxi. 8-13.

      *'Be of good heart,' said Ridley to his brother Latimer. with a wondrous cheerful look

running to him. and embracing and kissing him--'for God will either assuage the fury of

the flame. or else strengthen us to abide it.'--FOXE, vii. 548.

     RUTHERFORD'S Letters.

     ‡'To deliver them that are ready to be slain.  If thou forbear. First--he layeth down

the duty. Then he adds the warniug, armed with a thunderbolt of retributive judgment

upon the forbearance.'--SCHULTENS.

      § Ps. lxxxii. 3-6.  Comp. Baruch, vi. 35-38--where the idols arc proved to be no gods,

because they cannot do the work of God here delegated to the magistrates as his

representative.


CHAP. XX.IV. 11, 12.                                  451

 

new it not, the Lord will require it. This obligation, with all the

responsibility of its neglect, is the universal law of the Gospel. (Luke,

x. 29-36.)  Whoever knows his brother's danger, and forbears to deliver

--doth not he that pondereth the heart consider it?  Will he not

render?  The Hebrew midwives,1 and Esther in after-ages,2 thus

delivered their own people drawn unto death.  Reuben delivered Joseph

from the pit. Job was the deliverer of the poor in the extremity,

Jonathan saved his friend at imminent risk to himself.4  Obadiah

hid the Lord's prophets.5  Ahikam and Ebed-melech saved Jeremiah.6

Johanan attempted to deliver the unsuspecting Gedaliah.7  Daniel pre-

served the wise men of Babylon.8  The Samaritan rescued his neighbour

from death.  Paul's nephew delivered the great Apostle, by informing

him of the murderous plot.9  The rule includes all oppression, which

has more or less of the character of murder.10

      Excuses are always at hand for slightly passing over their sad

condition--We knew it not--we knew not your state, how you came

into it, or how to help you out of it.  But the true reason is, as

Bishop Sanderson has stated it--'We want charity, but abound in

self-love.  Our defect in that appeareth by our backwardness to perform

our duties to our brethren; and our excess in this by our readiness to

frame excuses for ourselves.'*  But doth not God, who hath a balance

for every thought, know thy brother's wants, the sorrow of his heart,

and the grief that presses down his soul?  Doth not he consider the

excuse of ignorance to be the mere cover for selfishness?  Vain is it to

plead ignorance before the All-seeing God.  He that pondereth the heart

will thoroughly sift; his Omniscience will perfectly know; his retribu-

tive justice will render.  Disinterested kindness will be considered.11

But to forbear deliverance--whether from cruelty,12 selfishness,13 or fear

of personal consequences14--involves an awful account.

       But how much more guilty to forbear the deliverance of immortal

souls!--in ignorance, ungodliness, or unbelief, drawn unto death, and

ready to be slain!  Ought they not to be the objects of our most yearn-

ing anxiety?  What shall we then say to that frozen apathy, which

forbears to deliver?  'We have no right to judge--we knew it not--

"Am I my brother's keeper?" (Gen. iv. 9.)  It is no concern of mine.'

But might not many a soul have started back from ruin, had but the

discovery of his danger been made, ere it was too late?  Yet the one

word, that might have saved, was forborne.  Is there no brother, child,

 

     1 Exod. i. 13-17.                           2 Esth. iii. 6-13; iv. 13. 14; viii. 4-6.

     3 Job, xxix. 12, 13, 16, 17.           4 1 Sam. xix. 4; xx. 26-33.            5 1 Kings, xviii. 4.

    6 Jer. xxvi. 24: xxxviii. 11-13.      7 Ib. xl. 13-16.                               8 Dan. ii.12-15.

    9 Acts, xxiii. 16-22.                      10 Comp. Ecclus. xxxiv. 21, 22.

   11 Jer. xxxviii 7-13; xxxix. 16-18. 12 I Sam. xxii 9-18.

  13 Ib. xxv. 10,11. Luke. x. 30-22.   14 John, xix. 4-13.

* Bishop SANDERSON'S Assize Sermon on this text.


452                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

or neighbour, who may pierce the conscience to eternity with the

rebuke--'Hadst thou dealt faithfully with my soul, I had not been in

this place of torment.' (Jam. v. 19, 20.)  If others may charge us with

the bodies of our fellow-creatures, God commits their souls to our care.

The Lord preserve us from an indictment in the court of heaven for the

murder of our brother's soul, by forbearing to deliver!

      And does not this ring a solemn peal of warning to those, whose

special office it is to deliver them that are drawn unto death?  'We

knew it not.'  But ought we not to have been "watching for souls, as

those that must give account?" (Heb. xiii. 17.)  And what will be the

tremendous reckoning for those, who perish by the neglect of their

pledged and divinely-appointed guardians!  "While thy servant was

busy here and there"--upon his own pleasure--the soul "was gone!"

"But his blood will be required at the watchman's hand."*

 

13. My son, eat thou honey, because it is good; and the honeycomb, which

      is sweet to thy taste: 14. So shall the knowledge of wisdom be unto thy

      soul: when thou hast found it, then there shall be a reward, and thy

      expectation shall not be cut off.

     Honey was the choice product of Canaan;1 the food of its inha-

bitants,2 even of children;3 good and meet to the taste.  'So,' when "the

spiritual senses were exercised,"4  'shalt thou find the knowledge of

wisdom unspealtably delectable to thy soul;--that knowledge of

Christ, without which we are undone, and in which we are supremely

happy.  Eating only can convey, what the most accurate description

fails to give, a just perception of the sweetness of the honey-comb. (Judg.

xiv. 18.)  Experimental knowledge alone gives spiritual discernment,

and proves the gospel to be, not a golden dream, but a divine reality.

And whoever mistakes honey for any other substance?  Who would

not instantly detect a counterfeit?  And what intelligent Christian

would mistake the semblance of heavenly wisdom for its substance?

‘Lord! I have long wanted the true manna; all my former food was

nothing but empty husks.'§  Truly indeed the soul, hungering for

bread, and feeding upon an experimental apprehension of Christian

doctrine, realizes solidly what no formalist ever knows. He possesses a

 

       1 Exod. iii. 8. Ezek. xx. 6.

      2 Judg. xiv. 9. 1 Sam. xiv. 27. Matt. iii.4. Luke, xxiv. 41, 42. Comp. Ecclus. xxxix. 26.

      3 Isa. vii. 15. 4 Heb. v. 14.

       * 1 Kings, xx. 39, 40. Ezek. xxxiii, 8. See Doddridge's striking Sermon on this text

given from his works in Williams's Christian Preacher.

      Bp. Hall. Chap. xvi. 24. Ps xix. 10; cxix. 103.

       ‡  Phil. iii. 8.  Lo! this' says good Bishop Hall--'is the honey that I desire to eat.

Give me of this honey, and I shall receive (like Jonathan of old. 1 Sam. xiv. 29) both clear-

ness to mine eyes and vigour of my spirits, to the foiling of my spiritual enemies.'--Solilo-

quies, liv.

      § Augustine.


CHAP. XXIV. 15, 16.                                               453

 

plausibly shadow--emotion, impulse, conviction, external reformation.

(Heb. vi. 4, 5.)  But the living faith carries its own witness with it.

'It is all true--"I believed, and therefore have I spoken.'" (2 Cor. 

iv.13.) The treasure is found with the transport of Archimedes--

bringing its own reward.*

       The expectation of the finder, so far from being cut off, shall be infi-

nitely exceeded.  "The love" that is manifested "passeth knowledge."

(Ephes. iii. 19.)  "The peace" that is sealed "passeth all under-

standing." (Phil. iv. 7.)  "The joy" that is felt is "unspeakable, and

full of glory." (1 Pet. i. 8.)  Shall we then timidly exhibit these privi-

leges, as if they would lower the obligations of holiness, or paralyze

exertion? They are not opiates, but cordials.  They invigorate, while

they refresh.  Depression unnerves; fear enchains; but "the joy of the

Lord is strength." (Neh. viii. 10.)  It inspires energy, elevates hope,

and makes our 'service perfect freedom.'

 

15. Lay not wait, O wicked man, against the dwelling of the righteous; spoil

      not his resting-place: 16. For a just man falleth seven times,and

      riseth up again: but the wicked shall fall into mischief.

      The wise man breaks off his affectionate counsel to the children of

God, with a solemn warning to the wicked man.  Should we exclude

him from the circle of instruction?  If he be left unconverted, it is his

own guilt.  But if he be unwarned, uninstructed, beware lest "blood-

guiltiness" be charged.

       Hatred to the righteous is deeply rooted in the wicked man.1  He

imagines, especially if he be in power,2 that he can tyrannize over

them with impunity.  But it is venturing upon a hazardous course--

"He that toucheth you, toucheth the apple of mine eye." (Zech. ii. 8.)

"I am Jesus, whom thou persecutest!"--struck the most relentless

persecutor "trembling"3 to the earth.  The plots against their dwelling,

the spoiling of their resting-place, may prosper for a while;4--but if the just

man falleth seven times, overwhelmed with the assault, he riseth again

(Ps. xxxvii. 24), falling into trouble, not falling under it; yea, rather

standing firm under it.  Courage, then,--poor afflicted soul!  Look

thy foe in the face, and sing triumphant--"Rejoice not against me, O

mine enemy, though I fall I shall rise again. (Mic. vii. 8.)   He shall

deliver thee in six troubles; yea in seven shall no evil touch thee.

Who delivered us from so great a death, and doth deliver; in whom we

trust, that he will yet deliver.  Cast down, but not destroyed."5  Here

 

        *Eurhka,  eurhka. Comp. Jer. xv. 16.

        The common quotation of this is seven times a day; for which Bp. Patrick observes

there is no authority but some corrupt edition of the Vulgate.

        1 Chap. xxix.. 27. Gen. iii. 15. Ps. xxxvii. 12, 32. 1 John, iii. 12.

        2 1 Sam. xix. 11. Acts, xii. 1-3.                                      3 Acts, ix. 5, 6.

        4 Ps. lix. Title. Acts, viii. 3, 4.                                        5 Job, v. 19. 2 Cor. i. 10; iv. 9.


454                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS

 

is our conflict, and our security:  The life is untouched; yea--it is

strengthened, and "made manifest," by the successive supplies of

upholding mercy.l  Many trials cannot overwhelm the righteous.2  But

one is sufficient to sweep away the wicked.  He falleth into mischief;3

and there is no rising again,4 no recovery, no remedy.  He lies where

he falls, and he perishes where he lies.  Sinner! whatever be thy

wickedness; the Lord save thee from the millstone of condemnation--

the persecuting of the saints of God!*

17. Rejoice not when thine enemy falleth, and let not thine heart be glad

       when he stumbleth: 18. Lest the Lord see it, and it displeases him, and

       he turn away his wrath from him.

       Yet did the chosen people of God rejoice with divine exultation in

the fall of their enemies. (Exod. xv. 1.)  Nay--is not this joy the triumph

of the righteous?5  Is it not the adoration of heaven, as the manifested

glory of God?6  But how different is this sublime sympathy in the

triumph of the Church, from the malignant joy of private revenge! A

secret, if not an avowed, pleasure in the fall of an enemy, is nature's

impulse.7  But what has grace done for us, if it has not overcome

nature by an holier and happier principle?  David "wept and chas-

tened his soul" in his enemy's affliction.8  David's Lord "wept in the

prospective ruin of the infatuated race, fraught with malignity against

himself.  To rejoice in the fall of an enemy, would be to fall deeper than

himself; to fall not into trouble, but into sin; to break the command-

ment, which enjoins us to "love our enemies" (Luke, xix. 41-44), and

to repay cursing with blessing and prayers. (Matt. v. 44.)  This selfish

cruelty is most hateful to God. (Chap. xvii. 5. Zech. i. 15.)  It has often

turned away his wrath from the criminal to the mocker at his calamity.

Does the glass of the word shew our character in the sin that is

rebuked, or in the contrast of our compassionate Lord?

 

     1 2 Cor. iv. 11.       2 Ps. xxxiv. 19; xxxvii. 39, 40. 1 Cor. x.13.      3 Ps. vii. 13-16; ix.16.

     4 Job, xv. 30. Amos, viii. 14.                 5 Chap. xi. 10. Job, xxii. 19. Ps. lviii. 10.

     6 Rev. xv. 3, 4; xviii. 20; xix. 1-6.          7 Ps. xxxv. 15, 16; 2 Sam. xvi. 5-7.

     8 Ps. xxxv. 13, 14. 2 Sam. i. 11, 12. Comp. Job, xxxi. 29.

     *The just man rising from his fall is most unwarrantably applied to the perseverance of

the saints.  The word fall frequently occurs in this book; but always in reference to

trouble, not sin. (Chap. xi. 5,14; xiii. 17; xvii.20; xxvii. 27; xxviii. 10, 14,18.)  The

antithesis obviously fixes this meaning.  'There are plain texts enough to prove every

scriptural doctrine. But pressing texts into any particular service, contrary to their plain

meaning, not only serves to deceive the inconsiderate, but to rivet the prejudices and con-

firm the suspicions, of opposers; just as bringing forward a few witnesses of suspicious

character would cause all those, however deserving- of credit, who should be examined in

the same cause, to be suspected also, and create a prejudice against it in the minds of the

court and of all present.'--SCOTT.

      'Lest the Lord be angry. and turn his wrath from him to thee.'--Bp. COVERDALE.

Comp. Judg. xvi. 25-30. Micah, vii. 10. Edom, Lam. iv. 21, 22. Ezek. xxxv. 15; xxxvi.

5-7; Obad. 10-14; Tyre, Ezek. xxvi. 2; Babylon, Ps. cxxxvii. 7-9; Isa. li. 22, 23; Lam. i.

21. Moab, Jer. xlviii. 26, 27; Ammon, Ezek. xxv. 1-7.


CHAP. XXIV. 19-22.                                                455

 

19. Fret not thyself because of evil men, neither be thou envious at the

      wicked: 20. For there shall be no reward to the evil man; the candle

      of the wicked shall be put out.

      This fretting must be a deep-rooted disease, to need such repeated

discipline. (Verse 1; xxiii. 17.)  One moment's recollection of our

mercies might shew, how little reason there is for it. Mercies infinitely

more than we discover might be sufficient to sweep the clouds from our

sky, and to make us ashamed of our despondency.  Before--the envy

of the wicked was checked by the remembrance, that there was an end

--surely an happy end to the righteous. (Chap. xxiii. 18.)  Let them

wait for it.  It will not disappoint them.  Here we are further reminded,

that there is no end,* no reward, to the evil man.  Leave him to his

judge.  His candle, notwithstanding all his efforts to keep it burning,1

shall be put out.2  Sometimes in bold paring he puts out his own candle.

'I give'--said the infidel Hobbes--'my body to the dust, and my

soul to the Great Perhaps.  I am going to take a 1eap in the dark.'

Alas!--was it not a leap in the dark,--into "the blackness of dark-

ness for ever?"

        Take then the balance of eternity.  Learn neither to overvalue the

fancied sunshine of the wicked, nor to undervalue our own real happi-

ness.  Envy not his lot.  Repine not at our own.  Ours is far beyond his

reach.  His is far below our envy.  'His candle burneth; his prosperity

flourisheth, until it hath kindled hell-fire; and then it is extinguished;

whereas the lamp of the godly is put out here, to shine as a star in

heaven.' 

 

21. My son, fear thou the Lord and the king: and meddle not with them

      that are given to change: 22. For their calamity shall rise suddenly

      and who knoweth the ruin of them both?

      We have another affectionate exhortation to the fear of God. (Chap.

xxiii.17.)  And what wonder?  Is it not the substance of our holiness

and our happiness?  Oh! reverence his majesty.  Acknowledge thy

dependence upon him.  Be as careful in "walking before him" in thy

secret thoughts, as in thy outward conduct.  No more allow the indul-

gence of a sinful motive, than a gross sin.  If there be no rod of out-

ward shame, will not the thought keenly pierce thy heart--how

unkindly does this defilement requite such unspeakable love!

       The connection between the fear of God and the King is not local or

accidental.  Our Lord and his Apostles have thus linked together the

 

      1 Kings, xxi. 21, with 2 Kings, x. 1-7.        2 Chap. xiii. 9; xx. 20. Job, xviii. 5, 6; xxi. 17.

       * Same word in Heb. as chap. xxiii. 18.  'There shall be none end of plagues to the evil

man.'--Old version                                       Jermin in loco.


456                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

throne of his supremacy in heaven, and the throne of his majesty on

earth.1  The one principle indeed is the spring of the other.  Disloyalty

has often been a libel upon godliness.  But the Christian is loyal,

because he is godly. (1 Sam. xxiv. 6.)  "Subjection to the powers that

be" is repeatedly inculcated,2 and revolt is visited with the most heavy

condemnation.*  Yet there is no interference with the primary obliga-

tion.  Solomon 'puts God before the king, because God is to be served

in the first place, and out obedience is to be given to the king only in

subordination to God, and not in those things, which are contrary to

the will of God.'

        Man's independence however naturally kicks against submission.

The popular cry is for the voice and sovereignty of the people; a plain

proof, that "there is no new thing under the sun" (Eccles. i. 9); since

the picture of those demagogues has been drawn to the life nearly two

thousand years ago--"walking after the flesh, despising government,

presumptuous, self-willed, not afraid to speak evil of dignities."3  Such

men love change for the sake of change.  To become leaders of a party,

they disturb the public peace by proposing changes, without any pro-

mise of solid advantage.  They would prefer a storm which would

bring them into note, to a calm in which they were alrearly quietly

secure.  They are more eager to fish for a name in troubled waters,

than to cultivate those quiet and social virtues, which, if generally

cultivated, would restrain the commotion.  "O my soul, come not thou

into their secret." (Gen. xlix. 6.)  It is dangerous to meddle with them.

To oppose all change, indeed, is to set up a plea of perfection.  Every

improvement (and where is there not room for improvement?) is a

change.  But public evils are not to be mended by railing.  To be

given to change; to undo all that has been done; to alter for the sake of

altering; to be weary of the old, and captivated with the new, however

untried; to make experiments upon modes of government--is a fearful

hazard.  It is losing the substance of real good in the dream of imagi-

nary improvements; as if we must undo everything, rather than be

idle.  This waywardness we see in Korah's sin;4 in Absalom's rebel-

 

            1 Matt. xxii. 21 1 Pet. ii. 17.

2 Matt. xvii. 24-27. Rom. xiii. 1-7. Tit. iii. 1. 1 Pet. ii. 13-17.

3 2 Pet. ii. 10. Jude, 8.  Comp. 1 Sam. x. 27.        4 Num. xvi. 130-17.

    * Rom. xiii. 2. See two valuable sermons by Bishops Horne and Horsley on this text.

Agricola's testimony to the submissive obedience of our uncivilised ancestors is interesting.

See TACITUS' Life of Agricola.

       Poole in loco. Comp. 1 Sam. xxii. 17,18. Dan. iii. 16-18. Acts, iv. 18, 19; v. 27-29.

        ‡ 'He that goeth about,' saith our judicious Hooker--'to persuade men that they are

not so well governed as they ought to be, shall never want attention and favourable

hearers.' Ibid. Book i.  Sallust admirably remarks of these turbulent innovators, that

'they thought the very disturbance of the established order of things a sufficient bribe to

set them at work.  That which is wanted in the aptness of their speech is supplied by the

aptness of men's minds to accept and believe it.'  See the whole paragraph opening

Hooker's great work, Eccl. Polit.


CHAP. XXIV. 23-26.                                                457

 

lion;1 in the continual struggle for royalty in the Israelitish kings.2

How suddenly did their calamity rise, even when they seemed to be

within the grasp of their object!3  Who knoweth the ruin, which both the

Lord and the king* may inflict on the despisers of their authority;4

often fearful beyond precedent, without remedy?

 

23. These things also belong to the wise.  It is not good to have respect

      persons in judgment. 24. He that saith unto the wicked, Thou art

      righteous; him shall the people curse, nations shall abhor him: 25. But

      to them that rebuke him shall be delight, and a flood blessing shall come

      upon them. 26. Every man shall kiss his lips that giveth a right

      answer (that answereth right words, marg.)

        We have had a solemn exhortation to the people. (Num. xvi. 29-33.)

We have now a word to the wise, specially to those in authority.  God

has given many laws against respect of persons in judgment.5  It is not

good.6  Nay--rather he rebukes it as an hateful abomination.7 Let

truth be considered, not favour.  This is an evil in the Church, as

much as in the State.  No responsibility is more momentous in our

sacred high places, than "doing nothing by partiality."  Man, corrupt

as he is, often abhors unrighteous judgment.8  A bad magistrate

deprives us of the blessing of good laws.

      On the other hand, there is no greater national blessing, than a

government rebuking the wicked.9  This was a part of Job's God-fearing

character.10  The good blessing that came upon Nehemiah's upright

administration is abundantly manifest.11  Indeed generally every one will

kiss--pay the homage of love and respect12--to him who giveth a right

answer in judgment.  He is a public treasure; "a blessing in the midst

of the land."  Is not then the responsibility of rulers, and the welfare

of thousands depending on them, a quickening impulse to prayer?

And may not our want of "godly quietness" be traced to this neglect?

(1 Tim. ii. 1, 2.)

            But we are not rulers. Yet are not many of us in authority--

 

      1 2 Sam. xv. 10-13.                2 1 Kings, xvi. 8-22.                3 2 Sam. xv. 13; xviii. 9-16.

     4 2 Sam. xviii. 7, 8; xx. 1, 2, 22. 2 Kings, xvii. 21, 23. Eccles. viii. 2-5. Acts, v. 36. 37.

     5 Exod. xxiii. 6-8. Lev. xix. 15. Deut. i. 17; xvi. 19.      6 Chap. xviii. 5; xxviii. 21.

     7 Ps. lxxxii. 2-4.                      8 1 Sam. viii. 1-5.                   9 2 Sam. xxiii. 3, 4.

    10 Job, i. 1, 8; xxix. 7, 11-17.  11 Neh. v. 7-9; xiii. 8-11, 25, 28, with 31.

    12 Comp. 1 Kings, xix. 18. Ps. ii. 12. Hos. xiii. 2.

          * French and Skinner.  The best critics (Geier, Dathe, Lavater. &c.) most naturally

apply the distinctive term (them both) to the separate persons.  The ruin foreboded is thus

connected with the persons, who had been described separately as the objects of fear. ' Do

not disobey either of them, who knoweth their vengeance?'--LXX.

     1 Tim. v. 21. Hooker--in 'reverence and awe unto the prelates, whom Christ hath

placed in seats of higher authority over me'--suggests, that 'the ancient canon be specially

remembered, which forbiddeth a bishop to be led by human affection in bestowing the

things of God.'--Eccl. Pol. book vii. c. xxiv. 3, 7.


458                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Parents--Heads of Families--Teachers and Guardians of the young?

Uprightness and consistency alone can maintain that influence so

essential to usefulness.  For a spiritual ruler to say to the wicked--

Thou art righteous, is indeed perfidious dealing with his Divine Master

cruel deceit to immortal souls; hiding the ruin, which he is bound to

reveal; acting the part of a minister of Satan under the cover of a

minister of Christ.  His people will live to curse and abhor him, perhaps

throughout eternity.  Even the very people that hate both his Master

and his message, will kiss his lips that giveth a right answer--a reluctant

but honourable witness to his faithfulness.

 

27. Prepare thy work without, and make it fit for thyself in the field;

and afterwards build thine house.

      This rule of prudence applies to all worldly matters.  Religion, so

far from forbidding, inculcates care and forethought.  Much of our

domestic comfort hangs upon it.  Much inconvenience and suffering

flow from its neglect.  Acting upon this useful direction, the wise

builder first prepares his work without.  He collects his materials,

calculates upon the quantity required; then he makes his work fit by

shaping and bringing them into their place; and afterwards, having all

things in readiness, he builds his house.  The work was thus prepared for

Solomon's magnificent temple, before the house was built. (1 Kings, v.

18 ; vi. 7.)  The spiritual house is similarly raised of materials prepared

and fitted; and thus it "groweth unto an holy temple in tile Lord."

(Eph. .ii. 21, 22.)

     But ponder well the care, with which the great work should be

prepared. Count the cost anxiously. Consider whether the profession

will stand the storms. (Luke, xiv. 28-30.)  Lay the foundation deep

upon the Rock (Ib. vi. 48.)  Be much in prayer for divine strength.

Avoid that outward display, which shames the inconsiderate builder,

who begins to build his house, without having thoroughly prepared his

work.

       Has not the minister of the Gospel special need of preparing his

work?  An unfurnished minister cannot be "a wise master builder."

Even when the foundation is laid, "Let every man take heed how he

buildeth thereupon." Let him look well to the day at hand. (1 Cor. iii.

10-15.)  And let all the Lord's servants weigh deeply their responsi-

bility.  Indigested haste, and crude judgment, have blasted many a

Christian project.  Let us he guided by the well-considered wisdom of

experienced men (Matt. xviii. 17, 18), and collect our materials from

their prudence, forethought, and sound-judging energy.  A house will

thus be built to the honour of our God, and for the service of his Church.

 


CHAP. XXIV. 28, 29.                                               459

 

28. Be not a witness against thy neighbour without cause; and deceive not

      with thy ups.  29. Say not, I will do so to him as he hath done to me:

      I will render to the man according to his work.

     The welfare of society may sometimes constrain to be witness against

a neighbour.  But never let it be without cause.  Yet when compelled

to this revolting duty, whatever be the temptation or consequence,

deceive not with thy lips.  Speak plainly, truthfully, the whole truth.

Doeg's witness against his neighbour was without cause; not from con-

science, but from malice.  The main fact also was concealed of David's

imposition upon Abimelech, which would have cleared him from the

suspicion of treason, and saved his life. (1 Sam. xxii. 9, 10; xxi. 1, 2.)

This garbled witness thus far deceived with his lips, and bears the black

stamp of "a deceitful tongue." (Ps. Iii. 3, 4; cxx. 2-4.)

       Profit is the bait to the thief, lust to the adulterer, revenge to the

murderer. But it is difficult to say, what advantage redounds to this

evil witness, or what allurement belongs to the sin, save that which

Satan himself feels--the love of sin for its own sake, or for the satis-

faction that is vainly anticipated from the commission.  Should we

however be clear from the grosser forms of this sin; yet do we resist

the unkind witness against our neighbour, in magnifying his failings, and

measuring them with a far stricter basis than our own; rashly cen-

suring his indifferent or doubtful actions; and censuring even his sins

with an unchristian intention?

      And then--as to indulging personal resentment--it is natural to

say, though only in the heart--I will do as he hath done to me.  But

shall we dare thus to take the sword out of God's hands, and place

ourselves upon his tribunal?  "Vengeance belongeth unto me; I will

repay--saith the Lord."1  'Let wisdom and grace be set to work to

extinguish the fire from hell, before it gets head.'*  Far sweeter will

be the recollection of injuries forgotten than revenged.  But grace alone

can enable us to "forgive from the heart."  And yet too often its

exercise is so feebly cherished, that natural feelings gain the ascend-

ancy; and, if there be not an actual recompense of evil, there is merely

a negative obedience to the rule, a refraining from the ebullition, rather

than an active exercise of the opposite principle. The wise man sets

out in this book the true rule,2 more lovely, more constraining, as

enforced by the divine example.3  Humility and tenderness mark

 

      1 Rom. xii, 19. Comp. Gen. 1.16-19. 2 Chap. xx. 22; xxv. 21, 22.

      3 Matt. v, 44, with Luke, xxiii. 34. 1 Pet. ii. 21-23.

     * MATTHEW HENRY'S Works, p, 459.

      Matt, xviii. 35, with Luke, xvii 3-5. 'The excellency of the duty is sufficiently pro-

claimed by the difficulty of the practice.  For how hard is it, when. the passions are high,

and the sense of an injury quick, and the power ready, for a man to deny himself in that

luscious morsel of revenge!  To do violence to himself, instead of doing it to his enemy!'

--SOUTH'S Sermon on Matt. v. 44.


460                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the self-knowing Christian, who forgives himself little, his neighbour

much.

 

30. I went by the field of the slothful, and by the vineyard of the man void

     of understanding; 31. And, lo, it was all grown over with thorns, and

     nettles had covered the face thereof, and the stone wall thereof was

     broken down. 32. Then I saw, and considered it well: (Set my heart,

     marg.) I looked upon it, and received instruction. 33. Yet a little I

     sleep, a little slumber, a little folding of the hands to sleep: 34. So shall

     thy poverty come as one that travaileth; and thy want as an armed

     man, (a man of shield, marg.)

     Everything around us reads an useful lesson to an observant eye.

Every particle of creation may be taxed to furnish its quota to our store

of knowledge.  We--can extract good even from evil, and "gather

grapes of thorns, and figs of thistles."  Solomon describes with his

usual vigour of thought and strength of colouring, an affecting sight,

that had passed before his eyes--the field and vineyard of the slothful,

grown over with thorns and nettles, and the wall utterly broken down.

Instead of turning away, he considered it well, and received instruction.

In the solemn contemplation of this picture of desolation, he could not

but turn his thoughts to the wretched proprietor.  He fancied himself

in his house, beholding the sottish being stretched on his bed, and

crying out under the noonday sun--Yet a little sleep, a little slumber, a

little folding of the hands to sleep.  Stimulated by this effusion of the

torpid animal, the response almost unconsciously forced itself--So shall

thy poverty come as one that travaileth, and thy want as an armed man.

        And yet by some strange delusion, the slothful conceives himself to

be wise. (Chap. xxvi. 16.)  But how manifestly is he void of under-

standing; without heart to improve his many advantages!  He might

enrich himself by his field and vineyard.  But he has never cultivated

or weeded it.  The stone wall, raised by some more industrious hand, is,

broken down; and he is too indolent to repair it.  His vineyard is there

fore left a prey to every invader; while he lives as a mere animal, in

sensual indulgence, bringing himself gradually, but irresistibly, to

poverty.*  Not that he means to come to beggary.  He only wants

yet a little sleep, a little slumber more--and then he will bestir himself.

But this little insensibly increases.  Every hour's indulgence strengthens

the habit, and chains the victim in hopeless bondage.  His efforts for

exertion are only the struggles of the paralytic, without energy or

 

      * Chap. vi. 10, 11. The Roman Satirist gives a lively description of the stirring of the

slothful mall's excitement of lust--

'Mane, piger, stertis? Surge, inquit avaritia: ejaSurge: negas? Instat, surge, inquit. 

Non queo: surge,' &c.

PERSIUS, Sat. 5. 132, 133.


CHAP. XXIV. 30-34.                                                461

 

effectiveness.  If his dependence is upon his own industry, manual or

mental, sloth must hasten on his ruin.  In a higher station, it deprives

him of the means of using his influence aright, or of employing his

talents to any valuable purpose. There is indeed no higher blessing

than usefulness; no more affecting lamentation than that of the worn-

out labourer, who is conscious that his usefulness is ended.  But the

slothful is satisfied, that his usefulness should never begin.  He is

content with a life of utter uselessness.  He wilfully gives himself up

to it; as if indolence was his supreme good; and every kind of exercise

the object of his shrinking dread.  Such a life can never approve itself

to conscience, and assuredly will never escape the condemnation of

God. (See Matt. xxv. 26-36.)  It is poverty to himself.  He becomes

his own enemy.   The springs of solid happiness are impoverished, and

the true end of life frittered away.

       But let us look at the spiritual sluggard. If a neglected field is a

melancholy sight, what is a neglected soul! a soul which, instead of

being cultivated with the seeds of grace, is left to its own barrenness;

overgrown with the native produce of thorn and nettles. (Gen. iii. 18.)

Time, talents, opportunities have been vouchsafed; perhaps the blessing

of a godly education added, every encouragement for hopeful promise.

But if diligence is needed; if the man must "labour and strive,"1 then

his field must be left, at least for the present.  He must have a little

more sleep first.*  And thus he sleeps on, and shuts both eyes and ears

against every disturbance of his fatal slumber.  Nothing is done or

attempted for God, for his own soul, or for his fellow-creatures.  His

vineyard is left open.  All his good purposes are the stone wall broken

down.  Satan "goes out, and returns at his will."2  All is devastation

and ruin.

      Christian! is there no danger of this evil creeping into our religion?

No habit is so ruinous.  It enervates, and at length stops, the voice of

prayer.  It hinders the active energy of meditation.  It weakens the

influence of watchfulness.  The way to heaven is steep, rough, hard to

climb, immeasurably long, forbidding in its present exercise and doubt-

ful in its end, full of toll and discouragement, devoid of beaming hope

and sunshine.  This false apprehension checks every step of progress;

so that "the soul"--instead of being “a well-watered garden” (Jer.

xxxi. 12), sending forth refreshing fragrance and grateful fruits--

relapses into its former wilderness state; laid open to every tempta-

tion; and too often ultimately a prey to sensual appetites.3

       Let our Father's voice be instantly heard--"Son, go work to-day in

thy vineyard." (Matt. xxi. 28.)  Dost thou not see, that it is overgrown

 

      1 John, vi. 27. Luke, xiii. 24.                         2 Matt. xii. 45. 2 Tim. ii. 26.

      3Chap xxiii. 21. 2 Sam. xi. 2. Ezek. xvi. 49.

      * See Augustine's instructive reference to his own case.--Confess. lib. viii. c. 5.


462                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

with thorns?  Look forward, not backward.  Complain not, but decide.

Pray not only, but strive.  Always connect privilege with practice.

Prove the principles of moral character, as well as spiritual experience.

Aim at every active exercise, that may strengthen religious habits.

'Surely, if we look to stand in the faith of the sons of God, we must

hourly, continually, be providing, and setting ourselves to strive.  It

was not the meaning of our Lord and Saviour in saying--"Father,

keep them in thy name"--that we should be careless to keep ourselves.

'To our own safety, our sedulity is required.'*

 

CHAPTER XXV.

 

1. These are the proverbs of Solomon, which the men of Hezekiah king of

Judah copied out.

THIS seems to be a third division of this sacred book.1  The selection

was probably made with several repetitions from the former part

from "the three thousand proverbs which Solomon spoke;" and

which, having been carefully preserved, the men of Hezekiah copied out,

nearly three hundred years after.  Thus the word of God, brought out

of obscurity for the instruction of the people, stamped the reformation of

this godly king (2 Chron. xxxi. 21); as it did the reformation of Josiah

in, after-times.§  The New Testament fully authenticates this section

of the book as a part of the inspired canon.2  We are not reading

therefore the maxims of the wisest of men.  But the voice from heaven

proclaims--"These are the true sayings of God."

      The Holy Spirit mentions not only the author, but the copyists, of

these proverbs.  And often has good service been done to the Church,

not only by original writers, but by those who have copied and brought

out their writings into wider circulation.  The world usually honours

only the grand instruments, and casts the humbler agency into the

shade. (Eccles. ix. 15, 16.)  But God honours not only the primary,

but the subordinate instruments j not only the five-but the one

 

      1 See Chap. i. and x.-xxiv.

      2 Verses.6, 7, with Luke, xiv. 7-10; 21, 22, with Rom. xii. 20; xxvi. 11, with 2 Pet. ii. 22;

xxvii. 1, with Jam iv. 14.

      * Hooker 'On the certainty and perpetuity of Faith in God's Elect'

      Verse 24, with xxi 9; xxvi. 13, with xxii 13; 15, with xix. 24; 22, with xviii. 8;

xxvii. 12, with xxii. 3; 13, with xx. 16; 15, with xix. 13; xxviii, with 6. xix. 1; 18, with

x. 19; 19, with xii. 11; 21 with xviii. 5; xxiv. 23.

      1 Kings, iv. 32. Comp. Eccles. xii. 9.  Does not the divine discrimination, which has

withheld the whole of Solomon's writings reprove the indiscriminate publication of all that

eminent men may have left; in manuscript?  Crudities, and even gross errors, have been

thus accredited by the authority of great names, not less unjustly to their memory, than

injuriously to the Church.

      § 2 Chron. xxxiv. 14-30.  We mark the same Divine stamp of mercy upon our own

precious, though reviled, Reformation.


CHAP. XXV. 2, 3.                                         463

 

talent--faithfully laid out for him.  The blessing is not promised to

their number, but to their improvement. (Matt. xxv. 21-23.)

 

2. It is the glory of God to conceal a thing:  but the honor of kings is to

     search out a matter. 3. The heaven for height, and the earth for

     depth, and the heart of kings is unsearchable (there is no searching,

     marg.)

     The great King of heaven and the puny kings of earth are here

finely contrasted.  The glory of each is opposite--of God to conceal; of

kings to search out.  Whether "he dwelleth in his pavilion of thick

darkness,"1 or whether "clothed in his garment of light, and dwelling

in unapproachable light"2--it is the glory of God to conceal a thing.

            What glory indeed could belong to a God, whose name, and ways,

and works were open to the view, and within the comprehension of

worms of the earth?  What he has brought to light, only shews how

much is concealed.  We look at his works--Lo! these are parts of his

ways; but how little a portion "is heard of him!"*  We study his

dispensations of Providence, feeling that we had need pray over them

once and again, ere we venture to interpret them--"Thy way is in the

sea, and thy path in the great waters; and thy footsteps are not

known!"3  We adore also that glorious concealment of his great work

of forgiveness, of which Dr. Owen most truly remarks--that 'were it

not somewhat beyond what men could imagine, no flesh could be

saved.' But so far is it removed from our sight, that no human ken

can take the unbounded extent of this vast work.  It is forgetfulness of

this unsearchable forgiveness, proportioning its limits to our own

understanding, that precludes a glowing confidence, and restrains

many a sincere penitent from a full apprehension, and habitual enjoy-

ment of the peace of the Gospel. In another department of the widely

extended field, we ponder his great purposes of grace; and our hearts

only find vent in reverential adoration--"Oh! the depth!" (Rom. xi.

33) -- 'rather standing on the shore, and silently admiring it, than

entering into it.'  To wade in those depths is the sure way to be

overwhelmed in them.

       Thus does he educate his children in mystery, that he may exercise

them in the life of faith (John, xiii. 7), acting and living upon in-

comprehensible objects; coming to his revelation without any mind

will of their own.  Thus in the boundless and bottomless works of his

grace--the voice speaks from the inner sanctuary--"Be still, and

 

     1 I Kings. viii. 12. Ps. xviii. 11; xcvii. 2.             2 Ps. civ. 2. 1 Tim. vi. 16.

     3 Ps. lxxvii. 19; xxxvi. 6.

     * Job, xxvi. 14. 'Lo! these are the outlines (marginal or boundary lines) of his ways,

and the mere whisper (opposed to the crashing "thunder" of the next clause) we can hear

of him.'--DR. GOOD.

             On Ps. cxxx.                                                  ‡ LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. 11. 8.


464                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

know that I am God." (Ps. xlvi. 10.)  And is not this shade of mystery

our highest joy, as the dwelling-place of our adorable God and Saviour?

Are not the clouds of his concealment the effulgence of his glory (Hab.

iii. 4), as the most simple, yet the most incomprehensible Being, whom

the mightiest intellect can never "by searching find out to perfection?"

(Job, xi. 7.) 'As there is'--says Bishop Hall--'a foolish wisdom, so

there is a wise ignorance.  I would fain know all that I need, and all

that I may.  I leave God's secrets to himself.  It is happy for me, that

God makes me of his court, though not of his council.  O Lord! let me

be blessed with the knowledge of what thou hast revealed. Let me

content myself to adore thy divine wisdom in what thou hast not

revealed.'*

       Thus it is the glory of God to conceal a thing--to do many things, of

which the full development of their great end is far beyond our sight.

The highest glory of earth is at an infinite remove--God conceals.  For

who could bear his full irradiation?1  But the honour of kings is to

search out a, matter.2  They must not affect to be like God.  By them-

selves they know nothing beyond their people.  Yet as all depends

upon them, they must avail themselves of all stores of wisdom, to search

out the mysteries of true policy, in order to govern by them, the

mysteries of iniquity, in order to redress, and the intricacies of indi-

vidual cases, in order to give suitable judgment.  Hence the divine

command, that they should write out a copy of the law, for their daily

study and direction. (Deut. xvii. 18, 19.)  This wise king had himself

attained singular discernment in searching out a matter, even without

external evidence, and with all the perplexity of conflicting testimony.

(1 Kings, iii. 16-28.)

       And yet the Sovereign must often frame his counsels with much

caution anti reserve.  Many of his purposes are far beyond the compre-

hension of the great mass of his people; so that to their minds the heart

of kings is unsearchable; and they might as soon think of measuring the

heaven for height, or fathoming the earth for depth.  Ought not this to

teach forbearance in pronouncing judgment? Are not the "presump-

tuous and self-willed, who are not afraid of speaking evil of dignities,"

 

                        1 Exod. xxxiii. 20. Dan. x. 5-8, 17, Rev. i. 12-17.

                        2 Ezra, iv. 15,19; v. 17; vi. 1. Comp. Job. xxix. 16.

    * Bp. Hall, viii. 5; xi. 8-1. This glorious concealment is however no precedent for the

Tractarian principle of Reserve, which at once eclipses the freeness and fulness of

Gospel, and paralyzes the energy of Christian life and hope.  Blessed be God!  “The

that belong to our peace are brought to light by the Gospel."  The doctrine of the atoning

cross is "delivered first of all" (en  prwtoi; 1 Cor. xv. 3)--the primary truth in the fore-

front of the Gospel.  With self-abasing humility we acknowledge, that "secret things

belong to the Lord our God."  But guilty indeed is the presumption of casting a cloud of

concealment on "the things that are revealed, and which belong to us and to our children

for ever"--not only as the foundation of our hope, but as the principle of our obedience.

Deut. xxix. 20. Yet do not some of us need to be drawn further from the "secret things"

and nearer to the things that are revealed?


CHAP. XXV. 4-7.                                                     465

 

convicted of the guilt of "speaking evil of the things that they under-

stand not?"1 Is not "prayer for kings and for those in authority," a

far more fruitful and "acceptable exercise?" (1 Tim. ii. 1-3.)

 

4. Take away the dross from the silver, and there shall come forth a vessel

    for the finer. 5. Take away the wicked from before the king, and his

    throne shall be established in righteousness.

    The finer produces "the vessel unto honour," by taking away the

dross from the silver (Mal. iii. 2), which mars its beauty and purity.

Such is the destructive influence of the wicked in the royal counsels.2

Take them then away from before the king. Let him purify his court and

government from this dross. Let him exclude it from high places.  Let

him discountenance it in authority at any cost.3  David thus established his

throne in righteousness,4 and commended this resolution by his dying

counsel to his wise son.5 This is political wisdom on scriptural princi-

ples.  If  "righteousness exalteth a nation,"6 the open acknowledgment

of it is the sure path to national prosperity.7  And will not the throne of

our great King be established by the entire and eternal removal of the

wicked?8  In the great day of trial and decision shall I be found re-

probate or purified silver?  Lord! let me, under the refiner's hand,

be "purified, and purged as gold and silver, that I may offer unto the

Lord an offering in righteousness" in that day. (Mal. iii. 3.)

 

6. Put not forth thyself (set not out thy glory, marg.) in the presence of

      the king, and stand not in the place of great men: 7. For better it is,

      that it be said unto thee, Come up hither; than that thou shouldest be

      put lower in the presence of the prince whom thine eyes have seen.

     Our Lord applies this proverb more generally. (Luke, xiv. 8-11.)

Who needs not this caution against ambition?  Even godly Baruch

seems to have "sought great things for himself." (Jer. xlv. 5.)  Not

even the fellowship of the Saviour, his heavenly instruction, his divine

pattern of holiness (Matt. xi. 29), could, restrain the "strife among the

disciples--Who should be the greatest;"9 repeated even after the most

wondrous exhibition of humility;10 nay, after they had just partaken

with him of the holy feast.11  "Loving to have the pre-eminence," is the

bane of godliness in the Church.12

     Wolsey's fall is an instructive beacon to ambitious men, not to put

forth themselves to set out their glory in the presence of the king.*  The

 

     1 2 Pet. ii. 10; 12. Jude, 8, 10.                          2 1 Kings, xii. 10-16. 2 Chron. xxiv. 17-24.

     3 Chap. xx. 8, 26.         4 Ps. ci. 4-8.                 5 1 Kings, ii. 5, 6, 32, 33, 44, 45.

    6 Chap. xiv. 34.                                                 7 1 Kings, xv. 13. 2 Chron. xiv. 1-7.

    8 Mal. iii.17, 18. Matt. xiii. 41-43; xxv.31-46. 9 Matt. xviii. 1-4.

   10 John, xiii. 1-15.         11 Luke. xxii. 19-27.   12 3 John, 9, 10.

         Comp. Ecclus. vii. 4. The poet elegantly contrasts Daedalus and Icarus--father and son

both provided with wings.  The father, contenting himself with skimming the ground, was safe.

The son, soaring aloft, perished.  Hence a lesson of humility. Ovid, Trist. lib. iii. el. ii. 21.


466                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

usurpation also of the places of great men usually subjects man to be put

lower, to his own mortification. Not that we would discountenance fit

and able men from putting themselves forward in public responsibilities.

But the eagerness for the outward name, with a manifest incapacity for

the discharge of the work, is strongly censurable. "Before honour is

humility" (Chap. xviii. 12); shewn in a backwardness to obtrude either

our presence or our opinion upon those in higher stations; shrinking

from external respect, rather than courting the "vain show."  Thus

were Gideon,1 Saul in his early and better days,2 and David, advanced

to honour.3

       Let each of us lay himself to the work of casting down our high

tower of conceit; cultivating a deep sense of our utter worthlessness,

and carefully pondering that example, which is at once our pattern and

our principle.  Oh! think of Him, who was “fairer than man,” being

the most humble of men--nay--of Him, who was infinitely more than

man, making himself "a worm, and no man."4  Think of that day,

which will set us all on our own true base; when each of us shall stand

before" the Great Prince" (Rev. i. 5), just that, and that only, which

he counts us to be?  What will it be to be put lower; to be utterly

cast out in his presence, whom our eyes shall then see to our eternal con-

fusion! (Ib. verse 7.)

 

8. Go not forth hastily to strive, lest thou know not what to do in the end

thereof, when thy neighbour hath put thee to shame. 9. Debate thy

cause with thy neighbour himself; and discover not a secret to another:

(of another, marg.) 10. Lest he that heareth it put thee to shame, and

thine infamy turn not away.

       Dissension under any circumstances is a serious evil.  The consider-

ate Christian will rather concede rights, than insist upon them to the

hazard of his own soul, and to the injury of the Church. (1 Cor. vi. 1-7.)

Hasty strife must alway be wrong.  Think well beforehand, whether

the case be right, or, even if it be, whether it be worth the contention.

Duly calculate the uncertainty or consequence of the end. See the

fruits in Gaal's quarrel with Abimelech,5 Amaziah's strife with his

brother king of Israel,6 godly Josiah's unadvised contention with Pha-

raoh.7  So little do we know what to do in the end thereof!  Often has a

man brought himself to ruin by a hasty strife at law.  Instead of

triumphing, his neighbour has put him to shame.  So long as 'meum and

tuum' are in the world, sin and Satan will stir up contention.  Yet never

forget, that not "hatred and wrath" only, but "variance and strife"

 

      1 Jud. vi. 15.                                                2 1Sam. ix. 21, 22; xv.17.

      3 Ib. xviii. 18. Comp. Ps. cxxxi. l.                   4 Ps. xlv. 2, with xxii. 6.

      5 Jud. ix. 26-40. Comp. Ecclus. viii. 1.           6 2 Kings, xiv. 8-12.

      7 2 Chron. xxxv. 21, 22.


CHAP. XXV. 8-12                                        467

 

are "works of the flesh," excluding from heaven. (Gal. v. 19-21.)

Hence the constraining obligation to "seek peace, and pursue it" (Ps.

xxxiv. 14); after the noble example of our father Abraham, who

quenched "the beginning of the strife," by yielding to his nephew his

natural superiority, and his just rights. (Gen. xiii. 8. Comp. chap.

xvii. 14.)

       Yet if, after all, strife be inevitable, then let us ponder, how much

wisdom and rule over our own spirit is needful, to conduct it honourably

to our profession.  Debate thy cause with thy neighbour himself.  Shew

him, that the great object is not to make good thy cause, but to put a

speedy end to the strife.  Abraham, instead of complaining to others, car-

ried his wrongs straight to the king, who was answerable for them. (Gen.

xxi. 25-32.)  Jephthah thus debated his cause with the king of Ammon

himself, as the best means of bringing it to an amicable settlement.*  But

to discover secrets to others, even though we enjoin them to secrecy, is a

breach of integrity.  And if, as often is the case, confidence is be-

trayed, the just consequence must be infamy to ourselves, that may not

turn away from us.  Backbiter will be the stamp on our name.  And

many privacies hitherto unknown may be published in retaliation to

our shame.

      How many unholy heats would be restrained by the practice of these

rules of wisdom and love!  Obviously the most faulty is bound to yield.

But if, as usually happens, he is too unreasonable to do so; let a gener-

ous, self-forgetting kindness deny ourselves the pleasure of a triumph,

instead of standing upon punctilious forms, or waiting for an acknow-

ledgment from the offender.  And if we find it more easy to talk of our

neighbour's faults to others, than wisely and prayerfully to tell him of

them alone, ask for self-discipline, and the mind of Christ.  "Let the

peace of God rule in your hearts, to the which also ye are called in one

body."  (Col  iii. 15)

 

11. A word fitly spoken (spoken upon his wheels, marg.) is like apples of

gold in pictures of silver. 12. As an earring of gold, and an ornament

of fine gold, so is a wise reprover upon an obedient ear.

      The allusion is to the curiously wrought baskets of silver network,

in which delicious fruits were served up.  The beauty of the texture set

off the fruit with additional charms.  So does a lovely medium enhance

the attractiveness of truth.  The preacher should strive to find out

 

       * Judg. xi. 12-27.  Comp. the rule of the great Lawgiver, Matt. xviii. 15.

      Comp. Ecclus. viii.17-19.  'To tell our own secrets'--says our great moralist--'is

generally folly; but the folly is without guilt.  To communicate those with which we are

entrusted is always treachery, and treachery for the most part combined with folly.

Rambler, No. 13.

    ‡ See Bishop Lowth's beautiful exposition. Praelect. xxiv.


468                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

acceptable words"1--words fitly spoken--giving to each their proper

meat and that" in due season,"2 suited to their ages and difference of

temperament.  "How forcible are right words !" (Job, vi. 25.)  Our

Lord witnessed of himself, as "gifted with the tongue of the learned

that he might know how to speak the word in season" (Isa. 1. 4)--a

word upon the wheels--not forced or dragged, but rolling smoothly

along, like the chariot-wheels.  His discourses on the living water and

the bread of life3 arose naturally out of the conversation,4 and therefore

were full of arresting application.  Paul powerfully charged superstition

on the Athenians by an inscription on their own altar; and strength-

ened his reasoning by quoting from lone of their own poets. (Acts, xvii.

22-28.)  To a corrupt and profligate judge he preached "righteousness,

temperance, and judgment to come." (Acts, xxiv. 25.)

      In general intercourse much depends, not only upon the word spoken,

but upon the occasion and spirit of speaking.  We must not only lay

ourselves out to do good, but to watch the fittest seasons of doing it.

Under affliction, or tender impressions of conviction, a word fitly spoken

might be as the descent of our gracious Lord to the soul, "like rain

upon the mown grass." (Ps. lxxii. 6.)  The plough enters most effec-

tually, when the earth is softened.  Under all circumstances our "lips

should know what is acceptable." (Chap. x. 32.) Unseemly language

makes wholesome truth more unpalatable.  As far as possible, let

reproof be introduced naturally, without formality or constrained effort.

Many, who feel strongly the impulse, of being "instant out of season,"

neglect the not less Christian obligation of being "instant in season."

(2 Tim. iv. 2.)  We may think to relieve our conscience by speaking

our mind.  But to do it rudely and harshly, may put a stumbling-block

in our brother's way.  The apples of gold in their beautiful cover, evi-

dently imply good sense, and good taste with good things.  A well-

meaning absurdity rather brings contempt than conviction.  (Chap.

xxxi. 26.)

      All of us are bound to rebuke broad and palpable sins (Lev. xix.

17); yet on more doubtful individual cases the duty is far more re-

stricted.  Some Providence will direct into it.  There must be intimate

connection, full knowledge of the case, some right from age or station

to warrant it.  From its extreme difficulty, no duty calls for a more.

delicacy of feeling, and more "meekness of wisdom."  Yet where reproof

is well-timed and well-taken, a wise reproof to an obedient ear is an

earring of gold, and an ornament of gold set out to the best advantage.

Such was Eli's word to Samuel;5 Abigail's and Nathan's to David;6

Isaiah's to Hezekiah.7  We see the good fruit in Jehoshaphat, whom,

 

      1 Eccles. xii. 10. Chap. xv. 23.                                       2 Luke, xii. 42. Comp. 2 Tim. ii. 15.

      3 John, iv.6.                  4 Comp. Luke, xiv. 15, 16.        5 1 Sam. iii. 11-18;

      6 1 Sam. xxv. 31-34. 2 Sam. xii. 1-13.                           7 2 Kings, xx. 14 19.


CHAP. XXV. 13, 14.                                                469

 

instead of producing revulsion, it stimulated to higher service of God)1

The Apostle's probing reproof to the Corinthian Church worked so

efficiently, that "in all things they approved themselves clear in the

matter."2 What a triumph of grace is it, when the kindness of reproof

is acknowledged,3 and the motive of love appreciated!4  Faithful in-

deed is the blessing, when the gift of an obedient ear prepares the Lord's

children for a profitable hearing of his reproof.5

 

13. As the cold of snow in the time of harvest, so is a faithful messenger to

     them that sent him; for he refresheth the soul of his masters.

     Snow itself would be unseasonable in the time of harvest.  But the

cold of snow would be most refreshing to the parched and fainting

reapers.  "So is the faithful messenger to them that sent him." (Chap. xiii.

17.)  How did Eliezer refresh the soul of his masters, when 'he returned

with a true account and speedy dispatch of the important affair com-

mitted to him!'*  Judge of Isaac's feelings in the evening walk of

meditation--his heart full of the great matter under suspense, when "he

lifted up his eyes, and behold the camels were coming," fraught with

the desired blessing. (Gen. xxiv. 63, 64.)  How was Cornelius refreshed,

when his messenger returned with the joy of his heart, and the answer

to his prayers. (Acts, x. 4-6, 25.)  Often does the Apostle acknowledge

this refreshment to his anxious spirit, when burdened with "the care of

all the churches."6  And may we not ascend to the highest, and with

reverence mark even God himself condescending to receive refreshment

through the agency of his faithful messengers?  "We are unto God"--

saith the Apostle--"a sweet savour of Christ."  He appears to be over-

whelmed with the contemplation, and in prostrate astonishment he cries

out--"Who is sufficient for these things?" (2 Cor. ii. 15, 16.)  Won-

drous condescension!  Our Great Master acknowledges the messengers of

his Churches as "the glory of Christ." (Ib. viii. 23.)  And as his crown

will he honour them at the great consummating day.  "They that turn

many to righteousness shall shine as the stars for ever and ever."

(Dan. xii.3)

 

14. Whoso boasteth himself of a false gift, (in a gift of falsehood, marg.)

is like, clouds, and wind without rain.

   The last proverb described an invaluable blessing.  This marks a.

destructive curse.  Suppose a drought, as in the days of Elijah, threat-

ening desolation to the land (1 Kings, xviii. 5), and a thick cloud,

 

      1 2 Chron. xix. 2-4.                                                         2 1 Cor. v. 1. 2 Cor. ii. 1-3; vii. 11.

      3 Ps. cxli. 5. Comp. chap. ix. 8.      4 Chap. xxvii. 5, 6.  5 Hab. ii. 1-3. Chap. xx. 12; xv. 31.

     6 1 Cor. xvi. 17, 18. Phil. ii. 25-30. 1 Thess. iii. 1-7.

           * Poole.

            'Whoso maketh greate boastes, and giveth nothing.'--Bishop COVERDALE.


470                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

seemingly big with the fruitful blessing, yet passing over--the wind

without rain.  This is a true picture of the boaster; rich in promises, but

performing nothing; exciting large expectations, then sinking them in

disappointment.  Whether it be a vain conceit of his own understand-

ing, or an hypocritical desire to maintain a profession, it is a boasting

over a gift of falsehood.  If it be bad to promise and deceive, it is far

worse to promise with an intention to deceive.  This was the very

character of the Great Deceiver.  Did he not put before our unhappy

parent a false gift--a promise, which could never be realized--"Ye

shall be as gods, knowing good and evil?" (Gen. iii. 3-5.)  Nay--did

he not with a presumption, that hell itself might almost be ashamed of,

boast himself of his false gift; when he offered the world to his own

Maker, as a temptation to the vilest blasphemy? (Matt.-iv. 8-10.)

         How sad to find this character in those, who stand in the place of

God!  The Church has ever been chastened with false teachers; minis-

tering delusion, instead of instruction.1  And are there none among

ourselves, feeding the flock with false gifts, seeking to maintain their

hollow profession even in the sight of Him, whose frown at the great

day will banish them for ever from his presence?2  Oh! let those that

bear the Lord's message, take heed, that, if they be counted ''as de-

ceivers," they may be " yet true;"3 not as those, which corrupt the word

of God; but as of sincerity, as of God, in the "sight of God," let them

"speak in Christ."4

 

15. By long forbearing is a prince persuaded, and a soft tongue breaketh

                                                the bone.

     The wise man had before given a general rule for gentleness. (Chap.

xv. 1.)  Here he takes an extreme case, and shews its power with the

prince, whose unrestrained anger may rise to immediate revenge.5  Yet

submission, long-forbearing, has mighty power to persuade.  David thus

wrought upon Saul's enraged temper.6  Often by putting a case before

an angry prince at a fitting opportunity, he may be persuaded by "the

meekness of wisdom" against his present mind.

      But the general principle is most instructive.  The soft member

breaking the hard bone may seem to be a paradox.  But it is a fine

illustration. of the power of gentleness above hardness and irritation.

Apply it to those who are set against the truth.  Many a stout heart

has been won by a forbearing yet uncompromising, accommodation to

prejudice.7  In reproof Jehovah shewed what he could do in "the

strong wind and the earthquake."  But his effective rebuke was in the

 

     1 1 Kings, xxii. 11. Jer. v. 81. 2 Cor. xi. 13-15. Gal. i. 7. 2 Pet. ii. 17-19. Jude, 12-16.

     2 Matt. vii. 22, 28.                 3 2 Cor. vi. 8.                  4 Ib. ii. 17; iv. 2.

     5 Eccles. viii. 3; x. 4. 1 Sam. xxii. 17, 18.                    6 1 Sam. xxiv. 8-20; xxvi. 13-25.

     7 2 Tim. ii. 24-26. 1 Cor. ix. 29-22.


CHAP. XXV. 16.                                           471

 

"still small voice;" without upbraiding; sharp, yet tender. (1 Kings

xix. 11-13.)  So powerful is the energy of gentleness!  Indeed among

all the graces that adorn the Christian soul, like so many jewels of

various colours and lustres, against the day of her espousals to the

Lamb of God, there is not one more brilliant than that of patience.'*

Its enduring spirit is a manifest fruit of regeneration (Jam. i. 18, 19);

a clear exhibition of the mind of Christ (Matt. xi. 29), and the practical

resemblance of his own long-forbearance amidst our continued and most

aggravated provocations.  For, when we have been indulged with the

privilege of the beloved disciple--'leaning upon Jesus's breast,'

nothing have we felt to be there, but gentleness, tenderness, and love.

 

16. Hast thou found honey? eat so much as is sufficient for thee, lest thou

be filled therewith, and vomit it.

     Solomon lately had invited us warmly to eat honey. (Chap. xxiv. 13.)

Here, however, he imposes a restraint.  The old proverb applies:  'Too

much of a good thing.'  Eat so much as is sufficient.  So far it is sweet.

Beyond this it is nauseating.  Cultivate in all things the wisdom of

sobriety, directing to a thankful, but temperate enjoyment of our earthly

blessings."  Every creature of God is good, and nothing to be refused,

if it be received with thanksgiving." (1 Tim.. iv. 4.)  But as a needful

balance to this universal privilege--"Let your moderation be known

unto all men."2  Satisfy the wants, but mortify the lusts, of the flesh.3

Then the gifts of God become blessings to us, and we glorify him in

them, and by them.  But the most elevated pleasures of earth become

in the excess, distasteful and injurious; fraught with disappointment,

when separated from the great end. (Eccles. ii. 10, 11.)  Our affections

can never safely flow out to any object, unless they are primarily fixed

on God.  'Then we may be sure not to offend, either in the object or

measure.  No man can in God love whom he should not; nor imme-

diately love whom he would.  This holy respect doth both direct and

limit him, and shuts up his delights in the conscience of a lawful

fruition.'  In earthly pleasure, however, we can never forget, how

slight the boundary line is between the lawful and the forbidden path.

Sin and danger begin on the extremity of virtue.  For does not the

legitimate indulgence of appetite to its utmost point bring us to the

brink, and often hurry us to the allowance, of gluttony?  Does not the

undisciplined flow of earthly affections endanger idolatry?  Nay, even

spiritual luxury may need self-controul; lest it be excitement without

deep principle, which must eventually prove unsubstantial and delusive.

 

       1 John, xiii. 23; xxi. 20.                                2 Philip. iv. 5. 1 Cor. vii. 29-31.

       3 Rom. xiii. 14. Col. iii. 5. Luke, xxi. 34.

                      *Bp. HORNE'S exquisite Sermon on Patience.

                        Bp. HALL'S Works--Select Thought" II.


472                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

      But in eating the real honey of the Gospel there is no danger of

excess.  Never shall we know satiety in this delight.  The increasing

desire will be fully satisfied only in eternity.  'O God, let me but taste

and see how sweet the Lord Jesus is in all his gracious promises; in

all his merciful and real performances.   I shall want no more to make

me happy.  This is not the honey, whereof I am bidden not to eat too

much.  No, Lord, I can never eat enough of this celestial honey.  Here

I cannot surfeit: or if I could, this surfeit would be my health.'

 

17. Withdraw thy foot from (Let thy foot be seldom in, marg.) thy

      neighbour's house; lest he be weary of thee, and so hate thee.

     No code of laws enters, as the Bible does, into minute regulations

for the courtesies of life.  Yet surely we do not mar the sanctity of

religion, by spreading it over the face of human society.  Daily life is

evangelized by the pervading influence of its wholesome principles.

This rule illustrates one of our own proverbs, which has lost nothing of

its significancy by traditionary usage.  'Familiarity breeds contempt.'

This maxim was however never intended to give a chill to the flow of

neighbourly love, or to restrain its practical exercise.  It only suggests,

that kindly intercourse cannot be maintained without a considerate

feeling.  An ordinary acquaintance would give just umbrage in claim-

ing the free and unrestrained intercourse of intimate friendship.  And

the intruder would probably receive a plain intimation, that he was an

unwelcome guest.  To withdraw the foot is an useful rule to prevent so

mortifying a result.  "Make thy foot precious" to thy neighbour, by not

giving it too often.  It is far safer to err on the side of reserve, than to

incur contempt by the opposite mistake.

        Nay--even the closer band of friendship requires its measure of

prudent restraint.  It is worth all our care to preserve this invaluable

blessing from interruption.  It is the sweet of life.  And yet in this

honey (Verse 16) there may be a surfeit.  Without mutual respect it

may nauseate. Unseasonable interruption to our friend's time; fre-

quent visits without call or object;§ interference with his necessary

engagements, or family comforts; inconvenient tax of expense--per-

severance in this course might produce weariness, if not disgust, or even

hatred.

      Blessed be God!  There is no need of this caution and reserve in

our approach unto him.  Once acquainted with the way of access, there

is no wall of separation.  Our earthly friend may be pressed too far.

 

       * Bp. HALL'S Works--Soliloquies, liv.

        Heb. See Holden. Comp. 1 Sam. iii. 1--precious in both cases, because rare.

       ‡ Camp. Ecclus. xxi. 22. Livy observes, that 'the perfection of behaviour is for a man

to retain his own dignity, without intruding on the liberty of another.'

        § See a valuable paper, On the Robbery of Time, in "The Idler." Vol. I. No. 14.

.


CHAP. XXV. 18.                                           473

 

Kindness may be worn out by frequent use.  But never can we come

to our heavenly Friend unseasonably.  Never is he weary of our impor-

tunity.1  His gates are always open; "blessed are they that are

watching and waiting there." (Chap. viii. 34.)  The more frequent the

visits, the more welcome, and the more fruitful.  What with man would

be intrusion, with God is confidence.  Earnestly does he invite to his

closest and most endearing fellowship. (Cant. v. 1.)  And does his

child presume upon this most gracious privilege?  Far from it.  While

he has the "boldness of access;"2 he seeks for "grace, whereby he may

serve God acceptably with reverence and godly fear." (Heb. xii. 28.)

 

18. A man that beareth false witness against his neighbour is a maul, and

a sword, and a sharp arrow.

      False witness is universally condemned.  But where, save in the

word of God, are its true character and deep aggravation of guilt

adequately set forth?  What a picture is here of cruelty and malice-

nay--even of intentional murder!  Three murderous instruments are

before us, identifying the sixth and ninth commandments.  The tongue,

intended as "a tree of life," becomes a weapon of death.3 Who can

bear the sin involved in this fearful perversion? Often does the open

perjury, as a sword and sharp arrow, pierce the fountain of life.4  And

little better are those calumnies and unkind insinuations--all breaches

of charity--uttered so freely in common conversation.  Consider, ye

that deal in such conversation, whether you could think of treating the

objects of your defamatory discourse, as Jael did Sisera (Judg. iv. 21),

or as Joab did Abner. (2 Sam. iii. 27.)  Would you shrink with horror

at the thought of beating out your neighbour's brains with an hammer,

or of piercing his bowels with a sword, or a sharp arrow?  Why then

do you indulge in the like barbarity; destroying as far as you can that

reputation, which is dear to men as their life, and wounding all their

best interests, by mangling their character?*  Other injuries a man

may wear away or outlive.  But defamation, notwithstanding all

retrieving circumstances to heal the wound, too often leaves a scar to 

the dying day.

      Truly affecting is it to think of the multitude of these mauls, swords,

and sharp arrows even in the Church of God.  It is not "setting the,

battle in array against the Philistines, army against army" (1 Sam.

xvii. 21), but brother against brother. The Shibboleth of a party, not

the standard of the cross, is the watchword for the destructive conflict.

(Judg. xii. 6.)  "How long! Lord! how long?"

 

     1 Luke, xi. 5-9; xviii. 1.                             2 Eph. iii.12. Heb. iv. 16; x.19, 20.

     3 Chap. xv. 4, with xii. 18. Jer. ix. 3, 8.

    4 Gen. xxxix. 14-20. 1 Kings, xxi. 10-13. Matt. xxvi. 60-66. Acts, vi. 13, 14.

   * Lawson in loco.  See God's estimate and threatening. Ps. 1. 19-21. Ezek. xxii. 5.


474                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

19. Confidence in an unfaithful man in time of trouble is like a broken

tooth, and a foot out of joint.

       The broken tooth and disjointed foot are not only useless for their

respective offices, but a source of pain and uneasiness.  So is an unfaith-

ful man in time of trouble.  "A friend loveth at all times, and a brother

is born to adversity." (Chap. xvii. 17.)  But many have the name only.

Very friendly are they, when they are not needed; when we are dis-

pensing, not receiving, our gifts; when there is no cost to pay.  But

in the time of trouble, "a faithful man who can find?" (Chap. xx. 6.)

Keenly did Job feel this to be a sinking confidence in his time of trouble.

(Job, vi. 14-17.) David was sorely tried by this affliction (Ps. lv.

12-14), even at the very last stage of life. (1 Kings, i. 19, 25.)  The

brethren came out to meet the Apostle at Appii Forum.  Yet he records

a time, when their support would have been specially cheering--"At

my first answer no man stood by me, but all men forsook me."1  Need

we wonder at this appointed cross? His Master had endured it before

him; and "it is enough for the servant, that he be as his lord."2

       The world abounds with instances of this disappointment.  Micah's

Levite ungratefully repaid the trust reposed in him.3  Mephibosheth's

trust in Ziba;4--and Israel's dependence upon an arm of flesh; shewed

the broken reed, not the staff of support.*  Truly, when has the world

ever answered its fair promises?  When has it ever given a faithful

confidence in time of trouble?  When has it failed to make the soul

"ashamed of its hope?"  A merciful correction to the child of God,

when he turns aside from his true confidence to vain dependences.

       But whoever be unfaithful, God is true.  Who ever trusted in him,

and was confounded?  Who has ever built upon his sure foundation,

and not witnessed its unshaken security? (Isa. xxviii. 16.)  Though he

has pledged himself never to forsake his servants (Heb. xiii. 5); yet

specially--"I will be with him in trouble--a very present help in time

of trouble."5

 

20. As he that taketh away a garment in cold weather, and as vinegar upon

                        nitre, so is he that singeth songs to an heavy heart.

       What could be more inhuman than taking away a poor man's

garment, or the coverlid of his bed, in cold weather?  Such an act of

cruelty was forbidden by the God of the poor.6  Again--what could

be more unfitting than pouring vinegar upon nitre; which, instead of

 

     1 Acts, xxviii. 15, with 2 Tim. iv. 16.              2 Matt. xxvi. 56, with x. 24, 25.

     3 Judg. xvii. 7-12; xviii. 20-24.                        4 2 Sam. xvi. 1-4; xix. 24-28.

     5 Ps. xci. 15; xlvi. 1. Jer. xvii. 5-8.                  6 Deut. xxiv. 12,17. Job, xxiv. 7-10. Isa. lviii. 7.

        * See also Assyria. 2 Chron. xxviii. 20, 21. Hos. v. 13. Egypt, Isa. xxx. 1-3; xxxi.

1-8. Jer. xxxvi. 5-7. Ezek. xxix. 6, 7.


CHAP. XXV. 20-22.                                                 475

 

being serviceable, would only dissolve it with violent effervescence?*

Not less unseasonable would be the merriment of singing songs to an heavy

heart. (Eccles. iii. 4.)  "Give wine"--is the inspired rule--"unto

them that be of heavy hearts."1  But however great be the charms of

music,2 they are ill suited to soothe the pangs of sorrow.3  A con-

strained song was a keen edge of the Babylonish affliction.4  And

where no unkindness is intended, inconsiderate levity, or even excessive

cheerfulness, is as "a sword in the bones."  The tenderness, that shews

a brother's tears; that knows how to "weep with them that weep,"5 as

members of the same body;6 and directs the mourner to the mourner's

friend and God--this is Christian sympathy--a precious balm for the

broken heart.  The outward expression of this sympathy may not be

always needful.  But oh! let its spirit be deeply cherished, specially by

Christians of a buoyant or frigid temperament; most of all by the

minister of Christ, that he may take his chair by the mourner's side, and

"comfort him with the same comfort, wherewith he himself is comforted

of God." (2 Cor. i. 4-6.)  Much may be done to correct a constitutional

deficiency.  Redundancy of feeling, no less than coldness, needs self-

controul.  But never let us forget, that our divine Saviour for this end

"took our infirmities, and bare our sicknesses," that "he might be

touched with the feeling of them."7  Yes--"he knoweth our frame;"8

and his work is not to take away the garment from his child in the cold

weather, but to cherish him with all the tenderness of his own bosom.9

Instead of unsuitably pouring vinegar upon nitre; like the good

Samaritan, he "pours in his oil and wine for the healing of the wound.10

 

21. If thine enemy be hungry, give him bread to eat; and if he be thirsty,

      give him water to drink: 22. For thou shalt heap coals of fire upon his

      head, and the Lord shall reward thee.

    In what heathen code of morals shall we find this perfection of love?

Every system concedes largely to selfishness. None reach beyond

"loving those that love us," of which the true Lawgiver justly asks,

"What reward have ye?" (Matt. v. 46, 47.)  Nay--the corrupt

Jewish teachers could not rise to this sublime standard.  'They did not,

it seems, perceive anything to be disapproved in hatred, more than in

good will.  And, according to their system of morals, "our enemy"

was the proper natural object of one of these passions, as "our neigh-

 

      1 Chap. xxxi. 6. Ps. civ. 15.                                        2 1 Sam. xvi. 23. 2 Kings, iii. 15

     3 Job, xxx. 31. Dan. vi. 18. Comp. Eccles. x.x.ii. 6.   4 Ps. cx.xxvii. 1-4.

     5 Rom. xii. 15. Comp. Job, ii. 11-13.                          7 1 Cor. xii. 26. Heb. xiii. 3.

     7 Matt. viii. 17. Heb. iv.15.                                         8 Ps. ciii.14.

     9 Isa. xl. 11. 10 Ib. lxi. 2, 8, with Luke, x. 84.

          * The nitre of Scripture is not that salt that commonly goes by the name, but a soda or

mineral alkali (the Roman natrum) which strongly ferments with all acids. Dr. Blayney

remarks on Jer. ii. 22 (the only other example of the word), 'In many parts of Asia it is

called soap-earth, because it is dissolved in water, and used like soap in washing.'


476                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

bour" was of the other.'*  They could not come up to the law: and

therefore, perverting the rule of judicial, to authorize private, vengeance,1

they brought the law down to their own level.

      The agreement between the Old and New Testament codes is most

complete.  Both were dictated by the same Spirit.  Each stamps the

other with divine authority.  'The law of love is not expounded more

spiritually in any single precept either of Christ or his Apostles, than in

this exhortation.'  We need not therefore disparage one system, in

order to exalt the other.  "The new commandment is that which we

had from the beginning;" old in its authority; "new" only, as

enforced by a new principle and example.2  To suppose that the gospel

stretches beyond the measure of the law, would imply, either that the

law demanded too little, or the Gospel too much.  Neither supposition

honours the law, as the unchangeable transcript of the divine perfections.

There may be no open breach of the law, while yet the heart revolts

from its high standard.  Circumstances may hinder open retaliation.  Our

enemy may be out of our reach, or may be too great to offend with im-

punity.  But the grudge remains.3  There would be a pleasure at his

misfortune.4  We think of him only in connection with our injuries.

The spark may be confined for years, and on some favourable oppor-

tunity burst out into a murderous flame. (2 Sam. xiii. 23, 28.)  How

many haltings and shiftings are there at best, before we fully embrace

the obligation!  How much of a retorting spirit, or measuring our

conduct towards our enemy by his towards us!  And if on any point

we have constrained our selfish hearts to return good for evil, what

ministering to self-complacency, or self-righteousness!

       We are not bound to trust our enemies; but we are bound to for-

give them.  And yet too often our "love" to them is only ceasing to

quarrel with them.  If we put off revenge, as inconsistent with our

Christian name; yet do we "put on, as the elect of God, bowels of

mercies--forgiving one another, if any man have a quarrel against

any?" (Col. iii. 12, 13.)  'Love is of too substantial a nature to be

made up of mere negatives; and withal too operative, to terminate in

bare desires.'§  We may profess our good-will towards our enemy, that

we forgive and pray for him from our heart.  But unless we are ready

with the practical exercise of sympathy--feeding hill when he is hungry,

and giving him to drink, when thirsty--we are only the victims of our

 

       1 Matt. v. 43. Deut. vii. 1, 2; xxiii. 6; xxv. 17-19.      2 John, xiii. 34. 1 John, ii. 7, 8. 2 John, 5.

       3 Lev. xix. 18. Jam. v. 9.                                            4 Chap. xxiv. 17, 18.

          * Bp. BUTLER'S Sermons at the Rolls. Ser. VIII.

          Comp. Rom. xii. 20, 21, with text. Exod. xxiii. 4, 5, with Matt. v. 44. Our church

has not neglected to imbue her worshippers with this blessed spirit. See the Litany and

Collect for St. Stephen's day.

          ‡ Scott in loco.

          § SOUTH'S Sermon on Matt. v. 44.


CHAP. xxv. 21, 22.                                       477

 

own self-delusion.  'O noble revenge of Elisha'--exclaims Bishop

Hall, 'to feast his persecutors!  To provide a table for those, who had

provided a grave for him! No revenge but this, is heroical, and fit for

Christian imitation.'*  To feed our hungry enemy with the tenderness of

a nurse, who breaks the portion into morsels for her infant's nourish-

ment--What a splendour does nature's opposition give to this victory

of grace!

      No man ever conquered his enemy's heart by revenge; many by

love.  Was it not thus, that the Almighty Saviour dissolved the hard-

ness of our unyielding hearts?  Let the effort be tried.  Surround the

intractable metal beneath and above; not only putting it over the fire,

but heaping coals of fire upon it.  Few hearts are so obdurate, as not to

melt under the mighty energy of patient, self-denying, burning love.

(1 Sam. xxiv. 16-20; xxvi. 25.)  Or even should it be dross, that

resists the vehement flame, all will not be lost.  If thine enemy will

not recompence thee for all the good done to him, concern not thyself

with that.  The Lord shall reward thee.  The God of love will honour

his own image on his own children. (Matt. v. 44,45.)  David in this

confidence restrained the rising vengeance in his zealous servants;1 and

in similar forbearance found his "prayer for his enemy's good returned

into his own bosom."2  We are directed to return "blessing for railing,

knowing that hereunto are we called, that we should inherit a blessing."

(1 Pet. iii. 9.)  Our chief aim therefore must be to gain the victory of

meekness and love.  The perverseness of our enemies will thus become

a great advantage to us. We shall be indebted to them for some

measure of conformity to our Divine Master.

    To dispute the reasonableness of the precept is to say, that ‘man is

the proper object of good-will, whatever his faults are, when they

respect others; but not when they respect myself.  I am sure,' (adds

Bishop Butler-probing this principle to the bottom) 'there is nothing

in it unreasonable.  It is indeed no more, than that we should not

indulge a passion, which, if generally indulged, would propagate itself,

so as almost to lay waste the world.'+

     But most reasonable as this precept is, it is infinitely removed from

man's native power.  The rules, no less than the doctrines, of God, are

"foolishness to him." (1 Cor. ii. 14.)  Let those, who look to "enter

into life be keeping the commandments," begin with this.  They would

soon see, that they might as soon turn the sun backward; that they

could as readily cut "off a right hand," as reach it out to feed an

enemy in distress.  Such an exhibition of love would be in their eyes an

 

   1 2 Sam. xvi. 9-12. Ps. vii.. 4.                2 Ps. xxxv. 13. Comp. Matt. x 13.

   *Contemplations, Book xix. Cont. 2, on 2 Kings, vi. 22, 23  See another equally noble

example in the most degenerate times of Judah. 2 Chron. xxviii. 12-15.

     | Ywmize. LXX. Rom. xii. 20. Comp. Sehlesner.

    + Bp. BUTLER'S Sermon at the Rolls. Ser. IX


478                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

ideal perfection; or at least, like an exquisite piece of workmanship,

which every one admires, but no one attempts to imitate.

       Yet is it really impracticable?  So the world counts it.  So my

own corrupt heart finds it.  But "I can do all things"--this then

among the rest--"through Christ which strengtheneth me." (Philip.

iv. 13.)  It shall then be done willingly, joyfully.  My enemy has no

claim upon my life; yet he that bids me love him, claims and deserves

my full obedience. (John, xiv. 15.)  We are the disciples of him, who

died for his enemies.'*  Did we but drink more largely into his spirit,

this impracticable precept would be not our task or our cross, but our

delight and indulgence.

 

23. The north wind driveth away rain: so doth an angry countenance a

      backbiting tongue. (The north wind bringeth forth rain: so doth a

      backbiting tongue an angry countenance, marg.)

     Who should tolerate the backbiter?  He is a pest in society;1 in

the circle of friendship;2 in the church of God.3  Neither his plausible

garb, nor the good company who give him the hearing, can hide his

real character.  If the north wind driveth away the rain, let an angry

countenance frown him from our presence.   If  it brings the rain, let

the very sight of him bring a rebuke of holy indignation.  This is to

"be angry, and not sin."  Indeed not to be angry here, would be

to sin.  Holy anger is a property in God.4  It was manifested in the

humanity of Jesus.5  When God's name was dishonoured, "the meekest

man upon earth waxed hot"6 in anger, even while his heart was

melting in love to the rebels. (Exod. xxxii. 30-32.)  And should not

we feel this, when the backbiting tongue breaks his law of love, dear to

him as his own Godhead?  And yet rare indeed is the exception--if

alas!--even with Christians, when the faults of others, real or imagined,

do not occupy the conversation: or at least, when some lowering of the

absent, or some ridicule of their infirmities, is not admitted!

       This tongue wounds four at one stroke--the backbiter himself, the

object of his attack, the hearer, and the name of God.  All involves the

Christian professor in the fearful guilt of "offending the little ones."

 

      1 Chap. xxvi. 20.                             2 Chap. xvi. 28.                  3 2 Cor. xii. 20.

     4 Deut. ix. 8. Ps. vii. 11. Nah. i. 2.  5 Mark, iii. 5; viii. 33.

     6 Exod. xxxii.19  with Num. xii. 3

         * Bishop Wilson (Sodor and Man.) Rom. v. 10. Comp. Luke, xxiii. 34. Was not this

his own obedience to his own law?  Matt. v. 44.

         Many valuable critics, after the LXX, prefer the marginal to the received reading.

The ordinary meaning of the Hebrew word is to produce or bring forth, chap. viii. 24.

And yet Comp. Job, xxxvii. 22.  Homer also speaks of the north wind bringing fine

weather.--Il. 0. 170.  The meaning however is the same with either rendering.

         ‡ Eph iv. 26. 'You know,' said Philip Henry--'what an angry countenance doth;

and we may sometimes we a reproof by our looks, when we have not opportunity of

giving it otherwise. See his Life.


CHAP. XXV. 24.                                           479

 

(Matt. xviii. 6.)  For how can the weak and inexperienced but be

stumbled at so inconsistent an exhibition of the gospel of love?

But if he be rather welcomed than repelled, is not the willing

listener thus partaker of his sin?  Flee this deadly pest.  Keep thine

ears, as well as thy mouth, from the poison.  Let thine angry countenance

drive away either the slander from him, or the slanderer from thee.

Where remonstrance cannot be given, a marked displeasure of coun-

tenance is often an effective rebuke to the shameless offender.*

 

24. It is better to dwell in the corner of the housetop, than with a brawling

woman in a wide house.

       This proverb has been given before. (Chap. xxi. 9.) Scriptural

repetitions shew not want of matter, but the deep importance of the

matter laid out. Such is the vexation connected with this evil, that

the most uncomfortable dwelling, where the soul might retire for com-

munion with God, would be a grateful alternative.

      This Book presents a graphical picture of conjugal happiness,

where "the wife is as the loving hind and the pleasant roe"--her

husband's most satisfying delight. (Chap. v. 18, 19.)  Here is a vivid

contrast of misery, from which the wide house provides no refuge, no

rest.

      The relative position of the parties in the sacred ordinance is wisely

appointed.  Equality would only have provoked contention for supe-

riority.  The divine appointment preserves peace without degradation.1

If "man is the head of the woman," "the woman is the glory of the

man"2--the diadem in his domestic circle,3 and, upon her slightly

lowered level; still his support, solace, and "help-meet." (Gen. ii. 18.)

The brawling woman, revolting against her Maker's rule of subjection, is

no less a tormentor to herself than to her husband.

       Let the Christian professor beware of trifling with the law of this

ordinance--"Only in the Lord." (1 Cor. vii. 39.)  If he comes into the

world, instead of "coming out;" if, instead of "being separate," he

unites himself in the closest bond; if, when forbidden to "touch the

unclean thing," he makes himself  "one flesh" with it,4 let him not.

wonder, if his God "curse his blessing,"5 and leave him to choose for

 

      1 Gen. iii. 16. 1 Tim. ii. 11-14.             2 1 Cor. xi. 3-7.                    3 Chap. xxxi. 28.

      4 2 Cor. vi. 14-17, with Eph. v. 31.      5 Mal. ii. 2.

          * Augustine's biographer mentions of him, that these two lines were written in his

dining-room--

'Quisquis amat dictis absentum rodere vitam,

Hanc mensam vetitam noverit esse sibi.'

It is added that he said to a bishop, indulging this habit at his table, 'Either I will blot

out these verses on the wall, or begone from my table.'  Bishop Burnet, in his Essay on

Queen Mary, mentions her effectual rebuke of calumny.  If any indulged. it in her presence,

she would ask, if they had read Archbishop Tillotson's Sermon on Evil Speaking, or give

them other pointed reproof.--See the fine description, Ecclus. xxvii. 13-20.


480                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

himself an house of contention, unvisited with one ray of heavenly

sunshine.  Young man! ponder the deep responsibility of the marriage

choice.  Let it be manifestly the Lord's choice for thee, not thine for

thyself.  Yea--let him be thy first choice, and he will order the rest.

(Matt. vi. 33.)  Watch and distrust thine own will.  Consult the

"lamp and light of thy path." (Ps. cxix. 105.)  Mark the Providence

of thy God;1 and "his blessing, that maketh rich, and addeth no

sorrow with it," will sanctify his own gift.2

      Christian women!  Think not these Proverbs unworthy your atten-

tion.  Be it so, that you answer not to the revolting picture.  But

surely the repeated exhibition strongly inculcates the cultivation of the

opposite graces, the absence of which clouds the female character in

painful deformity.3

 

25. As cold waters to a thirsty soul, so is good news from afar country.

      What were the cold waters to Hagar and her child in the wilder-

ness;4 to Israel at Rephidim;5 to Samson at Lehi!*  Such is the

cordial of good news from afar country.  Solomon had before spoken of

the "refreshment pf the messenger" (Verse 13); here of the message.

This Proverb, like many others, was probably familiar to his own

experience.  The return of his fleets sent to a far country for precious

merchandize were doubtless (like our own merchant ships) welcomed

with no common delight. (1 Kings, ix. 26-28.)  The exile from his

country, or one that has interests in a foreign land--near and dear

relatives, from whom the separation has been long--will fully realize

this lively illustration.  Had Joseph's brethren brought to their sor-

rowing father as many pieces of gold as grains of corn, it would have

been nothing to the good news from a far country--"Joseph is yet

alive."6 Distant intelligence is naturally more cheering, than tidings

in themselves equally interesting, nearer home.  The long interval of

these tidings; the lengthened separation from the beloved object; the

anxiety necessarily excited by want of intercourse; the uncertainty of

his welfare and prospects--all combine to make these cold waters

specially refreshing to the thirsty soul.  "Hope deferred maketh the

heart sick; but when the desire cometh, it is a tree of life."7

       Reader! if thy light vain heart has ever leaped within thee at the

news of some earthly advantage, hast thou heard and welcomed the

good news from the far country?  Dost thou know thy need, thy danger

of perishing?  Then what refreshment can compare with the "good

 

      1 Gen. xxiv. 12-60. Ruth, iii. 18.                         2 Chap. xix. 14; x. 22.

      3 1 Tim. ii. 9, 10. 1 Pet. iii. 1-6.                          4 Gen. xxi. 16-19.

      5 Exod. xvii. 1-6. Comp. Num. xx. 11.              6 Gen. xlv. 25-28. Comp. xliii. 27-30.

      7 Chap. xiii 12. Comp. xv. 30. Contrast Neh. i. 2-4.

            * Judg. xv. 18, 19. See Virgil's beautiful image, Eclog. v. 46-48.


CHAP. XXV. 26.                                           481

 

tidings of great joy" brought to thee from heaven--"Unto you is born

a Saviour?" (Luke, ii. 10, 11.)  Yet in vain would be these joyous

tidings, unless faith could hear their repeated proclamation as from the

Seraph's lips, or from the Saviour's cross.  But such influence do they

bring to the opened heart, as melts away the mass of sin in the glowing

splendour of this grand work of God--Yes--sinner--mountains of

gold could never have purchased the blessing now brought to thine

ears, yea--to the door of thine heart, "without money and without

price." (Isa. lv. 1.)  Does not then thine heart spring in tile song of

praise--"How beautiful upon the mountains are the feet of him, that

bringeth good tidings, that publisheth peace!" (Ib. lii. 7.)  Most

grateful also are the messengers' tidings from a far country, of the

welcome reception of their message.1  The angelic harps strike up the

song.2  Even the bosom of God is filled with adorable joy!3

 

26. A righteous man falling down before the wicked is as a troubled

fountain, and a corrupt spring.

     Eastern fountains and springs (where the rains are only periodical,

and at long intervals) are of no common price.4  The injury of corrupt-

ing them is proportionate.5  The well is therefore a blessing or a curse,

according to the purity or impurity of the waters.  A righteous man in

his proper character is "a well of life, a blessing in the midst of the

land."6  But if he fall down before the wicked by his inconsistent pro-

fession,* the blessing becomes a curse, the fountain is troubled, and the

spring corrupt.  What a degradation was it to Abraham to fall down

under the rebuke of an heathen king;7 to Peter, to yield to a servant-

maid in denying his Lord!8  How did David's sin trouble the fountain,

both to his family9 and his people!10  How did the idolatry of his wise

son corrupt the spring through successive generations!11

      When a minister of Christ apostatizes from the faith12 (and mourn-

fully frequent have been such spectacles) or compromises his principles

from the fear of man,13 the springs and fountains of truth are fearfully

corrupted.  When a servant of God, of standing and influence, crouches

and falls down under the wicked,the transparency of his profession is

grievously tarnished.  Satan thus makes more effective use of God's

people than of his own.  The gross wickedness of the ungodly passes

 

      1 Acts, xv. 3. Comp. xi. 18, 23.   2 Luke, xv. 7, 10.                    3 Ib. verses 20-24.

     4 Gen. xxvi. 18-22. Deut. viii. 7. Josh. xv. 18, 19.                      5 See Ezek. xxxii. 2; xxxiv. 18.

     6 Chap. x. 11. Gen. xii. 3.              7 Gen. xii. 18-20. Comp. xx. 10; xxvi.l0.

     8 Matt. xxvi. 69-72.                       9 2 Sam. xi. 2, with xiii. 11-14; xvi. 22.

    10 Ib. xii. 14.                                  11 1 Kings, xi. 1-8. 2 Kings, xxiii. 13.

    12 Philem. 24, with 2 Tim. iv. 10. 13 Gal. ii. 11-14.

            * Falling down is to be taken in a moral sense (making a slip).  Parkhurst.

           2 Kings, xviii. 5, 6, with 13-16. Contrast with these humbling instances of infirmity

the great Confessor, who would not fall down before false Apostles--not even before a true

Apostle.--Gal. ii. 4, 5, 11.


482                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

in silence.  But he makes the neighbourhood ring with the failings of

Christian professors.  Godly consistency so grates upon the conscience

of the world, that at any breach of it they clap their hands with Satanic

joy; see the Lord "wounded in the house of his friends." (Zech. xiii. 6.)

Principles and practices are sanctioned, that wound our Divine Master.

The consciences of the ungodly are lulled.  "The lame," instead of

being "healed," are "turned out of the way." (Heb. xii. 13.)  Thus

'the scandalous falls of good men are like a bag of poison cast by

Satan into the spring, from whence the whole town is supplied with

water'.*

       Nor let this be considered as the responsibility only of eminent

Christians.  All are by profession "the salt of the earth, and the light

of the world."  Let all therefore see to it, that "the salt does not lose its

savour," and that the candlestick gives its clear light. (Matt. v. 13-16.)

None of us stand--or act alone.  "None of us"--be it well pondered--

"liveth unto himself." (Rom. xiv. 7.)  The conduct of each has its

measure of influence on the body.  Each is the centre of a circle more

or less extended.  Each is either a pure spring, or a troubled fountain.

Lord! "cast the salt into the spring of the waters, that they may be

healed." (2 Kings, ii. 21, 22.)

 

27. It is not good to eat much honey; so for men to search their own

glory is not glory.

     Honey is good; but in moderation. (Chap. xxiv. 13.)  It is not good

to eat much honey. (Verse 16.)  A man's own name and reputation is

honey to him.  Let him carefully preserve it from "the dead fly that

spoils it."1  The honour of God is connected with the honourable pro-

fession of his people.  But this carefulness is a virtue on the brink of

vice; a duty on the borders of imminent danger.  To be puffed up by

our own endowments, to listen to our praise; to force ourselves upon

public attention,2 thus to search out our own glory,3 is not glory.  As

unseemly is it to seek our own glory, as to ascribe to ourselves our own

being.

       Yet is there no danger of seeking the fame, rather than the sub-

stance of godliness, a well-known name in the Church, rather than

an unknown name in the book of life?  Few ministers, but have been

severely exercised here; identifying their usefulness with their honour;

cherishing the desire for public approbation, rather than for unnoticed

 

      1 Phil. iv. 8, with Eccles. x. 1.                       2 Chap. xx. 6; xxvii. 2.

      3 Gen xi. 4; 2 Kings, x. 16. Dan. iv. 30.

     * FLAVEL'S Method of Grace. Sermon XXXV.

     Critics seem much perplexed by the difficulty of supplying a negative in the last

clause.  Yet Professor Lee observes (Heb. Gram. 242: 13), 'The most frequent ellipsis is of

the negatives, e. g. Ps. ix. 19. Deut. xxxiii. 6. 1 Sam. ii. 3. Ps. xliv. 17. Prov. xxv. 27;

xxx. 3, &c."


                                     CHAP. XXI. 28.                                             483

 

fruitfulness; dreading to be counted upon an ordinary level, as "vessels

of wood and earth," rather than of, "gold and silver." (2 Tim. ii. 20.)

Oh! it is a mighty victory over self, to trample man's judgment under

foot, and eye only God's approval. Nothing is right except it be

wrought in the true spirit of the gospel;  "doing nothing in vain-glory,

but in lowliness of mind each esteeming others better than himself."l

The great apostle spoke of matters of glorying only by compulsion.*

A vain-glorious spirit cankers many a plausible profession. (John, v.

44; xii. 43.). Did we turn from the flattering glass of self-love to the

pure and faithful mirror of the law, the inconceivable deformities

opening to view would constrain us to take the lowest place among

the most unworthy. Most wholesome is the recollection—"That

which is highly esteemed among men is abomination in the sight of

God." (Luke, xvi. 15.)

 

28. He that hath no rule over his own spirit is like a city that is broken

                              down, and without walls.

            A former proverb declared "him that had rule over his spirit" to

be a mighty conqueror. (Chap. xvi. 32.) And certainly the noblest

conquests are gained or lost over ourselves. He that hath no rule over

his own spirit is an easy prey to the invader. Any one may irritate and

torment him. (Esth. iii. 5, 6; v. 13.)  He yields himself to the first

assault of his ungoverned passions, offering no resistance; like a city

broken down and without walls, the object of contempt. (Neh. i. 3; ii. 17.)

Having no discipline over himself, temptation becomes the occasion of

sin, and hurries him on to fearful lengths that he had not contemplated.

The first outbreak of anger tends to murder.2  Unwatchfulness over

lust plunges into adultery.3  The mightiest natural strength is utter

feebleness in the great conflict.4  How should such an object excite

our tenderest compassion!

            But there are many cases of this moral weakness, less shameful, and

yet scarcely less injurious to the soul. Every outbreaking of irritation,

every spark of pride kindling in the heart, before it ever spews itself in

the countenance or on the tongue, must be attacked, and determinately

resisted. It is the beginning of a breach in the walls of the city.

Without instant attention, it will widen to the ruin of the whole.

(Comp. chap., xvii. 14.) Man may talk of self-control, as if the reins

were in his own hand. But he who has been "born of the Spirit,"

and taught "to know the plague of his own heart," is made to feel,

that effective self-controul is divine grace, not his own native power.

What then is to be done? On the first assault fortify the walls by

 

1 Philip. ii. 3. Gal. v. 26.    2 Gen. iv. 5-8. Comp. 1 Sam. xx. 30-33; xxv. 33. Dan. iii. 13, 19.

3 2 Sam. xi. 2-4.                           4 Judg. xvi. 1-19.

            * 2 Cor. xii. 1-11. See Lyttleton on Conversion of St. Paul.

 


484         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

prayer. Trust not to the strength of the citadel. Have not repeated

defeats taught us the need of calling in better strength than our own?

How could we enter into the conflict, much less hold on the fight, but

for the promise—"Sin shall not have dominion over us?" (Rom. vi. 14.)

Oh! for simple—cleaving faith, to draw out from this mighty source,

energy, continual watchfulness, perseverance, triumphant victory!

 

                                   CHAPTER XXVI.

 

1. As snow in summer, and as rain in harvest, so honour is not seemly

                                            for a fool.

THE richest blessings lose their value when unsuitably bestowed.

Snow is the beauteous wintry covering of the earth;1 preserving the

seed from the killing cold.2 But in summer, it is out of season. Rain

in its season is a fruitful blessing.3 But in harvest it is an unsuitable

interruption to the reaper's work, and often a public calamity. (1 Sam.

xii. 17, 18.) Just so, honour, unsuitably bestowed on a fool, is not

seemly for him.  ‘He neither deserves it, nor knows how to use it.'*

Honour bestowed on Joseph and Daniel, suitably, to their wisdom, was

seemly to themselves, and a blessing to the land.4 But when a fool,

sometimes a scoffer at religion, is promoted to a public station, how

ungracefully does his honour sit upon him? In Haman it was only

the display of his pride and vain glory, the occasion of his more public

disgrace.

            Learn then to adorn our profession with consistency. Seek that

heavenly wisdom, which will make us worthy of any honour that may

be appointed for us. " He that is faithful in that which is least, is

faithful also in much." (Luke, xvi. 10.)

 

2. As the bird by wandering: as the swallow by flying, so the curse

                                    causeless shall not come.

            Groundless fears are real evils, and often press heavily upon

enfeebled minds. A curse flies out of an angry mouth undeserved,

unprovoked. ‘What if it should curse to pass?' But we need no

more fear the causeless curse, than the birds wandering over our heads.

The swallow flying up and down never lights upon us; so the curse

causeless shall not come to hurt us. Powerless was Moab's curse, though

attempted to be strengthened with the divination of the wicked pro-

 

1 Job, xxxvii. 6.              2 Isa. lv. 10.

3 Ib. Job, xxxviii. 26, 27. Ps. lxv. 9–13; civ. 13, 14. Jam. v. 7.

4 Gen. xli. 38-40. Dan. vi. 1.-3.

* Poole. Chap. mix. 10; xxx. 21, 22. Eccles. x. 5–7. Comp. Ps. xii. 8.

 


                                       CHAP. XXV1. 3.                                   485

 

phet.l  Goliath's curse against David was scattered to the winds.2

What was David the worse for Shimei's curse;3 or Jeremiah for the

curse of his persecutors?4  Under this harmless shower of stones we

turn from men to God, and are at peace. "Let them curse; but bless

thou; when they arise, let them be ashamed; but let thy servant

rejoice." (Ps, cix. 28.)

            But if the curse be not causeless, it will come. Jotham's righteous

curse came upon Abimelech and the men of Schechem. (Judg. ix. 56,

57.) Elisha's curse fearfully came to the young mockers of Bethel.

(2 Kings, ii. 24.) The curse abides on Jericho from generation to

generation!*  And—Reader—if thou be an unconverted, unbelieving

sinner, without love to thy Saviour, there is a curse for thee, not causeless,

justly deserved; and come it must, come it will.5 Yea—has it not already

come from thy Maker and thy God;6 not an impotent threat of evil,

but the solemn foreboding of everlasting wrath centering in thy heart?

Oh! flee from it while time is given; while the refuge is open to

thee!7 If thou be under cover, it shall not come.8  Thou shalt rejoice

in "thy redemption from it,"9 in thy complete security. (Chap. i. 33.)

 

3. A whip for the horse, a bridle for the ass, and a rod for the fool's back,

            This proverb inverts our ideas. We should have given the bridle

for the horse, and the whip for the ass. But the Eastern asses are a very

superior race, both in beauty and spirit, a valuable property to their

owners.10  The bridle is necessary to curb and to guide them; while

the horse, perhaps badly broken in, may need a whip; if dull, to acce-

lerate his speed; if fiery, to correct his temper.‡  Every creature sub-

dued for the service of man needs his appropriate discipline. The

Lord "guides his children with his eye." But let them cultivate a

pliable spirit; "not as the horse and the mule, whose mouth must be

held in with bit and bridle." (Ps. xxxii. 8, 9.) The fool neither hears

the voice, nor sees the directing eye. He will be ruled neither by

reason nor persuasion. A rod therefore is for the fool's back.11  Pharaoh

provoked this severe chastisement at the hands of God;12 the men of

 

1 Numb. xxii, 4-6; xxiii. 8. Deut. xxiii. 4, 5.           2 1 Sam. xvii. 43.

3 2 Sam. xvi. 12.                                                4 Jer. xv. 10.

5 Deut. xxviii. 15; xxix. 19, 20. 1 Cor. xvi. 22.      6 Chap. iii. 33. Zech. v. 3, 4.

7 Gen. xix. 17.                                                   8 Rom. viii. 1.                9 Gal. iii. 10, 13.

10 Judg. x 3, 4; xii. 13, 14. 2 Sam. xvii. 23; xix. 26.

11 Chap. x. 13; xix. 29.                                       12 Exod. x. 3.

* Josh. vi. 26. 1 Kings, xvi. 34 The city of Palms is described by a recent traveller,

as an assemblage of huts, ‘so low, that at night one might almost ride over them without

being aware of the fact.'—Three Weeks in Palestine, p. 89. Such is the unchangeable truth

of God!

Michaelis was so positive on this point, that he altered his version accordingly, con-

trary to the authority of all versions and MSS.

‡ PAXTON'S. Natural History of Scripture, p. 221, and Parkhurst.

 


486        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Succoth and Penuel at Gideon's hands.1  Many such fools are in the

Church, self-willed, full of conceit. They need the rod, and they have

it.2 Discipline is the most probing test. What is its fruit? In the

child submission and tenderness;3 in the fool (except it beat out his

folly,4 which is too often a desperate cases5) hardness and rebellion.6

Sad indeed is it, that the child sometimes needs the rod intended for

the fool's back. Yet never does his loving Father use it, till gentle

means have been tried in vain. Oh my God! use thine own wise

means, to save me from my own waywardness, folly, and ruin.

 

4. Answer not a fool according to his folly, lest thou also be like unto

            him. 5. Answer a fool according to his folly, lest he be wise in his

            own conceit.

            We are forbidden, and yet commanded, to answer a fool. One rule

decides—Answer him not—the other—Answer him. The reason how-

ever attached to each rule explains the apparent contradiction.*  Both

together are a wise directory for the treatment of the fool, according to the

difference of character, time, or circumstances. Suppose a free-thinker

or scoffer at religion, shewing the desperate "folly of his heart by making

a mock at sin" (Chap. xiv. 9), by witty and profane jestings, or specious

arguments against the word or ways of God. Generally speaking, it

would be better to follow Hezekiah's command concerning Rabshakeh's

blasphemy--"Answer him not."7 Jeremiah thus turned away in

silence from the folly of the false prophets. (Jer. xxviii. 11.) If how-

ever we are constrained to reply—Answer him not according to his folly;

not in his own foolish manner; "not rendering railing for railing."

(1 Pet. iii. 9.) Moses offended here. He answered the rebels according

to their folly—passion for passion, and thus he became like unto them.8

David's answer to Nabal was in the same humiliating spirit.9 The

answerer in this case is like the fool. He appears at the time to be cast

in the same mould.

            But what may be at one time our duty to restrain, at another time,

and under different circumstances, it may be no less our duty to do.

Silence may sometimes be mistaken for defeat. Unanswered words

may be deemed unanswerable, and the fool become arrogant, more and

more wise in his own conceit.10 An answer therefore may be called for;

yet not in folly, but to folly; 'not in his foolish manner, but in the

 

1 Judg. viii. 5-7, 16.                    2 2 Cor. x. 6-11; xiii-. 2.             3 Jer. xxxi. 18-20.

2 Chron. xxxiii. 11-13.                5 Chap. xvii. 10; xxvii. 22.

6 2 Chron. xxviii. 22. Ism. i. 5 Jer. v. 3.                           7 2 Kings, xviii. 36. Jude. 9.

8 Numb. xx. 2-10. Ps. cvi. 33.    9 1 Sam. xxv. 21, 22.      10 Verse 12. Job, xi. 2.

* Yet the learned Dr. Kennicott was so strangely stumbled by this verbal contradiction,

is to propose a rash emendation of the text from the Syriac and Targum, which wholly

nisses the point of the text. Dissert. ii. on Heb. Text of Old Testament, p. 369.

 


                                    CHAP. XXVI. 6-9.                                        487

 

manner which his foolishness required;*  not according to his folly, but

according to thine own wisdom. Yet here, our words would be sharp

as rods. The fool's back needs them. Such was Job's answer to his

wife; grave, convincing, silencing—"Thou speakest as one of the

foolish women speaketh. What! shall we receive good at the hand of

God, and shall we not receive evil ?" (Job, ii. 9, 10.)

            Oh! for wisdom to govern the tongue; to discover "the time to

keep silence, and the time to speak" (Eccles. iii. 7); most of all to

suggest the "word fitly spoken" (Chap. xv. 23; xxv. 11) for effective

reproof! How instructive is the pattern of our great Master! His

silence and his answers were equally worthy of Himself. The former

always conveyed a dignified rebuke.1 The latter issued in the con-

fusion of his captious enemies.2 Will not a prayerful meditative study

communicate to us a large measure of his Divine wisdom?

 

6. He that sendeth a message by the hand of a fool cutteth of the feet, and

            drinketh damage. 7. The legs of the lame are not equal: so is a

            parable in the mouth of fools. 8. As he that bindeth a stone in a sling

            (putteth a precious stone in a heap of stones, marg.), so is he that

            giveth honour to a fool. 9. As a thorn goeth up into the hand of a

            drunkard, so is a parable in the mouth of fools.

            Surely this diversified exhibition of the foolishness of folly is an

incentive to the study of heavenly wisdom. The fool is utterly unfit for

service. When a message is sent by his hands, he makes so many mis-

takes, careless or wilful, that it is like bidding him go, when we have

cut of his legs. Indeed we can only drink damage from his commission.3

The employment of the unbelieving spies spread damage of discontent

and rebellion throughout the whole congregation.4 How careful should

we be to entrust important business to trustworthy persons! Fools are

either unqualified for their mission, or they have their own interests to

serve, at whatever cost to their masters. Solomon himself drank damage,

by employing an "industrious" servant, but a fool in wickedness, who

"lifted up his hand against the king," and spoiled his son of ten parts

of his kingdom. (1 Kings, xi. 26-40.) Benhadad drank damage, by

sending a message by the hands of Hazael, who murdered his master,

when the way was opened for his own selfish purposes. (2 Kings,

viii. 8-15.)

            See—again—how the fool exposes his shame. Never would a lame

man shew his infirmity so much, as if he were to pretend to feats of

agility or strength. Never does a fool appear so ridiculous, as when

 

1 Matt. xvi. 1-4 ; xxi. 23-27.                               2 Ib. xxii. 46. Luke, xiii. 17.

3 Chap. x. 26. Contrast xiii. 17; xxv. 13.              4 Numb. xiii. 32; xiv. 1-4.

            * FULLER'S Harmony of Scripture.

 


488       EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

making a show of wisdom. It only creates disgust,1  ‘A wise saying

doth as ill become a fool, as dancing does a cripple:*  A parable—

‘an authoritative weighty saying,'--in his mouth becomes a jest.

"Is Saul also among the prophets? Why beholdest thou the mote,

that is in thy brother's eye; but considerest not the beam, that is in

thine own eye? Physician, heal thyself. Thou therefore that teachest

another, teachest thou not thyself? "2

            Place the fool in honour. The sling makes the stone bound in it an instru-

ment of death. The honour given to the fool makes him a curse to his

fellow-creatures.3 The prime favourite of a despot, had not God

restrained him, would have been the murderer of the chosen nation.

(Esth. iii. 1-5.) Dangerous indeed is it to place unqualified persons

in authority. ‘It is like putting a sword or a loaded pistol into a

madman's hand.'‡

            But the fool does mischief also unconsciously to himself. ‘It is no

more fit for a fool to meddle with a wise speech, than for a drunken

man to handle a thorn bush.'§ When the thorn goes up into his hand,

his insensibility only makes the wound more deadly. Thus the fool's

parable--his wise sayings, gathered he scarcely knows whence, go up

into him like a thorn, sharply pricking his conscience. Yet he feels no

compunction, no alarm. (Comp. Ecclus. xix. 12.) Sad indeed is the

sight (should it not make us tremble for ourselves?) of the ungodly

prophet, dealing out from the mouth of God, yet with hardened indif-

ference, words enough to "make both his ears to tingle." (Numb.

xxiii. xxiv.)

            Such is the fool—a pest to his fellow-creatures; awfully responsible

to his God! But in the sacred office how fearfully are this evil and

responsibility increased! The great message, sent by the hands of

ungodly servants, brings most serious damage to the Church.||  The

parable—our Divine Master's wise and holy instruction—in the mouth

of a fool is perverted and contradicted by his unholy life.  "Unto the

wicked God saith—What hast thou to do, to declare thy statutes, on

that thou shouldest take my covenant in thy mouth; seeing thou hatest

instruction, and castest my words behind thee?" (Ps. 1. 16, 17.)

 

1 Chap. xvii. 7. Comp. Ecclus. xx. 20.

2 1 Sam. xix. 24. Matt. vii. 3-5. Luke, iv. 23. Rom. ii. 21               3 Judg. ix. 6. 1 Sam. viii. 1-3.

* Bp. Patrick.                            Parkhurst.

‡  Scott in loco. Parkhurst, and other critics prefer the marg. reading—shewing that

honour is lost upon a fool, like a precious stone covered up in a promiscuous heap. ‘He

that setteth a foole in hye dignite, that is even as yf a man dyd caste a precious stone upon

the galous.' Bp. Coverdale—alluding to the custom of throwing a stone to the heap,

under which the criminal was buried. The reading of the text is however well supported

both by the Vulgate and LXX.

§ Bp. Hall.

|| 1 Sam. ii. 17. Jer. xxiii. 15. Hence the solemn responsibility of the Ordination Rule.

1 Tim. v, 22.

 

                             CHAP. XXVI. 10.                                           489

 

‘Almighty God, who alone worketh great marvels, send down upon

all Bishops and Curates the healthful spirit of thy grace;'*  that

"stewards faithful" to their trust (1 Cor. iv. 1, 2), "workmen that need

not to be ashamed" (2 Tim. ii. 15), true and authorized "ambassadors

for Christ," may be multiplied in the Church; and that fools—unfaith-

ful ministers—may be rebuked and restrained.

 

10. The great God, that formed all things, both rewardeth the fool, and

            rewardeth transgressors. (A great man grieveth all; and he hireth

            the fool; he hireth also the transgressors, marg.)

            It is difficult to fix with certainty the interpretation of this Pro-

verb.All however expound from it the Divine government, direct or

permissive. Suppose the Great One to be God, that formed all things.

He proportions exactly the reward of the wicked.1  The fool is respon-

sible for sins of ignorance; not only for the little he knew, but for the

much, which, had he not neglected the means, he might have known.

The transgressor is much more responsible for his sins against know-

ledge, warning, and conviction. And at "the day of revelation of the

righteous judgment of God, lie will render to every man according to

his deeds. The servant, that knew his Lord's will, and prepared not

himself, neither did according to his will, shall be beaten with many

stripes. But he that knew not, and did commit things worthy of

stripes, shall be beaten with few stripes."2

            Or suppose the Great One to be a mighty prince; powerful in

forming the minds, character, and principles of all around him. If he

"rule in the fear of God " (2 Sam. xxiii. 3), will not he reward the fool

and the transgressor, the ignorant and the presumptuous? For how can

his kingdom prosper upon the encouragement of the wicked?3

            Or if he be a wicked prince, he grieveth all by his countenance of sin:

hiring transgressors as instruments of his will.4 Still is it the govern-

ment of God. The sceptre is in the hands of unlimited power, wisdom,

and goodness. "The wicked are his sword, his hand, the rod of his

anger, and the staff of his indignation."5  Shall we then "reply against

God?"  Reverence, faith, humility, patience, expectation, are graces

of the Lord's children. "Clouds and darkness are round about him;

righteousness and judgment are the habitation of his throne." (Ps.

xcvii. 2.) There is no sleeping of his Providence; no interruption of

his Government. We are living only in a preparatory state. The veil

 

1 Ps. xxxi. 23. Isa. iii. 11.                       2 Rom. ii. 5, 6. Luke, xii. 47, 48.

3 Chap. xxv. 5. 2 Chron. xxviii. 1-8; xxxiii. 1-11.

4 Judg. ix. 4. 1 Kings, xxi. 10.                 5 Ps. xvii. 13, 14Isa. x. 5.

* Liturgy.

Our venerable translators have supplied with some doubtfulness an ellipsis of the

principal term. The word in the original may mean either the Great God, or a great man.

Nor does the construction clearly determine either meaning.


490        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

will soon be lifted up, and the grand consummation will explain all.

Fools and transgressors will receive their just reward; and one universal

chorus will burst from heaven—"Who shall not fear thee, 0 Lord, and

glorify thy name? For thou only art holy; for thy judgments are

made manifest." (Rev. xv. 4.)

 

11. As a dog returneth to his vomit, so a fool returneth to his folly.

            And is this the picture of man —"made a little lower than the

angels " (Ps. viii. 5) — yea —"made in the likeness of God?" (Gen. i.

26.) Who that saw Adam in his universal dominion, sitting as the

monarch of creation; summoning all before him; giving to each his

name, and receiving in turn his homage (Ib. ii. 20) — who would have

conceived of his children sunk into such brutish degradation? The

tempter's promise was—"Ye shall be as gods." (Ib. iii. 5.) The result

of this promise was — ‘Ye shall be as beasts.'  The vilest comparisons

are used to chew man's loathsomeness in the sight of God.  'Do any

feel disgusted at the allusion?  Let them remember, that the emblem

is far less filthy, than the thing denoted by it; and that the whole race

of animals does not afford anything so debasing, as not to be far out-

done by the excesses of libertines, drunkards, and gluttons.'*  We

naturally turn away with sickening from this sight. Would that we

had the same disgust at the sin, which it so graphically pourtrays!

Would that we might abhor ourselves for that, which God infinitely

abhors in us!

            The Apostle uses this "true proverb" to describe the awful condi-

tion of apostates (2 Pet. ii. 20–22) --- temporary conviction, unaccom-

panied with real conversion of heart, and falling away to desperate

hardness. Many reasons may produce disgust in the sinner's mind to

its folly. He may loathe, and for a while relinquish it. It has proved

so fraught with misery (Chap. xiii. 15); its very pleasures so impreg-

nated with poison; that no wonder if he make an occasional, or even a

strong effort to be rid of it. But when the sickness has passed away,

the sweetness of the forbidden fruit again comes to mind; the heart

and affections are again clasped around the world, and, as a dog

returneth to his vomit--to the food, which had caused his sickness; so

a fool returneth to his folly--to that, which had been his hurt and

shame..

            Thus greedily did Pharaoh return from his momentary conviction;1

Ahab from his feigned repentance,2 Herod from his partial amend-

ment;3 the drunkard from his brutish insensibility4—all to take a

more determinate course of sin; to take their final plunge into ruin.

 

1 Exod. viii. 8, 15; ix. 27, 34, 35.  2 1 Kings, xxi. 27-29; xxii. 8, 87.

3 Mark, vi. 20-27.                                  4 Chap. xxiii. 35.

                                    * Scott.

 


                           CHAP. XXVI. 12.                                             491

 

Even a superficial knowledge of Christ is no preservative to an unre-

newed heart. The "house may be swept" of outward sin, "and gar-

nished" with external holiness; but if it be "empty," if the Divine

inhabitant lbe not heartily welcomed, the former possessor will quickly

return, and tenant it as his fixed home with sevenfold destruction.

(Matt. xii. 43-45.)

            Is not sin then justly termed folly?  Does not the God of Truth

pronounce it to be so now? Will not every fool confess it to be so at

the end, when its wages shall be fully paid in "shame and everlasting

contempt ?" (Dan. xii. 2.) Child of God! hearken to thy Father's

voice of  "peace."  But ponder also his solemn warning "to his people

and to his saints —Let them not turn again to folly."1

 

12. Seest thou a man wise in his own conceit?  there is more hope of a fool

                                         than of him.

            Seest thou the man? God means to point at him. (Comp. Chap. xxii,.

29.) There is something to be learned from him. He castles himself

up in his own conceit. He holds himself fit to be a standard: The false

persuasion that he has gained wisdom, utterly precludes him from

gaining it. He thinks himself wise, because he knows not what it is to

be wise.2 His wisdom is "science so falsely called."3 For he has yet

to learn the first lesson in the school—his own folly—a lesson not to

be learned without severe exercise. The knowledge of the most intel-

ligent is as nothing compared with his ignorance; and yet how

strangely does the smallest quantum "puff up" (1 Cor. viii. 1), and fill

a man full of himself!  "Let no man deceive himself. If any man

among you seemeth to be wise in this world, let him become a fool,

that he may be wise."4 There is more hope of the fool, who knows him-

self to be one. The natural fool has only one hindrance—his own

ignorance. The conceited fool has two — ignorance and self-delusion,

He has everything to unlearn (which is the hardest lesson in the

school) before he can learn anything right. It shews some improve-

ment, when he becomes less positive.

            It was our Lord's cutting reproof to the conceited Pharisees —“The

publicans and harlots go into the kingdom of heaven before you.”

(Matt. xxi. 31.) It was his charge against the Laodicean Church—

"Because thou sagest—I am rich, and increased in goods, and have

need of nothing; and knowest not, that thou art wretched and mise-

rable, and poor, and blind, and naked."5 The prodigal fool, running

into all "the excesses of riot," is more open to conviction, than the man

who prides himself upon his decorous religion.6 To the profane and

 

1 Ps. lxxxv. 8. Comp. John, v. 14; also Ecclus. xxi. 1.       2 1 Cor. viii. 2. Gal. vi. 8.

3 1 Tim. vi. 20.                                      4 Ib. iii. 18. Comp. chap. iii. 7. Rom xii. 8-16.

5 Rev. iii. 17. Comp. chap. xxx. 12.        6 Luke, xv. 11-18, with John, ix. 40, 41,

 


492         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

ungodly we must go. But to warn him, he conceives to be knocking

at the wrong door.  "God! I thank thee, that I am not as other men

are"*--is his heart's language before God.  "Stand by; I am holier

than thou" (Isa. lxv. 5)— is his haughty rule with his fellow-sinners.

Offer him light;— He "walks in the light of his own fire." (Ib. 1. 11.)

Offer him life;— He is "alive" in his own eyes. (Rom. vii.) Offer him

food;--His "full soul loatheth the honey-comb!" (Chap. xxvii. 7.)

            Christian Professor! Dread an ill-grounded judgment of yourself.

The more confident a man is in error, the more dangerous his state.

Oh! beware of holding fast a delusion, which the word of God, closely

applied, would quickly dispel. Suspect your spiritual state, at least till

you have given it a most probing search. Is it not possible that you

may be deceived; that there may be "a lie in your right hand" that

you may have been building upon the sand ; and mistaken the shadow

for the substance? Consider—it is a matter of infinite and everlasting

moment—in which multitudes have been mistaken— in which it is

easy to be mistaken—in which our hearts are very deceitful--in

which a mistake, not rectified in time, will be ruin for eternity.

            Lord! preserve me from this hopeless delusion. Pull down all my

pride and fancied wisdom. Take the blindness from my eyes, that I

may know what I am in thy sight.  "Clothe me with humility" from

the sole of the foot to the head.

 

13. The slothful man saith, There is a lion in the way; a lion is in the

            streets. (Chap. xxii. 13.) 14. As the door turneth upon his hinges, so

            cloth the slothful upon his bed. 15. The slothful man hideth his hand

            in his bosom; it grieveth him to bring it again to his mouth. (Chap.

            xix. 24.) 16. The sluggard is wiser in his own conceit than seven men

            that can render a reason.

 

            The counterpart to these illustrations may be seen in the man

dozing away his life in guilty idleness; without an object, and there-

fore without a spring for exertion. But let us look at the pictures, as

they meet our eye in the Church. The gradation shews the almost

incredible increase of the evil — unresisted.

            The slothful man is utterly reluctant to his work. When therefore his

indolence is disturbed, he is ingenious in inventing excuses, and

fancying dangers, which have no real existence. For 'he, who has no

mind to labour, never wants pretences for idleness.'‡  His insincerity

lulls his conscience to sleep in his false excuses. Were it as easy to be

spiritual as to wish to be so, who would not be a Christian? If it were

only one great effort, soon to be accomplished, it would be worth the

 

* Luke, xviii. 11. See Bunyan's Picture of Ignorance.

† 'Than seven men that sytt and teach.'—Bp. COVERDALE.      ‡ Bp. Patrick.

 


                                     CHAP. XXVI. 13-16.                              493

 

struggle. But to see no end of the toil, duty upon duty, trouble fol-

lowing trouble, no breathing-time of rest--is an appalling hindrance.

And therefore a fierce lion in the way*--a lion in the streets (‘bugbear

rather than a lion') excuses him from a decided profession.

            We wonder not that he shrinks from his work. He loves his bed of ease.

Here he turneth himself; as the door upon his hinges, moving indeed, but

making no progress. He works from one excuse to another, but never

removes from his place. Difficulties hinder him from going forward.

Conscience keeps him from going backward. And therefore, as the door

upon his hinges, where he was one day, one year, there he is found the

next. He moves within a scanty round of duties, always beginning,

never finishing, his work; determining nothing; not quite at ease; yet

with no heart for exertion. Stretched upon his bed of sloth, he cries—

‘O that this were working!  O that I could raise my heart to heaven

But is heaven to be gained by complaining and wishing?

            Nay— even the most needful-exertion is grievous to him. Suppose him

to have arisen from his bed, his case is not improved. Ease is still his

cry. How to preserve it, his only care. He hides his hand in his bosom

for the cold and never makes an effort to bring it to his mouth for his

necessary food. (Eccles. iv. 5.) Thus for want of the most trifling

exercise he starves his soul, though the bread of life is put before him.

No marvel, if his life, instead of "a continual feast," is a constant

vexation.

            Yet—such is the strange union of self-complacency with folly—

this worthless being—a mere "cumberer of the ground"—pronounces

himself a genius, prides himself upon his sagacity, and looks down with

contempt upon his more industrious companions—generally superior

in attainment. This foolish dream of his own shrewdness fixes his

standard. He has found the road to learning without any inconvenient

exertion. Giving himself no trouble to think, he sees none of the

difficulties obvious to a considerate mind, and speedily arrives at most

unreasonable conclusions. He will not be beaten out of his sloth. Any

wise man could render a reason for his conviction. But he is wiser in his

own conceit than them all.‡

            In how many striking lights is sloth presented in this book? Do

I not think too slightly of it? Let me look closely—in what respect

am I influenced by it—bodily, mentally, or spiritually? Does it never

follow me throughout my work, to my knees, to my Bible-reading?

Do I not excuse myself from work of painful effort? Or when con-

science forces me to it, how is it done? May God enable me to resist

this paralysis in every shape!  If, just about to resolve, let me propose

my work to myself, as to be done with full purpose of heart; not,

 

* Scott.                                     Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on Heb. xii. 3.

‡ Seven men—the number of perfection. Comp. Amos, i. 3, 6, 9, 13; ii. 4, 6.


494         EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

opposing difficulties to necessity; not allowing heartless despondency.

What if after all, my faith be a fancy, my hope a delusion? Self-

suspicion is the first awakening of the soul—"Search me, 0 my God."

(Ps.  xxxix. 23.)

            Well is it, if the slumber be only a little disturbed; far better, if

the eyes are fully opened. Active, simple faith carries us onward, in

the face of the lions in the way, seeming to stand open-mouthed to

devour us. It is a special mercy to realize the holy violence of the

conflict. Bunyan put his pilgrims under the conduct of Great-heart

for their encouragement. Heaven never will be won by folded arms.

"The violent take it by force." (Matt. xi. 12.)

 

17. He that passeth by, and meddleth with strife belonging not to him, is

            like one that taketh a dog by the ears.

            If we would honour our God in our Christian path, we must take

time it every step, for prayer, and for the exercise of a sound judgment.

Else we shall often rush on unbidden to our loss. To take a dog by the

ears will bring good reason to repent of our folly. To meddle with strife

belonging not to us will surely bring its trouble (1 Kings, xxii. 4, 32) --

its own cross, not our Master's. A wide difference is made between

"suffering as a busy-body, and suffering as a Christian." It is alarming

to these who have no adequate sense of the criminality to, find the

Apostle classify the one with "murderers, and thieves, and evil-doers."

In striking contrast to the other he gives the dignified exhortation—

"Let him glorify God on this behalf." (1 Pet. iv. 16.) If we must not

"go forth hastily to strive" (Chap. xxv. 8) in our own cause, still less

in our neighbour's. This is "entering into contention"— the wanton-

ness of the fool. (Chap. xviii. 6 ; xx. 3.)

            Even with Christian intentions many of us are too fond of meddling

with strife not belonging to us. We constitute ourselves too readily

judges of our neighbour's conduct. Neutrality is often the plain dictate

of prudence. Uncalled-for interference seldom avails with the contend-

ing parties; while the well-meaning mediator involves himself in the

strife to his own mischief. Our blessed Master reads us a lesson of

godl wisdom. He healed the contentions in his own family. But,

when called to meddle with strife belonging not to him, he gave answer—

"Who made me a judge or a divider over you? "1

            Must we then "suffer sin upon our brother?" (Lev. xix. 17.)

Certainly not. But we should ponder carefully the most effectual

mode of restraining his sin. Think of the special "blessing to the

peace-makers." (Matt. v. 9.) But the true peace-maker, while he

deplores the strife, well knows, that interference in the moment of

 

            1 Matt. xviii. 1-6 xx. 24-28, with Luke, xii. 13, 14.


                                  CHAP. XXVI. 18-22.                            495

 

irritation will kindle rather than extinguish, the fire. Yet his self-

controul is not indifference. He commits the matter to Him, whose

wisdom he so greatly needs. He will seize the first moment for favour-

able remonstrance; "and a word spoken in due season, how good is

it!" (Chas. xv. 23.) Indeed the common intercourse of life much

requires that "wisdom, which dwelleth with prudence." (Chap. viii. 12.)

"Who is a wise man, and endued with knowledge among you? Let

him shew out of a good conversation his works with meekness of

wisdom." (Jam. iii. 13.)

 

18. As a madman who casteth firebrands, arrows and death, 19. So is the

            man that deceiveth his neighbour, and saith, Am not I in sport?

            How little does the thoughtless man consider the misery, which his

wantonness occasions to others! He bears no malice. He indulges

only the pure love of mischief. He carries on a scheme of imposition

as harmless play. His companions compliment him upon his adroit-

ness, and join in the laugh of triumph over the victim of his cruel jest.

But "sporting with their own deceivings" (2 Pet. ii. 13) is a black mark

of ungodliness. What the man calls sport (Chap. x. 23), is the madman,

scattering murderous mischief—firebrands, arrows and death. What

are smoothly called 'practical jokes'--such as are practised at school,

or even at college--come under this awful charge. ‘There is little

difference in this case betwixt fraud and fury. He that purposely

deceives his neighbour, under colour of a jest, is no less prejudicial to

him than a lunatic, that doth wrong out of frenzy and distemper.'*

Yet this solemn line of distinction is drawn. The madman is irrespon-

sible for his actions; the deceiver is accountable to God and his fellow-

creatures.  'He that sins in jest, must repent in earnest; or his sin will

be his ruin.'

            ‘What hath a Christian'—saith Bernard—'to do with jesting?'

Let him practically observe the wholesome caution against it, as "not

convenient." (Eph. v. 4.).  Let him cultivate the valuable graces of

seriousness, consideration, and self-discipline. Let him study his

Master's image, embodying both the spirit and the rules of his gospel.

 

20. Where no wood is, there the fire goeth out: so where there is no tale-

            bearer, the strife ceaseth (is silent, marg.) 21. As coals are to burning

            coals, and wood to fire; so is a contentious man to kindle strife. 22.

            The words of a talebearer are as wounds, and they go down into the

            innermost parts (chambers, marg.) of the belly. (Chap. xviii. 8.)

            The busy tongue makes work, where it does not find it. Such is

the despicable trade of the talebearer--employing his time in prying

 

                    * Bp. Hall.                        Henry.


496        EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

into other people's business, ferreting out secrets, diving into family

histories, intermeddling with their concerns: all this with the view of

putting himself forward, as a keen, intelligent, and active man. Thus

in ever) way where he can please himself 'man is naturally his own

grand idol. He would be esteemed and honoured by any means; and

to magnify that idol self, he kills the name and esteem of others in

sacrifice to it.'*  Real virtue revolts from this base selfishness.

            The fire of holy zeal seizes on things nearest home. This is a wild-

fire scattering its destruction abroad. The talebearer should be looked

on as an incendiary. For his "tongue is a fire, itself set on fire of

hell."1  His raking up old and forgotten tales supplies the fuel, without

which the fire of strife, as where no wood is, goeth out. To quench the

flame, we must take away the fuel. We must remove the talebearer;

stop him in his words; compel him to produce his authority; face him,

if possible, with the subject of his tales. This decisive course will

prevent a mass of slander, and put him to shame.2

            Near akin is the contentious man. His mischief indeed is more open.

His determination to have the last word is as coals to burning coals, and

wood to the fire.3 It keeps up the flame, kindled perhaps by a mere

angry word or a contemptuous look; and which, but for this constant

succession of fuel, might quickly have been extinguished.  Do we

never aim at the wit of a sharp answer, that "stirreth up anger,"

rather than at the wisdom and grace of "a soft answer, that turneth

away wrath?" (Chap. xv. 1.)

            The talebearer's wounds are however the most dangerous. They go

down into the chambers—the vitals of the heart; One noiseless word

may be the stab of death. But, if he escape for a while, his secret sins

shall "be set before his eyes," and his wanton trifling with his brother's

character be justly recompensed. (Ps. 1. 20 ; lii. 1-5.)

            Are we closely watching against these sins? Do we carefully

damp the rising flame of contention?4  Do we resist the temptation to

speak needlessly of the faults of others? Do we dread the character of

a polished, well-educated, amusing slanderer? Should we be ready to

give up the eclat of telling a good story, from the fear of wounding a

good name? We may feel indignant at the charge of talebearing. Yet

it requires no ordinary exercise of Christian discipline to maintain the

silence of charity, and to regulate both the tongue and the ear within

its well-advised limits.

 

23. Burning lips and a wicked heart are like a potsherd covered with silver

            dross. 24. He that hateth, dissembleth with his lips, and layette up

 

1 Jam. iii. 6. Comp. chap. xvi. 27.                       2 Chap. xxv. 23. Comp. xxii. 10.

3 Chap xv. 18; xvi. 28; xxix. 22. 2 Cor. xii. 20.     4 Chap. xvii. 14. Gen. xiii. 8, 9.

* LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. ii. 17. Comp. Jer. ix. 4.


                             CHAP. XXVI. 23-27.                                     497

 

            deceit within him. 25. When he speaketh fair, believe him not: for there

            are seven abominations in his heart. 26. Whose hatred is covered by

            deceit, his wickedness shall be skewed before the whole congregation.

            27. Whoso diggeth a pit shall fall therein: and he that rolleth a stone,

            it will return upon him.

            The sin here described is a disgrace to society! Yet is it often

covered with a flattering garb, as the worthless potsherd with a thin coat

of silver. "The tongue of the just is as choice silver." Here is only

silver dross--"the heart of the wicked, which is nothing worth" (Chap.

x. 20); lips burning with warm affection, yet covering a heart filled

with malice and wickedness.'*  Such were the lips of Joseph's brethren,

when "they rose up to comfort their father" under the bereavement

which they had brought upon him. (Gen. xxxvii. 35.) Such was

Absalom's smooth hypocrisy. (2 Sam. xv. 1–9.) Such were the traitor's

lips and heart, uniting with the rest in protestations of faithfulness ;

yet "betrayiing the Son of man with a kiss." l An open enemy could

be much better borne. (Ps. lv. 12.) The cant of hypocrites, the bene-

volence of infidels, the smooth enticement of the false "angel of light"

—all answer to this strong figure. 'Hypocrisy is spun often of a very

fine thread; and the heart of man, abounding with so much hypocrisy

as it doth, is the most deceitful thing, yea, and the most deceivable too,

actively and passively both, of anything in the world.'

            Often also, when the lips do not burn, there is dissembling of hatred.

"Cain talked with his brother in the field," while murder was in his

heart. (Gen. v. 8.) Saul pretended to honour David, while he was plotting;

his ruin. (1 Sam. xviii. 17, 21.) Absalom dissembled with his brother,

by seeming to let him alone, for two years laying up deceit within him.

(2 Sam. xiii. 22–28.) Joab covered his murderous intentions with

peaceable profession.2

            Christian prudence will guard against credulity,3 which is in fact;

the "harmlessness of the dove," without " the wisdom of the serpent."

(Matt, x. 16.) This weakness cost Gedaliah his life.4 A sounder spirit

saved Nehemiah from the snare of his malignant adversaries.5 Thee

source of this wickedness gives good reason for distrust. There are

seven abominations—a great variety‡ of abominations—closely folded up

in his heart, only within the ken of that heart-searching eye, "before

whom all secret things are naked and open."6 And here lies the root of

 

1 Matt. xxvi. 35. Luke, xxii. 47, 48.

2 Ib. iii. 27; x. 9, 10. Comp. Gen. xxxiv. 15-25. Ps. xxviii. 3; 1v. 20.

3 Jer. ix. S ; ii. 6. Mic. vii. 5. Comp. Ecclus. xii. 10-17.                 4 Jer. xl. 14; xli. 6, 7.

5 Neh. vi. 1-4                                                                             6 Jer. xvii. 10. Heb. iv. 13.

* Chap. x. 17. Ps. 1v. 21. Comp. Ecclus. xix. 26-28. See Bunya,n's description of the

town of ‘Fair-Speech.'

Bp. SANDSON's Sermon on Gal. v. 22, 23.

‡ Bp. Hall, verse 16; xxiv. 16.


498       EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the disease.  ‘A guileful heart makes guileful tongue and lips. It is

the workhouse, where is the forge of deceit and slander; and the tongue

is only the outer shop, where they are mended; and the lips the door of

it; so then such ware as is made within, such and no other can be set

out. From evil thoughts, evil speakings; from a deceitful heart, guile-

ful words, well-varnished, but lined with rottenness.'*  Oh! let this

despicable character be a beacon to us to shun all approaches to false

dealings. Better to risk giving offence by faithfulness (though let this,

so far as conscience allows, be avoided) rather than cover our hatred by

flattering words.

            Dissembling never answers in the end. The Providence of God

brings dark deeds to light. "The voice of Abel's blood cried from the

ground." (Gen. iv. 10.) "Some men's sins are open beforehand, going

before to judgment; and some men they follow after." (1 Tim. v. 24.)

The hand strips off the mask, and exposes the flatterer to shame. His

seven abominations shall be proclaimed, if not more privately, at last

before the whole congregation, when all shall appear before men and

angels as they really are, and when the hypocrite shall receive his just

recompence of "everlasting contempt." (Luke, xii. 2.)

            Often however does retribution reach the offender in this world.

‘He will fall into the pits, which he has bestowed pains to dig for his

neighbour, and be crushed by the stone, which he meant to roll upon

him.'Even the place of sinning is sometimes made the place of

punishment.1  Those who plot mischief for others, will be overwhelmed

with it themselves.2 Moab, in attempting to curse Israel, fell himself

under the curse of God.3 Haman's gallows for Mordecai was his own

"promotion of shame."4 The enemies of Daniel were devoured in the

ruin, which they plotted against him.5 Thus does God "take the wise

in his craftiness,"6 "the wicked in his wickedness."7 The death of

Christ, which was to be the means of warding off national judgment,

was the just cause of the deprecated scourge.8 The malice that medi-

tates the evil, is often the cause of its own overthrow. What an

Aceldama would this world be, but for the restraining grace of God!

Oh! may my heart, my soul, every member, every principle, not only

be restrained from hateful passions; but be imbued with the spirit of

the Gospel, and consecrated to the service of God'!

 

28. A lying tongue hateth those that are afflicted by it; and a flattering

                                         mouth worketh ruin.

            Rarely do we see a solitary sin. One sin begets another. Lying

 

1 1 Kings, xxi. 19, with 2 Kings, ix. 26. Jer. vii. 31, 32.                  2 Ps. vii. 15.

3 Num. xxii. 6; xxiv. 17.             4 Chap. iii. 35. Esth. vii. 10.        5 Dan. vi. 24.

6 Job, v. 13.                               7 Chap. xi. 6.                 8 John, xi. 50. Matt. xxiii. 32, 38.

            * LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. iii. 16.                          Scott.


                                         CHAP. XXVI. 28.                                    499

 

and malice are here linked together. The lying tongue against our Lord

was the fruit of hateful malice. (John, viii. 44, with 40.) The slander

against Stephen originated from the same source. The tacit reproach

of his godly profession was intolerable. (Acts, vi. 9, 14.) If men afflict

because they hate; much more do they hate them whom they have

afflicted, and thus made their enemies. Ammon, having afflicted his

sister Tamar, hated her with greater hatred than his former love, as

the witness against his own shame.*

            But again and again—watch against the flatterer. Alas! where

is he not welcomed as a friend? From some favourable position he

presents an attractive face. But a nearer view shews him as a subtle,

murderous enemy, working ruin. (Ps. v. 9; x. 7-10.) His great advan-

tage is, that he has a friend in his own bosom. The sweet song of our

own praises lulls us to sleep, and in the moment of security the net is

too successfully spread. (Chap. xxix. 5.) The flattering tongue worketh

the ruin of the world. The temptation--"Ye shall be as gods"—proved

irresistible.1 And still in the path of sin,2 in the determinate indulgence

of the wayward will,3 flattering is the snare; ruin is the end.

            What then should be our treatment of the flatterer? Homer puts it

into his hero's heart to regard him as a fiend of hell. Our safety then

is in flight,4 or at least in frowning resistance. (Comp. chap. xxv. 23.)

Be as much troubled'— said a godly man—'by unjust praises, as by

unjust slanders.'‡  Shew plainly that they please us least, who praise

us most. Give timely warning, that the repetition of the offence

threatens the disruption of friendship. Cherish the deepest views of

native corruption, such as will at once belie any fair picture of ourselves

that may be presented to us. Pray for wisdom to discover the snare;

for gracious principles to raise us above vain praises; for self-denial to

be content, and even thankful without them. This will be our security.

All these Scriptures strongly teach, how hateful to a God of truth is

the attempt to deceive. All warn us against the common habit of slight

deviations from truth, and of any want of sincerity of expression, as

totally inconsistent with a Christian profession, a breach of the law of

love, and often leading to habitual deceit.§

 

1 Gen. iii. 5.                                                                   2 Chap. ii. 16; v. 3; vii. 5, 21-23.

3 1 Kings, xxii. 6, 11, 12. Jer. v. 31; xiv. 14-16.                4 Chap. xx. 19.

* 2 Sam. xiii. 5-15. ‘Humani est animi odisse quem laeseris.'—TACITUS in Agricola.

 Iliad, i. 312, 313.                                                      ‡  PHILLIP HENRY'S Life, chap. x.

§ See the wise caution, Ecclus. xix. 1.

 

 

500                             EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

                                                          CHAPTER XXVII.

 

    1. Boast not thyself of to-morrow; for thou knowest not what a day may

                                                         bring forth.

 

      Let the Apostle expound the wise man--"Go to now, ye that say

--To-day or to-morrow we will go into such a city, and continue there,

a year, and buy and sell, and get gain."  Both apply the same rebuke

to the boast;--Thou knowest not what a day may bring forth--Whereas

"ye know not what shall be on the morrow." (Jam. iv. 13, 14.)  To

provide for the morrow is a scriptural duty.l  The husbandman, when he

has reaped his harvest, sows his seed for the next.  The Christian in his

calling, reposing on God's Providence, walks with God.  But to boast of

to-morrow--"all such rejoicing is evil." (Jam. iv. 16.)  Indeed it

is absurd to boast of what is not our own.  To-morrow is finely

described as an unknown birth.  It may be in eternity.  And yet

the sensualist and the worldling2 boast, as if it was their own; and thus

virtually put God out of his own world.  The ungodly reckon upon

being religious to-morrow, and therefore put off repentance, forsaking

the world, and living for eternity, to some infinitely future day.  (Acts,

xxiv. 25.)  Would they do this, if they did not reckon upon to-morrow

being given to them?  Nay, do we not all naturally cherish this looking

forward, which the great enemy works up into practical forgetfulness of

God?  Yet we must not live, as if to-morrow would not come.  Else

would the world be in a state of stagnation.  The present duties of the

day would be absorbed in the instant preparation for the coming

eternity.  But we start from death, when he enters our houses, as if we

did not expect him.  How little do we die daily! (1 Cor. xv. 31.)  We

can even coolly calculate upon the death of others, for our own benefit.

Our intense anxiety about earthly, and apathy about heavenly, things,

speak but too plainly.  The young look to the middle age; the more

advanced to the last stage of life.  All, in contradiction to their avowed

profession, boast themselves of to-morrow.

      How awfully has this boasting been put to shame!  In the days of

Noah, "they married wives, and were given in marriage, until the very

day when the flood came, and destroyed them all."3  Abner promised a

kingdom, but could not ensure his life for an hour.4  Haman plumed

himself upon the prospect of the queen's banquet, but was hanged like

a dog before night.5  The fool's soul was required of him "on the very

night" of his worldly projects "for many years" to come.6  'Serious

affairs to-morrow'--was the laughing reply of  Archias, warned of a

 

          1 Chap. vi. 6-8;  x.5; xxiv. 27.   Comp.  Gen. xli. 35.   Acts, xi. 28, 29.

      2 Isa. lvi. 12.  Luke, xii. 16-19.     3 Luke, x,ii. 26-29.            4 2 Sam. iii. 9, 10, 27.

       5 Esth. v.12; vii. 1-10.                 6 Luke, xii. 19, 21.


CHAP. XXVII. 1.                                           501

 

conspiracy, which hurried him into eternity the next hour.*  The infidel

Gibbon calculated upon fifteen years of life, and died within a few

months, at a day's warning.  We know not what a day may bring forth.

      How natural is it for the young to be looking for to-morrow's pro-

spect!  But have you never seen the lovely flower cropped, or faded in

the blossom?  Is not the robust, as well as the feeble frame cut down

in the prime? (Job, xxi. 23.)  Have you a lease of your life? If there

be a promise of forgiveness to the repenting, where is the promise of

to-morrow for repentance?  Will consideration naturally come with

years?  Or will not rather long-protracted habits of ungodliness harden

into a second nature?  What if in the midst of thy boasting, flattering

thyself that thou shouldst see another and another day--thou shouldst

surprised, unprepared, and be left to lament for ever thy presumption

in the lake of everlasting fire!1  Stop--consider--weep--pray--

believe--now--while conscience speaks; while thou art halting been

God and the world, between conviction and inclination.  Now in this "ac-

cepted time" devote thyself to God.  Enthrone the Saviour in thine heart.

      The universe does not present a more affecting sight than an aged

sinner, with one foot in the grave, losing all in the world, infinitely

more in eternity.  A moment, and he is gone.  Heaven and hell are

no trifles.  To-morrow presumed upon, to-day neglected, ruins all.

Standing on the brink of the precipice--how precious the moment for

prayer--ere the door of mercy is closed for ever!

     Has the child of God reason to boast of to-morrow.   What a change

may it make in your worldly circumstances (Job, i. 21), or Christian

experience? (Ps. xxx. 7.)  Never will you feel more secure, than in the

consciousness that you have no security for a single hour.  Divide your

cares with God. Rest all in his bosom. (Ib. xxxvii. 4.)  Let disappoint-

ment prepare you for your heavenly rest, and bound all your wishes

and pleasures by his gracious will. (Jam. iv. 15.)  But have you no

need of warning?  How speaks the too full current of affections towards

earthly enjoyment?  Did you practically believe that "the time is

short, and the fashion of this world passeth away," would you not

"rejoice, as though you rejoiced not?" (1 Cor. vii. 29-32.)  Would plea-

sures of earth be so highly prized, if there was no secret dependence on

to-morrow.  Surely this thought may more than sustain in the loss of

them--The shadow only is gone--the body of my happiness remains

immoveable.  To see things temporal, as if we "looked not at them,"

is the life of spiritual religion. (2 Cor. iv. 18.)  To remember 'this

world as the grand laboratory for perfecting of souls for the nextto

have " our loins girt about" for our Lord's coming; to live, as not to

be surprised by the call, and in readiness to "open to him immediately"

 

        1 Matt. xxiv. 48-51;  xxv. 10-12. Luke, xiii. 25.  Comp. Ecclus. v. 7.

     * ROLLIN'S Ancient History.  Book xii.                  Sir M. Hale.


502                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

--this is our secret and our happiness.  "Blessed are those servants,

whom the Lord, when he cometh, shall find watching." (Luke, xii. 37.)

2. Let another man praise thee, and not thine own mouth; a stranger, and

not thine own lips.

      'Praise'--says an old expositor--'is a comely garment. But

though thyself doth wear it, another must put it on, or else it will never

sit well about thee.  Praise is sweet music, but it is never tuneable in

thine own mouth.  If it cometh from the mouth of another, it soundeth

most tuneably in the ears of all that hear it.  Praise is a rich treasure,

but it will never make thee rich, unless another tell the same.'*  Indeed

--except as the vindication of our character,1 or our Master's honour

connected with it, may require--nothing so degrades a man with his

fellow-men, as setting out his own praise.  For though every man is

his own flatterer (Chap. xx. 6), yet men usually know how to estimate

pride in others, while they cherish it in themselves.  "The things that

are of good report-think of them to do them." (Philip. iv. 8.)  But

"let our works," not our tongues, "praise us in the gates."2  And while

our works shine, see to it, that ourselves be hid.  "Confess your faults

one to another."3  But leave to another to speak our praise.  'Scarce

any shew themselves to advantage, who are over-solicitous to do so.

            Our name will lose nothing by this self-renouncing spirit.  If our

on mouth be silent, another's will be opened.  John was "unworthy"

in his own eyes to "unloose the latchet of his Master's shoes."  Yet did

his Lord's mouth proclaim him as ' the greatest of all that had been

born of women."4  The centurion spoke of himself as "not worthy that

Christ should come under his roof."  Yet did the elders testify, that "he

was worthy, for whom he should do this."  Yea--the Saviour's own

mouth confirmed the testimony--"I have not found so great faith, no

not in Israel."5  Luke mentions nothing in his records to his own

credit.  Yet another praises him warmly as "the beloved physician," and

his sole faithful companion in his trials.§

     Self-seeking is a shameful blot upon a Christian profession.  What!

Shall one that has said before God--"Behold, I am vile!"--be ready

to say before his fellow-men--"Come, see my zeal for the Lord"6--

 

     1 1 Sam. xii. 3. Ps. vii. 3-5. 2 Cor. i. 17-19.             2 Chap. xxxi. 31. Ruth, iii. 11.

     3 Chap. xxv. 27. Matt. v. 16. Jam. v. 16.

     4 Matt. iii. 11. John, iii. 30, with Matt. xi. II. John, v. 35.

     5 Matt. viii. 8, with Luke, vii. 3, 4, 9.                      6 Job, xl. 4. 2 Kings, x. 16.

     *Jermin.

      2 Cor. xi. 5-12; xii. 11. 'St. Paul was put upon it, to speak of himself more than he

chose to do; and when he speaks of things concerning himself he puts in ever and anon,

"I spenk as a fool"--intimating, that unless there be very great cause, whoever talks

much of himself, talks like a fool.'- WHICHCOTE'S Sermons.                Bp. Butler.

      § Col. iv. 14. 2 Tim. iv. 11. It was a fine touch in Sallust's portrait of Cato-- 'He would

rather be, than seem to be, a good man; so that the less he sought glory, the more he ob-

tained it.'


CHAP. XXVII. 3, 4.                                      503

 

Come, see how humble I am!  Oh! for the self-abased spirit of our

glorious Master--ever ready to endure reproach:  but never "receiving

honour from men;" never "seeking his own glory." (John, v. 41; viii.

50.) Contrast what God shews us of ourselves in the closet with our

"fair show in the flesh." And will this not put self-complacency to

shame? Surely that we are so little really humble, is matter enough

for the deepest humiliation.

3. A stone is heavy, and the sand weighty; but a fool's wrath is heavier

    than them both. 4. Wrath is cruel (cruelty, marg.), and anger is out-

    rageous (an overflowing, marg.); but who is able to stand before envy

    The wrath even of a wise man in the moment of folly is cruel.l

What then must be a fool's wrath, 'where there is not a drop of heavenly

water to quench the fire?'*  It is indeed the weight of a stone or sand2

--intolerable, 'being without cause, measure, or end.'   Its abiding

sullenness distinguishes it from the temporary impulse, to which the

child of God may too hastily yield.  Absalom kept it in for two years.

David's anger melted away under the first conviction of reproof, and

"the sun went not down upon his wrath."4

     And yet cruel as wrath may be,5 overflowing as the spring-tide, it

may be appeased.  Esau's wrath was soothed into brotherly love.6  The

outrageous despot was subdued in witnessing the presence and power of

God.7  But envy is an implacable passion, the native principle,8 with a

fearful train of evils.9  Anger is stirred up by offence; envy by godliness

prosperity,11 or favour.12   Reason operates rather as the oil to fan the

flame, than the water to quench it.  'Proud men would be admired by

all, and preferred above all; and if it be not so, a secret enmity invadeth

their spirits, and settleth itself.  Men cannot endure the real or reputed

excellency of others.  The proud creature would shine alone.'‡

         The wise man had before described the curse of this deadly passion

to the man who indulges it. (Chap. xiv. 30.)  Here he shews its subtle,

and almost irresistible power upon its victims.  For indeed, in contrast

to the fine description of 'mercy, it is twice' cursed.  It curses both its

subjects and its object.  Like the star called wormwood, that em-

 

     1 1 Sam. xxv. 13, 21.               2 Exod. xv. 5. Comp, Ecclus. xxii. 14, 15.

     3 2 Sam. xiii. 22, 23.               4 1 Sam. xxv. 32,33. Eph. iv. 26.

    5 Gen. xlix. 7. Matt. ii. 16.      6 Gen. xxvii. 41; xxxiii. 4.

    7 Dan. iii. 13-30.                     8 Mark, vii. 22. Gal. v. 20, 21. Tit. iii. 3. Jam. iv. 5.

    9 Rom. i. 29, 30. 2 Cor. xii. 20. Jam. iii. 14, 16.

    10 Eccles. iv. 4.  Dan. vi. 3-5    11 Gen. xxvi. 14.  Ps.  lxxiii.3

    12  Gen. iv. 5-8. 1 Sam. xviii. 6-9, 16, 17.

  * Cartwright.

                  'Ira furor brevis est; animum rege; qui, nisi paret,

                  Imperat; hunc fraeuis, hunc tu compesce catena.'

HOR. Ep. i. 2 62, 63.

     Poole. Comp. chap. xvii. 12.

     ‡ MANTON on Ps. cxix. 77.


504                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

bittereth all the rivers and fountains of waters on which it fell (Rev.

viii. 11), it poisons and bereaves of their sweetness all the sources and

streams of human enjoyment.'*

      Well then might it be asked--Who is able to stand before envy?

Even the perfect innocence of paradise fell before it.  Satan lost his own

happiness.  Then he envied man, and ceased not to work his destruc-

tion. (See Wis. ii. 23, 24.)  It shed the first human blood, that ever

stained the ground. (1 John; iii. 12.)  It quenched the yearnings of

natural affection, and brought bitter sorrow to the patriarch's bosom1

Even the premier of the greatest empire in the world was its temporary

victim.2  Nay more--the Saviour in his most benevolent acts was

sorely harassed,3 and ultimately sunk under its power.4  "His servants

therefore must not expect to be above their Master."5

     But--Christian--remernber--though the promise is sure, "that

sin shall not have dominion;6 yet the struggle is sharp to the end.

Let us probe this corruption deeply.  Men will look at grace, as we

have seen, with an envious eye.  They will darken the lives, that out-

shine their own and defame the holiness, which they have no heart to

follow.  But 'those who have true worth in themselves, can never

envy it in others.'   Do we then love to see a brother's superior eminence,

his larger gifts or graces? (Num xi. 28, 29.)  Do we take pleasure in

his prosperity, in honour paid to him, though to our own disparage-

ment? (John, iii. 30.)  Is our tone of praise as decided towards him,

as we should wish that of others to be of us?  Can we bear to be past

by in favour of those, who may seem to be doing our work in opposition

to ourselves? (Philip. i. 15-18.)  Oh! how hateful would be the exhi-

bition of the hidden depths of our deceitful hearts!  "Who can under-

stand his errors?  Cleanse thou me from secret faults." (Ps. xix. 12.)

 

5. Open rebuke is better than secret love. 6. Faithful are the wounds of a

friend; but the kisses of an enemy are deceitful.

     What is the friend, who will be a real blessing to my soul?  Is it

one, that will humour my fancies, and flatter my vanity?  Is it enough,

that he loves my person, and would spend his time and energies in my

service?  This comes far short of my requirement. I am a poor,

straying sinner, with a wayward will and a blinded heart; going wrong

at every step.  The friend for my case is one, who will watch over me

with open rebuke; but a reprover, when needful; not a flatterer.  The

genuineness of friendship without this mark is more than doubtful; its

usefulness utterly paralyzed.  That secret love, that dares not risk a

 

     1 Gen. xxxvii. 3, 4, 23-35. Acts, vii. 9.      2 Dan. vi. 6-17.           3 John,  xii. 10, 11.

     4 Matt. xxvii. 18-20.             5 Acts, v. 17. Marg; xiii. 44, 45; xvii. 4, 5, with Matt. x. 2-1.

    6 Rom. vi. 14.

     *WARDLAW on Eccles. iv. 4.          Sir Philip Sidney's Aphorisms.


CHAP. XXVII. 5, 6.                                      505

 

faithful wound, and spares rebuke, rather than inflict pain, judged by

God s standard, is hatred. (Lev. XIX. 17.)  Far better the wound should

be probed than covered. Rebuke, kindly, considerately, and prayerfully

administered, cements friendship, rather than loosens it.1  The contrary

instances only prove, that the union had never been based upon sub-

stantial principle.

      Many indeed profess their value for a true friend; and yet in the

most valuable discharge of friendship, they "count him their enemy."

The Apostle had some just apprehension on this account, though so

wise and affectionate, and speaking from the mouth of God. (Gal. IV.

12-16.) As if the rule of friendship was, that we should absolutely

"please," without reference to the Divine restriction--"for good to

edification." (Rom. xv. 2.) Christian faithfulness is the only way of

acting up to our profession.  And much guilt lies upon the conscience

in the neglect.

     But this open rebuke must not contravene the express rule of love-

"telling the fault between thee and him alone."  Too often, instead of

pouring it secretly into our brother's ear, it is proclaimed through the

wide medium of the world's ear; and thus it passes through a multitude

of channels, before it reaches its one proper destination.  The openness

of the rebuke describes the free and unreserved sincerity of the heart, not

necessarily the public exposure of the offender; save when the character

of the offence, or the interests of others, may appear to demand it.

(1 Tim. v. 20.)

     But never let a false tenderness be suffered to dilute a paramount

obligation.  Could Paul have answered to God for his secret love to a

brother apostle, when the compromise of a fundamental principle called

for open rebuke? (Gal. ii. 11-14.)  Obviously however the sin should

be brought to view, ere we rebuke.  Nor should we vehemently re-

prove involuntary slips (See Ecclus. xix. 16); much less forget the

exercise of a loving spirit.  Leighton's gentleness gave such a power

to his reproof, that rare was the repetition of the offence; rather however

from shame, than from the new principle.  The mark of true godliness

is an anxiety to have our faults pointed out; and a thankfulness to those

who undertake the self-denying office.*  A faithful reprover is a very

great help in our Christian course.  He is to be valued above the

greatest treasure.'  'He that would be safe'--says one of the ancients

--'must have a faithful friend, or a bitter enemy, that he may fly from

vice by the monitions of the one, or the invective of the other.'  Much

 

      1 Chap. ix. 8; xxviii. 23. Matt. xviii. 15.

     * Neh. v. 7-13. Even when given most rashly and unkindly, one of the meekest of men

could say--I was thankful to God for admonishing me, and my gratitude to the man was,

I think, unfeigned.'  In his journal, the reprover's name was found specially remembered in

prayer.  MARTYN'S Life, chap. iii.

     Bp. Kidder.


506                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

more valuable is this faithfulness, than the smooth politeness of the

world's intercourse. Nay, some defect in this courtesy may be excused

for the sake of the sterling quality.

     The truest friend of man--his wounds are faithful.  He will not

pass by a single fault in his people.  He acts upon his own rule from

the most considerate regard to their best welfare.  And who would not

choose this faithful wound, however painful at the moment of infliction,

rather than the deceitful kisses of the enemy?1 The kiss of the apostate

was a bitter ingredient in the Saviour's cup of suffering.2  His fore-

knowledge of the treachery,3 in no degree weakened those exquisite

sensibilities, which, from their intimate union with the Godhead, ren-

dered him susceptible of suffering beyond all comprehension.*

 

7. The full soul loatheth (treadeth under foot, marg.) an honeycomb; but

                        to the hungry soul every bitter thing is sweet.

     This is true, as regards the enjoyments of this life.  Abundance,

instead of increasing the happiness of the possessor, deprives him of

the rest, which often belongs to a more scanty portion. (Eccles. v. 11.)

The man, whose appetite is cloyed with indulgence, turns with disgust

from the sweetest dainties; while every bitter and distasteful thing is

keenly relished by the hungry soul, perhaps just saved from starvation.

This healthful appetite is one of the many counterbalancing advantages

of poverty.  The stated epicure might well envy the luxury of a homely

meal Israel, after "eating angels' food to the full," loathed and trod it

under foot as "light bread."4

     And is not this so in spiritual things?  The Laodicean professor--

"rich and increased in goods, and having need of nothing"--loathes

the honeycomb of the gospel.5 Christ in his bitter "sorrow is nothing

to him, while he passeth by." (Lam. i. 12.)  His love excites no ten-

derness; his hope no interest.  "The consolations of God are small,"

of little account, "with him." (Job, xv. 11.)  He can spare them

without sensible loss.  He reads the Bible only to carp at its most

precious truths; offensive, as implying a ruin, of which he has no

apprehension, and which he has no heart to contemplate.  Thus he

nauseates the most nourishing food; having no relish, because he feels

 

     1 Chap. xxvi. 23-26. Neh. vi. 2.       2 Matt. xxvi. 48, 49, with Ps. xli. 9; lv. 12, 13.

     3 John, vi. 70; xiii. 18-26. .              4 Ps. lxxviii. 25. Num. xi. 4-20; xxi.5.

     5 Rev. iii. 17, 18. Matt. ix. 12. Rom. ix. 30, 31.

     * Philip Henry beautifully describes the proper offices and uses of Christian reproof.

‘To reprove a brother is like as, when he is fallen, to help him up again, when he is

wounded, to help to curse him; when he hath broken a bone, to help to set it; when he is

it out of the way, to put him in it; when he is fallen into the fire, to pluck him out; when

he hath contracted defilement, to help to cleanse.'--Life, chap. x.

     Job, vl.T. Luke, xv. 16, 11.

                        ‘Jejunus stomachus raro vulgaria temuit.'

                                                             Hor. lib. ii. Sat. ii. 38.


                                    CHAP. XXVII. 8.                                                       507

 

no need.  Another case presents itself, not less affecting. "Fulness of

bread"--richness of spiritual ordinances--does not always bring its

corresponding appetite.  May not satiety be as great a curse as famine?

Is it not fearfully written upon many a Christian professor--The full

soul loatheth the honeycomb.

     Far more enviable is the hungry soul, feeding upon unpalatable

truths; yea--welcoming even bitter dispensations, as medicine for the

soul's health. (Ps. cxix. 67, 71.)  And is not the sweet of the gospel

known by this bitterness?  Does not this bitterness make Christ sweet to

the soul?  A sinner in all his guilt; a Saviour in his perfect merit and

love--well does the one answer to the other.  Every view of Christ

embitters sin.  Every view of sin endears Christ.  Nor is there any

terror in the conviction, that thus endears the Saviour.  Rather

does it prepare the way for a solid confidence in the glad tidings of

the gospel.

     What then is the pulse of my religion?  Am I willing to receive

the word in its full completeness--the bitter as well as the sweet?

Do I love its humbling spirituality, its self-denying requirements, sub-

ordinating every desire to an unreserved obedience to my God; ready

to walk in his narrowest path, to have my most secret corruption

exposed; to have my conscience laid open to the "sharp piercing of

the two-edged sword?" (Heb. iv. 12.) Oh! may my soul be preserved

in this vigorous devotedness!

 

8. As a bird that wandereth from her nest, so is a man that wandereth

                                                 his place.

     Instinct teaches the bird, that the nest is the only place of safety

repose.  Here God has provided her special cover.  (Deut. xxii. 6, 7.)

Nothing therefore but danger awaits her in her wanderings and seldom

does she, return without some injury to herself or her nestlings.  Per-

haps her nest is cold and inconvenient.  But her wanderings make her it

more restless and dissatisfied. She is safe and happy only while she

keeps her nest.

     Not less senseless and dangerous is it lightly to leave the place,

society, or calling, which Divine Providence has marked out.  Here

man is 'in God's precincts, and so under God's protection;'* and if he

will be content to remain in his place, God will bless him with the rich

gain of "godly contentment." (1 TIm. vi. 6.)  But the man wandering

from his place is 'the rolling stone, that gathers no moss.' 'He is

always restless, as if he had a wind-mill in his head.  Every new

crotchet puts him into a new course.'  His want of fixed principles

 

     * SWINNOCK'S Christian Man's Calling, i. 346. 

       Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on 1 Cor. vii. 24.


508     EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

and employment exposes him to perpetual temptation. (Chap. xxi. 16.)

Always wanting to be something or somewhere different to what and

where he is, he only changes imaginary for real troubles.  Full of

wisdom is it to know and keep our place.   The soul, the body, the

family, society--all have a claim upon us.  This feverish excitement

of idleness is the symptom of disease, wholly opposed to religion, the

bane both of our comfort and usefulness.

     The plain rule cannot ordinarily be broken without sin –“Let

every man, wherein he is called, therein abide with God." (1 Cor. vii,

24.)  Would we then abide in fellowship with God?  We must "abide

in our calling."  Every step of departure, without a clear Scriptural

warrant, is departure from God.  We are safe in following Providence.

But to go before it; much more to break away from its guidance

(Jonah, i. 1-4)--a man thus wanders from his place to his own cost.

Never can we put our foot out of God's ways, but we shall tread the

path back with a cross.

      It is often the wayward impulse of idle pleasure; but always with

the same fruit.  Dinah was safe in the bosom of her family, as the bird

in her nest.  But when she "went out to see the daughters of the land"

(Gen. xxxiv. 1, 2), the fowler's snare soon entangled the unsuspecting

wanderer.

       Let us look at this spirit in the Church.  The “idler wandereth about

from house to house" (1 Tim. v. 13), neglecting his own duties, and

therefore with plenty of time upon his hands to "meddle with what

doth not belong to him." (Chap. xxvi. 17.)  So busy is the enemy in

finding his own work for those, "Who have no heart to work for God!

The discontented professor unhappily is shut up in so obscure a corner,

that he will die, before the world knows his worth.  He wants a larger

sphere.  The world is scarcely wide enough for him.  Thus he wan-

dereth from his place, "seeking rest, and finding none."  The gifted

professor is full of zeal for God and his church.  His gifts were not

intended to run to waste.  What he can do, he thinks he ought to do.

He sees the minister of God neglecting his flock--Why should not he,

as he deems himself well able, step into his room?  But is not the man

wandering from his place?  Our Master's charge is--"Give an account

of thy," not of thy neighbour's, "stewardship." (Luke, xvi. 2.)

      If grace gives the desire for usefulness.   Providence must open the

path.  Our "wisdom is to understand our own way" (Chap. xiv. 8); our

duty, to "do our own business." (1 Thess. iv. 11.)  Not a single talent

need be wasted.  Every Christian has his own field, large enough for

the exercise of his measure of gifts, "without removing the ancient

landmark," that separates the sacred office, as the Lord's consecrated

service.  Many might be found to perform competently the ambassador's


                                       CHAP. XXVII. 8.                                      509

 

office; but who would venture upon it without the accredited authority

of his sovereign?  The unsteady professor has no spiritual home.

church is sound enough for him; none wholly moulded to his taste.

Like the wandering bird, he is always on the wing.  Any one place is

too strait for him.  The accustomed food, even though coming down

from heaven, is "loathed as light bread." (Num. xxi. 5.)  His vitiated

appetite leaves him often on the Sabbath morning undecided whom to

hear, his own will being his only guide. He is anxious to hear from

all; and, as the sure result, he learns from none. (2 Tim. iii. 7.)  In

this self-willed delusion the form and substance of the Church is

destroyed.  It is not a few wandering sheep, but a fold and a shepherd;

not a heap of loose scattered stones, but stones cemented, fitted into

their several places; and the building thus fitly framed together

groweth unto an holy temple in the Lord." (Eph. ii. 21, 22.)  The

Church is "terrible" not in her single members, but ''as an army with

banners" (Cant. vi. 10); close in rank, where each soldier keeps his

own place.  The individual profession, in the stead of collective unity,

is a purely schismatical spirit, the essence of pride and selfishness.

      And is not this spiritual vagrancy the history of many, who under

the pretence of conscience have separated from the Church, which had

"nourished and brought them up as children?" After their own lusts

"they heap to themselves teachers, having itching ears."  The end of

this wandering from their place, like that of the bird from her nest, is the

loss of everything valuable--"They shall turn away their ears from the

truth, and shall be turned unto fables.” (2 Tim. IV. 3, 4.)

       Christian professor!  Beware of this tampering with simplicity and

godly steadfastness.  This wandering spirit proves, not expansive Jove,

but latitudinarian indifference; freedom, not from prejudices, but from

settled principles. Our Lord restrained his disciples from "forbidding"

the man, "who was doing a good work."  But he did not direct them

to wander from their own place, and follow him. (Mark, ix. 38-40.)  The

rule to "prove all things" is coupled with--"Hold fast that which is

good." (1 Thess. v. 21.)  Christian establishment is the result of a

scriptural balance. "Order and Steadfastness"--"Beauty and Bands"

--are the two staves of the Good Shepherd; the strength of the

Church, the "joy" of her ministers. (Col. ii. 5. Zech. xi. 7.)  If the

"order" be broken, "the steadfastness" soon fails.  Confusion reigns,

instead of peace and unity.  The enemy's watchword prevails-

'Divide and conquer.'  Let every man therefore be in his own place

in the Church; not weakening his minister's hands to please his own

fancy; but marking carefully "the footsteps of the flock;" and seeking

to find "him whom his soul loveth," by “feeding beside the shepherds

tents.” (Cant. i. 7, 8)


510                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

9. Ointment and perfume rejoice the heart: so doth the sweetness of a man's

            friend by hearty counsel (from the counsel of the soul, marg.)

 

      Most refreshing are ointment and perfume to the senses.1  Not less

so is the cordial of friendship to the soul.2 Who does not feel the need

of a brother's or sister's bosom, their hand, their heart?  Cold indeed

is social intercourse without individual sympathy. "Faithful are the

wounds of a friend." (Verses 5, 6.)  But his very faithfulness alone

would crush.  His sweetness and tenderness soundly heal the wound.

Sympathy is the balm of friendship.  "My friend is to me as my own

soul,"* the sharer of my joys and my sorrows.3  How, without him,

could I more than half enjoy my pleasures?  How could I bear my

sorrows alone?  What ointment and perfume must have rejoice the

heart of the two bosom-friends "in the wood," when their hearty counsel

"strengthened each other's hand in God!"

     The heartiness of a friend's counsel constitutes its excellence.  It is

not official, or merely intelligent.  It is the counsel of his soul.  He puts

himself in our case, and counsels, as he would wish to be counselled

himself.  Moses's heart was thus rejoiced by Jethro's counsel, relieving

him from a heavy and needless burden. (Exod. xviii. 17-24.)  Many

cases of spiritual perplexity have been thus opened.  When unable to

see the needful consolation, a friend's counsel, like the angel of old, has

pointed to the well of water near at hand for our support. (Gen. xxi. 17.)

Often has the sympathy of a brother's experience cleared our path,4 and

turned the stumbling-block into a way-mark set up for our direction

and encouragement.  Ought we not then to "comfort" our fellow-

sufferers "with the same comfort, wherewith we ourselves have been

comforted of God?" (2 Cor. i. 4.)  ‘The Lord give us, as he did our

Divine Master, the gift of "the tongue of the learned!”' (Isa. l. 4.)

Matchless teacher! that teachest more in one hour than man can do

in a whole age! that we may be learned in real living Divinity, we sit

down at thy feet!  What I know not teach thou me.'‡

      But the real unction and blessing of this hearty counsel, will be in

proportion as we are living in communion with our Lord.  Then

indeed will there be ointment and perfume to rejoice the heart.  That

beloved "name which is above every name" will be ''as ointment

poured forth," and "the house will be filled with the odour of the

ointment." (John, xii. 3.)

    

     1 Comp. Ps. cxxxiii. 2. Cant. i. 3; iii. 6; iv. 10. John, xii. 3. Dan. ii. 46.

     2 Chap. xvii. 17.   Comp. Ecclus, vi. 14-16.           3 Rom. xii. 15. Job, ii. 11, 12; xlii. 11.

     4 Ps. xxxiv. 2; lxvi.16.

     *Deut. xiii. 6. Philem. 12. Horace calls Virgil, --‘Animae dimidium meae.'--

Carm. i. 3.

      1 Sam. xviii. 1-3; xx. 17. 2 Sam. i, 26, with 1 Sam. xxiii. 16. Similar must have

been the joy of Peter from his brother Andrew's counsel John, i. 40-42.

      ‡LEIGHTON'S Sermon on Job, xxxiv. 31, 32.


                                                CHAP. XXVII. 10.                                        511

 

10. Thine own friend, and thy father's friend, forsake not; neither go into

      thy brother's house in the day of thy calamity: for better is a neighbour

     that is near, than a brother far off.

     Man without principle is the creature of caprice.  His friendships

have no warranted stability.  The ointment soon loses its fragrance.

The sweetness of hearty counsel (Verse 9) is forgotten.  New friends

gain influence; and even the father's friend--the long-tried family

friend--is forsaken.  Solomon exemplified his own rule by cultivating

kindly intercourse with Hiram, his father's friend.  (1 Kings, v. 1-10.)

The unprincipled contempt of this rule cost his foolish son his kingdom.

(1 Kings, xii. 6-19.)  If other things are better when new, a friend is

better that is old and tried. (See Ecclus. ix. 10.)  For how can you

trust an untried friend?  Never forget his rare price.  Never be

tempted by the lure of advantage to incur the risk of losing him.  His

house, not thy brother's, may be thy shelter in the day of thy calamity.

(Chap. xviii. 24.)  For though relationship ought to be the closest

bond; yet, without a higher principle, selfishness will too often pre-

dominate.  Joseph found far greater kindness among foreigners, than

from his own kindred.1  Jonathan's affection afforded to David, what

his brothers' jealousy would never have given him.2  The Saviour

found his most soothing sympathy in the day of his calamity, not in his

brethren's house, but in the persevering attachment of his devoted

friends.3  One friend and neighbour closely knit in unity, near at hand,

and in readiness to assist, is better than a brother as far off in affection,

as in distance.*

       'But if it be an indecency, and uncomeliness, and a very unfit

thing--that is--contrary to the precept of studying "whatsoever is

lovely, and thinking of these things"--to forsake my friend and my

father's friend:  how much more horrid must it be to forsake my God,

and my father's God.  "My father's God shall not be my God."  But

was not I solemnly given up to this God at my first coming into the

world?  And was this transaction a trifle at the time, and to be re-

garded as a trifle at the end of life?  How could Solomon ever forget

the injunction of his aged parent--"Thou, my son, know thou the God

of thy father?" (1 Chron. xxviii. 9.)  Exquisitely beautiful is the pic-

ture of the venerable Patriarch, commending his friend and his father's

friend to his children for his heavenly blessing--"God, before whom

my fathers Abraham and Isaac did walk--the God which fed me all my

life long unto this day--the Angel which redeemed me from all evil-

bless the lads." (Gen. xlviii. 15, 16.)  Here is a wise friend, who knows

 

1 Gen. xxxix. 4, 21; xli. 39-45, with xxxvii. 4-18.

2 1 Sam. xx. with xvii. 28.                              3 Luke, xxii. 28, with John, vii. 3-5.

           * Rp. Patrick.                                         HOWE'S Works, vii. 529.


512                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

our need;1 a sympathizing friend who feels our distress:2 a mighty

friend able to cover and provide;3 a faithful friend, true to his word;4 a

fast friend, who will never leave. (Heb. xiii. 5.)  Young people, do you

know him as your father's friend?  Make him your own in the hearty

receiving of his Gospel. Cleave to him. He will never disappoint

you.

 

11. My son, be wise, and make my heart glad, that I may answer him that

reproacheth me.

      The Christian Parent takes his full share of the Minister's "greatest

joy" to see "his children walk in truth." (2 John, 4. 3 John, 4.)  Then

indeed are they "the olive branches round about his table" (Ps. cxxviii.

3)--the ornament of his family--yea, "plants of renown"--the glory

of the Church and of the land.  Every other portion for them we rest with

the Lord, for "surely we know that it shall be well with them that fear

God, which fear before him." (Eceles. viii. 12.)  Gladdened is our heart by

their godly wisdom; and strengthened are we by what flows from, this wis-

dom--their holy prayers.  And truly will we put our seal to the choice

of a parent thus honoured and blessed--'I had rather have my house

filled with my children's prayers, than filled with gold.'

      But an ungodly child is indeed the parent's reproach.  He can but

take up the father's weeping under different circumstances. "Alas! my

child! thou hast brought me very low, and thou art one of them that

trouble me." (Judg. xi. 35.)  On this account the offending damsel was

"stoned at the door of her father's house." (Deut. xxii. 21.)  The grace-

less children of gracious parents are a special reproach, even upon the

name of God.5  The world will charge it (however in many cases most

wrongfully) to their parents' example or neglect.  Here therefore a wise

son makes the heart glad.6  He is his father's weapon of defence, "When

he speaketh with his enemies in the gate."7  Should not the children

of the Church ponder this deep responsibility, to carry such a profes-

sian, as may answer him that reproacheth, and stop the mouth, ever ready

to open with taunts against the Gospel?  Specially should this respon-

sibility be felt by children of Ministers; to 'adorn' (as Mr. Richmond

affectionately inculcated upon his children) 'not only their Christian

profession, but their parents' principles; shewing, that the principles of

their father's house and Ministry are the rules of their conduct, and their

real delight?'*

 

     1 Col. ii. 3.              2 Ps. xxxi. 7.              3 Isa. lxiii. 1. Matt. xxviii. 18.

     4 Num. xxiii. 19. Rev. xix. 11.                 5 Gen. xxxiv. 30. 1 Sam. ii. 17.

     6 Chap. x. 1;  xxix., 3                               7 Ps. cxxvii. 5

      *Life, pp. 294, 295.  The Mosaic law severely punished the sins of the priest's daughter

for the disgrace brought upon the holy office, Lev, xxi. 9.  “Faithful children” is a minis-

terial qualification.  1 Tim. iii. 4, 5. Tit. i. 6.  It was a frequent petition in Philip Henry's

family worship, that ministers' children might have grace to carry it, that the Ministry

might in nothing be blamed.'--See the Author's Christian Ministry. Part iii. chap, ix.


CHAP. XXVII. 12, 13.                                              513

 

12. A prudent man foreseeth the evil, and hideth himself; but the simple

pass on, and are punished. (Chap. xxii. 3.)

      Even animal instinct is the exercise of prudence. (Jer. viii. 7.)

Every intelligent man acts upon it. It is natural to see the evil when

it is come, or close to our door.  But the prudent man foreseeth the coming

evil.  God is the same unchangeable God of holiness and justice.  Sin

is the same abomination to him as ever.  There must therefore be evil

to the sinner.  The prudent man sees the effect in the cause, the conse-

quent in the antecedent.  He must therefore provide himself with a

shelter.  We often see the Christian's patience, security, and hope.  Here

is his prudence, securing a refuge.  The evil is imminent.  But "God in

Christ" is to him "the munition of rocks;" not a cold and barren refuge,

safe from enemies, but exposed to hunger; but a storehouse of food, as

well as a citadel of defence.  "Bread shall be given him, and his water

shall be sure."1  The man, who has never realized the evil, is without an

hiding place.  The man outside the gate perishes, as if there were no

refuge.  Only he, who "runneth into the strong tower, is safe."  (Chap.

xviii. 10.)  A mighty blessing is any dispensation, that awakens from

slumber, and brings care, prudence, confidence!

      The Israelites, warned of the destruction of the firstborn,2 and many

ages after, of the ruin of their city, hid themselves.3  This prudence com-

bined with faith, rouses us as the man-slayer to flee from impending

danger, and to "lay hold of the hope set before us."4  For him there

were six cities.5  For us there is but one.6  Nothing short of vital faith

brings us into it.

      But the simple--the wilfully foolish--let things take their course.

God is so merciful.  All will be well at the last.  They will not be

warned.  The fooleries of the world engage their heart.  All besides is

forgotten; they pass on, and are punished.  The prudent hide themselves

in God.  The simple rush blindfold into hell.  Oh! sinner, does not thy

ruin lie at thine own door?  What will it be to take the mad pleasures

here, and to "lie down in everlasting sorrow?" (Isa. 1. 11.)  The tears

of the penitent are but for a moment, and end in everlasting joy.  (Ps. i

cxxvi. 5, 6.)  Thine will be for eternity, "the weeping" of utter

despondency. (Matt. viii. 12.)  Wilt thou scorn this warning?  The ox

is driven to destruction.  The sinner plunges into it, in despite of every

effort to restrain him.

 

13. Take his garment that is surety for a stranger, and take a pledge of

him for a strange woman.

      This proverb also we have had before. (Chap. xx. 16.)  'But what

conduces to the happiness of life it is needful to inculcate again and

 

      1 Isa. xxxiii. 16. Comp. Ps. cxlii. 5.     2 Exod. xii. 12, 13, 21-23.    3 Matt. .xxiv. 15-21.

      4 Heb. vi 18.                                        5 Num. xxxv. 11-13.             6 Acts, iv. 12.


514                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

again, to fix it deep in the mind.'*  This may be an illustration of the

prudence just described; foreseeing evil, and, instead of rushing into it,

avoiding it.  For what can be more imprudent, than to trust a man,

that is surety for a stranger, or for a strange woman?  Such folly is utterly

unworthy of confidence. And therefore take his garment, full security for

a debt.  Rather incur the charge of selfishness, than by imprudence

hinder yourself from helping more worthy objects. It is the perfection

of Christian graces, that they do not entrench on one another. Kindness

loses the name of virtue, when shewn at the expense of prudence. Yet

caution is needed, lest in repressing an impulse, we crush or hazard a

valuable principle.  We would not too hastily frown upon a generous

act; because it may have overstepped the bounds of prudence.  Time,

growing consideration, and, experience, will correct the error.  Mean-

while let not the discipline of prudence chill the glow of active, self-

denying love.  Let every grace be in its: order, proportion, and combi-

nation, "that the man of God may be perfect, thoroughly furnished unto

all good works." (2 Tim. iii. 17.)

 

14. He that blesseth his friend with a loud voice, rising early in the

               morning, it shall be counted a curse to him.

      Is it a sin then to bless our friend?  Our Lord openly acknowledged

the love of his friends. (Luke, xxii. 28.)  And yet a loud voice, and

extravagant praises, bring insincerity into question.  When a man

exceeds all bounds of truth and decency, affecting pompous words and

hyperbolical expressions, we cannot but suspect some sinister end.

(Chap. xxvi. 23-25.)   Real friendship needs no such assurance.  One

act of love is more than many loud blessings.  'There is no wise man,

but had rather have one promise than a thousand fair words, and one

performance than ten thousand promises.  For what charge is it to spend

a little breath, for a man to give one his word, who never intends to

give him anything else?  He may be rising early in the morning,

lest some one be before him, lest ,there should be scarcely time to finish

this great business; and yet, while harping upon the same string, he

may be secretly condemning me all the day.  Contrast David's early

rising for the service of God, with his son's early rising for the hypo-

critical blessing of his friends.1  The Apostle could not endure this

exaggerated praise.2  Indeed every intelligent man must look upon it

rather as a curse to him.  For the supposed encouragement of such

fulsome flattery would stamp him as a fool.  And the including blessing

would end in a fearful curse.3

 

       1 Ps. v. 3; cxix. 147, with 2 Sam. xv. 2-7.            2 2 Cor. xii. 6. Comp. Rom. xii. 3.

       3 2 Sam. xvi. 16-19; xvii. 7-13. Acts, xii. 22, 23.

          *Lavater.

           South's Sermon on Matt. v. 44. Some of Mr. Scott's early friends at the Lock painfully

reminded him of this Proverb. Life, pp. 225, 226.


CHAP. XXVII. 15-17.                                  515

 

     The rule towards our friend is--"Love not in word, neither in

tongue; but in deed and in truth." (1 John, iii. 18.)  The rule for

ourselves is--"Walk before God," not before men. (Gen. xvii. 1.)  Let

worldly things and worldly men be little in your eyes.  Man's day will

soon have passed away. (1 Cor. iv. 3, marg.)  Eternity in all its sub-

stance and glory is at hand.

 

15. A continual dropping in a very rainy day, and a contentious woman,

are alike. 16. Whosoever hideth her hideth the wind, and the ointment

of his right hand, which bewrayeth itself.*

     The figure of the dropping has been given before. (Chap. xix. 13.)

The time is here added--a very rainy day, shutting us up at home.

There is rain without and within, both alike troublesome; the one

preventing us from going abroad with comfort; the other from staying

at home in peace.  The storm within is however much the most

pitiless.  Shelter may be found from the other.  None from this.  The

other wets only to the skin; this even to the bones.  Contention with a

a neighbour is a sharp shower, over and gone.  This is a continual

dropping, the bane of a house, even though replete with every luxury.

      Whether the woman lusts for rule, or repines under the obligation

to submit; either principle breaks the rank, in which God has placed

her.  Occasions always present themselves for the display of this

unhappy temper.  After the attempts to soothe and pacify her, the

"return of clouds after rain" betokens more showers, and dispels the

hope which a passing sunbeam may have raised.  Unrestrained by

Divine grace, she becomes her husband's torment, and her own shame.

For as soon might we hide the wind that it should not be known, or the

ointment of our right hand, that it might not bewray itself; as restrain

her tongue, or hide her turbulence.  Nay--as the wind pent up howls

more frightfully; so the attempt to still her noise only makes her more

clamorous.

     Such repeated warnings seem to be needful.  "Fleshly lusts" too

often rule conscience and judgment in the important choice. "Such

shall have trouble in the flesh." (1 Cor. vii. 28.)  Prudence and prayer,

not blind affection, give the only security of happiness and peace.

 

17. Iron sharpeneth iron; so a man sharpeneth the countenance of his

friend.

       Man was framed not for solitude, but for society. (Gen. ii. 18.)  It

is only as a social being, that his powers and affections are fully

expanded.  Iron sharpeneth iron. (1 Sam. xiii. 20, 21.)  Steel, whetted

against a knife, sharpens the edge.  So the collision of different minds

 

     * 'He that refrayneth her, refrayneth the wynde, and holdith oyle fast in hir honde.'--

Bishop COVERDALE,                                                              Holden.


516                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

whets each the edge of the other.*  We owe some of the most valuable

discoveries of science to this active reciprocity.  Useful hints were

thrown out, which have issued in the opening of large fields of hitherto

unexplored knowledge. In the sympathies of friendship, when the

mind is dull, and the countenance overcast, a word from a friend puts

an edge upon the blunted energy, and exhilarates the countenance.

(Job, iv. 3,4.)  The commanding word in the field of battle puts a

keen edge upon the iron. (2 Sam. x. 11-13.)  The mutual excitation for

evil is a solemn warning against "evil communications."1  But most

refreshing is it, when, as in the dark ages of the Church, "they that

feared the Lord spake often one to another."'2   Sharpening indeed must

have been the intercourse at Emmaus, when "the hearts of the disciples

burned within them."3  The Apostle was often so invigorated by the

countenance of his friends, that he longed to be "somewhat filled with

their company."  Upon this principle--"Two are better than one"--

our Lord sent his first preachers to their work.5  And the first Divine

ordination in the Christian Church was after this precedent. (Acts,

xiii. 2-4.)

      'The communion of saints' is an Article in our Creed.  But is it

practically acknowledged in its high responsibility and Christian privi-

lege?  Gladly let us take up the bond of brotherhood.  If a brother

seems to walk alone, sharpen his iron by godly communication.  Walk

together in mutual "consideration" of each other's infirmities, trials,

and temptations; and mutual "provocation"6 of each other's gifts and

graces.  "If the iron be blunt, the edge will thus be whetted." (Eccles.

x. 10.) were this high obligation and privilege more realized; were

we walking with God more closely in this holy atmosphere (1 John,

i. 7),  we should not so often complain of social intercourse, where

much might have been communicated, and yet all ended in barrenness

and disappointment.

 

18. Whoso keepeth the fig-tree shall eat the fruit thereof: so he that waiteth

                               on his master shall be honoured.

      An encouragement to diligence in our calling!  The fig-tree was a

valuable product of Judrea.7  The cultivation was probably a profitable

labour, and therefore illustrated the general reward of faithfulness.  The

dresser's industry was recompensed by eating the fruit thereof.8  The

 

      1 Chap. 10-13. 1 Kings, xxi. 25. Isa. xli. 6, with 1 Cor. xv. 33.

      2 Mal. iii. 16.                   3 Luke, xxiv. 32.         4 Acts, xviii. 5; xxviii. 15. 2 Cor. vii. 6.

      5 Luke, x. 1-3, with Eccles, iv. 9-12.                 6 Heb. x. 24, 25; also iii. 13.

      7 Mic. iv. 4.  Hab iii. 17.  Luke, xiii. 6

                *. . . . Ergo fungar vice cotis, acutum

                   Reddere quae ferrum valet, exsors ipsa secandi.'--HOR. Ars Poet. 304.

     Rom. xv. 24.  Even a Heathen could say-- 'Ipse aspectus viri boni delectat.'--

SENECA.


CHAP. XXVII. 19.                                        517

 

fidelity of the attached servant will be similarly honoured.1  Eliezer's

uprightness,2 and Deborah's long and faithful services,"3 were suitably

honoured.  Elisha's affectionate devotedness to his master was honoured

with a double portion of his spirit. (2 Kings, ii. 3-5.)  The Centurion's

care for his servant was probably an acknowledgment of diligent waiting

upon his master. (Luke, vii. 2.)  The exceptive cases of ingratitude (Gen.

xxxi. 7) do not invalidate the rule.

      There are no exceptions, however, in the service of the Divine

Master.  Our happiness is in receiving his word, and studying his will.

Our honour is secured by his promises--"If any man serve me, him

will my Father honour." "Blessed are those servants, whom the Lord,

when he cometh, shall find watching.  Verily I say unto you, that he

shall"--adorable condescension!--"gird himself and make them sit

down to meat, and will come forth, and serve them."4 Their honour

will be proclaimed to each before the assembled world--"Well done!

good and faithful servant; enter thou into the joy of your Lord." (Matt.

xxv. 21, 23.)  It will seal their portion in eternal bliss--"His servants

shall serve him; and they shall see his face, and his name shall be in

their foreheads." (Rev. xxii. 3, 4.)

 

19. As in water face answereth to face, so the heart of man to man.

      This proverb does not confound all in one indiscriminate mass; as

if all were alike under an endless diversity of condition.  We cannot

identify infancy with age, or all the proper individualities of constitu-

tion and education.  But under the same circumstances, and on the

same level, the coincidence is most remarkable and instructive.  As in

the reflection of the water face answereth to face; so in another heart we

see the reflection of our own. (Ps. xxxiii. 15.)  Human nature has

suffered no change since the fall. The picture of man's corruption,

drawn above four thousand years since, is man, as we see and know

him now.5  The Apostle's graphical delineation of the Christian con-

flict is as if we had been sitting before him for our own likeness. (Rom.

vii. 14-25.)  This identity of Christian experience is most valuable.

'No one'--exclaims a tried child of God--'has ever felt as I do.'  Let

him open his case to a brother or a sister, compare notes with their

exercises, and who will not subscribe their own name to his com-

plaints?  Thus, instead of “thinking it strange concerning this fiery

trial," he learns that " the same afflictions are accomplished in his bre-

thren that are in the world." (1 Pet. iv. 12 ; v. 9.)  The same features

and" measures of the stature in Christ," mark the whole family; inas-

much as "all these worketh that one and the self-same Spirit, dividing

to every man severally as he will." (1 Cor. xii. 11.)

 

    1 Chap. xxii. 29,                         2 Gen. xxiv.                3 Ib. xxxv. 8.

    4 John, xii. 26. Luke, xii. 37.     5 Gen. vi 5. Ps. xiv. 2, 3.  Rom. iii. 10, 11.


518                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

       Scripture history also illustrates this unity. Ishmael's mocking

shews the enmity of the heart in all ages. (Gal. iv. 29.)  Who of us does

not find something answering to Jonah's evil temper in our own fret-

fulness, waywardlless, or ingratitude?  Job shews us our impatience,

our mistaken judgments of God's dealings with us, and the special trial

of Satan's temptations.  David's heart in all its varied exercises answereth

to our heart.  Else how could we take up his confession, praises, con-

flicts, and triumphs, and feel that no words of ours could more entirely

and accurately express our own selves?  It is these Scripture portraits,

that make the word of God so "profiable for reproof, correction, and

instruction in righteousness." (2 Tim. iii. 16.)

       Hence we learn sympathy with the members of Christ.  We share

their joys and sorrows, the confidence and temptations.  Self-knowledge

also instructs us thus to know human nature,1 and to deal wisely and

profitably with our fellow-sinners.  The practical lesson of humility and

forbearance is also deeply taught.  A man observes a face reflected in

the water, not thinking that it is his own face which is the actual object

of disgust.  He exclaims with vain self-preference against the ungod-

liness of the sinner, or the infirmities of the saint.  Why! it is thine

own self thou art reviling!  Change then thy language of scorn for

self-abhorrence and shame!

 

20. Hell and destruction are never full: so the eyes of man are never

satisfied.

      A striking picture of the two great devourers--hell and destruction

(Chap. xv. 11)--never full!  Hell--the grave--ever since Adam's

sin has been insatiable.  It has opened its mouth to receive countless

millions; and still it yawns, craving for more.2  Generations have sunk

into destruction, doing the work, and earning "the wages, of sin."  Still

the pit is not full.  The broad mouth still opens for more.

      Thus insatiable are the eyes--the desires (1 John, ii. 16)--of man,

always requiring new gratification.  "He enlargeth his desire as hell,

and is as death, and cannot be satisfied."  His "eye is not satisfied with

seeing, nor his ear filled with hearing."3  Curiosity, love of novelty,

covetousness, ambition--all these desires, like thirst in the dropsy, are

aggravated in their indulgence. (Eccles. vi. 7.)  Man is always seeking

for what he can never find, satisfaction in earthly things.  He toils after

his object, and when he has grasped it, he toils still; the possessor of

abundance, not of happiness.*  His best efforts only bring him a

 

       1Ps. xxxvi. 1. P. T.              2 Chap. xxx. 15, 16. Isa. v. 14.

                      3 Hab. ii. 5. Eccles. i.8.  Comp. ii. 1-11.

      * Eccl. v. 10-12.

           'Crescit amor nummi, quantum ipsa pecunia crescit.'--Juv. Sat. xiv. 139.

           'Crescentenl sequitur cura pecuniam,

            Majorumque fames.'                        Hor. Carm. iii. 16. Comp. ib. 24.


CHAP. XXVII. 20.                                        519

 

meagre enjoyment, not deserving the name. The summit of ambition,

when reached, is not his resting-place; only the point, whence he

stretches after something higher.  All the affections of fallen man are

filled with unquenched thirst.  He may fancy his desires to be mode-

rate.  He may set bounds to them, and flatter himself, that he shall

never overpass them.  But give him a world, and, like the far-famed

conqueror, he will weep for another, and sink at last into a wretched

eternity of unsatisfied desires.

      Nor is this altogether the effect of his depravity.  Corruption in-

deed leads us to seek rest in something short of God.  But it is our

nature not to find it.  How can an immortal being quench his thirst

but from an infinite source?  The soul was originally created to find a

suitable and infinite gratification in the love of its Creator.  And now

that it is turned aside by the fall, it has an immortal depth, that craves

to be filled.  Nor do we speak here of refined and educated minds.  The

most unlettered being, awakened to a sense of his consciousness, might

breathe out Augustine's confession--'Thou hast made us for thyself;

and our heart can have no rest, till it rests in thee.'*  And here the

gospel meets the case--"Come unto me, all ye that labour, and are

heavy laden; and I will give you rest." (Matt. xi. 28.)  So often as the

eager question starts up--"Who will shew us any good?" (Ps. iv. 6)

--listen to the voice--"Ho! every one that thirsteth, come ye to the

waters.  If any man thirst, let him come unto me, and drink.  He that

cometh to me shall never thirst."1  Here our desires are at once in-

creased and satisfied.  A fountain of infinite fulness is at our door.  We

are bid welcome to a haven of rest, to a bosom of peace and love.  And

when new-created in the image of God, and made capable of commu-

nion with him in grace, and of enjoying him in glory, can our desires be

satisfied with anything less, with anything beside?  Is he not now our

supreme delight, our satisfying object, never leaving us without com-

plete satisfaction for a single moment? (Ps. xvi. 5. Lam. iii. 24.)

       Now let me ask--Have I seen God, as that, which alone is suffi-

cient for my soul?  Have I made the important discovery, that all my

uneasy cravings from morning to night arise from not seeking him as

my only satisfaction?  Let me sit down to the richest banquet of life,

and every dish will be tasteless, and without nourishment, if he is not

above all, and in all.  To delight in anything independent of him (Ps.

lxxiii. 25), is as if we cast him down from his throne.  All is misery

and delusion. Delighting in him, all ministers to our comfort, flowing

from this great centre.  At the grand consummation how will the satis-

faction of the eyes and heart be complete!--The eternity of being will

be an eternity of joy--"Thine eyes shall see the King in his beauty.

 

              1 Isa.lv. 1, 2. John, vii. 37; vi. 35.

                   * Confess. book 1. chap. i.


520                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

As for me, I will behold thy face in righteousness; I shall be satisfied,

when I awake, with thy likeness." (Isa. xxxiii. 17. Ps. xvii. 15.)

 

21. As the fining-pot for silver, and the furnace for gold; so is a man to

                                        his praise.*

       The fining-pot and furnace have been before mentioned, as the Lord's

"trial of the heart."1  The most searching furnace is here shown.  He

that is praised is not only much approved, but much proved. The

courting of the praise of our fellow-creatures is the world within.

Praise is a sharper trial of the strength of principle than reproach.

'If a man be vain and light, he will be puffed up with it.  If he be

wise and solid, he will be no whit moved therewith.'  A haughty and

supercilious deportment; "loving to have the pre-eminence" (3 John,

9); forwardness to give our opinion, and offence, if it be not taken--

this is the dross brought out of the furnace.  Count the discovery a

special mercy.  Know thy need of purifying, and let the great Refiner

do his perfect work. (Mal. iii. 2, 3.)

     But see a man humbled by praise, in the consciousness how little

he deserves it, and "who maketh him to differ." (1 Cor. iv. 7.)  See

him made more careful and diligent, bearing his honour meekly, and

the same man as before; here the furnace proves the real metal, and

brings out "a vessel of honour, meet for the Master's use." (2 Tim.

ii. 21.)

     Absalom was tried in this fining-pot, and found "reprobate silver."2

Herod, under the shouting praise of his flatterers, "gave not God the

glory," and was blasted in shame.3  Joseph4 and David5--maintained

their humility; Daniel his consistency;6 the apostles their singleness

for their Master's glory.  Here was the bright gold in the heated furnace.

Fearful often is the trial to a minister of Christ.  When he becomes

the object of popular applause--his people's idol;7 when men of strong

impulse and weak judgment put the servant in the Master's place--

then he is in the fining-pot.  He that is but dross consumes.  Even if

 

     1 Chap. xvii. 3. Comp. Ecclus. ii. 1, 5.

     2 2 Sam. xiv. 25; xv. 6, with Jer. vi. 30. Ezek. xxii. 18.                    3 Acts, xii. 21-23.

    4 Gen. xli. 41-43; xlv. 5-8.                    5 1 Sam. xviii. 7, 8, 15-18.   6 Dan. vi. 3-5.

    7 Acts, iii. 11-16; x. 25, 26; xiv. 11-15.

     * Gesenius (Gibbs) translates this verse--'What a crucible is to gold, that let a. man be

to the mouth that praiseth him '--i.e. let him examine the praise carefully.

      Bishop Hall.

      ‡ 'We should feel'--said the venerable Mr. Simeon in his own way--'as if our ears were

stung with blasphemy, when we discover any attempt to transfer the crown of glory from

the head of the Redeemer to that of any of his servants.'  Henry Martyn--continually

expresses his sensitive conscience upon this besetting temptation.--Life, chap. ii, iii. Dr.

Payson--a careful self-observer-mentions among his trials--'well-meant, but iujudicious,

commendations!'  When I am praised--'God! humble me,'--was the prayer of one

marvellously preserved in the fearful furnace.--Life of Mrs. Godolphin, p. 22.  See also

Author's Christian Ministry, part iii. chap. vii.


CHAP. XXVII. 21.                                                    521

 

there be true metal, the man of God "is saved, yet so as by fire."

Without painful discipline his usefulness would be withered, his spirit-

uality deadened, his soul lost. (2 Cor. xii. 7.)

      Two rules strongly present themselves--Be careful in giving praise.

Even the children of the world can discover the deadly tenacity of

pride in our nature. 'Do you know '--remarked M. de Stael on her

death-bed--'what is the last thing to die in man?  It is self-love.'

We cannot therefore do our brother a greater injury, than by supplying

fuel for pride by irregulated praise.  Even if he be a public man, he is

not always before God as in the eyes of the Church.  It may be that

the most eminent servant of God is one, of whom the Church has taken

little cognizance.  And at best we are far too short-sighted to take the

accurate measure of our brother's piety.  We cannot weigh it aright

without the balances of the sanctuary, which are fully in his hands

alone, who searcheth the heart.  Therefore till the day appointed for

manifestation, it is well to judge each other, whether for good or evil,

with becoming moderation. And to which--is it merciful to expose

a weak fellow-sinner to the frown of a jealous God, by stirring up the

innate corruption of his heart?*  For put even the finest gold into the

furnace, how humbling is the spectacle of the dross that yet cleaves to

it!1  Be not less careful in receiving praise.  While our taste revolts

from extravagant flattery, yet we are apt to think it kindly meant, and

it is very rare not to take unconsciously a drop of the poison.  But the

praise of the church is by far the most insidious poison,--so refined, so

luscious!  Specially when we feel it to be lawfully obtained, how hard

to receive it with self-renouncing consecration to God!  'Christian!

thou knowest thou carriest gunpowder about thee.  Desire those that

carry fire to keep at a distance.  It is a dangerous crisis, when a proud

heart meets with flattering lips.'  May not even the habit of speaking

humbly of ourselves be a snare of the devil?  Would it not be safer

not to speak of ourselves at all?  At least--to confine our conversa-

tion in strict sincerity to what we are, not what we appear to be, would

be a "wise refraining of our lips." (Chap. x. 19.)  Guard against

dwelling even in thought upon anything, that brings man's approving

eye upon us. Delight mainly in those works, that are only under the

 

                        1 Isa. xxxix. 2. 2 Chron. xxxii. 31.

     * 'I do not know'--said Neff--'that I ought to thank you so very warmly for what I

have too much reason to fear the old man will be ready to take advantage of; his life

being, you know, principally supported by praise.'--Biography, p. 369. 'Everyone here'

--writes Dr. Payson to his mother--'whether friends or enemies, are conspiring to ruin

me.  Satan, and my own heart, of course will lend a hand; and if you join too, I fear all

the cold water, which Christ can throw upon my pride, will not prevent it from breaking

out into a destructive flame.  As certainly as anybody flatters and caresses me, my

Father has to scourge me for it, and an unspeakable mercy it is, that he condescends to

do it,'

      Flavel.


522                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

eye of God.  Value alone his approbation.  Ever think of the love

of human praise as the most deadly bane of a Christian profession, to

be resisted with intense energy and perseverance. (John; v. 44; xii. l

43, 44.)

 

22. Though thou shouldest bray a fool in a mortar among wheat with a

pestle, yet will not his foolishness depart from him.

      The allusion is to the Eastern mode of beating off the husk from the

corn by braying it in a mortar.*  Yet the husk sticks not so close to the

grain, as foolishness to the fool.  The beating of the mortar may separate

the one.  The other will not depart by repeated strokes.  Much is said

of the effectiveness of correction.1  But of itself it works nothing.

What can it do for the fool, that despises it?2  "The rod "as an

ordinary means, "will drive foolishness out of the heart of a child."3

But the child is here become a man in strength of habit, and stubborn-

ness of will.  As soon, therefore, "can the Ethiopian change-- his skin,

or the leopard his spots," as those can do good, "who are accustomed

to do evil." (Jer. xiii. 23.)

      Examples of this incurable hardness abound.  The deluge--that

besom of divine vengeance destroyed the race, not the foolishness,

of man.  Nay--God himself declared its inefficacy for this end. (Gen.

viii. 21.)  Pharaoh was once and again brayed in the mortar; yet did

not his foolishness depart from him.4  Ahaz under the same infliction

"trespassed yet more against the Lord," and stands out as a beacon to

all ages--"This is that king Ahaz!"5  "Why should ye be stricken

any more?"--was the desponding complaint of God concerning his

Israel.6  The deepest infliction of chastisement produces only the fruit

of blasphemy and hardened impeniterice.7  If Manasseh's foolishness,

when brayed in the mortar, departed from him;8 this was not the innate

power of affliction, but the superadded power of Sovereign Grace, which

can turn any evil, even sin itself, to eternal good.  The belief in the

necessary working of affliction for our saving good is a fatal delusion.

Never did it of itself bring one soul to God.  In all cases, it is only

what God is pleased to make it.  It may even be tenfold more severe.

The blows may be so mighty, as to make the most stupified soul quiver

with intense feeling.  Still if the rock be broken, the broken pieces

will retain all their native hardness.  The man may be crushed, yet

not humbled.  Still will he cling to his foolishness; and part with

 

     1 Chap. xxiii. 13, 14; xxix. 15, 17.                2 Chap. xii. 1; xv. 10.       3 Chap. xxii. 15.

     4 Exod. ix. 27; x. 16; xii. 29-32; xiv. 5.        5 2 Chron. xx..-iii.22.

     6 lsa. i. 5. Compo ix.13.  Jer. v. 3; xliv. 9, 10, 15, 16. Ezek. xxiv. 13. Amos, iv. 11, 12.

     7 Rev. xvi. 10, 11.                                        8 2 Chron. xxxiii. 12, 13.

    * Many commentators conceive a reference to this mode of punishment still practised

in the East.  See Calmet-Parkhurst.  HORNE'S  Introduction, iii.157.  BURDER'S Oriental

Customs.  But perhaps the figurative allusion is more simple.


CHAP. XXVII. 23-27.                                              523

 

Christ and heaven, rather than with that which is interwoven into

every part of his nature.  Was it not thus--Christian--with thyself,

till Omnipotent love awakened, what chastisement alone could never

have stirred, the cry of unreserved submission?--'Lord! spare me not;

bruise me; humble me; do anything with me, but leave me under my

sins.  Who can deliver me, if thou dost not?'  Most welcome is the

"bemoaning" of the penitent child to his yearning father.  "Thou hast

chastised me, and I was chastised, as a bullock unaccustomed to the

yoke: turn thou me, and I shall be turned; for thou art the Lord my

God.  Surely after I was turned, I repented; and after that I was

instructed, I smote upon my thigh; I was ashamed, yea, even con-

founded, because I did bear the reproach of my youth.  Is Ephraim my

dear son?  Is he a pleasant child?  For since I spake against him, I

do earnestly remember him still; therefore my bowels are troubled for

him: I will surely have mercy upon him, saith the Lord."1

 

23. Be thou diligent to know the state of thy flocks, and look well (set thy

      heart, marg.) to thy herds.  24. For riches are not for ever: and doth

      the crown endure to every generation.?  25. The hay appeareth, and the

      tender grass sheweth itself, and herbs of the mountains are gathered.

      26. The lambs are for thy clothing, and the goats are the price of the

      field.  27. And thou shalt have goat's milk enough for the food of thy

      household, and for the maintenance of thy maidens.

      'This declareth the great goodness of God towards man, and the

diligence that he requireth of him for the preservation of his gifts.'*

It is a lively picture of the occupations, advantages, and responsibilities

of rural life in olden days.  It is specially appropriate to a nation,

whose chief riches were, in its early origin, in pastures and flocks.  Their

father Jacob admirably exemplified this rule. He knew well the state of

his flocks and herds.2  Even King David, mindful of his ancient employ,

kept his flocks and herds under constant inspection.3  Uzziah also

deemed a pastoral charge no degradation to his royal dignity.4  The

rule inculcates personal attention.  All should not be left to servants.

The master's eye, like Boaz,5 should, as far as possible, overlook the

work.  Riches are a fickle possession.  They would not be for ever.

(Chap. xxiii. 5.)  Even the crown might not endure to ever generation.

Native produce is more permanent wealth.  Honest industry secures a

more certain maintenance, springing up out of tile earth, a more imme-

diate gift of God.

      The Bible is thus a directory for all the diversified employments of

    

       1 Jer. xxxi. 18-20.  Comp.  Hos. xiv. 1-i. Luke, xv.18-24.

       2 Gen. xxx. 32-42; xxxi. 38-40; xxxiii. 13.

       3 1 Chron. xxvii. 29-31, with 1 Sam. xvi. 11. Ps. lxxviii. 70, 71.

       4 2 Chron. xxvi. 10. 5 Ruth, ii. 4, 5; iii.1.

* Reformers' Notes.


524                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

life.  It teaches that every man ought to have a business, and rebukes

the neglect of practical every-day duties.  God may be glorified by a

single eye and purpose in every station; by-the labourer, the farmer,

the servant, no less than by the master. (Col. iii. 22-24.)  We must

"serve the Lord in fervency of spirit."  But a part of this service is,

that we be "not slothful in business." (Rom. xii. 11.)  Indolence would

make the cares of life an excuse for a low standard of religion.  But to

retire from the burden would be to neglect "serving the will of God in

our generation" (Acts, xiii. 36); to "put our light under a bushel,

instead of upon a candlestick;" to cover it, instead of "letting it

shine." (Matt. v. 14-16.)  Our own calling is the way of God for us

and in this way, let us commit ourselves to God, and be at peace.

(1 Cor. vii. 20, 24.)  His Providence extends to little things, as well as

to things of greater moment.  The least is under his care, as if there

was nothing else.  There is no weariness, perplexity, or labour.  A

single glance is sufficient. Nothing escapes his all-seeing eye.  He

that "telleth the number of the stars," numbereth " also the hairs of our

head."1  Sweet balm for that cankering care, which is the bane of all

godliness!

       This picture also exhibits the fruits of industry, as far preferable to

those of ambition.  The comparison with those, whose station places

them beyond the need of labour, affords no matter for envy; much for

thankfulness.  The various produce of the field--the hay and grass in

the pastures; the herbage on the mountains;* the suitable clothing from

the lambs (Job, xxxi. 20); the goats paying the price of the field; the

sufficiency of wholesome food for the household and maidens--all is the

overflowing bounty of our gracious God.  "How excellent is thy I

loving-kindness, O God!"  (Ps. xxxvi. 7.)  Thus "man goeth forth;

unto his work and unto his labour until the evening, singing his song

of praise--"0 Lord, how manifold are thy; works! in wisdom hast

thou made them all:  the earth is full of thy riches." (Ib. civ. 23, 24.)

 

CHAPTER XXVIII.

 

1. The wicked flee when no man pursueth:  but the righteous are bold

as a lion.

       The wicked may appear bold in facing danger, so long as they drown

reflection, and stupify conscience.  But when conscience is roused, guilt is

the parent of fear.  Adam knew no fear, till he became a guilty creature.

Then, to the searching question--"Where art thou?"--he replied--"I

 

1 Ps. cxlvii. 4. Matt. x. 30.

     *Ps. civ. 14. 'The word translated hay properly means grass.  Where vegetation was

so abundant, they have seldom occasion to make hay.'--Holden. Comp. Parkhurst.


CHAP. XXVIII. 1.                                         525

 

was afraid, because I heard thy voice in the garden, and I hid myself."

(Gen. iii. 9, 10.)  But the wicked flee, not only when their enemies pursue,1

but when no man pursueth.2  Yet is not conscience an invisible pursuer,

following close, the harbinger of the wrath of God?  And there are times,

when "the sound of a shaken leaf shall chase them;"3 when "the sha-

dows upon the mountains" shall make their hearts melt away.4  Cain

was terrified with the apprehension of murder, when there was no man,

save his own father, living on the earth. (Gen. iv. 13, 14.)  Many a daring infidel

has shewn himself a coward in a moment of sudden danger.  In unwelcome

thoughts of judgment to come, conscience has turned pale at the question—

"Where shall the ungodly and the sinner appear?" (1 Pet. iv. 18.)

       But if guilt brings fear, the removal of guilt gives confidence.5

The wicked flee; the righteous are bold as a lion.  Fearless as the King

of the forest,* they dare to do anything but offend their God.  The fear

of him has drowned every other fear.  "Though an host should encamp

against me"--saith the man of God--"mine heart shall not fear."6

Moses "feared not the wrath of the king."7  Caleb and Joshua stood

firm against the current of rebellion.8  Elijah dared Ahab's anger to

his face.9  Nehemiah in a time of peril exclaimed--"Should such a

man as I flee?"10  The three confessors stood undaunted before the

furious autocrat of Babylon.11  The Apostles' boldness astonished their

enemies.12  Paul before the Roman governor,13 and even before Nero

himself, " witnessed a good confession."14  Athanasius before the Impe-

rial Counsel of Heresy; Luther at the Diet of Worms, finely exemplified

the lion-like boldness.  Nor is this the character of individuals only.

The faithful and constant Christian will be bold to walk contrary to the

course of this world; outfacing the scorn of men; valiant for despised

truth; glorying in a persecuted name.  Fearless is he of men.  "For

if God be for him, who can be against him?"15  Not less fearless is he

of Satan.  If he be a "roaring,"16 he is a chained, lion. "Resist him,"

and--coward-like, "he will flee from you." (Jam. iv. 7.)  If there be

a want of boldness, is there not a wound of conscience, neglect of prayer,

or want of faith?  The boldness itself is the sense of weakness, and

 

      1 Deut. xxviii. 25.              2 Lev. xxvi. 17. Ps. liii. 5.       3 Lev. xxvi. 36.  Job, xv. 21.

      4 Judg. ix.36.                     5 Heb. x. 22. 1 John, iii 21.

      6 Ps. xxvii. 3; iii. 6; xlvi. 2; cx.ii.7.                                   7 Heb. xi. 27. Exod. x. 28, 29.

     8 Num. xiv. 6-10.               9 1 Kings, xviii. 10, 17, 18; xxi. 20. 2 Kings, i. 15.

    10 Neh. vi. 11.                    11 Dan. iii. 16. 12 Acts, iv. 13.

    13 Ib. xxiv.; xxvi. Rom. i.15, 16.                                         14 2 Tim. iv. 16,17.

    15 Rom. viii. 31.                 16 1 Pet. v. 8.

      * Comp. chap. xxx. 30. 2 Sam. xvii. 10.  This noble animal is the most perfect model

of boldness and courage. He never flies from the hunters, nor is frightened by their onset.

If their number forces him to yield, he retires slowly, step by step, frequently turning

upon his pursuers. He has been known to attack a whole caravan, and when obliged to

retire, he always retires fighting, and with his face to his enemy.'--PAXTON'S Illustration of

Natural History of Scripture, pp. 295, 296. Pindar refers to the lion as the figure of courage,

Isth. iv. .Antistr.


526                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

divine "strength made perfect in it." (2 Cor. xii. 9.) When God intends

us to do great things, he makes us feel, that "without him we can do

nothing." (John, xv. 5.) Thus pride receives its death-blow and he

receives all the glory to himself.*

2. For the transgression of a land many are the princes thereof: but by a man of

            understanding and knowledge the state thereof shall be prolonged.

     Is God concerned in the falling of a sparrow? (Matt. x. 29.)  Surely

then much more in the control of kingdoms. (Dan. iv. 25.)  Did we

realize more deeply our national dependence, we should see the clouds

of anarchy and confusion working his wise, mysterious, or gracious

purposes.  Rival princes desolate the land with the horrors of civil war.

(1 Kings, xii. 16-21.)  A quick succession of princes rises by treason,

usurpation, or natural course. (Zech. xi. 8.) Hence a change of laws,

spoliation of privileges, imposition of new burdens, or wasteful expendi-

ture of treasure or blood.  Man traces these evils to political causes.

But God's voice speaks from the cloud--" This thing is from me."

(1 Kings; xii. 24.) For the transgression of a land many are the princes

thereof.  The bloody contentions in our early history, which swept

away the flower of our nobility; and those of a later date, which over-

turned for a time our long-established institutions--did they not

betoken the same awful scourge of national transgression.  Would that

the nation had learnt from her own records of by-gone days, the sound

and practical lessons of repentance with all its blessed fruits!

 

     * Bishop Hall has finely worked out this contrast--'The wicked is a very coward, and

is afraid of everything; of God, because he is his enemy; of Satan, because he is his tor-

mentor; of God's creatures, because they, joining with their Maker, fight against him; of

himself, because he bears about with him his own accuser and executioner.  The godly

man contrarily is afraid of nothing; not of God, because he knows him his best friend,

and will not hurt him; not of Satan, because he cannot hurt him; not of afflictions,

because he knows they come from a loving God, and end in his good; not of the creatures,

since "the very stones in the field are in league with him;" not of himself, since his con-

science is at peace.'--Medit. and Vows, Cent. ii. lxxiv.

     Thus wrote Jeremy Taylor of his own sorryful times, in his fervid colouring, and

deep-toned instructiveness; and with some solemn application to later times. 'It is a sad

calamity to see a kingdom spoiled, and a Church afflicted; priests slain with the sword,

and the blood of nobles mingled with the cheaper and; religion made the cause of trouble,

and the best of men most cruelly persecuted; govenment turned, and laws ashamed;

judges decreeing in fear and covetousness, and the ministers of holy thing's setting them-

selves against all that is sacred.  And what shall make recompense for this heap of sorrows,

when God shall send such swords of fire?  Even the mercies of God, that shall then be

made public when the people shall have suffered for their sins.  For I have known a

luxuriant rule swell into irregular twigs and bold excrescences, and spend itself in leaves

and little rings, and afford but little clusters to the wine-press.  But when the Lord of the

vine has caused the dressers to cut the wilder part, and make it bleed; it grew temperate

in its vain expence of useless leaves, and knotted into fair and juicy branches, and made

account of that loss of blood by the return of fruit. It, is thus of an afflicted kingdom,

cured of its surfeits, and punished for its sins. It bleeds for its long riot, and is left un-

governed for its disobedience, and chastised for its wantonness.  And when the sword hath

let forth the corrupted blood, and the fire hath purged the rest, then it enters into the


CHAP. XXVIII. 3.                                         527

 

            But not less must we acknowledge the Divine Hand in the pro-

longation of the state by men of understanding and knowledge.  By a man

of this high character the state of Egypt was prolonged by preservation

from famine. (Gen. xli. 38, 39.)  The long and prosperous reigns of the

godly kings of Judah strongly contrast with the records of Israel after

the revolt.1  And perhaps this may be a mark of the Lord's controversy

with us; that the detached political parties present few--if any--

master-minds--men of understanding and knowledge--men--like Mr.

Pitt--of surpassing power or grasp of mind; evidently raised up at a

grand national crisis for the prolongation of the state.  Such men guided

by Christian principle, we would pray might be the counsellors of our beloved

Sovereign, that her state be prolonged "in all godly quietness." (1 Tim. ii. 1, 2.)

 

3. A poor man that oppresseth the poor is like a sweeping rain which

leaveth no food (with food, marg.)

      Unrestrained power is often an engine of oppression;2 never more so,

than when in the grasp of the poor.  Place an unprincipled spendthrift

in power, and he is a destructive flood in his sphere: greedily serving

every advantage by oppression to redeem his substance.  A poor man

suddenly raised to power, instead of sympathizing with grievances

familiar to his former recollection,3 is usually pre-eminently distin-

guished by selfishness.  Only a fool will admire the splendour of his

power, reckless of the mischief, that it is spreading all round.  Esther,

when raised to a throne from an obscure station, was well reminded to

use her power for God; for that some great work was surely intended

by the remarkable Providence. (Esth. iv.14.)  But a base mind becomes

more corrupt from a hasty elevation.  The man's necessities inflame his

desires; and being without a spark of generous humanity, he is only

bent upon improving his uncertain opportunities for selfish aggrandize-

ment.*  Some of the rulers in the French Revolution were raised from

 

double joys of restitution, and gives God thanks for his rod, and confesses the mercies

of God in making the smoke to be changed into fire, and his anger into mercy.'--

Works, vi, 182.

      1 1 Kings, xv. 25-34; xvi. 8-29. 2 Kings, xv. 8-31, with 1 Kings, xv. 10. 2 Chron. xvii.

1-5; xxxii. 20-26

      2 Gen. xxxi. 29. Eccles. iv. 1. 3 Matt. xviii. 28-30.

     *'It is in matter of power'--as Bp. Sanderson admirably observes--'as it is in matter

of learning.  They that have but a smattering of scholarship you shall ever observe to be

the forwardest to make ostention of those few ends they have; because they fear there

would be little notice taken of their learning, if they should not now show it when they

can.  It is even so in this case.  Men of base spirit and condition, when they have gotten

the advantage of a little power, conceive, that the world would not know what goodly men

they are, if they should not do some act or other, to shew forth their power to the world.

And then, their minds being too narrow to comprehend any generous way whereby to do

it, they cannot frame to do it any other way, than by trampling upon those that are below

them; and that they do beyond all reason, and without all mercy.'--Sermon on Chap. xxiv.

11, 12. Comp. also on 1 Sam. xii. 3.


528                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the lowest ranks.  And their oppression was indeed a sweeping rain,

leaving no food in fertile districts.

     Cheering is the contrast of Him, once poor himself by his voluntary

abasement, now raised to honour and glory; yet pitying, not ashamed

of, his "poor brethren."1  Truly his administration is not the sweeping

rain of desolation, but "the rain upon the mown grass," rich in mercy.

"He shall deliver the needy when he crieth; the poor also, and him

that hath no helper.  He shall redeem their soul from deceit and

violence; and precious shall their blood be in his sight." (Ps. lxxii.

12-14.)

 

4. They that forsake the law praise the wicked: but such as keep the law

contend with them.

      How responsible is the influence of our profession, acting upon all

around for evil or for good!  Congeniality of taste directs the choice of

our companions.  Those who love sin, naturally" have pleasure in them

that do it." (Rom. i. 32.)  They praise the wicked, because, like them-

selves, they forsake the law, and "cast it behind them."2  "The world

loveth its own."3  Each countenances his brother in sin. (Isa. xii. 6.)

Each makes the other's conduct, not the forsaken law, the standard of

action.  The wicked may possess some praiseworthy qualities. (Luke,

xvi. 8.)  But to praise them for their wickedness, identifies us with

them.  'It is fearful to sin; more fearful to delight in sin; yet more to

defend it.'*

     The servants of God maintain the same unity of spirit.  They cannot

call sin by smooth names, and gloss over an ungodly character.  If they

keep the law, they contend with them that forsake it.  Noah thus con-

tended with the ungodly in his day, condemning them not merely in

word, but in life; and though "a preacher of righteousness," he

preached more powerfully by his life, than by his doctrine.4  But this

contention must be aggressive.  We must "reprove," as well as separate

from, "the unfruitful works of darkness."  Our Divine Master's open

testimony was the grand offence.1  So let us plainly shew, that his

enemies are ours  that we hold neutrality in his cause to be treason.

For "he that is not with me is against me." (Matt. xii. 30.)

       Oh! the appalling recollection of our former influence for evil! the

deadly, perhaps the eternal, injury, which all our subsequent labours

have never undone! the encouragement, which our praise of the wicked

 

      1 2 Cor. viii. 9. Philip. ii. 7-11, with Heb. ii. 11, 12.

      2 1 Sam. xxiii. 23. Neh. iv. 17-19.          3 John, xv. 19.               4 2 Pet. ii. 5. Heb. xi. 1.

     5 Matt. xv. 10-12. Luke, xx. 19. John, vii. 7.

            * Bp. HALL'S Works, viii. 36.

           Eph. v. 11. Elijah-l Kings, xviii. 18; Elisha-2 Kings, iii. 13. John-Matt. iii.

 xiv. 3, 4.

            ‡ Ps. cxxxix. 21, 22. See the rebuke given to a godly king, 2 Chron. xix. 2.


CHAP. XXVIII. 5.                                                     529

 

gave to sin, hardening our companions in their wickedness!  What

would Manasseh have given to have undone his sin in all its evil con-

quences upon his son and his kingdom!*  Intolerable would be the

thought of the past, but for the blood which covers the guilt, while it

deepens shame and self-abhorrence. (Ezek. xvi. 63.)  But let it ever be

present before us, as our constraining obligation to redeem what has

been lost, as far as may be, by a holy contention against sin, and by the

convincing protest of consistent godliness.1

 

5. Evil men understand not judgment:  but they that seek the Lord under-

stand all things.

       Ignorance and knowledge are here contrasted, and each traced to

their proper source.  The Apostle draws the same contrast.  "The

natural man receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God.  But he that

is spiritual judgeth all things." (1 Cor. ii. 14, 15.)  This unity of state-

ment is beautiful and instructive.  'The two Testaments, like our two

eyes, mutually enlighten us, and assist each other.'

       Evil men understand not judgment.2  They know not the true standard

of right and wrong, the true way to God, or the end of God's dealings

with them.  Their ignorance is wilful. (Job, xxi. 14.)  "Having the

understanding darkened; because of the blindness of the heart.  Men love

darkness rather than light, because their deeds are evil.  They call

darkness light, and light darkness."3  The most distinguished scholar

is a very fool in understanding judgment; and, except he be humbled in

the consciousness of his ignorance, and seek light from above, he will

perish in gross darkness.  What a curse are learning and intellect

without an humble heart!

      Nay--sometimes knowledge, no less than ignorance, hinders a

right understanding.  Where the knowledge of the truth goes before or

beyond the power of it, the mind is often perplexed with difficulties,

which the less intelligent, but more simple, escapes.  When knowledge

stands in the stead of faith; when the man reasons, instead of sub-

mitting to Divine teaching; knowledge abused becomes a positive hin-

drance to a correct understanding.  Nothing is more revolting to our evil

nature, than the study of Scripture, with an earnest and sincere desire to

follow its light and teaching.

      An undisciplined imagination is also a great hindrance to a spiritual

judgment.  Let this bright faculty be exercised in giving vivid appre-

hensions of divine things, and clothing the picture with brilliant but

 

      1 Philip, ii.15, 16. 1 Pet. ii. 12; iii. 16.              2 Ps. Ixxxii. 5. Jer. iv. 22.

      3 Eph. iv. 18. John, iii. 19, Isa. v. 20.

      * 2 Chron. xxxiii. 15-17, with 22. 2 Kings, xxiii. 26, Mr. Cecil had deep cause to

regret his ineffectual labour to reclaim from infidelity more than one, whom he had

plunged into that gulf of ruin.

      SERLE'S Horoe Solitaoe, vol. i. 565.


530                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

truthful colouring.  It may thus, within its own province, be a valuable

handmaid to the Gospel.  But a ray of faith is better than a rainbow

of fancy.  The picture, if it be not in immediate connexion with the

reality, fades away without permanent influence.  The feeblest faith,

grounded upon the fundamentals of the Gospel, proves a steadfast prin-

ciple of endurance and triumphant energy, even when under the

prostration of natural and intellectual power, "the whole head is sick,

and the whole heart is faint."

      But pride fastens upon every faculty of man.  And this is indeed

the general cause.  The source of light is despised. (Ps. x. 4.)  Hence

"there is none that understandeth," because "there is none that seeketh

after God."*  They that seek the Lord, babes though they may be in

intellect, and ignorant in worldly things--shall have an accurate

understanding of all things profitable, such as no "natural man" can

attain.1  "The words are plain to him that understandeth, and right to

them that find knowledge." (Chap. viii. 9.)  Many things, dark to

human reason, are simplified to humility.2  The harmony of the divine

attributes staggers reason, and can only be apprehended by humble faith.

'In thinking of the justice of the Deity' (as a reclaimed infidel

describes his own conflict) man 'is at first ready to doubt his com-

passion.  But the gospel answers him by the voice of an Apostle--

"God so loved the world" that "he spared not his own Son, but

delivered him up for us all."--It is then that the penitent sinner appre-

hends this ineffable, mystery.  His proud and blind reason had rejected

it.  His humble and contrite heart profoundly feels it.  He believes,

because he loves; because he is grateful; because he sees all the good-

ness of the Creator proportioned to the miseries of the creature.  Oh

my God! all thy mysteries are mysteries of love, and therefore are they

indeed divine.'

      Again--God's working is the spring of diligence, not of inertion.

Man works, but under the Master-worker.  He is free, but under the

free-making Spirit, giving him a will for the service.  Thus, while

active, he is kept dependent.3  He works with deeper humility, and

more assured confidence. (Philip. ii. 12, 13.)  This is a mystery to

 

     1 Ps. xxv. 9. 12; cxix. 98-100,130. Matt. xi. 25.        2 Ps. xxv. 14, with chap. xxiv. 7.

     3 Ps. cxix. 4, 5, 8, 10, 32, 173.

      * Ps. xiv. 2. Rom. iii. 11. 'Wickedness'--Bp. Taylor justly observes--'corrupts a

man's reasoning, gives him false principles, and evil measuring of things,'--Sermon before

University of Dublin.  'I regard it as a fundamental error in the study of Divinity'--re-

marks Professor Franke--'for anyone to persuade himself, that he can study divinity

properly without the Holy Spirit.  As long as he remains in this error all labour is lost on

him.'--Lect. Paroen. p. 184.  'A grain of true faith is more estimable than a mass of mere

historical knowledge.'--Ib. Idea Studiosi Theologia.  A man may as soon read the letter

of Scripture without eyes, as properly understand their mysteries without grace.'--Bp.

BEVERIDGE.

        The French poet and philosopher, De La Harpe.

         Quoted in SHEPPARD'S  Thoughts on Devotion, pp. 308-310.


CHAP. XXVIII. 5                                          531

 

reason.  But they that seek the Lord understand it.  Practical expe-

rience shews it to them.  Again--how dark are the Lord's ways to

man's proud reason!  Hard dispensation! a world of sorrow!  But the

child of God, seeking to know "the end," understands them "all to be

mercy and truth."1  Is it not the sharp trial, to probe the wound; the

bitterness, to wean from the creature comfort; the burden, to prove

"the patience and faith of the saints;" the sifting, to separate the chaff

from the wheat; the furnace, to purify the gold?  Thus does seeking

the Lord expound the mysteries of Providence and grace!  We are

neither stumbled by the stones, perplexed by the labyrinths, or "dis-

couraged because of" the length and weariness of the way.  Those

who desire the light shall have it. (John, vii. 17.)  To those who

improve it more shall be given.2

       But--'I cannot seek--that is--I cannot pray.'  Nor can you do

anything right of yourself.  But does this discharge you from the

obligation?  Does it not often mean--if the heart would speak out--

'I have no care for the blessing.'  But suppose the confession to be

sincere--'I cannot pray.'  Then do as you are taught.  Carry this

confession to the Lord. Repeat it again and again upon your knees.

Let not inability be indolence, but faith.  Not one of the Lord's people,

but sympathizes with the complaint.  The connexion of your utter

helplessness is most profitable, as confirming the divine testimony.

(2 Cor. iii. 5.)  Yet remember the help provided for weakness and

ignorance. (Rom. viii. 26.)  If you cannot pray as you would, pray as

you can.  Desire--sincere and supreme--is the heart's real prayer,

God's own work upon the soul.*  Is this manifest?  Wait in the con-

stant use of the means.  Be found in the way. (Isa. lxiv. 5.)  "Light

is sown," and the seed in God's best time will bring the harvest. (Ps.

xcvii. 11.)  No one fails to make progress, who is really in earnest.  It

is a grand mistake to suppose, that some impression must be felt, as the

warrant to seek.  The only true warrant is the free invitation and pro-

mise of the gospel.  You must come, if at all, as a sinner, not as a

saint; as you are, not as you would be; now, not waiting for some

better time or preparation; seeking your fitness in Christ, not in your-

self.  And then plead his promise--"Him that cometh unto me I will

in no wise cast out." (John, vi. 37.)  Tell him that you are come on

the ground of this promise, and to claim the fulfilment of it--"Remem-

ber the word unto thy servant, upon which thou hast cause me to

hope." (Ps. cxix. 49.)  This must prevail. "He cannot deny himself."

(2 Tim. ii. 13.)

 

      1 Jam. v. 11, with Ps. xxv. 10.      2 Matt. xiii. 12; xxv. 29. Comp. Ecclus. i. 26, 27.

      * Ps. xxxviii 9. Isa. xxvi. 8, 9.  See Homer's fine description, 'Prayers the daughters

of Jove'--perhaps the most remarkable view of prayer to be found in Heathen literature

--as Cowper in his Notes writes--' well worthy of observation, considering where it is

found.'--Il. I. 502-514.


532                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

But if as yet you cannot come thus boldly, do not reason or despond

about your state.  Ask for divine teaching to understand, and divine

grace to follow, the light vouchsafed.  No depth of learning, no extra-

ordinary inspiration, is needed.  Simplicity, humility, diligence, will

bring the unction "from the Holy One, by which ye shall know all

things." (1 John, ii. 20.)  In God's best time the heart is given, as well

as the mind.  "The senses are exercised to discern between good and

evil." (Heb. v. 14.)  All is light, because the creative word has been

given anew--"Let there be light; and there was light."1  Are

Christians then to be despised as fools?  They are the most intelligent

people in this world.  Fixed at Wisdom's gate, their religion is divine

wisdom; and "Wisdom is justified of her children."2

 

6. Better is the poor that walketh in his uprightness, than he that is perverse

in his ways, though he be rich.

      This Proverb is repeated* for its valuable instruction.  One part of

the comparison, implied before, is here expressed--though he be rich.

Before, he was described as perverse in his lips.  A deeper trait of cha-

racter is here given--perverse in his ways, or his principles.  This is

one of those paradoxes, that sometimes stumble the feet even of God's

children. (Ps. lxxiii. 2-16.)  A man may walk in his uprightness, and

yet be poor.  He may be perverse in his ways, and be rich.  And yet

the poor man, with all his external disadvantages, is better; more

honourable, more happy, more useful than the rich, with all his earthly

splendour.

       To come to a solid scriptural decision on this point is of great

practical moment.  For if we are dazzled with the glitter of this

world's glory, we shall reverse the golden rule (Matt. vi. 33); and

"seek" first the world as our grand object: and "the kingdom of God,"

the interests of the soul, the stake of eternity, will occupy only the

second place; that is--virtually they will be thrust out.

 

     1 Gen. i. 3. 2 Cor. iv. 6.        2 Luke, vii. 35. Prov. viii. 34. Comp. Wisd. vi. 11-16.

     * Chap. xix. 1. The LXX. translation of this verse, xxviii. 6, is--'A poor man is better

than a rich lie'-- the abstract for the concrete.  Comp. chap. xix. 22. Ps. lxii. 9.

    There is a fine passage from Cicero, which it is difficult to translate without losing

much of its spirit--'A contented mind is as good as an estate.  Frugality is itself a revenue.

To be satisfied with one's lot is to be really and infallibly rich.  If landed possessions are

most highly valued by shrewd judges of human affairs, as a property, which is least liable

to injury; how inestimably precious must true virtue which cannot be snatched from us

by force or by fraud; which cannot be damaged by shipwreck or by fire; which no tem-

pests or political disturbances can change!  They alone, who are endowed with this

treasure, can be said to be truly rich.  They alone possess what is fruitful and durable.

What is allotted to them they deem sufficient.  They covet nothing.  They really want

nothing. They require nothing. The wicked and the avaricious, on the contrary, so far

from being rich, are in reality miserably poor; inasmuch as they have no certain treasure,

and are always impatient for some addition to their stores, never satisfied with their pre-

sent possessions.'--Paradox, vi. 3.


CHAP. XXVIII 7.                                                      533

 

      This is a just balance, however counter it may be to common

opinion.  Dishonesty is the besetting temptation of the poor. (Chap.

xxx. 9.)  Yet in despite of this temptation, he walks in his uprightness.

Is there not a glory around his poverty, infinitely beyond the vain

show of this world?  The rich man is perverse in his ways; "a double-

minded man," endeavouring to walk in two ways;* outwardly follow-

ing godliness, inwardly deceit; pretending to go one way, walking in

another.  Who can trust him?

       So far then as concerns character, the 'comparison is in favour of the

poor.  As regards condition--Who would not prefer the lot of Elijah,

subsisting upon his barrel of meal, to Ahab in all the glory of his

throne?1  Who does not see a dignity in Paul standing at the bar,

that throws the worldly rank of his judges into utter insignificance?2

But the truth is of general application. Outward superiority only

affects our state before God, as increasing proportionably our respon-

sibilities. (Luke, xii. 48.)  How many will wish, that they had lived

and died in obscure poverty, with "a conscience void of offence toward

God and toward man" (Acts, xxiv. 16); rather than have been entrusted

with riches; only in the perverseness of their ways to embolden them to

sin with a high hand against God and their own souls!

 

 7. Whoso keepeth the law is a wise son:  but he that is a companion of

riotous men shameth his father.

       Keeping the law is national wisdom and honour. (Deut. iv. 6.)

Invaluable is that training, which leads young persons, under the

Lord's blessing, to this happy personal choice. (Isa. lvi. 6, 7.)  Such

are manifestly taught of God, and guided by his Spirit into true wisdom.

For suppose a son of polished manners and intellectual endowments,

yet without right principle; or one of moderate ability, in an humble

walk of life, yet deeply imbued with practical godliness; could we

hesitate, which was the wise son, bringing honour to his father's name?

(Chap. xxiii. 24.)  Yet how often is shame instead of honour, the

father's bitter exercise! For how is his name blotted, when the de-

praved son, bent upon his own gratification, chooses the companionship

of the ungodly, and shortly becomes one with them!3  Young man!

in thy noisy mirth hast thou found solid enduring peace?4  Let the

man of God direct you in the "cleansing thy way, by taking heed

thereto according to the word."5  Let his choice be thine--"I am a

companion," not of riotous men, but "of all them that fear thee, and of

 

     l IKings, xvii. 13-15, with xxi. 1-4, 19.      2 Acts, xxiv. 24-26; xxvi. 27-29. 2 Tim. iv.16, 17.

    3 Chap. xix. 26; xxiii. 19-22; xxix. 3, 15. Luke, xv 13.

    4 Chap. xiv. 13. Eccles. ii. 2; vii. 6.            5 Ps. cxix. 9, 11.

                         * Heb. perverse in two ways, Jam. i. 8.


534                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

them that keep thy precepts."1  Meet the enticements of thy former

companions with a decided protest--"Depart from me, ye evil-doers;

I will keep the commandments of my God."2  Here is honour to thy

father, happiness to thyself, usefulness to the Church, meetness for

heaven.

       Parents!  Do we shrink from this overwhelming shame?  Let us

more diligently, more prayerfully cultivate that wise and holy training

of our children, which is God s appointed ordinance; and which, how-

ever long or severely he may try our faith, he will not fail to honour

in his fittest time. (Chap. xxii. 6.)

 

8. He that by usury and unjust gain increaseth his substance, he shall

                 gather it for him that will pity the poor.

      What a deadly curse is it to be under the spell of covetousness!

Everything that is "honest, just, pure, lovely, and of good report," is

sacrificed to this idolatrous principle.  No laws can bind it.  God had

fenced in the rights of his poor people with solemn and plain obliga-

tions.3  And he will not suffer their rights to be lightly regarded.

"I know"--saith the man of God--"that the Lord will maintain the

cause of the afflicted, and the right of the poor." (Ps. cxl.12.)  As a

God of equity, often does he make selfishness to punish itself, and

even to turn to the advantage of the oppressed.4  Ill-gotten gains are

a dangerous and uncertain possession.5  A man labours for himself,

and his harvest falls into better hands; 'not intending anything of

himself; but it is so done through God's secret Providence.'* In this, as

in every view, godliness "has the promise of the life that now is."

(1 Tim. iv. 8.)  It brings "the great gain of contentment" (Ib. vi. 6),

and restrains those inordinate desires for wealth, which ruin all right

principles, and "drown men in destruction and perdition." (Ib. verse

9.)  "A man's life consiseth not in the abundance of the things which

he possesseth." (Luke, xii. 15.)  Why should we seek to increase our

substance by unjust gain, when we have our Father's promise--"All

things shall be added to you" (Matt. vi. 33)--yea, when his divine

power hath given unto us all things pertaining unto life and godliness?

(2 Pet. i. 3.)

 

9. He that turneth away his ear from hearing the law, even his prayer shall

                                         be abomination.

      This does not mark the frailty, infirmity, or temptation, that too

 

     1Ps. cxix. 63.                                                               2 Ib. verse 115.

     3 Exod. xxii. 24. Lev. xxv. 36. Deut. xxiii. 19, 20. Ezek. xviii. 13.

     4 Chap. xiii. 22. Job, xxvii. 13, 16, 17.               5 Chap. x. 2; xxi. 6.

*Diodati. Eccles. 11.


CHAPT. XXVIII. 9.                                       535

 

often interrupts the hearing of the law, and damps the attentive interest;

or even the occasional rebellion against the divine commands.  The case

described is that habitual and obstinate rejection of God, that despises

his ordinances, and refuses the instruction of his Ministry.  Awful

indeed is it, that there should be such a rebel.  Yet thus do "the

ungodly, while they take God's covenant into their mouth, hate in-

struction, and cast his words behind them." (Ps. 1. 16, 17.)  Nay, even

in his church will "they come before him as the people come, and sit

before him as his people; they hear his words, but they will not do them.

(Ezek. xxxiii. 31, 32.)  If the subject thus turneth away his ear from the

law of his Sovereign, every prayer that he may present in time of dis-

tress his Lord will regard as an abomination.  (Chap. i. 28, 29. Zech. vii.

11-13.)  A fearful thought, that, however speciously and smoothly

fashioned, in order to impose upon man, it is no less in the sight of

God than a blessing judiciously cursed.  Justly is the door of audience

closed against the presumptuous hypocrite.  'Great reason that God

shall refuse to hear him, who refuseth to hear God.'*  And what if his

language now--"Depart from me"--should be taken out of his mouth

at the great day, as the seal of his everlasting doom! (Job, xxi. 14;

xxii. 17, with Matt. xxv. 41.)

       A strange contradiction, that this open rejection of God should be

connected with any form or semblance of religion!  And yet often

would the self-deceiver compensate for the disobedience of a plain

command 'by the performance of some external duty.  Israel presented

"the multitude of sacrifices" as a price for the neglect of practical

obligations.  "Vain oblations!  Incense that was abomination!" (Isa. 11

i. 11-15. Ps. lxvi. 18.)  Often now praying at home is an excuse for

turning away from hearing the law in God's own house.  Such prayer is

solemnly declared to be abomination. Often also is the law of charity

and even of bounden duty evaded, to maintain a profession of godliness,

hateful in his eyes, who will bring to open shame every hypocritical

service. (Matt. xv. 8.)  Does God trifle with man?  Assuredly he will

not suffer man thus to trifle with him.

      Be it ever remembered, that godliness is God's whole service; that

"the wisdom from above is without partiality, and without hypocrisy"

(Jam. iii. 17); that to extol one ordinance at the expense of another;

to decry preaching for the sake of commending prayer; is proof alike

of a false judgment and an unsound heart.  To reject any divine

ordinance is proud will-worship; a plain proof, that the privilege has

never been enjoyed. For no beggar would slight the door, where he

had been used to receive his blessing.  O my God! let me lie in thine

own bosom, or at thy feet, that my will may be lost in time, and my

happiness found in a whole-hearted devotedness to thyself!

 

* Bishop REYNOLDS on Hos. xiv. 8.


536                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

10. Whoso causeth the righteous to go astray in an evil way, he shall

      fall himself into his own pit but the upright shall have good things in

      possession.

      To delight in the enticing of sinners in an evil way, is the very

image and aspect of the tempter.  But the chief delight, the main

effort, is to cause the righteous to go astray.  No rejoicing is so great, as

when "a standard-bearer fainteth."  Because, while it shews the

seducer's enmity to the truth, it countenances him in his sin.  Yet how

transient is his joy!  Success is his ruin.  By the retributive justice of

God, he often falls into his own pit. (Chap. xxvi. 27.)  The snare of

Balaam for the people of God ended in his own ruin.1

      The malice of Satan and his emissaries sets out the faithfulness of

our Almighty Keeper.  "Thou preparest a table for us in the presence

of our enemies," who gnash their teeth at the sight. (Ps. xxiii. 5.)

Even if they succeed for a while in leading the righteous astray, recover-

ing mercy is in store for them;2 and brought out of the snare in deep

humiliation, the upright, instead of the evil meditated against them,

have good things in possession.  What good things they are, can never be

fully written or thought of.  For "eye hath not seen, nor hath ear

heard, neither hath it entered into the heart of man." (1 Cor. ii. 9.)

But whatever they be--Christian--take them to thee, claim thy right,

and be not robbed of thy portion.  And if we have good things in

possession, much more we have in reversion "an inheritance undefiled,

unfading," of which none can spoil us. (1 Pet, i. 4.) "Who shall sepa-

rate us from our Father's love?  Neither life, nor death; neither earth

nor hell!' (Rom. viii. 39.)

 

11. The rich man is wise in his own conceit; but the poor that hath

understanding searcheth him out.

      To be truly wise, and wise in our own conceit, are two things often

confounded, but essentially opposite.  But though riches do not always

bring wisdom (Job, xxxii. 9), the rich man often pretends to it, and

ascribes his success to his own sagacity, though he may be manifestly

simple and foolish.  The Apostle therefore, with a reference to this

besetting temptation, directs a "charge to them that are rich in this

world that they be not high-minded." (1 Tim. vi. 17.) The prophet

brings the wealthy prince of Tyrus on the stage, and shews him to us

in all the folly of his conceit. (Ezek. xxviii. 2.)  Obviously indeed the

rich man has many advantages above the poor, in leisure and oppor-

tunities of instruction.  Yet on the other hand, worldly elevation

operates unfavourably.  He is shut out from many opportunities of

 

     1 Rev. ii. 14. Num. xxxi. 15, 16, with 8;             2 Ib. verse 3. Luke, xxii. 31, 32.


CHAP. XXVIII. 12.                                       537

 

Christian instruction.  The atmosphere of flattery clouds that faculty

of self-knowledge, which is the basis of true wisdom.  And how natural

is it to think himself as wise as his flatterers represent him; as much

above his neighbours in understanding as in station!  Hence he

becomes dogmatical in over-weening conceit,. fond every way of dis-

playing his fancied superiority.  Yet, as in the case of Naaman's ser-

vants (2 Kings, v. 13), the intelligent good understanding of a poor man

may search him out, and see through this false gloss.  Specially, when

endued with a measure of spiritual understanding, the poor man may

expose his superior to just mortification. (John, ix. 30-34.)  Indeed

Hle universe possesses not a more dignified character than the poor wise

man.   Did not the incarnate Lord honour this station supremely, by

taking it on himself? (Philip. ii. 7.)  To walk in his footsteps, in his

spirit, is wisdom, honour, and happiness, infinitely beyond what this

poor world of vanity can afford.

 

12. When righteous men do rejoice, there is great glorly: but when the

wicked rise, a man is hidden.

      "We are made"-- said a righteous man--"as the filth of the earth,

and are the offscouring of all things unto this day."1  Yet these are the

men, who "bear up the pillars of the state,"2  When therefore they

rejoice--when they are raised to honour,--there is great glory.3  The

whole kingdom feels more or less the influence of this national blessing.

Godliness is countenanced.  Men are protected in the free exercise of

their religion.  "When Mordecai went out from the presence of the

king in the king's royal apparel, the city of Shushan rejoiced, and were

glad.  The Jews had light, and gladness, and joy, and honour; in

every province a feast, and a good day," (Esth. viii. 17.)  The same

result is seen in the experience of the Church.  When "the Churches"

had rest" from the fiery trial, "they were edified, and walked in the

fear of the Lord, and in the comfort of the Holy Ghost. (Acts, ix. 31,)

And what glory so great, as the sunshine of the enjoyment of their

God!

     But when the wicked rise to honour, how is this glory eclipsed!  The

people of God are removed into corners, silenced, hidden. (Verse 28.)

The light of upwards of an hundred prophets, and even of Elijah him-

self, was hidden for a while under the tyranny of Ahab.4  And in every

age the power of the wicked, especially under a despotic rule, hides much

valuable influence.  Yet it is hidden only to the eye of sense.  For of those,

who "wander about in sheep-skins and goat-skins, in deserts, and caves

of the earth," what greater glory could we give, than the divine inscrip-

tion stamped upon them--"Of whom the world was not worthy?"5

 

      1l Cor. iv. 13.                    2 Ps 1xxv. 3.                  3 Chap. xi. 10; xxix. 2.

     4 1 Kings, xvii. 2, 3;  xviii, 4; xix. 1-4.                5 Heb, xi, 37, 38, Rev. xii, 6.


538                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

13. He that covereth his sins shall not prosper:  but whoso confesseth and

forsaketh them shall have mercy.

      God and man each cover sin; God in free unbounded grace (Ps.

lxxxv. 2); man, in shame and hypocrisy.  The sinners here contrasted

are chargeable with the same guilt.  But how opposite are the remedies

adopted, and their several results!   The contrast is not between great

sins and small, but between sins covered, and sins confessed and forsaken.

Whoso covereth the smallest sin, shall not prosperWhoso confesseth and

forsaketh the greatest, shall find mercy.  "Love covereth" our neigh-

bour's sins (Chap. x. 12); pride our own.  The proud sinner naturally

wishes to be; thought better than he is.  His sin must have some cover.*

He must at least give it a good name.  Isa. v. 20.)  He would cover it,

if possible, from himself; putting it out of mind; banishing all serious

thoughts; stifling conviction; and then trying to persuade himself

that he is happy.  To escape evil consequences, a lie is resorted to.

Or if the facts are too plain to be denied; 'the worst part is unfounded.

We were not in it so much as our neighbour.'  Ignorauce, good, or at

least not bad, intentions, custom, necessity, strong temptation, sudden

surprisal, the first offence; constitutional infirmity; even the decrees

of God‡--one or more are pleaded in palliation.  Or to save our

honour--rather our pride--the blame must be shifted on another.§

Even God himself is made accountable--a secret but daring charge!

carrying with it its own self-contradiction.  Indignantly he challenges

the proof, and lays the sin at the right door.  (Isa. 1. 1. Jam. i. 13.)

More commonly, but most wrongfully, it is laid upon Satan.  The most

of his power is, that he is a tempter.  And no claim could he have

ever established, had not we willingly sold ourselves to his service.

Our father Adam--again--must bear the burden.  'Must our "teeth

be set on edge" for the "sour grapes which he ate?" (Ezek. xviii. 2.)

Must the unborn children be held responsible for the inheritance, which

their father lost?  'But it was the nature that sinned, of which we are

a component part.  We "were in his loins" (Heb. vii. 10) at the time,

and therefore we share his responsibility.  Our own personal sin has

ratified the deed by our own free and repeated consent.  All these

 

     * Cicero stamps confession of wickedness as disgraceful and dangerous (turpis et peri-

culosa. Cont. Verrem, Lib. iii.)  Thus does Heathen morality develope the pride of depraved

nature.

     Cain, Gen. iv. 9; Rachel, xxxi. 34, 35; Joseph's brethren, xxxvii. 31-35; David,

2 Sam. xi. 15, 25; the adulteress, chap. xxx. 20.  Comp. Jer. ii. 23; Peter, Matt. xxvi. 70;

Ananias and Sapphira, Acts, v. 1-8. Is not this a sad propensity in children?  The first

offence may be trifling.  But the fear of punishment induces a lie.  Another lie is necessary

to cover the first.  Every step adds to sin.

     ‡ Jer. vii. 10. (Comp. Calv. Instit. b. iii. c. xxiii. § 12-14.

     § Adam and Eve, Gen. iii. 12, 13. Comp. Job, xxxi. 33; Aaron, Exod. xxxii. 21-24;

Saul, 1 Sam. xv. 20, 21; Pilate, Matt. xxvii. 24 26.


CHAP. XXVIII. 13.                           539

 

attempted transfers are vain coverings.  Conscience bears witness to

the truth, that no man takes harm but from himself.

     But even this admitted--man with ceaseless ingenuity still

attempts to frame a cover, for his sin.  Some supposed good deeds are

put forth as a compensation. (Mic. vi. 6, 7.)  And by balancing good

and evil respectively against each other, he hopes to establish some

preponderance in his favour.  Yet all these fig-leaf coverings (Gen.

iii. 7) for his nakedness only shew his determination to hold his sin,

and his pride of heart, which would rather hide it from God himself

than submit to receive free mercy as a self-condemned sinner.

      These attempts however to cover sin shall not prosper.  The voice of

an offended God summoned Adam from his hiding-place to receive his

sentence. (Gen. Ill. 9.)  "The voice of Abel's blood cried from the

ground," and the murderer became "a fugitive and a vagabond in the

earth." (Ib. iv. 10-12.)  Conscience lashed Joseph's brethren with the

sin of bye-gone days. (Ib. xlii. 21.)  Sauls covering his sin cost him his

kingdom.1  "The leprosy of Naaman clave to Gehazi and his seed for

ever."2  The proud accusers of their fellow-sinner were "convicted by

their own conscience."3  "There is no darkness, nor shadow of death,

where the workers of iniquity may hide themselves."4  Their darkest

deed is wrought in the open face of an all-seeing God, and "set in the

light of his countenance,"5 to "be proclaimed upon the house-tops"

before the assembled world.6

     This unsuccessful attempt to cover sin, while it adds to the guilt,7

is fraught with misery.8  The love of sin struggles with the power of

conscience.  The door of access to God is barred.9  Christian confi-

ence is clouded;10 and, unless Sovereign mercy interpose, it must end

in the sting of "the never-dying worm."  The covering of the disease

precludes the possibility of the cure.  Only the penitent confessor can

be the pardoned sinner.

       Long indeed is the struggle, ere every false cover is cut off; ere the

heartless general confession--'We are all sinners'--is exchanged for

the deep-felt personal acknowledgment, "giving glory to God.  Thus

and thus" have I done.  Behold I am vile.  What shall I answer thee?

I will lay mine hand upon my mouth."11  But glorious is the divine

victory over pride and sullenness, when this first act of repentance,

this first step of return (Luke, xv. 17, 18), is heartily accomplished.

God needs not confession for his own information.  But he demands it

for our good.  It brings no claim on his mercy.  But it is a meetness

for the reception of it.  Christ has fully satisfied the claims of justice.

 

      1 1 Sam. xv. 21, 23.               2 2 Kings, v. 27.                3 John, viii. 9.

      4 Job, xxxiv.-22.                    5 Ib. xxxiv. 21. Ps. xc. 8.

      6 Luke, xii. 2, 3. Eccles. xii. 14. 1 Cor. iv. 5.                 7 Isa. xxx 1.

      8 Ib. xxviii. 20.                       9 Ps. lxvi. 18.                  10 Ib. xxxii. 3, 4.

     11 Jos. vii. 19, 20. Job, xl. 4.


540                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

But the claims must be acknowledged in the humble acceptance of the

benefit.  The mercy is ready; but the sinner must sue it out--"Only

acknowledge thine iniquity." (Jer. iii. 13.)  Our yearning Father is

"waiting" for this moment, "that he may be gracious."1  There is no

further keeping of anger.  He shall have mercy, instant reconciliation.*

Words may be few while the heart is full.  With David it was but a

single sentence; but the closet workings of his heart witnessed to the

enlargement and ingenuousness of his sorrow.  Thus man confesses

the debt; God crosses it out from his book; and sweet is the penitent's

song--"Blessed is he, whose sin, is covered."  (Ps, xxxii. l.)  The dying

thief confesses, and the condemned malefactor is crowned with life

eternal. (Luke, xxiii. 43.)

      But we must not overlook the distinctive feature of this confession.

It is not that of Pharaoh, extorted on the rack;2 or of Saul and Judas,3

the stinging of remorse; or of the Pharisees and Sadducees,4 mere

formal profession; or of the harlot,5 a cover for sin. Penitent faith

confesses in the act of laying the hand upon the great sacrifice,6 and

hence draws strength of purpose to forsake all that has been here con-

fessed.  For while the hypocrite confesses without forsaking,‡  the hearty

forsaking is here the best proof of tile sincere confessing.

     And this first act of the penitent is matured into the daily habit

of the saint.  The further we advance, the deeper will be the tone

of confession.7  The moment sin is seen to be sin, let it be laid on

the Surety's Head.  Every moment of unconfessed sin adds to its

burden and guilt.  The thought of a nature estranged front God; a

heart full of corruption; sins of youth and age; before and after con-

version; against light and conviction, knowledge and love; the sins of

our very confessions, their defilement, coldness, and too often self-

righteous tendency; all supply abundant material for abasing acknow-

ledgment.  Plead the greatness, not the smallness of our sin.8  Never

deem any sin so trifling, as not to need the immediate application of the

blood of atonement.  Genuine conviction gives no rest, until by the

believing apprehension of this remedy the peace of God is firmly fixed

in the conscience.  As Bunyan so accurately pictured--not at the

wicket-gate, but at the sign of the cross, did the Christian find the grave

of sin.  Here it is lost, forgotten, never found. (Jer. l. 20.)

 

     1 Luke, xv. 20. Hos. v. 15.            2 Exod. ix. 27, 34.

     3 1 Sam. xxiv. 16, 17; xxvi. 3, 4. Matt. xxvii. 4, 5.               4 Matt. iii. 7.

     5Chap. vii. 14.                             6 Lev. xvi. 21.                   7 Job, xl. 4; xlii. 6, Ezek. xvi. 63.

     8 Ps. xxv. 11. with Luke, xviii. 11. Comp. Isa. xliii. 24-26,

           * Ps. xxxii. 5. Comp. similar examples, 2 Chron. xxxiii. 12, 13; Jer. xxxi. 18-20;

Jonah, iii. 5-10; Luke, xv. 21-24; xxiii. 40-43. See also the promises, Lev. xxvi. 40-42;

2 Chron. vii. 14; Job, xxxiii. 27, 28; Isa. i. 16-18; lv. 7; Ezek. xviii. 21, 22; 1 John, i. 9.

        2 Sam. xii. 13, with Ps. li.  See also his tender dread of covering sin. Ps. cxxxix.

1, 23, 24.

      ‡ Pharaoh and Saul, ut supra.


CHAP. XXVIII. 14.                                       541

 

      This evangelical humiliation lays the only solid ground for prac-

tical godliness.  It is a sorrow full of joy, and not less full of holiness.

No Achan will be reserved;1 no Agag spared;2 no right hand or right

eye favoured.3  It will not be "the unclean spirit going out, and

returning to his house with sevenfold influence;"4 or the man, who

leaves his home, but forsakes it not, all his heart and joy being still

there.  Here the forsaking will be without the thought of returning;

yea, with the fixed determination never to return. (Job, xxxiv. 32.)  It

will not be the exchange of one path in the broad road for another

more attractive; but the relinquishment of the whole road with all its

bye-paths.  The inner principles as well as the outer walk; "the

unrighteous thoughts," no less than "the wicked ways" will be for-

saken heartily and for ever. (Isa. lv. 7.)

 

14. Happy is the man that feareth alway: but he that hardeneth his heart

                                    shall fall into mischief:

      This Proverb fitly follows the last.  Confession precedes, godly fear

follows, the reception of mercy, as the end for which it is given, and

the proof of its reception. (Ps. cxxx. 4.)  It implies no uncertainty of

our safety; but, by guarding us against fresh wounds of conscience, it

more firmly maintains our confidence.  If we believe and rejoice in the

Lord as "our Sun," we would fear him alway as "a consuming fire."5

This fear is our security.6

     We may here profitably glance at some Christian paradoxes.  How

is happiness to be found in constant fear?  Is fear to be the atmosphere

or the spirit of a child of God? Where "love makes perfect," there

can be no unquiet rollings or doubtings of heart. (1 John, iv. 18.)  But

godly fear preserves the sunshine, and seals our special acceptance.

(Isa. lxvi. 2.)  We walk with our Father in holy watchfulness and

peace.  Again--We readily conceive the happiness of trust. (Chap. xvi.

20.)  How do we link with it the happiness of fear?  So far from fear

being contrary to faith, it is a component part of it, or at least its

inseparable adjunct (Heb. xi. 7); the discipline, that preserves it from

presumption.  Faith without fear is self-confidence and self-delusion.

Nay--the assurance of our "standing by faith" is balanced by an instant

and most needful exercise of fear. (Rom. xi. 20.)  Who grasped a more

triumphant confidence than Paul?  Yet without presuming upon a

long and consistent profession, self-distrust, watchfulness and diligence

established his confidence.7  'If there be truth in the Christian's assur-

ance, not sin itself can disappoint him, it is true.  But it is no less

 

      1 Josh. vii. 1.            2 1 Sam. xv. 20.        3 Mark, vi. 17-20; ix.43-48.

      4 Matt. xii. 43, 44.   5 Ps. lxxxiv. 11, with Heb. xii. 28, 29.

      6 Hab. iii. 16.           7 Ib. viii. 33-39, with 1 Cor. ix. 27.


542                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

true, that if he does not fear sin, there is no truth in his assurance.'*

Instead of being afraid to mix faith and fear, dread their separation.

Again--the righteous is bold as a lion (Verse 1); yet he feareth alway.

But Christian courage, though opposed to slavish, forms the very

essence of godly fear.  The three confessors were bold before the

Babylonish autocrat; yet they so feared to offend against God, that

"the burning fiery furnace" was the better alternative in their eyes.1

       Thus is holy fear every way identified with happiness.  It is a fear

of reverence, not of bondage; of caution, not of distrust; of diligence,

not of despondency.  In proportion as we are raised above tormenting

fear, we cherish a deep reverence of the majesty and holiness of God, a

child-like fear of displeasure, a jealousy over our motives, desires, and

the risings of our evil propensities, and an abhorrence and shrinking,

not only from sin, but from the temptations and occasions of sin.  Well

does the Christian: know the value of this conservative principle; as far

removed from legality as from presumption.  One, whose mournful

experience gives additional weight to his words, warns us, as "sojourn-

ers" in a world of evil, and with hearts so often betraying our steps, to

"pass our time in fear."  If we be surely, we are "scarcely, saved."

(1 Pet. iv. 18.)  Though there be no uncertainty in the end, there is

appalling difficulty in the way--"Let him that thinketh he standeth,

take heed lest he fall." (1 Cor. x. 12.)  The man who stands in his own

security, requires the caution more than any.  Guard against an

unheeding confidence.  Keep the sentinel at the door.  Watch for the

enemy at every turn.  Suspect a snake in every path, a snare in every

creature.  "Feed with fear."2 "Rejoice with trembling."  Yea--

"work out your own salvation with fear and trembling."3  None are

so established in grace, but in unwatchfulness they may fall into the

greatest sin.  Live then in constant fear of yourself.  This godly fear

proves self-knowledge, preserves from self-confidence, produces self-

distrust.  In wariness against a fall we are most likely to stand.  If

weakness be our frailty, the consciousness of it is our strength.  "When

I am weak, then am I strong." (2 Cor. xii. 10.)  The importance of

this principle will be seen by the contrast with its opposite.  Fear

keeps the heart tender, and the soul safe.  Security and presumption

harden the sinner, and he falls into mischief.  Pharaoh's hardness of

heart, and its consequences, were but the bravery and ruin of the devil.4

When David's self-indulgence and carelessness had swept away his

tenderness, fearfully did he fall into mischief (2 Sam. xi. 2.)  The latter

 

     1 Dan. iii. 16-18. Gen. xxxix. 9. Neh. v. 15.            2 Contrast Judg. xii.

     3 Ps. ii. 11. Philip. ii. 12.                                         4 Exod. xiv. 5-8, 23.

     * LEIGHTON on. 1 Pet. i. 17.  The Romanists--and how many Roman Protestants with

them!--have no other idea of fear, than as excluding the certainty of acceptance; whereas

its true influence is not fluctuation in doubt, but carefulness in preservation.

     1 Pet. i. 17; and Leighton in loco.


CHAP. XXVIII. 15, 16.                                             543

 

history of his wise son reads the same awful warning. (1 Kings, xi.

1-11.)  Peter's fearlessness, though the fruit of ignorance rather than

wilfulness, brought him to the very brink of destruction. (Matt. xxvi.

33-35, 41, 74.)

      A deep sensibility of sin is a special mercy.  To think what it is

what it may be; that, indulged only in thought, if the Lord restrain

not, it will end in apostasy--Oh! dare we trifle with it?  The man,

who presumes upon it, as too harmless for eternal punishment, and

promises himself peace in the way of his own heart--a voice from

heaven could scarcely describe the tremendous horrors of his case.

Every word of God is a thunderbolt levelled at him.1  Scarcely less

pitiable is the man, who makes light of his eternal state: living without

prayer; so much better in his own eyes than his more ungodly neigh-

bours; and fully satisfied with a mere external preparation for eternity.

Forget not--Christian Professor--we may be strong in confidence,

only because we are sleeping in delusion, or hardened in insensibility.

From all the mischief of self-ignorance and' hardness of heart, Good

Lord, deliver us ! *

 

15. As a roaring lion, and a raging bear, so is a wicked ruler over the

      poor people. 16. The prince that wanteth understanding is also a great

      oppressor; but he that hateth covetousness shall prolong his days.

      A godly ruler is to a land the clear sunshine of an unclouded morn-

ing; the fruitfulness of the springing grass after the rain.2  But what a

curse is a wicked ruler, where arbitrary despotism takes the place of

right!  We might as well live among the savage wild beasts of the

forest.  The lion roaring for the prey, and the bear raging in hunger--

the terror of their weaker race--are apt emblems of this tyrant over a

poor people.3  No sentiment of pity softens his bosom.  No principle

of justice regulates his conduct.  Complaint only provokes further ex-

actions.  Resistance kindles his unfeeling heart into savage fury.  Poor

and miserable indeed are the people, whom divine anger has placed

under his misrule.'‡

       Thus indeed injustice is suffered to reign upon a wide scale.  A

whole nation is afflicted by the ruthless tyranny of one man.  Perhaps

the scourge extends from the wicked ruler downwards, through all its

gradations, to the petty minions of his caprice, delegated with the sword

 

     1 Chap. xxix. 1. Deut. xxix. 19, 20.       2 2 Sam. xxiii. 3, 4. Comp. Ecclus. x. 4.

     3 Chap. xxix. 2. Zeph. ill. 3. 2 Tim. iv. 17.

     * Litany.  Comp. Ecclus. v. 5-7.

      The name seems to be given from his growling noise when hungry.

                          'Nec vespertinus circumgemit urnus ovile.'

                                                                               HOR. Epist. xvi. 51. 

     PAXTON'S Nat. Hist. of Script. p. 333.  Comp. 1 Kings, xxi. 1-7. Neh. v.15.


544                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

of power.  The wise man, in pondering all the material that makes up

a world of vanity, could not but take this desolating curse into his

account.  And so bitter was the view to his own mind, that he would

have preferred even death itself or non-existence to the alternative of;

all virtuous sensibilities crucified by the contemplation of this remediless

misery. (Eccles. iv. 1-3.)

     The princely oppressor may justly be charged with wanting under-

standing. (Isa. iii. 12.)  Even if he had established a previous reputa-

tion for wisdom, yet abused power, with all its alluring corruptions, is

enough to infatuate his judgment.  The struggle of the love of rule

with the better principle often shakes the sound balance, till step by

step his conduct loses all traits of wisdom, and exhibits a man--if not

wholly deprived of understanding--yet--what is near akin to it--

swayed by the tumult of passion.  As one proof of his want of under-

standing, often does his foolish choice of wicked ministers alienate the

affections of his people from his person, probably to the shortening of

his rule.  (1 Kings, xii. 12-19.)  And thus his perverted power fearfully

recoils upon himself.

      Widely opposite is the character of a considerate ruler, hating covet-

ousness, and living only for the good of his people. (Exod. xviii. 21.)

He may usually be expected to prolong his days.  'He may hope to

reign long and happily, having his throne erected in the hearts of his

subjects.'*

     What need then have rulers to seek for understanding, that they may

rule as the fathers of their people. (1 Kings, iii. 6-9.)  And what

cause have to bless God for our mild and happy government; pre-

served as we are from wicked despots,  who would not stop at any

tyranny, that might subserve their selfish purposes!

 

17.  A man that doeth violence to the blood of any person shall flee to the

pit: let no man stay him.

     The first law against the murderer must not be broken down.  Like

the law of the Sabbath, it was in force from the beginning.  'It was

enacted and published before him, out of whose loins the whole world

after the flood was to be repeopled; to shew that it was not meant for

a national or temporary ordinance, but for all universal and perpetual

 

                               1 1 Sam. xxii.17-19.  Dan. iii. 6, 19

     * Scott.

     Of Tyndal's celebrated work--'The obedience of a Christian Man.'--Henry VIII.

declared--'This book is for me, and for all kings to read.'  He probably only adverted to

those parts, that he might turn to accredit his own selfish rapacity.  Well would it have

been, had he pondered such important instruction as--'The king is but a servant to

execute the law of God, and not to rule after his own imagination.'  He is brought to the

throne--'to minister unto, and to serve his brethren, and must not think, that his subjects

were made to minister unto his lusts.'


CHAP. XXVIII. 18.                                       545

 

law.'*  The reason given for the command confirms its universal obli-

gation.  To destroy "the image of God" must be high treason against

God himself. (Gen. ix. 6.)  Again did God declare his mind in the

Levitical law.  No satisfaction must be taken for the murderer.

Another reason is given--"Blood defileth the land," and only the

murderer's blood can cleanse it. (Num. xxxv. 33.)  Nay--even the

Heathen judged this awful transgressor to be under the divine

vengeance. (Acts, xxviii. 4.)  The death therefore of the murderer is an

imperative obligation.  It is miscalled philanthropy, that protest

against all capital punishments.  Shall man pretend to be mere merciful

than God? Pity is misplaced here. The murderer therefore of his

brother is his own murderer.  He shall flee to the pit, hurried thither by

his own horror of conscience,1 by the sword of justice,2 or by the

certain judgment of God.3  Let no man stay him. Let God's law take

its course.

     Yet we must not cast off his soul.  Visiting the condemned cell is a

special exercise of mercy.  While we bow to the stern justice of the

great law-giver, joyous indeed it is to bring to the sinner under the

sentence of the law, the free forgiveness of the Gospel; not as annulling

his sin, but shewing the over-abounding of grace beyond the abounding

of sin. (Rom. v. 20.)

 

18. Whoso walketh uprightly shall be saved: but he that is perverse in his

                                      ways shall fall at once.

       This contrast has been lately drawn. (Verse 6.)  Indeed the Pro-

verb itself in substance has been given.  The "security of the upright,"

before marked, is here included in his salvation.  The hypocrite's

"known"4 ruin is here set out as complete--at once.5

      This upright walk will shew itself in extreme carefulness; in all

doubtful points keeping on the safer side; not venturing upon a preci-

pice, when we can walk upon even ground.  This is indeed Christian

perfection--"walking before God." (Gen. xvii. 1.)  There is no need

for Jacob's vision6 to realize his presence.  "Faith seeth that which

is invisible."7  This life may seem to miss much temporal advantage.

But what--if the upright be not rich, honourable, esteemed?  'If God

shall not cease to be; if he will not let go the reins; if his word cannot

deceive--he that walketh uprightly doth proceed upon sure grounds.'

He is saved.  This one blessing includes all.  It is the substance of

time, and of eternity.  All besides is shadow and vanity.  To dwell in

 

     1 Deut. xix. 13.                       2 1 Kings. ii.32. Exod. xxi. 14. 2 Kings, xi. 15.

     3 1 Kings, xxi. 19; xxii. 38.    4 2 Kings, ix. 33-37

     5 Chap. xxiv. 16; xxix. 1.       6 Gen. xxviii. 17.                  7 Heb .xi. 1, 27.

                         * Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on chap. xxiv. 10-12

                          DARROW'S Sermons. Ps cxl. 13.


546                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

the presence of God; in the sunshine of his countenance;1 in the light

and gladness of his joy,2 and at length in his unclouded glory3--such

is the salvation of the upright. (Ps. cxxv. 4.)  Christian! would you

part with this portion for kingdoms?  What earthly comforts can be a

substitute for it?  This supplies the place of all.

     Any want of uprightness will bring the child of God under the rod.

But he that is perverse in his way will fall at once.  None of his many

shifts shall prosper. (Ib. verse 5.)  His double ways, and his vain at-

tempt to "serve two masters," only bring him to shame. (Matt. vi. 24.)

What need have I in the highest walk of conscious integrity still to cry

--"Redeem me, and be merciful unto me!" (Ps. xxvi. 11.)

 

19. He that tilleth his land shall have plenty of bread:  but he that followeth

after vain persons shall have poverty enough.

     This Proverb also has been given before. (Chap. xii. 11.)  Such me-

mories and hearts as ours need "line upon line" in the enforcement of

practical obligation. (Isa. xxviii. 13.)  If labour be a penal ordinance,4

such a blessing is included in it, that its removal would diminish our

most substantial source of happiness.  Man was not born to be a stone

without energy; or a machine, to be moved by mere passive force.

Our true happiness is active dependence.  Habits of diligence are the

means of working it out fruitfully.  The earth "bringeth forth of itself

only thorns and thistles."  But he that tilleth his land shall have plenty

of bread.5  The blessing comes, not by miracle, to encourage sloth; but

in use of means, to stimulate exertion.

      The contrast to this plenty of bread is poverty enough.  The prodigal

is a warning beacon.  "In his father's house," doubtless engaged in

active exercise,  "there was bread enough, and to spare."  When in his

waywardness he left his plenty, and followed after vain persons, soon he

found poverty enough--"I perish with hunger." (Luke, xv. 17.)  Idle-

ness is a sin against God, against our neighbour, against ourselves.

"Not slothful in business; fervent in spirit; serving the Lord"--is

the rule of prosperity in this world's concerns; much more in the

momentous coneerns of eternity.6

 

20. A faithful man shall abound with blessings:  but he that maketh haste

to be rich shall not be innocent (unpunished, marg.)

      The study of the contrast shews the definite meaning of the terms.

A faithful man is opposed, not to the rich, but--mark the careful accu-

racy--to him that hasteth to be rich.  A man may be rich by the bless-

ing of God.7  He hasteth to be rich by his own covetousness. (1 Tim.

 

    1 Ps.xi.7.                                      2 Ib. xcvii. 11.                       3 Ib. xv. 1, 2. Rev. xiv. 5.

    4 Gen. iii. 19.                              5 Ib. ver. 18. with chap. xiv. 4; xxvii. 23-27.

    6 Rom. xii. 11. Eccles. ix. 10.    7 Chap. x. 22. Gen. xxiv. 35. 1 Kings, iii. 13.


CHAP. XXVIII. 20.                                       547

 

vi. 10.)  He may be rich, and yet faithful.  He hasteth to be rich at the

expense of faithfulness.*  The faithful man makes no loud profession.

But he bears to be looked at, even in the veriest trifles. (Luke, xvi. 10.)

He is true to his word.  He fulfils his engagements.  He has only one

principle--"unto the Lord;" under his eye; in his presence; "to his

glory."1 Try his principle by a worldly bait.  He will prefer his con-

science to his interest.  He would rather be poor by Providence, than

rich by sin.  This is the man of faithfulness.  Who shall find him?"2

But when you have found him, mark his abounding blessing; blessings

covering his head;3 blessings for both worlds.4  Is there not infinitely

more promise in the ways of God, than in the ways of sin?  Be the

path ever so tried and perplexed, only let it be a straight path,5 and the

Lord's sunshine will cheer it.  'In the hand of God'--saith a wise man

--'is the prosperity of man.'6

     But the man who has no faith, can only walk in a crooked path.  He

leaps over every bound of principle.  He hasteth to be rich.  He cannot

wait for God in the path of Christian diligence.  The promise does not

run fast enough for him.  He becomes rich too soon; he scarcely knows

or cares by what means; by any means, rather than lose his grasp.

Yet all this haste is only to his own ruin.  Instead of abounding with

blessings, he shall not be innocent.  Jacob, as a faithful man, was paid

with full wages for his work.  Though his master dealt hardly, God

dealt bountifully with him.  He abounded with blessings; while Laban,

hasting to be rich, was impoverished. (Gen. xxxi. 7-9.)   'I will study

more'--said good Bp. Hall--'how to give account of my little, than

how to make it more.'

       Hard indeed, if not impossible, is it to hold fast innocency in this

path of temptation.7  'Yet how does the Scripture combat the vice of

covetousness?  Not by asserting, that gold is only earth, exhibiting

itself under a particular modification, and therefore not worth seeking;

but by telling us, that "covetousness is idolatry," that "the love of

money is the root of all evil;" that it has occasioned in some even the

"shipwreck of their faith," and is always, in whomsoever it obtains, an

abomination?'  Even if no criminal means be resorted to, yet the

 

     1 Col. iii. 23. 1 Cor. x. 31.                             2 Heb. Chap. xx. 6. Matt. xxiv. 45.

     3 Chap. x. 6.                                                   4 Ps. xxxvii. 37; cxii. Isa. xxxiii. 15, 16.

     5 Chap. iv. 26, 27. Heb. xii. 13.                     6 Ecclus. x. 5.

     7 2 Kings, v. 25, 27.  Comp. chap. xiii. 11; xx. 21; xxi. 6.

          * Verse 22. Chap. xix. 2; xx. 14.  Even the heathen moralists could see this--

                        Ou]deij  e]plouthse  taxewj,  dikaioj  w]n.                       

MENANDER.

.   .   .   .   .  ' Nam dives qui fieri vult,

             Et cito vult fieri; sed quae reverentia legum?

             Quis metus, aut pudor est unquam properant, is avari,?'

Juv. Sat. 14. 176-178.

     Cowper's cursory Remarks on Carrocioli.    Works.     Southey's Ed. vii. 273.


548                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

immoderate desire, the perseverance in every track of Mammon, the

labouring night and day for the grand object, the delight and confi-

dence in the acquisition (Job, xxxi. 25)--all prove the idolatrous

heart (Ib. verses 24, 28), and will not go unpunished.  "They that will

be rich--that haste to be rich--fall into temptation and a snare, and

into many foolish and hurtful lusts, that drown men in destruction and

perdition. But thou, 0 man of God, flee these things." (1 Tim. vi.

9-11.)

 

21. To have respect of persons is not good:  for, for a piece of bread that

man will transgress.

     This Proverb has been more than once repeated.*  The act itself is

not good.  It is positive transgression.  The principle is worse--sordid

selfishness.  Here is perhaps a man, not of slavish or of naturally

degraded mind, but--such is the debasing influence of lust!--a man

of weight and influence; and yet abusing his power for his own ends.

It is a rich man, or a relation, or he is under some obligation, and

therefore he has respect of judgment.  Now what is right to the rich, is

right to the poor.  Thus to trample the poor under foot, the Judge of

all couuts rebellion against his own just standard.  Principle once

overpowered seldom regains its ascendancy.  Each successive trial

proves its weakness; till he, who once thought himself able to resist a

large bribe, for the veriest trifle will break with God and his con-

science.  For a piece of bread that man will transgress.‡

      Is not this, alas! a pulpit sin?  Is the Minister never drawn away

from godly simplicity by some interested motive?--to transgress his

broadly-marked obligation for a piece of bread?  In olden times this

was a besetting temptation of the sacred office.1  Let the beacon be

solemnly regarded.

       In ordinary life, a man's bread hanging upon favour, is a strong

temptation to transgress upright principles.  Cowardice and unbelief

shelter themselves under the cover of prudence.  Christian reproof is

neglected from fear of losing custom or advantage.  Our interest is

preferred to God's.  And a plain scripture obligation is put away for a

piece of bread. (Lev. xix. 17.)  Are Christians wholly guiltless in this

matter?  Is not conduct sometimes ruled by the fear of man, rather

than by "trust in God?" (Chap. xxix. 25.)  Let the temptation be

resisted at the first step, manfully, prayerfully, in the Lord's strength;

and the victory is gained.

 

            1 Ezek. xiii. 19.   Mic. iii. 5.  2 Pet. ii. 3.

    * Chap. xviii. 5; xxiv. 23, and references.

     Transgression in this place is the same word as rebellion.  Isa. i. 2. See also 1 Kings,

xii. 19.  2 Kings i.1;  iii. 5.

      ‡ Amos. ii. 6. Cato used to say of M. Coelius the Tribune, that 'he might be hired for

a piece of bread to speak, or to hold his peace.'


CHAP. XXVIII. 22, 23.                                             549

 

22. He that hasteth to be rich hath an evil eye (He that hath an evil eye.

      hasteth to be rich, marg.), and considereth not that poverty shall come

      upon him.

     Another warning word!  "Take heed, and beware of covetous-

ness." (Luke, xii. 15.)  "The lust of the eye" (1 John, ii. 16) is a

deadly blast upon the soul.  Abraham was rich without haste, with

God's blessing. (Gen.;xiii. 2.)  Little did Lot consider that his haste to

be rich was the highroad to poverty.  But step by step he "entered into

temptation."1  Every worldly prospect was blasted; and he ends his

days, a poor, forlorn, degraded tenant of the desolate cave of Zoar.

(Ib. xix. 30.)  Thus he who sought the world, lost it; he who was

ready to lose it, found it.  When Ahab's evil eye envied Naboth the

enjoyment of his vineyard; when Jehoiakim was grasping by unjust

means all that came into his reach, little did they consider, how this

haste to be rich would end in disgrace.2  But many and loud are the

warnings against covetousness, ending in shame, and filled with the

curse of an avenging God.3

     "Man of God!  Make a covenant with thine eyes"4 else thou

canst never hold thy covenant with thy God.  Remember--Not he who

knows, but who loves, most the things of heaven, will be most deadened

to the riches of earth.  The evil eye fixed on earth, can never look

above.  So much as thou lovest earth, thou losest of heathen.  Is it not

thy shame, that if heaven be thy possession, thou shouldest have so

much interest there, and yet so few thoughts, so little love?  Keep

down most carefully thine anxiety to rise in the world.  For in its

highest glory there is nothing worthy of thine heart.  Keep the things

of earth as thy outer garment, which thou canst "lay aside," when it

entangles thee in the heavenly race. (Heb. xii. 1.)  But keep heaven

next to thine heart--thy treasure--thy love--thy rest--thy crown.

Happy to be of the mind of the holy Bishop, who, when he heard of

the ruin of all his property by the plunder of the Goths--looked up--

‘Thou knowest where my treasure has long been!'*

 

23. He that rebuketh a man, afterwards shall find more favour than he

that flattereth with the tongue.

     Too often the flatterer finds more favour than the reprover.5  'Few

people have the wisdom to like reproofs that would do them good,

better than praises that do them hurt.'  And yet a candid man, not-

withstanding the momentary struggle of wounded pride, will afterwards

 

      1 Gen. xiii. 10-13; xiv. 12.            2 1 Kings, xxi. 2, 18, 19. Jer. xxii. 13-19.

      3 Chap. xxiii. 5, with Job, xx. 18-22; xxvii. 16,  17, Jer. xvii. 11. Luke, xii. 19, 20.

      4 Job, xxxi. 1 Ps. cxix. 36, 37.      5 1 Kings, xxii. 6-8, 27.   Jer. xxvi. 7, 8

      * Paulinus,  Bishop of Nola, in the fifth century.        Dr. South. See his Life.


550                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

appreciate the purity of the motive, and the value of the discovery.

'He that cries out against his surgeon for hurting him, when he is

searching his wound, will yet pay him well, and thank him too, when

he has cured it.*

      Unbelief, however, palsies Christian rebuke.  Actual displeasure, or

the chilling of friendship, is intolerable.  But Paul's public rebuke of

his brother Apostle produced no disruption between them.  Many years

afterward Peter acknowledged his "beloved brother Paul "with most

affectionate regard.1  The Apostle's painful rebuke of his Corinthian

converts eventually increased his favour with them, as the friend of

their best interests.2  The flatterer is viewed with disgust;3 the re-

prover--afterwards at least--with acceptance.  A less favourable

result may often be traced to an unseasonable time4 a harsh manner a

neglect of prayer for needful wisdom, or a want of due "consideration"

of our own liability to fall. (Gal. vi. 1.)  Let us study the spirit of our

gracious Master, whose gentleness ever poured balm into the wound,

which his faithful love had opened.  A rebuke in this Spirit is more

like the support of a friend, than the chastening of a rod.

 

24. Whoso robbeth his father or his mother, and saith, It is no transgression;

the same is the companion of a destroyer.

      The aggravation of sin is proportioned to the obligation of duty.  A

murderer is an heinous transgressor; how much more a parricide!

To rob a stranger, a neighbour, a friend, is evil; how much more a father

and mother!  The filial obligation of cherishing care is broken.  Ingra-

titude is added to injustice.  What length of wickedness will such an

hardened sinner stop at!  Could we wonder to see him the companion

of a destroyer?  This sin is however often committed without sensi-

bility,5  as if the children might dispose of their parents' property at

their own will.  These robbers would ill brook the name of thieves.

But God, who sees men as they are, and judges of them in sure

balances, ranks them among "the wicked," and will deal with them

accordingly. (Chap. xxi. 7.)

     Nor is this guilt confined to the grosser outrage.  Surely it is no

 

     1 Gal. ii. 11-14, with 2 Pet. iii. 15.                        2 1 Cor. v. with 2 Cor. ii. 1-10.

     3 Chap. xxvii. 14.              4 Chap. xv. 23.            5 Gen. xxxi. 19, 34, 35. Jud. xvii. 2.

     * Henry.

     Chap. ix. 8; xxvii. 5, 6. Ps. cxli. 5. Comp. Eccles. vii. 5.  Alas! that the example of

godly Asa should present an exception to the rule!  2 Chron. xvi. 7-10.  When Bernard

Gilpin publicly rebuked church abuses before his diocesan, instead of incurring his displea-

sure, the bishop treated him with marker favour.  'Father Gilpin'--said he--'I acknow-

ledge you are fitter to be bishop of Durham, than I am to be the parson of your church.'

Life by Bp. Carletton, p. 58.  When the philosopher asked Alexander the reason of his dis-

missal--'Either'--replied the monarch--'thou hast not marked my error, which is

proof of thy ignorance; or thou hast held thy peace, which is a proof of thy unfaithfuhness.'

--PLUTARCH's Life.


CHAP. XXVIII. 25.                                       551

 

better, when the young spendthrift wastes his father's property, and

counts it no transgression to incur debts on his account without his

knowledge or consent. (Chap. xix. 26.)  Our Lord adverts to another

species of robbery--the denial of the absolute duty of providing for

parents; and this under the pretence of devotedness to God! (Matt.

xv. 5, 6.)  But the gospel admits of no compounding of one duty for

another. (Verse 9.)  The upright Christian will place all duties upon

the same ground of Christian obedience. (Ps. cxix. 5, 6, 80, 128.)

      Young people!  As you value your soul, your conscience, your

happiness--ponder the wide extent of filial obligation; the honour,

deference, and consideration included in it; the clear stamp of God's

authority upon it; the mark of his reprobation in despising it (1 Sam.

11. 25); the certain seal of his blessing upon its practical and self-

denying acknowledgment.

 

25. He that is of a proud heart stirreth up strife: but he that putteth his

trust in the Lord shall be made fat.

     The contrast between the proud, and him that trusteth in the Lord,

is very remarkable.  It shews that pride is the root of unbelief.  The

man, having cast off God, expects nothing, fears nothing, from him.

He lives as if there was no God.  His proud heart is large; not, like

the wise man's, in fulness of capacity (1 Kings, iv. 29), buy in ambitious

grasp, and insatiable appetite.*  Never is he content within his own

bounds.  In the world he would be a Haman (Esth. iii. 1, 2) in the

church a Diotrephes--one "loving to have the pre-eminenee." (3 John,

I9.)  It is his nature to stir up strife.  Every one that does not accord

with his own opinion of himself, is supposed to be wanting in respect.

Thus "by pride cometh contention." (Chap. xiii. 10.)  And always

will there be some thorn of mortified ambition (Esth. v. 11-13), or

some fresh craving of unsatisfied desire (Eccles. v. 10, 11), wasting him,

so that he "fadeth away in his ways." (Jam. i. 11.)  What an empty

shadow of fugitive happiness!  So contrary to the fatness of him, that

putteth his trust in the Lord. (Chap. xvi. 20. Ps. lxxxiv. 12. Jer. xvii.

7, 8.)  'He shall be filled with good and solid things.'

     Christian!  Dread the occasions of stirring up strife--the canker

of vital godliness.  Keep near to thy Lord. It was when the disciples

were talking together by the way, instead of walking in immediate com-

munion with their Master, that strife was stirred up. (Mark, ix. 33, 34.)

Does not this point to the grand preservative?  Let it be thine element

and thy joy.  Here alone we cherish the life of faith.  And truly--as

Luther says--'Faith is a precious thing.' (Comp. 2 Pet. i. 1.)  It rolls

away all disquieting care. (1 Pet. v. 7.)  Our cause is with him, and

we are at rest. (Ps. xxxvii. 5-7.)  How much more, when the great

 

* Heb. Holden. Dathe.                                       Diodati.


552                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

burden is removed!  'Smite, Lord, smite; for thou hast pardoned.'

"Healed with the beams of the Sun of Righteousness, we shall be made

fat, as the calves of the stall." (Mal. iv. 2. Isa. lviii. 11.)

 

26. He that trusteth in his own heart is a fool: but whoso walketh wisely,

                                    he shall be delivered.

       Contrast the sound and fruitful confidence just mentioned, with

man's natural trust.  Our confidence determines our state. (Matt. vii.

24-27.)  To trust an impostor, who has deceived us an hundred times

or a traitor, who has proved himself false to our most important interests

is surely to deserve the name of fool.  This name therefore the Scriptures

--"using great plainness of speech"--give to him that trusteth in

his own heart.  Well does Bishop Hall call it, 'The great Impostor.'

For has it not been practising a system of deceit upon us from the

first moment of conciousness?  Yes, verily, the traitor finds his home

in our own bosom, prompting, in concert with our deadly enemy, the

most elaborate efforts for self-destruction.

     The wise man awfully illustrates his own Proverb.  It must have

been some bitter root of self-confidence, that prostrated his wondrous

wisdom in the lowest degradation. (1 Kings, xi. 1-8.)  Peter also--

how did he befool himself in his trust!  Presuming upon "the willing-

ness of the spirit," and forgetting his Lord's most needful caution

against "the weakness of the flesh;" though named a Rock, he fell as

a reed before the first breath of temptation.  Had not the everlasting

arms been underneath, it would have been the fall of Judas into the

depths of hell.  An instructive lesson to shew us, that all dependence

upon feelings, impulse, native strength, sincere purpose or conviction-

is vain confidence.  Sad experience has convinced us of this.  Yet in

the blindness of our folly, we are ever ready to trust again, if the Lord

prevent not, to our ruin.

      Truly, as good Bishop Wilson remarks--'there is no sin, which a

man ought not to fear, or to think himself capable of committing, since

we have in our corrupt will the seeds of every sin.'  None of us can

safely presume, that his heart may not hurry him into abominations,

that he cannot now contemplate without horror. (2 Kings, viii. 13-15.)

If Eve in a state of innocence could believe a serpent before her Maker;1

if "the saint of the Lord" could worship the golden calf;2 if "the man

after God's own heart" could wallow in adultery, murder, and deceit;3

if the wisest of men, and the warm-hearted disciple just referred to,

could sink so low--what may not we do?  Surely "all men are liars."

The best of men, when left to themselves, are mournful spectacles of

weakness and instability.

 

     1 Gen. iii. 1-6.               2 Exod. xxxii. 2-5, with Ps. cvi, 16.               3 2 Sam. xi. 4, 17.

     *Title of Sermon on Jer. xvii. 9.  See Bunyan's Discourse between Christian and Ignorance


CHAP. XXVIII. 27.                                       553

 

       Blessed be our God! our standing is not on the uncertainty of man's

best purpose; but upon the faithful promise, the unchangeable will,

the free grace, and almighty power of God; not therefore on ourselves,

but on the Rock, on which the Church is immovably built.  We value

then a deep knowledge of our indwelling weakness and corruption.

Painful and humbling as it is, it is establishing to our faith; and

grounds us in the gospel far better than walking over the mere surface.

This study of the heart strengthens the principle of that holy fear, which

enables us to walk wisely, and thus delivers us from the evils of a self-

confident state.  Indeed in a path, where every step is strewed with

snares, and beset with enemies, great need have we of the caution,--

"Walk circumspectly"--"looking on all sides"--"not as fools, but as

wise,"1  A sound confidence is a proof of wisdom.  Be willing that

the Lord should disappoint us of the most plausible and inviting plea-

sure, into which we may have been drawn by the dictates of our own

heart.  Let it be a standing maxim in religion to cultivate self-distrust;

never to suppose security, where God warns us of danger, never to

trust ourselves with our own keeping.  We are too weak needlessly

to expose ourselves to hazard.  We cannot pray--"Lead us not into

temptation"--when we are rushing headlong into it--or--"Deliver

us from evil"--when we seem to invite its approach.2

 

27. He that giveth unto the poor shall not lack: but he that hideth his

eyes shall have many a curse.

       'There is none that desireth want, nor that wisheth to be poor.

And therefore the carnally-minded, to save themselves from it, carefully

gather together, and enclose so much wealth as they can by any means

possible; and they think that by such means they shall avoid lack.

And indeed after man's judgment, it is the best way that a man can

take.  But the Holy Ghost doth teach us another means, clean contrary

to natural reason.  He that giveth unto the poor shall not lack.  This is

against reason, which saith, that we must gather and hold fast, to avoid

poverty.  She looketh not to what God can and will do.  She is blind

in the works of the Lord, and chiefly in those that he worketh according

to his free promise.'*

      However close we may hold our substance, who can give security

against coming to want?  But this promise gives a security, that no

earthly abundance can afford.  Covetousness indeed combines with

reason to contradict the word of God.  Yet the promise is given by

him, who hath full power to make it good; who has a thousand ways

of repaying what is done or sacrificed at his command. (Ps. xxiv. 1.)

The fruit is absolutely certain, 'as the best preventive against poverty,

 

      1 Eph. v. 15. Comp. chap. iii. 5, 6             2 Matt. vi. 13, with xxvi. 41.

                                                * Cope in loco.


554                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

putting money into the bank of heaven, which can never forfeit

credit.'*  The best securities on earth will not hinder "riches from

making to them wings. and flying away." (Chap. xxiii. 5.)  But when

have the promises of heaven ever been falsified?1  Yet after all, with

the carnal mind, covetousness prevails above faith, and a "trust in

uncertain riches makes the living God a liar."2

      Do we, the professed followers of Christ, lay these truths really to

heart, testing our own principles and practice by them, and honestly

intending to take them, instead of selfish prudence and expediency, as

our rule and measure of conduct?  Most honourable is it to the

Christian profession, and a sure seal of blessing upon our family, when

we forbear to plead family claims, as an excuse for contracting our

liberality.  Again and again does God ratify this engagement. Yet

many, who are "earnest in contending for the faith" of the Gospel, and

who would resist at any cost the invasion of heresy--we fear--would

be ashamed to expose the scanty limits of their liberality.

      Did we really believe the promise annexed to this duty, we should

not so often hide our eyes from a case of distress.  Yet not only do we

neglect to look out for objects of compassion, but actually we turn

away from them, as the servant of God would turn away from sin;3

and then justify ourselves on the ground of frequent imposition, and

the many worthy objects, which mayor may not come before us.

Many a curse is entailed upon this grudging spirit, both from God and

man.4  And is there no danger here of the everlasting curse!5  Ponder it well lest,

prudence and discrimination check the glow of charity, prove a cloak for

selfishness, and obscure the light of Christian benevolence and love, which ought

to shine before men in the profession of the true servants of God.

 

28. When the wicked rise, men hide themselves: but when they perish, the

righteous increase.

      This Proverb has in substance been given before. (Verse 12.)  The

rise of the wicked to power is indeed a national judgment, greatly to be

deprecated, as the engine of cruel malice against the Church of God.

Thus has it been in all her Pagan and Papal persecutions.  And thus

it always will be, while she is in the wilderness.6  But what a tremendous

 

     1 Num. xxiii. 19. 2 Cor. i. 20.                             2 1 Tim. vi. 17. 1 John, v. 10.

     3 Job, xxxi. 1, with Gen. xxxix. 10.                    4 Chap. xi. 26. 1 Sam. xxv. 17, 25, 26, 38.

       Matt. xxv. 41-45. Jam. ii. 13; v. 1-4.                6 Chap. xxix. 27. Gen. iii. 15. Rev. xii. 6, 17.

    * Lawson in loco.

      Chap iii. 9, 10; xi. 24, 25; xiii. 7; xiv. 22; xix. 17; xxii. 9. Deut. xv. 7-10. Ps.

xli. 1-3; cxii. 5-9, with 2 Cor. ix. 6-11. Eccles. xi. 1, Isa. xxxii. 8; lviii. 7-11. Matt. v. 7.

Luke, vi. 38.  Observe the glowing exubernce of this last promise--Not only "shall it be

given you"--but good measure--justly proportioned to the exercise of love--pressed down

--to secure it as full measure--shaken together--as with corn, that it may lie closer in its

place--and as if this were not enough--running over--without bounds--given into your

bosom--so that you shall taste the large indulgence of the blessing.


CHAP. XXIX. 1.                                            555

 

weight of guilt and punishment is involved in thus fighting against

God! (Acts, ix. 4.)  Little do the wicked know the preciousness of the

saints in his sight,1 their perfect security under his cover,2 the sovereign

restraint which he has placed upon her enemies,3 and the triumphant

issue of all opposition against her."

      The power of the wicked even here however is but for a moment;

and when they perish--as perish they will--the righteous shall increase.

A great increase was there to the Church in the days of godly Hezekiah,

when the doors of the temple, which his wicked father had shut up,

were open from a national profession and consecration to God.5  The

immediate result of Haman's overthrow, was not only toleration and

encouragement of the true religion, but a large increase to the number of

its professors. (Esth. viii. 17.)  In the early ages of the Christian Church,

after the death of the persecuting Herod, "the word of God grew and

multiplied." (Acts, xii. 23, 24.)  And in our own annals, at the removal

of Mary from her ill-used power, the Christian exiles returned from their

continental hiding-place, bringing with them a large increase of bless-

ing both to the Church and nation.  Thus "out of the eater came forth

meat, and out of the strong came forth sweetness." (Judg. xiv. 14.)  The

cross is the enriching blessing to the Church, and to every individual

member of it.

 

CHAPTER XXIX.

 

1. He that being often reproved (a man of reproofs, marg.) hardeneth his

his neck, shall suddenly be destroyed, and that without remedy.

THIS is indeed an awful word. The intractable ox, hardening his neck

against the yoke,6 is but too apt a picture of the stubborn sinner, casting

off the restraints of God.  This was the uniform complaint against

Israel,7 a true picture of the mass of the ungodly before our eyes.  Con-

viction follows upon conviction, chastening upon chastening.  Still the

the rebel hardens his neck, stops his ears against the voice of God, and

invites his threatened judgments.

      Awfully frequent are these instances among the children of godly

parents or the hearers of a faithful minister.8  Every means of grace is

a solemn but despised reproof. Aggravated sin makes the judgment of

a righteous God more manifest.  The more enlightened the conscience

the more hardened the neck.  Every beating pulse is rebellion against a

God of love.

 

      1 Zech. ii. 8.                         2 Isa. xxvi. 20.                     3 Ps. Ixxvi. 10.

      4 Exod. xv. 1. Isa. li. 9-11. Rev. xviii. 20.

      5 2 Chron. xxviii. 24. xxix. ; xxx. 13-25.                       6 Jer. xxxi. 18.

      7 Exod. xxxii. 9.  2 Chron. xxxvi. 13-16. Neh. ix. 29. Isa. xlviii. 8. Jer. xvii. 23. Zec. vii.

            11, 12. Acts, vii. 51.                                               8 Chap. v. 12, 13. 1 Sam. ii. 12.


556                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

      Sometimes it is more the immediate voice of God.  An alarming

illness, a dangerous accident, or the death of a companion in wicked-

ness, is "the rod and reproof" intended to "give wisdom." (Verse 15.)

But if the "fool" continue to despise all God's reproof, his destruction

will be sudden,1 and without remedy.2

       Such was the destruction of the old world, and of the cities of the plain,

long hardened against the forbearance of God.3  Pharaoh grew more

stubborn under the rod, and rushed madly upon his sudden ruin.4  Eli's

sons "hearkened not unto the voice of their father, and in one day died

both of them."5  Ahab, often reproved, by the godly prophet, hardened

his neck, and "the bow, drawn at a venture," received its commission.6

How must Judas have steeled his heart against his Master's reproof!7

Onward he rushed, "that he might go to his own place."8  Truly Divine

patience has its end.  And this fearful moment once arrived, "the

vessels of wrath, endured with much long-suffering," are now shewn

more manifestly, as "fitted for destruction." (Rom. ix. 22.)  No remedy

--not even the Gospel--can remedy the case.  As they lived, so they

die, so they stand before God--without remedy.  No blood--no advo-

cate, pleads for them.  As they sink into the burning lake, every billow

of fire, as it rolls over them, seems to sound--without remedy.

      Sinner--Oh! that thou wouldst be wise to consider thy guilt, thy

state, thy prospect, while yet "thy judgment and damnation linger!"

Is not "the Spirit of grace" pleading with thine heart?  Would he not

now save thee, wouldst thou but obey his call?  Thou art standing

upon mercy's ground, betwixt heaven and hell.  O thou God of al-

mighty sovereign grace, shew "a pattern" of thy "long-suffering."

(1 Tim. i. 16.)  Let the sinner sing thy everlasting praise, as "a brand

plucked out of the fire" a monument of thine over-abounding grace.

(Zech. iii. 2.)

 

2. When the righteous are in authority, the people rejoice: but when the

wicked beareth rule, the people mourn.

    'The robes of honour to the righteous are the garments of gladness

to the people.  The sceptre of authority to the godly is the staff of com-

fort to the people.  On the other hand, the vestments of dignity to the

wicked are the weeds of mourning to the people.  The throne of command

to the one is the dungeon of misery to the other.  The titles of honour

given to the one are sighs of sorrow wrung from the other.*  The con-

trast of the government of Mordecai and Haman illustrates this joy and

 

     1 1 Thess. v. 3.                                2 Chap. i. 22-30; vi. 15; xxviii. 14, 18. Isa. xxx. 12-14.

    3 Luke, xvii. 21-29.                         4 Exod. ix. 21,34; x. 27, 28; xiv. 28.

    5 1 Sam. ii 25, 34; iv. 11.                6 1 Kings, xviii. 18; xxi. 20; xxii. 28, 34.

    7 John, vi. 70; xiii. 10, 11, 18-27.  8 Matt. xxvi. 14-16. John, xiii. 30. Acts, i. 25.

                      * Jermin. Comp. chap. xxviii. 12, 28.  Ecclus. x. 3.


CHAP. XXIX. 3.                                            557

 

mourning.1  The special rejoicings at the accession of Solomon might

probably be connected with the confidence, that he would "walk in the

ways of David his father."2  The reigns of the righteous kings of Judah

were pre-eminently distinguished by national happiness.3  The glorious

era yet in store for the world, is, when "the Lord shall bless" his own

kingdom, "as the habitation of justice and mountain of holiness."4  For

what but righteousness can truly bless either an individual, a family, or

a nation?*

       When therefore the wicked bear rule--the people--not the godly--

only mourn.  The depth of the mourning is surely the joy at the removal

of the scourge.  Meanwhile it is borne by "the faithful in the land" as a

national scourge.5  And 'if tears be their drink, patience will be their

bread, till God have mercy on them.'   What need have we to thank

God, that our guilty country, with so much to humble us in shame,

should have been so long spared from the curse of wicked rulers!  The

tyrant rules for his own sinful ends.  The Christian sovereign for the

good of the people.

 

3. Whoso loveth wisdom rejoiceth his father but he that keepeth company

with harlots spendeth his substance.

     These Proverbs in substance have been given before.6  Yet the

variations are instructive.  The wisdom is here more distinctly de-

scribed as loving wisdom.  For he is wise not only, who hath arrived at

a complete habit of wisdom, but who doth as yet love it, or desire it, and

listen to it.'‡   Do not we hang off too loosely from its heavenly in-

fluence?  Let it be manifestly our great object, not as a good thing, but

the best--"the principal thing."§  The awakened sinner loves it from

the sense of want; the Christian from its satisfying delight.  The taste,

gives a keen edge to the appetite.  What we have grasped of the bless-

ing bears no comparison to what remains.  The day-dreams of a world

of vanity engage our affections no longer.

 

    1 Esth. viii. 15, 16; x. 3, with iii. 15; iv.1-3.       2 1 Kings, i. 39, 40, with iii. 3. Comp. iv.20.

    3 2 Chron. xv.12-15; xx. 27-30. xxix.. 36; xxx. 21.

    4 Jer. xxxi. 23. Isa. i. 26.                                     5 Eccles. x. 5, 6. Isa. iii. 4, 5. Mic. iii. 9-12.

   6 Chap. x. 1; xv, 20; xxiii. 15, 24, 25; xxvii. 11; xxviii. 7.

        *Ps. lxxii. 1-7.  Isa. xxxii. 1. It is no peculiar conceit, but a matter of sound con-

sequence, that all duties are by so much the better performed, by how much the men are

more religious, from whose abilities the same proceed.  For if the course of politic affairs

cannot in any good sort go forward without fit instruments, and that which fitteth them

be their virtues, let polity acknowledge itself indebted to religion, godliness being the

chiefest, top, and well-spring of all true virtue, even as God is of all good things.' Thus ad-

mirably docs our great Hooker insist, that 'religion, unfeignedly loved, perfecteth man's

abilities unto all kind of virtuous services in the commonwealth.'--Eccl. Pol. Book v. c. l.

            Jermin out supra.

            ‡ Basil, quoted by Bp. Patrick. Preface to Proverbs.

           § Chap. iv. 7. See the beautiful description, Ecclus. vi. 18-31; xxiv. Bp. Lowth's

elegant translation.--Lect. on. Heb. Poetry, xxiv.


558                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Let the young man consider" wisdom's pleasantness and peace,"1

her light and security,2 her "durable riches,"3 and glorious inherit-

ance;4 and "wilt thou not from this time cry" to the God of wisdom--

"My Father! thou art the guide of my youth?" (Jer. iii. 4.)  Let him

have the flower of thine age.  Is not the best sacrifice due to him, who

is above the songs of heaven, who has obtained a kingdom for those

that love him?  No worldly honour, no success of talent, will rejoice a

godly father, as will this choice for eternity. (Chap. xxiii. 23-25.)

      Folly brings its own shame and sorrow.  "The companion of the

riotous and vain persons" is readily found in fellowship with harlots,

saddening his father, by spending his substance. (Chap. xxviii. 7, 19.)

One course of vanity leads to another.  All end alike in ruin.5  He may

possess the external endowment. But the love of wisdom is the only

preservative from "besetting snares."6

       Deep indeed--is the anxiety--the joy or the sorrow--connected

with children.7  May it give a deeper tone of simplicity and pleading

in dedicating them to God,8 and training them up for his service!  Let

us early present them, as "the children, whom the Lord hath given us;"

but as his, more than our own--his property--his inheritance. (Ps.

cxxvii.3.)  Here are our springs of diligence, of hope, and of ultimate

reward.

 

4. The king by judgment establisheth the land: but he that receiveth gifts

                      (a man of oblations, marg.) overthroweth it.

        Of what avail are the best laws, if they be badly administered?

Partiality and injustice absolutely make them null and void.  And yet

it requires great integrity and moral courage to withstand the tempta-

tions of worldly policy and self-interest.  God's own throne is built and

established by judgment.9  This then can be the only establishment of the

land.l0  The compromise of it to some private ends provokes the anger

of God to the chastisement, if not the overthrow, of the land.  The article

in our Magna Charta--'We will sell justice to none'--is but too plain

evidence of the recklessness of all social principles, ere the great

standard was erected among us.

      Under the godly government of Samuel the land was established by

judgment.11 "But his sons walked not in his ways."  They were men of

oblations.  They received gifts; and the Theocracy--the great palladium

of the land--was overthrown.12  The righteous administration of David

"bore up the pillars" of the land, at a time of great national weakness.13

 

      1 Chap. iii. 17.              2 Chap; viii. 20; iv. 11, 12.      3 Chap. iii. 14, 15; viii. 18, 19.

     4 Chap. iii. 35.              5 Chap. v. 9; vi. 26. Luke, xv. 30.

     6 Chap iv. 6; vii. 4, 5.   7 Chap. xvii. 21, 25.                8 1 Sam. i. 26-28.

     9 Ps. lxxxix. 14; xcvii. 2. lsa.. ix. 7.

     10 Verse 14; xvi. 10-12; xx. 8, 26; xxv. 5. 2 Chron. ix. 8.

     11 Sam. vii. 3-12, 15-17.         12 Ib. viii. 2-7.             13 Ps. lxxv. 2-6, 10. 2 Sam. viii 15.


CHAP. XXIX. 5.                                            559

 

The same principles in the godly successors were the source of strength

and prosperity.1  The want of uprightness in Saul shook the kingdom

from his grasp;2 and the covetousness of Jehoiakim3 destroyed its

foundations, and buried him in its ruins.  Let the same consistency

pervade every grade of official responsibility.  No respect will be paid

to dignity, temporal or spiritual, except it be established with judgment.

Let men of God be in our high places; and righteousness will exalt a

nation," and our Church will be "the joy and praise of the whole

earth." (Chap. xiv. 34.)

 

5. A man that flattreth his neighbour spreadeth a net for his feet.

      Most wisely were Bunyan's pilgrims warned--'Beware of the flat-

terer.'  Yet 'forgetting to read the note of directions about the way,'

they fell into his net, and, even though delivered, were justly punished

for their folly.  The doctrine of man's goodness, strength, or freedom;

innocent infirmities; venial offences; softening down the statements of

man's total corruption; a general gospel, without close application; its

promises and privileges, without the counter-balance of its trials and

obligations--all this is frightful flattery--'the black man clothed in

white'--"Satan himself transformed into an angel of light, and his

ministers transformed as ministers of righteousness." (2 Cor. xi. 13-15.)

Unwary souls are misled.  Even unwatchful Christians fall into the net.

And while they have to thank their faithful God for deliverance, they

cannot forget his sharp and needful chastening of their folly.  Where

"the root of the matter" is not, heresy, or apostasy, is the baneful

fruit of the flatterer. (Rom. xvi. 17, 18. 2 Pet. ii. 1-3.)

      But let us guard against this net in our daily path.  Too readily do

the flatterer's words pass current.  Even when conscious of not possess-

ing the loveliness attributed to us; when we know the flatterer to have

no faith in his own words; instead of a just indignation at his smooth

hypocrisy, is there not sometimes a secret self-satisfaction at being

thought of sufficient importance to tempt to the deceit?  Nay--even.

when it is so gross as to create disgust, is this disgust always unaccom-

panied with pleasure?  Besides--What else is much of the language

of smooth courtesy, or lively interest and affection?  Who would

venture to act with confidence on this heartless profession?  Always is

the net spread to allure into some devious path; often into the grossest

wickedness.  Thus the flattering woman beguiled her prey.4  The

parasites of Darius deified him for a month, to make him the tool of

their malicious plot. (Dan. vi. 6-9.)  The enemies of Christ spread the

flatterer's net for his feet.  But here the wisdom of God was infinitely

above them, and "took the wise in their own craftiness."5

    

     1 2 Chron. i. 1; xiv. 2-7; xix. 6, 1, with xx. 21-30; xxxi. 20, 21. Isa. xxxii. l, 2.

    2 1 Sam. xiii. 12.            3 Jer. xxii. 13-19.           4 Chap. ii. 16; vii. 21; xxvi. 28.

   5 Matt. xxii. 15-23, with 1 Cor. iii 19.


560                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

      The feet of many strong men have been entangled in this net.

Indeed seldom has the frailty of the man of God been more painfully

exposed.  David honoured his God in the endurance of Shimei's curse.

But Ziba's smooth words drew him to an act of gross injustice.1

Usually some want of integrity has predisposed the mind for this

poison.  David was struggling to discover a plea for leniency to his

murderous son, when the woman of Tekoah plied him with her flattering

lips.  The bribery of passion was far more powerful than her argu-

ments.2  But bitterly did the misguided parent reap the fruit of thus

entering into the net spread for his feet.3  Wilful infatuation fully prepared

Ahab, by listening to the flattery of his lying prophets, to his own ruin.4

            Does a man thus load us with immoderate commendation?  It is

the flatterer's net.  "Ponder the paths of thy feet."5  Exchange confi-

dence for suspicion.6  Fearful is the snare to those, whose rank or

influence dispose them to walk rather before men, than before God.

Indeed religious flattery is a common snare to a Christian profession.

It may be natural, perhaps well-intentioned, to be willing to profit by

more advanced experience, and to enquire of a brother, by what means

he has been able to rise above the ordinary level; nay--even to

express our envy at his higher knowledge, faith, or love.  But all this

tends to cherish self-complacency, "a confidence in the flesh"--the

bane to that self-renouncing confidence in his Saviour, which is the clear

stamp of the faithful follower of his Lord. (Philip. iii. 3.)  Too often is

the same net spread for the feet of the Minister of Christ, whether to gain

his good opinions, or from the genuine but imprudent warmth of affec-

tion.  But oh!--think--"He is a man as thou art"--beset with

temptation--perhaps even "besides those that are common to men."

His heart, little thine; is fully susceptible of self-exalting imaginations.

And to know that he has a reputation for holiness; that he is a man of

influence; that his character is looked up to; that his opinion is valued

--this is indeed "a fiery trial," that brings out to view much base

dross of vanity. (Chap. xxvii. 21.)  Far better would it be, that our

Christian intercourse with each other should be moulded by the wise

resolution to refrain from "flattering titles," as hurtful to the creature,

and provoking to God.

 

     1 2 Sam. xvi, 1-12.          2 Ib, xiv. 4-24.              3 Ib. xv, 1-14.

     4 1 Kings, xxii. 11, 12.   5 Chap. iv. 26.               6 Chap. xxvi. 24, 25; xxvii, 14.

      * Job, xxxii. 21, 22. Compo LXX. 22, with Acts, xii. 22, 23. Surely it is enough for us

to have foes within and without to contend with, without having snares for our feet laid by

our fellow-pilgrims.  Oh! it is a cruel thing to flatter.  The soul is often more exhausted

and injured by disentangling itself from these nets, than by the hottest contest with prin-

cipalities and powers. Those who have once known the torture the believer undergoes,

while this poison is pervading his soul, the bitter, lowering medicines he must take as

antidotes, the frightful oblivion of lessons of humility which he has been studying for years,

will, I think (unless much under the influence of the enemy of souls), not administer the

noxious potion a second time,'--HELEN PLUMPTRE'S Letters, pp. 43, 44--a most profitable

volume.


CHAP. XXIX. 6.                                            561

 

6. In the transgression of an evil man there is a snare, but the righteous

doth sing and rejoice.

      There is always a snare in the ways of sin; always a song in the

ways of God. Which then are "the ways of pleasantness and peace?"1

The light-hearted sinner goes on in his flowery path.  Soon he is

"taken captive in the snare of the devil;"2 often in a snare of his own

toil.3  Transgression is in fact the snare of the soul.  Is it not wisdom

to avoid a snare?  Sinner--Think a moment.  What are "the

pleasures of sin" to the pleasures of Paradise?  Remember--Sin and

ruin are bound together; and who can put them asunder?

       The righteous may be in the same outward lot with the evil man.

But wide indeed is the gulf between their respective states. (Isa. lxv.

13, 14.)  Joseph's brethren in prison, under the sting of conscience, sink

in despondency.  Paul and Silas in prison did sing and rejoice.4  Little,

however, can be judged by their external state.  The ungodly are in

prosperity, and, the children of God "chastened every morning" (Ps.

lxxiii. 14); yet rising triumphant in the deepest exercise--"Rejoice not

against me, O mine enemy; though I fall, I shall rise again; though I

sit in darkness"--my cause apparently forgotten, my light obscured,

my character defamed--"the Lord shall be a light unto me." (Mic. vii.

8.)  What is it to be possessor of all the promises of God?  The

wealth of this golden mine no tongue of man can express; no mind of

angel comprehend.  And how abundant is the solid ground and

material of this rejoicing!  The completeness of the Saviour's work;

his constant love; the fulness of his Spirit; the sufficiency of his grace;

his faithful promise; his watchful eye; his ready help; his perpetual

intercession; and all this joy--not like that of the world, flowing and

ebbing; but heightening and overflowing through all eternity.

      But the righteous also sing--and only they.  Yet often they have no

skill for the song.  Their harp is upon the willows, as if they could not

"sing the Lord's song in a strange land."  (Ps. cxxxvii. 4.) Unbelief

remains unchecked.  The promises therefore are so faintly applied, that

distrust outweighs all encouragement.  Their brighter seasons were

enjoyed rather than improved.  No materials were laid up as principles

of life, love, and devotedness.  And therefore "in the cloudy and dark

day" they lose their time in feeble complaints, instead of striving for

life.

      Is it not worth pursuing this dishonourable evil to its sources,

whether remote or proximate?  Are we incapacitated, or only disin-

clined, to sing?  Seek a clearer exercise of faith, to rouse from indolence,

 

     1 Chap. iii. 17, with xiii. 5.                              2 2 Tim. ii. 26. Job, xviii. 9-11.

     3 Chap. v. 22; xi. 5, 6; xii. 13. Job, xvii. 8.     4 Gen. xlii. 21, with Acts, xvi. 25.


562                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

and to remove mistaken apprehensions.  And in the active energy of

faith, repent, return, watch and pray, mortify besetting sins.  Enquire

seriously--Are the materials for our song passed away?  our stated

grounds for praise sunk? Are there not a countless number of mercies

yet remaining, and preserved entire, sufficient to swallow up the smart

of the most bitter dispensation?  Let faith be employed in putting

them together, and counting them over; and surely under the deepest

gloom that ever could rest upon the soul, the harp would be taken down

from the willows, "and the righteous would sing and rejoice."*

      Add to which--Not only are these mercies left, while others are

removed. But to the watchful eye of dutiful, affectionate faith, the

value of our heavenly Father's kindness continued to us, is seen in a

clearer light, and more deeply enjoyed. And never is his grace seen

so cheering, so triumphant, as when it raises us above our trials" and

enables us to take up the song of victory on the field of battle;1

rebuking unbelief far away, and strengthening our confidence for

renewed conflict.

       And indeed even in the most sinking frame, when wounded and

disheartened with the sense of our own guilt and follies--Oh! we must,

be ignorant of the alphabet--of the gospel; if, when we have told up the

fearful account, and magnified it to its utmost--we do not grasp the

glorious word--"Where sin abounded, grace doth much more

abound." (Rom. v. 20.)  Can we then want materials for our song?

Shall not our harp reach an higher pitch?  Praised be God!  We are

hasting to a world, where it will never be unstrung, the heart never out

of tune, and the song ever new, when we shall rejoice and sing without

one faltering note in our song; without one jarring note in the song of

our brethren.2

 

7. The righteous considereth the cause of the poor; but the wicked

regardeth not to know it.

      The original gives to the Proverb a judicial aspect.  To "respect

the person of the poor" is no less unjust, than to "honour the person of

the mighty."3  But the righteous judge or advocate will consider his

cause, judge it as for God, investigate it thoroughly, and take care that

it be not lost from his own inability to defend it. (Ps. lx:xxii. 3, 4.)

This was the considerate administration of the great King of righteous-

 

      1 Rom. vii. 24, 25. 1 Cor. xv. 55-57.                  2 Isa. xxxv. 10. Rev. v. 8-10.

      3 Lev. xix. 15. Exod. xxiii. 3.

    * To some Christians of a morbid temperament, Bernard's advice may be important-

Let us mingle honey with wormwood, that the wholesome bitter may give health, when it

is drunk tempered with a mixture of sweetness.  While you think humbly of yourselves,

think also of the goodness of the Lord.'--In Cant. Serm xi.  Always are there evil days

in the world; always good days in the Lord.'--AUGUSTINE on Ps. xxxiii.

           Holden. Geier. Bp. Patrick.


CHAP. XXIX. 1.                                            563

 

ness.1  The man of God will walk after this divine Exemplar.2  'Let

him have the conscience first'--says Bishop Sanderson--'and then the

patience too (and yet if he have the conscience, certainly he will have the

patience), to make search into the truth of things, and not be dainty of his pains

herein, though matters be intricate, and the labour like to be long and irksome.'*

      Selfishness however, not truth, justice, or mercy, is the standard of

the wicked.  He considers, first the poor man's person, then his cause.

"The unjust judge" would not have "avenged the widow of her

adversary, but to save trouble to himself. (Luke, xviii. 2-5.)  Felix

regarded not to know the Apostle's cause, only that he might indulge his

own covetousness. (Acts, xxxiv. 26, 27.)  But fearful is it to sit in the

place of God3 as his representative, only to pervert his judgment for sel-

fish aggrandizement.4  For 'He that rejecteth the complaint of the poor,

and beateth them off with big words, and terror in his looks, either out

of the hardness of his heart or the love of ease, when he might have

leisure to give them audience (if he were so minded) and to take

notice of their grievances, cannot justly excuse himself by pleading --

"Behold, we know it not."'

       The maxim however obviously applies more generally to the con-

siderate regard of the righteous, and the cruel disregard of the wicked,

towards the poor.  The ordinance, that "the poor shall never cease out

of the land;" and the inequality of rank, prevailing throughout the

economy of Providence, were doubtless intended as an incitement to

Christian sympathy and enlargement.5  Consideration of the poor is the

true spirit of Christian sympathy; putting ourselves as far as may be

in their place.‡  Oh! how different is this from the impatient, un-

gracious temper, in which the suit of a poor client is sometimes dis-

patched, as if we grudged our time and pains.  Our beloved Lord not

only went about doing good" (Acts, x. 38), but he did it so tenderly,

so considerately.  Always was he ready to yield his own convenience

and even necessary comfort to the call of need. (Mark, vi. 31-34.)  The

same considerate regard for the poor marked the Apostolic administra-

tion.6  Sympathy with the poor is the practical acknowledgment of

our own undeserved mercies; specially remembering the Lord's poor,

 

     1 Ps.lxxii:.2-4, 12-14.                           2 Job, xxix.11-16; xxxi. 13, 20. Jer. xxii. 16.

    3 Ps. lxxxii. 6. Rom. xiii. 1, 2.

    4 Chap. xxiv. 11, 12. Jer. v. 28, 29. Ezek. xxii. 7, 29-31. Mic. iii. 1-4.

    5 Deut. xv. 7-11. 2 Cor. viii. 14, 15. Comp. Ecclus. iv. 8.

    6 Acts, iv 34, 35; vi. 1-6. 1 Cor. xvi. 2. 2 Cor. ix. 12, 13. Gal. ii. 10.

     * Sermon on Exodus. xxiii. 1-3.

   Dr. SANDERSON'S Sermon on chap. xxiv. 10-12.

    ‡ Ps. xli. 1. Most striking was the consideration of the poor in Bp. Ridley, imploring in

his last moments at the stake the queen in behalf of certain poor men's leases in his

bishopric likely to become void by his death.  FOXE, vii. 545, 546.  In the same noble spirit

was the remembrance of the dying Scott to his son, of the arrival of the season, when he

had been used to plant a root for the supply of the poor.


564                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERS.

 

as the representatives of Him,1 who is First and Last, and All to us;

and who, "though he was rich, yet for our sakes became poor, that we

through his poverty might be made rich." (2 Cor. viii. 9.)

      Well do those, who regard not to know, deserve their name--the

wicked.  Like Cain, they acknowledge no interest in their brother.

(Gen. iv. 9.)  Like Nabal--"It is no concern of mine."2  ‘If the poor

must be fed rather than starve'--it is casting food to a dog, rather

than holding out an helping hand to a fellow-sinner.3  This total

absence of the image of a God of love4--this utter casting off his royal

law5--surely he will require it.6

 

8. Scornful men bring a city into a snare (set the city on fire, marg.);

                            but wise men turn away wrath.

     The comparison is here between a "proud and haughty scorner,*

and a wise man."  The one is a public injury; the other a public

blessing.  The one raises a tumult; the other quells it.  The man,

who scorns to be bound by common restraint, will bring the city into a

snare by his presumption,7 or set it on fire 'by blowing the fire of divine

wrath upon it.'  Happily wise men are scattered through the land:

and their energy and prudence turn away wrath.‡  'Proud and foolish

men kindle the fire. Which wise and good men must extinguish.'§

      Another instructive illustration of the Proverb suggests itself.  Not

the tyrant over his fellow-creatures, but the scorner against his God, is

the public trouble.  Many of the kings of Judah and Israel thus brought

the city into a snare.  Their provocations of divine wrath did more to

further its ruin, than the most powerful foreign enemies.  Their influ-

ence led the people into deeper aggravations of sin, and ripened them

for judgment. ||

      But wise men stand in the gap, and turn away wrath.¶   Surely it

was wisdom in the king and people of Nineveh, instead of bringing their

city into a snare by scornful rebellion, to avert by timely humiliation the

impending destruction. (Jonah, iii. 5-10.)  Let the people be gathered;

let the Ministers of the Lord gird themselves to their work of weeping

 

    1 Matt. x. 42; xxv. 40.            2 1 Sam. xxv. 10, 11.               3 Luke, xvi. 21.

    4 1 John, iii. 17.                     5 Jam. ii. 8. Lev. xix. 18, with Luke, x. 31, 32.

   6 Chap. xxiv. 12.                    7 1 Sam. xi. 2,11. 2 Sam. x. 4; xii. 31.

  * Heb, Men of scorn. Chap. xxi. 24.

   LXX. Durell.

   ‡ 2 Sam. xx. 1, 15-22. Acts, xix. 23--41. Comp. Virg.  Aen. i. 143-153.

   § Henry.

    || 2 Kings, xxi. 9-15; xxiii. 26, 27. Isa. xxviii. 14-22. 2 Chron. xxxvi. 16,17. Jer.

xxxvi. 23-34.  Matt. xxi. 33-43; xxiii. 34-39. 1 Thes 5. ii. 15, 16.

     ¶ Muses--Exod. xxxii. 10-14. Deut. ix. 8-20. Ps. cvi. 23.  Aaron-Num. xvi. 48.

Phinehas, xxv. 11. Ps. cvi. 30. Elijah, 1 Kings, xviii. 42--45. Jam. v. 16-18. Jer. xviii. 20.

Dan. ix. 3-20. Amos, vii. 1-6. The righteous remnant--Isa. i. 9; vi. 13. Comp. Gen.

cviii. 32; Job, xxii. 30; Jer. v. 1: Ezek. xxii. 30, 31. Contrast xiii. 5. 'Nothing there-

fore can make a man so good a patriot as religion.'--Bp. HALL.


CHAP. XXIX. 9, 10.                                                 565

 

and accepted pleaders for the land. (Joel, ii. 17.)  Surely "except the

Lord of Hosts had left us a very small remnant" of these powerful

intercessors, "we should have been as Sodom, and we should have

been like unto Gomorrah." (Isa. i. 9.)  Praised be God!  The voice is

yet heard--"Destroy it not, for a blessing is in it." (Ib. lxv. 8.)  The

salt of the earth preserves it from corruption. (Matt. v. 13.)  Shall not

we then honour these wise men with reverential gratitude--"My father

--my father! the chariots of Israel, and the horsemen thereof?"*

 

9. If a wise man contendeth with a foolish man, whether he rage or laugh,

there is no rest.

      It would generally be far better not to meddle with such a fool as is

here described.  We can only deal with him on very disadvantageous

terms, and with little prospect of good.l  If a wise man contend with

the wise, he can make himself understood, and there is some hope of

bringing the debate to a good issue.  But to contend with a fool, there is

no rest, no peace or quiet.  It will go on without end.  He will neither

listen to reason, nor yield to argument.  So intractable is he, that he

will either rage or laugh; either vent upon us the fury of an ungoverned

temper, or laugh us to scorn.  This contention was a point of poignant

trial to our Divine Master. What could be more revolting than some-

times their murderous rage,2 sometimes their scornful laugh,3 both

"rejecting his counsel against themselves?" (Matt. xi. 16, 17.)  And

what if a contention with such fools should be appointed for me?  Let

me remember my days of perversity and folly.  And while this vivid

impression brings me back to their level; can I return their unreason-

able provocation, save with tenderness and compassion?  (Tit. iii. 2, 3.)

Yea--when, as the most effectual means for their benefit, I  would com-

mend them to the Almighty and Sovereign grace of God; can I forget,

that if this grace has healed my deep-rooted stubbornness, it is not less

rich, not less free, not less sufficient, for them?

      10. The bloodthirsty hate the upright: but the just seek his soul.

    This bloody hatred is the fulfilment of the first prophecy from the

mouth of God. (Gen. iii. 15.)  The first history of the fallen world puts

the seal to the prophecy--"Cain rose up against Abel his brother, and

slew him." (Ib. iv. 5-8.)  Ever since has the same testimony been

given.4  "Which of the prophets have not your fathers persecuted?"

(was the indignant remonstrance of Stephen to his countrymen) until

 

      1 Chap. xvii. 12; xxvi. 4. Eccles. x. 13. Matt. vii. 6.

      2 Luke, iv. 29. John, vii. 1; viii. 59; xi. 53.                               3 Luke, xvi. 14.

      4 Verse 27. Ps. xxxvii 12-14, 32. Gal. iv. 29. 2 Tim. iii. 12.

      * 2 Kings, ii. 12.  This acknowledgment is sometimes forced from the consciences of

the ungodly. Chap. xiii. 10-16.


566                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

they" filled up the measure of their fathers," by being "the betrayers

and murderers" of the Son of God.1  The noble army of martyrs stand

before us.  Such intensity of malice in the contrivance of the variety of

their torture!  The bloodthirsty hate the upright. (Heb. xi. 36, 37.)

Their innocency was the only ground of hatred; and, on the threatened

apprehension of any outbreak of evil, the swelling cry of the bloodthirsty

multitude was--'The Christians to the lions!'  The next picture down-

ward in the annals of the Church is not less illustrative--" I saw the

"woman "--awful sight!--"drunken with the blood of the saints, and

with the blood of the martyrs of Jesus." (Rev. xvii. 6.)  We cannot

doubt but the fierce elements of the cruelty still lie in slumbering con-

cealment.  Nothing but the Gospel can kill the principle.  Everything

short of this only chains down the violence.  In a softer mould it still

retains all its substance and power, and waits only for the removal of

present restraints to develope the same bloodthirsty hatred as ever.

      Scripture explains this murderous vindictiveness. "Wherefore

slew Cain his brother?  Because his own works were evil, and his

brother's righteous." (1 John, iii. 12, 13.)  Darkness cannot endure the

light.2  The condemning light3 of godliness excites the enmity of the

ungodly.  They cannot bear the picture.  Thus the bloodthirsty Ahab

hated his upright prophets,4 and the Jews the holy Saviour.5  Con-

formity to him is the great offence still.  'Such precise--fools, contrary

to every one beside, "turning the world upside down"--how can they

be endured?'  Their removal is a rejoicing riddance from the earth.

(Rev. xi. 9, 10.)

       And yet their God is not unmindful of their threatening troubles.

The bloodthirsty hate the upright: but the just seek his soul.  Saul sought

to murder David; Jonathan covered him.6  Jezebel was thirsting to

destroy the prophets of the Lord; Obadiah "hid them in a cave, and

fed them with bread and water."7  The enemies of Jeremiah plotted

against him; Ebedmelech saved his life.8  Herod was proceeding

against Peter's life; the Church shielded him with their prayer.9  The

bloodthirsty Jews bound themselves to murder Paul; "Priscilla and"

Aquila" were ready to "lay down their own necks for his life."10

      What a life of conflict is this, world of sin!  Need we be dissuaded

from loving it?   Need we not rather patience to endure it?  But  while

we are in it, let us be found decidedly on the Lord's side,11 "partakers,"

if needs be, "of the afflictions of the gospel." (2 Tim. i.8.) Never let

us stand aloof from our brethren's cause. (Ib. i. 16, 17.)  To help them,

is to be fellow-workers with God himself.  If union is so effective

 

     1 Acts, vii. 52. Matt. v. 12; xxiii. 32.     2 John, iii. 19, 20.                  3 Heb. xi. 7.

    4 1 Kings, xxi. 20; xxii. 8.                      5 John vii. 7. 

    6 1 Sam. xviii.. 11, 25, with xviii. 1-4.  7 1 Kings, xviii. 1-4.               8 Jer. xxxviii. 1-13.

    9 Acta, xii. 5.                                         10 Ib. xxiii. 12. Rom. xvi. 4.   11 Matt. xii. 30.


CHAP. XXIX. 11.                                         567

 

against the Church, surely its influence would not be of less moment on

the Church's side; "strengthening her stakes," establishing her founda-

tions, and enlarging her usefulness.

 

11. A fool uttereth all his mind; but a wise man keepeth it in till

afterwards.

      "There is a time for everything"--the wise man elsewhere writes

--"a time to keep silence, and a time to speak."1  It is a mark of true

wisdom to discern the times.2  Indeed the discipline, or the want of

discipline, upon the "little member," is a sound test of character.  The

man, who speaks hastily and with conceit, will be put to shame in his

folly.3  He might have been "counted" wise in his silence.4  But

silence is beyond his power--He uttereth all his mind--tells all he

knows, thinks, or intends, and runs on, until he has "poured out all his

foolishness." (Chap. xv. 2.)  It is sometimes thought a proof of honesty

to utter all our mind.  But it is rather a proof of folly.  For how many

things it would be far better never to speak indeed to suppress in the

very thought!5  How much of "foolish talking and jesting;"6 how

many angry, detracting, uncharitable words do we utter, because we

have neglected to watch, or rather to entreat "the Lord to set a watch

upon, our lips," as the door of our hearts! (Ps. cxli. 3.)  And what

wrong judgments we often pass upon men's actions, because we utter

all our mind as it were in one breath, without pondering, or perhaps

without materials to form a correct judgment!

      Indeed the words of the fool--as an old Expositor remarks--'are

at the very door--so to speak--of his mind, which being always

open, they readily fly abroad.  But the words of the wise are buried

in the inner recess of his mind, whence the coming out is more diffi-

cult.'*  This is the wisdom to be valued and cultivated.  Many things

we may keep in till afterward, which will then be far better spoken than

at the present moment. (1 Sam. xxv. 36.)  We may find reason after-

ward to suspect what at the time we were fully persuaded of.  There

is often a lightness of faith--the fruit of sudden impulse, breaking out

in sudden profession.  Beware of a loose foundation.  Men under the

present excitement run through all the sects and parties of the Church,

everywhere uttering their whole mind; "tossed to and fro, and carried

about by every wind of doctrine"--"seeking rest, and finding none."

(Eph. iv. 14.)  How much better to take time for second thoughts, to

wait, and weigh again!  We should then, instead of exhibiting a

 

     1 Eccles. iii. 1-7.                  2 Ib. viii. 5. Amos, v.13.               3 Chap. xviii. 13.

    4 Chap. xvii. 28.                   5 Chap. xxx. 32. Mic. vii. 5.         6 Eph. v. 4.

   * Cartwright. Comp. Chap. x. 14; xii. 16, 23; xiii. 16; xiv. 83.  Comp.  Ecclus.

xxviii. 25.


568                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

changing and doubtful face, gain that "good thing--a heart esta-

blished with grace." (Heb. xiii. 9.)

       This godly prudence holds in common life.  Samson fell a victim

to the folly of uttering all his mind. (Judg. xvi. 17.)  Samuel was

restrained by God from this imprudence, from a regard to his own

safety.  Never speak against our mind.  But it is not always necessary

to utter our whole mind.  Take care that we speak nothing but the

truth.  But the whole truth (as in the instance of Samuel) may some-

times be legitimately restrained. (1 Sam. xvi. 1, 2.)  The Apostle was

two years at Ephesus, without uttering all his mind against the worship

of Diana.  But was this cowardice shrinking from the truth?  His

weeping ministry, and unceasing efforts, proved his faithfulness.1  His

open protest kept in till afterwards was self-discipline, consistent with

Christian courage and decisiveness.

12. If a ruler hearken to lies, all his servants are wicked.

     The influence of the ruler's personal character upon his people

involves a fearful responsibility.  A wicked prince makes a wicked

people.2  In his more immediate sphere, if he hearken to lies, contrary

to the laws of God and of charity;3 he will never want those about

him ready to minister to his folly.  'Lies will be told to those that are

ready to hearken to them.'   Envy, ambition, malice, self-interest, will

always be at hand for prejudice and scandal.  The credulous ruler

becomes the tool of all manner of wickedness.  His corruption pushes

away the godly from his presence; and all his servants are wicked.

Exceptions there are to this maxim (as Obadiah in the court of Ahab;"

Ebedmelech in the service of Zedekiah,5 Daniel in Nebuchadnezzar's

court.6)  But this is the natural tendency, the general result, to his

own disgrace and ruin.  If he would therefore rule in uprightness and

in the fear of God; instead of lending himself to detraction or flattery,

he must carefully close his ears against doubtful characters, lest he

should countenance wicked servants, and discourage those, that will

boldly speak the truth.

      How wise was David's determination--both as the sovereign of

his people, and the ruler of his house--to discountenance lies, and

uphold the cause of faithful men! (Ps. ci. 2-7.)  Contrast Ahab sur-

rounded with his wicked prophets; all combining in one lie to please

 

     1 Acts, xix. 10, 23; xx. 31.                                    2 1 Kings, xv. 30; xvi. 2.

     3 Exod. xxiii. I. M.R.  Comp. chap. xiii. 5.          4 I Kings, xviii. 3.

     5 Jer. xxxviii. 7-13. 6 Dan. ii. 48, 49.

                 * . . . . Componitur orbis

                    Regis ad exemplum; nec tantum inflectere sensus

                   Humanos edicta valent, quam vita regent is.

                   Mobile mutatur semper cum principe vulgus.

                                                                        Claud. de Honorii Consul.

Henry.


CHAP. XXIX. 13.                                         569

 

their weak and ungodly master.  We see how ready he was to hearken

to lies, and how well the flattery worked; when he punished the only

man who was "valiant for--the truth," and who persisted in declaring

it--"not fearing the wrath of the king."*  

     But all in authority may learn a lesson of responsibility.  Let

Ministers especially, not only hold the truth in its full integrity, and

take heed that their character will bear the strictest scrutiny; but let

them turn away from the fawning flattery of those, of whose uprightness

there is at best but doubtful proof.

 

13. The poor and the deceitful man (usurer, marg.) meet together:  the

                                    Lord lighteneth both their eyes.

     The doctrine of this proverb, as of one similar to it (Chap. xxii. 2),

seems to be the real equality of the divine dispensations under apparent

inequalities.  The rich seem to be intended by the deceitful; so called,

from the deceitfulness of riches,1 and of the means, by which they are

too often obtained.2  The usurer3 appears to point to the same pur-

port; implying the oppression too often connected with riches.   Both

these classes, so distinci in their relative condition, meet together on the

same level before God.  However men may differ; however one may

oppress and despise, and the other envy or hate; however the poor may

be tempted to murmur because of the oppressions of his richer neigh-

bour; however the rich by usury or unjust gain may take advantage of

the necessities of the poor--the Lord enlighteneth both their eyes--"He

is no respecter of persons." (Acts, x. 34.)  Both are partakers of his

providential blessings. (Matt. v. 45.)  Both are the subjects of his

Sovereign grace; 'members of the same body, animated by the same

Spirit, appointed for the same inheritance; partakers of the same "great

and precious promises."  There was not one prize for the soul of the

poor, and another for the rich.  There was not one table for the meaner

guests, and another for the greater.'  The poor Lazarus and the usurer

Zaccheus have long met together in one common home; both alike the

undeserved monuments of wondrous everlasting mercy;--the eyes of

both enlightened, spiritually, eternally. (Luke, xvi. 22; xix. 9.)

     Is it not presumption to judge hastily the ways of God; or to judge

them at all by the plummet of our own reason? (Ezek. xviii. 25.)  Let

us wait the appointed time, and all will be clear, as all is right.  How

 

     1 Chap. xxiii. 5. Matt. xiii. 22.        2 1 Tim. vi. 9.             3 Comp. chap. xxii. 7.

     * 1 Kings, xxii. 6, 26, 27. Comp. Hos. vii. 3. 'Many kings have been destroyed by

poison; but none has been so efficaciously mortal, as that drunk in by the ear'.--SOUTH

Massillon well taught his young prince, that the flattery of the courtier was little less dan-

gerous than the rebellion of the traitor.

      Ps. lxii. 9, 10. Jam. v. 1. For the same reason our Lord denominates riches generally

the distinctive term of "the mammon of unrighteousness." Luke, xvi. 9.

    ‡ Bp. REYNOLDS' Vanity of the Creature, Sect. 8. 


570                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

far beyond our narrow conceptions is every exercise and display of this

manifold wisdom, grace, and love!

 

14. The king that faithfully judgeth the poor, his throne shall be established

for ever.

    This maxim has often been repeated in substance. (Verses 4, 7;

xx. 28.)  The writer of this book was a king. He was naturally led to

write for his own benefit, while the Divine Spirit guided his pen for the

use of rulers to the end of time.  May every king--specially may our

own beloved Sovereign--place this picture of a godly ruler constantly

before the eyes!  It is natural for the king to desire the establishment of

his throne, but not natural for him to seek it in God's own way.  Jero-

boam sought it by wickedness;1 Rehoboam by worldly policy;2 Ahaz

by worldly alliances.3  The far more sure mode is the faithful adminis-

tration of justice, not neglecting the rich, but specially protecting the

poor, who from their weakness were in the greater need of a covering.4

David appears to have been a poor man's king, giving the lowest of

his people familiar access to him for judgment. (2 Sam. xix. 8.)  Solo-

mon, and many of his godly successors, ordered their kingdom in the

same principles of justice, and were abundantly honoured of their God.

The maladministration of the rulers never failed to bring a curse upon

the governments "Them that honour me, I will honour; and they

that despise me shall be lightly esteemed." (1 Sam. ii. 30.)

            When our Great Saviour King walked upon earth, his enemies bore

testimony, whether in flattery or conviction, to his righteous character.

(Matt. xxii. 16.)  Not less beautiful than accurate is this description, as

applied to the principles of his government, in the connection with the

promise of the establishment of his throne.6

 

15. The rod and reproof give wisdom: but a child left to himself bringeth

his mother to shame.

      Discipline is the order of God's government.  Parents are his dis-

pensers of it to their children.  The child must be broken in to "bear

the yoke in his youth." (Lam. iii. 27.)  Let reproof be first tried; and

if it succeed, let the rod be spared. (Chap. xvii. 10.)  If not, let it do its

work.  Eli gave the reproof, "but spared the rod."7  The rod is evi-

dently to be taken literally, not metaphorically; corporal, not spiritual

chastisement.8

 

     1 1 Kings, xi. 26.                        2 2 Chron. xi. 22, 23; xii. 1.            3 Ib. xxviii. 16-20.

     4 Chap. xxxi. 9. Ps. lxxxii 3, 4.   5 Isa. iii 13, 14; x. 1. Jer. xxii. 13-19. Zeph. iii. 3.

     6 Ps. lxxii. 7, 11, 15. Isa. ix. 7; xi. 4, 9.           7 1 Sam. ii. 22. 25; iii. 13.

     8 Chap. xxiii 13, 14.  Comp. xix. 29; xx. 30.

           *1 Kings, iii. 16-28. Jehoshaphat--2 Chron. xix. 5-11; xx. 30. Josiah-Jer, xxii.14-19.

Comp. Daniel's advice to Nebuchadnezzar, iv. 27.

 


CHAP. XXIX. 15.                                         571

 

Some give the rod without reproof, without any effort to produce

sensibility of conscience.  From this tyranny or caprice nothing can

be expected. The combined influence not only "drives foolishness far

away," but, as a positive blessing, gives wisdom. (Chap. xxii. 15.)  God's

own children grow wiser under correction.  They see their folly, and

in genuine shame turn from it, blessing him for his rod of faithfulness

and love,1 and teaching us the folly of rejecting medicines because they

are bitter.

     But look at the child left to himself--without restraint.  A more

perfect picture of misery and ruin cannot be conceived.  His evil

tempers are thought to be 1he accident of childhood.  'They will pass

away, as his reason improves. Time only can mend them.'  But in

fact time of itself mends nothing. It only strengthens and matures the

growth of the native principle.  This, being a decided bias to evil,

must tend to deadly injury.  The mother cannot conjecture the future

stature, health, talents, or prospects of her new-born infant.  But of one

thing she may be absolutely certain--a corrupt and wayward will.

The poison however does not appear at first.  No special anxiety is

excited.  The child is not nurtured in wickedness, or under the influ-

ence of bad example.  He is only left to himself.  Left!  The restive

horse, with his rein loosened, full of his own spirit, plunges headlong

down the precipice.  The child, without government, rushes on under

the impetuous impulse of his own will;* and what but Almighty

sovereign grace can save him from destruction?  Many a hardened it

villain on the gallows was once perhaps the pleasing, susceptible child;

only left to himself, to his own appetite, pride, and self-willed-obstinacy.

      The sound discipline of heavenly guidance is our father's best

blessing.  His most fearful curse, is to be given up to our own ways,

 

      1 2 Chron. xxxiii. 12. Ps. cxix. 67, 71, 75. Luke, xv. 13-17. Mic. vi. 9.

     * 'Puer, cui fraenum laxatum.'--SCHULTENS.

     Comp. 1 Kings, i. 6-9; ii. 23-25. Rousseau inculcated this system to its fullest extent

--'That no kind of habits ought to be impressed on children; that you should leave them

to the natural consequences of their own actions; and that, when reason comes to exert

itself in a maturer state, all will be right.'  Upon which the following beautiful apostrophe

has been given--'Emilius! how I tremble for thee, while I see thee exposed to the care of

thy too ingenious tutor. I see thee wilful to thy parents; domineering in the nursery;

surfeiting on meats; inflaming thy body with noxious humours, thy mind with unquiet

passions; running headlong into dangers, which thou canst not foresee, and habits which

thou canst not eradicate; mischievous to others, but fatal to thyself.'--See Bp. HORNE'S

Sermon on Self-Denial. .'We pity orphans'--remarked a wise Christian parent--'who have

neither father nor mother to care for them.  A child indulged is more to be pitied.  It has

no parent.  It is its own master, peevish, froward, headstrong, blind; born to a double

portion of trouble and sorrow above what fallen man is heir to; not only miserable itself,

but worthless, and a plague to all who in future will be connected with it.  What bad

sons, husbands, masters, fathers, daughters, wives, and mothers, are the offspring of fond

indulgence, shewn to little masters and misses almost from the cradle!  Wise discipline

gives thought and firmness to the mind; and makes us useful here, and fit for the world of

perfect subordination above.'--VENN'S Life, p. 257.

 

572                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

"to walk in our own counsels." (Ps. lxxxi. 12.)  A child thus left is at

the furthest point from salvation, in the very jaws of the devouring lion.

            Turn we now from the ruined child to the disgraced, broken-hearted

parent.  The mother only is mentioned, as the chief superintendent of

the early discipline; perhaps also as the most susceptible of the grievous

error.  For if the father's stronger character induces him to "provoke

his children to wrath" (Col. iii. 21); to rule rather by command than

by persuasion; does not the mother's softer mould tend to the opposite

evil?  And so far as she yields to mistaken indulgence, she bears the

greater share of the punishment.  It is not, that she is brought to

troub1e, or even to poverty; but to that, which is the most keenly-felt

of all distress--to shame.*  Nowhere is God's retributive justice more

strongly marked.  The mother's sin is visited in the proportioned pun-

ishment.  What greater neglect of obligation, than a child left to

himself!  What greater affliction, than the shame to which he bring,

her.  Parental influence is lost.  The reverence of authority is for-

gotten, as a by-gone name. (Chap. xix. 26.)  The child rules; instead

of being as a corrected child, in subjection. (Heb. xii. 9.)  The parent

fears, instead of the child; and thus virtually owns her own degra-

dation.  Instead of "the wise son, that maketh a glad father;" it is

"the foolish son, that is the heaviness of his mother."1  The sunshine

of bright prospects is clouded.  The cup of joy is filled with worm-

wood.  The father's mouth is dumb with the confusion of grief.  The

dearest object of the mother's tenderness, instead of being the staff and

comfort of her age, bringeth her to shame.  Truly children, thus left to

themselves, will mingle the bitterest cup that man can ever have to drink,

and stir up the saddest tears, that ever eyes can have to weep.

       This is not a trial, which, like many others, she might cover in her

own bosom.  Alas! the shame is too public to be concealed.  What

must have been the open dishonour upon Eli's name, when "the sins

of his children made men abhor the offering of the Lord!"  When the

treason of David's sons brought him to shame in the sight of all Israel;

surely his own conscience, must have brought his own perverted fond-

ness to mind, as the cause of their ruin; both left to themselves--one

palliated in the most aggravated sin;2 the other having been not even

corrected by a word. (1 Kings, i. 5-9.)  And if the shame before men

be so bitter, what will be the overwhelming confusion at the great con-

summation, when the evil propensities, cherished with such cruel fond-

ness in the parental bosom, shall produce their harvest "in the day of

grief and of desperate sorrow!" (Isa. xvii. 11.)

     Oh! as our children's happiness or misery, both for time and eternity,

 

     1 Chap. x. 1; xvii. 21, 25.                           2 2 Sam. xiv. 21, 23; xv. 6; xviii. 33.

  * Conturbator matris suae.'-- SCHULTENS.  'Filius confundens, confusion omni are

faciens, et perplexens.'--Ib. on Chap. x. 5.


CHAP. XXIX. 16,                                         573

 

is linked with our own responsibilities; shall not we "watch and

pray," and resist "the weakness of the flesh," in self-denying firmness?

'Take this for certain'--says Bishop Hopkins--'that as many deserved

stripes as you spare from your children, you do but lay upon your own

back.  And those whom you refuse to chastise, God will make severer

scourges to chastise you.'*  At whatever cost, establish your authority.

Let there be but one will in the house.  And let it be felt, that this

will is to be the law.  The child will readily discover, whether the

parent is disposed to yield, or resolved to rule.  But however trifling

the requirement, let obedience be, in small as great matters, the indis-

pensable point.  The awe of parental authority is perfectly consistent

with the utmost freedom of childlike confidence.  Nay--it is the very

foundation of it (for the child can hardly appreciate the kindness of a

parent, whom he thinks afraid to strike), while it operates as a valuable

safeguard against a thousand follies of uncontrolled waywardness.  But

ever let us put the awful alternative vividly before us.  Either the

child's will, or the parent's heart, must be broken:  "Without a wise and

firm controul, the parent is miserable; the child is ruined.

 

 16. When the wicked are multiplied, transgression increaseth: but the

righteous shall see their fall.

       The increase of transgression is obviously proportioned to the increase

of transgressors. (Hos. iv.7.)  Nor is it merely a numerical increase,

but also in power and daring of sin.  "The men, who began to multiply

upon the face of the old earth, were giants" in wickedness, as in strength,

until "the striving of the Spirit of God" could endure no longer. (Gen.

vi. 3.)  Thus was it with the Babel-builders (Ib. xi. 8), and the cities

of the plain. (Ib, xviii. 20.)  Combination emboldens in sin. (Isa.

xli. 7.)  Each particle of the mass is corrupt.  The mass therefore of

itself ferments with evil.  Hence the prevalence of infidelity in our

densely-crowded districts above the more thinly-populated villages.

There is the same evil in individual hearts; but not the same fermenta-

tion of evil.

      But for the prospects of faith, the Christian eye could not bear the

 

      * Works, i. 450.

      'I earnestly entreat you'--writes the wise and experienced Josiah Pratt to his

children--'to subdue the wills of your children most tenderly if you can? But if not,

your duty and your love require measures, which shall enforce obedience.  Commit your-

selves as little as may be into a contest with your children.  But having once done this,

you must maintain the contest till the child yields.  Every such victory will make the

text easier, and in all likelihood deter the child from entering on another contest.  And

you must make thorough work of it, if you would bless the child.  The guile of the heart

is seen in combination with its self-will, in trying to evade your authority.  A very young

child puts forth perhaps his first approaches to sin in acts of cunning and rebellion.  Rely

with unshaken confidence on that divine maxim--"Train up a child in the way he should,

go, and when he is old, he will not depart from it."'--Memoir, Chap. xix.


574                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

sight.  But the righteous shall see their fall.1  Noah saw the destruction

of the old world,2  Abraham the ruin of the devoted cities;3 "Israel saw

the Egyptians dead upon the sea-shore." (Exod. xiv. 30.)  'Let not

the righteous'--said good Bishop Patrick--'be discouraged; for the

wickeder men are, the shorter is their reign.'  The faithful Minister,

conscious of his inability to stem the everflowing torrent of iniquity

would sink.  In despair, but for the assured confidence, that he is on the

conquering side; that his cause, as the cause of his Lord, must even-

tually prevail. Yes--though now sin seems to triumph, and Satan

boasts of his victories; yet" the kingdoms of this world," with all their

vast population, shall "become the kingdoms of our Lord and his it'

Christ, and he shall reign for ever and ever." (Rev. xi. 15.)  This is

indeed the supporting joy of faith; to realize the glory of this day,

when the righteous shall see the fall of the now triumphing wicked; and

one universal shout shall swell throughout the earth--"Alleluia;

salvation, and glory, and honour, and power, unto the Lord our God;

for true and righteous are his judgments--Alleluia; for the Lord God

Omnipotent reigneth."4

 

17. Correct thy son, and he shall give thee rest; yea, he shall give delight

unto thy soul.

      Once more the wise man returns to the subject of discipline.  These

repeated inculcations5 strongly shew its importance.  The command

is positive--Correct thy son.  How can an upright judgment evade

or explain away a plain, literal rule?  This, book of Proverbs is not

out of date.  Like every other part of the Sacred Volume, it is the

Book for every age; "given by inspiration of God; profitable for doc-

trine, and written for our learning."6  To try therefore more self-

pleasing rules, is to set up our will in opposition to God's; reason or

feeling in the stead of faith.  It is making ourselves "wise above that

which is written."

      The measure and mode of correction indeed must depend upon the

age, sex, temper of the child, the character, the aggravation, or the

mitigated circumstances, of the fault.  But let it be, like our gracious

Father's discipline, never more than can be borne.7  Make due allow-

ance for any marks of ingenuous confession.  Yet with a wise applica-

tion of the principle, there must be no exception to the rule.  Different

tempers, like different soils, require corresponding difference of treat-

ment.  But discipline there must be; not relaxed in fondness, not

pushed on in harshness; but authority tempered with love.8  If a

gentle hand cannot controul, a stronger hand must be applied.

 

      1 Ps. xxxvii. 34; lviii. 11.                 2 Gen. vii. 23.                     3 Ib. xix, 28.

     4 Rev. xix. 1-6, with xv. 4; xviii. 20,  Comp. 18a. lxvi. 24.

     5 Verse 15. Chap.iii. 24; xix. 18; xxii. 15; xxiii. 13, 14.            6 2 Tim. iii. 16. Rom. xv. 4.

     7 Isa. XXVII. 8; lvii. 16. 1 Cor. X. 13.                                      8 See Wisd. vi. 17.


CHAP. XXIX. 17.                                         575

 

            We may take rest without correction; but such rest will bring

trouble in the end.  The true rest is that, which our child will give;

and that he may give it, the rule is--Correct.1 We may be assured,

that God would not have so insisted upon it, if a blessing was not with

it.  If Eli was rejected, it was because in this matter he "honoured his

sons above God."2  Those then "that honour him" above their sons

"he will honour."  Pain is the present exercise both to parent and

child,3 but the after blessing is secured. (Heb. xii. 11.)  Ground well

tilled, trees carefully pruned, bring forth more fruit."

      Observe how the objection of parental weakness is anticipated.

'If I put my son to pain, will he not hate me?'  No--when "left to

himself," he was a deep and anxious trouble.  Now he shall give thee

rest.  Before--he "brought thee to shame." (Verse 15.)  Now he shall

give delight to thy soul."  The momentary feelings of the child under

correction will give way to the conviction of the parent's wisdom and

regard for his profit. (Heb. xii. 9.)

      Yet the rule against discouragement would not have been repeated,

had there not been some parental evil to be corrected. "Provocation"

revolts, transfers confidence to most unworthy associates, and brings

into ruinous temptations. Children claim a considerate treatment.

They must not be driven by brute force. Authority must be tempered

with love. The grounds of extraordinary commands should be explained

to them. What is good should be liberally commended.  The best

construction should be put upon defective efforts.  The distinction

should be carefully drawn between weakness and wilfulness, between

heedlessness and obstinacy.  Home should be gladdened with the

invigorating joy of spring, and replete with every wholesome indul-

gence.  Every attempt should be made to gain confidence, so that the

child, instead of a cold trembling reserve, should run into our arms.

But in this glowing atmosphere, forget not God's rule. The complete-

ness of discipline is the father's firmness combined with the mother's

tenderness; each infusing into the other the quality of each.  A wise

parent will put his seal to the testimony, that this well-disciplined edu-

cation is the surest means of securing the children's affection, gratitude,

and reverence.

      In fine--on this important subject so often enforced--we are not

taught to believe without promises, or to obey without precepts.  The

Book of Proverbs exhibits cause and effect--the certain consequence of

a given course of action, whether good or evil.  It sets out promise and

obligation--promise fulfilled in the way of obligation.  The promised

blessing to godly parental discipline is written in beams of living light.

If the grace of the promise be lost, it is only by unbelief in the promise,

 

     1 Comp. Ecclus. xxx. 2.                            2 1 Sam. ii. 29, 30. Contrast Gen. xxii. 12.

     3 Chap. xv. 10.                                         4 Chap. xxiii. 13-16, 24, 25.


576                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

or by a presumptuous confidence in it (separating the end from the

means) such as brings shame in the issue.  It is not that God is untrue,

but that we are unfaithful.  God has given the promise.  Man either

slights, rejects or abuses it.  He attempts to put aside the Scripture by

an appeal to experience, instead of proving the faithfulness of God by

"the obedience of faith."  The commands--the directions--the promises--the

blessing--all are the Lord's. Put his word to the test. The simplicity and

perseverance of faith will be richly honoured in his own best time and way.

 

18. Where there is no vision, the people perish* (is made naked, marg.);

                        but he that keepeth the law, happy is he.

      The vision--as appears from the contrast--is divine instruction.

(1 Sam. iii. 1.)  The Ministry is the appointed ordinance to communi-

cate this blessing;1 and therefore the main instrumentality of conversion,2

and subsequent Christian perfection.  No greater calamity therefore

can there be than the removal of the vision.  The temporal famine,

affecting only the body, is a light judgment, scarcely to be mentioned,

compared with that, by which the people perish--"the famine of hearing

the words of the Lord."3  For 'when there is none that can edify, and

exhort, and comfort the people by the word of God, they must needs

perish.  They become thrall and captives unto Satan.  Their heart is

bound up.  Their eyes are shut up; they can see nothing.  Their ears

are stopped up; they can hear nothing.  They are carried away as a

prey into hell, because they have not the knowledge of God.'

      Often did Israel provoke this most fearful judgment--the removal

of the open vision.4  "The candlestick " of the Apocalyptic Churches

has from the same cause been long since removed out of its place;"

and for the most part little more remains than the ceremonial of by-

 

     1 1 Sam. ix. 9. Mal. ii. 7. Eph. iv. 11.               2 1 Cor. i. 21. Jam. i. 18. 1 Pet. i. 23.

     3 Amos, viii. 11, 12. Isa. viii. 16.

     4 1 Kings, xii. 28-32; 2 Chron. xv. 3-5. Ps. lx.xiv. 9. Lam. i. 4; ii. 9. Ezek. vii. 26. Hos.

iii. 4.

   *Comp. Exod. xxxii. 25. 2 Chron. xxviii. 12. Geier and others give--'Dissipantur'--

scattered.  Matt. ix. 36. Naked. Marg.--without clothing, in which to appear before God.

Every view pourtrays a state of desponding misery.

    1 Cor. xiv. 3. Eph. iv. 11-14. 1 Thess. iii. 10. And yet this most fruitful organ of

divine agency (preaching), which our blessed Lord honoured as the grand medium of his

own teaching (Ps. xl. 9, 10. Isa. lxi. 1, 2) is now depreciated as the mark of  'a Church

only in a weak and a languishing state, and all instrument, which Scripture--to say the

least--has never much recommended.' (Tracts for the Times, 87, p. 75.) Far more orthodox

is the sentiment of one of our venerable reformers.  'Thus we may learn the necessity of

preaching and what inconvenience follows when it is not used. Where preaching fails"

--saith Solomon--"there people perish." Therefore let everyone keep himself in God's

school-house, and learn his lesson diligently.  For as the body is nourished with meat; so

is the soul with the word of God.'  Bp. PILKINGTON'S Works, p. 112.  Parker Society's

edition.  'The meanest village'--Luther was wont to say--'with a Christian pastor and

flock; is a palace of ebony.'

      ‡ Bishop JEWELL on the Scriptures.


CHAP. XXIX. 18.                                         577

 

gone days.1 From the Apostate Church of Rome, the vision is well-

nigh withdrawn, and the people perish in ignorance and delusion. For

as our Protestant Cranmer nobly testified—‘I know how Antichrist

both obscured the glory of God, and the true knowledge of his word:

overcasting the same with mists and clouds of error and ignorance

through their false glosses and interpretations.  It pitieth me'--he

I adds, 'to see the simple and hungry flock of Christ led into corrupt

pastures, to be carried blindfold they know not whither.'*

       In other bodies also, "having a name to live," the complaint is as

real, as in days of old--"My people are destroyed for lack of know-

ledge. (Hos. iv. 6.)  The sun shines not on more wretched objects,

than on the awful masses of our fellow-sinners, growing up in habitual

estrangement from God.

      It has been calculated, that between four and five millions of our

countrymen are living in habitual separation from the worship of gods

Whether from the guilty neglect of rulers, the wilful neglect of indi-

viduals, or from the population having grown far beyond the extent of

instruction provided, certain it is, that in the most enlightened country

in the world, to vast masses of our poor there is no vision, and the people

perish in ignorance--"the things belonging to their peace being hid 

from their eyes!”

     Take the most awful illustration of this Proverb that can be

imagined.  If to be without vision be the mark of a perishing state,

what ray of Scriptural hope dawns upon the Heathen world?  Being

"without Christ," they are described by infallible testimony as "having

no hope." (Eph. ii. 12.)  Salvation is indeed free to all, "whosoever

shall call upon the name of the Lord."  But how shall they call with-

out faith; believe without hearing; "hear without a preacher?" (Rom.

x. 13-17.).   If therefore there be no vision, how can they but perish?

"They perish indeed without law" (Ib. 11. 12) (not condemned under

the law of revelation, which they have never known); but still the

perish "without excuse" (Ib. i. 20), alienated from the life of God

through the ignorance that is in them, because of the "blindness of "

their hearts." (Eph. IV. 18.) Proud reasoning man revolts, and pre-

Burnes to be more merciful than God.  But this false charity is only the

cover for selfishness.  Men deny the danger, because they are too

indolent, too self-indulgent, to stretch out the helping hand, or to make

one sacrifice for the rescue.  True charity is the fruit of reverential

faith.  And, while it realizes the tremendous peril, it concentrates all

the energy of compassionate tenderness, believing prayer, and self-

denying effort upon their salvation.

 

                                    1 Rev. ii. 1-5,  iii. 1-3, 15, 16.

   * Preface to Defence of the True and Catholic Doctrine of the Sacrament.

   Luke, xix. 42  So far as the mass has been reached, we are deeply indepted to the

Pastoral Aid Society, which may well be called our Home Missionary Society.


578                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

            But the contrast is not between those, who have not the vision and

those who--have it; but between the destitution and the improvement

of the blessing.  The mere profession of the Gospel may be a nullity.

Of what use is light, if we open not our eyes to see it?  So far from

becoming a blessing, it will only issue in deeper condemnation.l  If

some are enlightened, multitudes are struck blind. (John, xii. 40.)  But

this true vision--the object really beheld as life and light to the soul

--is the spring of that happy keeping the law,2 which realizes no less a

privilege than communion with our God and Saviour here and for

eternity.3  Yes, truly--to be interested in the promises of God; to be

an inheritor of everlasting glory; to be the present possessor of divine

favour; to be secured from the peril of everything against him, and

assured of the supply of all things that will work for his good--this is

the happy portion of the practical disciple.  And indeed in the ordinary

course of life, as Hooker observes in his godly instructiveness--'what

event soever ensue, it breedeth, if not joy and gladness always, yet

always patience, satisfaction, and reasonable contentment of mind.

Whereupon it hath been set down as an axiom of good experience, that

all things religiously taken. in hand are prosperously ended; because,

whether men in the end have that, which religion did allow them to

desire, or that, which it teacheth them contentedly to suffer, they are in

neither case unfortunate.'*

      Who then can justly cast a cloud of gloom over the ways of God?

Let the Pentecostal Christians witness to their gladness. (Acts, ii. 46, 4.7.)

Let every servant of his Lord invite his fellow-sinners to the enjoyment

of his privileges by the manifestation of their holiness and joy.

 

19. A servant will not be corrected by words: for though he understand, he

                                                will not answer.

      Discipline must be carried, not only into the family (Verses 15,17),

but throughout the whole household, in order to preserve God's autho-

rity and order.  An important hint is here given relative to the manage-

ment of servants.  Though it does not apply to all,  it shews a very

common temptation to self-will.  There is a proud as well as an humble

silence; as plain a proof of an unsubdued spirit, as a pert and flippant

answer.  The patience of Job was sorely exercised by this trial; and

that under circumstances, that made the treatment more aggravated.

(Job, xix. 16.)  We must guard against harshness in our spirit.4  But

with servants, as with children, authority must be maintained at any

cost. And therefore, if a servant understand the command, and will not

 

      1 Matt. xi. 20-24. Luke, xii. 47, 48.

      2 Chap. iii 21-24; iv. 5-9; viii. 32-35; xix. 16. Luke, xi. 28. John, xiii. 17.

      3 John, xiv. 21-23. Rev. xxii. 12, 14. 4 Lev. xxv. 43. Comp. Ecclus. xxxiii. 28, 29.

     * Eccl. Pol. b v. c. 1, 2.

     The LXX. renders, but without authority from the original—‘an obstinate servant.'


                                    CHAP. XXIX. 20, 21.                                               579

 

answer; if he will not be corrected by words, it were better to dismiss him

than to lower our authority, and countenance evil by yielding to his

waywardness.

     The Scripture fully sets out the duties of servants--"Not answering

again.  With good-will doing service, as to the Lord, and not to man."l

Sullen resistance to reproof is most inconsistent with the profession of

a Christian; and, if the offender escapes the correction of an earthly

master, he will be visited with the rod of his angry Lord, as a self-

deceiver, or backslider from his high obligation.2

 

20. Seest thou a man that is hasty in his words?  there is more hope of a fool

                                                than of him.

     We have just been warned against sullen silence.  The next warn-

ing is directed against hasty words.  When a man flows on in his words,

evidently without time for consideration (Chap. xviii. 13); when he

gives his opinion, as if it were a loss of time to take counsel, or regard

the judgment of others; when you find him forward in pronouncing

judgment before men of acknowledged wisdom and experience; this is

the "tool uttering all his mind" (Verse 11); the man lately marked out

for our warning (Chap. xxvi. 12), as an hopeless fool, "wise in his own

conceit."

     It is very difficult to deal effectively with him.  Until the strong-

hold of his own conceit be shaken, argument and instruction are lost

upon him.  The man who is conscious of his weakness, distrusts him-

self and is ready to ask and receive counsel; is more likely to be led

right, than he, who thinks himself to be right already.

     It is a special mercy to be preserved from hasty judgments, or ex-

pression of judgments.  The first stamp upon a perfect mind is infal-

libly correct.  On an imperfect mind it must he subjected to a careful

scrutiny.  It is sound, wisdom to admit, that our judgment may be mis-

taken.  Self-controul and self-diffidence give solid consistency.  This

character of mind is most important in religious disputations.  Be

careful to defend or contravene nothing, till you have tested it by the

true standard.  Moses deferred judgment on the sin before his eyes, till

he had brought the matter to God. (Lev. xxiv. 12.) "Be swift to hear;

slow to speak." (James, i. 19.)

 

21. He that delicately bringeth up his servant from a child shall have him

                                    become his son at the length.

            We have another valuable rule for domestic discipline; directing

masters to a wise treatment of their servants.  It is a grievous error to

step ourselves, or to induce another to step out of the path, which a

 

     1 Titus, ii. 9. Eph. vi. i.                                  2 Chap. xix. 29; xxvi. 8.


580                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

God of order has marked for us.  Divine Wisdom has framed the con-

stitution of society, assigning to each their station and their duties.  If

a servant aspire to be in the house anything but a servant, his character

loses its value.  A master acts--to say the least--most unseemly,

when he forgets his own place and authority, and delicately bringeth up

his servant by the allowance of undue freedom.  It is a great exercise

to preserve the true medium between distance and familiarity.  An

haughty, menacing demeanour towards our servants forgets the respect

justly due to them. (Eph. vi. 9.)  An inconsiderate fondness takes them

out of their place, greatly to their own injury.  Our Lord's distinction

shews, that friends--not servants--should be admitted to our familiar

intercourse, and entrusted with our confidence. (John, xv. 15.)  To

promote a servant therefore to the rank of a confidant, unfits him for

his own condition, and defeats our own end by the natural results of

this unnatural treatment.  True kindness keeps him in his place.  'Good

usage does by no means imply that indulgence, that would ruin a

child.'*  A servant delicately brought up--often from a child--if he be

not taken down in time, and made to know his place--soon relaxes in

respect and attention.  Instead of this false kindness stimulating to

diligence, and inducing gratitude; he becomes idle, insolent, and

ungovernable (Comp. Ecclus. xxxiii..25-27); assumes the young master

--becomes a son at the length.  This unseemly usurpation is an evil,

"that the earth cannot bear--a servant, when he reigneth."   Ish-

bosheth must have allowed Abner undue liberty, when he so far forgot

the respect due to his sovereign, as to insult him before his face.

(2 Sam. iii: 8.)  David also must have loosened the reins of proper

authority, when Joab murdered the commander-in-chief at the head of

his army, without being instantly subjected to the penalty of the law.

(Ib. xx. 10.)  Even the wise man appears to have forgotten his own

prudent caution, when he delicately brought up Jeroboam in authority;

and promoted him too suddenly.  He lived to regret his error, when

with the pretension of a son he combined the pride of a rebel.  (1 Kings,

xi. 26-28.)  The confusion and anarchy of after years in the kingdom

originated in the same false step.  (Ib. xvi. 9-12.)  The greatest kind-

ness to servants is to "give to them that which is just and equal"

(Col. iv. 1)--but no more.  Any defect in this rule will be sure to bring

(as in the case referred to) future trouble, as the just chastening for

present folly.  What need have we of the daily supply of Divine grace,

to rule our house well in due subjection!  The resolution to "behave

ourselves wisely in a perfect way" can only be accomplished in the

 

     *Scott.

     Chap. xxx. 21, 22. Lord Bacon suggests for the good ordering of servants--1. That

we promote them by steps, not by leaps.  2. That we occasionally deny their wishes,

'Sudden elevation'--he adds--induces insolence.  The constant granting of their wishes

makes them only more imperative In demand.'—Advancement of Learning, Book xii


                                                CHAP. XXIX. 22.                                         581

 

habitual prayer--"O, when wilt thou come unto me?" Then indeed

"I will walk within my house with a perfect heart." (Ps. ci. 2.)

 

22. An angry man stirreth up strife, and a furious man aboundeth in

transgression.

      Anger is not necessarily a sinful passion.  Even furiousness--the

overflowing of the torrent--is a property in God. (Nah. i. 2.)  We can

readily conceive of its energy in the unfallen nature of man.  Had Satan

appeared to Eve in his own open hatefulness, her anger against him

would have been a holy principle.  But in a fallen nature, to presence

its purity is a rare and most difficult matter.  It must be confined to

points, where God's honour is concerned (John, ii. 15-17); and even on

these points the rule must be observed--"Let not the sun go down

upon your wrath." (Eph. iv. 26.)  The short period of the day is abun-

dantly sufficient to express right motives, and to accomplish holy

purposes.

       The general tendency of anger is however here most truly described.

Its active energy stirreth up strife.l  It quarrels even upon trifles,2--or

matters, which a forbearing consideration might have satisfactorily

explained. (Acts, xv. 39.)  And when suppressed, but not laboriously

mortified, how often does it become more intense, and break out more

furiously--abounding in transgression!  Indeed it is difficult to take a

full view of the mighty power of this mass of sin.  It gives the impetus

to every besetting propensity. It may be blasphemy!  (Lev. xxiv. 10,

11.)  It stops at nothing. How many murders do we owe to this

paroxysm of the moment!3  But for the divine restraints, the very

foundations of society would be torn up!

       Parents!  Do we feel the responsibility of early checking this ebulli-

tion in our children?  And do we diligently watch against the first

rising in ourselves, incessantly praying for its subjugation?  How

beautiful are the instances of Almighty grace--such as Henry Martyn*

--transforming the furious man into the likeness of his meek and holy

Master!

      But let us not be satisfied with the outward constraint upon pas-

sion. God condemns the deep-rooted principle that gives it birth.

Wretched heart! filled with soul-destroying corruption.  Every, even

the least, indulgence operates fearfully.  So much time spent in excite-

ment!  So much more in the unquiet waiting for the desired oppor-

tunity!  And all given to the great Murderer!  Oh! for the mystery

and doctrine of the cross, to mould our temper into its genuine spirit

and influence!

 

      1 Chap. xv. 18; xxvi. 21; xxx. 33. James, iii.16.         2 1 Tim. vi. 4.. 2 Tim. ii. 23, 24.

      3 1 Sam. xviii 9, 10; xxii. 5-19. Matt. ii. 16. Acts, vii: 54-59; xii. 19.

                                    *Life, p. 8. Pref. to 10th edit.


582                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

23. A man's pride shall bring him low:  but honour shall uphold the

humble in spirit.

       This Proverb--Bishop Hall remarks in his own style--'is like

unto Shushan: in the streets whereof honour is proclaimed to the

humble Mordecai; in the palace whereof is erected an engine of death

to a proud Haman.'*  It exhibits the spirit of our Lord's oft-repeated

declaration expounded by his daily Providences--"Whosoever shall

exalt himself shall be abased; and he that shall humble himself shall

be exalted."  The real value of man in himself is so small, that the

Psalmist is at a loss where to find it.1  His undue value of himself is

utter delusion; having lost all; stripped of all; yet proud, as if he were

the possessor of all.  He raises himself to heaven in his airy visions;

but soon does he meet with his own punishment--A man's pride shall

bring him low.  We see this in the world.  The proud conceit of rank,

talent, or any superiority, subjects to continual mortification;2 while on

the other hand, humility, at first considered a mean and servile spirit,

ultimately comes to its just estimation.

      The world counts nothing great without display.  But mark the

substantial "honour that cometh from God only."  "Heaven is my

throne; and earth is my footstool; yet to this man will I look--to

him that is poor, and of a contrite spirit." (Isa. lxvi. l, 2.)  Yea--"I

dwell--saith the high and lofty One that inhabiteth eternity--with

him that is of a contrite and humble spirit." (Ib. lvii. 15.)  Humility is

indeed true greatness--'the crown'--as Mr. Howels fine1y remarks--

'of finite beings, made and jewelled by the hand of God himself.

Supremacy is the g1ory of God; humility is the ornament of his chi1d.'§

"I am but dust and ashes.  I am 1ess than the 1east of all thy mercies.

I abhor myself.  Sinners--of whom I am chief"3--such are the self-

abasing confessions of men great in Jehovah's eyes.  They shine with

the reflection of his glory; but they turn away with genuine humility

from their own shining.

      Men of this stamp" the king delighteth to honour." Their dignity

begins on earth, and is crowned in heaven. "Blessed are the poor in

spirit; for theirs is the kingdom of heaven." (Matt. v. 3; xviii. 4.)

Poor they may be in station.  But they shine forth as mightier con-

 

      1 Ps. viii. 3, 4; cxliv. 3;  xxxix. 5.                         2 1 Kings, xxi. 1-4. Esth. v. 13,

                                 3 Gen. xviii. 27;  xxxii. 10. Job, xlii. 6. 1 Tim. 1. 15.

     *Sermon on Text.   Works, v. 270

      Matt. xxiii.12. Luke, xiv. 11 ; xviii. 14.  The speech of Artabanus to Xerxes before

his invasion of Greece, is a striking testimony from an Heathen, 'God delights to depress

whatever is too highly exalted.  Thus a large army is often defeated by a small one.  When

God in his jealousy throws them into a panic, or thunders against them, they miserably

perish.  For God suffers no mortal to think magnificently--HERODOTUS, Book vii c. 10

     ‡ Job, xl. 12. Ps. xviii. 27. Comp. Zeph. ii. 1. Rev. xviii. 7, 8. and references on Chap.

xvi. 18, 19.

      § Sermons, i. pp. 335, 336.


CHAP. XXIX. 24.                                                     583

 

querors than Alexander.  Their real glory eclipses the glare of the pomp

and "pride of life."

     The elevation of the proud is often the step to their downfall.  But

God's honour, put upon his own people, upholds them, as Joseph and

Daniel, in their high eminence, as witnesses for his name.  Meetness

for heaven is that adorning clothing of humility, which leads us to

ascribe all our grace to God, and all our sin to ourselves.  This is the

prostrate adoration of heaven. (Rev. v. 9-12.)  The Lord imbue us

richly with this spirit.

      Indeed all chastening discipline is for the great purpose, to "hide

pride from man" (Job, xxxiii. 17), and to bring us low in our own eyes,

that his honour may" lift us in due time."1  It is with us as with our

Lord--honour comes out of humilation.2  'Thou meanest to be not

our Saviour only, but our pattern too.  If we can go down the steps of

thine humiliation, we shall rise up the stairs of thy glory.'*

 

24. Whoso is a partner with a thief hateth his own soul: he heareth

cursing, and bewrayeth it not.

      This is a warning under the eighth commandment.  Do we realize

the same solemnity of obligation as under the first?  Many professors

attach a degree of secularity to a detailed application of the duties of

the second table.  But both stand on the same authority.  The trans-

gressions of both are registered in the same book.  The place in the

decalogue cannot be of moment, if it be but there with the imprimatur

--"I am the Lord thy God."  The law acknowledges no difference

between the thief and his partner.  Consenting to sin--receiving the

stolen goods-involves us in the guilt and punishment.3  The accom-

plice may be less practised in sin.  He may be only commencing his

course.  But the first step is the way of death,--acting as if he hated

his own soul.4  One step naturally leads on to another.  Suppose him

to be called to give evidence upon oath concerning his knowledge or

privity of the deed.  Would not this be a temptation to perjury, rather

than to discover his fellow?  Under the perverted obligation of his

bond of secrecy he heareth cursing--the solemn adjuration to declare

the truth on pain of the curse of God5--and he bewrayeth it not.  'He

keeps his wicked counsel, and will not betray.'

      Oh! how frightful is the history of thousands, whose fellowship

with sinners has drawn them into fellowship with sin, and ultimately

to take the lead in sin!--whose entrance into the path has led them

step by step into the very depths of depravity!  And of these thousands,

 

      1 1 Pet. v. 6. Job, xxii. 29.                                    2 Chap. xv. 33; xviii. 12.

      3 Chap. i. 10-15. Ps. 1.18-21. Isa.. 1.23,  24.      4 Comp. vi 32; viii. 36; xv. 32.

     5 Comp. Lev. v. 1. Num. v. 21. 1 Kings, xxii. 16. Matt. xxvi. 63.

                                                * Bp. Hall ut supra.


584                 EXPOSITION OF 'IRE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

how few--it is to be feared--retrace their steps and become like

Onesimus, true followers of Christ, and faithful servants to man!*

 

25. The fear of man bringeth a snare: but whoso putteth his trust in the

Lord shall be safe. (Marg. set on high.)

      A snare brings a man into straits.  He is not master of himself.

Here Satan spreads the snare, and the fear of man drives into it.  And a

fearful snare it is, and ever hath been to thousands.  Many, once

entangled, have never escaped.  It besets every step of the path-way to

heaven, every sphere of obligation.  The king turns aside from strict

integrity.1  The judge wilfully pronounces an unrighteous sentence.2

The Minister faints under the cross;3 and too avoid it, compromises the

simplicity of the Gospel.4  There is a timidity in acting out an un-

popular doctrine.  The people cannot bear the full light.  The Sun of

righteousness is therefore exhibited under a mist; but dimly visible;

shorn of his glowing beams.  The strictness of the precepts is unpalat-

able.  It must therefore be softened down modified, or explained away.5

Or inconstancy of profession must be quietly dealt with, lest the good

opinion of some influential man be forfeited.  Such is the power of evil

shame!  Such low thoughts, not only of God, but of immortal souls,

and usefulness to our fellow-sinners!  This time-serving shews a man-

pleaser, not a true "servant of God" (Gal. i. 10), and brings a blast

alike to his work and to his soul.

       The same deadly influence operates in families.  Sometimes even

parents shrink from the open protection of their child. (John, ix. 22.)

They dare not avow a supreme regard to his primary interests, or pro-

fess in opposition to many around them, the Patriarch's godly deter-

mination--"As for me and, my house"--however evil it may seem to

others--"we will serve the Lord." (Josh. xxiv. 15.)

       Every class of society exhibits this corrupt principle.  Perhaps the

highest are bound in the most abject and hopeless chains; and to their

tyrant they seem to acknowledge a sort of conscience, or religious

obedience.  They will set at nought all religion without fear; but such

submissive slaves are they to the omnipotency of fashion, that they

would "tremble very exceedingly" at the suspicion of godliness

 

     1 1 Sam. xv. 24. Matt. xiv. 9.      2 John, xix. 8, 13, 16.          3 1 Kings, xix. 3. Jon. i. 1-3.

     4 Gal. ii. 12; vi. 12                     5 Isa. xxx. 9, 10. Jer. v. 31.

             *Epistle to Philemon.

              Zech. xi. 17. 'Remember Dr. Dodd '--writes Mr. Venn to his son--'  myself heard

him tell his own flock, whom he was lecturing in his house that he was obliged to give up

that method of helping their souls because it exposed him to so much reproach.  He gave

it up, and fell from one compliance to another, with his corrupt nature; and under what

reproach did he die!'  Let the concluding advice of this excellent Minister be well pondered.

--'Be afraid of nothing more than the detestable cowardice of a selfish and unbelieving

heart.'--Life, pp. 255, 256.

       ‡ Gen. xxvii. 33. The same word in the original.


CHAP. XXIX. 25.                                         585

 

attaching to them; thus "honouring" a vain idol above the Lord of

heaven and earth.  Many would be bold to front danger, who would

shrink from shame.  They would fearlessly face the cannon's mouth,

and yet be panic-struck at the ridicule of a puny worm.  Or even if

some public excitement roused an impulse of boldness for religion, in

the more quiet atmosphere there is a cold timidity of silence.  They

shrink from the bold consistency of a living witness.  They are afraid

of the stamp of singularity.  They are satisfied with a meagre external

decorum, with no spiritual character or privilege.  All is heartless

delusion.

      What--again, makes so many, specially among the young,

ashamed to be found upon their knees; to be known as readers of their

Bibles; to cast in their lot decidedly among the saints of God?  They

know the Christian to be on the right side; and oft is there a whisper

of conscience--'Would that my soul were in his place!'1  But they

have only half a mind to religion.  The fear of man bringeth a snare.

And therefore they ask--not'  What ought I to do?' but, 'What will

my friends think of me?'  They cannot brave the finger of scorn.  And

if they seem for a while to be in earnest, 'their slavish fears' (as Bunyan

well describes the case), overmaster them.  They betake themselves

to second thoughts--namely--that it is good to be wise, and not to

run, for they knew not what, the hazard of losing all, or at least bring-

ing themselves into unavoidable and unnecessary troubles.'*  They

would rather writhe under their convictions, till they have worn them-

selves away, than welcome what Moses "esteemed greater riches than

the treasures of Egypt--the reproach of Christ." (Heb. xi. 26.)

      But how painful to see the children of God entangled in the snare!

The father of the faithful twice denied his wife.'2 His son follows his

weak example.3  "Aaron fashions the golden calf,"4 "The man after

God's own heart" sinks himself into the lowest degradation.5  Hezekiah,

distinguished for his trust, gives way to his fear.6  The ardent disciple,

even after the most solemn pledges to his Saviour, and after all act of

great boldness in his defence, yields up his courage to a servant girl,

and solemnly abjures his Lord.7  Oh! do we not hear the warning

voice against "entrance into temptation--against the weakness of the

flesh?"8 Let us run into our hiding-place, and cry--"Hold thou me

up, and I shall be safe." (Ps. cxix. 117.)  Humbling indeed is the con-

trast between the boldness of the servants of Satan and the timidity of

the soldiers of Christ!  Who of us has not cause of painful self-con-

demnation?

 

      1 John, vii. 13; xii. 42, 43. Acts. xxvi. 11. 2 Tim. i. 15; iv.16.   2 Gen. xii. 11-13; xx. 2,11.

     3 Ib. xxvi. 7.                      4 Exod. xx-xii. 22-24.                        5 1 Sam. xxi. 10-13.

     6 2 Kings, xviii. 13-16. 2 Chron. xvi. 1-7.                                   7 Matt. xxvi. 69-74.

    8 Ib. ver. 41

* Conversation between Hopeful and Christian.


586                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

            How different is this servile principle from the godly fear of sin

which the wise man had lately marked as the substance of happiness!

(Chap.. xxviii. 14.)  That is a holy principle; this an inlet to sin.l  That

is our keeping grace;2 this wounds our conscience, and seduces us also

from our allegiance.  'By the fear of the Lord men depart from evil;3

by the fear of man they run themselves into evil.'*   The one is the

pathway to heaven. (Chap. xix. 23.)  The other, involving the denial

of the Saviour, plunges its wretched slave into the lake of fire. (Mark,

viii. 38. Rev. xxi. 8.)

      But even apart from this tremendous end, observe its weighty hin-

drance to Christian integrity.  Indeed--as Mr. Scott most truly

observes--'it is'--often at least--'the last victory the Christian

gains.  He will master, by that grace which is given of God, his own

lusts and passions, and all manner of inward and outward temptations.

He will be dead to the pleasures of the world, long before he has mas-

tered this fear of man.  "This kind of spirit goeth not out" but by a

very spiritual and devout course of life.'  The hindrance meets us at

every turn, like a chain upon our wheels; so that, like the Egyptian

chariots, they "drive heavily." (Exod. xiv. 25.)  Oh! for a free deli-

verance from this principle of bondage; scarcely however to be expected,

till we have been made to feel its power!

     Thank God--there is a way of deliverance.  Faith unbinds the

soul from fear.  If fear makes the giant tremble before the worm, trust

in the Lord makes the worm stronger than the giant.  Neither the fury

of the King,4 or of the people;5 neither the fire,6 or the den of lions,7

daunts and hurts him that  "believeth in his God."  'He that fears to

flinch, shall never flinch from fear.‡  Faith gives power to prayer.

The strength from prayer makes us cheerful in obedience, and resolute

in trial. Here is safety, strenght, courage, peace.  Nothing but faith

gives the victory; but the victory of faith is complete.§  He only, who

putteth his trust in the Lord, is prepared, when God and man are at con-

traries, to "obey God rather than man." (Acts, iv. 19.)  A secret union

with God is implanted in the soul by this faith; an union as righty, as

it is secret; a sacred spring of life--the energy of God himself (Gal.

ii. 20); triumphant therefore in the mightiest conflict with the flesh.

The man, dependent on the world for happiness, is in bondage. The

 

     1 Gen. xxxix. 9, with Isa. lvii. 11.        2 1 Cor. x. 12 Heb. iv. 1.         3 Chap. xvi. 6.

    4 2 Kings, vi. 31, 32.                             5 Num. xiv.6-10.                     6 Dan. iii. 17.

    7 Ib vi. 10

    * FLAVEL'S Treatise on Fear, Chap. ii.          Life, pp. 116, 117.    ‡ Hildersham.

    § 1 John, v.4. 5. Comp. Heb. xi 27. 'I cannot wield the sword of the Spirit'--said

the weak and timid Haller to his friends, when going to the disputation at Berne against

the Romanists. 'If you do not stretch your hands to me, all is over.' He then threw

himself trembling at the feet of the Lord, and soon rose enlightened, and exclaiming-

‘Faith in the Saviour gives me courage, and scatters all my fears.'-D'AUBIGNE'S Hist. Refor.

Book xv. Chap. ii.


CHAP. XXIX. 26, 27.                                               587

 

servant of God is in liberty.  It matters not to him, whether the world

smile or frown.  He is safe, beyond its reach--set on high.1  Faith

brings him to his strong tower. (Chap. xviii. 10.)  There he is "kept

by the power of God unto salvation." (1 Pet. i. 5.)  Fear brings us into

the snare.  Faith brings liberty, safety, exaltation.  Oh! thou God of

power and grace, may my soul praise thee for this mighty deliverance,

this joyous freedom!  May I never be ashamed of my Master!  May I

be bound to his people, and glory in his cross! (Gal. vi. 14.)

 

26. Many seek the ruler's favour; but every man's judgment cometh from

the Lord.

    Therefore seek God to be your friend.  "In his favour is life." (Ps.

xxx. 5,)  Confidence in man is no less sinful2  and dangerous3 than the

fear of man.  Yet with what diligence will men seek earthly advan-

tage!  Many seek the ruler's favour4 more than God's, and sacrifice

their consciences, and hazard their souls, to obtain it.  But when they

have bought it at such a price, what is it?--as easily lost, as it was

hardly gained.  The caprice of an hour may destroy the hard-earned

object. (Gen. xl. 1, 2.)  And then what have they to live upon?  All

this is forgetting, that every man's judgment cometh from the Lord.  Here

then is the solid ground of faith.  First, begin with God; all judgment

is in his hands.  "Commit thy way unto the Lord; trust also in him,

and he shall bring it to pass."*  Let him choose and dispose our lot.5

Consider everything that passes as coming from him.  In everything,

great and small, deal with him.  Ponder with him.  His favour, unlike

the changing favour of the ruler, "is without variableness, or shadow of

turning."  And when, through the fickleness of man, earthly prospects

are fading, then rest in quiet--"Surely my judgment is with the Lord."6

'As thou wilt, what thou wilt, when thou wilt.'  This is the shortest,

the surest, way of peace--"Only believe."

 

27. An unjust man is an abomination to the just: and he that is upright in

the way is abomination to the wicked.

      Here is the oldest, the most rooted, the most universal quarrel in

the world.  It was the first-fruit of the fall. (Gen. iii. 15.) It has con-

tinued ever since, and will last to the end of the world.  It is always

kept up at the highest point.  Each party is an abomination to the

 

      1 Ps. lxix. 29; xci. 14. Isa. xxxiii. 16.        2 Ps. cxlvi. 3, Isa. ii. 22. Jer. xvii. 5, 6.

    3 Isa. xxx. 1-3; xxxi. 1-3. 4 Chap. xix. 6.  5 Ps. xlvii. 4. Chap. xvi. 33.

    6 Isa. xlix. 4. Jon, xxxiv. 29.

     * Ps. xxxvii, 5, 6.  He needeth not to flatter the ruler;  for what God hath appointed,

that shall come to him.'--Reformer's Notes.  'The determination concerning a man is from

Jehovah.'-- Bp. LOWTH'S Prelim. Dissertation to Isaiah.

     Thomas a Kempis.


588                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

other.  It is not only, that they are as contrary in character, as light is

to darkness; but there is a mutual antipathy, that can never be softened

down.

      Let us look at each of the parties in this open opposition to each

other.  An unjust man is an abomination to the just.  Is it then his sin

to be at such contraries with his fellow-sinner?  No rather--it is the

very holiness of his character and profession.  If he have any appre-

hensions of the boliness of God; if through grace he is delivered from

the love and dominion of sin, is not the sight of sin hateful to him?

And while he abhors it most of all in himself, yet does not the watching

of the evil in his own heart deepen his abhorrence and detestation of it

in those around him?  He would not spare it in those most dear to

him.  He appeals to his God in the burst of holy indignation.  "Do

not I hate them, O Lord, that hate thee? and am not I grieved with

those that rise up against thee?  I hate them with a perfect hatred:  I

count them mine enemies."1

     Looking at the other party--the wicked hold the upright in equal

abomination. (Verse 10.)  "The carnal mind is enmity against God,"

and cannot therefore bear his image in his children. (Rom. viii. 7.)2

Gladly would the wicked, were not their enmity restrained, root them

out of the face of the earth;" as they never rested, till they had nailed

the Son of God to the tree.  Here however is the main difference.  The

enmity of the just is against the sins, not the persons, of the wicked.

How do they with all this principle love their souls, and pray for

them! (Rom. ix. 1; x. 1.)  How gladly would they win them to Christ

and salvation!  The enmity of the wicked is against the persons--the

ways of the upright--all that belongs to them.  'This is that strong

poison in the serpent's seed,'* the murderous spirit of their father

the devil!

      The soul is wearied with the unceasing struggles with the enemies

of truth.  How can one forbear the wish for the "wings of a dove to

flyaway, and be at rest! " (Ps.lv. 6.)  And how could we hold on the

contest, but for the blessed hope--O Lord!  hasten it in thy time--

when the woman's conquering "seed shall bruise the Serpent's Head,"

and the head of all3 his seed, finally and for ever; and he shall reign

King and Saviour over his redeemed people.

 

     1 Ps. cxxxix. 21, 22. Comp. chap. xxviii. 4.            2 John, xv. 17-19. 1 John, iii. 12,13.

     3 Ps. xlv. 3, 4. Rev. xix. 11-16.

                                    * LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. iii. 14.


CHAP. XXX. 1, 3.                                         589

 

CHAPTER XXX.

1. The words of Agur the son of Jakeh, even the prophecy: the man spake

    unto Ithiel, even unto Itiel and Ucal:  2. Surely I am more brutish

    than any man, and have not the understanding of a man.  3. I neither;

    learned wisdom, nor have (gathered together, marg.) the knowledge of

    the holy.

THE two concluding chapters of this Book are an appendix to the Pro-

verbs of Solomon.  Nothing certain is known of the writers; and it is

vain to speculate, where God is silent.  Far better is it to give the full

interest of our mind and heart to the matter of instruction, than to

indulge unprofitable curiosity respecting the writers.  Our ignorance

of the writers of many of the Psalms in no degree hinders their profit

to us.  We know their author, when the penmen are hid.  It is

enough for us to be assured, that they were "holy men of God,"

who wrote ''as they were moved by the Holy Ghost." (2 Pet. i. 21.)

       Agur was doubtless one of the wise men found in many ages of the

Old Testament Church.  His words were a prophecy;--that is--divine

instruction* given unto Ithiel and Ucal (Ithiel especially) probably two

of his scholars, whose names are equally unknown to us.  Perhaps they

came to him for instruction, and he was led to express himself in the

most humbling sense of his own ignorance.  'You come to me for

instruction. But surely I am more brutish than any man; not having

the advantages of learning wisdom (Amos, vii. 14, 15), or the knowledge

of the holy God (Dan. iv. 18), and of the holy revelation of his name.'

        His language is indeed strong. Stronger could scarcely have been

used. He confesses himself to be, not only brutish, as man is by nature;

but, though enlightened by heavenly teaching, more brutish than any;

man.  Were these the words of truth?  Or were they the affectation

of modesty?  Or was it false humility, dishonourably denying the

work of God?  He was now speaking from the mouth of God.  And

how could he dissemble in his name?  He spake the truth as it really

is, as consciousness could not but speak; as self-knowledge under;

divine teaching dictated.  For let a man take "the candle of the

Lord;" given him to "search all the inward parts of the belly" (Chap.

xx. 27); and what a mass of vanity will he find there!  Such folly

mixed with his wisdom! such ignorance with, his knowledge! that,

instead of pluming himself upon his elevation above his fellow-men, he

can but cry out in shame--Surely I am more brutish than any man!

 

      1 Job, xi. 12. Ps. xlix. 20. Jer. x. 14.

    * This was a frequent Scripture name for ordinary instruction.  Chap. xxxi, 1 Cor.

xiv. 1, 3, 4. 1 Thess. v. 20.


590                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

Whoever knows his own heart, knows that of himself, that he can

hardly conceive of anyone else being so degraded as himself.*

       Add to which--it is the child of God comparing himself with his

perfect standard.  And in the perception of his own short-comings, the

most discerning clear-sighted penitent feels, that he can never abase

himself as he ought before his God--He would lie low, lower still

infinitely lower, in the dust. Holy Paul, comparing himself with the

spirituality of the perfect law, exclaims--"I am carnal, sold under

sin." (Rom. vii. 14.)  Isaiah, in the presence of a holy God--cries

out--"Woe is me, for I am undone; because I am a man of unclean

lips." (Isa. vi. 5.)  Job in the manifestation of the power of God sinks

into absolute nothingness and unworthiness. (Job, xl. 4; xlii. 6.)

David in the full view of the wisdom of God is made to see the per-

verseness of his own folly, and take up the very confession of Agur--

"So foolish was I, and ignorant; I was as a beast before thee!"  The

nearer our contemplation of God, the closer our communion with him,

the deeper will be our self-abasement before him; like the winged

seraphs "before the throne, who with twain cover their faces, and with

twain cover their feet." (Isa. vi. 2.)  Well, therefore, may the wisest

and holiest of men, though "renewed in knowledge after the image of

him that created him" (Col. iii. 10), take up the humiliating confession

--Surely I am -more brutish than any man--Genuine humility is the

only path of wisdom. Unless a man stoops, he can never enter the

door.--He must become "a fool, that he may be wise."‡  And when

he is hum bled in his shame, then let him see the house of his God in

its breadth and length (Ezek. xliv. 5); enjoying clearer, and panting

still for clearer manifestations of the incomprehensible God.

      But how reverently should we approach this divine presence!

With what holy hands should we open his revelation! dreading a

careless, light, and presumptuous spirit; yet withal cherishing those

nobly ambitious desires for deeper and higher knowledge; yea--

reiterating them before our God with that repetition, which to a carnal

 

      * Comp. chap. xiv. 10. The following remarks of a profound divine will illustrate this

subject--'He that has much grace, apprehends much more than others that great height

to which his love ought to ascend: and he sees better than others, bow little a way he has

risen towards that height.  And therefore estimating his love by the whole height of his

duty, hence it appears astonishingly low and little in his eyes--True grace is of that

nature, that the more a person has of it, with remaining corruption, the less does his good-

ness and holiness appear in proportion, not only to his past but his present deformity, in

the sin that now appears in his heart, and in the abominable defects of his highest and best

affections.'--EDWARDS on Relig. Affections, Part iii. sect. vi.

      Ps lxxili. 1-22, 'a beast.'  The original is the plural of excellence conveying an

intensitiveness, not easy to transfer acceptably into our idiom.  Bp. Horsley gives it—‘I

was as a brute before thee.'

   ‡1 Cor. iii.18. There is a fine ray of wisdom in that consciousness of ignorance, that

led Socrates to confess--'I only know one thing--that I know nothing.' Comp. 1 Cor. 1

viii. 2.


CHAP. XXX. 4.                                             591

 

mind would be nauseating tautology; but which he who knows our

hearts loves to hear, and will beyond our desires abundantly fulfil.

 

4. Who hath ascended up into heaven, or descended?  who hath gathered the

      wind in his fists?  who hath bound the waters in a garment: who hath

      established all the ends of the earth?  what is his name, and what is his

      son's name, if thou canst tell?

      Can we wonder that Agur should have acknowledged, his brutishness,

now that he was contemplating the majesty of God, so wondrous in his

works, so incomprehensible in his nature?  The eye was blinded by

the dazzing blaze of the sun.  To behold Jehovah ascending and descend-

ing in his own glorious person;1 afterward in the person of his dear

Son2 (for in his great work was not his Father's name in him?);  to

see him holding the loose winds as firmly as a man might hold in his

fists;*  to see his almighty controul of the waters,4 and his establishment

of the ends of the earth.5--this is a sight, that might make the highest!

and wisest of men sink into nothingness before him.  Who hath done

this, none can doubt.  The challenge is thrown out as a demonstration

that it was God alone.  'Shew me the man, that can or dare arrogate

this power to himself.'

      But when we pass from the works to their great Maker, truly it is

an overwhelming view--What is his name, if thou canst tell?  "Canst

thou by searching find out God?  Canst thou find out the Almighty

unto perfection?  He dwelleth in the light, which no man can approach

unto, whom no man hath seen, nor can see."6  How can we express

him in words, or conceive of him in thought?  Child of God!  "Be

still, and know that he is God." (Ps. xlvi. 10.)  Restrain thy reason.

Humble thy faith. "Lay thine hand upon thy mouth."  Lie in the

dust before him.  "O the depth!" (Rom. xi. 33)--open only to him

whose "understanding is infinite."7

       But how does the mystery increase!  What is his name, if thou canst

tell?  And who can tell?  "No one knoweth the Son, but the Father."

(Matt. xi. 27.)  Yet there is a Son in the Eternal Godhead; a Son, not

begotten in time, but from eternity (Chap. viii. 22-30); his name

therefore, not as some would have it, a component part of his humilia-

tion but the manifestation of his Godhead: co-existent with his Father

 

      1 Gen. xi.1; xvii. 22; xviii. 21. Exod. iii.8.       2 John, i. 51; iii. 13; vi. 62. Eph. iv. 9, 10.

      3 John. x. 30. 38; xiv. 10.  Comp. Exod. xxiii. 21.

      4 Job, xxvi. 8; xxxviii 8-11. Isa. xl. 12. Jer. v. 22.

      5 Job, xxvi. 7; xxxviii. 5. Ps. xciii. 1; cxix. 90.

     6 Job. xi. 7-9. 1 Tim. vi. 16.  Comp. Job, xxxviii. 3. ,4.           7 Ps. cxlvii. 5. Isa. xl. 28.

     * Job, xxviii. 25. Comp. Ps. civ. 3; cxxxv. 7.  The Heathens dream of a lower Deity,

whom Jupiter appointed as storekeeper, to still or raise the winds at his pleasures. HOM.

Odyss. K. 21, 22. VIRG. AEn. i. 69, 70.

     Bishop Hall.


592                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

in the same ineffable nature, yet personally distinct.*  What is his

name?  and what his Son's name?  Sovereignty--Omnipresence--Omni-

potence is his.  He too controuls the winds and waters,1 and establishes

the earth,2 as one, who is in the visible "form of God, and thinketh it

not robbery to be equal with God." (Philip. ii. 6.)

      What is his name?  The secret name is easily spelt. (Rev. xix.

12,13.)  But the mystery is hid.  We must not enquire too curiously.3

Be careful that we stop, where Revelation stops.  Beyond this bound,

every step is a trespass "on forbidden ground," intruding into those

things which we have not seen, "vainly puffed up by our fleshly

mind." (Col. ii. 8.)  Many however are so bewitched by their own

fancy, that they conceive themselves to understand this name.  They

think far higher of their wisdom than Agur did, and are at no loss at

all to explain what they conceive in their proud ignorance to be the

full meaning of the inscrutable subject. But the genuine disciple

acknowledges the nature of the Son to be alike incomprehensible with

that of the Father.  He humbly lies at his feet, and thankfully adores

the mystery, which he cannot "by searching find out." (Job, xi. 7.)

        Yet what Revelatlon hath brought up to us from these untraceable

depths are pearls of great price.  Let us reverently gather them for

the enriching of our souls.  So far as our Divine Teacher leads us by

the hand, let us diligently follow him.  Within his bounds let us freely

expatiate, through the length and breadth of the land.  The wholesome

dread of being "wise above that which is written," must not damp the

holy ardour to be wise and wiser continually in that which is written.

Curiously to inquire is rashness; to believe is piety; to know indeed

is life eternal.  Unsearchable as he is in his greatness; yet so near

is he to us, that we can rest in his bosom.  Yours--Christian--is

the unspeakable privilege to be one with him, who is One with God.

And therefore, if you tell his name, as you are bound to tell what is

revealed, is it not all that is infinitely great, combined with the endear-

ing relations--Husband--Brother--Saviour--King?

 

5. Every word of God is pure (purified, marg.): he is a shield unto them

    that put their trust in him. 6. Add thou not unto his words, lest he

    reprove thee, and thou be found a liar.

       Nothing is learned solidly by abstract speculation. Go to the book.

Here all is light and purity. Though "secret things belong to the

Lord our God; yet the things that are revealed" are our holy direc-

 

     1 Matt. viii. 26; xiv. 32.           2 Heb. i.. 3.              3 Gen. xxxii. 29. Judg. xiii. 18.

     * 'We have a full and clear testimony of the distinction of persons, and that the Son is

equal to the Father, and of the same substance with him.'  LAVATER.  See Scott in loco.

Mr. Holden considers this interpretation to be 'natural and unforced, and very suitable

to the context,'

      Bernard.


CHAP. XXX. 5, 6.                                         593

 

tory.  Everything is intended to influence the heart and conduct.

(Deut. xxix. 29.)  How unlike the sacred books of the heathen, or the

sensual religion of Mahomet! Here is no license, or encouragement

to sin, no connivance at it.  All lurking sins, cherished in the dark

cavern of pollution, are brought to light, and reproved.  Every word of

God is pure.  Of what other book in the world can this be said?  Where

else is the gold found without alloy?  The word is tried. (Heb.)  It

has stood the trial, and no dross has been found in it.  'Having God

for its Author, it has truth without any mixture of error for its matter.'*

"The words of the Lord are pure words, as silver tried in a furnace of

earth, purified seven times."1

      But if every word of God is pure, take care that no word is slighted.

How few range over the whole Revelation of God!  To take a whole

view of the universe, we should embrace not only the fruitful gardens,

but its barren deserts, coming equally from the hand of God, and none

of them made for nought.  To take a similarly comprehensive view of

the sacred field, we must study the apparently barren, as well as the

more manifestly fruitful, portions.  Meat will be gathered from the

detailed code of laws, from the historical annals of the kings, and from

the "wars and fightings"--the prolific results of "the lusts of men."

(Jam. iv. 1.)  The whole Scripture is Scripture, and "all Scripture is

profitable."  (2 Tim. iii. 16.)

      Favouritism however is a besetting snare in the sacred study.  A

part is too often taken instead of the whole, or as if it were the whole.

One is absorbed in the doctrinal, a second in the practical, a third in

the prophetical, a fourth in the experimental, Scriptures; each seening

to forget, that every word of God is pure.  Some clear defect in the

integrity of profession proves unsoundness.  The doctrinist becomes

loose in practice; the practical professor self; righteous in principle.

The prophetic disciple, absorbed in his imaginative atmosphere, neglects

present obligations.  The experimental religionist mistakes a religion

of feeling, excitement, or fancy, for the sobriety and substantial fruit-

fulness of the gospel.  All remind us of our Lord's rebuke--"Ye do err

not knowing the Scriptures." (Matt. xxii. 29.)

      The great exercise therefore is--to bring out the whole mass of

solid truth in all its bearings and glory.  So wisely has God linked

together the several parts of his system, that we can receive no portion

soundly, except in connexion with the whole.  The accuracy of any

view is more than suspicious, that serves to put a forced construction

upon Scripture, to dislocate its connexion, or to throw important truths

into the shade.  Apparently contradictory statements are in fact only

balancing truths; each correcting its opposite, and, like the antagonal

 

     1 Ps. xii. 6.  Comp. Ps. cxix. 140. Chap. viii. 8, 9.

* Locke.


594                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

muscles, contributing to the strength and completeness of the frame.

Every heresy probably stands upon some insulated text or some

exaggerated truth, pressed beyond "the proportion of faith."  But none

can stand upon the combined view and testimony of Scripture.  Nor

let it be sufficient, that our system includes no positive error, if some

great truths be lacking. Let it be carefully grounded upon the acknow-

ledgment--Every word of God is pure.  Some of us may err in pre-

sumptuous familiarity with Scripture; others in unworthy reserve.  But

If the heart be right, self-knowledge will develope the error, and self-

discipline will correct it.

      Christian simplicity will teach us to receive every Divine Truth

upon this formal ground--that it is the word of God.  Though it is

not all of equal importance; it will be regarded with equal reverence.

We acknowledge implicitly God as the Author of every particle of

Scripture, and that every word of God is pure.  To reject therefore one

'jot or title is a sufficient demonstration,'--as Dr. Owen admirably

observes--'that no one jot or title of it is received as it ought.  Upon

whatsoever this title and inscription is--'The Word of Jehovah,--

there must we stoop, and bow down our souls before it, and captivate

our understandings unto the obedience of faith.'*

       This holy reverence is combined with trust in God. Blessed trust,

which brings a shield of special favour over his trembling child!1

Sometimes indeed is Satan permitted to envelope him in darkness, and

to picture, as it were, frightful transparencies upon his prison wall.

What would he do in this time of terror, did he not find a shield and a

covert in the bosom of his God?  Yes--if the word of God be pure, it

must be a sure ground of trust.  We may take its dictum with un doubt-

ing confidence, that he is a shield, as to Abraham of old (Gen. xv. 1), so

to Abraham's children, that put their trust in him.  In all circumstances

from within and from without--when I quake under the terrors of the

law, in the hour of death, in the day of judgment--"Thou art my

shield." (Ps. cxix. 114.)  Nothing honours God, like this turning to him

in every time of need.  If there be rest, peaceful confidence, safe keep-

ing, here it is.  And where is it found beside?  Despondency meets the

poor deluded sinner, who looks for some other stay.  And even the child

of God traces his frequent want of protection to his feeble and uncertain,

use of his Divine shield.

     But the word of God is not only pure, and cannot deceive.  It is also

sufficient; and therefore, like tried gold, it needs no addition for its per-

fection.  Hence to add to his words, stamped as they are with his

 

       1 Ps. ii. 11, 12. Isa. lxvi. 2.

       *OWEN on the Perseverance of the Saints, chap. x. See Life of Mary Jane Graham,

chap. v.

      Ps. v. 12. Comp. the same connexion,  xviii. 30.


CHAP. XXX. 5, 6.                                         595

 

Divine authority, will expose us to his tremendous reproof, and cover us

with shame.l  The Jewish Church virtually added their oral law and

written traditions. (Mark, vii. 7-13.)  The Church of Rome is not less

guilty, and as a church has been found a liar; adding to the inspired

canon a mass of unwritten tradition, and apocryphal writings, with all

their gross errors, and in despite of the clearest proof of their human

origin.*  The attempt in our own day to bring tradition to a near, if not

to an equal, level with the sacred testimony, is a fearful approach to

this sinful presumption.  A new rule of faith is thus introduced--an

addition to the Divine rule, of co-ordinate authority. 

     The needlessness of this addition is obvious.  For if "the holy

Scriptures are able to make us wise unto salvation" (2 Tim. iii. 15),

what want we more?  And if this were spoken of the Old Testament

Scriptures, the sufficiency of a part confirms the larger sufficiency of the

whole, while it excludes all reference to any other sufficiency; just as

the sufficiency of the early light for all practical purposes, while it pre-

cludes the necessity of the light of a candle, establishes the fuller ad-

vantage of the light of perfect day.  If "Scripture be profitable for

doctrine, for reproof, for correction, and for instruction in righteous-

ness;" if the man of God be perfected, and throughly furnished by it"

(Ib. verses 16,17), what clearer demonstration can be given of its abso-

lute completeness?  To reflect therefore upon the integrity of this

Divine rule of faith, and to shake confidence in its sole authority, is to

bring in a false principle, the source of every evil and corruption of the

faith.

      Never indeed was it so important to clear from all question the

momentous controversy--what is, what is not, the Word of God.  The

Lord has most carefully guarded his pure word from all human admix-

ture.  May he preserve his ministers from "teaching for doctrine the

commandments of men;" saying, "The Lord hath said it, when he hath

not spoken! "What a reverential awe, what godly jealousy, should

they exercise, to add not to the pure word by the glosses of false interpre-

tation; not to expound their own minds, instead of the mind of God!

 

7. Two things have I required of thee; deny me not them before I die: 8.

     Remove far from me vanity and lies:  give me neither poverty and

     riches; feed me with food convenient (of my allowance, marg.) for me:

 

     1 See Deut. iv. 2; xii. 32. Rev. xxii. 18, 19.           2 Ezek. xiii. 7-9, with Matt. xv. 9.

     * Mr. Horne has conferred an obligation upon the Church, by publishing separately his

valuable Digest of the Apocryphal Question, from the last edition of his Introduction.

    'Scripture is not the only ground of the faith' (NEWMAN'S Lectures on Roman, p. 369)

'Catholic tradition is a divine informant in religious matters.' (Ib. 329) 'the unwritten

word' (Ib. 255) 'We agree with the Romanist in appealing to antiquity as our great teacher

(Ib. 47.)  'These two (the Bible and Catholic tradition) together make up a joint rule (of faith).

Ib. 327.  Obviously therefore, while the inspiration of Scripture may be admitted, Tradition

claims our equal reverence to its authority.


596                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

       9. Lest I be full, and deny thee, and say, Who is the Lord?  or lest I

           be poor, and steal, and take the name of my God in vain.

      Though Agur had confessed his brutishness before his God yet his

prayers (the most accurate test of a man of God) prove him to have

been possessed of deep spiritual understanding. "We ask, and receive

not, because we ask amiss, that we may consume it upon our lusts."

(Jam. iv. 3.)  How wisely gracious therefore is the teaching of the

divine Comforter, "helping our infirmities" in prayer, and by moulding

our petitions, "according to the will of God," ensuring their accept-

ance. (Rom. viii. 26, 27.)  Agur's heart must have been under this

heavenly teaching; dictating his prayers by a primary regard to his

best interests, and by a spiritual discernment of what would probably

be beneficial, and what injurious to them.

       Two things he especially required--not as though he had nothing

else to ask, but as being the pressing burden of the present moment.  And

these he asks--as if he would take no denial (Gen. xxxii. 26)--with all

the intense earnestness of a dying sinner--Deny me them not before I die!

       His prayers are short, but comprehensive.  Though little is said,

yet that little is fraught with matter; framed in its proper order.

Spiritual blessings occupy the first place; temporal blessings are

secondary, and in subserviency to them.

      Remove from me vanity and lies. Is not this the atmosphere of the

world? vanity its character--lies its delusion; promising happiness,

only to disappoint its weary and restless victims?  How can the hea-

ven-born soul breathe in such a world?  Everything deadens the,

heart, and eclipses the glory of the Saviour.  "The soul cleaveth to the

dust."  "All that is in the world, the lust of the flesh, and the lust of

the eyes, and the pride of life--is not of the Father, but is of the

world." (1 John, ii. 16.)  And therefore "they that observe lying

vanities forsake their own mercy." (Jonah, ii. 8.)  A soul that knows

its dangers and its besetting temptations, will live in the spirit of this

prayer of the godly Agur--remove from me--far from me--as far as

possible, vanity and lies.  "Turn away mine eyes"--prayed a saint of

God in the same watchful jealousy--"from beholding vanityRemove

from me the way of lying." (Ps. cxix. 37, 29)

     But how singular, yet how fraught with instruction, is Agur's

second prayer!  All are ready to pray against poverty.  But to deprecate

riches--this is not nature's desire, but an impulse of godly fear and

trembling, that cometh from above.  'Give me not riches'--is scarce

the prayer of one in ten thousand.  Agur, as a wise man, desired the

safest and happiest lot; not, as Israel of old, "meat for his lust;"1 but

food convenient for him, measured out in daily allowance,2 suitable to his

 

     1 Ps.lxxviii. 18.                        2 Comp. 1 Kings, iv. 21. 2 Kings, xxv. 30.


CHAP. XXX. 7-9.                                         597

 

need. This is obviously not a fixed measure. It implies, not a bare

sufficiency for natural life, but a provision varying according to the

calling, in which God has placed us.  'If Agur be the master of a

family, then that is his competency, which is sufficient to maintain his

wife, children, and household.  If Agur be a public person, a prince or a

ruler of the people; then that is Agur's sufficiency, which will con-

veniently maintain him in that condition.'*  Jacob when "he had be-

come two bands," evidently required more than when in his earlier life

"with his staff he had passed over Jordan." (Gen. xxxii. 10.)  What

was sufficient for himself alone, would not have been sufficient for the

many that were then dependent upon him.  The immense provisions

for Solomon's table, considering the vast multitude of his dependants,

might be only a competency for the demand. (1 Kings, iv. 22.)  The dis-

tribution of the manna was food convenient--nothing too much, but no

deficiency--"He that gathered much had nothing over; and he that

gathered little had no lack." (Exod. xvi. 18.)  And thus, in the daily

dispensation of Providence, a little may be a sufficiency to one, while

an overflowing plenty is no superfluity to another.  Only let Christian

self-denial, not depraved appetite, be the standard of competency.

Proud nature never stoops so low.1  The Apostle distinctly traces to

the influence of Divine teaching his Christian moderation in his diver-

sified conditions of abundance and of want.  Philosophy may have

inculcated the lesson; but Almighty grace alone can command the

practice of it.

      It is a question'--says Dr. South--'whether the piety or the pru-

dence of this prayer be greater.‡  Agur was well persuaded of the

temptations incident to these two opposite conditions--the vanity and

lies belonging to riches (Ps. lxii. 9), the discontent and occasion of sin,

which are the snares of poverty.  Yet he does not pray absolutely

against these states, only submissively.  It is the prayer of his choice, the

desire of his heart, that God would graciously exempt him from both,

and bless him with a middle condition.  Nor does he ask this for the

indulgence of the flesh.  He deprecates not the trouble, anxieties,

and responsibilities of riches, which might betoken an indolent, self-

pleasing Spirit; nor the miseries and sufferings of poverty; but he cries

for deliverance from the snares of each condition--Let me not be rich,

lest I be full, and deny thee.  Let me not be poor, lest I steal, and take the

name of my God in vain.

       And alas! the danger of these results is but too evident.  Both ex-

tremes are the borders of fearful temptation.  Strange and irrational as

 

                        1 Eccles. v. 10. Hab. ii. 5. 1 Tim. vi 9, 10.

   * MEDE'S Sermon on Agur's Choice.

     I have learned--I have been instructed--expressions taken from the instruction in the

Heathen Mysteries. Phil. iv. 11, 12.

     ‡ Sermon on James, iii. 16.


598                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

it may appear, such is the depravity of our nature, that mercies induce

neglect, and often, casting off, of God.l  Lust is too strong for con-

science.  Rarely does "the daughter of Tyre come with her gift, or the

rich among the people entreat the favour" of their God. (Ps. xlv. 12.)

Too often, the more we receive from God, the less he receives from us.*

The twining thorns choke the heavenly plant. (Matt. xiii. 22.)  And as

we prosper in the flesh, we are impoverished in the spirit. But not less

imminent are the dangers of pinching poverty; nor is it every Christian,

that can honourably grapple with them.  Dishonesty is a besetting

temptation,2  followed up by perjury to escape punishment.3  Thus two

commandments are broken, and the sinner is in "the snare of the devil,

taken captive by him at his will." (2 Tim. ii. 26.)

            The 'golden mean' (for so even a heathen could describe it is

recommended by patriarchs,4 prophets,5 and apostles.6  Nay, our Lord

teaches us to pray for it in terms identical with this petition.  For what

else is our "daily bread" but food convenient for us?

       We must however be careful, that we use Agur's prayer in his spirit.

Perhaps the Gospel rather teaches us to leave the matter entirely with

God.  Both riches and poverty are his appointment.§  It may please

him to place us in a high condition; to entrust us with much riches, or

to exercise us with the trials of poverty.  Many of his children are in

both these conditions.||  And shall they wish it otherwise?  Let them

rather seek for grace to glorify him in either state.  Or if it seem lawful

to pray for a change of condition, let us not forget to pray for a single

eye to his glory, that his will, not ours, may be done in us.  'Whither-

soever God gives'--said the pious Bishop Hall--'I am both thankful

and indifferent; so as, while I am rich in estate, I may be poor in

spirit; and while I am poor in estate, I may be rich in grace."¶

 

1 Job, xxi. 18, 14; xxii. 17, 18.                                         2 Chap. vi. 80.

3 Chap. xxix. 24. Comp. Lev. vi. 2,8; xix. 11, 12. Zech. v. 3, 4.

     Gen. xxviii. 20.                5 Jer. xlv. 5.           6 Philip. iv. 11, 12. 1 Tim. vi. 6-10.

       * Deut. vi. 11, 12; viii. 10-18; xxxii. 15. Hos. xiii. 6. What a deep knowledge of the

heart is implied in that petition of our Litany for deliverance in all time of wealth!  How

hard to realize the time of wealth as the time of special need!

                        'Auream quisquis mediocritatem

  Diligit, tutus caret obsoleti

  Sordibus tecti, caret invidenda

  Sobrius aula.'--HORAT. Carm. lib. ii. 10.

    + The learned Mede insists upon this identity.  Things fit and sufficient, precisely

answers to arton  eipiousion. (Matt. vi. 11) a sufficiency as it were epi thn  ousian,

adequate to our being and support--bread sufficient--the bread we have need of.  Thus

periousia signifies abundance or superfluity--peri, ultra or super--as it were, an overbeing.

      § Riches are his gift, 1 Kings, iii. 13. Poverty is his will, Deut. xv. 11. Comp. Job, i. 21.

      || Abraham-David-Solomon-with Lazarus and the heirs of his kingdom, James, ii. 5.

      ¶ Work. viii. 195. 'Our Saviour, in the prayer he taught, directs us to pray in general

that God would give us daily bread, and deliver us from evil; without specifying the ex-

tenal comfort we might desire, or the particular disagreeable occurrences we might wish

to be secured against: but leaving it to the goodness of our heavenly Father to determine


CHAP.XXX. 10,11.                                      599

 

10.  Accuse not (hurt not with thy tongue, marg.) a servant unto his

                      master, lest he curse thee, and thou be found guilty.

     Let not this Proverb be a shelter for unfaithfulness. How much

evil goes on in a family, because those that are privy to it, and ought

to inform, shrink from accusing a servant to his master!  'They must not

make mischief in the house, or bring themselves into trouble.'  But we

owe it alike to master and to servant1 not to wink at sin. We may

owe it to ourselves to accuse the servant to his master for injury to our-

selves. (Gen.xxi.25,26.) Yet let a fellow-servant first observe our

Lord's rule of privacy. (Matt.xviii.15.) Let every exercise of faithful-

ness be in the spirit of love.  Beware of the busy wantonness of the

talebearer. (Lev.xix.16.) Never make trouble for trifles; or accuse

the servant, when he may not have the full liberty and power to defend

himself.  When conscience does not constrain us to speak, the law of

love always supplies a reason for silence.  The Jewish servants were

ordinarily slaves, for the most part crushed by their masters' oppression.

Cruel therefore would it be without strong cause to heap degradation

upon a sinking fellow-creature, for whom the Mosaic law prescribed

kindness and protection. (Deut.xxiii.15.)

            The rule however may be more generally applied.  David suffered

severely from unkind accusations to his royal master.2  Those who take

the most eager pleasure in finding fault are usually those, who can least

bear the retort upon themselves.  Take heed, lest, while thou art ex-

posing "the mote in thy brother's eye," thou be reminded to thy deeper

disgrace of "the beam that is in thine own eye," (Matt. vii. 3-5.)  A

curse from thy injured brother may not "come causeless to thee."3  The

motive, which plainly actuated the accusation of the adulteress, only

retorted shame upon the accusers.  "The conviction of their own con-

sciences" brought their own guilt to mind. (John, viii. 3-9.)  Should

not this remembrance constrain us to "speak evil" needlessly  "of no

man?" (Titus, iii. 2.)  Should not the covering of our infiniely pro-

voking offences induce us gladly to cast a covering over our offending

brother, where the honour of God did not forbid concealment?4

 

11. There is a generation, that curseth their father, and doth not bless their

       mother. 12. There is a generation, that are pure in their own eye, and

 

what is convenient for us, and what would prove upon the whole really evil.  Let us there-

fore from hence learn to pray, that God would always put us into that condition, which he

sees to be fittest for us, and that he would fit us more and more for that condition, in

which he places us, whatever it be; granting us wisdom and grace to behave in it after

right manner and both to discern and improve the advantages annexed to it.  By this

means, when there was no appearance but of a barren desert, we shall discover mines of

gold.'--Grave's Sermons.

     1 Matt. vii. 12. Lev. xix. 17.                                        2 1 Sam. xxii. 9, 10; xxvi. 19.

     3 Comp. chap. xxvi. 2. Deut. xv. 9. I Sam. xxvi. 19.  Comp. Jam. ii.13.

     4 Eph. iv. 31, 32. Col. iii. 12, 13.


600                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

    yet is not washed from their filthiness.  13. There is a generation, O

    how lofty are their eyes! and their eyelids are lifted up. 14. There is

    a generation, whose teeth are as swords, and their jaw-teeth as knives to

    devour the poor from off the earth, and the needy from among men.

      Agur here gives in artificial order (as in some of the Psalms) his

observations, probably in answer to his disciples' inquiries.  He de-

scribes four different masses that came under his eyes--not a few indi-

viduals, but generations; a race of men, like a large stock, descending

from father to son.  Truly "the thing that hath been, is that which

shall be; and that which is done, is that which shall be done; and

there is no new thing under the sun." (Eccles. i. 9.)  For these four

generations belong to every age.  They always have been, and always

will be, to the end of time.

      Take the first generation.  What a disgrace to human nature!

cursing their parents!  Solon, when asked why he had made, no law

against parricides, replied, that he could not conceive of anyone so

impious and cruel.  The divine law-giver knew his creature better, that

his heart was capable of wickedness beyond conception (Jer. xvii. 9);

of this wickedness beyond the imagination of the heathen sage.  He has

marked it with his most tremendous judgment.1  The cursing of a

parent was visited with the same punishment as the blaspheming of

God;* so near does the one sin approach to the other.  The rebel

against his parent is ready to "stretch out his hand against God" him-

self, and to "run upon the thick bosses of  his buckler." (Job, xv.

25, 26.)  Many are the forms, in which this proud abomination shews

itself; resistance of a parent's authority,2 contempt of his reproof,3

shamelessly defiling his name,4 needlessly exposing his sin,5 coveting

his substance,6 denying his obligation.  Most fearful is the increase of

this generation among ourselves.  Every village bears sad testimony

to this crying sin, that brings down many a parent's grey hairs with sor-

row to the grave, and spreads anarchy throughout the whole land.  No

plea of extenuation can be allowed to justify the sin.  The authority of

parents, even in the lowest degradation, must be respected, when we

dare not, must not, follow their examples.  But what can be done to

stay the threatened invasion of this devastating flood?  Once and

again let us remember, ere it be too late, discipline, wise, tender, early,

discipline; prayer--pleading, patient, believing prayer; diligence--

active, direct, prudently applied.  Will not our God bless his own

means, and give us yet to praise him?  Trust, and doubt not.

 

     1 Verse 17; xx. 20. Deut. xxi. 18-21; xxvii. 16.

     2 2 Sam. xv. 1-10.                            3 1 Sam. ii. 25.                4 2 Sam. xvi. 22.

     5 Gen. ix. 22.                                   6 Chap. xix. 26. Jud. xvii. 2.

    * Lev. xx. 9, with xxiv. 11-16.  See the same close connexion, Isa. xlv. 9, 10.  2 Tim.

iii. 2.

    Matt. xv. 4-6--shewing the identity between cursing, and not blessing, the parent.

 

CHAP. XXX. 11-14.                                     601

 

     In what Church do we not find the next generation--pure in their

own eyes, yet not washed from their filthiness? (Isa. lxv. 5.)  The Pharisees

of the Gospel1 were the living picture, devoted to the externals of reli-

gion, and to them exclusively; "washing the outside of the cup and

platter," while the inward part was wholly unwashed from its filthiness.

We see them in the next generation in the Laodicean Church. (Rev. iii.

17, 18.)  The family at this distance of time is far from being extinct.

Their lineal representatives abound among us.  Their religion, as of

old, is mere ceremony; rigid in forms, but with an inveterate hatred of

vital godliness.  In the service of the Church they will go through the

exercise of confession of sin, and supplication for mercy, as 'miserable

offenders;' still pure in their own eyes, with no conscious filthiness, from

which they need to be washed.  Nay--they will even at the Lord's

table, engage in a service, as full of contrition and self-renunciation as

language could express; yet all this, not to humble the soul in sorrow

and confidence, but to feed self-righteousness and delusion. All is

formality, and "confidence in the flesh."

      Indeed a thin cloak of profession suffices to maintain this self-

gratifying judgment.  For everywhere it is the great work of Satan, to

delude the sinner into a good opinion of himself.  His open profession

is "according to the course of this world," plunging without scruple

into all its follies and pleasures.  His baptismal engagement is thrown

to the wind.  He does not pretend to renounce the devil, the world, or

the flesh.  Creeds are a matter of indifference.  For the hearty service

of his God he has no care or concern.  And yet, withal, he is pure in his

own eyes.  He estimates himself by some plausible qualities, or some

course of external decorum,2 while a blind infidel as to the depravity of

his nature, which--not the gross acts of sin--gives the stamp to the

whole character.  Sometimes partial obedience maintains this delusion;

while he hides from himself the genuine hypocrisy of secret reserves,

which mars all. (1 Sam. xv. 13, 14.)  He was once impure; but he has

gone through a course of purifying observances, has washed himself

from his filthiness, little knowing the infinite distinction between being

pure in his own eyes, and being pure in the sight of God.

     We often see this self-deceiver in the spiritual Church, exhibiting a

full and clean profession to his fellow-men; while himself--awful

thought!--living at an infinite distance from God. (1 Cor. xiii. l.)  He

has got notions of the grand doctrines of the gospel, and he finds it con-

venient to profess them.  Salvation by free grace is his creed, and he

will "contend earnestly for" its purest simplicity.  He conceives him-

self to distinguish accurately between sound and unscriptural doctrine.

He deems it legal to search for inward evidences, lest they should ob-

 

     1 Matt. xxiii. 25-27.  Comp. Luke, xvi. 15; xviii. 10. John ix. 40, 41.

     2 Matt. xix. 20. Rom. vii. 9. Philip. iii. 6.


602                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

scure the glorious freeness of the gospel.  All this is a cover for his

slumbering delusion.  His conscience is sleeping in "the form of godli-

ness," while his heart is wholly uninfluenced by "its power." (2 Tim. iii.

5.)  Or perhaps there may be alarming conviction of some powerful

corruption, which, if he could master, he would be at peace.  But while

fixing his eye upon this single sin, he has no conception of the grand

fountain of evil within.  Sometimes it is the Romish error (common

however to human nature) of substituting penance for penitence; some

external work of sacrifice for the deep, inwrought principle; or the

periodical routine of humiliation instead of the daily habit.  But with

all this, there is no mourning for his innate guilt and pollution; no

sensibility of sin in thoughts, objects, motives, or prayers; no percep-

tible change from a proud, self-willed, or worldly spirit.  All serves only

to soothe his conscience.  He is pure in his own, eyes--in his own

imaginary view and perverted judgment!  Yet until he be disturbed

in his complacency, how hopeless his condition! (Chap. iii. 7; xii. 15;

xvi. 2.)

     Whatever allowance we may make in other cases for the pressure of

constitutional temperament, here at least the want of all cheering in-

fluence is a plain proof of self-delusion.  Vital religion is the sugar in

the liquid, which impregnates the whole contents of the cup.  The path

may be thorny, and our light darkness.  But sweetness will be mingled

in our sorrow, even till the last drop in the cup of life shall be spent.

The formalist's religion is a piece of polished marble in the cup, exter-

nally beautiful, but cold and dead; impregnating nothing with an atom

of sweetness.

     The power of this self-delusion is, that man has no natural concep-

tion of the deep stain of sin, such as nothing but the blood of sprinkling

can fetch out.  The man of God, bathed in the tears of penitence, cries

out for this sprinkling alone to "purge him." (Ps. li. 7.)  The tears of

the purest repentance in themselves are impure and abominable.1  It is

not the exercise of a day to know the full extent of our corruption.  As

the Lord leads us into the light of our own hearts, we behold "greater

and yet greater abominations." (Ezek. viii. 7.)  The conscience purged

from sin becomes more clear for the discovery of remaining pollution.

Those who are the most purified will have the deepest sensibility of im-

purity,2 and will most deeply value "the fountain opened for sin and

uncleanness," with its free invitation--"Wash, and be clean." (Zech.

xiii. 1.)

     Sinner! if thou be found unwashed from thy filthiness, must it not be

certain exclusion from that "place, into which shall not in any wise

enter anything that defileth?" (Rev. xxi. 27.)  Awful indeed will be

 

1 Job, ix. 30, 31. Jer. ii. 22.

2 Comp. Rom. vii. 9 Philip. iii. 6, with Rom, vii. 14-24.  1 Tim. i. 15.


CHAP. XXX. 11-14.                                     603

 

the final sentence--"He that is filthy, let him be filthy still!" (Ib.

xxii. 11)

     The next generation provokes our sorrowful amazement. O how lofty

are their eyes! and their eyelids lifted up.  Such intolerable arrogance!

What greater anomaly does the conscience afford than that of a proud

sinner! his eyelids being lifted up, instead of being cast down to the

ground.  Such is his self-confidence even in the presence of his God!

(Luke, xviii. 11.)  And before men--all must keep their distance from

these swelling worms!  We may see this pride embodied in a system

--"the Man of sin, sitting in the temple of God, shewing himself that

he is God!" (2 Thess. ii. 4.)  We may see it in worldly greatness

in the pride of Moab;1 the prince of  Tyre;2 the boasting Antiochus;3

Haman in all his glory;4  "Herod arrayed in his royal apparel;"5

Nebuchadnezzar in his self-pleasing contemplation, before the severe

chastenmg of his God had taught him the wholesome lesson--"Those

that walk in pride he is able to abase." (Dan. iv. 30.)  In a lower 1evel

it is the pride of birth, rank, wisdom, riches, or accomplishments.  In

every circumstance is this high look specially hateful to God;6 and the

day is appointed in his own purpose for its prostrate humiliation.  (Isa.

ii. 12.)  Meanwhile little is it conceived, how really contemptible this

pride makes its deluded votaries appear before their fellow-creatures.

(Ps. ci. 5.)  One beam of the divine glory,7 and one sight of the cross of

Calvary,8 must at once dispel their vain splendid illusion.

     The last generation appears before us as a monster of iniquity.  We

can scarcely draw the picture in its full colours.  Conceive of brutes

with iron teeth--a wild beast opening his mouth, and displaying,

instead of teeth, swords and knives, sharpened ready for their murderous

work. (Ps. lvii. 4.)  Yet withal, these cruel oppressors are marked by

pitiful cowardice.  They vent their wantonness, only where there is

little or no power of resistance.  It is not the wolf with the wolf, but

with the defenceless lamb; devouring the poor and needy from off the

earth,9 --"eating up my people"--not like an occasional indulgence,

but "as they eat bread" their daily meal, without intermission. (Ps.

xiv. 4.)  Such cruel oppressors appear from time to time as a chastening

curse to the land; nay, they were found among the rulers of God's own

people,10 even among the teachers of religion.11 Cloaking their covetous-

ness under the garb of special holiness.  God would thus shew us a

picture of man left to himself.  When the reins are loosened or given

up, is there any length of wickedness, to which he may not proceed?

Indeed the four generations teach us this lesson, most valuable, yet

 

      1Isa. xvi. 6.  Jer. xlviii. 29.       2Ezek xxviii. 2.        3Dan. xi. 36.

      4Esth. v. 11.            5Acts, xii. 21.         6Chap. vi. 17; xxi. 4. Comp. Ps. cxxxi. l.

      7Comp. Job,  xlii. 5, 6.  Isa. vi. 5.         8 Phil. ii. 5.

      9Ib. x. 8, 9. Eccles. iv. 1. Isa. iii. 15.  Am. ii. 6, 7;  viii. 4.  Mic. ii. 1, 2.  Hab. iii 14.

      10Am. iv. 1. Mic. iii. 1-3.                                            11Matt. xxiii 14.


604                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

most humbling, thoroughly to know.  Yet so depraved is man, that he

does not understand his own depravity.  Nothing is so much hidden

from him as himself. (2 Kings, viii. 13.) He keeps a good opinion of

himself, by keeping the light out of the heart and conscience.  His

imagination fancies good, where there is nothing but hateful deformity.

Under this self-delusion, we deal so gently and tenderly with sin, that

no conflict is maintained with it, no sorrow or burden felt concerning

it.  How deeply do we need the searching light and convincing power

of the Spirit of God, to shew us our abominations; to make us tremble

at the sight of them; and to let us see, that our remedy must come

from God every moment; that no partial change, no external polish,

nothing less than the creating power of God, can reach the case for a

cure! (Ps. li. 10.)

     Adored indeed be the grace of God, if we be not in one or other of

these generations! But let us remember--"Such were some of us"--

either disobedient to our parents, or self-righteous in the church, or

proud and contemptuous, or cruel and oppressive.  But we are washed

from our filthiness. (1 Cor. vi. 11.)  Therefore--"who maketh thee to

differ?" (Ib. iv. 7) is the profitable recollection, when we are disposed

to forget from whence we were raised, and to whom we owe all that we

have and are for his service.

   

15. The horseleech hath two daughters, crying, Give, give.  There are three

      things, that are never satisfied, yea, four things say not,  It is enough

      (wealth, marg.).  16. The grave; and the barren womb; the earth

      that is not filled with water; and the fire that saith not, It is enough.

    

     Agur describes in an artificial mode of expression,1 but with

forcible imagery, the cravings of human lust.  If viewed in reference to

the last generation, they form an admirably finished picture of the

merciless and avaricious tyrant.  They are like the horseleech, which

hath two daughters, crying, Give, give.  They are like the three and four

things, the grave, the womb, the earth, and the fire.*  But with a more

general reference the figures are graphically instructive.  The horse-

leech with its two-forked tongue like two daughters, sucks the blood

with an insatiable appetite.  The grave opens the mouth for fresh

victims.2  The barren womb eagerly covets the blessing.3  The parched

earth, after large supplies, still thirsts for more.  The fire, when the

spark first kindles a coal, or lights upon combustible matter, never

 

     1 See Verses 21, 24, 29; vi. 16. Am. i. 3, 6, 9; ii. 1, 4.

     2 Chap. xxvii. 20. Hab. ii. 5.                      3 Gen. xxx. 1. 1 Sam. i. 6, 11.

     *Holden. Comp. Ps. lix. 12, 14, 15.

      Reformer's Notes.

            'Non missura cutem, nisi plena cruoris hirudo."

HOR. De  Arte Poetica, 476.


CHAP. XXX. 17.                                           605

 

ceases to burn as long as fuel is supplied, and in many a disastrous

conflagration, leaves us to cry out in fearful wonder, "Behold! how

great a matter a little fire kindleth." (Jam. iii. 5.)  And yet these are

scarcely adequate representations of that insatiable thirst within, that

never says--It is enough.  The greater the portion, the greater the lust.

Every indulgence provokes the appetite.*  'The horseleech hath but two

daughters.  But we have'--says Bishop Sanderson-- 'I know not how

many craving lusts, no less importunately clamorous than they; till

they be served, incessantly crying, Give, give; but much more unsatisfied

than they.  For they will be filled in time, and when they are filled,

they tumble off, and there is an end. But our lusts will never be satis-

fied.  Like Pharaoh's kine, when they have eaten up all the fat ones,

they are still as hungry and as whining as they were before.

      How blessed then is the state, to which the Gospel brings us

"Having food and raiment, let us be therewith content!"  What a

merciful--deliverance from that "destruction and perdition," the certain

end of lawless lust. (1 Tim. vi. 6-10.) Happy child of God--weaned

from his old indulgence! disciplined under his father's yoke! satisfied

abundantly with his father's love.  Whether "he abound or suffer need"

--he can say--"It is wealth--I am full, and abound." (Phil. iv.

12, 18.)  Has he not found that, which answers every demand, supplies

every need, and satisfies every desire?  What but God can fill the

soul, which God hath made, and made for himself?

 

17. The eye that mocketh at his father, and despiseth to obey his mother,

      the ravens of the valley shall pick it out, and the young eagles shall

      eat it.

 

     Agur here returns to the first generation--the unnatural despisers

of their parents. (Verse 11.)  He had before described their character.

Now he links it with the punishment.  Observe the guilt only of a

scornful look, or the mocking eye, when perhaps not a word is spoken.

Certainly if the fifth commandment is "the first with promise" (Eph.

vi. 2), it is also the first with judgment.  No commandment in the

breach of it is visited with more tremendous threatenings.  What a

picture is here given of infamy!  Perhaps the case of Absalom furnishes

the most striking illustration--a self-willed youth or rebel against his

father and his sovereign made a spectacle of shame before his people

the vengeance of God inflicting the punishment, which was due at the

bar of human justice! (2 Sam. xviii. 17.)  But we may observe a more

general illustration of the frightful picture.  How many confessions

 

      *See Augustine's Confession, Lib, iii. c. 1.

       Sermon on Phil. iv. 11. 'By the daughters of the horseleech may be understood covetous-

ness and prodigality.  Both then cry, Give, give.  The former cries--Give, to keep; the

latter cries--Give, to spend.  Neither of them saith--It is enough..'  CARYL on Job, xx. 20.


606                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

on the scaffold have borne testimony, that the first step towards the

untimely end was contempt of parental authority and restraint!  The

bodies of such criminals were deprived of the rites of burial; exposed

either on the gallows, or cast out into the valley, as meat for the fowls

of the air.1 Thus the eye, that hath scornfully mocked his father, became

the choice morsel of the eagle or the raven of the valley.*

            But even where there is no such literal fulfilment, the curse is not

the less sure.  Seldom do we see the disobedient rebels prospering, and

blessed in their own children. Retributive justice visits them late, but

certain; and the poignant anguish of many a disappointed hope, and

many an arrow shot from their own bow, may bear to them the message

of their chastising Father--"Thine own iniquities shall correct thee,

and thy backslidings shall reprove thee." (Jer. ii. 19.)

 

18. There be three things, which are too wonderful or me: yea, four, which

       I know not.  19. The way of an eagle in the air; the way of a serpent

       upon a rock; the way of a ship in the midst (heart, marg.) of the sea,

       and the way of a man with a maid.  20. Such is the way of an adul-

       terous woman; she eateth, and wipeth her mouth, and saith, I have done

       no wickedness.

 

     The kingdom of nature is full of wonder, and these wonders full of

instruction.  Where the philosopher cannot give a reason, the humble

disciple may learn a lesson.  The depths of nature are the figure of the

depths of sin--of the unsearchable deceitful heart. (Ib. xvii. 9.)  The

eagle soars in the air with so lofty and rapid a flight, that the eye cannot

follow her way.  She leaves no scent nor footsteps, by which we might

trace her, as the beast on the ground. (Job, xxxix. 27.)  The serpent on

the sand would leave its mark.  But the serpent on the "rock leaves no

slime like the worm, no feathers like the birds; who then can mark its

way?  The ship, like the great monster of the deep, "maketh a path to

shine after her."  But while she ploughs in the midst (in the heart) of

the sea, her furrows are quickly closed up, and her way is untraceable.

Not less mysterious is the way of a man with it maid.  Eminently prac-

 

             1 See Gen. xl. 19. 1 Rom. xvii. 46. 2 Sam. xxi. 10.

     * Bochart conceives the allusion to be to the valley-- Jer. xxxi. 40--where probably the

dead bodies of the criminals sent.  At all events the denial of the rites of burial was

one of the severest marks of divine chastisement.  Comp, Jer. vii. 33; xxii. 18, 19.  The

Heathens felt this deprivation to be a special affliction.  Homer represents the dying

Hector, as entreating Achilles not to give his body to be torn by his Grecian dogs, but

restore it to his parents for burial.  Lib. XI: 337-343.  Virgil also represents Palinurus

begging AEneas either to throw the earth himself upon his body, or to carry  it with him

through the water, rather than expose it to the birds of prey.--Aen. VI. 363-371.

     Job, xli. 32. Comp. Ps. civ. 26; cvii. 23, 24.  This figure, and that of the eagle, as

images of the rapid course of life, are finely illustrated--Wisd. v. 11,12.  Witsius admirably

defends these figures as worthy of inspiration, against the sneers of neological critics.--

Misc. Sacra, Lib. i. c. xviii. 31-33.


                                    CHAP. XXX. 18-20.                                     607

 

tised is the seducer in "the depths of Satan," and a thousand arts does

he employ to allure the affections of his unwary victim. And it is often

as difficult to penetrate his designs, and to escape his snares, as to trace

the way of the eagle, the serpent, or the ship.  Let this be a warning to

young and inexperienced females, not to trust to their own purity,

or to the strength of their own resolutions, or to place themselves in

unprotected situations.*

      Equally unfathomable are the devices of the adulterous woman to

entangle her prey, and to deceive her unsuspecting husband.  Solomon

has described the picture with striking and minute accuracy. (Chap.

vii; v.6.)  Such a course of abomination, wickedness, and hypocrisy,

as is scarcely to be conceived; indulging her sin as the sweet morsel

under her tongue; feasting greedily upon her "stolen waters and secret

bread;"1 yet keeping up the semblance of innocence and purity;2

wiping her mouth, to prevent all suspicion, suffering no sign of the action

to remain.  A woman must be advanced very far in the way of sin,

before she can present such unblushing a front.  Yet every fresh

indulgence of lust gives rise to new artifices, "hardening" the heart

more fully in the "deceitfulness of sin."  (Heb. iii. 13.)  Its fascinations

blind it to its real character.  Let then the first step be shunned, the

most distant path, that may lead to temptation.  Where shame ceases

to accompany it, the ruin of the victim is accomplished.  Abundant

warning is given; solemn instruction--many beacons in the path--

to show the certain end of this flowery road.3

 

      1Chap. ix.17.         2 Gen. xxxix. 13-19.    3Chap. v. 3-5; vii. 24-21; ix. 18.

      *Ambrose has treated fully upon these four figures.  Assuming the chapter to be

written by Solomon, he explains his ignorance of them—‘not that he was not able to

know them, but because it was not a time for him to know them.'  The way of the eagle he

understands to be the ascension of Christ, flying back as an eagle to his Father, carrying

man plucked from the Jaws of the enemy as his prey with him!  And though the ascen-

sion was visible, yet what understanding could grasp the apprehension of such Majesty

retiring to heaven!  The way of the serpent on the rock shadowed the assaults of Satan upon

Christ--on whom, as on a rock (unlike the first man, who was earth and dust) he could

leave no mark, no footsteps of his malice.  The pious father seems to be in some doubt

upon the third image.  The way of the ship in the sea is the way of God's church through the

sea of persecution.  This ship cannot miscarry, because Christ is lifted up in the mast of it

--that is--on the cross.  The Father sitteth as pilot at the stern of it.  The Comforter

preserved its prow!  Or--Christ is the ship, into which the souls of all true belivers do go

up; which, that it may be carried more strongly in the midst of the waves, is made of

wood, and fastened with iron: this is Christ in the flesh.  And who can tell the way of this

ship, either into the womb of the Virgin, or the heart of believers?  The way of a man in

his youth (LXX. and some other versions) illustrates the ways of our Saviour Christ in his

youth upon the earth!'

      Such puerile crudities are calculated to bring ridicule rather than reverence to the

sacred book.  Yet a combined and powerful effort is now made to palm the Fathers upon

the church as the primary expositors of Scripture, and the standard of faith!  Many

patristic expositions of the Proverbs equally gross might have been produced.  Apart from

higher ground--Can we forbear surprise, that men of taste and learning should affix their

imprimatur to such undisciplined folly of interpretation?


608                             EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

21.  For three things--the earth is disquieted, and for four, which it cannot

       bear:  22. For a servant when he reigneth; and a fool when he is filled

       with meat: 23. For an odious woman when she is married: and an

        handmaid that is heir to her mistress.

      Next to things which were unsearchable, Agur now mentions some

things that were intolerable--things, for which the earth is disquieted,

bringing confusion wherever they are found.  Who does not naturally

condemn things out of place, as unsuitable and unseemly?  Order is

the law of the works of God in the world, no less than in the Church;1

and any breach of order is to be deprecated.  Four such evils are here

mentioned--two connected with men, two with women; the one class

in the community, the other in the family.

      The first evil mentioned is--a servant, when he reigneth.  This is a

serious evil in the family, whether it arises from the mismanagement of

the master,2 or from his own intrigue. (Verse 23.)  He is obviously out

of place; and ruling, where he ought to serve, he must bring disorder.

(Gen. xvi. 4.)  The evil is far greater in a kingdom.  Men of low birth

may indeed rise honourably by their own merit to a high station.  God

may call them, as he did Joseph (Ib. xli. 41), to reign.   The evil is the

advancement to power of ignorant, unprincipled minions.3  Men of

mean spirit cannot bear to be raised.  Intoxicated by sudden elevation,

these upstarts shew themselves not only fools, but tyrants;*  swelling

with all the insolence of their unseemly honour.  Such was the enmity

of Tobiah the Ammonite4 and the misrule of Haman.5  What national

evil resulted from the elevation of Jeroboam!6  What anarchy from the

successful usurpation of Zimri!7  Well therefore might the reign of

servants be deplored, as a component part of the calamnity of disconsolate

Zion! (Lam. v. 8.)  In the ordinary course it can only be viewed as a

chastening dispensation. (Isa. iii. 4, 5.) Let us acknowledge with

thankfulness our deliverance from it.

     Then look at the fool (not an idiot, but a wilful sinner) when he is

filled with meat.  Can we wonder that he should be a trouble and a

curse; giving the reins to his appetite, and becoming yet more devoid

of understanding than before?  The history of Nabal, sunk into

brutishness by his own sensual lust (1 Sam. xxv. 36); Elah murdered

by his servant, whilst "drinking himself drunk in his steward's

 

      1Eccles. iii. 11. 1 Cor. xiv. 40.      2Chap. xxix. 21.     3Chap. xix. 10.  Eccles. x. 5-7.

      4 Neh. ii. 10.                                 5 Esth. iii. 1.           6 1 Kings, xi. 26-28; xii. 30,

           7 Ib. xvi. 9-20. Comp. 2 Kings, viii. 12.

*Chap. xxviii. 3. This danger is accurately drawn by one of the Classic moralists:--

Asperius nihil  est bumili; cum surgit in altum,

Cuncta ferit, dum cuncta timet; desaevit in omnes,

Ut se posse putet; nec bellua tetrior una est,

Quam servi rabies, in libera terga furentis.

CLAUDIAN. Lib. i. in Eutrop.


                                    CHAP. XXX. 21-23.                                     609

 

house;"1 Belshazzar giving himself over to the lust of ungodliness2

--all these were evils, for which the earth was disquieted, and which it

could not bear.  Filled with meat--"with surfeiting and drunkenness"

they dig as it were their own graves with their teeth, and are set forth

as an example in the just punishment of their wicked folly.

     Look again into the inner room of the family.  What is the origin

of discord and palpable misery?  An odious woman is in rule. She

quarrels with all around her.  Her ungoverned tongue and temper are

an unceasing source of agitation.  Had she known herself, much better

for her never to have entered into the marriage bond, than to become

the inseparable tormentor of her husband and family.3  Woman is to

man either his greatest curse or blessing.  If love be not the earnest of

the sacred union, truly will it be a bond of misery, from which only the

special mercy of God can deliver.  Let the worldly portion of the wife 

be the last consideration.  Take heed, lest worldly glitter open a door

for remediless misery."

     The odious woman, when she is married, if she be in authority,

becomes a national evil.  Jezebel was a scourge to Israel, the spring of

all Ahab's wickedness, that brought the heavy judgment of God upon

the and.4  The earth was disquieted for her, and at the last cast her out.

(2 King, ix. 30-37.)  Herodias brought upon her husband and his

nation the guilt of the blood of the murdered prophet "crying from the

ground." (Matt. xiv. 8.)  If marriage be the ordinance of lust, not of it

godliness, what wonder if an odious woman should be the result, a

canker to every domestic comfort?

     The last evil noticed is a frequent source of family trouble--an

handmaid, that is heir to her mistress.  Want of discipline, simplicity, or

integrity, leads to waywardness and self-indulgence; and the house,

instead of being under wholesome rule, becomes a prey to envy and

strife.  The ill-regulated connection between Abraham and Hagar, when

the servant became heir to her mistress--occupying her mistress's place

with her husband-became the source of most baneful contention.

(Gen. xvi. 4.)  Our own history presents sad illustration of this intoler-

able evil.  Anne Boleyn and Jane Seymour were handmaids, and

unhappily heirs, to their respective mistresses while living, in the

affections of the sovereign.  The royal example of selfishness and lust

was a national grievance, in which the handmaids were not wholly

guiltless.

      And thus in modern society, an handmaid, treated with that

familiarity, which breaks down the Divine barriers between the several

ranks, has sometimes become heir to her mistress; either succeeding to

her property--perhaps to the exclusion of more rightful claimants

 

     11 Kings, xvi. 9, 10. Hos. vii.5.      2 Dan. v. 1-4, 30. 1 Sam. xxx. 16. 1 Kings, xx. 16.

     3Chap. xxi. 9, 19; xxvii. 15.            41 Kings, xvi. 31; xxi. 25.


610                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

(Chap. xxix. 21); or rising into her place by an ill-assorted union, like

those above-mentioned, usually productive of much family dissension.

Or again, in the higher ranks, she is the heir to her mistress's dresses.

This encourages in her the love of dress and vanity, habits unsuitable

to her situation in life; and too often hurtful to her solid respectability

and eternal interests.

     How needful is it to preserve consistency in every part of our pro-

fession!  Oh! let us look carefully to it, that no want of wisdom, godly

contentment, or self-denial, brings reproach upon that worthy name by

which we are called; that there be no spots, to mar that adorning

beauty, which might attract those around us to the ways of God.

 

24. There be four things which are little upon the earth: but they are ex-

      ceeding wise: (wise, made wise, marg.)  25. The ants are a people

      not strong: yet they prepare their meat in the summer;  26. The conies

      are but a feeble folk yet make they their houses in the rocks.  27. The

      locusts have no king; yet go they forth all of them by bands.  28. The

      spider taketh hold with her hands, and is in king's palaces.

    The mind of man spreads over the length and breadth of creation,

and draws instruction from every part of the universe presented to his

senses.  Everywhere God teaches us by his works as well as by his

word;* by his works, small as well as great. He instructed Job by

Behemoth and Leviathan. (Job, xl. xli.)  Here he instructs us by the

ants and the conies.  And indeed in the minute creation his splendour

shines as gloriously as in the more majestic.  'At one end' (of the

scale) (as Dr. Paley finely draws the contrast) 'we see an intelligent

power arraying planetary systems; fixing, for instance, the trajectory

of Saturn, or constructing a ring of two hundred thousand miles dia-

meter, to surround his body, and be suspended like a magnificent arch

over the head of his inhabitants; and at the other, bending a hooked

tooth, concerting and providing an appropriate mechanism for the

clasping and re-clasping of the filaments of the feathers of the humming-

bird.'

      Agur had before mentioned four things, that seemed great, but were

really despicable.  Here the produces four things little upon the earth, but

exceeding wise.  Therefore despise them not for their littleness: but

admire the wonder-working hand, which hath furnished these little

creatures with such sufficient means of provision, defence, and safety.

As has been beautifully remarked--'God reigns in a community of

ants and ichneumons as visibly, as among living men or mighty

 

      *The stupid beasts reprove our ingratitude (Isa. i. 3.)  The fowls of the air, our inat-

tention (Jer. viii. 7); our unbelieving carefulness (Matt. vi. 26); and anxious fears (Ib. x.

29-31.)

       Natural Theology. Conclusion.


                                    CHAP. XXX. 24-28.                                     611

 

seraphim.'*  Truly nothing was made for nought.  The world of

instinct shews that which will put to blush our higher world of reason.

Yes,--these four remarkable instances of Almighty skill, the natures

and habits of these four little animals, teach many useful and important

lessons, to which the greatest philosopher might attend with profit, and

"he that hath ears to hear may hear" words of suitable wisdom, rebuke,

direction and encouragement for himself.

     'Industry is commended to us by all sorts of examples, deserving

our regard and imitation. All nature is a copy thereof and the whole

world a glass, wherein we may behold this duty represented to us. 

Every creature about us is incessantly working toward the ends for

which it was designed; indefatigably exercising the powers with

which it is endued; diligently observing the laws of its creation.'

The ants have already brought the lesson before us (Chap. vi. 6-8)--a

people not strong; indeed so weak, that thousands are crushed by one

tread of the foot; yet wise in preparing their meat in the summer.  A

quickening sermon do these little insects preach to us!  They make

preparation for the coming winter.  What must be the thoughtlessness

of making no provision for the coming eternity! whiling away life in

inactivity, as if there was no work for God, for the soul, or for eternity!

Shall not we learn to be wise betimes; to improve the present moment

of salvation; not to wait for the winter--the verge of life, when that

grace, offered now, shall be offered no more?  Sinner! if all be lost by

thy indolence, wilt not thou be the great loser?  What else hast thou

to do, but to prepare for eternity?  What hope canst thou have of

heaven at the last, if thou hast never seriously thought of heaven

before?  Oh!--ere it be too late, throw thyself at his feet, whose

heart over-flows with love.  If thou art ready, "all things are ready."

Exclusion is with thyself, not with thy Saviour.1

     The ants are a people not strong.  Yet--apart from their wisdom--

what people more diligent, more persevering, or more effective?

Indeed the union of so many noble qualities in so small a corpuscle is

one of the most remarkable phenomena in the works of nature.§

Weakness, then, is no excuse for indolence, no occasion of despondency.

Is it not rather the cheering exercise of faith? (2 Cor. xii. 9, 10.)

"The worm shall thresh the mountains." (Isa. xli. 15.)  To the diligent

"labourer shall be given the meat, that endureth to everlasting life."

 

                                1Luke, xiv. 16-24.  John, vi. 37.

     *McCheyne's Life, p- 34.

     BARROW'S Sermon on Industry.

        ‡  The term--nation or people--is applied to the animal creation, Joel, i, 6; ii. 2.  This

is a frequent classical allusion.  Homer spoke of a nation of bees (Ib. B. 1. 87); of hogs

( 73); Virgil of fishes, Geor. iv. 430.

      § PAXTON'S Natural History of the Scripture, p. 97.


612                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

(John, vi. 27.)   "Working out his salvation in helpless dependence,"

his "labour shall not be in vain in the Lord."*

      As the ants prepare their meat, so do the conies their refuge.  Feeble

folk as they are, they secure themselves from impending danger, by

making their houses in the holes of inaccessible rocks.  Thus what they

want in strength they make up in wisdom.  Not less feeble are we; not

less exposed to assault.  And is not our refuge like theirs "the muni-

tion of rocks?" (Isa. xxxiii. 16.)  Are we then, like them, making our

house, our home, there? in the foresight of evil hiding ourselves?

abiding in our shelter in conscious security? (Chap. xxii. 3.)

      Observe again the instinct of the locusts.  Some insects, like the

bee, are under monarchical government.  But the locusts have no king.

Yet how wonderful is their order, going forth all of them by band; like

an army with unbroken ranks, and under the strictest discipline!

Jerome mentions what he had lately seen--'When the swarms of

locusts came, and filled the lower region of the air, they flew in such

order, by the divine appointment, and kept their places as exactly, as when

several tiles or party--coloured stones are skilfully placed in a pavement,

so as not to be an hair's-breadth out of their several ranks.'§  Do not

these little insects read to us a lesson on the importance of unity and

unanimous movement?  Here is not an ungoverned, disorderly multi-

tude flying in different directions.  But all go forth by bands.  All keep

their ranks.  Many professors, instead of going by bands, prefer an indi-

vidual course.  They belong to no cohort.  They are under no disci-

pline.  This unsettled principle can never issue in a Christian stead-

fastness.  Unity, not diversity, brings "the good thing of the heart

 

     *Phil. ii. 12, 1, 3. 1 Cor. xv. 58. Chrysostom ingeniously remarks upon the wonders of

divine wisdom, in inspiring so minute a body with such a perpetual desire for labour;

teaching us so strongly the lesson, not to affect softness and delicacy, or to fly from toil and

labour. He adds--that the wise man, sending us to learn of these little creatures, is just

as we should in our families put to shame the disobedience of the elder children, by point-

ing to the little ones--Behold one much younger and smaller than yourself; yet how pli-

able and ready he is to do as he is hid!'  Hom. xii. ad Pop. Antioch.

     Ps. civ. 18.  There is much difficulty in determining this animal, which was reckoned

among the unclean (Lev. xi. 55. Deut. xiv. 7.)  Dr. Shaw (with whom Parkhurst agrees)

considers it to be ‘the Daman of Mount Libanus, though common in other parts of Syria

and Palestine, of the rabbit size and form. As its usual residence and refuge is in the holes

and clefts of the rocks, we have so far a presumptive evidence, that this creature may be

the coney of the Scriptures.'  Travels, vol. ii. 160, 161.  Mr. Bruce strongly confirms this

account from his own observation--adding--'He is above all other animals so much at-

tached to the rock, that I never once saw him on the ground, and from among large stones

in the mouth of caves, where is his constant residence.  He is in Judaea, Palestine, and

Arabia, and consequently must have been known to Solomon.'  See his Travels, v. pp.

139-147.                       'Gaudet in effossis habitare caniculus antris.'

MART. Epig. Lib. xiii. Ep. 58.

       ‡ See the picture, Joel, ii. 7, 8, 25.

    § Quoted by Lowth on Joel, ut supra.  The mystical locusts have a king. Comp. Rev.

ix. 3-11.


CHAP. xxx. 29-31.                                        613

 

established with grace." (Heb. xiii. 9.)  The strength of the Church is

--not as an army of irregular soldiers, a regiment in loose disorder,

unconnected with each other; but when she goeth forth by bands,

united, concentrated, well disciplined, every officer at his post, every

soldier in his ranks, each under rule, helpful to each other and to their

great cause! (Num. 11.)  "When shall It once be. "Lord, heal our

unhappy divisions.  Unite our energies' in one holy bond of Truth

and Peace, of Faith and Charity.'*

     And what lessons does the spider teach, of ingenuity, patience, and

untiring labour and perseverance!  'Its claws or spinning-organs serve

both as hands and eyes to the animal.' She forms her web against

the walls, as if she took hold of them with her hands.  She frames her

fine-spun house with such exactness of proportion, as if conversant with

mathematical rule.  She steals her way alike into the cottage of the

poor and king's palaces; as if God would instruct even the great-ones

of the earth by this pattern of diligence.  Such assiduity; such "dili-

gence" in the work of our high calling, if it shall not bring us into the

king's palaces (Chap. xxii. 29), will ensure the full reward of the man,

whom the Great "King delighteth to honour."§

     The general lesson to learn from these diminutive teachers is the

importance of acting wisely according to the principles of our nature,"

as the best means to secure the greatest quantum of happiness, of which

they are capable.  God has provided happiness for every nature, and

for each its own happiness.  In more particular detail how many of us

stand condemned by the sermons of these little insects!  Let us not be

too proud to learn, or too careless to attend to, the humbling but most

valuable lessons taught in this school of instruction:  "A wise man will

hear, and will increase learning." (Chap. i. 5.)

 

29. There be three things which go well, yea, four are comely in going:

      30. A lion which is strongest among beasts, and turneth not away from

      any; 31. A greyhound (a horse--girt in the loins, marg.), an he-

      goat also; and a king, against whom there is no rising up.

    Agur naturally lingers upon this vast field of natural wonders:

 

    * Prayer for Unity in the Service of Accession--a most suitable and spiritual pleading with

the God of Peace.

     KIBBY'S Bridgewater Treatise, vol. ii. 186.

+ Who made the spiders parallels design,

                 Sure as Demoivre, without rule or line.'--Pope.

      § Interpreter expounded this figure to Christiana; that, as the venomous spider hung

by her hands by the wall; so, how full of the venom of sin soever we be, 'yet we may by

the hand of faith lay hold of, and dwell in the best room, that belongs to the King's house

above.'-- Pilg. Prog. part ii.  Important as this truth doubtless is; yet our inimitable alle-

gorist we judge to have here pressed his imagination beyond due bounds.  Accommodation

may admit of far greater  latitude than exposition; though even in this department--as

the Writer would desire to remember for himself--a sober discipline must be exercised.


614                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

such a splendid exhibition of--the divine perfections! the source of so

much light to the world, before the Book of Revelation was fully opened.

(Job, xii. 7-10.) After having mentioned some striking instances of

wisdom, he now singles out a few objects, which appeared to him

remarkable for their comeliness in going--the firm and stately walk of

the lion,* fearless and proud, not turning away for any; the graceful

form, and the elegant and swift movements, of the greyhound; the he-

goat at the head of the Hock, as their guide and protector; and the

majesty of the king, inspiring all who approach him with reverence for

his authority, and not suffering any rising up against the exercise of

his power.  (Eccles. viii. 2-4.)  From all these many practical lessons

may be learned by the man, "who will be wise, and observe these

things."

      Let us have regard, not only to the various duties of the Christian

life, but also to the manner and spirit of their performance.  Cultivate

not only the integrity, but the comeliness of the Christian character-

"the beauty" and uniformity "of holiness;" that there be nothing

misshapen or distorted; that there be just proportion in all the parts

and features.  Christians should be attractive and engaging by the

courtesy of their general demeanour.  It is not enough to observe

"whatsoever things are true, whatsoever things are honest, whatsoever

things are just, whatsoever things are pure."  But "whatsoever things

are lovely, whatsoever things are of good report, think on these things."

(Philip. iv. 8.)  Any manifest want of comeliness in our going repels the

world from the gospel of Christ.  'If we desire to reign in heaven, we

must present ourselves there with this beautiful crown, from whence

radiate all kinds of virtue and praise.'

     Nor let us forget to imitate the features of this comeliness here pour-

trayed; to be fearless as the lion, when pursuing the path of duty, not

turning away from any (see Neh. vi. 3, 11); to desire the eager spring

of the greyhound in our heavenly course: to be useful as the he-goat, as

the leader of a godly band; and to maintain our proper authority in

any place of trust, as parents or guardians of families; and not to allow

any rising up against it.

32. If thou hast done foolishly in, lifting up thyself, or if thou hast thought

 

     *See Homer's fine description, Il. M. 299.

      This name is, as Mr. Holden remarks, 'of doubtful import.'  The Hebrew is 'girt in

the loins'--a general phrase--admitting of a great variety of conjecture; so that Poole

(Synopsis) considers him to be wisest, 'who confesses he knows not what it is.' Our

translation is however as well supported as any other.  Some conceive it to be a leopard.

And perhaps this conjecture, combined with the lion and the he-goat, has given rise to the

absurd ideality of some Rabbinical and Romanist expositors (not wholly discountenanced

by more respectable names), who consider these four creatures to be prophetical of the four

great monarchies. Dan. viii. The reader may readily conceive--the extent of fancy requisite

to maintain this interpretation.

     ‡ Daille on Phil. iv. 8.


CHAP. XXX. 32, 33.                                                615

 

       evil, lay thine hand ttpon thy mouth. 33. Surely the churning of milk

       bringeth forth butter, and the wringing of the nose bringeth forth blood

       so the forcing of wrath bringeth forth strife.*

      This evidently applies to the preceding illustration--a king, against

whom there is no rising.  But if thou hast lifted up thyself in despising

his authority (Rom. xiii. 1, 2); or even if thou hast but thought evil; lay

thine hand upon thy mouth, restraining the ebullition in silent and humble

submission.1 As a general rule, however, we may be thankful for the

caution.  If we have done foolishly by provoking irritation, in lifting

up ourselves, even in some evil thought, against a brother; quench the

rising spark, ere it kindle into a flame. "The thought of foolishness is

sin."2 Yet it is more sinful, when it forces its passage to the mouth.

Words increase the sin, shew more of its power, and are more hurtful

to others. Obviously it is wise to lay our hand upon our mouth, and to

restrain the expression, when we cannot prevent the thought.  Better

to keep in the infirmity, than to give it vent.  But when, instead of

the hand laid upon the mouth, there is no discipline, guard, or restraint;

"the mouth of the fool poureth out foolishness,"3 overflowing at the lips,

and bringing a flood of trouble upon the soul.4

       How much more, when the lying, heartless, proud worm lifts up

itself against the Great King!  The foolishness even of an evil thought

against him is such, as no tongue can express.  The Lord humble us

in a tender sensibility of this sin!  "Behold!  I am vile:  what shall

I answer thee? I will lay mine hand upon my mouth." (Job, xl. 4, 5.)

     Towards man however it is often the forcing of wrath, not natural

irritation.  A peaceable man may be goaded to anger;5 as the violent

shaking of the milk in the churn bringeth forth butter; or the wringing of

the nose bringeth blood.  The action of force works, what would not

otherwise have been done.  But fearful is the strife of this forced wrath.

Sihon thus provoked his own ruin;6 the Ephraimites stirred up a

murderous strife;7 Asahel sharpened Abner's spear by his wilful way-

wardness;8 Amaziah plunged into destruction by the strife of the forced

wrath of Joash, who was disposed to peace and quietness.9  How multi-

plied are the sources of misery--the fruit of ungovernable temper and

self-will! "Only by pride cometh contention" (Chap. xiii. 10); and

where that contention may end, who can say?  'I am, and profess to

be'--said the godly Bishop Hall--'as the terms stand, on neither,

and yet on both, parts; for the peace of both; for the humour of

neither.'

 

     1Chap. xvii. 28. Job, xxi. 5.       2Chap. xxiv. 9. Jer. iv. 14.      3Chap. xv. 2.

    4Chap. xv. 18; xvi. 28, 29; xvii. 14; xviii. 7.      5Chap. xv. 1; xxvi. 21; xxix. 22.

    6 Num. xxi. 23, 24.                   7 Judg. xii. 1-6. 8 2 Sam. ii 22, 28.

    9 2 Chron. xxv. 17-23.

         * 'Whoso chyrneth mylck maketh butter; he that rubbeth his nose maketh it blede,

and he that causeth wrath bryngeth forth strife.'--Bp. COVERDALE.


616                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

            An humble heart will repress the sparks of this unholy fire.  A

sorrowful spirit for the evil of our thoughts is a component part of the

cure. (Eccles. vii. 4.)  We should not readily indulge the sin, for

which we had been truly humbled before our God.  Whereas in the

want of this genuine spirit, how reluctant we are to acknowledge our

offence towards each other!  We can always find some good reason for

lifting up ourselves, or for thinking evil.  And how hard it goes with our

proud tempers to be the first to lay our hands upon our mouths!  How

much more ready are we to open our mouths in self-justification, than

in self-abasement. Thus, instead of quenching, we force, wrath.  In-

stead of the "meekness of wisdom," there "is envy and strife, con-

fusion, and every evil work" (Jam. iii. 13, 16); enmity between

nominal professors of the gospel, and distance even between those, who

believe themselves to be members of the same body, heirs of the same

inheritance,1 and bound by the same obligation to love one another.2

Oh! hasten the blessed time, when the Church shall be fully transformed

into the image of her Divine Lord; when it shall be a Church of perfect

love in a world of love!

 

CHAPTER XXXI.

 

1. The words of King Lemuel, the prophecy that his mother taught him. 2.

    What, my son? and what the son of my womb?  and what, the son of

     my vows.

OF King Lemuel we know no more than of the prophet Agur in the last

chapter.*  All that we know is, that he was endowed, like many of

God's people (Ps. cxvi. 16. 2 Tim. i. 5; iii. 15), with the invaluable

blessing of a godly mother; who, like Deborah of old (Judg. v. 1),

was honoured of God to be the author of a chapter of the sacred;

volume.

      What an animating burst from the yearning of a mother's heart!

What! my son-the son of my womb-of my vows! Happy mother-

 

      1 Eph. iv. 4-6.                                                                2 John, xiii. 34, 35.

      *Both have been identified with Solomon, though without any historical evidence. It

seems unlikely, that Solomon, having given his own name more than once in this book

(chap. i. 1; x. 1,) should give two mystical names at the close, without any distinct per-

sonal application.  Nor is there any scriptural testimony in favour of Bathsheba, that would

lead us to stamp her with this peculiar honour as one of the writers of God's word. 'The

admonitory verses composed for King Lemuel by his mother, when in the flower of youth

and high expectation, are an inimitable production, as well in respect to their actual

materials, as the delicacy with which they are selected.  Instead of attempting to lay down

rules concerning matters of state and political government; the illustrious writer confines

herself, with the nicest and most becoming art, to a recommendation of the gentler virtues,

of temperance, benevolence, and mercy, and a minute and unparalleled delineation of the

female character, which might bid fairest to promote the happiness of her son in connubial

life.'--Dr. GOOD.


CHAP. XXXI.  3-7                                                    617

 

when the son of her womb is the son of her vows!  like Samuel, a

dedicated child, a child of many prayers; "asked of the Lord, let into

his service." (1 Sam. i. 11.)  If there were more Hannahs, would there

not be more Samuels?  If thou wouldst have, Christian mother, thy

child a Samuel or an Augustine, be thyself a Hannah or a Monica.  The

child of thy prayers, of thy vows, and of thy tears, will be in the Lord's

best time the child of thy praises, thy rejoicings, thy richest consolation.

Yet thy faith will not end with the dedication of thy child.  Lemuel--

the son of her vows--his mother taught him.  And such is the practical

habit of godliness, that faith in vowing quickens diligence in teaching.

The child, truly consecrated, will be "brought up in the nurture and

admonition of the Lord." (Eph. vi. 4.)

 

3. Give not thy strength unto women, nor thy ways to that which destroyeth

     kings. 4. It is not for kings, O Lemuel, it is not for kings to drink wine:

     nor for princes strong drink:  5. Lest they drink, and forget the law, and

     pervert (alter, marg.) the judgment of any of the afflicted, (all the sons

     of affliction, marg.)  6. Give strong drink unto him that is ready to

     perish, and wine unto those that be of heavy hearts (bitter of soul,

     marg.)    7. Let him drink, and forget his poverty, and remember his

     misery no more.

     Solomon has given us his father's wise counsels. (Chap. iv. 4.)  Le-

muel gives us his mother's.  Both have an equal claim to reverence.

(Chap. i. 8.)  Filled with deep anxiety, the impassioned tenderness

bursts out in this godly mother, as if some besetting enticements were

imminent, perhaps already working poison in her beloved son.  What!

my son--the son of my womb--of my vows?  My heart is full.  I must

give vent.  Have I endured all this travail in vain?  Beware--Give

not thy strength unto women.  What a beacon had Solomon set up!

(Chap. ii. v. vii.)  What a beacon had he himself become! (Neh. xiii.

26.)  These forbidden gratifications were ways that destroy kings.  Such

was the judgment upon David.  His kingly authority was shaken.

(2 Sam. xii. 9, 10.) Solomon's sin destroyed his kingdom. (1 Kings, xi.

11.)  The fruit of this sin is shame.  The end of it, without repentance,

is death.

      The anxious mother next warns against another cognate sin--in-

temperance. (Hos. iv. 11.)  The vice that degrades a man into a beast,

is shameful to all, specially unseemly for kings. They are "the city set

upon a hill."  Men look, or ought to look, to them for guidance and

example. What a sight for kings to drink wine and strong drink--to be

given to it!  Witness Elah1--Benhadad2--Belshazzar--"the princes

of Israel made sick with bottles of wine!"3  How was their high office

 

      l I Kings, xvi. 8, 9.                  2 Ib. xx. 16.                3 Hos. vii. 5.


618                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

and glory covered with shame!  Sometimes it is pleaded as an excuse

for sin.  But if the drunken king forgets the law, and perverts the judg-

ment,* will he not be held responsible?  Ahasuerus was doubtless

responsible for his unseemly conduct to Vashti.1  Herod murdered the

Baptist at an ungodly feast.2  Priest and prophet "err through strong

drink."3  A wise veto therefore is set for the rulers of the Church--"not

given to wine."4

     And yet the abuse of God's blessing does not destroy their use.

Wine is the gift of God. " It maketh glad the heart of man." (Ps. civ.

14, 15.)  Yea--by a bold figure of its refreshment--it is said to "cheer

God" also. (Judg. ix. 13.)  Yet it is not for kings--for their indulgences

and sinful excitement, but for those that need it.  As restoratives and

refreshments cordials are seasonable in the hour of need.  Give strong

drink to him that is ready to perish, as the Samaritan gave it to the

wounded traveller (Luke, x. 34); as Paul prescribed it for "the in-

firmities" of his beloved son in the faith. (1 Tim. v. 23.)  Many a sinking

spirit may be revived, and forget his misery under a well-timed restora-

tive.  The rule therefore of love and self-denial is--Instead of wasting

that upon thyself, in the indulgence of appetite, which will only debase

thy nature; see that thou dispense thy luxuries among those, who

really require them.  Seek out cases of penury and wasting misery.

Let it be an honour to thee to bring in the poor that is cast out into

thine house, that he may forget his poverty, and remember his misery no

more.  May not this remind us of the Messenger of love, dealing with

those that are ready to perish? (Isa. lxi. 1,2. Matt. xi. 28.)  Their con-

science is loaded with guilt.  Their hearts are heavy with a burden

which they can neither bear nor be rid of.  He tells them of God's love

to sinners; the ransom found for them; the welcome assured to them.

This is a cordial of strong drink, and wine such as they need.  The heavy

heart becomes "no more sad." (1 Sam. i. 18. Acts, xvi. 34.)  The former

poverty is forgotten, and his misery is remembered no more, and "the

blessing of him that was ready to perish comes" upon him " that bringeth

the good tidings."  Happy minister, gifted like his divine Master, with

the "tongue of the learned, that he should know how to speak a word

in season to him that is weary." (Isa. 1. 4.)

 

     1 Esther, i. 10, 11.               2 Mark, vi. 21-28.          3 Isa. xxviii. 7; lvi. 12.

     4 1 Tim. iii. 3. Titus, i. 7.

     * A woman wrongly condemned by Philip of Macedon, when drunk, boldly exclaimed

--'I appeal to Philip, but it shall be when he is sober.'  Roused by the appeal, the monarch

examined the cause, and gave a righteous judgment.

      This was the classical idea of the power of wine,--'Huic calix mulsi impingendus. ut

plorare desinat.--CICERO, Tuscul. 3., 'Nunc vino pellite curas.'-- HOR. Od. 1. i. 7. 'Vinum

obliviosum' (blotting out the remembrance of evil.)--Tb. Od.l. ii. 7. 'Tunc dolor et curae

rugaque frontis abit.'--Ovid.  The mixed wine which Helena gave to Telemachus, called

Nepenthes, had such an effect as to remove sorrow, and to bury in forgetfulness past evils.

--Odyss. D. 220, 221. Comp. Mark, xv. 23.


CHAP. XXXI. 8-10.                                      619

 

8. Open thy mouth for the dumb in the cause of all such as are appointed to

    destruction. 9. Open thy mouth, judge righteously, and plead the cause

    of the poor and needy.

    Very soundly does the wise mother inculcate mercy upon her royal

son.  This is one of the pillars of the king's throne. (Chap. xx. 28.)  He

must be the Father of his people, employing all his authority to protect

those, who cannot protect themselves. (Ps. lxxii. 12-14.)  No case of

distress, when coming to his knowledge, should be below his attention.

Thus our law makes the judge the counsel for the prisoner, who is un-

able to plead for himself--opening his mouth for the dumb.  Thus should

magistrates more carefully consider, that no one should lose his just

right from want of ability to defend it.1  Those who are, or appear to be,

appointed to destruction, should have their fair and open course to plead,

and save their lives.2

     This it was, that made the difference between the prosperity of godly

Josiah and the ruin of his wicked son. (Jer. xxii. 15-19.)  How repeatedly

did Jonathan open his mouth for his friend appointed for destruction!3  How

effectively did Esther plead the cause of her helpless and devoted peo-

ple! (Esth. vii. 3,4.)  To descend into lower ranks (for why should

we restrict these wise injunctions within the narrow limits of royalty?)

what a complete pattern of this mercy does Job exhibit!  "Eyes as he

was to the blind, and feet to the lame," doubtless he perfected his cha-

racter as “a father to the poor, by being a mouth to the dumb. (Job,

xxix. 15, 16.)  How was Ebedmelech honoured for this merciful advo-

cacy of the condemned!4  How awful is the threatened vengeance for

the neglect of this mercy!5  Alas! Jesus, though he had found an ad-

vocate in earlier times, yet stood as a sheep before his shearers--dumb,

appointed for destruction.  None was found to open his mouth for the

divine afflicted victim.6  And yet how does he reverse this picture of

pitiless neglect, in his powerful effectual pleading in the cause of those,

whom the voice of justice so loudly, so justly appoints for destruction!

Let his representatives on earth study the character of their king in

heaven, and be conformed more fully to his image of forgiveness and

love.

 

      10. Who can find a virtuous woman! for her price is above rubies.

      We now come to the principal part of the chapter.  The wise

mother of Lemuel had warned her royal son against the seduction of evil

women, and its attendant temptations, and given him wholesome rules

for government.  She now sets before him the full-length portrait of a

 

     1 Deut. xvi. 18-20. Ps. lxxxii. 3, 4.           2 Contrast 1 Kings, xxi. 9-13, with John, vii. 51.

     3 1 Sam. xix. 4-7; xx. 32; xxii. 14, 15.     4 Jer. xxxviii. 8, 9; xxxix. 15-18.

     5 Chap. xxiv. 11, 12. Jer. v. 28, 29.         6 Isa. liii. 7.  Matt. xxvi. 59, 63.


620                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

virtuous woman--that choicest gift, which is emphatically said to be

"from the Lord." (Chap. xix. 14.)  It is an elegant poem of twenty-two

verses--like the hundred and nineteenth Psalm, artificially constructed

--each verse beginning with one of the successive letters of the Hebrew

alphabet.*  It describes a wife, a mistress, and a mother.  'All mothers

and mistresses should teach the female pupils under their care to read

and learn it by heart.  The more deeply it is studied--provided only

it be practically studied--the more will its beauty be understood and

felt.  Genuine simple fact without colouring or pretensions commends

the character to our warmest interest.

      So rare is this treasure, that the challenge is given--"Who can find

a virtuous woman?" (Comp. chap. xx. 6.) Abraham sent to a distant

land for this inestimable blessing for his beloved son. (Gen. xxiv. 3, 4.)

Perhaps one reason of the rarity of the gift is, that it is so seldom sought.

Too often is the search made for accomplishments, not for virtues; for

external and adventitious recommendations, rather than for internal godly worth.

      The enquiry also implies the value of the gift when found.  Even

Adam's portion in innocence was not complete, till his bountiful Father

"made him a help-meet for him." (Ib. ii. 18.)  Truly her price is above

rubies.  No treasure is comparable to her.1  It is not too much to say

with the prince of heathen philosophy--'If women be good, the half of

the commonwealth may be happy where they are.'

 

11. The heart of her husband doth safely trust in her, so that he shall have

            no need of spoil. 12. She will do him good, and not evil, all the days

            of her life.

      The price of the virtuous woman has been told.  Her different features

will now be given.  The first lines of the portrait describe her cha-

racter as a wife.  Her fidelity, oneness of heart, and affectionate duti-

fulness, make the heart of her husband safely to trust in her.§  He feels

 

1 Comp. Ecclus. vii. 19; xxv. 13-18.

      * Comp. also Ps. cxlv. The Lamentations of Jeremiah.

     Bp. HORNE'S Sermon on the Female Character. See the counterpart of "the virtuous

man " in the exquisite picture, which the sorrowful patriarch drew of the simple habit and

feelings of his owu life. Job, xxix.-xxxi.

      ARIST. Rhet. i. 5. Comp. Polit ii.9.

      § Such was Luther's description of his wife --'The greatest gift of God is a pious amia-

ble spouse, who fears God, loves his house, and with whom one can live in perfect confidence.'

D' AUBIGNE'S Hist. of Reformation, book x. chap. xiii. Contrast with this picture, chap.

vii. 18-20. Gen. xxxix 19, 20. Isaac Walton's account of Bp. Sanderson's wife was much

after Solomon's pattern--'A wife, that made his life happy, by being always content, when

he was cheerful; that was always cheerful when he was content; that divided her joys

with him, and abated of his sorrow by bearing a part of that burden; a wife that demon-

strated her affection by a cheerful obedience to all his desires during the whole course of

his life.'--Life of Bp. Sanderson. Ambrose expounds the woman to be the Church, and

explains the confidence of her husband as the ground of her perseverance--adding--'that it

is not the heart of her Lord, who may be deceived, but of her husband, which cannot be mis-


CHAP. XXXI. 11, 12.                                               621

 

his comfort to be regarded, his burdens relieved, and his mind exempted

from many teazing vexations.  He is at ease in constrained absence

from home, having left his interests safe in her keeping; while he is

sure, that his return will be welcomed with the gladdening smile.  A

faithful wife and a confiding husband thus mutually bless each other.

With such a jewel for his wife, the husband has no misgivings.  His

home is the home of his heart.  He needs not to look into the matters

entrusted to her with suspicious eye.  He has no reserves or jealousies.

Ruling in this sphere without, he encourages her to rule in her sphere

within.  All is conducted with such prudence and economy, that he

has no need of spoil, no temptation to unjust gain; no need to leave his

happy home, in order to enrich himself with the soldier's spoils.  The

attachment of such a wife is as lasting, as the time of their union-

constant--consistent.  Instead of abusing confidence, she only seeks

to make herself daily more worthy of it; not fretful and uncertain,

caring "how she may please her husband" (1 Cor. vii. 34), doing him

good, and not evil, all the days of her life.  Would that it were always

so!  But look at Eve--the help-meet1 becoming a tempter; Solomon's

wives drawing away his heart;2 Jezebel stirring up her husband to

abominable wickedness;3 Job's wife calling upon her husband to

"curse God, and die;"4 the painful cross of "the brawling woman"5

--this is a fearful contrast--evil, not good.  Often again is it a mix-

ture of evil with the good.  Rebekah caring for her husband in the act

of opposition to God, yet wickedly deceiving him;6 Rachel loving

Jacob, yet bringing idolatry into his family;7 Michal doing good to

David at first in preserving his life, evil afterwards in despising him as

a servant of God.8  Often we hear of prudent management, but not in

the fear of God, connected with a teazing temper.  But in this picture

it is good, and not evil.

      Her husband's comfort is her interest and her rest.  To live for him

is her highest happiness.  Even if her minute attentions to this object

are not always noticed, yet never will she harbour the suspicion of

indifference or unkindness; nor will she return fancied neglect with

sullenness, or by affected or morbid sensibility force on a feverish inter-

change of expression, which has little substantial foundation.

     This course of disinterested regard and devoted affection, when con-

ducted on Christian principles, commends most graciously the 'holy

and honourable estate of matrimony.'  If it implies subjection, it involves

no degradation.  Indeed no greater glory could be desired, than that

 

taken.'  In loc.  Would such a conceit with any other name escape severe castigation?

Augustine's Exposition is much in the same character--fancy, not judgment.--De Temper.

Serm. p. 217.  Many Romish commentators apply this description to the Virgin."

     1Gen. ii. 18, with iii. 6.               2 1 Kings, xi. 1-5.                  3 Ib. xxi. 25.

     4 Job, ii. 9.                                  5 Chap. xxi. 9; xxv. 24.          6 Gen. xxvii.

     7 Ib. xxxi. 19; xxxv. 1-4.           8 1 Sam. xix. 12. 2 Sam. vi. 20-22.


622                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

which is given to it, that it should illustrate "the great mystery,"--

"Christ and his Church,"1 the identity of interest between them; her

trials his;2 his cause hers.3

13. She seeketh wool, and flax, and worketh willingly with her hands.

      14. She is like the merchants' ships; she bringeth her food from afar.

      15. She riseth also while it is yet night, and giveth meat to her house-

      hold, and a portion to her maidens. 16. She considereth a field, and

      buyeth it; with the fruit of her hands she planteth a vineyard. 17. She

      girdeth her loins with strength, and strengtheneth her arms. 18. She

      perceiveth (tasteth, marg.) that her merchandize is good: her candle

      goeth not out by night. 19. She layeth her hands to the spindle, and

      her hands hold the distaff. 20. She stretcheth out (spreadeth, marg.)

      her hand to the poor; yea, she reacheth forth her hands to the needy.

      21. She is not afraid of the snow for her household, for all her house-

      hold are clothed with scarlet (double garments, marg.) 22. She

      maketh herself coverings of tapestry; her clothing is silk and purple.

      23. Her husband is known in the gates, when he sitteth among the

      elders of the land. 24. She maketh fine linen, and selleth it; and

      delivereth girdles unto the merchant. 25. Strength and honour are her

      clothing; and she shall rejoice in time to come. 26. She openeth her

      mouth with wisdom; and in her tongue is the law of kindness. 27.

      She looketh well to the ways of her household, and eateth not the bread

      of idleness.

     This lovely character is drawn according to the usage of ancient

times; though the general principles are of universal application.  It

describes not only the wife of a man of rank, but a wise, useful, and

godly matron in her domestic responsibilities.  It is "a woman pro-

fessing godliness, "adorned" with good works" (1 Tim. ii. 10); a Mary

no less than a Martha. 'It may be necessary to retouch the lines of

the picture, that have been obscured by length of years; in plain terms

--to explain some parts of the description, which relate to ancient

manners and customs, and to shew how they may be usefully applied

to those of our own age and country.'*

      One thing however is most remarkable.  The standard of godliness

here exhibited is not that of a religious recluse, shut up from active

obligations, under the pretence of greater sanctity and consecration to

God. Here are none of those habits of monastic asceticism, that are

now extolled as the highest point of Christian perfection.  One half at

least of the picture of the virtuous woman is occupied with her personal

and domestic industry.  What a rebuke also does this convey to a

 

      1 Eph. v. 32.                  2 Acts, ix. 4.                  3 Ps. cxx.xix. 22.

                                  * Bp. Horne, ut supra.


CHAP. XXXI. 13-27.                                               623

 

self-indulgent inactivity!  Her several employments admirably illus-

trate genuine simplicity of manners, and practical, yet liberal economy.

This is indeed a difficult and rare attainment, economy without a nig-

gardly spirit; seen and felt as little as possible, and conducted with all

care and consideration of the comfort of the family.

      But let us look more minutely into the features of the portrait

drawn before us.  Her personal habits are full of energy.  Manual labour,

even menial service, in olden times was the employment of females in

the highest ranks.*  Self-denial is here a main principle.--The virtuous

woman goes before her servants in diligence, no less than in dignity;

imposing nothing upon them, which she had not first bound upon

herself, ruling her household most efficiently by the government of

herself.  Thus she seeks out her materials for work.  Her needle is at

the service of her family.  Instead of a suppressed murmur at some

inconvenient demand, she sets the pattern of working willingly with her

hands.  Instead of loitering herself, while they were labouring, she

counts it no shame to be employed at the spindle and distaff.  She is

early and late at her work, rising in the night.  The fruit of her work

she turns to good account.  She exchanges it in commerce for food

brought from far.  Her merchandize is good in quality--tapestry, fine

linen, and girdles delivered to the merchant.§  Her whole soul is in her

work--girding her loins with strength, and strengthening her arms--

ready to do any work befitting her sex and station.  The land has also

her due share of attention.  Ever careful for her husband's interests,

she considers the value of a field; and, if it be a good purchase, she buys

it, and plants the vineyard for the best produce.

       One more particular connected with her character as a wife is men-

tioned--her dress.  This in a woman of superior rank, fit for a king, is

 

     * Sarah, Gen. xviii. 6-8; Rebekah, xxiv. 18-20, with 12-14; Rachel, xxix. 9, 10; the

daughters of the Prince of Midian, Exod. ii. 16: the daughter of a king. 2 Sam. xiii. 5-9.

      Compare PAXTON'S Illustrations, ii. 418-420. HOM. Il. I. 128. Z. 490, 491. XI. 440.

Odyss. A. 357. E. 62. Ovid advises maidens, if they would have the favour of Minerva, to

learn to use the distaff, to card, and spin (Fasti, Lib. iii.) Comp. Met. L. iv. v.34. VIRG.

Georg. iv. 348.  Classic writers mention Lucretia found spinning with her maids, when her

husband paid her a visit from the camp.  The wool spun by Tarquin's wife long remained

with a distaff and spindle in the temple. Alexander the Great is said to have shewn to the

Persian princesses his garments made by his mother. Augustus--it is said--would wear

no clothes, but such as were made by the members of his own family. (BURDER'S Oriental

Customs.)  Our English records of female royalty furnish similar proofs of hand-industry.

The magnificent far-famed tapestry of Bayeux was the work of William I.'s queen.  The

messengers of Henry to Katherine of Arragon, announcing her divorce. found her with a

skein of red silk round her neck being at work with her maids.  Beautiful memorials are

still preserved of Queen Katherine Parr's manual skill.  See Miss STRICKLAND'S Queens of

England--a work however, not to be read without caution from the unsound principles

pervading it.

      See Parkhurst--Virgil's beautiful picture of the industrious wife.  Aen. viii. 407

       § See PAXTON'S Illustrations, ii. 420.--Girdles, a rich article of dress both of men (2 Sam.

xviii. 11), and women. Isa. iii. 24.  The Merchant--'The Canaanite.' Heb. LXX.


624                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

of course according to her station.  Her clothing is silk* and purple.

Nor does this contravene the New Testament rule of sobriety.1  It only

commends her station in consistency with the purest simplicity of god-

liness. In a more general application, the dress should be suitable, so

as to maintain the rank of presidency in the house.  It is possible to

pay too little, as well as too much, attention to this point; and it is not

always that Christian women pay to it the regard precisely due, separate

from both extremes.  No increase of active exercise can excuse the

neglect of those graces, which, trifling as they seem, when set out on

right principles, form a component part of an attractive profession.

The primary respect inculcated to the inward "adorning"2 in no way

renders the exterior grace a nullity.  Even in isolated seclusion some

regard would be due; much more, as suited to the gradation which

Providence has assigned; and as commanding an husband's respect,

who justly claims, that his wife's exterior, so far as she is concerned,

should continue to be not less pleasing, than when at first his heart was

drawn to her.

      We now again observe her conduct as a mistress.  And here also her

praise is not, that she spends her time in devotional exercises (though

these, as "a woman that feareth the Lord" (Verse 30), she duly prizes);

but that, according to the Scriptural canon, "she guides her house"

(l Tim. v. 14), watching carefully over her charge, distributing both

her meat and her work in due proportion, and "in due season."  This

is her responsibility.  If  "man goeth forth to his work, and to his

labour till the evening" (Ps. civ. 23), the woman finds her work as "a

keeper at home." (Tit. ii. 5.)  And beautiful indeed is it to see, how

by her industry, self-denial, and heartiness she "buildeth her house."

(Chap. xiv. 1.)  She rises while it is yet night, not for the sake of being

admired and talked of, but to give meat to her household.  The delicacy

also, with which she preserves her own sphere, is remarkable.  For

while she provides food for the whole household: she giveth the portion--

that is--of work--not to the man-servants (these with great pro-

priety she leaves to her husband), but to her maidens.  Their clothing

is also provided with every regard to their comfort.  She is not afraid

of snow for them.  They are clothed with scarlet, or rather with double

garments, well clad for a severe winter.  So well does she look to the

ways of her household, such untiring energy does she shew in every

department, that none can accuse her of eating the bread of idleness.  In

 

     1 1 Tim. ii. 9. 1 Pet. iii. 3.             2 1 Pet. iii. 4. 1 Tim. ii. 10.

     * Parkhurst translates it, 'Fine white linen.'  Holden doubts whether the article of

silk was known to the Jews at this early age.  Gibbon mentions it as not known beyond

the Chinese territories, whence it originally came, till the reign of Justinian. Chap. xl.

    See Foxe's beautiful picture of Anne Boleyn as the mistress of her household, v. 63.

     'Dupicibus penulis'--such as the wife of Hector made.  HOM. Il. XI. 441.  'All her

household folks are double clothed.'  Bp. COVERDALE.


CHAP. XXXI. 13-27                                                625

 

her household, order is the principle of her rule.  Timely orders are

given, and they must be obeyed.  Nothing is neglected, that belongs

to order, sobriety, economy, or general management.  Well does she

understand the exact work of each under her care, and their different

abilities; when they need to be directed, and when they may be left

to their own responsibility; what belongs to, and what is beyond, her

own province of superintendence.

     But never let the mistress contract her inspection within the sphere

of a mere housekeeper, with her whole time and mind employed in the

external routine of her household.  While she exercises sound disci-

pline and maternal anxiety, her primary principle is a Christian con-

science for their highest interests; looking well to their moral habits,

their religious instruction, and attendance on the means of grace;

giving them time for secret prayer, and reading the word of God,*

bringing them to the daily ordinance of family worship; inculcating

the careful observance of the Sabbath; anxiously watching over their

manners, habits, and connections. While we would be careful not to

over-work them, yet never let them eat the bread of idleness.  If they

have nothing to do for us, let them work for God.  In short; let us

consider them, not as beasts of burden, not as mere mercenaries; but as

a solemn and responsible trust for God and for eternity.  Who can have

the claim to a virtuous woman, who does not feel this weight of family

responsibility?

      Nor is her provident care limited to her own dependants.  Her

spindle and distaff are worked, not for herself only, or for her household,

but for the poor and needy.  And, having first "drawn out her soul"

(Isa. lviii. 10), she stretcheth out her hands (Deut. xv. 7, 8), to embrace

those at a distance from her with the flow of her love; and thus "the

blessing of those that were ready to perish cometh upon her." (Job,

xxix. 13. Acts, ix. 39.)  Her spirit and manner also are of the same

character; all in full accordance with her professions.  Clever, brisk,

and managing minds are often deficient in the softer graces.  Their

tongues are unrestrained, and lawless under provocation.  Children,

servants, and neighbours, suffer from this revolting hardness, and find

"it better to dwell in a corner of the house-top, than with a brawling

woman in a wide house." (Chap. xxi. 9.)  But the godly matron has not

only the law of love in her heart, but wisdom in her mouth, and in

tongue the law of kindness.  The same love that binds her heart, governs

her tongue, not with the caprice, but with the law, of kindness--a law,

which she receives from wisdom, and which gives the mould to her

 

      *Esther must surely have been in the habit of instructing her maidens; else they could

not have been girded for the extraordinary services of the fast, iv. 16.  Thus it is recorded

of one, who shone as a sparkling jewel in the licentious court of Charles II., that 'she pro-

vided her servants books to read, prayers to use by themselves, and constantly instructed

them herself in the principles of religion.'--Life of Mrs. Godolphin, p. 195.


626                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

whole spirit, so that 'she says nothing that is foolish, nothing that is

ill-natured.'*  Richly endued with "the wisdom that is from above,

she is "gentle, and easy to be entreated; pitiful, courteous." (Jam. iii.

17. 1 Pet. iii. 8.)

      Thus indeed "a virtuous woman is a crown to her husband." (Chap.

xii. 4.)  He is known in the gates, when he sitteth among the elders of the

land; as blessed with no common treasures of happiness; 'as indebted

perhaps for his promotion to the wealth acquired by her management at

home, and, it may be, for the preservation and establishment of his

virtue, to the encouragement furnished by her example and conversation.'

     For herself--manifest and manifold blessings rest upon her.

Strength is the clothing of her inner man.  Christian courage and resolu-

tion lift her up above appalling difficulties.  The clothing of honour

stamps her with the Lord's acceptance, as his faithful servant, the child

of his grace, and the heir of his glory.  She rejoices, not only in her

present happiness, but in time to come.  Having been so wisely pro-

vident for the morrow, she is not overburdened with its cares.  Having

lived in the fear of God, and honoured her God with the fruits of

righteousness, there is sunshine in her hour of trial, "in the valley of

the shadow of death," in the unclouded day of eternity.  She shall

rejoice in time to come, when the ministering angels, and with them the

blessed recipients of her bounty (Luke, xvi. 9), shall welcome this

daughter of Jerusalem "into the joy of the Lord."

 

28. Her children arise up, and call her blessed: her husband also, and he

      praiseth, her. 29. 'Many daughters have done virtuously, but thou

      excellest them all.'  30. Favour is deceitful, and beauty is vain: but a

      woman that feareth the Lord, she shall be praised. 31. Give her of the

      fruit of her hands; and let her own works praise her in the gates.

     The virtuous woman is obviously subserving her own interest. For

 

     * Bp. Horne. Comp. Ecclus. xxxvi. 23. Hooker probably had the portrait before his

eyes, when in his exquisite funeral sermon for his 'virtuous gentlewoman' he enumerates

'among so many virtues hearty devotion towards God, towards poverty tender compas-

sion; motherly affection towards servants; towards friends even serviceable kindness;

mild behaviour and harmless meaning towards all.'--Remedy against Sorrow and Fear.

Bp. Taylor's finely-drawn portrait of Lady Carbery is after the same pattern of complete-

ness.  'If we look on her as a wife, she was chaste and loving, discreet and humble.  If we

remember her as a mother, she was kind and severe, careful and prudent, very tender, and

not at all fond; a greater lover of her children's souls than of their bodies, and one that

would value them more by the strict rules of honour and proper worth, than by their relation

to herself.  Her servants found her prudent and fit to govern, and yet open-handed and apt

to reward; a just exalter of their duty, and a great rewarder of their diligence.'--Funeral

Sermon.  Mrs, Godolphin's Biographer mentions her 'employing herself (especially in

Lent) in working for poor people, cutting out and making waistcoats, and other necessary

coverings, which she constantly distributed among them, like another Dorcas, spending

much of her time, and no little of her money in relieving, visiting and inquiring of them

out.'--Life, pp. 176, 177, 182.                                          Bp. Horne.


CHAP. XXXI. 28-31.                                               627

 

what greater earthly happiness could she know, than her children's

reverence, and her husband's blessing?  We may picture to ourselves

her condition--crowned with years; her children grown up; perhaps

themselves surrounded with families, and endeavouring to train them,

as themselves had been trained.  Their mother is constantly before

their eyes.  Her tender guidance, her wise counsels, her loving disci-

pline, her holy example, are vividly kept in remembrance.  They

cease not to call her blessed, and to bless the Lord for her, as his invalu-

able gift.  No less warmly does her husband praise her.  His attach-

ment to her was grounded, not on the deceitful and vain charms of

beauty, but on the fear of the Lord.  She is therefore in his eyes to the

end, the stay of his declining years, the soother of his cares, the coun-

sellor of his perplexities, the comforter of his sorrows, the sunshine of

his earthly joys. (Ecclus. xxxvi. 23, 24.)  Both children and husband

combine in the grateful acknowledgment,-- Many daughters have done

virtuously; but thou excellest them all.

      But why--it may be asked--do external recommendations form

no part of this portrait?  All that is described is solid excellence; and

favour is deceitful.  A graceful form and mien often end in disappoint-

ment, more bitter than words can tell.  Often do they furnish a cover

for the vilest corruptions.  And then beauty--what a fading vanity it

is!*  One fit of sickness sweeps it away. (Ps. xxxix. 11.)  Sorrow and

care wither its charms. (Ib. vi. 7. P. T.)  And even while it remains, it

is little connected with happiness.1  It proves itself the fruitful occasion

of trouble, the source of many hurtful temptations and snares;2 and,

without substantial principle, to a well-judging mind it becomes an

object of disgust rather than of attraction. (Chap. xi. 22.)

     The portrait, here pencilled by divine inspiration, begins with the

touch of a virtuous woman, and fills up the sketch with the lineaments

of a woman, that feareth the Lord. (Verses 10, 30.)  For the lovely fea-

tures described--her fidelity to her husband, her active personal

habits, her good management and diligence in her family, her consider-

ation for the necessities and comforts of others, her watchfulness of con-

duct, her tenderness for the poor and afflicted, her kind and courteous

behaviour to all--this completeness of character and grace could only

flow from that virtue, which is identified with vital godliness.  They

are the good fruit, that "prove the tree to be good." (Matt. vii. 17.)

They are such fruit, flowing from a right principle, as the natural cor-

rupt stock of man could never produce.

     The virtuous woman seeks not the praise of men.  Content to be

known and loved within her own circle, she never presses herself into

 

                                        1 Gen. xxix. 17; xxx. 1, 2.

    2 Chap. vi. 25, 26. Gen. xii 11-19; xx. 1. 2, 11; xxvi. 7. 2 Sam. xi. 2; xiii. 1.

            *Gen. xii. 14, with xxiii. 4. 1 Pet. i. 24. Comp. Virg. Eclog. ii. 17, 18.


628                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

notice.  But as a public blessing, she cannot be hid. (Acts, ix. 39.)

And if she has no herald to sound her praise, all will say--Give her of

the fruit of her hands, and let her own works praise her in the gates.  'Let

every one'--says Bishop Patrick--'extol her virtue.  Let her not

want the just commendation of her-pious labours.  But while some are

magnified for the nobleness of the stock, from whence they sprung;

others for their fortune; others for their beauty; others for other things;

let the good deeds, which she herself hath done, be publicly praised in

the greatest assemblies; where, if all men should be silent, her own

works will declare her excellent worth.'  Add to this--as her works

praise her in the gates, so will they "follow her. The memory of the

just is blessed." (Rev. xiv. 13. Chap. x. 7.)  All will see in her the

light and lustre of a sound and practical profession; that the promises

of godliness are the richest gain, the grace of God the best portion, and

his favour the highest honour.

     If this picture be viewed as an exhibition of godliness, we observe that

religion does not slacken attention to temporal duties.  It rather renders a

woman scrupulously exact in all her household obligations, in every-

thing within her province; careful not by her negligence to bring

reproach upon her holy profession.  Why should she be careless or

slovenly, putting her important duties out of time and out of place?

Of her it is specially expected, as the summing up of all her practical

exercises, that "she should have diligently followed every good work."

(1 Tim. v. 10.)

    How valuable also is this picture, as a directory for the marriage

choice!  Let virtue, not beauty, be the primary object.  Set against the

vanity of beauty the true happiness, connected with a woman that feareth

the Lord. Here is the solid basis of happiness.  'If'--says Bp.

Beveridge--'I choose her for her beauty, I shall love her no longer than

while that continues; and then farewell at once both duty and delight.

But if I love her for her virtues; then, though all other sandy founda-

tions fail, yet will my happiness remain entire!  The external choice

was the cause of the destruction of the world. (Gen. vi. 2-7.)  A flood

of iniquity came into a godly man's family from the self-pleasing delu-

sion. (2 Chron. xviii. 1 ; xxi. 5, 6.)  The godly choice is uniformly

stamped with the seal of divine acceptance.

     In fine--'if women'--says pious Bishop Pilkington--'would

learn what God will plague them for, and how; let them read the third

chapter of the prophet Esay.  And if they will learn what God willeth

them to do, and be occupied withal, though they be of the best sort,

let them read the last chapter of the Proverbs.  It is enough to note

it, and point it out to them that will learn.'  That which is last to be

 

              * In loco.                                           Resolution ii.

                        + Works, Parker Society Edit. p. 381.


                                    CONCLUSION.                                             629

 

done'--concludes an old Expositor—‘ is to mark it well and let every

woman strive to make it agree to herself as much as she can.  Let

every man be ashamed, that any woman shall excel him in virtue and

godliness.'*

     'Thus--and once more'--says pious Matthew Henry, in his quaint

style--'is shut up this looking-glass for ladies, which they are desired

to open and dress themselves by; and if they do so, their adorning will

I be found to praise, and honour, and glory, at the appearing of Jesus

Christ.

 

      We would conclude with a brief summary of a few prominent

points involved in the study of this most instructive Book.

     Let us observe the connection between inward principle and outward

conduct.  Never let it be forgotten, that the exercises, here described or

inculcated, suppose an internal source.  It is the light within, that

shines without.  The hidden life is thus manifested.  "The fountain

sendeth forth" its wholesome waters.  The good tree bringeth forth

good fruit.  A good man out of the good treasure of the heart bringeth

forth good things." (Matt. xii. 33, 35.)  These therefore are the manifes-

tations, not the innate principles.  They flow from the cultivation of

the source within.  Nothing permanent is produced by change of

opinion, excitement of feeling, conviction of conscience, but by a new

mould of the heart.  The "soft answer" (Chap. xv. 1) is the outward

exhibition of the softened and humble heart.  The religion of sincere

purposes, however promising, withers away, "having no root in itself."

(Matt. xiii. 21.)  The ways and fashions of the world therefore rule with

a far mightier power, than the dictates of God's word, or the voice of

conscience.  The external apprehensions of the Christian system also

are powerless without the internal principle.  They exhibit a body of

truth indeed, but a body without life, without any spring of influence

or consolation. Religion, grounded in the heart, will regulate the out-

ward conduct, and put everything in its proper place and proportion.

     Let us mark also the flow of true happiness throughout the whole sphere

of godliness.  Often has the wise man painted this connection with the

most glowing interest.1  Most important is it to leave this impression

upon the minds of all, specially of our young, readers, that religion is a

joyous thing.  With the world it is a matter to be endured, not to be

enjoyed.  The Pharisaic professor conceives of much to be done, but

nothing to be enjoyed.  With him it is a serious and most weighty con-

cern.  But no gleam of sunshine has he ever found in it.  The man of

pleasure has no conception of religion, except as the atmosphere of

 

                        1 Chap. iii. 13-18; iv. 4-13; viii. 17-21, 32-36.

            *Jermin in loco.                                    In loco.


630                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

gloom; as absurd as to speak; of the darkness of noonday.  But not-

withstanding all these misconceptions, no reality is more undoubted

than this--Holiness is happiness.  It is not indeed the mirth of the

fool, or the giddy gaiety of the thoughtless.  But it is the only thing,

that deserves the name of happiness; the only solid, permanent prin-

ciple of enjoyment.

     'Happy the believer '--as an eloquent Preacher forcibly puts it--

'who in his warfare with the enemies of his salvation, is able to oppose

pleasure to pleasure, delight to delight; the pleasures of prayer and

meditation to the pleasures of the world; the delights of silence and

retirement to those of parties of dissipation or of public amusement.

Such a man is steady and unmoved in the performance of his duties;

and because he is man, and man cannot help loving what opens to him

sources of joy; such a man is attached to religion by motives like

those, that lead men of the world to attach themselves to the objects of

their passions, because they procure him unspeakable pleasure.'*  In

fact the world's contracted vision little qualifies them to pass judgment

on what they have never apprehended.  They see our infirmities, not

our graces; our cross, not our crown; our affliction, not the "joy in the

Holy Ghost," which compensates and infinitely overpays for all that we

can endure.

     We wonder not, therefore, that the unenlightened mind naturally

associates religion with restraint, never with freedom or confidence.

But in fact actions, that are valued according to their conformity with

the will of God, though they be secular in their character, are a part of

his service, and ensure his acceptance.  Taking up this tight standard,

we shall be able to resist our ruling passion.  We shall occupy no

doubtful position.  We shall adopt no questionable course.  We shall

not lend the influence of our character to the spirit of this world.  We

shall feel, that we have only one object--only one obligation--to

maintain the honour of our God.  And yet this yoke of strict discipline

is our happiness, not our burden. It is linked with a foretaste of hea-

venly happiness, of which none of us have an adequate conception.

Speculative religion is indeed dry and barren.  Practical godliness is

rich in its delights.1  And while the defect of earthly joy is, that it

comes to an end; the perfection of this happiness is, that it will endure

throughout eternity.  Yes, truly--it is not a mere temporary privilege.

It is not a provision for drying our eyes, and diverting our sorrow for

a time.  It is "everlasting consolation." (2 Thess. ii. 16.)  It is con-

solation, of which the present joy arises from the belief, that it will be

everlasting, from looking forward and foretasting that which should

be everlasting.  Surely then in our most sorrowful hours we have far

 

      1 See Ps. xix. 11; cxix. 14, 127. Isa. xxxii 17. Jam. i. 25.

      * Saurin's Sermons, quoted by Alexander Knox, Remains, iii: 365.


                                    CONCLUSION.                                             631

 

more reason for joy than for mourning; and we are hasting onward to

the home, where " the days of our mourning will be ended" (Isa. lx. 20)

for ever.

     It is of great moment to remark the wise man's estimate of real good.

Every particle of the chief good he centres in God.  To find him is

life.1  To fear him is wisdom.2  To trust him is happiness.3  To love

him is substantial treasure.4  To neglect him is certain ruin.5  Now

man is naturally an idolator.  Himself is his centre, his object, his end.

Instead of submitting to guidance, he guides himself. He disputes the

sovereignty with God.  He would amend the laws of the Great Law-

giver.  Need we add--"This his way is his folly?" (Ps. xlix. 13.)  What

then is the true good? "Acquaint thyself with God, and be at peace."

(Job, xxii. 21.)  Not real, but known excellence quickens the desire.

Our known God will be our portion.6  He will claim our entire service.7

He will shew himself to us as our chief good--a privilege worth ten

thousand worlds to know--a satisfying portion for eternity.  For

indeed so intense is his divine love towards us, that he cannot be

satisfied without accomplishing for us the whole eternal duration of

enjoyment, that he hath laid up for us in himself.  All that we could

look for here in the most full and conscious enjoyment of our portion,

we should "reckon as not worthy to be compared" with a single

moment in heaven, when "we shall see face to face, and know even as

also we are known." (1 Cor. xiii. 12.)

     Let us study Christian completeness and consistency.  The elements of

this character will be brought out by a diligent and prayerful study of

this important Book.  Let them be put together in their due connection

and proportion; and "the man of God will be perfect, throughly

furnished unto all good works." (2 Tim. iii. 17.)  We want religion to

be to the soul, what the soul is to the body--the animating principle.

The soul operates in every member.  It sees in the eye, hears in the

ear, speaks in the tongue, animates the whole body, with ease and

uniformity, without ostentation or effort.  Thus should religion direct

and regulate every thought, word, and act.  In this day of light and

knowledge, ignorance of our duty too often implies neglect of the

means of instruction, and therefore is an aggravation of our fault,

rather than our excuse.  The grand object is, that the conscience be

intelligently instructed under divine teaching.  Then let the daily

course be carefully regulated by it.  Never turn aside a single step

from its guidance.  Never admit the maxims or habits of this world.

Guard against everything that damps vital spirituality, lowers the

high Scriptural standard, or slackens the energy of unremitting

Christian watchfulness.  Let our path be steadily balanced between

 

      1 Chap. iii. 35.          2 Chap. i 7.        3 Chap. xvi. 20.              4 Chap. viii. 18-21

      5 Ib. ver.36.             6 Ps. xvi. 5. Lam. iii 24.                7 Ps. xlv. 11. Matt. xxii.37.


632                 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.

 

compromising concession and needless singularity.  Let the Christian

only walk with God in the way of the Gospel.  He will never be satis-

fied with appearing to maintain his ground.  But he will acknowledge

the wisdom of the discipline, which allows his no enjoyment of the

present moment, except in grasping at something beyond him. (Phil.

iii.12-14.)  We want not a profession, that will give us a name in the

Church, or eyen a stamp of reproach in the world; but one which

places the divine image before our eyes, and animates us to a growing

conformity to our standard. (Matt. v. 48.)  The conscience thus enlight-

ened, and the heart readily following its voice; the sins that carry less

reproach with the world will be resisted, not less than those which are

more revolting.  We shall no more indulge an uncharitable spirit, than

a course of profligacy.  An angry tone, lowering look, sharp retort, or

disparaging word, will cause grief to the conscience, and will be visited

by its rebuke, as severely as those gross ebullitions, which disgrace our

character before men.  "Walking thus before God," not before men, is

Christian "perfection." (Gen. xvii. 1.)  His eye is our restraint--his

judgment our rule--his will our delight.

      But "Who is sufficient'!" Child of God! let the trembling of insuf-

ficiency in thyself be stayed by the recollection of all-sufficiency in thy

God.1  What he demands of thee, that he works in thee.  His covenant

secures thy holiness, no less than thine acceptance--thine holiness, not,

as some would have it, as the ground, but as the fruit, of thine accept-

ance.  Let the one then be primarily sought; and the other will

assuredly follow.

 

     "I WILL PUT MY LAW IN THEIR INWARD PARTS, AND WRITE IT IN

THEIR HEARTS. . . . FOR I WILL FORGIVE THEIR INIQUITY, AND I WILL

REMEMBER THEIR SINS NO MORE." (Jer. xxxi. 33, 34.)

 

                                    1 Comp. 2 Cor. ii. 16, w ith iii. 5; also xii. 9.

 

 

 

 

 

 

                                                THE END.

 

 

 


                                                               INDEX.

 

Abercrombie, Dr. quoted, 55                                    Bacon, Lord, Pref. xiii. 1'13,275 n. 355,369.

Absalom referred to, 181, 277. 497, 514, 520.             380, 446, 580 n.

      605                                                                                    Bainham referred to, 292

Acceptable words, 111, 468                                     Balance, false and true, 112, 343, 347

Access to God, 203, 299. 472                                  Barrow's Sermon, 94 n. 96, 101 n. 246, 545,

Accusation, needless, rebuked, 599                                                 611

Adams, Rev. T., Works, 276                                    Basil quoted, Pref. xiii. 557

Adams' Private. Thoughts, 238, 438                        Bates, Dr., 219

Addison quoted, Pref. iii. 195 D.                                              Baxter, 64 n. 238

AfIiiction, value of, 202, 255. See Chastening.        Bear, allusion to, 262. 543

 ------powerless,522                                                                 Beauty, vanity of, 123, 627

-------support in, 207                                                               Bede referred to, 326 n. 422 n.

Agesilaus referred to, 395 n.                                     Begging discountenanced, 375

Agricola referred to, 456 n.                                      Bernard quoted, 64, 199, 495, 562 n. 592

Agriculture, importance of, 137, 167, 171.                              Berridge quoted, 371

      546                                                                                    Beveridge, Bp quoted, 300, 530, 628

Agur referred to, 589                                                               Bible, completeness of, 592

------his humility, 589, 590                                      -----holiness of, 592

------prayers, 596                                                                     -----importance of studying. Pref. x. xi.

A Lapide, referred to, Pref. xv. 341 n. 422 n.               13, 67, 189

Alexander referred to, 251. 302, 550 n.                   Bilney referred to, 292

------Dr.. 418, n.                                                                      Blayney quoted, 475 n.

Alfred, 360                                                                              Blessing of God, 94, 104, 126

All-seeing eye of God, 197, 203. 225                       Boasting spirit, 469, 500

Alphonsus of Arragon, 259 n.                                  Bochart quoted, 606 n.

Ambrose quoted, 241, 412, 441 n. 607 n.                                Boleyn, Aune, 609, 624 n.

     620 n.                                                                                 Bountiful spirit, 125. 408. 625

Amusements of children, 105, 413                                           Boyle referred to, 291

Anger, 181, 196, 314,323, 420, 483, 615                                Brainerd, 127n.

-------holy, 478, 581                                                                Brawling woman, 371, 381, 479, 515, 609

-------rule over, 250, 279, 314, 336                                         Brewster's Sir D. Life of Newton, 291

Angry man. friendship with, 420                                              Britain, anxiety for, 195

Anselm, Abp.. referred to, 293                                                 Brown, Sir T. quoted, 448

Ants, pattern of industry, 60, 611                                            Bruce quoted, 612 n. .

Apocryphal books, Pref. v. xi. 595                                          Bunyan, 55, 78 n. 108, 114 n. 136, 185 n. 319,

Apostacy, 12, 18, 481, 490                                          436, 448, 492 n. 494, 49711. 540. 552 n. 559,

Appetite, rules for, 423                                                                 585, 613 n.

-------insatiable, 604                                                                Burder's Orient. Customs, 370n. 522n. 623n.

-------for sin 256                                                                      Burke quoted, 195 n. 262 n. 265 n.

-------for the' word, 83, 506                                     Burnet, Bp. 'quoted, 165, 275 n. 306, 479 n.

Application, personal, of the Gospel, 416                                Burroughs on Hosea, 338

Aristotle quoted, 30 n. 32 n. 199 n. 431 n.                              Butler, Bp. quoted, 102. 185, 244 n. 476. 477.

      620                                                                                         502

Artabanus's speech, 582 n.                                       Buying the truth, 234 n. 435

Articles referred to, 124 n. 201                                                Byfield on Co1088. quoted. 170 n.

Ass referred to, 485

Athallasius, 411, 525                                                               Calmet182, 282, 522 n.

Atonement of the Gospel, 229                                                 Calvin, 86n. 98n. 298, 538

Attention to the Bible, Pref. x. xi. 85, 416.                             Carbery, Lady. 626 n.

      428                                                                                    Care for souls, 451

Augustine, Pref. ix. 45, 4S n. 59 n. 67, 89 n.                            Carlton's, Bp. Life of Gilpin, 550 n.

       161, 224 n. 241, 247, 347 n. 353. 359 n.         Carpzoy, Pref. v.

       413 n. 425 n. 442 n. 452, 461 n. 479 n. 519.   Cartwright quoted, 2 n. 4 n. 6, 52. 54, 55 n. :

       562 n. 605 n. 617. 621 n.                                                       78, 126 n. 218, 230. 284, 369, 414, .503, 567

Augustus. 271 n. 314 n. 316 n.                                                 Caryl quoted, 260n. 345, 350, 369 n. 605 n.

                                                                                                Cato, 252 n. 502 n; 548 n.

Babbling, 95, 102                                                     Cecil quoted, Pref. ix. 306, 382, 529n.

Backbiter described, 466, 478                                   -------Lord, 384

Backsliding. 178                                                       Chalmers. Dr. quoted, 12, 305, 423


634                                 INDEX.

 

Charity. Christian, 38, 321, 553                                                              Counsels, divine certainty of, 325, 357, 389

Charles II. referred to, 235 n.                                                   Coverdale. Bp. quoted, 302 n. 307, 344 n.

Charnock quoted, 198                                                                    454 n. 469 n. 488 n. 492 n. 515 n. 615 n.

Chastemng of God, 27, 130, 168, 202, 284,                                               624 n.

      322, 336                                                                            Covering of sins, 538

------- parental, 168, 322, 413, 429, 570,                                                Covetousness, evil of, 217, 232, 534, 549, 553.

       574                                                                                          See Hasting- to be rich.

Children, anxiety of, 90, 211, 276, 330, 431,                          Cowardice, warning against, 87. Bee 'Fear

       558, 617                                                                                  of Man.

-------blessing of, 258                                                                               Cowper quoted, 147 n. 186, 268 n. 531 n. 547

-------joy in 91, 271, 431                                                         Cranmer referred to, 292, 577

-------promise to, 77, 344                                                        Creation, work, 35, 80

-------sorrow in, 91, 271, 277, 316,550,                                  Credulity, evil of, 179, 497

       572                                                                                   Cruelty, 474, 603

Christ, his divinity, 8, 11, 75, 79, 227 n. 591                                          --------punishment of, 120

-------example. 5, 150. 197, 223, 466. 487                                              Curse of God, 40

-------glory of his coming, 158, 183, 189,                                                -------the people, 116, 458

       223                                                                                   -------causeless, 484

-------government, 76, 528                                                      Cyprian quoted, 379 n.

-------gracious words, 147, 241, 410                                         Cyril referred to, Pref. v.

-------history, Providence of, 394

-------humility, 466                                                                  Daille quoted, 142,181, 357n. 614

-------love to sinners, 9, 81, 85, 183, 268                                                Dathe quoted, 14G, 193 n. 551

-------prudence, 74,145                                                            D'Aubigne's History of the Reformation,

-------sufferings, 118, 273 n. 293 n.                                               240 n. 357 n. 586 n. 620 n.

-------sympathy, 38, 176, 268, 303                                         Davenant, Bp. quoted, 58n.266 n.

-------warnings, 11                                                                   Death of wicked and righteous contrasted,

--------wisdom, 197                                                                        191

Christian, dignity of, Pref. xiii.147, 371                                  Deceit, evil of, 154, 175, 350

--------happiness of.   See Happiness                                        De La Harpe quoted, 530 n.

Chrysostom quoted, 297 n. 299, 34711. 372,                          De Stael, Madame, quoted, 521

      383 n. 612 n.                                                                     Dependence on God, 224, 319

Church of England, 78, 446                                                     Depression of spirits, 146, 205, 272

Cicero quoted, Pref. iv. 39 n. 137 R. 161 n.                                             Desires, insatiable, 169, 518

     252 n. 279 n. 310 n. 353 n. 532 n. 538 n.                                          ---------of righteous, 124, 164, 280, 326

     615 n.                                                                                                 ---------slothful, 151, 385

Clarendon, Lord, referred to, 235 n.                                         Despair, temptation to, 291

Claudian quoted. 568n. 608 n.                                                  Despising, chastening sin of, 28

Cleaver quoted. 123, 258                                                         ---------neighbour, 116, 184

Coelius referred to, 548 n.                                                        ---------parents, 199, 211, 550, 600, 605

Comeliness, 614, 627                                                                               ---------reproof, 11, 57, 555

Commerce; benefit of, 112                                                      ---------our ways, 320

Communion of Saints, 244, 510, 516                                       ---------wisdom, 3, 427

Competency, 136                                                                    ---------word of God, 159

Completeness, Christian, 631                                                   Destruction of sinners, wilful, 12, 84, 266

Concealment, the glory of God, 464                                        Devices, wicked, 181, 184

--------unscriptural, 464n.                                                        Dew of heaven., 35

Conceit, evil of, 140, 491, 536, 579                                        Diligence, value of. 127, 138, 369, 422, 385,

Confession of sin. 538                                                                    524, 610

Confidence, Christian, 13, 37, 110, 188, 418,                          Diligent and slothful compared, 92, 145,

         453, 541                                                                                 151

Conies, description of. 612                                                      Diodati quoted, 34, 40, 51, 89, 108, 115, 170n.

Connection between principle and conduct,                                                     176, 181 n. 193 n. 195, 417, 534, 551

         629                                                                                                 Diogenes referred to, 251 n.

Consideration, importance of, 38, 218,406,                                             Discipline. value of, 131, 150, 163, 176n. 261,

        472                                                                                    309, 570, 578. See Chastening.

Consistency, Christian, 610, 627                                                             Discretion, value of, 16, 314

Constantiue, Emperor, 14 n.                                                    --------want of, 123

Constantius, 234 n.                                                                  Dishonesty, sin of, 112, 347, 356, 870, 583.

Contention, evil of, 156, 297, 466, 496, 615                                                 See Deceit.

------uselessness of, 565                                                           Diversion of mind, evil of, 275

Contentment, value of, 207, 232, 254. See                                              Divorce, 383n.

      Moderation.                                                                       Dod and Cleaver quoted.  See Cleaver I

Conversation, vain, 185                                                           Dodd, Dr. referred to, 584 n.

Cope's Exposition quoted, 80, 92, 185 n. 187,                         Doddridge referred to, Pref. viii. n. 228 n.

      223, 553                                                                                   346 n, 452 n

Correction. See Chastening.                                                     Douay version, 36 n.

Corruption of human nature, 342. 368, 413                                             Dress, importance of due attention to. 623

--------total, 342, 365, 447, 602                                                              Drunkenness, evil of, 334,434:,442, 617

Counsel. value of 117, 212, 338, 351                                       Dumb, advocate for, 619

Counsellor, the Great, 75, 140, 213, 352                                                 Durell referred to, 564 n.


                                      INDEX.                                    635

 

Eagle, described,. 606                                                               Fool, punishment, 43, 98, 283, 487, 608

Early chastening, 168, 322                                                      ------treatment of 486 565

-------habits, 346                                                                      ------way of, 140, 174, 199, 206, 212, 262

-------seeking. 76                                                                           266, 280, 567

-------training, 401, 413                                                           --------wrath of, 140, 262, 503

Editorial labours, use of, 462                                                    Foolish child evil of 512

Education, responsibility of, 90, 143, 168,                                               -------woman, 170

      401, 403 n.                                                                        Foolishness, natural, 413

Edward II. referred to, 314                                                       Forbearance 261, 315, 336

--------VI. referred to, 14n.                                                      Forgiveness 97, 538

Edwards' (Jon.) Works, 127 n. 227 n. 228,                                               --------great work of, 229

     342, 590 n.                                                                         Foster quoted, 176 n.

Egotism described, 102, 502                                                     Foundation of righteous, 107. See Per-

Elizabeth (Queen) referred to, 15 n.                                              severance

Eloquence, natural, 241                                                            Foxe quoted, 14 n. 37n. 73 n. 103 n. 142,

Empires, four, Daniel's prophecy of, 614n.                                                    205n. 268n. 292, 435n. 450n. 563n. 624n.

End of God in his works, 227                                                   Franke quoted, Pref. ix. 222

Enemies, compassion for, 454                                                                 French and Skinner's Commentary 614n

--------forgiveness of, 354, 475                                                                     175, 209n. 457n

England, Church of. See Church                                                               Fretfulness rebuked, 444, 455

Enmity to the Gospel, 453, 565, 587                                       Fretting heart 307'

Envy described, 190,.432, 444, 503.                                        Friendship, 261, 504, 510, 511, 515

Equality In the Divine dispensations, 393,                                               --------Divine, 268, 303, 511

       569                                                                                   Frowardness, 63, 122, 270, 371, 401

Erasmus quoted, 15n. 61 n.                                                      Fuller, A. quoted, 481

Este quoted, 98 n. 422 n.                                                         Furnace of trial, 255, 520

Euripides referred to, Pref. iv. n.                                                              Future life, knowledge of, in Old Testa-

Eusebius referred to, Pref. iv. 4811. 249 n.                                                     ment, 114 n. 193 n. 214, 374

Evil company, danger of, 5. 17, 47, 89, 164,

       420, 434, 533, 583                                                           Gardiner, Colonel, quoted, 161

Experimental religion, 241, 242, 452                                      Galen referred to, 345n.

Extravagance, 379, 551, 558. See Watch-                                               Gehazi, 121, 350

        fulness                                                                              Geier quoted, Pref. xv. 45 n. 55 n. 70, 71,

Eyes of God, 59. See All-seeing                                                                      80 n. 98 n. 133 n. 155 n. 189, 230, 291; 336,

--------importance of keeping, 54                                                                  401 n. 407, 422 n. 442, 445, 457 n. 562;

--------seening, 345                                                                        576n.

                                                                                                Gesenius referred to, 35 n. 520 n.

Face, hardened, 392                                                                                 Gibbon referred to, 501, 624 n.

Faintness, encouragement under, 448                                       Gifts, corruption of, 259, 275, 376, 558

Faith, nature of, 113, 179, 417                                                                ---------use of, 295

--------happiness of, 226, 239, 355, 386, 552,                         Gill, Dr. quoted, 228 n. 269 n.

      584, 594                                                                            Gilly's Protestant Forefathers, 422 n.

--------prospects of, 573, 588                                                  Gilpin, Life of, 550 n.

--------parental, 271, 277, 344, 401, 616                                                 ----------Bernard, 384

Faithful man, rarity of, 117, 329, 546                                     Glass quoted, 8 n. 91n. 439 n;

Faithful wife, blessing of, 620                                                   Glory of God, 227, 464

Faithfulness of God, 92, 405 n.                                                                ---------saints, 183

Falsehood reproved, 469. See Lying                                         God, government of, 232, 489

Family Religion, 340                                                                                --------omniscience of, 197, 203, 225

----------trials of, 277, 316                                                       --------wrath of, 236, 315

----------ungodliness, evil of, 129, 170, 572                                             Godliness, blessing of. to the family, 170

Favour of God, blessing of, 132, 195, 237                                                --------to the state, 115, 194, 531, 556

Favouritism in the study of the Bible, 593                                                Godolphin (Mrs.), Life of, 520 n. 625 n. 626 n.

Fear of God. blessing of, 3, 26, 75, 87, 107,                                             Good, real, what it is, 179, 631

      187, 222, 231, 432, 455                                                    --------man, described, 132

--------God's word, 159                                                             --------Dr. quoted. Pref. v. viii. 149n. 279n.

--------of man, 584                                                                         378n. 463 D. 616 n.

--------of sin, 180                                                                     Goode, Rev. F..quoted, 143n.

--------godly, 544                                                                     Gospel, comfort of, 146, 452, 480

--------of wicked, 105, 524                                                       --------invitations of, 8, 72, 85, 427, 530

Feathers' Tavern Association, 422.                                          --------satisfaction of, 519

Feet, keeping of, 54, 320                                                         Graham, Life of Miss, Pref. ix. xi. 594

Female character, loveliness of, 119, 133, 620,                       Grave, insatiable, 518

        628                                                                                  Graves.  In Pentateuch, 378 n.

Filial obligation, 4, 434, 435                                                    Greenhill on Ezekiel quoted 434

Flattery, evil of, 353, 498, 559                                                                Gregory Nazianzen, 260 ft.

Flavel quoted, 53, 64 n. 103, 404 n. 482, 521,                         Greyhound alluded to, 613

       586                                                                                   Grotius referred to, Pref. iv. n.

Fletcher quoted, 30                                                                  Grove's Sermons, 598 n.

Fool mischief of, 487                                                                               Gurnal quoted, 69

--------pleasure, 105, 313                                                         Guyso, Dr. referred to, Pref. viii.


636                                 INDEX.

 

Hale, Sir Matthew, 25 n. 67, 206, 281, 806,                                            Horne, Bp. 72 n. 93 n.129, 187, 199, 273, 841,

396, 501                                                                                         408, 456, 471, 522 n. 511 n. 620, 626

Hall, Bp. Pref. iv. 2, 8, 9, 16, 26, 30, 48,                                                 --------Hartwell, Pref. xii. 522 n. 595 n.

     85 n. 97, 129, 151, 155. 157, 175. 207, 215,                                     Horse alluded to, 485

     227,240, 253,257,268,270 n. 275,279, 281,                                      Horseleech, 604

     282,293,310,312,311,322, 323, 326n. 330,                                       Horsley, Bp. quoted, 88-n. 456n. 590n.

     334, 850, 352, 360, 362, 369 n. 370, 388, 401,                                 Hottinger referred to, Pref. v. n.

     424,435, 442, 445,449,452, 464,471, 472,                        Howard referred to, 375 n.

     477, 488,495, 497, 526,528,552, 564 n. 582,                    Howe quoted, 43, 261', 511

     588, 591, 598, 615                                                                             Howels, Rev. W. quoted, 269, 582

Haller quoted, 586n.                                                                                 Human nature, the same, 517

Handmaid heir, 609                                                                  Humanity inculcated, 136

Happiness in religion, Pref. xv. 31, 108,                                  Hume, 161

      176, 205, 221, 274, 377, 384, 416, 561,                                           Humility, 42, 112, 154,. 222, 239, 289, 530,

      629                                                                                           582, 590

Harmer's Observations, 236 n.                                                                 Hypocrisy, 101, 115, 889, 865, 497, 506, 514,

Harvest, importance of gathering, 98, 167                                                       585, 545

Hasting to be rich, 354, 369, 549

Hasty spirit, 189, 218, 250, 290, 307,314, 869,                      Idleness, evil of, 69, 185

466, 579                                                                                  Idler referred to, 412n.

Hatred, sin of, 91, 101, 497                                                     Ignatius quoted, 295

-------of God, 84                                                                      Impatience, evil of, 307

-------reproof, 131. 202                                                           Improvidence reproved, 93

Hawkes, Mrs. Life of, Pref. ix. 269 n.                                      Imprudence. See Suretyship.

Thomas, Life of, 13 n.                                                             Inability, moral, 345, 368

Health, religion cond11cive to, 32, 190                                   Inconsistent profession, evil of, 481

Hearing, the grand means of instruction, 2                                               Independence, Christian, 332, 406

-------caution concerning it, 331                                                              -------proud, 456

-------diligence in hearing, 82, 428                                           Indulgence, carnal, 471, 482

-------ear, 345, 429                                                                  Industry, blessing of, 92, 181, 157, 167. 171

Heart, danger of trusting, 352                                                           523, 544, 611, 625

-------deceitfulness of, 339                                                       ---------spiritual, 138, 389

-------depth of, 282, 338                                                          Infallibility of the Pope, 284 n.

-------hardness of, 542                                                             Infidelity, 418

-------wholly to be given to God, 21, 481,                                                Ingratitude, 263

       432                                                                                   Inheritance of fathers, 317, 340

Heathen, state of, 194, 577                                                     --------of vanity, 129, 182, 354

Heavenly walk, 214                                                                                 --------the wise, 42, 78, 166, 254

He-goat alluded to, 618                                                            Injustice, 265, 278, 283, 290, 354, 457, 548,

Henry (Matthew) quoted, Pref. iv. n. xii.                                                       558

      40, 65, 80, 84, 93, 139, 143, 154, 185, 229,                     Innovators described, 456

      254, 263, 285, 380, 407, 421, 430, 459, 495,                   Instruction, sin and danger of despising, 3,

      564, 568, 629                                                                          56, 168, 221, 421

-------(Philip) quoted, 60 n, 251 n. 478 n.                                                --------importance of receiving, 2, 43,

        499, 506 n. 512 n.                                                                  73, 82. 100, 428

-------VIII. referred to, 544, 609                                                              Instruction of fools. 241

Herbert (George), 442 n.                                                          ---------value of parental, 4, 46, 52, 64,

Heresy, 180, 594                                                                            150, 324, 434

Herodotus, 249 n. 582 n.                                                         Integrity, moral value of, 112, 113, 304, 340,

Hervey's Theron and Aspasio, 71n.                                                 356

Hezekiah's labours. 462                                                            Interpretation of the Book of Proverbs,

Hildersham quoted, 586                                                                   Pref. viii.

Hoary head, 248, 362                                                                              --------false, 19 n. 607 n. 620 n.

Hobbes referred to, 455                                                            Invitations, deceitful, 426

Holden quoted. Pref. vi. n. 19 n. 69 n. 80 n.                                            --------of the Gospel. See Gospel.

      81 n. 99 n. 137 n. 184 n. 224 n. 230 n. 331 n.

      442, 412 n. 515, 524, 551, 562, 592 n. 604 n.                  Jacob's History, 350

      614 n. 624 n.                                                                     Jamieson's Vindication of the Deity of

Holiness of the Gospel, 229                                                            Christ, 81 n.

Homer referred to, 315 n. 442 n. 418 n. 499,                                          Jebb. Bp. quoted, 91 n.

      531 n. 591 n. 606 n. 611 n. 614, 618n. 623n.                   Jericho described, 485 n.

      624n.                                                                                                 Jermin, Dr. Comments, Quoted, 7, 112,165,

Homilies quoted, 318, 372, 383 n.                                                 316, 362, 441, 455, 502, 556, 557, 629

Honey, sweetness of, 454, 471                                                                 Jerome, Pref. iv. n. 14 n. 45, 99 n. 134 n.

Hooker quoted, 36n. 235, 237, 383n. 399n.                                                  224 n.

       456 n. 451 n. 462 n. 557 n. 578, 626 n.                                           Jews, Scottish Mission to. 112 n.

Hooper, Bp. 14n. 268n.                                                           Job's history, 6, 383 n. 448, 620 n.

Hopkins, Bp. 32, 200, 201, 213,368, 573                                                John's, St. charge to the young man, 48 n.

Horace, 31 n. 61 n. 117 n. 252 n. 289 n. 352 n.                      Johnson, Dr. referred to, Pref. 1. 143, 288 n.

       388n 403 n. 443 n. 503 n. 506 n. 510 n.                                                 306. See Idler-Rambler

       516 n. 518 n. 543n. 598n. 604 n. 618D.                                          Jon... Rev. W. quoted, 138 n.

 


                                      INDEX.                                    637

 

Jones, Christian biography, 291                                                               Longjnus quoted, 426 n.

Joseph's History, 5, 253, 359, 480                                          Lot history of 48, 549

Jowett's Christian Visitor, 444 n.                                                              Lot: use of, 252, 296

Judgment, private right of, 332                                                                Louis IX. 259n.

-------respect in. See Injustice                                                   Love, spirit of, 97, 261

------want of, 167                                                                    Lowth, Bp. Pref. vi.n. 85 n. 91n. 110n.

Julian, referred to, Pref. iv.                                                             123 n. 360n. 364 n. 394, 467n. 557 n. 587 n.

Junius, 230 n.                                                                           -------Mr. quoted, 612 n.

Just: blessings on, 94                                                                                Loyalty, 455

Justice, 366, 563                                                                      Lust, danger of 56, 65, 69, 88

-------of God, 227.                                                                   -------means of resisting, 58, 65, 67, 70, 71

Justification of a sinner, 229, 265,                                                 441

Justin Marty, 314 n.                                                                                 Luther, 14, 37, 169, 213, 240, 298, 408, 425,

Juvenal, 47 n. 183 n. 249 n. 315 n.. 333 n.                                                     525, 551, 576 n. 620 n.

      355n. 426 n. 448n. 518n. 547 n.                                       LXX. Pref. iii n. v. n. 51 n. 55n. 80n. 124n.

                                                                                                      133n. 138n. 168n. 230n. 299n. 301 n.

Kathenne of Arragon, 623n.                                                          354n. 457, 477, 478, 488, 532, 578n. 623n.

Keeping the heart, Importance or, 53                                      Lying, evil of, 142, 153, 259, 31l, 313, 497

Kennicott, Dr. quoted, 299 n. 486 n.                                       -------listening to, 256, 568

Kidder, Bp. quoted, 505                                                            -------prayer to be delivered from 596

King, favour of, 195, 236, 315                                                                Lyra, 37n.

-------fear of, 455                                                                    Lyttleton on St. Paul, 483 n.

-------honour of, 189

-------power of. 236, 615                                                         McCbeyne's Life, 611

-------responsibjlity or, 189, 568                                                              Machiavel quoted, 194 n.

-------wrath of, 236. 315                                                          McCrie's Reformation in Spain, 217 n.

-------godly, 278, 360, 362, 465, 558, 570                                              McKnight quoted; 42 n.

-------manual for, 189, 234                                                      Magee, Abp. quoted, 394

-------power of God over, 364                                                  Magistracy, 76n.

King's duty to search. 464                                                        Magna Charta, 558

Kirby and Spence, Entomology, 61 n. 613                                               Manton, Dr. quoted, 147, 503

Knowledge, concealment of, 145                                                             Marriage, of, 58

-------despised, 3                                                                      -------not civil contract, 19 n.

-------dispersing, 200                                                                                -------indissoluble, 19 n. 383 n.

--------importance of, 74, 196, 206, 293,                                                -------responsibility, 133, 170, 479, 609, 628

       306, 349                                                                           Martial, 416n. 612n.

--------laying up, 98                                                                                 Martyn, Rev. H., 78, 87 n. 207, 423, 445,

Knox, Alexander, 227 n. 630n.                                                                         505 n. 520 n. 581

                                                                                                Martyr, Peter, quoted, 15 n.

Labour, 100, 185, 246, 247, 623                                                             Mary, Queen, 555

Landmarks, removal of, 421, 428                                            ---------Queen of William III. 479 n.

--------sacredness of, 421                                                         Massillon referred to, 569

Lathbury's, Rev. T. Tract, 422 n.                                                             Meddling spirit, evil of, 283, 336, 494

Latimer, Bp. 95, 142, 450 n.                                                   Mede, 19 n. 53, 59 n. 6511.59'7, 598

Lavater's Comment. Pref. iii. 2n. 67, 144,                                               Meditation, importance of, Pref. xi.

       166. 187 n. 259 n. 393, 442 n. 457 n. 514                       Melancthon's Commentary, 337 n. 372 n.

Lawson's Commentary, 84 n. 132, 275, 415,                                                 411, 416, 422

       419, 443, 554                                                                   Meekness commended, 196, 208, 470

Lee, Professor, 482 n.                                                              Menander quoted, 547 n.

Leigh 's Critica Sacra, 48 n. 61 n. 204 n.                                  Mercy, reward of, 22, 120

Leighton. Abp. 14 n. 35, 74 n. 87, 114, 146,                                           Merry heart, 205n. 272

       165, 173, 177, 198, 207, 223n. 256, 279, 284,                                Messenger, faithful, 162

       288, 309, 315, 327, 336, 382, 394, 441, 463,                  ---------unfaithful, 107, 162, 487

       496, 498. 510, 512, 542, 588                                           Michaelis quoted, Pref. v. 11 n. 226 n. 485n.

Lemuel, King, 616                                                                   Middle path, 55 n. 18

Leopard alluded to, 614 n.                                                        Middleton. Bp. 80 n.

Liberality, 26, 125, 408, 553                                                   Milner referred to, 249

Life, long. blessing of. 21, 32, 83, 100                                     Milton, 65 n. 175

--------of the gospel, 149, 214, 327, 397                                                 Minister, Christian, not to be flattered, 520,

Light, cheering comfort of. 220                                                                     560, 569

Lion, image of Christian boldness, 524, 614n.                          Ministry, Christian. 3, 5, 103, 111, 126, 163,

------of ruler, 315, 335, 543                                                           172, 187, 214, 241, 295, 298, 432, 452, 469,

 Lips, lying. See Lying.                                                                   488, 520, 618

--------righteous, 98, 103, 111, 139, 142, 234,                        Ministry (Author's) Christian, referred t(),

      241, 242, 409. See Mouth, Tongue.                                          512n. 520 n.

--------ungodly, 188                                                                                 Mirth, sinful  178, 212

Liturgy, 12, 40, 124, 150, 192, 215. 223, 250,                        Mischief, love of, 97, 105, 495

       300, 425, 476 n. 489, 543, 598 n. 613                                             Mistress, godly, 624

Livy quoted, 252 n. 314 n. 412 n.                                            Mocking at sin, 175

Locke quoted, 137, 493 n. 593                                                                Moderation, Christian. 596. 605

Locusts described, 612                                                              Mopsuest, Theodore, Pref. v. n.


638                                 INDEX.

 

More. Sir Thomas. 321, 389                                                    Poor, kindness to, 191, 321~ 553. 562

Mouth of. righteous, 97, 150                                                   -------neglect of, 184, 257, 310, 562

--------wicked, 98, 111, 135, 199, 216. See                                              -------godly, better condition of 201, 304,

Lips, Tongue                                                                                  532, 536

Muffett's Comm. 154, 249, 299, 340                                       Pope, infallibility of. 234n.

Murder, sin of, 544                                                                  -------(A.), quoted. 613n.

Popery, endowment of. 195 n.

Name good, value of. 395                                                        -------evil of, 367. See Rome

-------of the Lord. 286                                                             Poverty, advantages of, 155

National judgments. 526, 554, 556                                          -------trials of, 92, 183, 310

------sins. 195, 526                                                                  Practical religion, Pref. xii. 82, 365, 404

Neff quoted, 390 n. 521 n.                                                       Praise, danger of. 482, 499, 521

Newman, Lectures on Romanism, 595n.                                  ------importance of renouncing 502, 628

Newton, Sir Isaac, 291                                                             ------value of, 395

Nicholls' Commentary, Pref. xi. 59 n 242                                                Praising spirit, value of, 561

Nitre explained, 475 n,                                                            Prating spirit, 95, 173

Pratt, Rev. Josiah, 573n.

Obedience, Christian, 319                                                        Prayer, importance of, Pref. x. 14

-------to parents, 4, 199                                                           --------privilege of, 202, 218, 472, 531

Odious woman, 609                                                                  --------spirit of, 224, 531

Olney Hymns, 106n. 268n. 303n.                                            Preaching, value of. 584

Oppression, 191, 527, 543, 603                                                               Preparation of heart, 224

Order, Christ, 174. 509. 608, 612                                            Pride, 41, 75, 112,116. 136, 154,156, 216, 228

Ordinances, love for, 83                                                                  270, 288. 367, 520, 530, 551, 582, 603

Original corruption. See Corruption.                                        Prior's Life of Burke, 265 n.

Ovid. 89 n. 169 n. 249 n. 252 n. 268 n. 273 n.                        Progress, Christian, 49

      312 n. 421 n. 465 n. 618 n. 623n.                                     Promises of God faithful, 405

Owen, Dr. 11 n. 24. 243, 463.594                                           Prosperity, snares of, 12

Oxen referred to, 171                                                                              Proverbs, canonical authority, Pref. v.

                                                                                                -------rule of life. Pref. xiii.

Paley, 265n. 418, 610                                                                             ------time of writing, 'Pref. vii.

Parents addressed, 20, 45, 129, 208, 340, 534,                        Proverbial teaching, Pref. iii.

      581,617                                                                             Providence, 226,317, 357, 410, 463

-------anxiety of. See Children                                                  Prudence, 60, 74, 86. 144, 162, 174, 179, 240,

-------comforts of. Ib.                                                                                    293, 398, 458, 486, 513, 568, 610

-------confidence of, 271, 340, 344, 405                                  Punishment, capital, 544

-------rebellion agst.199, 330,353, 600, 605                                            Purity of heart, 409

-------sorrow.  see Children.

Parkhurst, 157n. 204n. 234:n. 252n. 378n.                                             Queen, prayer for, 235, 526

        481 n. 488 n. 524 n. 612 n. 624 n.                                  Quesnel, 130

Parr, Queen Catherine, 623 n.

Pastoral Aid Society, 577n.                                                      Rambler, 249n. 288n. 467n.

Patience. See Meekess.                                                             Ransom, riches, 155

Patrick, Bp. Pref. xiii.3, 19n. 27, 64n.169.                                              --------of wicked, 114, 381

      173 n. 236, 248, 260, 268. 312. 350, 359,                        Rebellion. 247

      369n. 393. 422 n, 453, 488, 492, 511, 557 n.                   Refiner's furnace, 255, 520

      562 n. 574, 628                                                                                 Reformation. blessings of, 365, 462 n.

Patriotism, Christian, 194, 564                                                                Reformer's Notes, 35, 40, 47,51, 74, 81, 110,

Paulinus, 549                                                                                  152, 241, 411, 523, 587n. 604n.

Paxton's Illustrations, 11, 235 rL. 295, 364 n.                         Report, good, gladness of, 221, 480

      485 n. 525 n: 543, 611, 623 n.                                          Reproof, 86, 100.. 131, 199, 202, 204, 221, 261,

Payson, Dr. 160, 520 n. 521 n.                                                                      329, 467, 486, 549

Peace, 144                                                                               Reserve, Tractarian, 464 n.

-------men of, 481                                                                    Retirement, blessing of. 280

Persecutions, 554, 566                                                             Retribution justice, 114, 231, 282, 311, 498,

Persius quoted, 388 n. 403 n. 460 n.                                               536, 606. See Ransom.

Perverseness, 199, 304, 308                                                    Revenge, evil of. 355, 459

Peter, 543, 552                                                                        Reynolds, Bp. 11, 74, 110, 124, 208, 224, 240,

-------Czar, referred to, 251 n.                                                                       242, 258, 271 n.  286, 288. 291, 296, 304, 311,

Philip of Macedon, 260 n. 618 n.                                                                  355, 356, 361, 3f:8, 389, 392, 396, 397, 420,

Pilkington, Bp. quoted, 95, 576 n. 628                                          425, 451 n. 493, 497, 507, 527 n. 534, 545,

Pindar. 525 n.                                                                                563, 569. 605

Pitt, Mr. referred to, 527                                                         Richard III 354 ..

Plato, 2, 194 n. 199 n. 259 n. 335 n.                                       Richardson, Dr. 69 n.

Pliny, 15 n.                                                                              Riches, crown, 186

Plumptre's, Miss, Letters, 560 n.                                                              -------danger of, 99, 128, 425

Plutarch, 216 n. 252 n. 341 n. 550 n.                                      -------use of, 155

Polhill, 253, 351                                                                      -------not to be envied, 536

Poole, 40, 63n. 80 n. 337, 391 n 456, 469, 484,                     Richmond's (Rev. L.) Life, 512

      503, 614n.                                                                         Ridley, Bp.l03n. 142, 268n. 450n. 563n.

Poor, harshness to, 301, 375                                                   Righteous, honour of, 147, 182, 231


INDEX.                                    639

 

Righteous perseverance of, 128, 132, 454 n.                                            Service of God, 165, 517

-------recompense of, 121, 129, 166, 232                                                Severus, speech of senate to, 115

-------security of, 286, 594                                                      Seymour, Jane, 609

-------thoughts of, 134                                                             Shakespeare, 161 n.

Righteousness, 91,113                                                              Shaw, Dr., his travels, 612

-------blessing, 194                                                                   Sheppard's Thoughts on Devotion, referred

Rod, discipline of, 98. See Chastening                                             to, 530 n.

Rogers, John, 37 n.                                                                  Ship in the sea described, 606

Rollin, referred to, 501n.                                                         Sidney, Sir P., quoted, 504

Rome, referred to, 371, 411, 419, 566, 595                                             Simeon, Rev. C., quoted, 520

Rousseau, 571 n.                                                                      Simple described, 8, 179, 399, 513

Ruined child, 571                                                                     Sin, energy of, 251

Rulers, bad, 527, 543, 558, 568                                                                ------enticements of, 5

-------good, 234, 457, 544, 570                                                               ------God not the author of, 227

Russell, Dr. 236n.                                                                     ------guilty of, 175, 201

Rutherford, 205, 380, 450                                                       ------hatefulness of, 164

------infatuation of, 7, 121, 166

Sabbath, honour of, 195 n.                                                       ------misery of, 161, 248

Sallust, 456 n. 502 n.                                                                               ------purged, 229

Samson's history, 71 n. 441 n. 568                                          Slander, 497

Sanctification of the Gospel, 229                                                             Sleep, 346

Sanderson, Bp. 22, 26 n. 34, 36, 91, 93, 184 n.                       Sloth, evil of. See Sluggard.

   194, 196, 228 n. 231, 232, 256, 257n. 344,                         Sluggard, 61, 92, 107, 167, 209, 285, 318, 328,

   347, 348n. 451                                                                            331, 388, 411, 460, 492. See Diligent.

-------Walton's Life of, 620                                                     Snow, 469, 484

Satisfaction, godly, 150, 169, 118, 327, 519                                            Soames's Anglo-Saxon Church, 422n.

Saurin's Sermons, 630                                                               Sobriety, 471, 482

Schism, 63, 535                                                                       Socrates quoted, 395, 432 n. 590 n.

Schleusner, 411n.                                                                     Solomon's history, 44, 552

Schultens, 51 n. 53, 56, 71 n. 104, 133 n. 150,                        Solon quoted, 311 n. 426 n

      184, 208 n. 238 n. 336 n. 401 n. 446 n. 450 n.                                 Sons, wise and foolish, compared, 91, 211,

      571 n. 572 n.                                                                            538

Scipio, 252 n.                                                                           Sophocles, 265 n.

Scorner, 8, 86, 88, 204, 329, 338, 373, 387,                                           Sorrow, 178, 205, 206, 273, 291

      409, 564                                                                            South, Dr., Sermons, Pref. xii. 33, 39 n.

Scott, Pref. iv. xi. xii. xiv. ,8 n. 19 n. 64 n.                                                    70, 182, 253 n. 361, 402, 459, 476, 514, 549,

       76, 78, 81, 84 n. 116, 125, 146, 154, 157,                              569, 597

       170 n. 184, 187 n. 221, 234 n. 239 n. 253,                      South Sea, mission of, 194 n.

       260 n. 269 n. 288, 314 n. 331 n. 340 n. 351,                   Sovereignty of God, 232, 357

       410, 418, 417, 442, 454 n. 476, 488, 490, 498,                               Spider described, 613

       498, 514 n. 546, 580, 586, 592 n.                                    Spira, Francis, quoted, 264

Scott's Continuation of Milner, 218 n.                                     Spirit, importance of rule over, 250, 483

Scott, Sir W., quoted, 93 n.                                                      ------mischievous, 97, 105, 495

Scriptures, faithful keeping of, 410                                          Stedfastness, Christian, 509

------favoritism in, 598                                                            Strange woman, 18, 56, 412, 441, 607

------purity of, 592                                                                  Strength of God's ways, 109

Security of the ways of God, 13, 34, 87, 95,                                             Strickland's, Miss, Queens of England, 15n.

      545                                                                                          623 n.

Secret of the Lord, 40                                                                              Strife, evil of, 97, 156, 208, 254, 264, 270,

Secrets-discovered, 117, 466,                                                        288, 336, 466, 551, 581. See Contention.

Seducer, warning against, 607                                                   ------appeasing, 209

Seed's Sermons, 241                                                                                 Strigelius, 297 n.

Self-deception, 140, 171, 177, 181, 225, 245,                         Substance of the Gospel. 18

      365, 535, 601                                                                    Suretyship, 59, 118, 269, 340, 420, 513

Self-discipline, 279                                                                   -------of Christ, 60, 119, 230, 269

Selfishness, 126, 184, 310, 312, 375, 415, 553,                       Sweetness of the ways of God, 244

     562                                                                                     ------word of God, 452

Self-justifying, 295, 538, 615                                                   Swinnock quoted, 138; 158, 312, 340 n. 369,

Self-righteousness, 506,                                                                  431 n. 507

Selling the truth, 485                                                                               Sympathy, Christian, imperfect, 176, 510,

Seneca, 26 n. 28 n. 61, 196 n. 251 n. 252 n.                                                  518

       310 n. 314 n. 424, 516 n.

Serle's Horae Solitariae, 529                                                     Tacitus, 297 n. 456 n. 499 n.

Serpent described, 606                                                              Talebearers, 117, 261, 284, 599

Servant, diligent, 422, 516                                                       Talkativeness, 185

------faithful, 162, 469                                                             Taylor, Bp, 193, 322 n. 346, 353, 368 n.

-----indulged. 579                                                                            385 n. 387 n. 526 n. 530 n. 626 n.

-----ruling, 313, 608                                                                                 --------Dr. Rowland, 485 n.

-----unfaithfull, 107, 487                                                         --------F. Exposition, 22, 41 n. 45 n. 46

-----unruly, 578                                                                        Teaching, false, warning against, 331

-----wise, 195, 254                                                                   Temporal promises, 92


640                                                          INDEX.

 

Temptation, 5, 19, 47, 53, 65, 536                                         War, spiritual, 351

-------preservation from, 17, 67, 160,                                     Warburton, Bp. 193n.

      441                                                                                    Wardlaw, Dr. on EccJesiastes. Pref. vi n.

-------warning against, 5, 64. 89, 617                                          137 n. 250 n. 504

Theophilus of Alexandria, quoted, 242                                  Warnings of the Gospel 10, 555

Thief, not excused, 66                                                             Wastefulness, 158, 330, 384, 551

------partner of, 583                                                                Water, cold, refreshment of 480

Thomas a Kempis, 587                                                           Watts, Dr. 51 n.

Thompson. referred to, 328                                                    Ways of God, dark, 281,468,529

Thorns, trial of, 209, 400                                                        Weekly Lectures, 83

Thoughtless addressed, 73, 313, 320, 324                              Whichcote's Sermons, 502 n.

Thoughts, sinfulness of, 216, 448                                          Whisperers, evil of, 24.8

Three weeks in Palestine, 485 n.                                            Wicked, course of, 202 368 528

Thucydides referred to, Pref. iv.                                             ------destruction of, 12 '51 105 107 121

Tillotson, Abp. 59, 404, 479 n..                                                   136, 156, 192

Tongue, blessing of, 139, 150, 196                                         ------energy of, 7, 47, 63, 121, 247, 373,

------evil of, 141, 151, 198,                                                             444

------responsibility of, 208                                                     ------enmity of, 164. 565, 588

------wisdom of, 111, 142, 197, 467                                       ------multiplying of, 573

Tracts for the Times, 464n. 576n.                                          ------responsibility of, 9, 84, 227, 368

Tradition, 73 n. 411, 422, 595                                                ------sacrifice of, 201, 390

Trapp's Commentary, 31, 67 n. 134 n. 205 n.                       ------thoughts, 134

      223 n. 362, 394                                                                 ------words, ibid.

Treasure, durable, 78, 200                                                      ------worthlessness of, 104, 201

--------of the wise, 383                                                            Wife, blessing of, 58, 133, 170, 299, 317,

-------of wickedness, 91                                                               619-626

Trigge's Sermon, 126 n.                                                           -------contentious, 133, 316, 515

Trinity, exper. apprehension of, 243                                      Will, liberty of, 325, 357

Trust in God, 23                                                                     William I. his Queen, 623 n.

Truth, perpetuity of, 142                                                       ------- III. ibid. 479 n.

Turbulent described, 456                                                        Wilson, Bp. Sodor and Man, 478

Turenne, Marshal, quoted, 318 n.                                          Wine, evil of, 334

Tyndale quoted, 546 n.                                                           Wisdom, Personal, Christ, 8 n. 72 n. 75, 80, 81

                                                                                                -------call of, 8, 72, 80

Understanding, a well-spring, 241                                          -------attribute of, 35

--------spirit, 73, 529                                                               -------heavenly, 16, 42, 73, 98, 111, 135,

Unfaithfulness, 474                                                                      193, 197, 200, 214, 266. 275, 312, 445

Unity of the Church, 297, 507, 612                                       ------rules for study of, 16, 67

Unsettled professors, 306, 507, 567                                      Wise men, value of, 200, 565

Uprightness, 96, 113, 122, 171, 237, 545                              -------son, 90, 174, 218

Usher, Abp.201                                                                      -------servant, 195, 254

Witness, faithful, 141, 172, 391

Vain-glory, 482, 502                                                               ------false, 63, 141,172, 187, 311, 333, 391,

Valentinian,251                                                                            459, 473

Vanity, the fruit of sin, 157, 407                                            Witsius referred to, Pref. v. 606 n.

Venn's, Rev. H. Life, 30, 125n. 127n. 342,                             Wolsey referred to, 465

      571 n. 584n.                                                                      Wounded spirit, 291

Victory, Christian, 196, 250, 586

Virgil quoted, 47, 61 n. 213 n. 264 n. 291 n.                          Young quoted, 302 n. 346

       319 n. 403 n. 438 u. 480 n. 564 n. 591 n.                        -------addressed, 18, 20, 77, 160, 163, 289,

      606 n. 611 n. 623 n. 627 n.                                                      320, 330, 440, 512, 533, 551, 558

Vision, importance of, 576                                                     -------Proverbs, book for, Pref. xix. 412

Voltaire referred to, 161, 229, 411 n.                                      -------snares for, 18

Vulgate, 55 n. 488 n.                                                               ------teachers of, addressed, 20

-------Christian, word to, 46, 95, 173

Walker's Life, referred to, 333 n.                                            Youth, advantage of, 76, 362

Walton's Life of Bp. Sanderson, 620n.

War, advice for, 351                                                                Zealand, New, mission to, 194 n.

-------civil, 291, 526